Sūtrasthāna rāgādi-rogān satatānuṣaktān a-śeṣa-kāya-prasṛtān a-śeṣān | autsukya-mohā-rati-dāñ jaghāna yo '-pūrva-vaidyāya namo 'stu tasmai || 1 || āyuḥ-kāmayamānena dharmārtha-sukha-sādhanam | āyur-vedopadeśeṣu vidheyaḥ param ādaraḥ || 2 || brahmā smṛtvāyuṣo vedaṃ prajāpatim ajigrahat | so 'śvinau tau sahasrākṣaṃ so 'tri-putrādikān munīn || 3 || te 'gniveśādikāṃs te tu pṛthak tantrāṇi tenire | tebhyo 'ti-viprakīrṇebhyaḥ prāyaḥ sāra-taroccayaḥ || 4 || kriyate 'ṣṭāṅga-hṛdayaṃ nāti-saṃkṣepa-vistaram | kāya-bāla-grahordhvāṅga-śalya-daṃṣṭrā-jarā-vṛṣān || 5 || 1.5bv nāti-saṃkṣipta-vistṛtam aṣṭāv aṅgāni tasyāhuś cikitsā yeṣu saṃśritā | vāyuḥ pittaṃ kaphaś ceti trayo doṣāḥ samāsataḥ || 6 || vikṛtā-vikṛtā dehaṃ ghnanti te vartayanti ca | te vyāpino 'pi hṛn-nābhyor adho-madhyordhva-saṃśrayāḥ || 7 || 1.7bv ghnanti te vardhayanti ca vayo-'ho-rātri-bhuktānāṃ te 'nta-madhyādi-gāḥ kramāt | tair bhaved viṣamas tīkṣṇo mandaś cāgniḥ samaiḥ samaḥ || 8 || koṣṭhaḥ krūro mṛdur madhyo madhyaḥ syāt taiḥ samair api | śukrārtava-sthair janmādau viṣeṇeva viṣa-krimeḥ || 9 || taiś ca tisraḥ prakṛtayo hīna-madhyottamāḥ pṛthak | sama-dhātuḥ samastāsu śreṣṭhā nindyā dvi-doṣa-jāḥ || 10 || 1.10cv sama-dhātuḥ samais tāsu tatra rūkṣo laghuḥ śītaḥ kharaḥ sūkṣmaś calo 'nilaḥ | pittaṃ sa-sneha-tīkṣṇoṣṇaṃ laghu visraṃ saraṃ dravam || 11 || snigdhaḥ śīto gurur mandaḥ ślakṣṇo mṛtsnaḥ sthiraḥ kaphaḥ | saṃsargaḥ saṃnipātaś ca tad-dvi-tri-kṣaya-kopataḥ || 12 || rasāsṛṅ-māṃsa-medo-'sthi-majja-śukrāṇi dhātavaḥ | sapta dūṣyā malā mūtra-śakṛt-svedādayo 'pi ca || 13 || vṛddhiḥ samānaiḥ sarveṣāṃ viparītair viparyayaḥ | rasāḥ svādv-amla-lavaṇa-tiktoṣaṇa-kaṣāyakāḥ || 14 || ṣaḍ dravyam āśritās te ca yathā-pūrvaṃ balāvahāḥ | tatrādyā mārutaṃ ghnanti trayas tiktādayaḥ kapham || 15 || kaṣāya-tikta-madhurāḥ pittam anye tu kurvate | śamanaṃ kopanaṃ svastha-hitaṃ dravyam iti tri-dhā || 16 || uṣṇa-śīta-guṇotkarṣāt tatra vīryaṃ dvi-dhā smṛtam | tri-dhā vipāko dravyasya svādv-amla-kaṭukātmakaḥ || 17 || guru-manda-hima-snigdha-ślakṣṇa-sāndra-mṛdu-sthirāḥ | guṇāḥ sa-sūkṣma-viśadā viṃśatiḥ sa-viparyayāḥ || 18 || kālārtha-karmaṇāṃ yogo hīna-mithyāti-mātrakaḥ | samyag-yogaś ca vijñeyo rogārogyaika-kāraṇam || 19 || rogas tu doṣa-vaiṣamyaṃ doṣa-sāmyam a-roga-tā | nijāgantu-vibhāgena tatra rogā dvi-dhā smṛtāḥ || 20 || teṣāṃ kāya-mano-bhedād adhiṣṭhānam api dvi-dhā | rajas tamaś ca manaso dvau ca doṣāv udāhṛtau || 21 || 1.21dv 'tra dvau doṣāv udāhṛtau darśana-sparśana-praśnaiḥ parīkṣeta ca rogiṇam | rogaṃ nidāna-prāg-rūpa-lakṣaṇopaśayāptibhiḥ || 22 || 1.22bv saṃparīkṣeta rogiṇam 1.22bv parīkṣetātha rogiṇam bhūmi-deha-prabhedena deśam āhur iha dvi-dhā | jāṅgalaṃ vāta-bhūyiṣṭham anūpaṃ tu kapholbaṇam || 23 || sādhāraṇaṃ sama-malaṃ tri-dhā bhū-deśam ādiśet | kṣaṇādir vyādhy-avasthā ca kālo bheṣaja-yoga-kṛt || 24 || śodhanaṃ śamanaṃ ceti samāsād auṣadhaṃ dvi-dhā | śarīra-jānāṃ doṣāṇāṃ krameṇa paramauṣadham || 25 || vastir vireko vamanaṃ tathā tailaṃ ghṛtaṃ madhu | dhī-dhairyātmādi-vijñānaṃ mano-doṣauṣadhaṃ param || 26 || bhiṣag dravyāṇy upasthātā rogī pāda-catuṣṭayam | cikitsitasya nirdiṣṭaṃ praty-ekaṃ tac catur-guṇam || 27 || dakṣas tīrthātta-śāstrārtho dṛṣṭa-karmā śucir bhiṣak | bahu-kalpaṃ bahu-guṇaṃ saṃpannaṃ yogyam auṣadham || 28 || anuraktaḥ śucir dakṣo buddhi-mān paricārakaḥ | āḍhyo rogī bhiṣag-vaśyo jñāpakaḥ sat-tva-vān api || 29 || sādhyo '-sādhya iti vyādhir dvi-dhā tau tu punar dvi-dhā | su-sādhyaḥ kṛcchra-sādhyaś ca yāpyo yaś cān-upakramaḥ || 29+(1) || sarvauṣadha-kṣame dehe yūnaḥ puṃso jitātmanaḥ | a-marma-go 'lpa-hetv-agra-rūpa-rūpo 'n-upadravaḥ || 30 || a-tulya-dūṣya-deśartu-prakṛtiḥ pāda-saṃpadi | graheṣv anu-guṇeṣv eka-doṣa-mārgo navaḥ sukhaḥ || 31 || śastrādi-sādhanaḥ kṛcchraḥ saṃkare ca tato gadaḥ | śeṣa-tvād āyuṣo yāpyaḥ pathyābhyāsād viparyaye || 32 || an-upakrama eva syāt sthito 'ty-anta-viparyaye | autsukya-mohā-rati-kṛd dṛṣṭa-riṣṭo 'kṣa-nāśanaḥ || 33 || tyajed ārtaṃ bhiṣag-bhūpair dviṣṭaṃ teṣāṃ dviṣaṃ dviṣam | hīnopakaraṇaṃ vyagram a-vidheyaṃ gatāyuṣam || 34 || caṇḍaṃ śokāturaṃ bhīruṃ kṛta-ghnaṃ vaidya-māninam | tantrasyāsya paraṃ cāto vakṣyate 'dhyāya-saṃgrahaḥ || 35 || āyuṣ-kāma-dinartv-īhā-rogān-utpādana-dravāḥ | anna-jñānānna-saṃrakṣā-mātrā-dravya-rasāśrayāḥ || 36 || doṣādi-jñāna-tad-bheda-tac-cikitsā-dvy-upakramāḥ | śuddhy-ādi-snehana-sveda-rekāsthāpana-nāvanam || 37 || dhūma-gaṇḍūṣa-dṛk-seka-tṛpti-yantraka-śastrakam | sirā-vidhiḥ śalya-vidhiḥ śastra-kṣārāgni-karmikau || 38 || 1.38cv sirā-vyadhaḥ śalya-vidhiḥ sūtra-sthānam ime 'dhyāyās triṃśac chārīram ucyate | garbhāvakrānti-tad-vyāpad-aṅga-marma-vibhāgikam || 39 || vikṛtir dūta-jaṃ ṣaṣṭhaṃ nidānaṃ sārvarogikam | jvarāsṛk-śvāsa-yakṣmādi-madādy-arśo-'tisāriṇām || 40 || mūtrāghāta-pramehāṇāṃ vidradhy-ādy-udarasya ca | pāṇḍu-kuṣṭhānilārtānāṃ vātāsrasya ca ṣo-ḍaśa || 41 || cikitsitaṃ jvare rakte kāse śvāse ca yakṣmaṇi | vamau madātyaye 'rśaḥsu viṣi dvau dvau ca mūtrite || 42 || vidradhau gulma-jaṭhara-pāṇḍu-śopha-visarpiṣu | kuṣṭha-śvitrānila-vyādhi-vātāsreṣu cikitsitam || 43 || dvā-viṃśatir ime 'dhyāyāḥ kalpa-siddhir ataḥ param | kalpo vamer virekasya tat-siddhir vasti-kalpanā || 44 || siddhir vasty-āpadāṃ ṣaṣṭho dravya-kalpo 'ta uttaram | bālopacāre tad-vyādhau tad-grahe dvau ca bhūta-ge || 45 || unmāde 'tha smṛti-bhraṃśe dvau dvau vartmasu saṃdhiṣu | dṛk-tamo-liṅga-nāśeṣu trayo dvau dvau ca sarva-ge || 46 || karṇa-nāsā-mukha-śiro-vraṇe bhaṅge bhagandare | granthy-ādau kṣudra-rogeṣu guhya-roge pṛthag dvayam || 47 || viṣe bhujaṅge kīṭeṣu mūṣakeṣu rasāyane | catvāriṃśo 'n-apatyānām adhyāyo bīja-poṣaṇaḥ || 48 || 1.48dv adhyāyo bīja-poṣaṇe ity adhyāya-śataṃ viṃśaṃ ṣaḍbhiḥ sthānair udīritam || 48ū̆ || Sūtrasthāna brāhme muhūrta uttiṣṭhet svastho rakṣārtham āyuṣaḥ | śarīra-cintāṃ nirvartya kṛta-śauca-vidhis tataḥ || 1 || arka-nyagrodha-khadira-karañja-kakubhādi-jam | prātar bhuktvā ca mṛdv-agraṃ kaṣāya-kaṭu-tiktakam || 2 || kanīny-agra-sama-sthaulyaṃ praguṇaṃ dvā-daśāṅgulam | bhakṣayed danta-pavanaṃ danta-māṃsāny a-bādhayan || 3 || 2.3cv bhakṣayed danta-dhavanaṃ nādyād a-jīrṇa-vamathu-śvāsa-kāsa-jvarārditī | tṛṣṇāsya-pāka-hṛn-netra-śiraḥ-karṇāmayī ca tat || 4 || sauvīram añjanaṃ nityaṃ hitam akṣṇos tato bhajet | cakṣus tejo-mayaṃ tasya viśeṣāc chleṣmato bhayam || 5 || 2.5dv viśeṣāc chleṣmaṇo bhayam bhukta-vāṃś ca śiraḥ-snātaḥ śrāntaḥ chardana-nāvanaiḥ | rātrau jāgaritaś cāpi nāñjyāj jvarita eva ca || 5.1+1 || yojayet sapta-rātre 'smāt srāvaṇārthaṃ rasāñjanam | tato nāvana-gaṇḍūṣa-dhūma-tāmbūla-bhāg bhavet || 6 || 2.6bv srāvaṇārthe rasāñjanam tāmbūlaṃ kṣata-pittāsra-rūkṣotkupita-cakṣuṣām | viṣa-mūrchā-madārtānām a-pathyaṃ śoṣiṇām api || 7 || abhyaṅgam ācaren nityaṃ sa jarā-śrama-vāta-hā | dṛṣṭi-prasāda-puṣṭy-āyuḥ-svapna-su-tvak-tva-dārḍhya-kṛt || 8 || śiraḥ-śravaṇa-pādeṣu taṃ viśeṣeṇa śīlayet | varjyo 'bhyaṅgaḥ kapha-grasta-kṛta-saṃśuddhy-a-jīrṇibhiḥ || 9 || lāghavaṃ karma-sāmarthyaṃ dīpto 'gnir medasaḥ kṣayaḥ | vibhakta-ghana-gātra-tvaṃ vyāyāmād upajāyate || 10 || vāta-pittāmayī bālo vṛddho '-jīrṇo ca taṃ tyajet | ardha-śaktyā niṣevyas tu balibhiḥ snigdha-bhojibhiḥ || 11 || śīta-kāle vasante ca mandam eva tato 'nya-dā | taṃ kṛtvānu-sukhaṃ dehaṃ mardayec ca samantataḥ || 12 || tṛṣṇā kṣayaḥ pratamako rakta-pittaṃ śramaḥ klamaḥ | ati-vyāyāmataḥ kāso jvaraś chardiś ca jāyate || 13 || vyāyāma-jāgarādhva-strī-hāsya-bhāṣyādi-sāhasam | gajaṃ siṃha ivākarṣan bhajann ati vinaśyati || 14 || 2.14dv bhajan yato 'ti naśyati udvartanaṃ kapha-haraṃ medasaḥ pravilāyanam | sthirī-karaṇam aṅgānāṃ tvak-prasāda-karaṃ param || 15 || dīpanaṃ vṛṣyam āyuṣyaṃ snānam ūrjā-bala-pradam | kaṇḍū-mala-śrama-sveda-tandrā-tṛḍ-dāha-pāpma-jit || 16 || 2.16bv snānam ojo-bala-pradam uṣṇāmbunādhaḥ-kāyasya pariṣeko balāvahaḥ | tenaiva tūttamāṅgasya bala-hṛt-keśa-cakṣuṣām || 17 || 2.17cv tenaiva cottamāṅgasya 2.17cv sa eva cottamāṅgasya 2.17cv sa eva tūttamāṅgasya snānam ardita-netrāsya-karṇa-rogātisāriṣu | ādhmāna-pīnasā-jīrṇa-bhukta-vatsu ca garhitam || 18 || jīrṇe hitaṃ mitaṃ cādyān na vegān īrayed balāt | na vegito 'nya-kāryaḥ syān nā-jitvā sādhyam āmayam || 19 || sukhārthāḥ sarva-bhūtānāṃ matāḥ sarvāḥ pravṛttayaḥ | sukhaṃ ca na vinā dharmāt tasmād dharma-paro bhavet || 20 || bhaktyā kalyāṇa-mitrāṇi sevetetara-dūra-gaḥ | hiṃsā-steyān yathā-kāmaṃ paiśunyaṃ paruṣān-ṛte || 21 || saṃbhinnālāpaṃ vyāpādam abhidhyāṃ dṛg-viparyayam | pāpaṃ karmeti daśa-dhā kāya-vāṅ-mānasais tyajet || 22 || a-vṛtti-vyādhi-śokārtān anuvarteta śaktitaḥ | ātma-vat satataṃ paśyed api kīṭa-pipīlikam || 23 || arcayed deva-go-vipra-vṛddha-vaidya-nṛpātithīn | vi-mukhān nārthinaḥ kuryān nāvamanyeta nākṣipet || 24 || upakāra-pradhānaḥ syād apakāra-pare 'py arau | saṃpad-vipatsv eka-manā hetāv īrṣyet phale na tu || 25 || kāle hitaṃ mitaṃ brūyād a-visaṃvādi peśalam | pūrvābhibhāṣī su-mukhaḥ su-śīlaḥ karuṇā-mṛduḥ || 26 || naikaḥ sukhī na sarva-tra viśrabdho na ca śaṅkitaḥ | na kañ-cid ātmanaḥ śatruṃ nātmānaṃ kasya-cid ripum || 27 || prakāśayen nāpamānaṃ na ca niḥ-sneha-tāṃ prabhoḥ | janasyāśayam ālakṣya yo yathā parituṣyati || 28 || 2.28av prakāśayen nāvamānaṃ taṃ tathaivānuvarteta parārādhana-paṇḍitaḥ | na pīḍayed indriyāṇi na caitāny ati lālayet || 29 || tri-varga-śūnyaṃ nārambhaṃ bhajet taṃ cā-virodhayan | anuyāyāt prati-padaṃ sarva-dharmeṣu madhyamām || 30 || nīca-roma-nakha-śmaśrur nir-malāṅghri-malāyanaḥ | snāna-śīlaḥ su-surabhiḥ su-veṣo 'n-ulbaṇojjvalaḥ || 31 || 2.31cv snāna-śīlaḥ sa-surabhiḥ dhārayet satataṃ ratna-siddha-mantra-mahauṣadhīḥ | sātapa-tra-pada-trāṇo vicared yuga-mātra-dṛk || 32 || niśi cātyayike kārye daṇḍī maulī sahāya-vān | caitya-pūjya-dhvajā-śasta-cchāyā-bhasma-tuṣā-śucīn || 33 || nākrāmec charkarā-loṣṭa-bali-snāna-bhuvo na ca | nadīṃ taren na bāhubhyāṃ nāgni-skandham abhivrajet || 34 || saṃdigdha-nāvaṃ vṛkṣaṃ ca nārohed duṣṭa-yāna-vat | nā-saṃvṛta-mukhaḥ kuryāt kṣuti-hāsya-vijṛmbhaṇam || 35 || 2.35dv kṣutiṃ hāsyaṃ vijṛmbhaṇam 2.35dv kṣut-hāsyaṃ ca vijṛmbhaṇam nāsikāṃ na vikuṣṇīyān nā-kasmād vilikhed bhuvam | nāṅgaiś ceṣṭeta vi-guṇaṃ nāsītotkaṭakaś ciram || 36 || 2.36bv nā-kasmād vilikhen mahīm 2.36dv nāsītotkaṭaka-sthitaḥ deha-vāk-cetasāṃ ceṣṭāḥ prāk śramād vinivartayet | nordhva-jānuś ciraṃ tiṣṭhen naktaṃ seveta na drumam || 37 || tathā catvara-caityāntaś-catuṣ-patha-surālayān | sūnāṭavī-śūnya-gṛha-śmaśānāni divāpi na || 38 || a-saṃmārjitam ādarśam an-upaskṛta-kāminīm | rajasvalāṃ ca nekṣeta sadā prātar a-maṅgalam || 38+1 || sarva-thekṣeta nādityaṃ na bhāraṃ śirasā vahet | nekṣeta pratataṃ sūkṣmaṃ dīptā-medhyā-priyāṇi ca || 39 || madya-vikraya-saṃdhāna-dānādānāni nācaret | puro-vātātapa-rajas-tuṣāra-paruṣānilān || 40 || an-ṛjuḥ kṣavathūdgāra-kāsa-svapnānna-maithunam | kūla-cchāyāṃ nṛpa-dviṣṭaṃ vyāla-daṃṣṭri-viṣāṇinaḥ || 41 || hīnān-āryāti-nipuṇa-sevāṃ vigraham uttamaiḥ | saṃdhyāsv abhyavahāra-strī-svapnādhyayana-cintanam || 42 || śatru-sattra-gaṇākīrṇa-gaṇikā-paṇikāśanam | gātra-vaktra-nakhair vādyaṃ hasta-keśāvadhūnanam || 43 || toyāgni-pūjya-madhyena yānaṃ dhūmaṃ śavāśrayam | madyāti-saktiṃ viśrambha-svātantrye strīṣu ca tyajet || 44 || ācāryaḥ sarva-ceṣṭāsu loka eva hi dhī-mataḥ | anukuryāt tam evāto laukike 'rthe parīkṣakaḥ || 45 || ārdra-saṃtāna-tā tyāgaḥ kāya-vāk-cetasāṃ damaḥ | svārtha-buddhiḥ parārtheṣu paryāptam iti sad-vratam || 46 || naktan-dināni me yānti katham-bhūtasya saṃprati | duḥkha-bhāṅ na bhavaty evaṃ nityaṃ saṃnihita-smṛtiḥ || 47 || evaṃ kṛtsna-dinaṃ nītvā rātrau yāme gṛhe gate | devān ṛṣīn gurūn smṛtvā tataḥ śayanam ācaret || 47+1 || 2.47+1bv rātrer yāme gate sati ity ācāraḥ samāsena yaṃ prāpnoti samācaran | āyur ārogyam aiśvaryaṃ yaśo lokāṃś ca śāśvatān || 48 || Sūtrasthāna māsair dvi-saṃkhyair māghādyaiḥ kramāt ṣaḍ ṛtavaḥ smṛtāḥ | śiśiro 'tha vasantaś ca grīṣmo varṣā-śarad-dhimāḥ || 1 || śiśirādyās tribhis tais tu vidyād ayanam uttaram | ādānaṃ ca tad ādatte nṛṇāṃ prati-dinaṃ balam || 2 || tasmin hy aty-artha-tīkṣṇoṣṇa-rūkṣā mārga-sva-bhāvataḥ | āditya-pavanāḥ saumyān kṣapayanti guṇān bhuvaḥ || 3 || tiktaḥ kaṣāyaḥ kaṭuko balino 'tra rasāḥ kramāt | tasmād ādānam āgneyam ṛtavo dakṣiṇāyanam || 4 || varṣādayo visargaś ca yad balaṃ visṛjaty ayam | saumya-tvād atra somo hi bala-vān hīyate raviḥ || 5 || megha-vṛṣṭy-anilaiḥ śītaiḥ śānta-tāpe mahī-tale | snigdhāś cehāmla-lavaṇa-madhurā balino rasāḥ || 6 || śīte 'gryaṃ vṛṣṭi-gharme 'lpaṃ balaṃ madhyaṃ tu śeṣayoḥ | balinaḥ śīta-saṃrodhād dhemante prabalo 'nalaḥ || 7 || bhavaty alpendhano dhātūn sa paced vāyuneritaḥ | ato hime 'smin seveta svādv-amla-lavaṇān rasān || 8 || dairghyān niśānām etarhi prātar eva bubhukṣitaḥ | avaśya-kāryaṃ saṃbhāvya yathoktaṃ śīlayed anu || 9 || vāta-ghna-tailair abhyaṅgaṃ mūrdhni tailaṃ vimardanam | niyuddhaṃ kuśalaiḥ sārdhaṃ pādāghātaṃ ca yuktitaḥ || 10 || 3.10bv mūrdha-tailaṃ vimardanam kaṣāyāpahṛta-snehas tataḥ snāto yathā-vidhi | kuṅkumena sa-darpeṇa pradigdho 'guru-dhūpitaḥ || 11 || rasān snigdhān palaṃ puṣṭaṃ gauḍam accha-surāṃ surām | godhūma-piṣṭa-māṣekṣu-kṣīrottha-vikṛtīḥ śubhāḥ || 12 || navam annaṃ vasāṃ tailaṃ śauca-kārye sukhodakam | prāvārājina-kauśeya-praveṇī-kaucavāstṛtam || 13 || 3.13dv -praveṇī-kuthakāstṛtam uṣṇa-sva-bhāvair laghubhiḥ prāvṛtaḥ śayanaṃ bhajet | yuktyārka-kiraṇān svedaṃ pāda-trāṇaṃ ca sarva-dā || 14 || pīvaroru-stana-śroṇyaḥ sa-madāḥ pramadāḥ priyāḥ | haranti śītam uṣṇāṅgyo dhūpa-kuṅkuma-yauvanaiḥ || 15 || aṅgāra-tāpa-saṃtapta-garbha-bhū-veśma-cāriṇaḥ | śīta-pāruṣya-janito na doṣo jātu jāyate || 16 || ayam eva vidhiḥ kāryaḥ śiśire 'pi viśeṣataḥ | tadā hi śītam adhikaṃ raukṣyaṃ cādāna-kāla-jam || 17 || kaphaś cito hi śiśire vasante 'rkāṃśu-tāpitaḥ | hatvāgniṃ kurute rogān atas taṃ tvarayā tyajet || 18 || tīkṣṇair vamana-nasyādyair laghu-rūkṣaiś ca bhojanaiḥ | vyāyāmodvartanāghātair jitvā śleṣmāṇam ulbaṇam || 19 || snāto 'nuliptaḥ karpūra-candanāguru-kuṅkumaiḥ | purāṇa-yava-godhūma-kṣaudra-jāṅgala-śūlya-bhuk || 20 || sahakāra-rasonmiśrān āsvādya priyayārpitān | priyāsya-saṅga-surabhīn priyā-netrotpalāṅkitān || 21 || saumanasya-kṛto hṛdyān vayasyaiḥ sahitaḥ pibet | nirgadān āsavāriṣṭa-sīdhu-mārdvīka-mādhavān || 22 || śṛṅgaverāmbu sārāmbu madhv-ambu jaladāmbu ca | dakṣiṇānila-śīteṣu parito jala-vāhiṣu || 23 || 3.23bv madhv-ambu jaladāmbu vā a-dṛṣṭa-naṣṭa-sūryeṣu maṇi-kuṭṭima-kāntiṣu | parapuṣṭa-vighuṣṭeṣu kāma-karmānta-bhūmiṣu || 24 || 3.24av a-dṛṣṭā-naṣṭa-sūryeṣu vicitra-puṣpa-vṛkṣeṣu kānaneṣu su-gandhiṣu | goṣṭhī-kathābhiś citrābhir madhyāhnaṃ gamayet sukhī || 25 || guru-śīta-divā-svapna-snigdhāmla-madhurāṃs tyajet | tīkṣṇāṃśur ati-tīkṣṇāṃśur grīṣme saṃkṣipatīva yat || 26 || 3.26cv sneham arko 'ti-tīkṣṇāṃśur praty-ahaṃ kṣīyate śleṣmā tena vāyuś ca vardhate | ato 'smin paṭu-kaṭv-amla-vyāyāmārka-karāṃs tyajet || 27 || bhajen madhuram evānnaṃ laghu snigdhaṃ himaṃ dravam | su-śīta-toya-siktāṅgo lihyāt saktūn sa-śarkarān || 28 || madyaṃ na peyaṃ peyaṃ vā sv-alpaṃ su-bahu-vāri vā | anya-thā śoṣa-śaithilya-dāha-mohān karoti tat || 29 || 3.29cv anya-thā śopha-śaithilya- kundendu-dhavalaṃ śālim aśnīyāj jāṅgalaiḥ palaiḥ | pibed rasaṃ nāti-ghanaṃ rasālāṃ rāga-khāṇḍavau || 30 || 3.30av kundendu-dhavalāñ chālīn 3.30dv rasālāṃ rāga-khāḍavau 3.30dv rasālāṃ rāga-ṣāḍavau pānakaṃ pañca-sāraṃ vā nava-mṛd-bhājane sthitam | moca-coca-dalair yuktaṃ sāmlaṃ mṛn-maya-śuktibhiḥ || 31 || 3.31bv nava-mṛd-bhājana-sthitam pāṭalā-vāsitaṃ cāmbhaḥ sa-karpūraṃ su-śītalam | śaśāṅka-kiraṇān bhakṣyān rajanyāṃ bhakṣayan pibet || 32 || sa-sitaṃ māhiṣaṃ kṣīraṃ candra-nakṣatra-śītalam | abhraṅ-kaṣa-mahā-śāla-tāla-ruddhoṣṇa-raśmiṣu || 33 || vaneṣu mādhavī-śliṣṭa-drākṣā-stabaka-śāliṣu | su-gandhi-hima-pānīya-sicyamāna-paṭālike || 34 || kāyamāne cite cūta-pravāla-phala-lumbibhiḥ | kadalī-dala-kalhāra-mṛṇāla-kamalotpalaiḥ || 35 || komalaiḥ kalpite talpe hasat-kusuma-pallave | madhyan-dine 'rka-tāpārtaḥ svapyād dhārā-gṛhe 'tha-vā || 36 || pusta-strī-stana-hastāsya-pravṛttośīra-vāriṇi | niśā-kara-karākīrṇe saudha-pṛṣṭhe niśāsu ca || 37 || āsanā svastha-cittasya candanārdrasya mālinaḥ | nivṛtta-kāma-tantrasya su-sūkṣma-tanu-vāsasaḥ || 38 || jalārdrās tāla-vṛntāni vistṛtāḥ padminī-puṭāḥ | utkṣepāś ca mṛdūtkṣepā jala-varṣi-himānilāḥ || 39 || karpūra-mallikā-mālā hārāḥ sa-hari-candanāḥ | mano-hara-kalālāpāḥ śiśavaḥ sārikāḥ śukāḥ || 40 || mṛṇāla-valayāḥ kāntāḥ protphulla-kamalojjvalāḥ | jaṅgamā iva padminyo haranti dayitāḥ klamam || 41 || ādāna-glāna-vapuṣām agniḥ sanno 'pi sīdati | varṣāsu doṣair duṣyanti te 'mbu-lambāmbu-de 'mbare || 42 || 3.42av ādāna-mlāna-vapuṣām sa-tuṣāreṇa marutā sahasā śītalena ca | bhū-bāṣpeṇāmla-pākena malinena ca vāriṇā || 43 || vahninaiva ca mandena teṣv ity anyo-'nya-dūṣiṣu | bhajet sādhāraṇaṃ sarvam ūṣmaṇas tejanaṃ ca yat || 44 || āsthāpanaṃ śuddha-tanur jīrṇaṃ dhānyaṃ rasān kṛtān | jāṅgalaṃ piśitaṃ yūṣān madhv-ariṣṭaṃ ciran-tanam || 45 || mastu sauvarcalāḍhyaṃ vā pañca-kolāvacūrṇitam | divyaṃ kaupaṃ śṛtaṃ cāmbho bhojanaṃ tv ati-dur-dine || 46 || 3.46av mastu sauvarcalāḍhyaṃ ca vyaktāmla-lavaṇa-snehaṃ saṃśuṣkaṃ kṣaudra-val laghu | a-pāda-cārī surabhiḥ satataṃ dhūpitāmbaraḥ || 47 || harmya-pṛṣṭhe vased bāṣpa-śīta-sīkara-varjite | nadī-jaloda-manthāhaḥ-svapnāyāsātapāṃś tyajet || 48 || varṣā-śītocitāṅgānāṃ sahasaivārka-raśmibhiḥ | taptānāṃ saṃcitaṃ vṛṣṭau pittaṃ śaradi kupyati || 49 || taj-jayāya ghṛtaṃ tiktaṃ vireko rakta-mokṣaṇam | tiktaṃ svādu kaṣāyaṃ ca kṣudhito 'nnaṃ bhajel laghu || 50 || śāli-mudga-sitā-dhātrī-paṭola-madhu-jāṅgalam | taptaṃ taptāṃśu-kiraṇaiḥ śītaṃ śītāṃśu-raśmibhiḥ || 51 || samantād apy aho-rātram agastyodaya-nir-viṣam | śuci haṃsodakaṃ nāma nir-malaṃ mala-jij jalam || 52 || nābhiṣyandi na vā rūkṣaṃ pānādiṣv amṛtopamam | candanośīra-karpūra-muktā-srag-vasanojjvalaḥ || 53 || saudheṣu saudha-dhavalāṃ candrikāṃ rajanī-mukhe | tuṣāra-kṣāra-sauhitya-dadhi-taila-vasātapān || 54 || tīkṣṇa-madya-divā-svapna-puro-vātān parityajet | śīte varṣāsu cādyāṃs trīn vasante 'ntyān rasān bhajet || 55 || svāduṃ nidāghe śaradi svādu-tikta-kaṣāyakān | śarad-vasantayo rūkṣaṃ śītaṃ gharma-ghanāntayoḥ || 56 || anna-pānaṃ samāsena viparītam ato 'nya-dā | nityaṃ sarva-rasābhyāsaḥ sva-svādhikyam ṛtāv ṛtau || 57 || ṛtvor antyādi-saptāhāv ṛtu-saṃdhir iti smṛtaḥ | tatra pūrvo vidhis tyājyaḥ sevanīyo 'paraḥ kramāt || 58 || 3.58av ṛtvor antyādi-saptāhād a-sātmya-jā hi rogāḥ syuḥ sahasā tyāga-śīlanāt || 58ū̆ || Sūtrasthāna vegān na dhārayed vāta-viṇ-mūtra-kṣava-tṛṭ-kṣudhām | nidrā-kāsa-śrama-śvāsa-jṛmbhāśru-cchardi-retasām || 1 || adho-vātasya rodhena gulmodāvarta-ruk-klamāḥ | vāta-mūtra-śakṛt-saṅga-dṛṣṭy-agni-vadha-hṛd-gadāḥ || 2 || sneha-sveda-vidhis tatra vartayo bhojanāni ca | pānāni vastayaś caiva śastaṃ vātānulomanam || 2+1 || śakṛtaḥ piṇḍikodveṣṭa-pratiśyāya-śiro-rujaḥ | ūrdhva-vāyuḥ parīkarto hṛdayasyoparodhanam || 3 || 4.3cv ūrdhvaṃ vāyuḥ parīkarto mukhena viṭ-pravṛttiś ca pūrvoktāś cāmayāḥ smṛtāḥ | aṅga-bhaṅgāśmarī-vasti-meḍhra-vaṅkṣaṇa-vedanāḥ || 4 || mūtrasya rodhāt pūrve ca prāyo rogās tad-auṣadham | varty-abhyaṅgāvagāhāś ca svedanaṃ vasti-karma ca || 5 || anna-pānaṃ ca viḍ-bhedi viḍ-rodhottheṣu yakṣmasu | mūtra-jeṣu tu pāne ca prāg-bhaktaṃ śasyate ghṛtam || 6 || 4.6cv mūtra-jeṣu ca pānaṃ tu 4.6cv mūtra-jeṣu prayuñjīta 4.6dv sarpiṣaś cāvapīḍakam jīrṇāntikaṃ cottamayā mātrayā yojanā-dvayam | avapīḍakam etac ca saṃjñitaṃ dhāraṇāt punaḥ || 7 || udgārasyā-ruciḥ kampo vibandho hṛdayorasoḥ | ādhmāna-kāsa-hidhmāś ca hidhmā-vat tatra bheṣajam || 8 || śiro-'rtīndriya-daurbalya-manyā-stambhārditaṃ kṣuteḥ | tīkṣṇa-dhūmāñjanāghrāṇa-nāvanārka-vilokanaiḥ || 9 || pravartayet kṣutiṃ saktāṃ sneha-svedau ca śīlayet | śoṣāṅga-sāda-bādhirya-saṃmoha-bhrama-hṛd-gadāḥ || 10 || tṛṣṇāyā nigrahāt tatra śītaḥ sarvo vidhir hitaḥ | aṅga-bhaṅgā-ruci-glāni-kārśya-śūla-bhramāḥ kṣudhaḥ || 11 || 4.11dv -kārśya-śūla-śrama-bhramāḥ tatra yojyaṃ laghu snigdham uṣṇam alpaṃ ca bhojanam | nidrāyā moha-mūrdhākṣi-gauravālasya-jṛmbhikāḥ || 12 || 4.12av vaivarṇyaṃ ca kṣudhas tatra 4.12bv snigdhoṣṇaṃ laghu bhojanam aṅga-mardaś ca tatreṣṭaḥ svapnaḥ saṃvāhanāni ca | kāsasya rodhāt tad-vṛddhiḥ śvāsā-ruci-hṛd-āmayāḥ || 13 || śoṣo hidhmā ca kāryo 'tra kāsa-hā su-tarāṃ vidhiḥ | gulma-hṛd-roga-saṃmohāḥ śrama-śvāsād vidhāritāt || 14 || 4.14dv śrama-śvāsā-vidhāraṇāt hitaṃ viśramaṇaṃ tatra vāta-ghnaś ca kriyā-kramaḥ | jṛmbhāyāḥ kṣava-vad rogāḥ sarvaś cānila-jid vidhiḥ || 15 || 4.15cc jṛmbhāyāḥ kṣuti-vad rogāḥ pīnasākṣi-śiro-hṛd-ruṅ-manyā-stambhā-ruci-bhramāḥ | sa-gulmā bāṣpatas tatra svapno madyaṃ priyāḥ kathāḥ || 16 || visarpa-koṭha-kuṣṭhākṣi-kaṇḍū-pāṇḍv-āmaya-jvarāḥ | sa-kāsa-śvāsa-hṛl-lāsa-vyaṅga-śvayathavo vameḥ || 17 || gaṇḍūṣa-dhūmān-āhārā rūkṣaṃ bhuktvā tad-udvamaḥ | vyāyāmaḥ srutir asrasya śastaṃ cātra virecanam || 18 || 4.18av gaṇḍūṣa-dhūmān-āhāraṃ 4.18av gaṇḍūṣa-dhūmān-āhārān 4.18bv rūkṣaṃ bhuktvā tad udvamet 4.18bv rūkṣān bhuktvā tad udvamet sa-kṣāra-lavaṇaṃ tailam abhyaṅgārthaṃ ca śasyate | śukrāt tat-sravaṇaṃ guhya-vedanā-śvayathu-jvarāḥ || 19 || 4.19bv abhyaṅgārthe ca śasyate hṛd-vyathā-mūtra-saṅgāṅga-bhaṅga-vṛddhy-aśma-ṣaṇḍha-tāḥ | tāmra-cūḍa-surā-śāli-vasty-abhyaṅgāvagāhanam || 20 || vasti-śuddhi-karaiḥ siddhaṃ bhajet kṣīraṃ priyāḥ striyaḥ | tṛṭ-śūlārtaṃ tyajet kṣīṇaṃ viḍ-vamaṃ vega-rodhinam || 21 || rogāḥ sarve 'pi jāyante vegodīraṇa-dhāraṇaiḥ | nirdiṣṭaṃ sādhanaṃ tatra bhūyiṣṭhaṃ ye tu tān prati || 22 || tataś cāneka-dhā prāyaḥ pavano yat prakupyati | anna-pānauṣadhaṃ tasya yuñjītāto 'nulomanam || 23 || dhārayet tu sadā vegān hitaiṣī pretya ceha ca | lobherṣyā-dveṣa-mātsarya-rāgādīnāṃ jitendriyaḥ || 24 || yateta ca yathā-kālaṃ malānāṃ śodhanaṃ prati | aty-artha-saṃcitās te hi kruddhāḥ syur jīvita-cchidaḥ || 25 || doṣāḥ kadā-cit kupyanti jitā laṅghana-pācanaiḥ | ye tu saṃśodhanaiḥ śuddhā na teṣāṃ punar-udbhavaḥ || 26 || 4.26cv ye tu saṃśodhanaiḥ śuddhās 4.26dv teṣāṃ na punar-udbhavaḥca yathā-kramaṃ yathā-yogam ata ūrdhvaṃ prayojayet | rasāyanāni siddhāni vṛṣya-yogāṃś ca kāla-vit || 27 || 4.27av yathā-kramaṃ yathā-yogyam bheṣaja-kṣapite pathyam āhārair bṛṃhaṇaṃ kramāt | śāli-ṣaṣṭika-godhūma-mudga-māṃsa-ghṛtādibhiḥ || 28 || 4.28dv -mudga-māṃsa-rasādibhiḥ hṛdya-dīpana-bhaiṣajya-saṃyogād ruci-pakti-daiḥ | sābhyaṅgodvartana-snāna-nirūha-sneha-vastibhiḥ || 29 || tathā sa labhate śarma sarva-pāvaka-pāṭavam | dhī-varṇendriya-vaimalyaṃ vṛṣa-tāṃ dairghyam āyuṣaḥ || 30 || ye bhūta-viṣa-vāyv-agni-kṣata-bhaṅgādi-saṃbhavāḥ | rāga-dveṣa-bhayādyāś ca te syur āgantavo gadāḥ || 31 || 4.31cv kāma-krodha-bhāyādyāś tyāgaḥ prajñāparādhānām indriyopaśamaḥ smṛtiḥ | deśa-kālātma-vijñānaṃ sad-vṛttasyānuvartanam || 32 || atharva-vihitā śāntiḥ pratikūla-grahārcanam | bhūtādya-sparśanopāyo nirdiṣṭaś ca pṛthak pṛthak || 33 || an-utpattyai samāsena vidhir eṣa pradarśitaḥ | nijāgantu-vikārāṇām utpannānāṃ ca śāntaye || 34 || 4.34av an-utpattau samāsena śītodbhavaṃ doṣa-cayaṃ vasante viśodhayan grīṣma-jam abhra-kāle | ghanātyaye vārṣikam āśu samyak prāpnoti rogān ṛtu-jān na jātu || 35 || nityaṃ hitāhāra-vihāra-sevī samīkṣya-kārī viṣayeṣv a-saktaḥ | dātā samaḥ satya-paraḥ kṣamā-vān āptopasevī ca bhavaty a-rogaḥ || 36 || Sūtrasthāna jīvanaṃ tarpaṇaṃ hṛdyaṃ hlādi buddhi-prabodhanam | tanv a-vyakta-rasaṃ mṛṣṭaṃ śītaṃ laghv amṛtopamam || 1 || gaṅgāmbu nabhaso bhraṣṭaṃ spṛṣṭaṃ tv arkendu-mārutaiḥ | hitā-hita-tve tad bhūyo deśa-kālāv apekṣate || 2 || yenābhivṛṣṭam a-malaṃ śāly-annaṃ rājate sthitam | a-klinnam a-vi-varṇaṃ ca tat peyaṃ gāṅgam anya-thā || 3 || 5.3bv śāly-annaṃ rājata-sthitam 5.3cv a-klinnam a-vi-varṇaṃ syāt 5.3cv a-klinnam a-vivarṇaṃ vā 5.3dv tat toyaṃ gāṅgam anya-thā sāmudraṃ tan na pātavyaṃ māsād āśvayujād vinā | aindram ambu su-pātra-stham a-vipannaṃ sadā pibet || 4 || tad-a-bhāve ca bhūmi-ṣṭham āntarikṣānukāri yat | śuci-pṛthv-asita-śvete deśe 'rka-pavanāhatam || 5 || 5.5av tad-a-bhāve ca bhūyiṣṭham 5.5av tad-a-bhāve pibed bhaumam na pibet paṅka-śaivāla-tṛṇa-parṇāvilāstṛtam | sūryendu-pavanā-dṛṣṭam abhivṛṣṭaṃ ghanaṃ guru || 6 || phenilaṃ jantu-mat taptaṃ danta-grāhy ati-śaityataḥ | an-ārtavaṃ ca yad divyam ārtavaṃ prathamaṃ ca yat || 7 || lūtādi-tantu-viṇ-mūtra-viṣa-saṃśleṣa-dūṣitam | paścimoda-dhi-gāḥ śīghra-vahā yāś cā-malodakāḥ || 8 || pathyāḥ samāsāt tā nadyo viparītās tv ato 'nya-thā | upalāsphālanākṣepa-vicchedaiḥ kheditodakāḥ || 9 || 5.9av pathyāḥ samāsato nadyo himavan-malayodbhūtāḥ pathyās tā eva ca sthirāḥ | kṛmi-ślīpada-hṛt-kaṇtha-śiro-rogān prakurvate || 10 || prācyāvanty-aparāntotthā dur-nāmāni mahendra-jāḥ | udara-ślīpadātaṅkān sahya-vindhyodbhavāḥ punaḥ || 11 || 5.11bv sahya-vindhya-bhavāḥ punaḥ kuṣṭha-pāṇḍu-śiro-rogān doṣa-ghnyaḥ pāriyātra-jāḥ | bala-pauruṣa-kāriṇyaḥ sāgarāmbhas tri-doṣa-kṛt || 12 || 5.12dv sāgarāmbu tri-doṣa-kṛt āvilaṃ sa-malaṃ nīlaṃ ghanaṃ pītam athāpi ca | sa-kṣāraṃ picchilaṃ caiva sāmudraṃ tan nigadyate || 12+1 || vidyāt kūpa-taḍāgādīn jāṅgalānūpa-śailataḥ | nāmbu peyam a-śaktyā vā sv-alpam alpāgni-gulmibhiḥ || 13 || pāṇḍūdarātisārārśo-grahaṇī-śoṣa-śothibhiḥ | ṛte śaran-nidāghābhyāṃ pibet svastho 'pi cālpa-śaḥ || 14 || 5.14bv -grahaṇī-doṣa-śothibhiḥ sama-sthūla-kṛśā bhukta-madhyānta-prathamāmbu-pāḥ | śītaṃ madātyaya-glāni-mūrchā-chardi-śrama-bhramān || 15 || 5.15av sama-sthūla-kṛśā bhakta- tṛṣṇoṣṇa-dāha-pittāsra-viṣāṇy ambu niyacchati | dīpanaṃ pācanaṃ kaṇṭhyaṃ laghūṣṇaṃ vasti-śodhanam || 16 || 5.16av tṛṣṇoṣma-dāha-pittāsra- hidhmādhmānānila-śleṣma-sadyaḥ-śuddhi-nava-jvare | kāsāma-pīnasa-śvāsa-pārśva-rukṣu ca śasyate || 17 || 5.17bv -sadyaḥ-śuddhe nava-jvare an-abhiṣyandi laghu ca toyaṃ kvathita-śītalam | pitta-yukte hitaṃ doṣe vyuṣitaṃ tat tri-doṣa-kṛt || 18 || 5.18av rūkṣam an-abhiṣyandi 5.18bv laghu kvathita-śītalam 5.18cv 'dhyuṣitaṃ tat tri-doṣa-kṛt nārikelodakaṃ snigdhaṃ svādu vṛṣyaṃ himaṃ laghu | tṛṣṇā-pittānila-haraṃ dīpanaṃ vasti-śodhanam || 19 || varṣāsu divya-nādeye paraṃ toye varāvare | svādu-pāka-rasaṃ snigdham ojasyaṃ dhātu-vardhanam || 20 || vāta-pitta-haraṃ vṛṣyaṃ śleṣmalaṃ guru śītalam | prāyaḥ payo 'tra gavyaṃ tu jīvanīyaṃ rasāyanam || 21 || kṣata-kṣīṇa-hitaṃ medhyaṃ balyaṃ stanya-karaṃ saram | śrama-bhrama-madā-lakṣmī-śvāsa-kāsāti-tṛṭ-kṣudhaḥ || 22 || 5.22dv -śvāsa-kāsārti-tṛṭ-kṣudhaḥ 5 .22dv -śvāsa-kāsādhi-tṛṭ-kṣudhaḥ jīrṇa-jvaraṃ mūtra-kṛcchraṃ rakta-pittaṃ ca nāśayet | hitam aty-agny-a-nidrebhyo garīyo māhiṣaṃ himam || 23 || alpāmbu-pāna-vyāyāma-kaṭu-tiktāśanair laghu | ājaṃ śoṣa-jvara-śvāsa-rakta-pittātisāra-jit || 24 || īṣad-rūkṣoṣṇa-lavaṇam auṣṭrākam dīpanaṃ laghu | śastaṃ vāta-kaphānāha-kṛmi-śophodarārśasām || 25 || mānuṣaṃ vāta-pittāsṛg-abhighātākṣi-roga-jit | tarpaṇāścyotanair nasyair a-hṛdyaṃ tūṣṇam āvikam || 26 || vāta-vyādhi-haraṃ hidhmā-śvāsa-pitta-kapha-pradam | hastinyāḥ sthairya-kṛd bāḍham uṣṇaṃ tv aikaśaphaṃ laghu || 27 || śākhā-vāta-haraṃ sāmla-lavaṇaṃ jaḍa-tā-karam | payo 'bhiṣyandi gurv āmaṃ yuktyā śṛtam ato 'nya-thā || 28 || vinā tu vanitā-stanyam āmam eva hitaṃ hi tat || 28+1ab || bhaved garīyo 'ti-śṛtaṃ dhāroṣṇam amṛtopamam | amla-pāka-rasaṃ grāhi gurūṣṇaṃ dadhi vāta-jit || 29 || medaḥ-śukra-bala-śleṣma-pitta-raktāgni-śopha-kṛt | rociṣṇu śastam a-rucau śītake viṣama-jvare || 30 || pīnase mūtra-kṛcchre ca rūkṣaṃ tu grahaṇī-gade | naivādyān niśi naivoṣṇaṃ vasantoṣṇa-śaratsu na || 31 || 5.31cv śarad-grīṣma-vasanteṣu 5.31dv nādyān noṣṇaṃ na rātriṣu nā-mudga-sūpaṃ nā-kṣaudraṃ tan nā-ghṛta-sitopalam | na cān-āmalakaṃ nāpi nityaṃ no mandam anya-thā || 32 || jvarāsṛk-pitta-vīsarpa-kuṣṭha-pāṇḍu-bhrama-pradam | takraṃ laghu kaṣāyāmlaṃ dīpanaṃ kapha-vāta-jit || 33 || śophodarārśo-grahaṇī-doṣa-mūtra-grahā-rucīḥ | plīha-gulma-ghṛta-vyāpad-gara-pāṇḍv-āmayāñ jayet || 34 || tad-van mastu saraṃ srotaḥ-śodhi viṣṭambha-jil laghu | nava-nītaṃ navaṃ vṛṣyaṃ śītaṃ varṇa-balāgni-kṛt || 35 || saṃgrāhi vāta-pittāsṛk-kṣayārśo-'rdita-kāsa-jit | kṣīrodbhavaṃ tu saṃgrāhi rakta-pittākṣi-roga-jit || 36 || śastaṃ dhī-smṛti-medhāgni-balāyuḥ-śukra-cakṣuṣām | bāla-vṛddha-prajā-kānti-saukumārya-svarārthinām || 37 || kṣata-kṣīṇa-parīsarpa-śastrāgni-glapitātmanām | vāta-pitta-viṣonmāda-śoṣā-lakṣmī-jvarāpaham || 38 || snehānām uttamaṃ śītaṃ vayasaḥ sthāpanaṃ param | sahasra-vīryaṃ vidhibhir ghṛtaṃ karma-sahasra-kṛt || 39 || 5.39cv sahasra-vīryaṃ vidhi-vad madāpasmāra-mūrchāya-śiraḥ-karṇākṣi-yoni-jān | purāṇaṃ jayati vyādhīn vraṇa-śodhana-ropaṇam || 40 || balyāḥ kilāṭa-pīyūṣa-kūrcikā-moraṇādayaḥ | śukra-nidrā-kapha-karā viṣṭambhi-guru-doṣalāḥ || 41 || 5.41bv -kūcikā-moraṇādayaḥ gavye kṣīra-ghṛte śreṣṭhe nindite cāvi-saṃbhave | ikṣoḥ saro guruḥ snigdho bṛṃhaṇaḥ kapha-mūtra-kṛt || 42 || vṛṣyaḥ śīto 'sra-pitta-ghnaḥ svādu-pāka-raso rasaḥ | so 'gre sa-lavaṇo danta-pīḍitaḥ śarkarā-samaḥ || 43 || mūlāgra-jantu-jagdhādi-pīḍanān mala-saṃkarāt | kiñ-cit-kālaṃ vidhṛtyā ca vikṛtiṃ yāti yāntrikaḥ || 44 || 5.44cv kiñ-cit-kāla-vidhṛtyā ca vidāhī guru-viṣṭambhī tenāsau tatra pauṇḍrakaḥ | śaitya-prasāda-mādhuryair varas tam anu vāṃśikaḥ || 45 || 5.45av gurur vidāhī viṣṭambhī śataparvaka-kāntāra-naipālādyās tataḥ kramāt | sa-kṣārāḥ sa-kaṣāyāś ca soṣṇāḥ kiñ-cid-vidāhinaḥ || 46 || 5.46av śātaparvaka-kāntāra- 5.46bv -nepālādyās tataḥ kramāt phāṇitaṃ gurv abhiṣyandi caya-kṛn mūtra-śodhanam | nāti-śleṣma-karo dhautaḥ sṛṣṭa-mūtra-śakṛd guḍaḥ || 47 || prabhūta-kṛmi-majjāsṛṅ-medo-māṃsa-kapho 'paraḥ | hṛdyaḥ purāṇaḥ pathyaś ca navaḥ śleṣmāgni-sāda-kṛt || 48 || vṛṣyāḥ kṣīṇa-kṣata-hitā rakta-pittānilāpahāḥ | matsyaṇḍikā-khaṇḍa-sitāḥ krameṇa guṇa-vat-tamāḥ || 49 || tad-guṇā tikta-madhurā kaṣāyā yāsa-śarkarā | dāha-tṛṭ-chardi-mūrchāsṛk-pitta-ghnyaḥ sarva-śarkarāḥ || 50 || śarkarekṣu-vikārāṇāṃ phāṇitaṃ ca varāvare | cakṣuṣyaṃ chedi tṛṭ-śleṣma-viṣa-hidhmāsra-pitta-nut || 51 || meha-kuṣṭha-kṛmi-cchardi-śvāsa-kāsātisāra-jit | vraṇa-śodhana-saṃdhāna-ropaṇaṃ vātalaṃ madhu || 52 || rūkṣaṃ kaṣāya-madhuraṃ tat-tulyā madhu-śarkarā | uṣṇam uṣṇārtam uṣṇe ca yuktaṃ coṣṇair nihanti tat || 53 || yakṣmārśo-'rdita-pittāsṛṅ-nāśanaṃ grāhi dīpanam || 53.1+1 || pracchardane nirūhe ca madhūṣṇaṃ na nivāryate | a-labdha-pākam āśv eva tayor yasmān nivartate || 54 || 5.54cv a-labdha-pākam evāśu tailaṃ sva-yoni-vat tatra mukhyaṃ tīkṣṇaṃ vyavāyi ca | tvag-doṣa-kṛd a-cakṣuṣyaṃ sūkṣmoṣṇaṃ kapha-kṛn na ca || 55 || kṛśānāṃ bṛṃhaṇāyālaṃ sthūlānāṃ karśanāya ca | baddha-viṭkaṃ kṛmi-ghnaṃ ca saṃskārāt sarva-roga-jit || 56 || 5.56dv saṃskārāt sarva-doṣa-jit sa-tiktoṣaṇam airaṇḍaṃ tailaṃ svādu saraṃ guru | vardhma-gulmānila-kaphān udaraṃ viṣama-jvaram || 57 || ruk-śophau ca kaṭī-guhya-koṣṭha-pṛṣṭhāśrayau jayet | tīkṣṇoṣṇaṃ picchilaṃ visraṃ raktairaṇḍodbhavaṃ tv ati || 58 || kaṭūṣṇaṃ sārṣapaṃ tīkṣṇaṃ kapha-śukrānilāpaham | laghu pittāsra-kṛt koṭha-kuṣṭhārśo-vraṇa-jantu-jit || 59 || ākṣaṃ svādu himaṃ keśyaṃ guru pittānilāpaham | nāty-uṣṇaṃ nimba-jaṃ tiktaṃ kṛmi-kuṣṭha-kapha-praṇut || 60 || umā-kusumbha-jaṃ coṣṇaṃ tvag-doṣa-kapha-pitta-kṛt | vasā majjā ca vāta-ghnau bala-pitta-kapha-pradau || 61 || kaṣāya-tikta-kaṭukaṃ kārañjaṃ vraṇa-śodhanam || 61.1+1 || māṃsānuga-sva-rūpau ca vidyān medo 'pi tāv iva | dīpanaṃ rocanaṃ madhyaṃ tīkṣṇoṣṇaṃ tuṣṭi-puṣṭi-dam || 62 || sa-svādu-tikta-kaṭukam amla-pāka-rasaṃ saram | sa-kaṣāyaṃ svarārogya-pratibhā-varṇa-kṛl laghu || 63 || naṣṭa-nidrāti-nidrebhyo hitaṃ pittāsra-dūṣaṇam | kṛśa-sthūla-hitaṃ rūkṣaṃ sūkṣmaṃ sroto-viśodhanam || 64 || vāta-śleṣma-haraṃ yuktyā pītaṃ viṣa-vad anya-thā | guru tad-doṣa-jananaṃ navaṃ jīrṇam ato 'nya-thā || 65 || drākṣekṣavaḥ sa-kharjūrāḥ śāli-piṣṭam yavasya ca | pañca madyākārāḥ śreṣṭhā drākṣā teṣāṃ viśiṣyate || 65.1+1 || 5.65.1+1bv śāleḥ piṣṭam yavasya ca peyaṃ noṣṇopacāreṇa na virikta-kṣudhāturaiḥ | nāty-artha-tīkṣṇa-mṛdv-alpa-saṃbhāraṃ kaluṣaṃ na ca || 66 || gulmodarārśo-grahaṇī-śoṣa-hṛt snehanī guruḥ | surānila-ghnī medo-'sṛk-stanya-mūtra-kaphāvahā || 67 || tad-guṇā vāruṇī hṛdyā laghus tīkṣṇā nihanti ca | śūla-kāsa-vami-śvāsa-vibandhādhmāna-pīnasān || 68 || nāti-tīvra-madā laghvī pathyā vaibhītakī surā | vraṇe pāṇḍv-āmaye kuṣṭhe na cāty-arthaṃ virudhyate || 69 || viṣṭambhinī yava-surā gurvī rūkṣā tri-doṣalā | yathā-dravya-guṇo 'riṣṭaḥ sarva-madya-guṇādhikaḥ || 70 || grahaṇī-pāṇḍu-kuṣṭhārśaḥ-śopha-śoṣodara-jvarān | hanti gulma-kṛmi-plīhnaḥ kaṣāya-kaṭu-vātalaḥ || 71 || 5.71dv kaṣāyaḥ kaṭu-vātalaḥ mārdvīkaṃ lekhanaṃ hṛdyaṃ nāty-uṣṇaṃ madhuraṃ saram | alpa-pittānilaṃ pāṇḍu-mehārśaḥ-kṛmi-nāśanam || 72 || asmād alpāntara-guṇaṃ khārjūraṃ vātalaṃ guru | śārkaraḥ surabhiḥ svādu-hṛdyo nāti-mado laghuḥ || 73 || 5.73cv śārkaraṃ surabhi svādu 5.73dv hṛdyaṃ nāti-madaṃ laghu sṛṣṭa-mūtra-śakṛd-vāto gauḍas tarpaṇa-dīpanaḥ | vāta-pitta-karaḥ sīdhuḥ sneha-śleṣma-vikāra-hā || 74 || medaḥ-śophodarārśo-ghnas tatra pakva-raso varaḥ | chedī madhv-āsavas tīkṣṇo meha-pīnasa-kāsa-jit || 75 || rakta-pitta-kaphotkledi śuktaṃ vātānulomanam | bhṛśoṣṇa-tīkṣṇa-rūkṣāmlaṃ hṛdyaṃ ruci-karaṃ saram || 76 || 5.76dv hṛdyaṃ ruci-karaṃ param dīpanaṃ śiśira-sparśaṃ pāṇḍu-dṛk-kṛmi-nāśanam | guḍekṣu-madya-mārdvīka-śuktaṃ laghu yathottaram || 77 || 5.77bv pāṇḍu-hṛt kṛmi-nāśanam 5.77cv guḍekṣu-madya-mādhvīka- kanda-mūla-phalādyaṃ ca tad-vad vidyāt tad-āsutam | śāṇḍākī cāsutaṃ cānyat kālāmlaṃ rocanaṃ laghu || 78 || dhānyāmlaṃ bhedi tīkṣṇoṣṇaṃ pitta-kṛt sparśa-śītalam | śrama-klama-haraṃ rucyaṃ dīpanaṃ vasti-śūla-nut || 79 || śastam āsthāpane hṛdyaṃ laghu vāta-kaphāpaham | ebhir eva guṇair yukte sauvīraka-tuṣodake || 80 || gaṇḍūṣa-dhāraṇād vaktra-mala-daurgandhya-śoṣa-jit || 80.1+1 || kṛmi-hṛd-roga-gulmārśaḥ-pāṇḍu-roga-nibarhaṇe | te kramād vi-tuṣair vidyāt sa-tuṣaiś ca yavaiḥ kṛte || 81 || 5.81av kṛmi-hṛd-roga-gulmārśo- 5.81bv -grahaṇī-pāṇḍu-nāśane mūtraṃ go-'jāvi-mahiṣī-gajāśvoṣṭra-kharodbhavam | pittalaṃ rūkṣa-tīkṣṇoṣṇaṃ lavaṇānu-rasaṃ kaṭu || 82 || kṛmi-śophodarānāha-śūla-pāṇḍu-kaphānilān | gulmā-ruci-viṣa-śvitra-kuṣṭhārśāṃsi jayel laghu || 83 || 5.83bv -śūla-pāṇḍu-kaphāmayān toya-kṣīrekṣu-tailānāṃ vargair madyasya ca kramāt | iti dravaika-deśo 'yaṃ yathā-sthūlam udāhṛtaḥ || 84 || Sūtrasthāna rakto mahān sa-kalamas tūrṇakaḥ śakunāhṛtaḥ | sārā-mukho dīrghaśūko lodhraśūkaḥ sugandhikaḥ || 1 || puṇḍraḥ pāṇḍuḥ puṇḍarīkaḥ pramodo gaura-śārivau | kāñcano mahiṣaḥ śūkaḥ dūṣakaḥ kusumāṇḍakaḥ || 2 || 6.2av pāṇḍukaḥ puṇḍarīkaś ca 6.2av pauṇḍrakaḥ puṇḍarīkaś ca 6.2bv pramodo gaura-śālikaḥ lāṅgalā lohavālākhyāḥ kardamāḥ śītabhīrukāḥ | pataṅgās tapanīyāś ca ye cānye śālayaḥ śubhāḥ || 3 || 6.3av jāṅgalā lohavālākhyāḥ 6.3av lāṅgalā lohavālāś ca 6.3av lāṅgalo lohavālākhyaḥ 6.3bv kardamaḥ śītabhīrukaḥ svādu-pāka-rasāḥ snigdhā vṛṣyā baddhālpa-varcasaḥ | kaṣāyānu-rasāḥ pathyā laghavo mūtralā himāḥ || 4 || śūka-jeṣu varas tatra raktas tṛṣṇā-tri-doṣa-hā | mahāṃs tam anu kalamas taṃ cāpy anu tataḥ pare || 5 || 6.5cv mahāṃs tasyānu kalamas yavakā hāyanāḥ pāṃsu-bāṣpa-naiṣadhakādayaḥ | svādūṣṇā guravaḥ snigdhāḥ pāke 'mlāḥ śleṣma-pittalāḥ || 6 || 6.6bv -vāpya-naiṣadhakādayaḥ sṛṣṭa-mūtra-purīṣāś ca pūrvaṃ pūrvaṃ ca ninditāḥ | snigdho grāhī laghuḥ svādus tri-doṣa-ghnaḥ sthiro himaḥ || 7 || ṣaṣṭiko vrīhiṣu śreṣṭho gauraś cāsita-gaurataḥ | tataḥ kramān mahā-vrīhi-kṛṣṇa-vrīhi-jatūmukhāḥ || 8 || kukkuṭāṇḍaka-lāvākhya-pārāvataka-śūkarāḥ | varakoddālakojjvāla-cīna-śārada-dardurāḥ || 9 || 6.9av kukkuṭāṇḍaka-pālākṣa- 6.9av kukkuṭāṇḍaka-pālākhya- 6.9av kukkuṭāṇḍaka-lāvākṣa- 6.9dv -cīna-śārada-durdarāḥ gandhanāḥ kuruvindāś ca guṇair alpāntarāḥ smṛtāḥ | svādur amla-vipāko 'nyo vrīhiḥ pitta-karo guruḥ || 10 || bahu-mūtra-purīṣoṣmā tri-doṣas tv eva pāṭalaḥ | kaṅgu-kodrava-nīvāra-śyāmākādi himaṃ laghu || 11 || tṛṇa-dhānyaṃ pavana-kṛl lekhanaṃ kapha-pitta-hṛt | bhagna-saṃdhāna-kṛt tatra priyaṅgur bṛṃhaṇī guruḥ || 12 || koradūṣaḥ paraṃ grāhī sparśo śīto viṣāpahaḥ | rūkṣaḥ śīto guruḥ svāduḥ saro viḍ-vāta-kṛd yavaḥ || 13 || 6.13bv sparśo śīto garāpahaḥ 6.13bv sparśa-śīto viṣāpahaḥ vṛṣyaḥ sthairya-karo mūtra-medaḥ-pitta-kaphāñ jayet | pīnasa-śvāsa-kāsoru-stambha-kaṇṭha-tvag-āmayān || 14 || nyūno yavād anu-yavo rūkṣoṣṇo vaṃśa-jo yavaḥ | vṛṣyaḥ śīto guruḥ snigdho jīvano vāta-pitta-hā || 15 || 6.15av nyūno yāvad anya-yavo saṃdhāna-kārī madhuro godhūmaḥ sthairya-kṛt saraḥ | pathyā nandīmukhī śītā kaṣāya-madhurā laghuḥ || 16 || niḥ-sārā vātalā rūkṣā jūrṇādhmāna-karā sarā || 16+1 || mudgāḍhakī-masūrādi śimbī-dhānyaṃ vibandha-kṛt | kaṣāyaṃ svādu saṃgrāhi kaṭu-pākaṃ himaṃ laghu || 17 || medaḥ-śleṣmāsra-pitteṣu hitaṃ lepopasekayoḥ | varo 'tra mudgo 'lpa-calaḥ kalāyas tv ati-vātalaḥ || 18 || asṛk-pitta-haro rūkṣo vātalaś caṇakaḥ smṛtaḥ || 18.1+1 || rāja-māṣo 'nila-karo rūkṣo bahu-śakṛd guruḥ | uṣṇāḥ kulatthāḥ pāke 'mlāḥ śukrāśma-śvāsa-pīnasān || 19 || kāsārśaḥ-kapha-vātāṃś ca ghnanti pittāsra-dāḥ param | niṣpāvo vāta-pittāsra-stanya-mūtra-karo guruḥ || 20 || 6.20cv niṣpāvo vāta-pittāsṛk- saro vidāhī dṛk-śukra-kapha-śopha-viṣāpahaḥ | māṣaḥ snigdho bala-śleṣma-mala-pitta-karaḥ saraḥ || 21 || gurūṣṇo 'nila-hā svāduḥ śukra-vṛddhi-vireka-kṛt | phalāni māṣa-vad vidyāt kākāṇḍolātmaguptayoḥ || 22 || uṣṇas tvacyo himaḥ sparśe keśyo balyas tilo guruḥ | alpa-mūtraḥ kaṭuḥ pāke medhāgni-kapha-pitta-kṛt || 23 || 6.23av uṣṇas tvacyo hima-sparśaḥ snigdhomā svādu-tiktoṣṇā kapha-pitta-karī guruḥ | dṛk-śukra-hṛt kaṭuḥ pāke tad-vad bījaṃ kusumbha-jam || 24 || māṣo 'tra sarveṣv avaro yavakaḥ śūka-jeṣu ca | navaṃ dhānyam abhiṣyandi laghu saṃvatsaroṣitam || 25 || 6.25bv yavakaḥ śūka-jeṣv api 6.25dv laghu varṣoṣitaṃ ca yat śīghra-janma tathā sūpyaṃ nis-tuṣaṃ yukti-bharjitam | maṇḍa-peyā-vilepīnām odanasya ca lāghavam || 26 || yava-godhūma-māṣāś ca tilāś cābhinavā hitāḥ | purāṇā vi-rasāḥ sūkṣmā na tathārtha-karā matāḥ || 26.1+1 || yathā-pūrvaṃ śivas tatra maṇḍo vātānulomanaḥ | tṛḍ-glāni-doṣa-śeṣa-ghnaḥ pācano dhātu-sāmya-kṛt || 27 || sroto-mārdava-kṛt svedī saṃdhukṣayati cānalam | kṣut-tṛṣṇā-glāni-daurbalya-kukṣi-roga-jvarāpahā || 28 || malānulomanī pathyā peyā dīpana-pācanī | vilepī grāhiṇī hṛdyā tṛṣṇā-ghnī dīpanī hitā || 29 || vraṇākṣi-roga-saṃśuddha-dur-bala-sneha-pāyinām | su-dhautaḥ prasrutaḥ svinno '-tyaktoṣmā caudano laghuḥ || 30 || yaś cāgneyauṣadha-kvātha-sādhito bhṛṣṭa-taṇḍulaḥ | viparīto guruḥ kṣīra-māṃsādyair yaś ca sādhitaḥ || 31 || 6.31av yaś cāgneyauṣadha-kvāthe 6.31bv sādhito bhṛṣṭa-taṇḍulaiḥ iti dravya-kriyā-yoga-mānādyaiḥ sarvam ādiśet | bṛṃhaṇaḥ prīṇano vṛṣyaś cakṣuṣyo vraṇa-hā rasaḥ || 32 || maudgas tu pathyaḥ saṃśuddha-vraṇa-kaṇṭhākṣi-rogiṇām | vātānulomī kaulattho gulma-tūṇī-pratūṇi-jit || 33 || a-kṛtaṃ kṛta-yūṣaṃ ca tanu saṃskāritaṃ rasam | sūpam amlam an-amlaṃ ca guru vidyād yathottaram || 33+1 || tila-piṇyāka-vikṛtiḥ śuṣka-śākaṃ virūḍhakam | śāṇḍākī-vaṭakaṃ dṛṅ-ghnaṃ doṣalaṃ glapanaṃ guru || 34 || rasālā bṛṃhaṇī vṛṣyā snigdhā balyā ruci-pradā | śrama-kṣut-tṛṭ-klama-haraṃ pānakaṃ prīṇanaṃ guru || 35 || viṣṭambhi mūtralaṃ hṛdyaṃ yathā-dravya-guṇaṃ ca tat | lājās tṛṭ-chardy-atīsāra-meha-medaḥ-kapha-cchidaḥ || 36 || kāsa-pittopaśamanā dīpanā laghavo himāḥ | pṛthukā guravo balyāḥ kapha-viṣṭambha-kāriṇaḥ || 37 || dhānā viṣṭambhinī rūkṣā tarpaṇī lekhanī guruḥ | saktavo laghavaḥ kṣut-tṛṭ-śrama-netrāmaya-vraṇān || 38 || 6.38dv -śrama-netra-galāmayān ghnanti saṃtarpaṇāḥ pānāt sadya eva bala-pradāḥ | nodakāntaritān na dvir na niśāyāṃ na kevalān || 39 || na bhuktvā na dvi-jaiś chittvā saktūn adyān na vā bahūn | piṇyāko glapano rūkṣo viṣṭambhī dṛṣṭi-dūṣaṇaḥ || 40 || raukṣyād viṣṭambhate koṣṭhe viṣṭambhi-tvād vidahyate | vidāhāt kurute glāniṃ piṇyāko niśi sevitaḥ || 40+1 || vesavāro guruḥ snigdho balopacaya-vardhanaḥ | mudgādi-jās tu guravo yathā-dravya-guṇānugāḥ || 41 || kukūla-karpara-bhrāṣṭra-kandv-aṅgāra-vipācitān | eka-yonīō̃ laghūn vidyād apūpān uttarottaram || 42 || 6.42av kukūla-kharpara-bhrāṣṭra- 6.42bv -kaṭv-aṅgāra-vipācitān 6.42dv apūpāṃs tu yathottaram hariṇaiṇa-kuraṅgarkṣa-gokarṇa-mṛgamātṛkāḥ | śaśa-śambara-cāruṣka-śarabhādyā mṛgāḥ smṛtāḥ || 43 || lāva-vārtīka-vartīra-raktavartmaka-kukkubhāḥ | kapiñjalopacakrākhya-cakora-kurubāhavaḥ || 44 || 6.44bv -raktavartmaka-kurkubhāḥ vartako vartikā caiva tittiriḥ krakaraḥ śikhī | tāmra-cūḍākhya-bakara-gonarda-giri-vartikāḥ || 45 || 6.45cv kukkuṭo bakaraḥ kaṅka- 6.45cv tāmra-cūḍākhya-varaka- tathā śārapadendrābha-varaṭādyāś ca viṣkirāḥ | jīvañjīvaka-dātyūha-bhṛṅgāhva-śuka-sārikāḥ || 46 || 6.46bv -vāraṭādyāś ca viṣkirāḥ 6.46bv -vāraṭāś ceti viṣkirāḥ 6.46bv -varaṭāś ceti viṣkirāḥ laṭvā-kokila-hārīta-kapota-caṭakādayaḥ | pratudā bheka-godhāhi-śvāvid-ādyā bile-śayāḥ || 47 || go-kharāśvataroṣṭrāśva-dvīpi-siṃharkṣa-vānarāḥ | mārjāra-mūṣaka-vyāghra-vṛka-babhru-tarakṣavaḥ || 48 || lopāka-jambuka-śyena-cāṣa-vāntāda-vāyasāḥ | śaśaghnī-bhāsa-kurara-gṛdhrolūka-kuliṅgakāḥ || 49 || 6.49cv śaśāri-bhāsa-kurara- dhūmikā madhuhā ceti prasahā mṛga-pakṣiṇaḥ | varāha-mahiṣa-nyaṅku-ruru-rohita-vāraṇāḥ || 50 || sṛmaraś camaraḥ khaḍgo gavayaś ca mahā-mṛgāḥ | haṃsa-sārasa-kādamba-baka-kāraṇḍava-plavāḥ || 51 || balākotkrośa-cakrāhva-madgu-krauñcādayo 'p-carāḥ | matsyā rohita-pāṭhīna-kūrma-kumbhīra-karkaṭāḥ || 52 || śukti-śaṅkhodra-śambūka-śapharī-varmi-candrikāḥ | culūkī-nakra-makara-śiśumāra-timiṅgilāḥ || 53 || 6.53av śukti-śaṅkhodru-śambūka- 6.53cv cullakī-nakra-makara- rājī-cilicimādyāś ca māṃsam ity āhur aṣṭa-dhā | yoniṣv ajāvī vyāmiśra-go-cara-tvād a-niścite || 54 || mṛgyaṃ vaiṣkirikaṃ kiṃ ca prātudaṃ ca bile-śayam | prāsahaṃ ca mahā-mṛgyam ap-caraṃ mātsyam aṣṭa-dhā || 54.1+1 || ādyāntyā jāṅgalānūpā madhyau sādhāraṇau smṛtau | tatra baddha-malāḥ śītā laghavo jāṅgalā hitāḥ || 55 || pittottare vāta-madhye saṃnipāte kaphānuge | dīpanaḥ kaṭukaḥ pāke grāhī rūkṣo himaḥ śaśaḥ || 56 || īṣad-uṣṇa-guru-snigdhā bṛṃhaṇā vartakādayaḥ | tittiris teṣv api varo medhāgni-bala-śukra-kṛt || 57 || grāhī varṇyo 'nilodrikta-saṃnipāta-haraḥ param | nāti-pathyaḥ śikhī pathyaḥ śrotra-svara-vayo-dṛśām || 58 || tad-vac ca kukkuṭo vṛṣyo grāmyas tu śleṣmalo guruḥ | medhānala-karā hṛdyāḥ krakarāḥ sopacakrakāḥ || 59 || guruḥ sa-lavaṇaḥ kāṇa-kapotaḥ sarva-doṣa-kṛt | caṭakāḥ śleṣmalāḥ snigdhā vāta-ghnāḥ śukralāḥ param || 60 || 6.60dv vāta-ghnāḥ śukralāḥ bhṛśam gurūṣṇa-snigdha-madhurā vargāś cāto yathottaram | mūtra-śukra-kṛto balyā vāta-ghnāḥ kapha-pittalāḥ || 61 || śītā mahā-mṛgās teṣu kravyāda-prasahāḥ punaḥ | lavaṇānu-rasāḥ pāke kaṭukā māṃsa-vardhanāḥ || 62 || 6.62bv kravyādāḥ prasahāḥ punaḥ jīrṇārśo-grahaṇī-doṣa-śoṣārtānāṃ paraṃ hitāḥ | nāti-śīta-guru-snigdhaṃ māṃsam ājam a-doṣalam || 63 || 6.63cv nāti-śītaṃ guru snigdhaṃ śarīra-dhātu-sāmānyād an-abhiṣyandi bṛṃhaṇam | viparītam ato jñeyam āvikaṃ bṛṃhaṇaṃ tu tat || 64 || śuṣka-kāsa-śramāty-agni-viṣama-jvara-pīnasān | kārśyaṃ kevala-vātāṃś ca go-māṃsaṃ saṃniyacchati || 65 || uṣṇo garīyān mahiṣaḥ svapna-dārḍhya-bṛhat-tva-kṛt | tad-vad varāhaḥ śrama-hā ruci-śukra-bala-pradaḥ || 66 || matsyāḥ paraṃ kapha-karāś cilicīmas tri-doṣa-kṛt | lāva-rohita-godhaiṇāḥ sve sve varge varāḥ param || 67 || matsyādi-pakṣiṇāṃ caiva gurūṇy aṇḍāni cādiśet | tāni snigdhāni vṛṣyāṇi svādu-pāka-rasāni ca || 67.1+1 || 6.67.1+1bv gurūṇy aṇḍāny ato diśet 6.67.1+1bv gurūṇy aṇḍāni cānyato māṃsaṃ sadyo-hataṃ śuddhaṃ vayaḥ-sthaṃ ca bhajet tyajet | mṛtaṃ kṛśaṃ bhṛśaṃ medyaṃ vyādhi-vāri-viṣair hatam || 68 || puṃ-striyoḥ pūrva-paścārdhe guruṇī garbhiṇī guruḥ | laghur yoṣic catuṣ-pātsu vihaṅgeṣu punaḥ pumān || 69 || śiraḥ-skandhoru-pṛṣṭhasya kaṭyāḥ sakthnoś ca gauravam | tathāma-pakvāśayayor yathā-pūrvaṃ vinirdiśet || 70 || śoṇita-prabhṛtīnāṃ ca dhātūnām uttarottaram | māṃsād garīyo vṛṣaṇa-meḍhra-vṛkka-yakṛd-gudam || 71 || śākaṃ pāṭhā-śaṭhī-sūṣā-suniṣaṇṇa-satīna-jam | tri-doṣa-ghnaṃ laghu grāhi sa-rāja-kṣava-vāstukam || 72 || 6.72av śākaṃ pāṭhā-śaṭhī-śūṣā- suniṣaṇṇo 'gni-kṛd vṛṣyas teṣu rāja-kṣavaḥ param | grahaṇy-arśo-vikāra-ghno varco-bhedi tu vāstukam || 73 || hanti doṣa-trayaṃ kuṣṭhaṃ vṛṣyā soṣṇā rasāyanī | kākamācī sarā svaryā cāṅgery amlāgni-dīpanī || 74 || 6.74bv vṛṣyā soṣṇā rasāyanam grahaṇy-arśo-'nila-śleṣman-hitoṣṇā grāhiṇī laghuḥ | paṭola-saptalāriṣṭa-śārṅgaṣṭāvalgujāmṛtāḥ || 75 || 6.75cv paṭolaṃ saptalāriṣṭa- vetrāgra-bṛhatī-vāsā-kutilī-tilaparṇikāḥ | maṇḍūkaparṇī-karkoṭa-kāravellaka-parpaṭāḥ || 76 || 6.76av vetrāgraṃ bṛhatī-vāsā- 6.76bv -kuntilī-tilaparṇikāḥ 6.76bv -kuntalī-tilaparṇikāḥ nāḍī-kalāya-gojihvā-vārtākaṃ vanatiktakam | karīraṃ kulakaṃ nandī kucailā śakulādanī || 77 || kaṭhillaṃ kembukaṃ śītaṃ sa-kośātaka-karkaśam | tiktaṃ pāke kaṭu grāhi vātalaṃ kapha-pitta-jit || 78 || 6.78av kaṭhilla-kembukaṃ śītaṃ hṛdyaṃ paṭolaṃ kṛmi-nut svādu-pākaṃ ruci-pradam | pittalaṃ dīpanaṃ bhedi vāta-ghnaṃ bṛhatī-dvayam || 79 || vṛṣaṃ tu vami-kāsa-ghnaṃ rakta-pitta-haraṃ param | kāravellaṃ sa-kaṭukaṃ dīpanaṃ kapha-jit param || 80 || vārtākaṃ kaṭu-tiktoṣṇaṃ madhuraṃ kapha-vāta-jit | sa-kṣāram agni-jananaṃ hṛdyaṃ rucyam a-pittalam || 81 || karīram ādhmāna-karaṃ kaṣāyaṃ svādu tiktakam | kośātakāvalgujakau bhedināv agni-dīpanau || 82 || 6.82dv bhedanāv agni-dīpanau taṇḍulīyo himo rūkṣaḥ svādu-pāka-raso laghuḥ | mada-pitta-viṣāsra-ghno muñjātaṃ vāta-pitta-jit || 83 || snigdhaṃ śītaṃ guru svādu bṛṃhaṇaṃ śukra-kṛt param | gurvī sarā tu pālaṅkyā mada-ghnī cāpy upodakā || 84 || pālaṅkyā-vat smṛtaś cañcuḥ sa tu saṃgrahaṇātmakaḥ | vidārī vāta-pitta-ghnī mūtralā svādu-śītalā || 85 || 6.85av pālaṅkyā-vat smṛtaś cuccuḥ 6.85av pālaṅkyā-vat smṛtaś cuñcuḥ jīvanī bṛṃhaṇī kaṇṭhyā gurvī vṛṣyā rasāyanam | cakṣuṣyā sarva-doṣa-ghnī jīvantī madhurā himā || 86 || kūṣmāṇḍa-tumba-kāliṅga-karkārv-ervāru-tiṇḍiśam | tathā trapusa-cīnāka-cirbhaṭaṃ kapha-vāta-kṛt || 87 || bhedi viṣṭambhy abhiṣyandi svādu-pāka-rasaṃ guru | vallī-phalānāṃ pravaraṃ kūṣmāṇḍaṃ vāta-pitta-jit || 88 || vasti-śuddhi-karaṃ vṛṣyaṃ trapusaṃ tv ati-mūtralam | tumbaṃ rūkṣa-taraṃ grāhi kāliṅgairvāru-cirbhaṭam || 89 || bālaṃ pitta-haraṃ śītaṃ vidyāt pakvam ato 'nya-thā | śīrṇavṛntaṃ tu sa-kṣāraṃ pittalaṃ kapha-vāta-jit || 90 || rocanaṃ dīpanaṃ hṛdyam aṣṭhīlānāha-nul laghu | mṛṇāla-bisa-śālūka-kumudotpala-kandakam || 91 || nandī-māṣaka-kelūṭa-śṛṅgāṭaka-kaserukam | krauñcādanaṃ kaloḍyaṃ ca rūkṣaṃ grāhi himaṃ guru || 92 || kadamba-nālikā-mārṣa-kuṭiñjara-kutumbakam | cillī-laṭvāka-loṇīkā-kurūṭaka-gavedhukam || 93 || 6.93av kalambu-nālikā-mārṣa- 6.93bv -kuṭiñjara-kurumbakam 6.93bv -kuliñjara-kurumbakam 6.93dv -kurūḍhaka-gavedhukāḥ 6.93dv -kuraṇṭaka-gavedhukāḥ 6.93dv -kuraṇṭaka-gavedhukam jīvanta-jhuñjhv-eḍagaja-yava-śāka-suvarcalāḥ | ālukāni ca sarvāṇi tathā sūpyāni lakṣmaṇam || 94 || 6.94bv -yava-śāka-suvarcalam 6.94dv tathā sūpyāni lākṣmaṇam 6.94dv tathā sūpyāni lakṣmaṇā svādu rūkṣaṃ sa-lavaṇaṃ vāta-śleṣma-karaṃ guru | śītalaṃ sṛṣṭa-viṇ-mūtraṃ prāyo viṣṭabhya jīryati || 95 || svinnaṃ niṣpīḍita-rasaṃ snehāḍhyaṃ nāti-doṣalam | laghu-pattrā tu yā cillī sā vāstuka-samā matā || 96 || tarkārī-varuṇaṃ svādu sa-tiktaṃ kapha-vāta-jit | varṣābhvau kāla-śākaṃ ca sa-kṣāraṃ kaṭu-tiktakam || 97 || 6.97av tarkārī-varaṇaṃ svādu dīpanaṃ bhedanaṃ hanti gara-śopha-kaphānilān | dīpanāḥ kapha-vāta-ghnāś ciribilvāṅkurāḥ sarāḥ || 98 || saṃgrāhi śālmalī-puṣpaṃ pittāsra-ghnaṃ viśeṣataḥ || 98.1+1 || śatāvary-aṅkurās tiktā vṛṣyā doṣa-trayāpahāḥ | rūkṣo vaṃśa-karīras tu vidāhī vāta-pittalaḥ || 99 || pattūro dīpanas tiktaḥ plīhārśaḥ-kapha-vāta-jit | kṛmi-kāsa-kaphotkledān kāsamardo jayet saraḥ || 100 || rūkṣoṣṇam amlaṃ kausumbhaṃ guru pitta-karaṃ saram | gurūṣṇaṃ sārṣapaṃ baddha-viṇ-mūtraṃ sarva-doṣa-kṛt || 101 || yad bālam a-vyakta-rasaṃ kiñ-cit-kṣāraṃ sa-tiktakam | tan mūlakaṃ doṣa-haraṃ laghu soṣṇaṃ niyacchati || 102 || gulma-kāsa-kṣaya-śvāsa-vraṇa-netra-galāmayān | svarāgni-sādodāvarta-pīnasāṃś ca mahat punaḥ || 103 || rase pāke ca kaṭukam uṣṇa-vīryaṃ tri-doṣa-kṛt | gurv abhiṣyandi ca snigdha-siddhaṃ tad api vāta-jit || 104 || 6.104dv -svinnaṃ tad api vāta-jit vāta-śleṣma-haraṃ śuṣkaṃ sarvam āmaṃ tu doṣalam | kaṭūṣṇo vāta-kapha-hā piṇḍāluḥ pitta-vardhanaḥ || 105 || kuṭhera-śigru-surasa-sumukhāsuri-bhūstṛṇam | phaṇijjārjaka-jambīra-prabhṛti grāhi śālanam || 106 || vidāhi kaṭu rūkṣoṣṇaṃ hṛdyaṃ dīpana-rocanam | dṛk-śukra-kṛmi-hṛt tīkṣṇaṃ doṣotkleśa-karaṃ laghu || 107 || hidhmā-kāsa-viṣa-śvāsa-pārśva-ruk-pūti-gandha-hā | surasaḥ sumukho nāti-vidāhī gara-śopha-hā || 108 || 6.108av hidhmā-kāsa-vami-śvāsa- 6.108av hidhmā-kāsa-śrama-śvāsa- ārdrikā tikta-madhurā mūtralā na ca pitta-kṛt | laśuno bhṛśa-tīkṣṇoṣṇaḥ kaṭu-pāka-rasaḥ saraḥ || 109 || hṛdyaḥ keśyo gurur vṛṣyaḥ snigdho rocana-dīpanaḥ | bhagna-saṃdhāna-kṛd balyo rakta-pitta-pradūṣaṇaḥ || 110 || 6.110bv snigdho dīpana-pācanaḥ kilāsa-kuṣṭha-gulmārśo-meha-kṛmi-kaphānilān | sa-hidhmā-pīnasa-śvāsa-kāsān hanti rasāyanam || 111 || 6.111dv -kāsān hanty asra-pitta-kṛt palāṇḍus tad-guṇa-nyūnaḥ śleṣmalo nāti-pittalaḥ | kapha-vātārśasāṃ pathyaḥ svede 'bhyavahṛtau tathā || 112 || tīkṣṇo gṛñjanako grāhī pittināṃ hita-kṛn na saḥ | dīpanaḥ sūraṇo rucyaḥ kapha-ghno viśado laghuḥ || 113 || viśeṣād arśasāṃ pathyo bhū-kandas tv ati-doṣalaḥ | pattre puṣpe phale nāle kande ca guru-tā kramāt || 114 || 6.114cv puṣpe pattre phale nāle varā śākeṣu jīvantī sārṣapaṃ tv avaraṃ param | drākṣā phalottamā vṛṣyā cakṣuṣyā sṛṣṭa-mūtra-viṭ || 115 || 6.115bv sārṣapas tv avaraḥ param 6.115bv sarṣapās tv avarāḥ param svādu-pāka-rasā snigdhā sa-kaṣāyā himā guruḥ | nihanty anila-pittāsra-tiktāsya-tva-madātyayān || 116 || 6.116cv nihanty anila-pittāsṛk- tṛṣṇā-kāsa-śrama-śvāsa-svara-bheda-kṣata-kṣayān | udrikta-pittāñ jayati trīn doṣān svādu dāḍimam || 117 || pittā-virodhi nāty-uṣṇam amlaṃ vāta-kaphāpaham | sarvaṃ hṛdyaṃ laghu snigdhaṃ grāhi rocana-dīpanam || 118 || moca-kharjūra-panasa-nārikela-parūṣakam | āmrāta-tāla-kāśmarya-rājādana-madhūka-jam || 119 || sauvīra-badarāṅkolla-phalgu-śleṣmātakodbhavam | vātāmābhiṣukākṣoṭa-mukūlaka-nikocakam || 120 || urumāṇaṃ priyālaṃ ca bṛṃhaṇaṃ guru śītalam | dāha-kṣata-kṣaya-haraṃ rakta-pitta-prasādanam || 121 || svādu-pāka-rasaṃ snigdhaṃ viṣṭambhi kapha-śukra-kṛt | phalaṃ tu pittalaṃ tālaṃ saraṃ kāśmarya-jaṃ himam || 122 || 6.122bv śleṣmalaṃ vāta-pitta-jit śakṛn-mūtra-vibandha-ghnaṃ keśyaṃ medhyaṃ rasāyanam | vātāmādy uṣṇa-vīryaṃ tu kapha-pitta-karaṃ saram || 123 || paraṃ vāta-haraṃ snigdham an-uṣṇaṃ tu priyāla-jam | priyāla-majjā madhuro vṛṣyaḥ pittānilāpahaḥ || 124 || kola-majjā guṇais tad-vat tṛṭ-chardiḥ-kāsa-jic ca saḥ | pakvaṃ su-dur-jaraṃ bilvaṃ doṣalaṃ pūti-mārutam || 125 || dīpanaṃ kapha-vāta-ghnaṃ bālaṃ grāhy ubhayaṃ ca tat | kapittham āmaṃ kaṇṭha-ghnaṃ doṣalaṃ doṣa-ghāti tu || 126 || 6.126bv bālaṃ grāhy ubhayaṃ tu tat pakvaṃ hidhmā-vamathu-jit sarvaṃ grāhi viṣāpaham | jāmbavaṃ guru viṣṭambhi śītalaṃ bhṛśa-vātalam || 127 || saṃgrāhi mūtra-śakṛtor a-kaṇṭhyaṃ kapha-pitta-jit | vāta-pittāsra-kṛd bālaṃ baddhāsthi kapha-pitta-kṛt || 128 || 6.128bv a-kaṇṭhyaṃ kapha-pitta-nut gurv āmraṃ vāta-jit pakvaṃ svādv amlaṃ kapha-śukra-kṛt | vṛkṣāmlaṃ grāhi rūkṣoṣṇaṃ vāta-śleṣma-haraṃ laghu || 129 || tṛṣṇā-ghnam uṣṇam amlāyāḥ phalaṃ pitta-karaṃ saram || 129.1+1 || śamyā gurūṣṇaṃ keśa-ghnaṃ rūkṣaṃ pīlu tu pittalam | kapha-vāta-haraṃ bhedi plīhārśaḥ-kṛmi-gulma-nut || 130 || sa-tiktaṃ svādu yat pīlu nāty-uṣṇaṃ tat tri-doṣa-jit | tvak tikta-kaṭukā snigdhā mātuluṅgasya vāta-jit || 131 || bṛṃhaṇaṃ madhuraṃ māṃsaṃ vāta-pitta-haraṃ guru | laghu tat-kesaraṃ kāsa-śvāsa-hidhmā-madātyayān || 132 || āsya-śoṣānila-śleṣma-vibandha-cchardy-a-rocakān | gulmodarārśaḥ-śūlāni mandāgni-tvaṃ ca nāśayet || 133 || madhuraṃ kiñ-cid amlaṃ ca hṛdyaṃ bhakta-prarocakam | guru vāta-praśamanaṃ vidyān nāraṅga-jaṃ phalam || 133+1 || bhallātakasya tvaṅ-māṃsaṃ bṛṃhaṇaṃ svādu śītalam | tad-asthy-agni-samaṃ medhyaṃ kapha-vāta-haraṃ param || 134 || svādv amlaṃ śītam uṣṇaṃ ca dvi-dhā pālevataṃ guru | rucyam aty-agni-śamanaṃ rucyaṃ madhuram ārukam || 135 || 6.135dv hṛdyaṃ madhuram ārukam pakvam āśu jarāṃ yāti nāty-uṣṇa-guru-doṣalam | drākṣā-parūṣakaṃ cārdram amlaṃ pitta-kapha-pradam || 136 || 6.136bv nāty-uṣṇaṃ guru doṣalam gurūṣṇa-vīryaṃ vāta-ghnaṃ saraṃ sa-karamardakam | tathāmlaṃ kola-karkandhu-likucāmrātakārukam || 137 || 6.137cv tad-vac ca kola-karkandhu- 6.137dv -likucāmrātam ārukam airāvataṃ dantaśaṭhaṃ sa-tūdaṃ mṛgaliṇḍikam | nāti-pitta-karaṃ pakvaṃ śuṣkaṃ ca karamardakam || 138 || dīpanaṃ bhedanaṃ śuṣkam amlīkā-kolayoḥ phalam | tṛṣṇā-śrama-klama-cchedi laghv iṣṭaṃ kapha-vātayoḥ || 139 || svādv amlaṃ laghu kolaṃ tu śuṣkaṃ jīrṇaṃ ca dīpanam || 139.1+1 || phalānām avaraṃ tatra likucaṃ sarva-doṣa-kṛt | himānaloṣṇa-dur-vāta-vyāla-lālādi-dūṣitam || 140 || 6.140cv himāniloṣṇa-dur-vāta- vāta-ghnaṃ dur-jaraṃ proktaṃ nāraṅgaṃ kapha-kṛd guru | tṛṣṇā-śūla-kaphotkleda-cchardi-śvāsa-nivāraṇam || 140.1+1 || nārikelaṃ guru snigdhaṃ pitta-ghnaṃ svādu śītalam | bala-māṃsa-karaṃ hṛdyaṃ bṛṃhaṇaṃ vasti-śodhanam || 140.1+2 || jantu-juṣṭaṃ jale magnam a-bhūmi-jam an-ārtavam | anya-dhānya-yutaṃ hīna-vīryaṃ jīrṇa-tayāti ca || 141 || 6.141dv -vīryaṃ jīrṇa-tayāpi ca dhānyaṃ tyajet tathā śākaṃ rūkṣa-siddham a-komalam | a-saṃjāta-rasaṃ tad-vac chuṣkaṃ cānya-tra mūlakāt || 142 || prāyeṇa phalam apy evaṃ tathāmaṃ bilva-varjitam | viṣyandi lavaṇaṃ sarvaṃ sūkṣmaṃ sṛṣṭa-malaṃ viduḥ || 143 || 6.143dv sūkṣmaṃ sṛṣṭa-malaṃ mṛdu vāta-ghnaṃ pāki tīkṣṇoṣṇaṃ rocanaṃ kapha-pitta-kṛt | saindhavaṃ tatra sa-svādu vṛṣyaṃ hṛdyaṃ tri-doṣa-nut || 144 || laghv an-uṣṇaṃ dṛśaḥ pathyam a-vidāhy agni-dīpanam | laghu sauvarcalaṃ hṛdyaṃ su-gandhy udgāra-śodhanam || 145 || kaṭu-pākaṃ vibandha-ghnaṃ dīpanīyaṃ ruci-pradam | ūrdhvādhaḥ-kapha-vātānulomanaṃ dīpanaṃ viḍam || 146 || 6.146av kaṭu pāke vibandha-ghnaṃ vibandhānāha-viṣṭambha-śūla-gaurava-nāśanam | vipāke svādu sāmudraṃ guru śleṣma-vivardhanam || 147 || sa-tikta-kaṭuka-kṣāraṃ tīkṣṇam utkledi caudbhidam | kṛṣṇe sauvarcala-guṇā lavaṇe gandha-varjitāḥ || 148 || romakaṃ laghu pāṃsūtthaṃ sa-kṣāraṃ śleṣmalaṃ guru | lavaṇānāṃ prayoge tu saindhavādi prayojayet || 149 || 6.149dv saindhavādīn prayojayet gulma-hṛd-grahaṇī-pāṇḍu-plīhānāha-galāmayān | śvāsārśaḥ-kapha-kāsāṃś ca śamayed yava-śūka-jaḥ || 150 || 6.150cv śvāsārśaḥ-kapha-vātāṃś ca 6.150dv śamayed yāva-śūka-jaḥ kṣāraḥ sarvaś ca paramaṃ tīkṣṇoṣṇaḥ kṛmi-jil laghuḥ | pittāsṛg-dūṣaṇaḥ pākī chedy a-hṛdyo vidāraṇaḥ || 151 || a-pathyaḥ kaṭu-lāvaṇyāc chukraujaḥ-keśa-cakṣuṣām | hiṅgu vāta-kaphānāha-śūla-ghnaṃ pitta-kopanam || 152 || kaṭu-pāka-rasaṃ rucyaṃ dīpanaṃ pācanaṃ laghu | kaṣāyā madhurā pāke rūkṣā vi-lavaṇā laghuḥ || 153 || dīpanī pācanī medhyā vayasaḥ sthāpanī param | uṣṇa-vīryā sarāyuṣyā buddhīndriya-bala-pradā || 154 || kuṣṭha-vaivarṇya-vaisvarya-purāṇa-viṣama-jvarān | śiro-'kṣi-pāṇḍu-hṛd-roga-kāmalā-grahaṇī-gadān || 155 || sa-śoṣa-śophātīsāra-meda-moha-vami-kṛmīn | śvāsa-kāsa-prasekārśaḥ-plīhānāha-garodaram || 156 || 6.156bv -meha-moha-vami-kṛmīn vibandhaṃ srotasāṃ gulmam ūru-stambham a-rocakam | harītakī jayed vyādhīṃs tāṃs tāṃś ca kapha-vāta-jān || 157 || tad-vad āmalakaṃ śītam amlaṃ pitta-kaphāpaham | kaṭu pāke himaṃ keśyam akṣam īṣac ca tad-guṇam || 158 || 6.158cv kaṭu pāke '-himaṃ keśyam iyaṃ rasāyana-varā tri-phalākṣy-āmayāpahā | ropaṇī tvag gada-kleda-medo-meha-kaphāsra-jit || 159 || sa-kesaraṃ catur-jātaṃ tvak-pattrailaṃ tri-jātakam | pitta-prakopi tīkṣṇoṣṇaṃ rūkṣaṃ rocana-dīpanam || 160 || su-gandhi sarva-peyānāṃ vyañjanānāṃ ca vāsanam | lehānāṃ khādya-pākānāṃ cūrṇānāṃ ca prayojayet || 160.1+1 || rase pāke ca kaṭukaṃ kapha-ghnaṃ maricaṃ laghu | śleṣmalā svādu-śītārdrā gurvī snigdhā ca pippalī || 161 || sā śuṣkā viparītātaḥ snigdhā vṛṣyā rase kaṭuḥ | svādu-pākānila-śleṣma-śvāsa-kāsāpahā sarā || 162 || na tām aty upayuñjīta rasāyana-vidhiṃ vinā | nāgaraṃ dīpanaṃ vṛṣyaṃ grāhi hṛdyaṃ vibandha-nut || 163 || rucyaṃ laghu svādu-pākaṃ snigdhoṣṇaṃ kapha-vāta-jit | tad-vad ārdrakam etac ca trayaṃ tri-kaṭukaṃ jayet || 164 || sthaulyāgni-sadana-śvāsa-kāsa-ślīpada-pīnasān | cavikā-pippalī-mūlaṃ maricālpāntaraṃ guṇaiḥ || 165 || citrako 'gni-samaḥ pāke śophārśaḥ-kṛmi-kuṣṭha-hā | pañca-kolakam etac ca maricena vinā smṛtam || 166 || 6.166cv pañca-kolakam etat tu gulma-plīhodarānāha-śūla-ghnaṃ dīpanaṃ param | bilva-kāśmarya-tarkārī-pāṭalā-ṭuṇṭukair mahat || 167 || 6.167bv -śūla-ghnaṃ dīpanaṃ laghu jayet kaṣāya-tiktoṣṇaṃ pañca-mūlaṃ kaphānilau | hrasvaṃ bṛhaty-aṃśumatī-dvaya-gokṣurakaiḥ smṛtam || 168 || 6.168av jayet kaṣāya-tīkṣṇoṣṇaṃ svādu-pāka-rasaṃ nāti-śītoṣṇaṃ sarva-doṣa-jit | balā-punarnavairaṇḍa-śūrpaparṇī-dvayena tu || 169 || 6.169cv balā-punarnavairaṇḍaiḥ 6.169dv -śūrpaparṇī-dvayena ca 6.169dv śūrpaparṇī-dvayena ca 6.169dv śūrpaparṇī-dvayena tu madhyamaṃ kapha-vāta-ghnaṃ nāti-pitta-karaṃ saram | abhīru-vīrā-jīvantī-jīvakarṣabhakaiḥ smṛtam || 170 || jīvanākhyaṃ tu cakṣuṣyaṃ vṛṣyaṃ pittānilāpaham | tṛṇākhyaṃ pitta-jid darbha-kāśekṣu-śara-śālibhiḥ || 171 || 6.171av jīvanākhyaṃ ca cakṣuṣyaṃ śūka-śimbī-ja-pakvānna-māṃsa-śāka-phalauṣadhaiḥ | vargitair anna-leśo 'yam ukto nityopayogikaḥ || 172 || 6.172dv ukto nityaupayogikaḥ Sūtrasthāna rājā rāja-gṛhāsanne prāṇācāryaṃ niveśayet | sarva-dā sa bhavaty evaṃ sarva-tra pratijāgṛviḥ || 1 || anna-pānaṃ viṣād rakṣed viśeṣeṇa mahī-pateḥ | yoga-kṣemau tad-āyattau dharmādyā yan-nibandhanāḥ || 2 || 7.2dv dharmādyās tan-nibandhanāḥ odano viṣa-vān sāndro yāty a-visrāvya-tām iva | cireṇa pacyate pakvo bhavet paryuṣitopamaḥ || 3 || mayūra-kaṇṭha-tulyoṣmā moha-mūrchā-praseka-kṛt | hīyate varṇa-gandhādyaiḥ klidyate candrikā-citaḥ || 4 || 7.4dv klidyate candrikānvitaḥ 7.4dv klidyate candrakācitaḥ 7.4dv klidyate candrakānvitaḥ vyañjanāny āśu śuṣyanti dhyāma-kvāthāni tatra ca | hīnātiriktā vikṛtā chāyā dṛśyeta naiva vā || 5 || 7.5dv chāyā dṛśyeta vā na vā phenordhva-rāji-sīmanta-tantu-budbuda-saṃbhavaḥ | vicchinna-vi-rasāḥ rāgāḥ khāṇḍavāḥ śākam āmiṣam || 6 || 7.6cv vicchinna-vi-rasā rāga- 7.6cv vicchinnā vi-rasā rāgāḥ 7.6dv -khāṇḍavāḥ śākam āmiṣam nīlā rājī rase tāmrā kṣīre dadhani dṛśyate | śyāvā-pītāsitā takre ghṛte pānīya-saṃnibhā || 7 || 7.7bv kṣīre dadhni ca dṛśyate mastuni syāt kapotābhā rājī kṛṣṇā tuṣodake | kālī madyāmbhasoḥ kṣaudre harit taile 'ruṇopamā || 8 || pākaḥ phalānām āmānāṃ pakvānāṃ parikothanam | dravyāṇām ārdra-śuṣkāṇāṃ syātāṃ mlāni-vivarṇa-te || 9 || mṛdūnāṃ kaṭhinānāṃ ca bhavet sparśa-viparyayaḥ | mālyasya sphuṭitāgra-tvaṃ mlānir gandhāntarodbhavaḥ || 10 || 7.10cv mālyānāṃ sphuṭitāgra-tvaṃ 7.10dv glānir gandhāntarodbhavaḥ 7.10dv mlāni-gandhāntarodbhavaḥ dhyāma-maṇḍala-tā vastre śadanaṃ tantu-pakṣmaṇām | dhātu-mauktika-kāṣṭhāśma-ratnādiṣu malākta-tā || 11 || 7.11bv śātanaṃ tantu-pakṣmaṇām sneha-sparśa-prabhā-hāniḥ sa-prabha-tvaṃ tu mṛn-maye | viṣa-daḥ śyāva-śuṣkāsyo vi-lakṣo vīkṣate diśaḥ || 12 || sveda-vepathu-māṃs trasto bhītaḥ skhalati jṛmbhate | prāpyānnaṃ sa-viṣaṃ tv agnir ekāvartaḥ sphuṭaty ati || 13 || 7.13dv ekāvartaḥ sphuṭaty api śikhi-kaṇṭhābha-dhūmārcir an-arcir vogra-gandha-vān | mriyante makṣikāḥ prāśya kākaḥ kṣāma-svaro bhavet || 14 || utkrośanti ca dṛṣṭvaitac chuka-dātyūha-sārikāḥ | haṃsaḥ praskhalati glānir jīvañjīvasya jāyate || 15 || cakorasyākṣi-vairāgyaṃ krauñcasya syān madodayaḥ | kapota-parabhṛd-dakṣa-cakravākā jahaty asūn || 16 || udvegaṃ yāti mārjāraḥ śakṛn muñcati vānaraḥ | hṛṣyen mayūras tad-dṛṣṭyā manda-tejo bhaved viṣam || 17 || 7.17av udvejayati mārjāraḥ 7.17cv hṛṣyen mayūras tad dṛṣṭvā ity annaṃ viṣa-vaj jñātvā tyajed evaṃ prayatnataḥ | yathā tena vipadyerann api na kṣudra-jantavaḥ || 18 || 7.18av ity annaṃ sa-viṣaṃ jñātvā 7.18bv tyajed eva prayatnataḥ spṛṣṭe tu kaṇḍū-dāhoṣā-jvarārti-sphoṭa-suptayaḥ | nakha-roma-cyutiḥ śophaḥ sekādyā viṣa-nāśanāḥ || 19 || śastās tatra pralepāś ca sevya-candana-padmakaiḥ | sa-somavalka-tālīśa-pattra-kuṣṭhāmṛtā-nataiḥ || 20 || lālā jihvauṣṭhayor jāḍyam ūṣā cimicimāyanam | danta-harṣo rasā-jña-tvaṃ hanu-stambhaś ca vaktra-ge || 21 || 7.21av lālā jihvauṣṭhayor jāḍyaṃ 7.21bv mukhe cimicimāyanam sevyādyais tatra gaṇḍūṣāḥ sarvaṃ ca viṣa-jid dhitam | āmāśaya-gate sveda-mūrchādhmāna-mada-bhramāḥ || 22 || roma-harṣo vamir dāhaś cakṣur-hṛdaya-rodhanam | bindubhiś cācayo 'ṅgānāṃ pakvāśaya-gate punaḥ || 23 || aneka-varṇaṃ vamati mūtrayaty atisāryate | tandrā kṛśa-tvaṃ pāṇḍu-tvam udaraṃ bala-saṃkṣayaḥ || 24 || tayor vānta-viriktasya haridre kaṭabhīṃ guḍam | sindhuvārita-niṣpāva-bāṣpikā-śataparvikāḥ || 25 || taṇḍulīyaka-mūlāni kukkuṭāṇḍam avalgujam | nāvanāñjana-pāneṣu yojayed viṣa-śāntaye || 26 || viṣa-bhuktāya dadyāc ca śuddhāyordhvam adhas tathā | sūkṣmaṃ tāmra-rajaḥ kāle sa-kṣaudraṃ hṛd-viśodhanam || 27 || śuddhe hṛdi tataḥ śāṇaṃ hema-cūrṇasya dāpayet | na sajjate hema-pāṅge padma-pattre 'mbu-vad viṣam || 28 || jāyate vipulaṃ cāyur gare 'py eṣa vidhiḥ smṛtaḥ | viruddham api cāhāraṃ vidyād viṣa-garopamam || 29 || 7.29dv vidyād gara-viṣopamam ānūpam āmiṣaṃ māṣa-kṣaudra-kṣīra-virūḍhakaiḥ | virudhyate saha bisair mūlakena guḍena vā || 30 || viśeṣāt payasā matsyā matsyeṣv api cilīcimaḥ | viruddham amlaṃ payasā saha sarvaṃ phalaṃ tathā || 31 || tad-vat kulattha-caṇaka-kaṅgu-valla-makuṣṭakāḥ | bhakṣayitvā haritakaṃ mūlakādi payas tyajet || 32 || 7.32av tad-vat kulattha-varaka- 7.32cv bhakṣayitvā harit-kanda- 7.32dv -mūlakādi payas tyajet vārāhaṃ śvāvidhā nādyād dadhnā pṛṣata-kukkuṭau | āma-māṃsāni pittena māṣa-sūpena mūlakam || 33 || 7.33av varāhaṃ śvāvidhā nādyād aviṃ kusumbha-śākena bisaiḥ saha virūḍhakam | māṣa-sūpa-guḍa-kṣīra-dadhy-ājyair lākucaṃ phalam || 34 || phalaṃ kadalyās takreṇa dadhnā tāla-phalena vā | kaṇoṣaṇābhyāṃ madhunā kākamācīṃ guḍena vā || 35 || siddhāṃ vā matsya-pacane pacane nāgarasya vā | siddhām anya-tra vā pātre kāmāt tām uṣitāṃ niśām || 36 || 7.36bv pacane nāgarasya ca 7.36dv kāmāt tām uṣitāṃ niśi 7.36dv kapotām uṣitāṃ niśām 7.36dv nādyāt tām uṣitāṃ niśām 7.36dv kāmātām uṣitāṃ niśām 7.36dv kāmācīm uṣitāṃ niśām matsya-nistalana-snehe sādhitāḥ pippalīs tyajet | kāṃsye daśāham uṣitaṃ sarpir uṣṇaṃ tv aruṣkare || 37 || 7.37av matsya-nistalana-sneha- 7.37bv -sādhitāḥ pippalīs tyajet 7.37dv sarpir uṣṇaṃ tv aruṣkaraiḥ bhāso virudhyate śūlyaḥ kampillas takra-sādhitaḥ | aikadhyaṃ pāyasa-surā-kṛśarāḥ parivarjayet || 38 || madhu-sarpir-vasā-taila-pānīyāni dvi-śaś tri-śaḥ | eka-tra vā samāṃśāni virudhyante paras-param || 39 || bhinnāṃśe api madhv-ājye divya-vāry anu-pānataḥ | madhu-puṣkara-bījaṃ ca madhu-maireya-śārkaram || 40 || manthānu-pānaḥ kṣaireyo hāridraḥ kaṭu-taila-vān | upodakātisārāya tila-kalkena sādhitā || 41 || balākā vāruṇī-yuktā kulmāṣaiś ca virudhyate | bhṛṣṭā varāha-vasayā saiva sadyo nihanty asūn || 42 || tad-vat tittiri-pattrāḍhya-godhā-lāva-kapiñjalāḥ | airaṇḍenāgninā siddhās tat-tailena vimūrchitāḥ || 43 || hārīta-māṃsaṃ hāridra-śūlaka-prota-pācitam | haridrā-vahninā sadyo vyāpādayati jīvitam || 44 || 7.44cv hāridra-vahninā sadyo bhasma-pāṃsu-paridhvastaṃ tad eva ca sa-mākṣikam | yat kiñ-cid doṣam utkleśya na haret tat samāsataḥ || 45 || viruddhaṃ śuddhir atreṣṭā śamo vā tad-virodhibhiḥ | dravyais tair eva vā pūrvaṃ śarīrasyābhisaṃskṛtiḥ || 46 || vyāyāma-snigdha-dīptāgni-vayaḥ-stha-bala-śālinām | virodhy api na pīḍāyai sātmyam alpaṃ ca bhojanam || 47 || 7.47av vyāyāmi-snigdha-dīptāgni- pādenā-pathyam abhyastaṃ pāda-pādena vā tyajet | niṣeveta hitaṃ tad-vad eka-dvi-try-antarī-kṛtam || 48 || a-pathyam api hi tyaktaṃ śīlitaṃ pathyam eva vā | sātmyā-sātmya-vikārāya jāyate sahasānya-thā || 49 || 7.49cv sātmyā-sātmyaṃ vikārāya krameṇāpacitā doṣāḥ krameṇopacitā guṇāḥ | santo yānty a-punar-bhāvam a-prakampyā bhavanti ca || 50 || 7.50cv nāpnuvanti punar-bhāvam aty-anta-saṃnidhānānāṃ doṣāṇāṃ dūṣaṇātmanām | a-hitair dūṣaṇaṃ bhūyo na vidvān kartum arhati || 51 || āhāra-śayanā-brahma-caryair yuktyā prayojitaiḥ | śarīraṃ dhāryate nityam āgāram iva dhāraṇaiḥ || 52 || 7.52bv -caryair yuktyā niṣevitaiḥ āhāro varṇitas tatra tatra tatra ca vakṣyate | nidrāyattaṃ sukhaṃ duḥkhaṃ puṣṭiḥ kārśyaṃ balā-balam || 53 || 7.53bv tatra tatra ca lakṣyate vṛṣa-tā klība-tā jñānam a-jñānaṃ jīvitaṃ na ca | a-kāle 'ti-prasaṅgāc ca na ca nidrā niṣevitā || 54 || sukhāyuṣī parākuryāt kāla-rātrir ivāparā | rātrau jāgaraṇaṃ rūkṣaṃ snigdhaṃ prasvapanaṃ divā || 55 || a-rūkṣam an-abhiṣyandi tv āsīna-pracalāyitam | grīṣme vāyu-cayādāna-raukṣya-rātry-alpa-bhāvataḥ || 56 || 7.56cv grīṣme vāta-cayādāna- divā-svapno hito 'nyasmin kapha-pitta-karo hi saḥ | muktvā tu bhāṣya-yānādhva-madya-strī-bhāra-karmabhiḥ || 57 || krodha-śoka-bhayaiḥ klāntān śvāsa-hidhmātisāriṇaḥ | vṛddha-bālā-bala-kṣīṇa-kṣata-tṛṭ-śūla-pīḍitān || 58 || 7.58dv -kṣut-tṛṭ-śūla-nipīḍitān a-jīrṇy-abhihatonmattān divā-svapnocitān api | dhātu-sāmyaṃ tathā hy eṣāṃ śleṣmā cāṅgāni puṣyati || 59 || 7.59av a-jīrṇābhihatonmattān bahu-medaḥ-kaphāḥ svapyuḥ sneha-nityāś ca nāhani | viṣārtaḥ kaṇṭha-rogī ca naiva jātu niśāsv api || 60 || a-kāla-śayanān moha-jvara-staimitya-pīnasāḥ | śiro-ruk-śopha-hṛl-lāsa-sroto-rodhāgni-manda-tāḥ || 61 || tatropavāsa-vamana-sveda-nāvanam auṣadham | yojayed ati-nidrāyāṃ tīkṣṇaṃ pracchardanāñjanam || 62 || nāvanaṃ laṅghanaṃ cintāṃ vyavāyaṃ śoka-bhī-krudhaḥ | ebhir eva ca nidrāyā nāśaḥ śleṣmāti-saṃkṣayāt || 63 || nidrā-nāśād aṅga-marda-śiro-gaurava-jṛmbhikāḥ | jāḍya-glāni-bhramā-pakti-tandrā rogāś ca vāta-jāḥ || 64 || 7.64cv jāḍyaṃ glāni-bhramā-pakti- kapho 'lpo vāyunoddhūto dhamanīḥ saṃnirudhya tu | kuryāt saṃjñāpahāṃ tandrāṃ dāruṇāṃ moha-kāriṇīm || 64+1 || unmīlita-vinirbhugne parivartita-tārake | bhavatas tatra nayane srute lulita-pakṣmaṇī || 64+2 || ardha-tri-rātrāt sā sādhyā na sā sādhyā tataḥ param || 64+3ab || yathā-kālam ato nidrāṃ rātrau seveta sātmyataḥ | a-sātmyāj jāgarād ardhaṃ prātaḥ svapyād a-bhukta-vān || 65 || 7.65cv a-sātmya-jāgarād ardhaṃ śīlayen manda-nidras tu kṣīra-madya-rasān dadhi | abhyaṅgodvartana-snāna-mūrdha-karṇākṣi-tarpaṇam || 66 || kāntā-bāhu-latāśleṣo nirvṛtiḥ kṛta-kṛtya-tā | mano-'nukūlā viṣayāḥ kāmaṃ nidrā-sukha-pradāḥ || 67 || brahma-carya-rater grāmya-sukha-niḥ-spṛha-cetasaḥ | nidrā saṃtoṣa-tṛptasya svaṃ kālaṃ nātivartate || 68 || grāmya-dharme tyajen nārīm an-uttānāṃ rajasvalām | a-priyām a-priyācārāṃ duṣṭa-saṃkīrṇa-mehanām || 69 || ati-sthūla-kṛśām sūtāṃ garbhiṇīm anya-yoṣitam | varṇinīm anya-yoniṃ ca guru-deva-nṛpālayam || 70 || 7.70bv garbhiṇīm anya-yoṣitām caitya-śmaśānāyatana-catvarāmbu-catuṣ-patham | parvāṇy an-aṅgaṃ divasaṃ śiro-hṛdaya-tāḍanam || 71 || aty-āśito '-dhṛtiḥ kṣud-vān duḥ-sthitāṅgaḥ pipāsitaḥ | bālo vṛddho 'nya-vegārtas tyajed rogī ca maithunam || 72 || seveta kāmataḥ kāmaṃ tṛpto vājī-kṛtām hime | try-ahād vasanta-śaradoḥ pakṣād varṣā-nidāghayoḥ || 73 || 7.73bv tṛpto vājī-karair hime 7.73bv tṛpto vājī-kṛtair hime 7.73cv dvy-ahād vasanta-śaradoḥ 7.73dv pakṣād vṛṣṭi-nidāghayoḥ bhrama-klamoru-daurbalya-bala-dhātv-indriya-kṣayāḥ | a-parva-maraṇaṃ ca syād anya-thā gacchataḥ striyam || 74 || 7.74av bhrama-klamoru-daurbalyaṃ 7.74bv bala-dhātv-indriya-kṣayaḥ smṛti-medhāyur-ārogya-puṣṭīndriya-yaśo-balaiḥ | adhikā manda-jaraso bhavanti strīṣu saṃyatāḥ || 75 || 7.75dv bhavanti strīṣu saṃyutāḥ snānānulepana-himānila-khaṇḍa-khādya-śītāmbu-dugdha-rasa-yūṣa-surā-prasannāḥ | seveta cānu śayanaṃ viratau ratasya tasyaivam āśu vapuṣaḥ punar eti dhāma || 76 || śruta-carita-samṛddhe karma-dakṣe dayālau bhiṣaji nir-anubandhaṃ deha-rakṣāṃ niveśya | bhavati vipula-tejaḥ-svāsthya-kīrti-prabhāvaḥ sva-kuśala-phala-bhogī bhūmi-pālaś cirāyuḥ || 77 || Sūtrasthāna mātrāśī sarva-kālaṃ syān mātrā hy agneḥ pravartikā | mātrāṃ dravyāṇy apekṣante gurūṇy api laghūny api || 1 || gurūṇām ardha-sauhityaṃ laghūnāṃ nāti-tṛpta-tā | mātrā-pramāṇaṃ nirdiṣṭaṃ sukhaṃ yāvad vijīryati || 2 || 8.2dv sukhaṃ yāvad dhi jīryate bhojanaṃ hīna-mātraṃ tu na balopacayaujase | sarveṣāṃ vāta-rogāṇāṃ hetu-tāṃ ca prapadyate || 3 || ati-mātraṃ punaḥ sarvān āśu doṣān prakopayet | pīḍyamānā hi vātādyā yuga-pat tena kopitāḥ || 4 || 8.4cv saṃpīḍyamānā vātādyā āmenānnena duṣṭena tad evāviśya kurvate | viṣṭambhayanto 'lasakaṃ cyāvayanto viṣūcikām || 5 || adharottara-mārgābhyāṃ sahasaivā-jitātmanaḥ | prayāti nordhvaṃ nādhas-tād āhāro na ca pacyate || 6 || āmāśaye 'lasī-bhūtas tena so 'lasakaḥ smṛtaḥ | vividhair vedanodbhedair vāyv-ādi-bhṛśa-kopataḥ || 7 || sūcībhir iva gātrāṇi vidhyatīti viṣūcikā | tatra śūla-bhramānāha-kampa-stambhādayo 'nilāt || 8 || pittāj jvarātisārāntar-dāha-tṛṭ-pralayādayaḥ | kaphāc chardy-aṅga-guru-tā-vāk-saṅga-ṣṭhīvanādayaḥ || 9 || viśeṣād dur-balasyālpa-vahner vega-vidhāriṇaḥ | pīḍitaṃ mārutenānnaṃ śleṣmaṇā ruddham antarā || 10 || alasaṃ kṣobhitaṃ doṣaiḥ śalya-tvenaiva saṃsthitam | śūlādīn kurute tīvrāṃś chardy-atīsāra-varjitān || 11 || 8.11bv śalya-tveneva saṃsthitam so 'laso 'ty-artha-duṣṭās tu doṣā duṣṭāma-baddha-khāḥ | yāntas tiryak tanuṃ sarvāṃ daṇḍa-vat stambhayanti cet || 12 || daṇḍakālasakaṃ nāma taṃ tyajed āśu-kāriṇam | viruddhādhyaśanā-jīrṇa-śīlino viṣa-lakṣaṇam || 13 || āma-doṣaṃ mahā-ghoraṃ varjayed viṣa-saṃjñakam | viṣa-rūpāśu-kāri-tvād viruddhopakrama-tvataḥ || 14 || athāmam alasī-bhūtaṃ sādhyaṃ tvaritam ullikhet | pītvā sogrā-paṭu-phalaṃ vāry uṣṇaṃ yojayet tataḥ || 15 || svedanaṃ phala-vartiṃ ca mala-vātānulomanīm | nāmyamānāni cāṅgāni bhṛśaṃ svinnāni veṣṭayet || 16 || 8.16bv mala-doṣānulomanīm madanaṃ pippalī kuṣṭhaṃ vacā gaurāś ca sarṣapāḥ | guḍa-kṣāra-samāyuktā phala-vartiḥ praśasyate || 16.1+1 || viṣūcyām ati-vṛddhāyāṃ pārṣṇyor dāhaḥ praśasyate | tad-ahaś copavāsyainaṃ virikta-vad upācaret || 17 || tīvrārtir api nā-jīrṇī pibec chūla-ghnam auṣadham | āma-sanno 'nalo nālaṃ paktuṃ doṣauṣadhāśanam || 18 || nihanyād api caiteṣāṃ vibhramaḥ sahasāturam | jīrṇāśane tu bhaiṣajyaṃ yuñjyāt stabdha-gurūdare || 19 || 8.19bv vyāpattiḥ sahasāturam doṣa-śeṣasya pākārtham agneḥ saṃdhukṣaṇāya ca | śāntir āma-vikārāṇāṃ bhavati tv apatarpaṇāt || 20 || tri-vidhaṃ tri-vidhe doṣe tat samīkṣya prayojayet | tatrālpe laṅghanaṃ pathyaṃ madhye laṅghana-pācanam || 21 || 8.21bv tat samīkṣya prakalpayet prabhūte śodhanaṃ tad dhi mūlād unmūlayen malān | evam anyān api vyādhīn sva-nidāna-viparyayāt || 22 || cikitsed anubandhe tu sati hetu-viparyayam | tyaktvā yathā-yathaṃ vaidyo yuñjyād vyādhi-viparyayam || 23 || tad-artha-kāri vā pakve doṣe tv iddhe ca pāvake | hitam abhyañjana-sneha-pāna-vasty-ādi yuktitaḥ || 24 || 8.24bv doṣe vṛddhe ca pāvake 8.24bv doṣe tv ṛddhe tu pāvake a-jīrṇaṃ ca kaphād āmaṃ tatra śopho 'kṣi-gaṇḍayoḥ | sadyo-bhukta ivodgāraḥ prasekotkleśa-gauravam || 25 || viṣṭabdham anilāc chūla-vibandhādhmāna-sāda-kṛt | pittād vidagdhaṃ tṛṇ-moha-bhramāmlodgāra-dāha-vat || 26 || 8.26dv -bhramāmlodgāra-dāha-kṛt laṅghanaṃ kāryam āme tu viṣṭabdhe svedanaṃ bhṛśam | vidagdhe vamanaṃ yad vā yathāvasthaṃ hitaṃ bhavet || 27 || 8.27dv yathāvasthaṃ hitaṃ bhajet garīyaso bhavel līnād āmād eva vilambikā | kapha-vātānubaddhāma-liṅgā tat-sama-sādhanā || 28 || 8.28cv kapha-vātānuviddhāma- a-śraddhā hṛd-vyathā śuddhe 'py udgāre rasa-śeṣataḥ | śayīta kiñ-cid evātra sarvaś cān-āśito divā || 29 || 8.29dv sarvaś cān-aśito divā svapyād a-jīrṇī saṃjāta-bubhukṣo 'dyān mitaṃ laghu | vibandho 'ti-pravṛttir vā glānir māruta-mūḍha-tā || 30 || 8.30dv glānir māruta-śūla-tā a-jīrṇa-liṅgaṃ sāmānyaṃ viṣṭambho gauravaṃ bhramaḥ | na cāti-mātram evānnam āma-doṣāya kevalam || 31 || dviṣṭa-viṣṭambhi-dagdhāma-guru-rūkṣa-himā-śuci | vidāhi śuṣkam aty-ambu-plutaṃ cānnaṃ na jīryati || 32 || upataptena bhuktaṃ ca śoka-krodha-kṣud-ādibhiḥ | miśraṃ pathyam a-pathyaṃ ca bhuktaṃ samaśanaṃ matam || 33 || 8.33bv śoka-krodha-kṣudhādibhiḥ 8.33bv krodha-śoka-bhayādibhiḥ vidyād adhyaśanaṃ bhūyo bhuktasyopari bhojanam | a-kāle bahu cālpaṃ vā bhuktaṃ tu viṣamāśanam || 34 || trīṇy apy etāni mṛtyuṃ vā ghorān vyādhīn sṛjanti vā | kāle sātmyaṃ śuci hitaṃ snigdhoṣṇaṃ laghu tan-manāḥ || 35 || ṣaḍ-rasaṃ madhura-prāyaṃ nāti-druta-vilambitam | snātaḥ kṣud-vān vivikta-stho dhauta-pāda-karānanaḥ || 36 || tarpayitvā pitṝn devān atithīn bālakān gurūn | pratyavekṣya tiraśco 'pi pratipanna-parigrahān || 37 || samīkṣya samyag ātmānam a-nindann a-bruvan dravam | iṣṭam iṣṭaiḥ sahāśnīyāc chuci-bhakta-janāhṛtam || 38 || bhojanaṃ tṛṇa-keśādi-juṣṭam uṣṇī-kṛtaṃ punaḥ | śākāvarānna-bhūyiṣṭham aty-uṣṇa-lavaṇaṃ tyajet || 39 || kilāṭa-dadhi-kūcīkā-kṣāra-śuktāma-mūlakam | kṛśa-śuṣka-varāhāvi-go-matsya-mahiṣāmiṣam || 40 || 8.40bv -kṣāra-śuktāmla-mūlakam māṣa-niṣpāva-śālūka-bisa-piṣṭa-virūḍhakam | śuṣka-śākāni yavakān phāṇitaṃ ca na śīlayet || 41 || 8.41bv -tila-piṣṭa-virūḍhakam śīlayec chāli-godhūma-yava-ṣaṣṭika-jāṅgalam | suniṣaṇṇaka-jīvantī-bāla-mūlaka-vāstukam || 42 || pathyāmalaka-mṛdvīkā-paṭolī-mudga-śarkarāḥ | ghṛta-divyodaka-kṣīra-kṣaudra-dāḍima-saindhavam || 43 || tri-phalāṃ madhu-sarpirbhyāṃ niśi netra-balāya ca | svāsthyānuvṛtti-kṛd yac ca rogoccheda-karaṃ ca yat || 44 || bisekṣu-moca-cocāmra-modakotkārikādikam | adyād dravyaṃ guru snigdhaṃ svādu mandaṃ sthiraṃ puraḥ || 45 || viparītam ataś cānte madhye 'mla-lavaṇotkaṭam | annena kukṣer dvāv aṃśau pānenaikaṃ prapūrayet || 46 || āśrayaṃ pavanādīnāṃ caturtham avaśeṣayet | anu-pānaṃ himaṃ vāri yava-godhūmayor hitam || 47 || dadhni madye viṣe kṣaudre koṣṇaṃ piṣṭa-mayeṣu tu | śāka-mudgādi-vikṛtau mastu-takrāmla-kāñjikam || 48 || 8.48bv koṣṇaṃ piṣṭa-mayeṣu ca surā kṛśānāṃ puṣṭy-arthaṃ sthūlānāṃ tu madhūdakam | śoṣe māṃsa-raso madyaṃ māṃse sv-alpe ca pāvake || 49 || 8.49bv sthūlānāṃ ca madhūdakam 8.49dv māṃseṣv alpe ca pāvake vyādhy-auṣadhādhva-bhāṣya-strī-laṅghanātapa-karmabhiḥ | kṣīṇe vṛddhe ca bāle ca payaḥ pathyaṃ yathāmṛtam || 50 || 8.50av vyādhy-auṣadhādhva-bhāra-strī- viparītaṃ yad annasya guṇaiḥ syād a-virodhi ca | anu-pānaṃ samāsena sarva-dā tat praśasyate || 51 || anu-pānaṃ karoty ūrjāṃ tṛptiṃ vyāptiṃ dṛḍhāṅga-tām | anna-saṃghāta-śaithilya-viklitti-jaraṇāni ca || 52 || nordhva-jatru-gada-śvāsa-kāsoraḥ-kṣata-pīnase | gīta-bhāṣya-prasaṅge ca svara-bhede ca tad dhitam || 53 || praklinna-deha-mehākṣi-gala-roga-vraṇāturāḥ | pānaṃ tyajeyuḥ sarvaś ca bhāṣyādhva-śayanaṃ tyajet || 54 || pītvā bhuktvātapaṃ vahniṃ yānaṃ plavana-vāhanam || 55ab || prasṛṣṭe viṇ-mūtre hṛdi su-vi-male doṣe sva-patha-ge || 55c || viśuddhe codgāre kṣud-upagamane vāte 'nusarati || 55d || tathāgnāv udrikte viśada-karaṇe dehe ca su-laghau || 55e || prayuñjītāhāraṃ vidhi-niyamitaṃ kālaḥ sa hi mataḥ || 55f || 8.55fv prayuñjītāhāraṃ vidhi-niyamitaḥ kālaḥ sa hi mataḥ Sūtrasthāna dravyam eva rasādīnāṃ śreṣṭhaṃ te hi tad-āśrayāḥ | pañca-bhūtātmakaṃ tat tu kṣmām adhiṣṭhāya jāyate || 1 || ambu-yony-agni-pavana-nabhasām samavāyataḥ | tan-nirvṛttir viśeṣaś ca vyapadeśas tu bhūyasā || 2 || 9.2dv vyapadeśaś ca bhūyasā tasmān naika-rasaṃ dravyaṃ bhūta-saṃghāta-saṃbhavāt | naika-doṣās tato rogās tatra vyakto rasaḥ smṛtaḥ || 3 || 9.3av tan naika-bhūta-jaṃ dravyaṃ a-vyakto 'nu-rasaḥ kiñ-cid ante vyakto 'pi ceṣyate | gurv-ādayo guṇā dravye pṛthivy-ādau rasāśraye || 4 || raseṣu vyapadiśyante sāhacaryopacārataḥ | tatra dravyaṃ guru-sthūla-sthira-gandha-guṇolbaṇam || 5 || pārthivaṃ gaurava-sthairya-saṃghātopacayāvaham | drava-śīta-guru-snigdha-manda-sāndra-rasolbaṇam || 6 || 9.6dv -manda-sāndra-guṇolbaṇam āpyaṃ snehana-viṣyanda-kleda-prahlāda-bandha-kṛt | rūkṣa-tīkṣṇoṣṇa-viśada-sūkṣma-rūpa-guṇolbaṇam || 7 || āgneyaṃ dāha-bhā-varṇa-prakāśa-pavanātmakam | vāyavyaṃ rūkṣa-viśada-laghu-sparśa-guṇolbaṇam || 8 || raukṣya-lāghava-vaiśadya-vicāra-glāni-kārakam | nābhasaṃ sūkṣma-viśada-laghu-śabda-guṇolbaṇam || 9 || 9.9bv -vicāra-glapanātmakam sauṣirya-lāghava-karaṃ jagaty evam an-auṣadham | na kiñ-cid vidyate dravyaṃ vaśān nānārtha-yogayoḥ || 10 || dravyam ūrdhva-gamaṃ tatra prāyo 'gni-pavanotkaṭam | adho-gāmi ca bhūyiṣṭhaṃ bhūmi-toya-guṇādhikam || 11 || iti dravyaṃ rasān bhedair uttara-tropadekṣyate | vīryaṃ punar vadanty eke guru snigdhaṃ himaṃ mṛdu || 12 || 9.12av iti dravyaṃ raso bhedair laghu rūkṣoṣṇa-tīkṣṇaṃ ca tad evaṃ matam aṣṭa-dhā | carakas tv āha vīryaṃ tat kriyate yena yā kriyā || 13 || 9.13cv carakas tv āha vīryaṃ tu 9.13dv yena yā kriyate kriyā nā-vīryaṃ kurute kiñ-cit sarvā vīrya-kṛtā hi sā | gurv-ādiṣv eva vīryākhyā tenānv-artheti varṇyate || 14 || samagra-guṇa-sāreṣu śakty-utkarṣa-vivartiṣu | vyavahārāya mukhya-tvād bahv-agra-grahaṇād api || 15 || 9.15av samagra-guṇa-sāra-tvāc 9.15bv chakty-utkarṣa-vivartanāt ataś ca viparīta-tvāt saṃbhavaty api naiva sā | vivakṣyate rasādyeṣu vīryaṃ gurv-ādayo hy ataḥ || 16 || uṣṇaṃ śītaṃ dvi-dhaivānye vīryam ācakṣate 'pi ca | nānātmakam api dravyam agnī-ṣomau mahā-balau || 17 || vyaktā-vyaktaṃ jagad iva nātikrāmati jātu cit | tatroṣṇaṃ bhrama-tṛḍ-glāni-sveda-dāhāśu-pāki-tāḥ || 18 || 9.18av vyaktā-vyaktaṃ jagad idaṃ 9.18av vyaktāvyaktaṃ yathā viśvaṃ śamaṃ ca vāta-kaphayoḥ karoti śiśiraṃ punaḥ | hlādanaṃ jīvanaṃ stambhaṃ prasādaṃ rakta-pittayoḥ || 19 || jāṭhareṇāgninā yogād yad udeti rasāntaram | rasānāṃ pariṇāmānte sa vipāka iti smṛtaḥ || 20 || svāduḥ paṭuś ca madhuram amlo 'mlaṃ pacyate rasaḥ | tiktoṣaṇa-kaṣāyāṇāṃ vipākaḥ prāya-śaḥ kaṭuḥ || 21 || rasair asau tulya-phalas tatra dravyaṃ śubhā-śubham | kiñ-cid rasena kurute karma pākena cāparam || 22 || guṇāntareṇa vīryeṇa prabhāveṇaiva kiñ-ca-na | yad yad dravye rasādīnāṃ bala-vat-tvena vartate || 23 || abhibhūyetarāṃs tat tat kāraṇa-tvaṃ prapadyate | viruddha-guṇa-saṃyoge bhūyasālpaṃ hi jīyate || 24 || rasaṃ vipākas tau vīryaṃ prabhāvas tāny apohati | bala-sāmye rasādīnām iti naisargikaṃ balam || 25 || 9.25bv prabhāvas tān vyapohati rasādi-sāmye yat karma viśiṣṭaṃ tat prabhāva-jam | dantī rasādyais tulyāpi citrakasya virecanī || 26 || madhukasya ca mṛdvīkā ghṛtaṃ kṣīrasya dīpanam | iti sāmānyataḥ karma dravyādīnāṃ punaś ca tat || 27 || vicitra-pratyayārabdha-dravya-bhedena bhidyate | svādur guruś ca godhūmo vāta-jid vāta-kṛd yavaḥ || 28 || uṣṇā matsyāḥ payaḥ śītaṃ kaṭuḥ siṃho na śūkaraḥ || 28ū̆ || Sūtrasthāna kṣmāmbho-'gni-kṣmāmbu-tejaḥ-kha-vāyv-agny-anila-go-'nilaiḥ | dvayolbaṇaiḥ kramād bhūtair madhurādi-rasodbhavaḥ || 1 || teṣāṃ vidyād rasaṃ svāduṃ yo vaktram anulimpati | āsvādyamāno dehasya hlādano 'kṣa-prasādanaḥ || 2 || 10.2bv yo vaktram upalimpati priyaḥ pipīlikādīnām amlaḥ kṣālayate mukham | harṣaṇo roma-dantānām akṣi-bhruva-nikocanaḥ || 3 || 10.3bv amlaḥ srāvayate mukham lavaṇaḥ syandayaty āsyaṃ kapola-gala-dāha-kṛt | tikto viśadayaty āsyaṃ rasanaṃ pratihanti ca || 4 || 10.4dv rasanāṃ pratihanti ca udvejayati jihvāgraṃ kurvaṃś cimicimāṃ kaṭuḥ | srāvayaty akṣi-nāsāsyaṃ kapolaṃ dahatīva ca || 5 || kaṣāyo jaḍayej jihvāṃ kaṇṭha-sroto-vibandha-kṛt | rasānām iti rūpāṇi karmāṇi madhuro rasaḥ || 6 || ā-janma-sātmyāt kurute dhātūnāṃ prabalaṃ balam | bāla-vṛddha-kṣata-kṣīṇa-varṇa-keśendriyaujasām || 7 || praśasto bṛṃhaṇaḥ kaṇṭhyaḥ stanya-saṃdhāna-kṛd guruḥ | āyuṣyo jīvanaḥ snigdhaḥ pittānila-viṣāpahaḥ || 8 || kurute 'ty-upayogena sa medaḥ-śleṣma-jān gadān | sthaulyāgni-sāda-saṃnyāsa-meha-gaṇḍārbudādikān || 9 || 10.9bv sa medaḥ-kapha-jān gadān amlo 'gni-dīpti-kṛt snigdho hṛdyaḥ pācana-rocanaḥ | uṣṇa-vīryo hima-sparśaḥ prīṇanaḥ kledano laghuḥ || 10 || 10.10cv uṣṇa-vīryo himaḥ sparśe 10.10dv prīṇano bhedano laghuḥ karoti kapha-pittāsraṃ mūḍha-vātānulomanaḥ | so 'ty-abhyastas tanoḥ kuryāc chaithilyaṃ timiraṃ bhramam || 11 || 10.11bv mūḍha-vātānulomanam kaṇḍū-pāṇḍu-tva-vīsarpa-śopha-visphoṭa-tṛḍ-jvarān | lavaṇaḥ stambha-saṃghāta-bandha-vidhmāpano 'gni-kṛt || 12 || snehanaḥ svedanas tīkṣṇo rocanaś cheda-bheda-kṛt | so 'ti-yukto 'sra-pavanaṃ khalatiṃ palitaṃ valīm || 13 || tṛṭ-kuṣṭha-viṣa-vīsarpān janayet kṣapayed balam | tiktaḥ svayam a-rociṣṇur a-ruciṃ kṛmi-tṛḍ-viṣam || 14 || kuṣṭha-mūrchā-jvarotkleśa-dāha-pitta-kaphāñ jayet | kleda-medo-vasā-majja-śakṛn-mūtropaśoṣaṇaḥ || 15 || laghur medhyo himo rūkṣaḥ stanya-kaṇṭha-viśodhanaḥ | dhātu-kṣayānila-vyādhīn ati-yogāt karoti saḥ || 16 || 10.16cv dhātu-kṣayaṃ cala-vyādhīn kaṭur galāmayodarda-kuṣṭhālasaka-śopha-jit | vraṇāvasādanaḥ sneha-medaḥ-kledopaśoṣaṇaḥ || 17 || dīpanaḥ pācano rucyaḥ śodhano 'nnasya śoṣaṇaḥ | chinatti bandhān srotāṃsi vivṛṇoti kaphāpahaḥ || 18 || 10.18bv śodhano 'nnasya hāṣaṇaḥ kurute so 'ti-yogena tṛṣṇāṃ śukra-bala-kṣayam | mūrchām ākuñcanaṃ kampaṃ kaṭī-pṛṣṭhādiṣu vyathām || 19 || 10.19av kurute so 'ti-vegena kaṣāyaḥ pitta-kapha-hā gurur asra-viśodhanaḥ | pīḍano ropaṇaḥ śītaḥ kleda-medo-viśoṣaṇaḥ || 20 || āma-saṃstambhano grāhī rūkṣo 'ti tvak-prasādanaḥ | karoti śīlitaḥ so 'ti viṣṭambhādhmāna-hṛd-rujaḥ || 21 || tṛṭ-kārśya-pauruṣa-bhraṃśa-sroto-rodha-mala-grahān | ghṛta-hema-guḍākṣoṭa-moca-coca-parūṣakam || 22 || 10.22bv -sroto-rodha-gala-grahān 10.22bv -sroto-bandha-mala-grahān abhīru-vīrā-panasa-rājādana-balā-trayam | mede catasraḥ parṇinyo jīvantī jīvakarṣabhau || 23 || madhūkaṃ madhukaṃ bimbī vidārī śrāvaṇī-yugam | kṣīraśuklā tukākṣīrī kṣīriṇyau kāśmarī sahe || 24 || 10.24cv kṣīraśuklā tavakṣīrī kṣīrekṣu-gokṣura-kṣaudra-drākṣādir madhuro gaṇaḥ | amlo dhātrī-phalāmlīkā-mātuluṅgāmla-vetasam || 25 || dāḍimaṃ rajataṃ takraṃ cukraṃ pālevataṃ dadhi | āmram āmrātakaṃ bhavyaṃ kapitthaṃ karamardakam || 26 || vṛkṣāmla-kola-likuca-kośāmlātaka-dhanvanam | mastu-dhānyāmla-madyāni jambīraṃ tila-kaṇṭakam || 26+1 || varaṃ sauvarcalaṃ kṛṣṇaṃ viḍaṃ sāmudram audbhidam | romakaṃ pāṃsu-jaṃ sīsaṃ kṣāraś ca lavaṇo gaṇaḥ || 27 || 10.27dv kṣārāś ca lavaṇo gaṇaḥ tiktaḥ paṭolī trāyantī vālakośīra-candanam | bhūnimba-nimba-kaṭukā-tagarāguru-vatsakam || 28 || naktamāla-dvi-rajanī-musta-mūrvāṭarūṣakam | pāṭhāpāmārga-kāṃsyāyo-guḍūcī-dhanvayāsakam || 29 || pañca-mūlaṃ mahad vyāghryau viśālātiviṣā vacā | kaṭuko hiṅgu-marica-kṛmijit-pañca-kolakam || 30 || 10.30cv kaṭuko hiṅgu-maricaṃ 10.30dv kṛmijit-pañca-kolakam kuṭherādyā haritakāḥ pittaṃ mūtram aruṣkaram | vargaḥ kaṣāyaḥ pathyākṣaṃ śirīṣaḥ khadiro madhu || 31 || 10.31bv pittaṃ mūtram aruṣkaraḥ 10.31cv vargaḥ kaṣāyaḥ pathyākṣaḥ kadambodumbaraṃ muktā-pravālāñjana-gairikam | bālaṃ kapitthaṃ kharjūraṃ bisa-padmotpalādi ca || 32 || 10.32dv bisa-padmotpalāni ca madhuraṃ śleṣmalaṃ prāyo jīrṇāc chāli-yavād ṛte | mudgād godhūmataḥ kṣaudrāt sitāyā jāṅgalāmiṣāt || 33 || prāyo 'mlaṃ pitta-jananaṃ dāḍimāmalakād ṛte | a-pathyaṃ lavaṇaṃ prāyaś cakṣuṣo 'nya-tra saindhavāt || 34 || tiktaṃ kaṭu ca bhūyiṣṭham a-vṛṣyaṃ vāta-kopanam | ṛte 'mṛtā-paṭolībhyāṃ śuṇṭhī-kṛṣṇā-rasonataḥ || 35 || kaṣāyaṃ prāya-śaḥ śītaṃ stambhanaṃ cābhayāṃ vinā | rasāḥ kaṭv-amla-lavaṇā vīryeṇoṣṇā yathottaram || 36 || 10.36bv stambhanaṃ cābhayāmṛte tiktaḥ kaṣāyo madhuras tad-vad eva ca śītalāḥ | tiktaḥ kaṭuḥ kaṣāyaś ca rūkṣā baddha-malās tathā || 37 || paṭv-amla-madhurāḥ snigdhāḥ sṛṣṭa-viṇ-mūtra-mārutāḥ | paṭoḥ kaṣāyas tasmāc ca madhuraḥ paramaṃ guruḥ || 38 || laghur amlaḥ kaṭus tasmāt tasmād api ca tiktakaḥ | saṃyogāḥ sapta-pañcāśat kalpanā tu tri-ṣaṣṭi-dhā || 39 || lavaṇād amla-madhurau kāryau syātāṃ yathā-kramam | vāyor nir-anubandhasya pāka-śānti-pravṛttaye || 39.1+1 || 10.39.1+1dv pāka-śānti-prasaktaye prāk tikto madhuraḥ paścāt kaṣāyo 'nte vidhīyate | taiḥ pittaṃ śamam abhyeti pakvācchī-kṛta-piṇḍitam || 39.1+2 || kaṭuḥ prāk tiktakaḥ paścāt kaṣāyo 'nte vidhīyate | taiḥ śleṣmā śamam abhyeti pakvācchī-kṛta-piṇḍitaḥ || 39.1+3 || 10.39.1+3av kaṭukaḥ prāk tatas tiktaḥ 10.39.1+3dv pakvo 'cchī-kṛta-piṇḍitaḥ rasānāṃ yaugika-tvena yathā-sthūlaṃ vibhajyate | ekaika-hīnās tān pañca-daśa yānti rasā dvike || 40 || 10.40cv ekaika-hīnās te pañca- 10.40dv -pañca yānti rasā dvike svādur dvikeṣu pañcāmlaś caturo lavaṇas trayam | dvau tiktaḥ kaṭukaś caikaṃ yāti pañca-daśeti tu || 40+1 || trike svādur daśāmlaḥ ṣaṭ trīn paṭus tikta ekakam | catuṣkeṣu daśa svāduś caturo 'mlaḥ paṭuḥ sakṛt || 41 || 10.41cv catuṣke tu daśa svāduś pañcakeṣv ekam evāmlo madhuraḥ pañca sevate | dravyam ekaṃ ṣaḍ-āsvādam a-saṃyuktāś ca ṣaḍ rasāḥ || 42 || ṣaṭ pañcakā ṣaṭ ca pṛthag rasāḥ syuś catur-dvikau pañca-daśa-prakārau | bhedās trikā viṃśatir ekam eva dravyaṃ ṣaḍ-āsvādam iti tri-ṣaṣṭiḥ || 43 || te rasānu-rasato rasa-bhedās tāratamya-parikalpanayā ca | saṃbhavanti gaṇanāṃ samatītā doṣa-bheṣaja-vaśād upayojyāḥ || 44 || Sūtrasthāna doṣa-dhātu-malā mūlaṃ sadā dehasya taṃ calaḥ | utsāhocchvāsa-niśvāsa-ceṣṭā-vega-pravartanaiḥ || 1 || samyag-gatyā ca dhātūnām akṣāṇāṃ pāṭavena ca | anugṛhṇāty a-vikṛtaḥ pittaṃ pakty-ūṣma-darśanaiḥ || 2 || kṣut-tṛḍ-ruci-prabhā-medhā-dhī-śaurya-tanu-mārdavaiḥ | śleṣmā sthira-tva-snigdha-tva-saṃdhi-bandha-kṣamādibhiḥ || 3 || prīṇanaṃ jīvanaṃ lepaḥ sneho dhāraṇa-pūraṇe | garbhotpādaś ca dhātūnāṃ śreṣṭhaṃ karma kramāt smṛtam || 4 || avaṣṭambhaḥ purīṣasya mūtrasya kleda-vāhanam | svedasya kleda-vidhṛtir vṛddhas tu kurute 'nilaḥ || 5 || 11.5cv svedasya keśa-vidhṛtir 11.5dv vṛddhaś ca kurute 'nilaḥ kārśya-kārṣṇyoṣṇa-kāma-tva-kampānāha-śakṛd-grahān | bala-nidrendriya-bhraṃśa-pralāpa-bhrama-dīna-tāḥ || 6 || 11.6av kārśya-kārṣṇyoṣṇa-kāmi-tva- pīta-viṇ-mūtra-netra-tvak-kṣut-tṛḍ-dāhālpa-nidra-tāḥ | pittaṃ śleṣmāgni-sadana-prasekālasya-gauravam || 7 || śvaitya-śaitya-ślathāṅga-tvaṃ śvāsa-kāsāti-nidra-tāḥ | raso 'pi śleṣma-vad raktaṃ visarpa-plīha-vidradhīn || 8 || kuṣṭha-vātāsra-pittāsra-gulmopa-kuśa-kāmalāḥ | vyaṅgāgni-nāśa-saṃmoha-rakta-tvaṅ-netra-mūtra-tāḥ || 9 || 11.9cv vyaṅgāgni-sāda-saṃmoha māṃsaṃ gaṇḍārbuda-granthi-gaṇḍorūdara-vṛddhi-tāḥ | kaṇṭhādiṣv adhi-māṃsaṃ ca tad-van medas tathā śramam || 10 || 11.10bv -gaṇḍorūdara-vṛddha-tāḥ alpe 'pi ceṣṭite śvāsaṃ sphik-stanodara-lambanam | asthy adhy-asthy adhi-dantāṃś ca majjā netrāṅga-gauravam || 11 || 11.13cv mūtraṃ tu vaster nistodaṃ parvasu sthūla-mūlāni kuryāt kṛcchrāṇy arūṃṣi ca | ati-strī-kāma-tāṃ vṛddhaṃ śuktaṃ śukrāśmarīm api || 12 || kukṣāv ādhmānam āṭopaṃ gauravaṃ vedanāṃ śakṛt | mūtraṃ tu vasti-nistodaṃ kṛte 'py a-kṛta-saṃjña-tām || 13 || svedo 'ti-sveda-daurgandhya-kaṇḍūr evaṃ ca lakṣayet | dūṣikādīn api malān bāhulya-guru-tādibhiḥ || 14 || liṅgaṃ kṣīṇe 'nile 'ṅgasya sādo 'lpaṃ bhāṣitehitam | saṃjñā-mohas tathā śleṣma-vṛddhy-uktāmaya-saṃbhavaḥ || 15 || pitte mando 'nalaḥ śītaṃ prabhā-hāniḥ kaphe bhramaḥ | śleṣmāśayānāṃ śūnya-tvaṃ hṛd-dravaḥ ślatha-saṃdhi-tā || 16 || 11.16dv hṛd-gadaḥ ślatha-saṃdhi-tā rase raukṣyaṃ śramaḥ śoṣo glāniḥ śabdā-sahiṣṇu-tā | rakte 'mla-śiśira-prīti-sirā-śaithilya-rūkṣa-tāḥ || 17 || māṃse 'kṣa-glāni-gaṇḍa-sphik-śuṣka-tā-saṃdhi-vedanāḥ | medasi svapanaṃ kaṭyāḥ plīhno vṛddhiḥ kṛśāṅga-tā || 18 || asthny asthi-todaḥ śadanaṃ danta-keśa-nakhādiṣu | asthnāṃ majjani sauṣiryaṃ bhramas timira-darśanam || 19 || 11.19av asthny asthi-todaḥ sadanaṃ śukre cirāt prasicyeta śukraṃ śoṇitam eva vā | todo 'ty-arthaṃ vṛṣaṇayor meḍhraṃ dhūmāyatīva ca || 20 || purīṣe vāyur antrāṇi sa-śabdo veṣṭayann iva | kukṣau bhramati yāty ūrdhvaṃ hṛt-pārśve pīḍayan bhṛśam || 21 || 11.21cv kukṣiṃ bhramati yāty ūrdhvaṃ mūtre 'lpaṃ mūtrayet kṛcchrād vi-varṇaṃ sāsram eva vā | svede roma-cyutiḥ stabdha-roma-tā sphuṭanaṃ tvacaḥ || 22 || malānām ati-sūkṣmāṇāṃ dur-lakṣyaṃ lakṣayet kṣayam | sva-malāyana-saṃśoṣa-toda-śūnya-tva-lāghavaiḥ || 23 || doṣādīnāṃ yathā-svaṃ ca vidyād vṛddhi-kṣayau bhiṣak | kṣayeṇa viparītānāṃ guṇānāṃ vardhanena ca || 24 || vṛddhiṃ malānāṃ saṅgāc ca kṣayaṃ cāti-visargataḥ | malocita-tvād dehasya kṣayo vṛddhes tu pīḍanaḥ || 25 || tatrāsthani sthito vāyuḥ pittaṃ tu sveda-raktayoḥ | śleṣmā śeṣeṣu tenaiṣām āśrayāśrayiṇāṃ mithaḥ || 26 || yad ekasya tad anyasya vardhana-kṣapaṇauṣadham | asthi-mārutayor naivaṃ prāyo vṛddhir hi tarpaṇāt || 27 || śleṣmaṇānugatā tasmāt saṃkṣayas tad-viparyayāt | vāyunānugato 'smāc ca vṛddhi-kṣaya-samudbhavān || 28 || vikārān sādhayec chīghraṃ kramāl laṅghana-bṛṃhaṇaiḥ | vāyor anya-tra taj-jāṃs tu tair evotkrama-yojitaiḥ || 29 || viśeṣād rakta-vṛddhy-utthān rakta-sruti-virecanaiḥ | māṃsa-vṛddhi-bhavān rogān śastra-kṣārāgni-karmabhiḥ || 30 || sthaulya-kārśyopacāreṇa medo-jān asthi-saṃkṣayāt | jātān kṣīra-ghṛtais tikta-saṃyutair vastibhis tathā || 31 || 11.31dv -saṃyuktair vastibhis tathā majja-śukrodbhavān rogān bhojanaiḥ svādu-tiktakaiḥ | vṛddhaṃ śukraṃ vyavāyādyair yac cānyac chukra-śoṣikam || 31+1 || 11.31+1av praty-anīkauṣadhaṃ majja- 11.31+1bv -śukra-vṛddhi-kṣaye hitam viḍ-vṛddhi-jān atīsāra-kriyayā viṭ-kṣayodbhavān | meṣāja-madhya-kulmāṣa-yava-māṣa-dvayādibhiḥ || 32 || mūtra-vṛddhi-kṣayotthāṃś ca meha-kṛcchra-cikitsayā | vyāyāmābhyañjana-sveda-madyaiḥ sveda-kṣayodbhavān || 33 || 11.33av mūtra-vṛddhi-kṣayotthāṃs tu sva-sthāna-sthasya kāyāgner aṃśā dhātuṣu saṃśritāḥ | teṣāṃ sādāti-dīptibhyāṃ dhātu-vṛddhi-kṣayodbhavaḥ || 34 || pūrvo dhātuḥ paraṃ kuryād vṛddhaḥ kṣīṇaś ca tad-vidham | doṣā duṣṭā rasair dhātūn dūṣayanty ubhaye malān || 35 || adho dve sapta śirasi khāni sveda-vahāni ca | malā malāyanāni syur yathā-svaṃ teṣv ato gadāḥ || 36 || ojas tu tejo dhātūnāṃ śukrāntānāṃ paraṃ smṛtam | hṛdaya-stham api vyāpi deha-sthiti-nibandhanam || 37 || snigdhaṃ somātmakaṃ śuddham īṣal-lohita-pītakam | yan-nāśe niyataṃ nāśo yasmiṃs tiṣṭhati tiṣṭhati || 38 || niṣpadyante yato bhāvā vividhā deha-saṃśrayāḥ | ojaḥ kṣīyeta kopa-kṣud-dhyāna-śoka-śramādibhiḥ || 39 || bibheti dur-balo 'bhīkṣṇaṃ dhyāyati vyathitendriyaḥ | duś-chāyo dur-manā rūkṣo bhavet kṣāmaś ca tat-kṣaye || 40 || 11.40cv vi-cchāyo dur-manā rūkṣo 11.40dv bhavet kṣāmaś ca tat-kṣayāt jīvanīyauṣadha-kṣīra-rasādyās tatra bheṣajam | ojo-vṛddhau hi dehasya tuṣṭi-puṣṭi-balodayaḥ || 41 || 11.41cv ojo-vṛddhau ca dehasya 11.41cv ojo-vṛddhau tu dehasya 11.41dv tuṣṭi-puṣṭi-balodayāḥ yad annaṃ dveṣṭi yad api prārthayetā-virodhi tu | tat tat tyajan samaśnaṃś ca tau tau vṛddhi-kṣayau jayet || 42 || 11.42cv tat tat tyajan samaśnan vā kurvate hi ruciṃ doṣā viparīta-samānayoḥ | vṛddhāḥ kṣīṇāś ca bhūyiṣṭhaṃ lakṣayanty a-budhās tu na || 43 || 11.43av kurvanti hi ruciṃ doṣā yathā-balaṃ yathā-svaṃ ca doṣā vṛddhā vitanvate | rūpāṇi jahati kṣīṇāḥ samāḥ svaṃ karma kurvate || 44 || ya eva dehasya samā vivṛddhyai ta eva doṣā viṣamā vadhāya | yasmād atas te hita-caryayaiva kṣayād vivṛddher iva rakṣaṇīyāḥ || 45 || 11.45dv kṣayād vivṛddher api rakṣaṇīyāḥ Sūtrasthāna pakvāśaya-kaṭī-sakthi-śrotrāsthi-sparśanendriyam | sthānaṃ vātasya tatrāpi pakvādhānaṃ viśeṣataḥ || 1 || nābhir āmāśayaḥ svedo lasīkā rudhiraṃ rasaḥ | dṛk sparśanaṃ ca pittasya nābhir atra viśeṣataḥ || 2 || uraḥ-kaṇṭha-śiraḥ-kloma-parvāṇy āmāśayo rasaḥ | medo ghrāṇaṃ ca jihvā ca kaphasya su-tarām uraḥ || 3 || prāṇādi-bhedāt pañcātmā vāyuḥ prāṇo 'tra mūrdha-gaḥ | uraḥ-kaṇṭha-caro buddhi-hṛdayendriya-citta-dhṛk || 4 || ṣṭhīvana-kṣavathūdgāra-niḥśvāsānna-praveśa-kṛt | uraḥ sthānam udānasya nāsā-nābhi-galāṃś caret || 5 || 12.5dv nāsā-nābhi-galāṃś caran vāk-pravṛtti-prayatnorjā-bala-varṇa-smṛti-kriyaḥ | vyāno hṛdi sthitaḥ kṛtsna-deha-cārī mahā-javaḥ || 6 || gaty-apakṣepaṇotkṣepa-nimeṣonmeṣaṇādikāḥ | prāyaḥ sarvāḥ kriyās tasmin pratibaddhāḥ śarīriṇām || 7 || samāno 'gni-samīpa-sthaḥ koṣṭhe carati sarvataḥ | annaṃ gṛhṇāti pacati vivecayati muñcati || 8 || apāno 'pāna-gaḥ śroṇi-vasti-meḍhroru-go-caraḥ | śukrārtava-śakṛn-mūtra-garbha-niṣkramaṇa-kriyaḥ || 9 || pittaṃ pañcātmakaṃ tatra pakvāmāśaya-madhya-gam | pañca-bhūtātmaka-tve 'pi yat taijasa-guṇodayāt || 10 || tyakta-dravya-tvaṃ pākādi-karmaṇānala-śabditam | pacaty annaṃ vibhajate sāra-kiṭṭau pṛthak tathā || 11 || 12.11dv sāra-kiṭṭe pṛthak tathā tatra-stham eva pittānāṃ śeṣāṇām apy anugraham | karoti bala-dānena pācakaṃ nāma tat smṛtam || 12 || āmāśayāśrayaṃ pittaṃ rañjakaṃ rasa-rañjanāt | buddhi-medhābhimānādyair abhipretārtha-sādhanāt || 13 || sādhakaṃ hṛd-gataṃ pittaṃ rūpālocanataḥ smṛtam | dṛk-stham ālocakaṃ tvak-sthaṃ bhrājakaṃ bhrājanāt tvacaḥ || 14 || śleṣmā tu pañca-dhoraḥ-sthaḥ sa trikasya sva-vīryataḥ | hṛdayasyānna-vīryāc ca tat-stha evāmbu-karmaṇā || 15 || 12.15av śleṣmāpi pañca-dhoraḥ-sthaḥ kapha-dhāmnāṃ ca śeṣāṇāṃ yat karoty avalambanam | ato 'valambakaḥ śleṣmā yas tv āmāśaya-saṃsthitaḥ || 16 || 12.16dv yas tv āmāśaya-saṃśritaḥ kledakaḥ so 'nna-saṃghāta-kledanād rasa-bodhanāt | bodhako rasanā-sthāyī śiraḥ-saṃstho 'kṣa-tarpaṇāt || 17 || tarpakaḥ saṃdhi-saṃśleṣāc chleṣakaḥ saṃdhiṣu sthitaḥ | iti prāyeṇa doṣāṇāṃ sthānāny a-vikṛtātmanām || 18 || 12.18bv chleṣakaḥ saṃdhi-saṃsthitaḥ vyāpinām api jānīyāt karmāṇi ca pṛthak pṛthak | uṣṇena yuktā rūkṣādyā vāyoḥ kurvanti saṃcayam || 19 || śītena kopam uṣṇena śamaṃ snigdhādayo guṇāḥ | śītena yuktās tīkṣṇādyāś cayaṃ pittasya kurvate || 20 || uṣṇena kopaṃ mandādyāḥ śamaṃ śītopasaṃhitāḥ | śītena yuktāḥ snigdhādyāḥ kurvate śleṣmaṇaś cayam || 21 || uṣṇena kopaṃ tenaiva guṇā rūkṣādayaḥ śamam | cayo vṛddhiḥ sva-dhāmny eva pradveṣo vṛddhi-hetuṣu || 22 || viparīta-guṇecchā ca kopas tūn-mārga-gami-tā | liṅgānāṃ darśanaṃ sveṣām a-svāsthyaṃ roga-saṃbhavaḥ || 23 || sva-sthāna-sthasya sama-tā vikārā-saṃbhavaḥ śamaḥ | caya-prakopa-praśamā vāyor grīṣmādiṣu triṣu || 24 || varṣādiṣu tu pittasya śleṣmaṇaḥ śiśirādiṣu | cīyate laghu-rūkṣābhir oṣadhibhiḥ samīraṇaḥ || 25 || 12.25av varṣādiṣu ca pittasya tad-vidhas tad-vidhe dehe kālasyauṣṇyān na kupyati | adbhir amla-vipākābhir oṣadhibhiś ca tādṛśam || 26 || pittaṃ yāti cayaṃ kopaṃ na tu kālasya śaityataḥ | cīyate snigdha-śītābhir udakauṣadhibhiḥ kaphaḥ || 27 || tulye 'pi kāle dehe ca skanna-tvān na prakupyati | iti kāla-sva-bhāvo 'yam āhārādi-vaśāt punaḥ || 28 || 12.28bv skanna-tvān na vikupyati cayādīn yānti sadyo 'pi doṣāḥ kāle 'pi vā na tu | vyāpnoti sahasā deham ā-pāda-tala-mastakam || 29 || nivartate tu kupito malo 'lpālpaṃ jalaugha-vat | nānā-rūpair a-saṃkhyeyair vikāraiḥ kupitā malāḥ || 30 || tāpayanti tanuṃ tasmāt tad-dhetv-ākṛti-sādhanam | śakyaṃ naikaika-śo vaktum ataḥ sāmānyam ucyate || 31 || doṣā eva hi sarveṣāṃ rogāṇām eka-kāraṇam | yathā pakṣī paripatan sarvataḥ sarvam apy ahaḥ || 32 || chāyām atyeti nātmīyāṃ yathā vā kṛtsnam apy adaḥ | vikāra-jātaṃ vividhaṃ trīn guṇān nātivartate || 33 || tathā sva-dhātu-vaiṣamya-nimittam api sarva-dā | vikāra-jātaṃ trīn doṣān teṣāṃ kope tu kāraṇam || 34 || arthair a-sātmyaiḥ saṃyogaḥ kālaḥ karma ca duṣ-kṛtam | hīnāti-mithyā-yogena bhidyate tat punas tri-dhā || 35 || hīno 'rthenendriyasyālpaḥ saṃyogaḥ svena naiva vā | ati-yogo 'ti-saṃsargaḥ sūkṣma-bhāsura-bhairavam || 36 || aty-āsannāti-dūra-sthaṃ vi-priyaṃ vikṛtādi ca | yad akṣṇā vīkṣyate rūpaṃ mithyā-yogaḥ sa dāruṇaḥ || 37 || 12.37dv mithyā-yogaḥ su-dāruṇaḥ evam aty-ucca-pūty-ādīn indriyārthān yathā-yatham | vidyāt kālas tu śītoṣṇa-varṣā-bhedāt tri-dhā mataḥ || 38 || 12.38dv -varṣa-bhedāt tri-dhā mataḥ sa hīno hīna-śītādir ati-yogo 'ti-lakṣaṇaḥ | mithyā-yogas tu nirdiṣṭo viparīta-sva-lakṣaṇaḥ || 39 || kāya-vāk-citta-bhedena karmāpi vibhajet tri-dhā | kāyādi-karmaṇo hīnā pravṛttir hīna-saṃjñakaḥ || 40 || 12.40cv kāyādi-karmaṇāṃ hīnā 12.40dv pravṛttir hīna-saṃjñikā ati-yogo 'ti-vṛttis tu vegodīraṇa-dhāraṇam | viṣamāṅga-kriyārambha-patana-skhalanādikam || 41 || 12.41av ati-yogo 'ti-vṛttiś ca bhāṣaṇaṃ sāmi-bhuktasya rāga-dveṣa-bhayādi ca | karma prāṇātipātādi daśa-dhā yac ca ninditam || 42 || mithyā-yogaḥ samasto 'sāv iha vāmu-tra vā kṛtam | nidānam etad doṣāṇāṃ kupitās tena naika-dhā || 43 || 12.43bv iha cāmu-tra vā kṛtam kurvanti vividhān vyādhīn śākhā-koṣṭhāsthi-saṃdhiṣu | śākhā raktādayas tvak ca bāhya-rogāyanaṃ hi tat || 44 || 12.44dv bāhya-rogāyanaṃ hi sā tad-āśrayā maṣa-vyaṅga-gaṇḍālajy-arbudādayaḥ | bahir-bhāgāś ca dur-nāma-gulma-śophādayo gadāḥ || 45 || antaḥ koṣṭho mahā-srota āma-pakvāśayāśrayaḥ | tat-sthānāḥ chardy-atīsāra-kāsa-śvāsodara-jvarāḥ || 46 || antar-bhāgaṃ ca śophārśo-gulma-visarpa-vidradhi | śiro-hṛdaya-vasty-ādi-marmāṇy asthnāṃ ca saṃdhayaḥ || 47 || 12.47dv -marmāṇy asthnāṃ tu saṃdhayaḥ tan-nibaddhāḥ sirā-snāyu-kaṇḍarādyāś ca madhyamaḥ | roga-mārgaḥ sthitās tatra yakṣma-pakṣa-vadhārditāḥ || 48 || mūrdhādi-rogāḥ saṃdhy-asthi-trika-śūla-grahādayaḥ | sraṃsa-vyāsa-vyadha-svāp a-sāda-ruk-toda-bhedanam || 49 || saṅgāṅga-bhaṅga-saṃkoca-varta-harṣaṇa-tarpaṇam | kampa-pāruṣya-sauṣirya-śoṣa-spandana-veṣṭanam || 50 || stambhaḥ kaṣāya-rasa-tā varṇaḥ śyāvo 'ruṇo 'pi vā | karmāṇi vāyoḥ pittasya dāha-rāgoṣma-pāki-tāḥ || 51 || svedaḥ kledaḥ srutiḥ kothaḥ sadanaṃ mūrchanaṃ madaḥ | kaṭukāmlau rasau varṇaḥ pāṇḍurāruṇa-varjitaḥ || 52 || śleṣmaṇaḥ sneha-kāṭhinya-kaṇḍū-śīta-tva-gauravam | bandhopalepa-staimitya-śophā-pakty-ati-nidra-tāḥ || 53 || varṇaḥ śveto rasau svādu-lavaṇau cira-kāri-tā | ity a-śeṣāmaya-vyāpi yad uktaṃ doṣa-lakṣaṇam || 54 || darśanādyair avahitas tat samyag upalakṣayet | vyādhy-avasthā-vibhāga-jñaḥ paśyann ārtān prati-kṣaṇam || 55 || abhyāsāt prāpyate dṛṣṭiḥ karma-siddhi-prakāśinī | ratnādi-sad-a-saj-jñānaṃ na śāstrād eva jāyate || 56 || 12.56av abhyāsāj jāyate dṛṣṭiḥ 12.56av abhyāsāt kevalaṃ dṛṣṭiḥ dṛṣṭāpacāra-jaḥ kaś-cit kaś-cit pūrvāparādha-jaḥ | tat-saṃkarād bhavaty anyo vyādhir evaṃ tri-dhā smṛtaḥ || 57 || 12.57bv kaś-cit pūrvāpacāra-jaḥ 12.57dv vyādhir evaṃ tri-dhā mataḥ yathā-nidānaṃ doṣotthaḥ karma-jo hetubhir vinā | mahārambho 'lpake hetāv ātaṅko doṣa-karma-jaḥ || 58 || vipakṣa-śīlanāt pūrvaḥ karma-jaḥ karma-saṃkṣayāt | gacchaty ubhaya-janmā tu doṣa-karma-kṣayāt kṣayam || 59 || dvi-dhā sva-para-tantra-tvād vyādhayo 'ntyāḥ punar dvi-dhā | pūrva-jāḥ pūrva-rūpākhyā jātāḥ paścād upadravāḥ || 60 || yathā-sva-janmopaśayāḥ sva-tantrāḥ spaṣṭa-lakṣaṇāḥ | viparītās tato 'nye tu vidyād evaṃ malān api || 61 || tāō̃ lakṣayed avahito vikurvāṇān prati-jvaram | teṣāṃ pradhāna-praśame praśamo '-śāmyatas tathā || 62 || paścāc cikitset tūrṇaṃ vā bala-vantam upadravam | vyādhi-kliṣṭa-śarīrasya pīḍā-kara-taro hi saḥ || 63 || 12.63av paścāc cikitset pūrvaṃ vā vikāra-nāmā-kuśalo na jihrīyāt kadā-ca-na | na hi sarva-vikārāṇāṃ nāmato 'sti dhruvā sthitiḥ || 64 || sa eva kupito doṣaḥ samutthāna-viśeṣataḥ | sthānāntarāṇi ca prāpya vikārān kurute bahūn || 65 || tasmād vikāra-prakṛtīr adhiṣṭhānāntarāṇi ca | buddhvā hetu-viśeṣāṃś ca śīghraṃ kuryād upakramam || 66 || dūṣyaṃ deśaṃ balaṃ kālam analaṃ prakṛtiṃ vayaḥ | sat-tvaṃ sātmyaṃ tathāhāram avasthāś ca pṛthag-vidhāḥ || 67 || sūkṣma-sūkṣmāḥ samīkṣyaiṣāṃ doṣauṣadha-nirūpaṇe | yo vartate cikitsāyāṃ na sa skhalati jātu cit || 68 || gurv-alpa-vyādhi-saṃsthānaṃ sat-tva-deha-balā-balāt | dṛśyate 'py anya-thā-kāraṃ tasminn avahito bhavet || 69 || guruṃ laghum iti vyādhiṃ kalpayaṃs tu bhiṣag-bruvaḥ | alpa-doṣākalanayā pathye vipratipadyate || 70 || 12.70bv kalayaṃs tu bhiṣag-bruvaḥ 12.70bv kalpayaṃs tu bhiṣag dhruvam tato 'lpam alpa-vīryaṃ vā guru-vyādhau prayojitam | udīrayet-tarāṃ rogān saṃśodhanam a-yogataḥ || 71 || śodhanaṃ tv ati-yogena viparītaṃ viparyaye | kṣiṇuyān na malān eva kevalaṃ vapur asyati || 72 || 12.72dv kevalaṃ vapur apy ati ato 'bhiyuktaḥ satataṃ sarvam ālocya sarva-thā | tathā yuñjīta bhaiṣajyam ārogyāya yathā dhruvam || 73 || 12.73dv ārogyāya yathā bhavet vakṣyante 'taḥ paraṃ doṣā vṛddhi-kṣaya-vibhedataḥ | pṛthak trīn viddhi saṃsargas tri-dhā tatra tu tān nava || 74 || 12.74cv pṛthak trīn viddhi saṃsargaṃ trīn eva samayā vṛddhyā ṣaḍ ekasyātiśāyane | trayo-daśa samasteṣu ṣaḍ dvy-ekātiśayena tu || 75 || 12.75dv ṣaḍ dvy-ekātiśayena ca ekaṃ tulyādhikaiḥ ṣaṭ ca tāratamya-vikalpanāt | pañca-viṃśatim ity evaṃ vṛddhaiḥ kṣīṇaiś ca tāvataḥ || 76 || 12.76cv pañca-viṃśatir ity evaṃ ekaika-vṛddhi-sama-tā-kṣayaiḥ ṣaṭ te punaś ca ṣaṭ | eka-kṣaya-dvandva-vṛddhyā sa-viparyayayāpi te || 77 || bhedā dvi-ṣaṣṭir nirdiṣṭās tri-ṣaṣṭiḥ svāsthya-kāraṇam || 78ab || saṃsargād rasa-rudhirādibhis tathaiṣāṃ || 78c || 12.78cv saṃsargād rasa-rudhirādibhis tathaitān doṣāṃs tu kṣaya-sama-tā-vivṛddhi-bhedaiḥ || 78d || 12.78dv doṣāṇāṃ kṣaya-sama-tā-vivṛddhi-bhedaiḥ ānantyaṃ tara-tama-yogataś ca yātān || 78e || jānīyād avahita-mānaso yathā-svam || 78f || Sūtrasthāna vātasyopakramaḥ snehaḥ svedaḥ saṃśodhanaṃ mṛdu | svādv-amla-lavaṇoṣṇāni bhojyāny abhyaṅga-mardanam || 1 || veṣṭanaṃ trāsanaṃ seko madyaṃ paiṣṭika-gauḍikam | snigdhoṣṇā vastayo vasti-niyamaḥ sukha-śīla-tā || 2 || dīpanaiḥ pācanaiḥ snigdhāḥ snehāś cāneka-yonayaḥ | viśeṣān medya-piśita-rasa-tailānuvāsanam || 3 || pittasya sarpiṣaḥ pānaṃ svādu-śītair virecanam | svādu-tikta-kaṣāyāṇi bhojanāny auṣadhāni ca || 4 || su-gandhi-śīta-hṛdyānāṃ gandhānām upasevanam | kaṇṭhe-guṇānāṃ hārāṇāṃ maṇīnām urasā dhṛtiḥ || 5 || karpūra-candanośīrair anulepaḥ kṣaṇe kṣaṇe | pradoṣaś candramāḥ saudhaṃ hāri gītaṃ himo 'nilaḥ || 6 || a-yantraṇa-sukhaṃ mitraṃ putraḥ saṃdigdha-mugdha-vāk | chandānuvartino dārāḥ priyāḥ śīla-vibhūṣitāḥ || 7 || 13.7av a-yantraṇa-mukhaṃ mitraṃ śītāmbu-dhārā-garbhāṇi gṛhāṇy udyāna-dīrghikāḥ | su-tīrtha-vipula-svaccha-salilāśaya-saikate || 8 || sāmbho-ja-jala-tīrānte kāyamāne drumākule | saumyā bhāvāḥ payaḥ sarpir virekaś ca viśeṣataḥ || 9 || 13.9bv kāyamānaṃ drumākule śleṣmaṇo vidhinā yuktaṃ tīkṣṇaṃ vamana-recanam | annaṃ rūkṣālpa-tīkṣṇoṣṇaṃ kaṭu-tikta-kaṣāyakam || 10 || dīrgha-kāla-sthitaṃ madyaṃ rati-prītiḥ prajāgaraḥ | aneka-rūpo vyāyāmaś cintā rūkṣaṃ vimardanam || 11 || viśeṣād vamanaṃ yūṣaḥ kṣaudraṃ medo-ghnam auṣadham | dhūmopavāsa-gaṇḍūṣā niḥ-sukha-tvaṃ sukhāya ca || 12 || upakramaḥ pṛthag doṣān yo 'yam uddiśya kīrtitaḥ | saṃsarga-saṃnipāteṣu taṃ yathā-svaṃ vikalpayet || 13 || 13.13dv taṃ yathā-svaṃ prakalpayet graiṣmaḥ prāyo marut-pitte vāsantaḥ kapha-mārute | maruto yoga-vāhi-tvāt kapha-pitte tu śāradaḥ || 14 || caya eva jayed doṣaṃ kupitaṃ tv a-virodhayan | sarva-kope balīyāṃsaṃ śeṣa-doṣā-virodhataḥ || 15 || prayogaḥ śamayed vyādhim ekaṃ yo 'nyam udīrayet | nāsau viśuddhaḥ śuddhas tu śamayed yo na kopayet || 16 || 13.16av prayogaḥ śamayed vyādhiṃ 13.16bv yo 'nyam anyam udīrayet vyāyāmād ūṣmaṇas taikṣṇyād a-hitācaraṇād api | koṣṭhāc chākhāsthi-marmāṇi druta-tvān mārutasya ca || 17 || doṣā yānti tathā tebhyaḥ sroto-mukha-viśodhanāt | vṛddhyābhiṣyandanāt pākāt koṣṭhaṃ vāyoś ca nigrahāt || 18 || tatra-sthāś ca vilamberan bhūyo hetu-pratīkṣiṇaḥ | te kālādi-balaṃ labdhvā kupyanty anyāśrayeṣv api || 19 || tatrānya-sthāna-saṃstheṣu tadīyām a-baleṣu tu | kuryāc cikitsāṃ svām eva balenānyābhibhāviṣu || 20 || āgantuṃ śamayed doṣaṃ sthāninaṃ pratikṛtya vā | prāyas tiryag-gatā doṣāḥ kleśayanty āturāṃś ciram || 21 || sādhāraṇaṃ vā kurvīta kriyām ubhaya-yoginīm || 21.1+1 || kuryān na teṣu tvarayā dehāgni-bala-vit kriyām | śamayet tān prayogeṇa sukhaṃ vā koṣṭham ānayet || 22 || jñātvā koṣṭha-prapannāṃś ca yathāsannaṃ vinirharet | sroto-rodha-bala-bhraṃśa-gauravānila-mūḍha-tāḥ || 23 || 13.23dv -gauravānila-mūḍha-tā ālasyā-pakti-niṣṭhīva-mala-saṅgā-ruci-klamāḥ | liṅgaṃ malānāṃ sāmānāṃ nir-āmāṇāṃ viparyayaḥ || 24 || viṇ-mūtra-nakha-danta-tvak-cakṣuṣāṃ pīta-tā bhavet | rakta-tvam atha kṛṣṇa-tvaṃ pṛṣṭhāsthi-kaṭi-saṃdhi-ruk || 24.1+1 || 13.24.1+1dv pṛṣṭhāsthi-kaṭi-saṃdhiṣu śiro-ruk jāyate tīvrā nidrā vi-rasa-tā mukhe | kva-cic ca śvayathur gātre jvarātīsāra-harṣaṇam || 24.1+2 || ūṣmaṇo 'lpa-bala-tvena dhātum ādyam a-pācitam | duṣṭam āmāśaya-gataṃ rasam āmaṃ pracakṣate || 25 || anye doṣebhya evāti-duṣṭebhyo 'nyo-'nya-mūrchanāt | kodravebhyo viṣasyeva vadanty āmasya saṃbhavam || 26 || āmena tena saṃpṛktā doṣā dūṣyāś ca dūṣitāḥ | sāmā ity upadiśyante ye ca rogās tad-udbhavāḥ || 27 || vāyuḥ sāmo vibandhāgni-sāda-stambhāntra-kūjanaiḥ | vedanā-śopha-nistodaiḥ krama-śo 'ṅgāni pīḍayan || 27+1 || vicared yuga-pac cāpi gṛhṇāti kupito bhṛśam | snehādyair vṛddhim āyāti sūrya-meghodaye niśi || 27+2 || nir-āmo viśado rūkṣo nir-vibandho 'lpa-vedanaḥ | viparīta-guṇaiḥ śāntiṃ snigdhair yāti viśeṣataḥ || 27+3 || dur-gandhi haritaṃ śyāvaṃ pittam amlaṃ ghanaṃ guru | amlīkā-kaṇṭha-hṛd-dāha-karaṃ sāmaṃ vinirdiśet || 27+4 || ā-tāmra-pītam aty-uṣṇaṃ rase kaṭukam a-sthiram | pakvaṃ vi-gandhi vijñeyaṃ ruci-pakti-bala-pradam || 27+5 || 13.27+5dv ruci-vahni-bala-pradam āvilas tantulaḥ styānaḥ kaṇṭha-deśe 'vatiṣṭhate | sāmo balāso dur-gandhiḥ kṣud-udgāra-vighāta-kṛt || 27+6 || phena-vān piṇḍitaḥ pāṇdur niḥ-sāro '-gandha eva ca | pakvaḥ sa eva vijñeyaś cheda-vān vaktra-śuddhi-daḥ || 27+7 || sarva-deha-pravisṛtān sāmān doṣān na nirharet | līnān dhātuṣv an-utkliṣṭān phalād āmād rasān iva || 28 || āśrayasya hi nāśāya te syur dur-nirhara-tvataḥ | pācanair dīpanaiḥ snehais tān svedaiś ca pariṣkṛtān || 29 || śodhayec chodhanaiḥ kāle yathāsannaṃ yathā-balam | hanty āśu yuktaṃ vaktreṇa dravyam āmāśayān malān || 30 || ghrāṇena cordhva-jatrūtthān pakvādhānād gudena ca | utkliṣṭān adha ūrdhvaṃ vā na cāmān vahataḥ svayam || 31 || dhārayed auṣadhair doṣān vidhṛtās te hi roga-dāḥ | pravṛttān prāg ato doṣān upekṣeta hitāśinaḥ || 32 || vibaddhān pācanais tais taiḥ pācayen nirhareta vā | śrāvaṇe kārttike caitre māsi sādhāraṇe kramāt || 33 || 13.33bv pācayen nirharet tathā prāvṛṭ-śarad-vasanteṣu māseṣv eteṣu śodhayet | sādhāraṇeṣu vidhinā tri-māsāntaritān malān || 33+1 || grīṣma-varṣā-hima-citān vāyv-ādīn āśu nirharet | aty-uṣṇa-varṣa-śītā hi grīṣma-varṣā-himāgamāḥ || 34 || saṃdhau sādhāraṇe teṣāṃ duṣṭān doṣān viśodhayet | svastha-vṛttam abhipretya vyādhau vyādhi-vaśena tu || 35 || trayaḥ sādhāraṇās teṣām antare prāvṛṣādayaḥ | prāvṛṭ śuci-nabhau teṣu śarad ūrja-sahau smṛtau || 35.1+1 || tapasyo madhu-māsaś ca vasantaḥ śodhanaṃ prati | etān ṛtūn vikalpyaivaṃ dadyāt saṃśodhanaṃ bhiṣak || 35.1+2 || kṛtvā śītoṣṇa-vṛṣṭīnāṃ pratīkāraṃ yathā-yatham | prayojayet kriyāṃ prāptāṃ kriyā-kālaṃ na hāpayet || 36 || yuñjyād an-annam annādau madhye 'nte kavaḍāntare | grāse grāse muhuḥ sānnaṃ sāmudgaṃ niśi cauṣadham || 37 || kaphodreke gade 'n-annaṃ balino roga-rogiṇoḥ | annādau vi-guṇe 'pāne samāne madhya iṣyate || 38 || vyāne 'nte prātar-āśasya sāyam-āśasya tūttare | grāsa-grāsāntayoḥ prāṇe praduṣṭe mātariśvani || 39 || muhur muhur viṣa-cchardi-hidhmā-tṛṭ-śvāsa-kāsiṣu | yojyaṃ sa-bhojyaṃ bhaiṣajyaṃ bhojyaiś citrair a-rocake || 40 || kampākṣepaka-hidhmāsu sāmudgaṃ laghu-bhojinām | ūrdhva-jatru-vikāreṣu svapna-kāle praśasyate || 41 || Sūtrasthāna upakramyasya hi dvi-tvād dvi-dhaivopakramo mataḥ | ekaḥ saṃtarpaṇas tatra dvitīyaś cāpatarpaṇaḥ || 1 || bṛṃhaṇo laṅghanaś ceti tat-paryāyāv udāhṛtau | bṛṃhaṇaṃ yad bṛhat-tvāya laṅghanaṃ lāghavāya yat || 2 || dehasya bhavataḥ prāyo bhaumāpam itarac ca te | snehanaṃ rūkṣaṇaṃ karma svedanaṃ stambhanaṃ ca yat || 3 || bhūtānāṃ tad api dvaidhyād dvitayaṃ nātivartate | śodhanaṃ śamanaṃ ceti dvi-dhā tatrāpi laṅghanam || 4 || yad īrayed bahir doṣān pañca-dhā śodhanaṃ ca tat | nirūho vamanaṃ kāya-śiro-reko 'sra-visrutiḥ || 5 || na śodhayati yad doṣān samān nodīrayaty api | samī-karoti viṣamān śamanaṃ tac ca sapta-dhā || 6 || pācanaṃ dīpanaṃ kṣut-tṛḍ-vyāyāmātapa-mārutāḥ | bṛṃhaṇaṃ śamanaṃ tv eva vāyoḥ pittānilasya ca || 7 || bṛṃhayed vyādhi-bhaiṣajya-madya-strī-śoka-karśitān | bhārādhvoraḥ-kṣata-kṣīṇa-rūkṣa-dur-bala-vātalān || 8 || garbhiṇī-sūtikā-bāla-vṛddhān grīṣme 'parān api | māṃsa-kṣīra-sitā-sarpir-madhura-snigdha-vastibhiḥ || 9 || svapna-śayyā-sukhābhyaṅga-snāna-nirvṛti-harṣaṇaiḥ | mehāma-doṣāti-snigdha-jvaroru-stambha-kuṣṭhinaḥ || 10 || visarpa-vidradhi-plīha-śiraḥ-kaṇṭhākṣi-rogiṇaḥ | sthūlāṃś ca laṅghayen nityaṃ śiśire tv aparān api || 11 || tatra saṃśodhanaiḥ sthaulya-bala-pitta-kaphādhikān | āma-doṣa-jvara-cchardir-atīsāra-hṛd-āmayaiḥ || 12 || vibandha-gauravodgāra-hṛl-lāsādibhir āturān | madhya-sthaulyādikān prāyaḥ pūrvaṃ pācana-dīpanaiḥ || 13 || ebhir evāmayair ārtān hīna-sthaulya-balādhikān | kṣut-tṛṣṇā-nigrahair doṣais tv ārtān madhya-balair dṛḍhān || 14 || 14.14cv kṣut-tṛṣṇā-nigrahair doṣair 14.14cv kṣut-tṛṣṇā-nigrahair doṣaiś 14.14dv cārtān madhya-balair dṛḍhān samīraṇātapāyāsaiḥ kim utālpa-balair narān | na bṛṃhayel laṅghanīyān bṛṃhyāṃs tu mṛdu laṅghayet || 15 || yuktyā vā deśa-kālādi-balatas tān upācaret | bṛṃhite syād balaṃ puṣṭis tat-sādhyāmaya-saṃkṣayaḥ || 16 || vi-malendriya-tā sargo malānāṃ lāghavaṃ ruciḥ | kṣut-tṛṭ-sahodayaḥ śuddha-hṛdayodgāra-kaṇṭha-tā || 17 || vyādhi-mārdavam utsāhas tandrā-nāśaś ca laṅghite | an-apekṣita-mātrādi-sevite kurutas tu te || 18 || ati-sthaulyāti-kārśyādīn vakṣyante te ca sauṣadhāḥ | rūpaṃ tair eva ca jñeyam ati-bṛṃhita-laṅghite || 19 || 14.19cv rūpaṃ tair eva vijñeyam ati-sthaulyāpacī-meha-jvarodara-bhagandarān | kāsa-saṃnyāsa-kṛcchrāma-kuṣṭhādīn ati-dāruṇān || 20 || tatra medo-'nila-śleṣma-nāśanaṃ sarvam iṣyate | kulattha-jūrṇa-śyāmāka-yava-mudga-madhūdakam || 21 || mastu-daṇḍāhatāriṣṭa-cintā-śodhana-jāgaram | madhunā tri-phalāṃ lihyād guḍūcīm abhayāṃ ghanam || 22 || rasāñjanasya mahataḥ pañca-mūlasya gugguloḥ | śilā-jatu-prayogaś ca sāgnimantha-raso hitaḥ || 23 || 14.23cv śilāhvasya prayogaś ca viḍaṅgaṃ nāgaraṃ kṣāraḥ kāla-loha-rajo madhu | yavāmalaka-cūrṇaṃ ca yogo 'ti-sthaulya-doṣa-jit || 24 || vyoṣa-kaṭvī-varā-śigru-viḍaṅgātiviṣā-sthirāḥ | hiṅgu-sauvarcalājājī-yavānī-dhānya-citrakāḥ || 25 || niśe bṛhatyau hapuṣā pāṭhā mūlaṃ ca kembukāt | eṣāṃ cūrṇaṃ madhu ghṛtaṃ tailaṃ ca sadṛśāṃśakam || 26 || 14.26dv tailaṃ ca sadṛśāṃśikam saktubhiḥ ṣo-ḍaśa-guṇair yuktaṃ pītaṃ nihanti tat | ati-sthaulyādikān sarvān rogān anyāṃś ca tad-vidhān || 27 || hṛd-roga-kāmalā-śvitra-śvāsa-kāsa-gala-grahān | buddhi-medhā-smṛti-karaṃ saṃnasyāgneś ca dīpanam || 28 || ati-kārśyaṃ bhramaḥ kāsas tṛṣṇādhikyam a-rocakaḥ | snehāgni-nidrā-dṛk-śrotra-śukraujaḥ-kṣut-svara-kṣayaḥ || 29 || 14.29av ati-kārśyaṃ bhramaḥ śvāsa- 14.29bv -tṛṣṇādhikyam a-rocakaḥ vasti-hṛn-mūrdha-jaṅghoru-trika-pārśva-rujā jvaraḥ | pralāpordhvānila-glāni-cchardi-parvāsthi-bhedanam || 30 || 14.30dv -cchardiḥ-parvāsthi-bhedanam varco-mūtra-grahādyāś ca jāyante 'ti-vilaṅghanāt | kārśyam eva varaṃ sthaulyān na hi sthūlasya bheṣajam || 31 || 14.31av viṇ-mūtrādi-grahādyāś ca 14.31dv na hi sthaulyasya bheṣajam bṛṃhaṇaṃ laṅghanaṃ vālam ati-medo-'gni-vāta-jit | madhura-snigdha-sauhityair yat saukhyena ca naśyati || 32 || 14.32av bṛṃhaṇaṃ laṅghanaṃ nālam 14.32cv madhura-sneha-sauhityair 14.32dv yat saukhyena vinaśyati kraśimā sthavimāty-anta-viparīta-niṣevaṇaiḥ | yojayed bṛṃhaṇaṃ tatra sarvaṃ pānānna-bheṣajam || 33 || a-cintayā harṣaṇena dhruvaṃ saṃtarpaṇena ca | svapna-prasaṅgāc ca kṛśo varāha iva puṣyati || 34 || 14.34av a-cintayā praharṣeṇa 14.34cv svapna-prasaṅgāc ca naro na hi māṃsa-samaṃ kiñ-cid anyad deha-bṛhat-tva-kṛt | māṃsāda-māṃsaṃ māṃsena saṃbhṛta-tvād viśeṣataḥ || 35 || 14.35dv saṃbhṛta-tvād viśiṣyate 14.35dv saṃbhṛta-tvād bṛhat-tva-kṛt guru cā-tarpaṇaṃ sthūle viparītaṃ hitaṃ kṛśe | yava-godhūmam ubhayos tad-yogyāhita-kalpanam || 36 || 14.36dv tad-yogya-hita-kalpanam 14.36dv tato grāhita-kalpanam doṣa-gatyātiricyante grāhi-bhedy-ādi-bhedataḥ | upakramā na te dvi-tvād bhinnā api gadā iva || 37 || 14.37cv upakramā na tu dvi-tvād Sūtrasthāna madana-madhuka-lambā-nimba-bimbī-viśālā-trapusa-kuṭaja-mūrvā-devadālī-kṛmighnam | vidula-dahana-citrāḥ kośavatyau karañjaḥ kaṇa-lavaṇa-vacailā-sarṣapāś chardanāni || 1 || nikumbha-kumbha-tri-phalā-gavākṣī-snuk-śaṅkhinī-nīlini-tilvakāni | śamyāka-kampillaka-hemadugdhā dugdhaṃ ca mūtraṃ ca virecanāni || 2 || madana-kuṭaja-kuṣṭha-devadālī-madhuka-vacā-daśa-mūla-dāru-rāsnāḥ | yava-miśi-kṛtavedhanaṃ kulatthā madhu lavaṇaṃ trivṛtā nirūhaṇāni || 3 || 15.3cv yava-miśi-kṛtavedhanaṃ kulattho vellāpāmārga-vyoṣa-dārvī-surālā bījaṃ śairīṣaṃ bārhataṃ śaigravaṃ ca | sāro mādhūkaḥ saindhavaṃ tārkṣya-śailaṃ truṭyau pṛthvīkā śodhayanty uttamāṅgam || 4 || bhadradāru nataṃ kuṣṭhaṃ daśa-mūlaṃ balā-dvayam | vāyuṃ vīratarādiś ca vidāry-ādiś ca nāśayet || 5 || 15.5bv daśa-mūlaṃ balā-trayam 15.5dv vidāry-ādiś ca śodhayet dūrvānantā nimba-vāsātmaguptā gundrābhīruḥ śītapākī priyaṅguḥ | nyagrodhādiḥ padmakādiḥ sthire dve padmaṃ vanyaṃ śārivādiś ca pittam || 6 || āragvadhādir arkādir muṣkakādyo 'sanādikaḥ | surasādiḥ sa-mustādir vatsakādir balāsa-jit || 7 || jīvantī-kākolyau mede dve mudga-māṣaparṇyau ca | ṛṣabhaka-jīvaka-madhukaṃ ceti gaṇo jīvanīyākhyaḥ || 8 || vidāri-pañcāṅgula-vṛścikālī-vṛścīva-devāhvaya-śūrpaparṇyaḥ | kaṇḍūkarī jīvana-hrasva-saṃjñe dve pañcake gopasutā tripādī || 9 || 15.9bv -vṛścīva-devā-dvaya-śūrpaparṇyaḥ 15.9dv kaṇḍūkarī gopasutā tripādī vidāry-ādir ayaṃ hṛdyo bṛṃhaṇo vāta-pitta-hā | śoṣa-gulmāṅga-mardordhva-śvāsa-kāsa-haro gaṇaḥ || 10 || 15.10cv śoṣa-gulmāṅga-sādordhva- śārivośīra-kāśmarya-madhūka-śiśira-dvayam | yaṣṭī parūṣakaṃ hanti dāha-pittāsra-tṛḍ-jvarān || 11 || padmaka-puṇḍrau vṛddhi-tugarddhyaḥ śṛṅgy amṛtā daśa jīvana-saṃjñāḥ | stanya-karā ghnantīraṇa-pittaṃ prīṇana-jīvana-bṛṃhaṇa-vṛṣyāḥ || 12 || parūṣakaṃ varā drākṣā kaṭphalaṃ katakāt phalam | rājāhvaṃ dāḍimaṃ śākaṃ tṛṇ-mūtrāmaya-vāta-jit || 13 || añjanaṃ phalinī māṃsī padmotpala-rasāñjanam | sailā-madhuka-nāgāhvaṃ viṣāntar-dāha-pitta-nut || 14 || 15.14dv viṣāntar-dāha-pitta-jit 15.14dv viṣāntar-dāha-pitta-hṛt paṭola-kaṭu-rohiṇī-candanaṃ madhusrava-guḍūci-pāṭhānvitam | nihanti kapha-pitta-kuṣṭha-jvarān viṣaṃ vamim a-rocakaṃ kāmalām || 15 || guḍūcī-padmakāriṣṭa-dhānakā-rakta-candanam | pitta-śleṣma-jvara-cchardi-dāha-tṛṣṇā-ghnam agni-kṛt || 16 || 15.16bv -dhānyakā-rakta-candanam 15.16bv -dhānyakaṃ rakta-candanam 15.16bv -dhanikā-rakta-candanam āragvadhendrayava-pāṭali-kākatiktā-nimbāmṛtā-madhurasā-sruva-vṛkṣa-pāṭhāḥ | bhūnimba-sairyaka-paṭola-karañja-yugma-saptacchadāgni-suṣavī-phala-bāṇa-ghoṇṭāḥ || 17 || āragvadhādir jayati cchardi-kuṣṭha-viṣa-jvarān | kaphaṃ kaṇḍūṃ pramehaṃ ca duṣṭa-vraṇa-viśodhanaḥ || 18 || 15.18dv medodara-viśodhanaḥ asana-tiniśa-bhūrja-śvetavāha-prakīryāḥ khadira-kadara-bhaṇḍī-śiṃśipā-meṣaśṛṅgyaḥ | tri-hima-tala-palāśā joṅgakaḥ śāka-śālau kramuka-dhava-kaliṅga-cchāgakarṇāśvakarṇāḥ || 19 || asanādir vijayate śvitra-kuṣṭha-kapha-krimīn | pāṇḍu-rogaṃ pramehaṃ ca medo-doṣa-nibarhaṇaḥ || 20 || 15.20bv śvitra-kuṣṭha-vami-krimīn varuṇa-sairyaka-yugma-śatāvarī-dahana-moraṭa-bilva-viṣāṇikāḥ | dvi-bṛhatī-dvi-karañja-jayā-dvayaṃ bahalapallava-darbha-rujākarāḥ || 21 || 15.21av varaṇa-sairyaka-yugma-śatāvarī- varuṇādiḥ kaphaṃ medo mandāgni-tvaṃ niyacchati | āḍhya-vātaṃ śiraḥ-śūlaṃ gulmaṃ cāntaḥ sa-vidradhim || 22 || 15.22av varaṇādiḥ kaphaṃ medo 15.22cv adho-vātaṃ śiraḥ-śūlaṃ ūṣakas tutthakaṃ hiṅgu kāsīsa-dvaya-saindhavam | sa-śilā-jatu kṛcchrāśma-gulma-medaḥ-kaphāpaham || 23 || 15.23dv -gulma-meha-kaphāpaham vellantarāraṇika-būka-vṛṣāśmabheda-gokaṇṭaketkaṭa-sahācara-bāṇa-kāśāḥ | vṛkṣādanī-nala-kuśa-dvaya-guṇṭha-gundrā-bhallūka-moraṭa-kuraṇṭa-karambha-pārthāḥ || 24 || 15.24bv -gokaṇṭakotkaṭa-sahācara-bāṇa-kāśāḥ 15.24cv vṛkṣādanī-nala-kuśa-dvaya-guntha-gundrā- 15.24cv vṛkṣādanī-nala-kuśa-dvaya-guñcha-gundrā- 15.24cv vṛkṣādanī-nala-kuśa-dvaya-guccha-gundrā- vargo vīratarādyo 'yaṃ hanti vāta-kṛtān gadān | aśmarī-śarkarā-mūtra-kṛcchrāghāta-rujā-haraḥ || 25 || 15.25dv -kṛcchrāghāta-rujāpahaḥ lodhra-śābaraka-lodhra-palāśā jiṅginī-sarala-kaṭphala-yuktāḥ | kutsitāmba-kadalī-gataśokāḥ sailavālu-paripelava-mocāḥ || 26 || 15.26av lodhra-śābara-kadamba-palāśā 15.26bv jhiñjhiṇī-sarala-kaṭphala-yuktāḥ eṣa lodhrādiko nāma medaḥ-kapha-haro gaṇaḥ | yoni-doṣa-haraḥ stambhī varṇyo viṣa-vināśanaḥ || 27 || arkālarkau nāgadantī viśalyā bhārgī rāsnā vṛścikālī prakīryā | pratyakpuṣpī pītatailodakīryā śvetā-yugmaṃ tāpasānāṃ ca vṛkṣaḥ || 28 || ayam arkādiko vargaḥ kapha-medo-viṣāpahaḥ | kṛmi-kuṣṭha-praśamano viśeṣād vraṇa-śodhanaḥ || 29 || 15.29av ayam arkādiko nāma surasa-yuga-phaṇijjaṃ kālamālā viḍaṅgaṃ kharabusa-vṛṣakarṇī-kaṭphalaṃ kāsamardaḥ | kṣavaka-sarasi-bhārgī-kārmukāḥ kākamācī kulahala-viṣamuṣṭī bhūstṛṇo bhūtakeśī || 30 || 15.30bv kharabuka-vṛṣakarṇī-kaṭphalāḥ kāsamardaḥ 15.30bv kharabusa-vṛṣakarṇī-kaṭphalāḥ kāsamardaḥ 15.30bc kharamukha-vṛṣakarṇī-kaṭphalaṃ kāsamardaḥ 15.30cv kṣavaka-surasi-bhārgī-kārmukāḥ kākamācī 15.30cv kṣavaka-surasi-bhārgī-kāmukāḥ kākamācī 15.30cv kṣavaka-sarasi-bhārgī-kāmukāḥ kākamācī 15.30cv kṣavaka-svarasi-bhārgī-kārmukāḥ kākamācī surasādir gaṇaḥ śleṣma-medaḥ-kṛmi-niṣūdanaḥ | pratiśyāyā-ruci-śvāsa-kāsa-ghno vraṇa-śodhanaḥ || 31 || muṣkaka-snug-varā-dvīpi-palāśa-dhava-śiṃśipāḥ | gulma-mehāśmarī-pāṇḍu-medo-'rśaḥ-kapha-śukra-jit || 32 || 15.32bv -palāśa-dhava-śiṃśipam vatsaka-mūrvā-bhārgī-kaṭukā marīcaṃ ghuṇapriyā ca gaṇḍīram | elā pāṭhājājī kaṭvaṅga-phalājamoda-siddhārtha-vacāḥ || 33 || jīraka-hiṅgu-viḍaṅgaṃ paśugandhā pañca-kolakaṃ hanti | cala-kapha-medaḥ-pīnasa-gulma-jvara-śūla-dur-nāmnaḥ || 34 || 15.34dv paśugandhā pañca-kolakaṃ ghnanti vacā-jalada-devāhva-nāgarātiviṣābhayāḥ | haridrā-dvaya-yaṣṭy-āhva-kalaśī-kuṭajodbhavāḥ || 35 || vacā-haridrādi-gaṇāv āmātīsāra-nāśanau | medaḥ-kaphāḍhya-pavana-stanya-doṣa-nibarhaṇau || 36 || 15.36bv āmātīsāra-pācanau priyaṅgu-puṣpāñjana-yugma-padmāḥ padmād rajo yojanavally anantā | mānadrumo moca-rasaḥ samaṅgā punnāga-śītaṃ madanīya-hetuḥ || 37 || 15.37cv sāradrumo moca-rasaḥ samaṅgā 15.37dv punnāma-śītaṃ madanīya-hetuḥ ambaṣṭhā madhukaṃ namaskarī nandīvṛkṣa-palāśa-kacchurāḥ | lodhraṃ dhātaki-bilva-peśike kaṭvaṅgaḥ kamalodbhavaṃ rajaḥ || 38 || gaṇau priyaṅgv-ambaṣṭhādī pakvātīsāra-nāśanau | saṃdhānīyau hitau pitte vraṇānām api ropaṇau || 39 || mustā-vacāgni-dvi-niśā-dvi-tiktā-bhallāta-pāṭhā-tri-phalā-viṣākhyāḥ | kuṣṭhaṃ truṭī haimavatī ca yoni-stanyāmaya-ghnā mala-pācanāś ca || 40 || nyagrodha-pippala-sadāphala-lodhra-yugmaṃ jambū-dvayārjuna-kapītana-somavalkāḥ | plakṣāmra-vañjula-piyāla-palāśa-nandī-kolī-kadamba-viralā-madhukaṃ madhūkam || 41 || 15.41av nyagrodha-pippala-sadāphala-lodhra-yugma- 15.41bv -jambū-dvayārjuna-kapītana-somavalkāḥ nyagrodhādir gaṇo vraṇyaḥ saṃgrāhī bhagna-sādhanaḥ | medaḥ-pittāsra-tṛḍ-dāha-yoni-roga-nibarhaṇaḥ || 42 || 15.42av nyagrodhādir gaṇo varṇyaḥ 15.42dv -yoni-doṣa-nibarhaṇaḥ elā-yugma-turuṣka-kuṣṭha-phalinī-māṃsī-jala-dhyāmakaṃ || 43a || spṛkkā-coraka-coca-pattra-tagara-sthauṇeya-jātī-rasāḥ || 43b || 15.43bv -spṛkkā-coraka-coca-pattra-tagara-sthauṇeya-jātī-rasāḥ śuktir vyāghranakho 'marāhvam aguruḥ śrīvāsakaḥ kuṅkumaṃ || 43c || 15.43cv śuktir vyāghranakho 'marāhvam aguruḥ śrīvāsakaṃ kuṅkumaṃ 15.43cv śukti-vyāghranakhau surāhvam aguruḥ śrīveṣṭakaḥ kuṅkumaṃ caṇḍā-guggulu-deva-dhūpa-khapurāḥ punnāga-nāgāhvayam || 43d || elādiko vāta-kaphau viṣaṃ ca viniyacchati | varṇa-prasādanaḥ kaṇḍū-piṭikā-koṭha-nāśanaḥ || 44 || 15.44cv varṇyaḥ prasādanaḥ kaṇḍū- śyāmā-dantī-dravantī-kramuka-kuṭaraṇā-śaṅkhinī-carma-sāhvā- || 45a || 15.45av śyāmā-dantī-dravantī-kramuka-kuṭaraṇī-śaṅkhinī-carma-sāhvā- -svarṇakṣīrī-gavākṣī-śikhari-rajanaka-cchinnarohā-karañjāḥ || 45b || bastāntrī vyādhighāto bahala-bahu-rasas tīkṣṇavṛkṣāt phalāni || 45c || 15.45cv bastāntrī vyādhighāto bahula-bahu-rasas tīkṣṇavṛkṣāt phalāni śyāmādyo hanti gulmaṃ viṣama-ruci-kaphau hṛd-rujaṃ mūtra-kṛcchram || 45d || trayas-triṃśad iti proktā vargās teṣu tv a-lābhataḥ | yuñjyāt tad-vidham anyac ca dravyaṃ jahyād a-yaugikam || 46 || ete vargā doṣa-dūṣyādy apekṣya kalka-kvātha-sneha-lehādi-yuktāḥ | pāne nasye 'nvāsane 'ntar bahir vā lepābhyaṅgair ghnanti rogān su-kṛcchrān || 47 || 15.47av ete vargā doṣa-dūṣyādy avekṣya 15.47dv sekālepair ghnanti rogān su-kṛcchrān 15.47dv svedābhyaṅgair ghnanti rogān su-kṛcchrān Sūtrasthāna guru-śīta-sara-snigdha-manda-sūkṣma-mṛdu-dravam | auṣadhaṃ snehanaṃ prāyo viparītaṃ virūkṣaṇam || 1 || sarpir majjā vasā tailaṃ sneheṣu pravaraṃ matam | tatrāpi cottamaṃ sarpiḥ saṃskārasyānuvartanāt || 2 || mādhuryād a-vidāhi-tvāj janmādy eva ca śīlanāt | pitta-ghnās te yathā-pūrvam itara-ghnā yathottaram || 3 || ghṛtāt tailaṃ guru vasā tailān majjā tato 'pi ca | dvābhyāṃ tribhiś caturbhis tair yamakas tri-vṛto mahān || 4 || svedya-saṃśodhya-madya-strī-vyāyāmāsakta-cintakāḥ | vṛddha-bālā-bala-kṛśā rūkṣāḥ kṣīṇāsra-retasaḥ || 5 || vātārta-syanda-timira-dāruṇa-pratibodhinaḥ | snehyā na tv ati-mandāgni-tīkṣṇāgni-sthūla-dur-balāḥ || 6 || ūru-stambhātisārāma-gala-roga-garodaraiḥ | mūrchā-chardy-a-ruci-śleṣma-tṛṣṇā-madyaiś ca pīḍitāḥ || 7 || apaprasūtā yukte ca nasye vastau virecane | tatra dhī-smṛti-medhādi-kāṅkṣiṇāṃ śasyate ghṛtam || 8 || 16.8cv tatra dhī-smṛti-medhāgni- granthi-nāḍī-kṛmi-śleṣma-medo-māruta-rogiṣu | tailaṃ lāghava-dārḍhyārthi-krūra-koṣṭheṣu dehiṣu || 9 || vātātapādhva-bhāra-strī-vyāyāma-kṣīṇa-dhātuṣu | rūkṣa-kleśa-kṣamāty-agni-vātāvṛta-patheṣu ca || 10 || śeṣau vasā tu saṃdhy-asthi-marma-koṣṭha-rujāsu ca | tathā dagdhāhata-bhraṣṭa-yoni-karṇa-śiro-ruji || 11 || tailaṃ prāvṛṣi varṣānte sarpir anyau tu mādhave | ṛtau sādhāraṇe snehaḥ śasto 'hni vi-male ravau || 12 || tailaṃ tvarāyāṃ śīte 'pi gharme 'pi ca ghṛtaṃ niśi | niśy eva pitte pavane saṃsarge pitta-vaty api || 13 || niśy anya-thā vāta-kaphād rogāḥ syuḥ pittato divā | yuktyāvacārayet snehaṃ bhakṣyādy-annena vastibhiḥ || 14 || nasyābhyañjana-gaṇḍūṣa-mūrdha-karṇākṣi-tarpaṇaiḥ | rasa-bhedaikaka-tvābhyāṃ catuḥ-ṣaṣṭir vicāraṇāḥ || 15 || snehasyānyābhibhūta-tvād alpa-tvāc ca kramāt smṛtāḥ | yathokta-hetv-a-bhāvāc ca nāccha-peyo vicāraṇā || 16 || 16.16av snehasyānnābhibhūta-tvād 16.16dv nācchaḥ peyo vicāraṇā snehasya kalpaḥ sa śreṣṭhaḥ sneha-karmāśu-sādhanāt | dvābhyāṃ caturbhir aṣṭābhir yāmair jīryanti yāḥ kramāt || 17 || hrasva-madhyottamā mātrās tās tābhyaś ca hrasīyasīm | kalpayed vīkṣya doṣādīn prāg eva tu hrasīyasīm || 18 || hyastane jīrṇa evānne sneho 'cchaḥ śuddhaye bahuḥ | śamanaḥ kṣud-vato 'n-anno madhya-mātraś ca śasyate || 19 || bṛṃhaṇo rasa-madyādyaiḥ sa-bhakto 'lpo hitaḥ sa ca | bāla-vṛddha-pipāsārta-sneha-dviṇ-madya-śīliṣu || 20 || 16.20bv sa-bhakto 'lpo hitaś ca saḥ strī-sneha-nitya-mandāgni-sukhita-kleśa-bhīruṣu | mṛdu-koṣṭhālpa-doṣeṣu kāle coṣṇe kṛśeṣu ca || 21 || prāṅ-madhyottara-bhakto 'sāv adho-madhyordhva-deha-jān | vyādhīñ jayed balaṃ kuryād aṅgānāṃ ca yathā-kramam || 22 || vāry uṣṇam acche 'nupibet snehe tat sukha-paktaye | āsyopalepa-śuddhyai ca taubarāruṣkare na tu || 23 || mūrchā dāho '-ratis tṛṣṇā jṛmbhā moha-bhrama-klamāḥ | bhavanti jīryati snehe jīrṇaḥ syāt taiḥ śamaṃ gataiḥ || 23+1 || jīrṇā-jīrṇa-viśaṅkāyāṃ punar uṣṇodakaṃ pibet | tenodgāra-viśuddhiḥ syāt tataś ca laghu-tā ruciḥ || 24 || bhojyo 'nnaṃ mātrayā pāsyan śvaḥ piban pīta-vān api | dravoṣṇam an-abhiṣyandi nāti-snigdham a-saṃkaram || 25 || uṣṇodakopacārī syād brahma-cārī kṣapāśayaḥ | na vega-rodhī vyāyāma-krodha-śoka-himātapān || 26 || pravāta-yāna-yānādhva-bhāṣyāty-āsana-saṃsthitīḥ | nīcāty-uccopadhānāhaḥ-svapna-dhūma-rajāṃsi ca || 27 || 16.27bv -bhāṣyābhyāsana-saṃsthitīḥ 16.27bv -bhāṣyāty-aśana-saṃsthitīḥ 16.27bv -bhāṣyāty-āśana-saṃsthitīḥ yāny ahāni pibet tāni tāvanty anyāny api tyajet | sarva-karmasv ayaṃ prāyo vyādhi-kṣīṇeṣu ca kramaḥ || 28 || upacāras tu śamane kāryaḥ snehe virikta-vat | try-aham acchaṃ mṛdau koṣṭhe krūre sapta-dinaṃ pibet || 29 || samyak-snigdho 'tha-vā yāvad ataḥ sātmyī-bhavet param | vātānulomyaṃ dīpto 'gnir varcaḥ snigdham a-saṃhatam || 30 || snehodvegaḥ klamaḥ samyak-snigdhe rūkṣe viparyayaḥ | ati-snigdhe tu pāṇḍu-tvaṃ ghrāṇa-vaktra-guda-sravāḥ || 31 || 16.31av mṛdu-snigdhāṅga-tā glāniḥ 16.31bv snehodvego 'tha lāghavam 16.31bv snehodvego 'ṅga-lāghavam 16.31cv ati-snigdhe tu pāṇḍu-tva- 16.31cv vi-malendriya-tā samyak- 16.31dv -ghrāṇa-vaktra-guda-sravāḥ 16.31dv -snigdhe rūkṣe viparyayaḥ a-mātrayā-hito '-kāle mithyāhāra-vihārataḥ | snehaḥ karoti śophārśas-tandrā-stambha-vi-saṃjña-tāḥ || 32 || kaṇḍū-kuṣṭha-jvarotkleśa-śūlānāha-bhramādikān | kṣut-tṛṣṇollekhana-sveda-rūkṣa-pānānna-bheṣajam || 33 || 16.33bv -śūlānāha-bala-kṣayān 16.33cv kṣut-tṛṣṇollekhanaṃ svedo 16.33dv rūkṣaṃ pānānna-bheṣajam takrāriṣṭa-khaloddāla-yava-śyāmāka-kodravāḥ | pippalī-tri-phalā-kṣaudra-pathyā-go-mūtra-guggulu || 34 || 16.34av takrāriṣṭaṃ khaloddāla- 16.34bv -yava-śyāmāka-kodravam yathā-svaṃ prati-rogaṃ ca sneha-vyāpadi sādhanam | virūkṣaṇe laṅghana-vat kṛtāti-kṛta-lakṣaṇam || 35 || snigdha-dravoṣṇa-dhanvottha-rasa-bhuk svedam ācaret | snigdhas try-ahaṃ sthitaḥ kuryād virekaṃ vamanaṃ punaḥ || 36 || 16.36bv -rasa-bhuk svedam ācaran ekāhaṃ dinam anyac ca kapham utkleśya tat-karaiḥ | māṃsalā medurā bhūri-śleṣmāṇo viṣamāgnayaḥ || 37 || snehocitāś ca ye snehyās tān pūrvaṃ rūkṣayet tataḥ | saṃsnehya śodhayed evaṃ sneha-vyāpan na jāyate || 38 || alaṃ malān īrayituṃ snehaś cā-sātmya-tāṃ gataḥ | bāla-vṛddhādiṣu sneha-parihārā-sahiṣṇuṣu || 39 || yogān imān an-udvegān sadyaḥ-snehān prayojayet | prājya-māṃsa-rasās teṣu peyā vā sneha-bharjitā || 40 || 16.40dv peyā vā sneha-bharjitāḥ tila-cūrṇaś ca sa-sneha-phāṇitaḥ kṛśarā tathā | kṣīra-peyā ghṛtāḍhyoṣṇā dadhno vā sa-guḍaḥ saraḥ || 41 || 16.41av tila-cūrṇaṃ ca sa-sneha- 16.41bv -phāṇitaṃ kṛśarā tathā peyā ca pañca-prasṛtā snehais taṇḍula-pañcamaiḥ | saptaite snehanāḥ sadyaḥ snehāś ca lavaṇolbaṇāḥ || 42 || 16.42dv snehaś ca lavaṇolbaṇaḥ tad dhy abhiṣyandy a-rūkṣaṃ ca sūkṣmam uṣṇaṃ vyavāyi ca | guḍānūpāmiṣa-kṣīra-tila-māṣa-surā-dadhi || 43 || 16.43av tad dhi viṣyandy a-rūkṣaṃ ca kuṣṭha-śopha-prameheṣu snehārthaṃ na prakalpayet | tri-phalā-pippalī-pathyā-guggulv-ādi-vipācitān || 44 || snehān yathā-svam eteṣāṃ yojayed a-vikāriṇaḥ | kṣīṇānāṃ tv āmayair agni-deha-saṃdhukṣaṇa-kṣamān || 45 || 16.45av kṣīṇānām āmayair agni- dīptāntarāgniḥ pariśuddha-koṣṭhaḥ pratyagra-dhātur bala-varṇa-yuktaḥ | dṛḍhendriyo manda-jaraḥ śatāyuḥ snehopasevī puruṣaḥ pradiṣṭaḥ || 46 || Sūtrasthāna svedas tāpopanāhoṣma-drava-bhedāc catur-vidhaḥ | tāpo 'gni-tapta-vasana-phāla-hasta-talādibhiḥ || 1 || upanāho vacā-kiṇva-śatāhvā-devadārubhiḥ | dhānyaiḥ samastair gandhaiś ca rāsnairaṇḍa-jaṭāmiṣaiḥ || 2 || udrikta-lavaṇaiḥ sneha-cukra-takra-payaḥ-plutaiḥ | kevale pavane śleṣma-saṃsṛṣṭe surasādibhiḥ || 3 || pittena padmakādyais tu śālvaṇākhyaiḥ punaḥ punaḥ | snigdhoṣṇa-vīryair mṛdubhiś carma-paṭṭair a-pūtibhiḥ || 4 || 17.4av pittena padmakādyaiś ca 17.4bv śālvalākhyaiḥ punaḥ punaḥ a-lābhe vāta-jit pattra-kauśeyāvika-śāṭakaiḥ | baddhaṃ rātrau divā muñcen muñced rātrau divā-kṛtam || 5 || ūṣmā tūtkārikā-loṣṭa-kapālopala-pāṃsubhiḥ | pattra-bhaṅgena dhānyena karīṣa-sikatā-tuṣaiḥ || 6 || anekopāya-saṃtaptaiḥ prayojyo deśa-kālataḥ | śigru-vāraṇakairaṇḍa-karañja-surasārjakāt || 7 || śirīṣa-vāsā-vaṃśārka-mālatī-dīrghavṛntataḥ | pattra-bhaṅgair vacādyaiś ca māṃsaiś cānūpa-vāri-jaiḥ || 8 || daśa-mūlena ca pṛthak sahitair vā yathā-malam | sneha-vadbhiḥ surā-śukta-vāri-kṣīrādi-sādhitaiḥ || 9 || kumbhīr galantīr nāḍīr vā pūrayitvā rujārditam | vāsasācchāditaṃ gātraṃ snigdhaṃ siñced yathā-sukham || 10 || 17.10cv vastrāvacchāditaṃ gātraṃ tair eva vā dravaiḥ pūrṇaṃ kuṇḍaṃ sarvāṅga-ge 'nile | avagāhyāturas tiṣṭhed arśaḥ-kṛcchrādi-rukṣu ca || 11 || nivāte 'ntar-bahiḥ-snigdho jīrṇānnaḥ svedam ācaret | vyādhi-vyādhita-deśartu-vaśān madhya-varāvaram || 12 || 17.12av nir-vāte 'ntar-bahiḥ-snigdho kaphārto rūkṣaṇaṃ rūkṣo rūkṣaḥ snigdhaṃ kaphānile | āmāśaya-gate vāyau kaphe pakvāśayāśrite || 13 || 17.13av kaphe taṃ rūkṣaṇai rūkṣo rūkṣa-pūrvaṃ tathā sneha-pūrvaṃ sthānānurodhataḥ | alpaṃ vaṅkṣaṇayoḥ sv-alpaṃ dṛṅ-muṣka-hṛdaye na vā || 14 || 17.14cv alpaṃ vaṅkṣaṇayoḥ svedaṃ śīta-śūla-kṣaye svinno jāte 'ṅgānāṃ ca mārdave | syāc chanair mṛditaḥ snātas tataḥ sneha-vidhiṃ bhajet || 15 || pittāsra-kopa-tṛṇ-mūrchā-svarāṅga-sadana-bhramāḥ | saṃdhi-pīḍā jvaraḥ śyāva-rakta-maṇḍala-darśanam || 16 || svedāti-yogāc chardiś ca tatra stambhanam auṣadham | viṣa-kṣārāgny-atīsāra-cchardi-mohātureṣu ca || 17 || svedanaṃ guru tīkṣṇoṣṇaṃ prāyaḥ stambhanam anya-thā | drava-sthira-sara-snigdha-rūkṣa-sūkṣmaṃ ca bheṣajam || 18 || svedanaṃ stambhanaṃ ślakṣṇaṃ rūkṣa-sūkṣma-sara-dravam | prāyas tiktaṃ kaṣāyaṃ ca madhuraṃ ca samāsataḥ || 19 || stambhitaḥ syād bale labdhe yathoktāmaya-saṃkṣayāt | stambha-tvak-snāyu-saṃkoca-kampa-hṛd-vāg-ghanu-grahaiḥ || 20 || pādauṣṭha-tvak-karaiḥ śyāvair ati-stambhitam ādiśet | na svedayed ati-sthūla-rūkṣa-dur-bala-mūrchitān || 21 || stambhanīya-kṣata-kṣīṇa-kṣāma-madya-vikāriṇaḥ | timirodara-vīsarpa-kuṣṭha-śoṣāḍhya-rogiṇaḥ || 22 || 17.22dv -kuṣṭha-śophāḍhya-rogiṇaḥ pīta-dugdha-dadhi-sneha-madhūn kṛta-virecanān | bhraṣṭa-dagdha-guda-glāni-krodha-śoka-bhayārditān || 23 || 17.23dv -krodha-śoka-bhayānvitān 17.23dv -krodha-rakta-kṣayānvitān kṣut-tṛṣṇā-kāmalā-pāṇḍu-mehinaḥ pitta-pīḍitān | garbhiṇīṃ puṣpitāṃ sūtāṃ mṛdu cātyayike gade || 24 || 17.24dv mṛdu tv ātyayike gade śvāsa-kāsa-pratiśyāya-hidhmādhmāna-vibandhiṣu | svara-bhedānila-vyādhi-śleṣmāma-stambha-gaurave || 25 || aṅga-marda-kaṭī-pārśva-pṛṣṭha-kukṣi-hanu-grahe | mahat-tve muṣkayoḥ khalyām āyāme vāta-kaṇṭake || 26 || mūtra-kṛcchrārbuda-granthi-śukrāghātāḍhya-mārute | svedaṃ yathā-yathaṃ kuryāt tad-auṣadha-vibhāgataḥ || 27 || svedo hitas tv an-āgneyo vāte medaḥ-kaphāvṛte | nivātaṃ gṛham āyāso guru-prāvaraṇaṃ bhayam || 28 || upanāhāhava-krodhā bhūri-pānaṃ kṣudhātapaḥ || 28ū̆ || 17.28ū̆av upanāhāhava-krodha- 17.28ū̆bv -bhūri-pānaṃ kṣudhātapaḥ 17.28ū̆bv bhūri-pāna-kṣud-ātapaḥ svedayanti daśaitāni naram agni-guṇād ṛte || 28ū̆+1 || sneha-klinnāḥ koṣṭha-gā dhātu-gā vā sroto-līnā ye ca śākhāsthi-saṃsthāḥ | doṣāḥ svedais te dravī-kṛtya koṣṭhaṃ nītāḥ samyak śuddhibhir nirhriyante || 29 || Sūtrasthāna kaphe vidadhyād vamanaṃ saṃyoge vā kapholbaṇe | tad-vad virecanaṃ pitte viśeṣeṇa tu vāmayet || 1 || nava-jvarātisārādhaḥ-pittāsṛg-rāja-yakṣmiṇaḥ | kuṣṭha-mehāpacī-granthi-ślīpadonmāda-kāsinaḥ || 2 || śvāsa-hṛl-lāsa-vīsarpa-stanya-doṣordhva-rogiṇaḥ | a-vāmyā garbhiṇī rūkṣaḥ kṣudhito nitya-duḥkhitaḥ || 3 || 18.3bv -stanya-rogordhva-rogiṇaḥ 18.3cv a-vāmyā garbhiṇī-rūkṣa- 18.3dv -kṣudhitā nitya-duḥkhitāḥ bāla-vṛddha-kṛśa-sthūla-hṛd-rogi-kṣata-dur-balāḥ | prasakta-vamathu-plīha-timira-kṛmi-koṣṭhinaḥ || 4 || ūrdhva-pravṛtta-vāyv-asra-datta-vasti-hata-svarāḥ | mūtrāghāty udarī gulmī dur-vamo 'ty-agnir arśasaḥ || 5 || 18.5av ūrdhva-pravṛtta-vātāsra- udāvarta-bhramāṣṭhīlā-pārśva-rug-vāta-rogiṇaḥ | ṛte viṣa-garā-jīrṇa-viruddhābhyavahārataḥ || 6 || 18.6av udāvarta-śramāṣṭhīlā- prasakta-vamathoḥ pūrve prāyeṇāma-jvaro 'pi ca | dhūmāntaiḥ karmabhir varjyāḥ sarvair eva tv a-jīrṇinaḥ || 7 || vireka-sādhyā gulmārśo-visphoṭa-vyaṅga-kāmalāḥ | jīrṇa-jvarodara-gara-cchardi-plīha-halīmakāḥ || 8 || 18.8cv jīrṇa-jvarodara-cchardi- 18.8dv -plīhānāha-halīmakāḥ 18.8dv -plīha-pāṇḍu-halīmakāḥ vidradhis timiraṃ kācaḥ syandaḥ pakvāśaya-vyathā | yoni-śukrāśrayā rogāḥ koṣṭha-gāḥ kṛmayo vraṇāḥ || 9 || 18.9cv yoni-śukra-gatā rogāḥ 18.9cv yoni-śukrāśayā rogāḥ vātāsram ūrdhva-gaṃ raktaṃ mūtrāghātaḥ śakṛd-grahaḥ | vāmyaś ca kuṣṭha-mehādyā na tu recyā nava-jvarī || 10 || 18.10av vātāsṛg ūrdhva-gaṃ raktaṃ 18.10dv na tu recyo nava-jvarī alpāgny-adho-ga-pittāsra-kṣata-pāyv-atisāriṇaḥ | sa-śalyāsthāpita-krūra-koṣṭhāti-snigdha-śoṣiṇaḥ || 11 || 18.11cv sa-śalyābhihata-krūra- atha sādhāraṇe kāle snigdha-svinnaṃ yathā-vidhi | śvo-vamyam utkliṣṭa-kaphaṃ matsya-māṣa-tilādibhiḥ || 12 || 18.12dv matsya-māṃsa-tilādibhiḥ 18.12dv māṃsa-māṣa-tilādibhiḥ niśāṃ suptaṃ su-jīrṇānnaṃ pūrvāhṇe kṛta-maṅgalam | nir-annam īṣat-snigdhaṃ vā peyayā pīta-sarpiṣam || 13 || 18.13av niśāṃ suptaṃ ca jīrṇānnaṃ vṛddha-bālā-bala-klība-bhīrūn rogānurodhataḥ | ā-kaṇṭhaṃ pāyitān madyaṃ kṣīram ikṣu-rasaṃ rasam || 14 || 18.14cv ā-kaṇṭhaṃ pāyayen madyaṃ yathā-vikāra-vihitāṃ madhu-saindhava-saṃyutām | koṣṭhaṃ vibhajya bhaiṣajya-mātrāṃ mantrābhimantritām || 15 || brahma-dakṣāśvi-rudrendra-bhū-candrārkānilānalāḥ | ṛṣayaḥ sauṣadhi-grāmā bhūta-saṃghāś ca pāntu vaḥ || 16 || rasāyanam ivarṣīṇām a-marāṇām ivāmṛtam | sudhevottama-nāgānāṃ bhaiṣajyam idam astu te || 17 || 18.17av rasāyanam ivarṣīṇāṃ 18.17bv devānām amṛtaṃ yathā namo bhaga-vate bhaiṣajya-gurave vaiḍūrya-prabha-rājāya || 17+1 || tathā-gatāyārhate samyak-saṃbuddhāya || 17+2 || tad yathā || 17+3 || bhaiṣajye bhaiṣajye mahā-bhaiṣajye samudgate svāhā || 17+4 || 18.17+4v bhaiṣajye bhaiṣajye mahā-bhaiṣajye bhaiṣajya-samudgate svāhā 18.17+4v bhaiṣajye mahā-bhaiṣajye samudgate svāhā prāṅ-mukhaṃ pāyayet pīto muhūrtam anupālayet | tan-manā jāta-hṛl-lāsa-prasekaś chardayet tataḥ || 18 || 18.18av prāṅ-mukhaṃ pāyayet pītaṃ 18.18av prāṅ-mukhaṃ pāyayet pīte 18.18dv -prasekaṃ chardayet tataḥ aṅgulībhyām an-āyasto nālena mṛdunātha-vā | gala-tālv a-rujan vegān a-pravṛttān pravartayan || 19 || 18.19dv nā-pravṛttān pravartayan 18.19dv nā-pravṛttān pravartayet 18.19dv a-pravṛttān pravartayet pravartayan pravṛttāṃś ca jānu-tulyāsane sthitaḥ | ubhe pārśve lalāṭaṃ ca vamataś cāsya dhārayet || 20 || prapīḍayet tathā nābhiṃ pṛṣṭhaṃ ca pratilomataḥ | kaphe tīkṣṇoṣṇa-kaṭukaiḥ pitte svādu-himair iti || 21 || vamet snigdhāmla-lavaṇaiḥ saṃsṛṣṭe marutā kaphe | pittasya darśanaṃ yāvac chedo vā śleṣmaṇo bhavet || 22 || hīna-vegaḥ kaṇā-dhātrī-siddhārtha-lavaṇodakaiḥ | vamet punaḥ punas tatra vegānām a-pravartanam || 23 || pravṛttiḥ sa-vibandhā vā kevalasyauṣadhasya vā | a-yogas tena niṣṭhīva-kaṇḍū-koṭha-jvarādayaḥ || 24 || nir-vibandhaṃ pravartante kapha-pittānilāḥ kramāt | samyag-yoge 'ti-yoge tu phena-candraka-rakta-vat || 25 || 18.25dv phena-candrika-rakta-vat manaḥ-prasādaḥ svāsthyaṃ cāvasthānaṃ ca svayaṃ bhavet | vaiparītyam a-yogānāṃ na cāti-mahatī vyathā || 25.1+(1) || 18.25.1+(1)av manaḥ-prasādaḥ svāsthyaṃ ca 18.25.1+(1)bv avasthānaṃ svayaṃ bhavet vamitaṃ kṣāma-tā dāhaḥ kaṇṭha-śoṣas tamo bhramaḥ | ghorā vāyv-āmayā mṛtyur jīva-śoṇita-nirgamāt || 26 || samyag-yogena vamitaṃ kṣaṇam āśvāsya pāyayet | dhūma-trayasyānya-tamaṃ snehācāram athādiśet || 27 || tataḥ sāyaṃ prabhāte vā kṣud-vān snātaḥ sukhāmbunā | bhuñjāno rakta-śāly-annaṃ bhajet peyādikaṃ kramam || 28 || 18.28cv purāṇa-rakta-śālīnām 18.28cv bhuñjāno 'nnam apekṣeta 18.28dv a-sneha-lavaṇoṣaṇam 18.28dv peyādikam imaṃ kramam 18.28dv peyādikam imaṃ kramāt 18.28dv peyādikam amuṃ kramam peyāṃ vilepīm a-kṛtaṃ kṛtaṃ ca yūṣaṃ rasaṃ trīn ubhayaṃ tathaikam | krameṇa seveta naro 'nna-kālān pradhāna-madhyāvara-śuddhi-śuddhaḥ || 29 || yathāṇur agnis tṛṇa-go-mayādyaiḥ saṃdhukṣyamāṇo bhavati krameṇa | mahān sthiraḥ sarva-pacas tathaiva śuddhasya peyādibhir antarāgniḥ || 30 || 18.30dv śuddhasya peyādibhir antar-agniḥ jaghanya-madhya-pravare tu vegāś catvāra iṣṭā vamane ṣaḍ aṣṭau | daśaiva te dvi-tri-guṇā vireke prasthas tathā syād dvi-catur-guṇaś ca || 31 || pittāvasānaṃ vamanaṃ virekād ardhaṃ kaphāntaṃ ca virekam āhuḥ | dvi-trān sa-viṭkān apanīya vegān meyaṃ vireke vamane tu pītam || 32 || athainaṃ vāmitaṃ bhūyaḥ sneha-svedopapāditam | śleṣma-kāle gate jñātvā koṣṭhaṃ samyag virecayet || 33 || bahu-pitto mṛduḥ koṣṭhaḥ kṣīreṇāpi viricyate | prabhūta-mārutaḥ krūraḥ kṛcchrāc chyāmādikair api || 34 || kaṣāya-madhuraiḥ pitte virekaḥ kaṭukaiḥ kaphe | snigdhoṣṇa-lavaṇair vāyāv a-pravṛttau tu pāyayet || 35 || uṣṇāmbu svedayed asya pāṇi-tāpena codaram | utthāne 'lpe dine tasmin bhuktvānye-dyuḥ punaḥ pibet || 36 || a-dṛḍha-sneha-koṣṭhas tu pibed ūrdhvaṃ daśāhataḥ | bhūyo 'py upaskṛta-tanuḥ sneha-svedair virecanam || 37 || yaugikaṃ samyag ālocya smaran pūrvam atikramam | hṛt-kukṣy-a-śuddhir a-rucir utkleśaḥ śleṣma-pittayoḥ || 38 || 18.38bv smaran pūrvam anukramam kaṇḍū-vidāhaḥ piṭikāh pīnaso vāta-viḍ-grahaḥ | a-yoga-lakṣaṇaṃ yogo vaiparītye yathoditāt || 39 || 18.39av kaṇḍū-vidāhaḥ piṭikā viṭ-pitta-kapha-vāteṣu niḥsṛteṣu kramāt sravet | niḥ-śleṣma-pittam udakaṃ śvetaṃ kṛṣṇaṃ sa-lohitam || 40 || māṃsa-dhāvana-tulyaṃ vā medaḥ-khaṇḍābham eva vā | guda-niḥsaraṇaṃ tṛṣṇā bhramo netra-praveśanam || 41 || 18.41dv śramo netra-praveśanam bhavanty ati-viriktasya tathāti-vamanāmayāḥ | samyag-viriktam enaṃ ca vamanoktena yojayet || 42 || dhūma-varjyena vidhinā tato vamita-vān iva | krameṇānnāni bhuñjāno bhajet prakṛti-bhojanam || 43 || manda-vahnim a-saṃśuddham a-kṣāmaṃ doṣa-dur-balam | a-dṛṣṭa-jīrṇa-liṅgaṃ ca laṅghayet pīta-bheṣajam || 44 || sneha-svedauṣadhotkleśa-saṅgair iti na bādhyate | saṃśodhanāsra-visrāva-sneha-yojana-laṅghanaiḥ || 45 || yāty agnir manda-tāṃ tasmāt kramaṃ peyādim ācaret | srutālpa-pitta-śleṣmāṇaṃ madya-paṃ vāta-paittikam || 46 || peyāṃ na pāyayet teṣāṃ tarpaṇādi-kramo hitaḥ | a-pakvaṃ vamanaṃ dośān pacyamānaṃ virecanam || 47 || 18.47bv tarpaṇādiḥ kramo hitaḥ 18.47bv tarpaṇādiḥ kramo mataḥ 18.47bv tarpaṇādi-kramo mataḥ nirhared vamanasyātaḥ pākaṃ na pratipālayet | dur-balo bahu-doṣaś ca doṣa-pākena yaḥ svayam || 48 || viricyate bhedanīyair bhojyais tam upapādayet | dur-balaḥ śodhitaḥ pūrvam alpa-doṣaḥ kṛśo naraḥ || 49 || 18.49bv bhojyais taṃ samupācaret a-parijñāta-koṣṭhaś ca piben mṛdv alpam auṣadham | varaṃ tad a-sakṛt-pītam anya-thā saṃśayāvaham || 50 || 18.50av varaṃ tad a-sakṛt-pītaṃ 18.50bv nānya-thā saṃśayāvaham hared bahūṃś calān doṣān alpān alpān punaḥ punaḥ | dur-balasya mṛdu-dravyair alpān saṃśamayet tu tān || 51 || kleśayanti ciraṃ te hi hanyur vainam a-nirhṛtāḥ | mandāgniṃ krūra-koṣṭhaṃ ca sa-kṣāra-lavaṇair ghṛtaiḥ || 52 || 18.52bv hanyuś cainam a-nirhṛtāḥ saṃdhukṣitāgniṃ vijita-kapha-vātaṃ ca śodhayet | rūkṣa-bahv-anila-krūra-koṣṭha-vyāyāma-śīlinām || 53 || dīptāgnīnāṃ ca bhaiṣajyam a-virecyaiva jīryati | tebhyo vastiṃ purā dadyāt tataḥ snigdhaṃ virecanam || 54 || 18.54cv tebhyo vastiṃ puro dadyāt śakṛn nirhṛtya vā kiñ-cit tīkṣṇābhiḥ phala-vartibhiḥ | pravṛttaṃ hi malaṃ snigdho vireko nirharet sukham || 55 || viṣābhighāta-piṭikā-kuṣṭha-śopha-visarpiṇaḥ | kāmalā-pāṇḍu-mehārtān nāti-snigdhān viśodhayet || 56 || 18.56dv nāti-snigdhān virecayet sarvān sneha-virekaiś ca rūkṣais tu sneha-bhāvitān | karmaṇāṃ vamanādīnāṃ punar apy antare 'ntare || 57 || 18.57bv rūkṣaiś ca sneha-bhāvitān sneha-svedau prayuñjīta sneham ante balāya ca | malo hi dehād utkleśya hriyate vāsaso yathā || 58 || sneha-svedais tathotkliṣṭaḥ śodhyate śodhanair malaḥ | sneha-svedāv an-abhyasya kuryāt saṃśodhanaṃ tu yaḥ || 59 || 18.59av sneha-svedais tathotkleśya 18.59bv hriyate śodhanair malaḥ dāru śuṣkam ivān-āme śarīraṃ tasya dīryate || 59ū̆ab || buddhi-prasādaṃ balam indriyāṇāṃ dhātu-sthira-tvaṃ jvalanasya dīptim | cirāc ca pākaṃ vayasaḥ karoti saṃśodhanaṃ samyag-upāsyamānam || 60ū̆ || 18.60ū̆av buddheḥ prasādaṃ balam indriyāṇāṃ 18.60ū̆bv dhātoḥ sthira-tvaṃ jvalanasya dīptim Sūtrasthāna vātolbaṇeṣu doṣeṣu vāte vā vastir iṣyate | upakramāṇāṃ sarveṣāṃ so 'graṇīs tri-vidhas tu saḥ || 1 || 19.1dv so 'graṇīs tri-vidhaś ca saḥ nirūho 'nvāsanaṃ vastir uttaras tena sādhayet | gulmānāha-khuḍa-plīha-śuddhātīsāra-śūlinaḥ || 2 || jīrṇa-jvara-pratiśyāya-śukrānila-mala-grahān | vardhmāśmarī-rajo-nāśān dāruṇāṃś cānilāmayān || 3 || an-āsthāpyās tv ati-snigdhaḥ kṣatorasko bhṛśaṃ kṛśaḥ | āmātīsārī vami-mān saṃśuddho datta-nāvanaḥ || 4 || śvāsa-kāsa-prasekārśo-hidhmādhmānālpa-vahnayaḥ | śūna-pāyuḥ kṛtāhāro baddha-cchidrodakodarī || 5 || 19.5dv baddha-cchidra-dakodarī kuṣṭhī ca madhu-mehī ca māsān sapta ca garbhiṇī | āsthāpyā eva cānvāsyā viśeṣād ati-vahnayaḥ || 6 || rūkṣāḥ kevala-vātārtā nānuvāsyās ta eva ca | ye 'n-āsthāpyās tathā pāṇḍu-kāmalā-meha-pīnasāḥ || 7 || nir-anna-plīha-viḍ-bhedi-guru-koṣṭha-kaphodarāḥ | abhiṣyandi-bhṛśa-sthūla-kṛmi-koṣṭhāḍhya-mārutāḥ || 8 || 19.8bv -guru-koṣṭhaḥ kaphodarī 19.8cv abhiṣyandi-kṛśa-sthūla- pīte viṣe gare 'pacyāṃ ślīpadī gala-gaṇḍa-vān | tayos tu netraṃ hemādi-dhātu-dārv-asthi-veṇu-jam || 9 || go-pucchākāram a-cchidraṃ ślakṣṇarju guṭikā-mukham | ūne 'bde pañca pūrṇe 'sminn ā-saptabhyo 'ṅgulāni ṣaṭ || 10 || saptame sapta tāny aṣṭau dvā-daśe ṣo-ḍaśe nava | dvā-daśaiva paraṃ viṃśād vīkṣya varṣāntareṣu ca || 11 || vayo-bala-śarīrāṇi pramāṇam abhivardhayet | svāṅguṣṭhena samaṃ mūle sthaulyenāgre kaniṣṭhayā || 12 || pūrṇe 'bde 'ṅgulam ādāya tad-ardhārdha-pravardhitam | try-aṅgulaṃ paramaṃ chidraṃ mūle 'gre vahate tu yat || 13 || mudgaṃ māṣaṃ kalāyaṃ ca klinnaṃ karkandhukaṃ kramāt | mūla-cchidra-pramāṇena prānte ghaṭita-karṇikam || 14 || vartyāgre pihitaṃ mūle yathā-svaṃ dvy-aṅgulāntaram | karṇikā-dvitayaṃ netre kuryāt tatra ca yojayet || 15 || 19.15bv yathā-svaṃ dvy-aṅgulāntare 19.15dv kuryāt tatra prayojayet 19.15dv kuryāt tatra tu yojayet ajāvi-mahiṣādīnāṃ vastiṃ su-mṛditaṃ dṛḍham | kaṣāya-raktaṃ niś-chidra-granthi-gandha-siraṃ tanum || 16 || 19.16av go-'jāvi-mahiṣādīnāṃ grathitaṃ sādhu sūtreṇa sukha-saṃsthāpya-bheṣajam | vasty-a-bhāve 'ṅka-pādaṃ vā nyased vāso 'tha-vā ghanam || 17 || 19.17av granthitaṃ sādhu sūtreṇa nirūha-mātrā prathame prakuñco vatsare param | prakuñca-vṛddhiḥ praty-abdaṃ yāvat ṣaṭ prasṛtās tataḥ || 18 || 19.18bv prakuñco vatsarāt param prasṛtaṃ vardhayed ūrdhvaṃ dvā-daśāṣṭā-daśasya tu | ā-saptater idaṃ mānaṃ daśaiva prasṛtāḥ param || 19 || 19.19bv dvā-daśāṣṭā-daśasya ca yathā-yathaṃ nirūhasya pādo mātrānuvāsane | āsthāpyaṃ snehitaṃ svinnaṃ śuddhaṃ labdha-balaṃ punaḥ || 20 || anvāsanārhaṃ vijñāya pūrvam evānuvāsayet | śīte vasante ca divā rātrau ke-cit tato 'nya-dā || 21 || 19.21dv rātrau ke-cit tato 'nya-thā abhyakta-snātam ucitāt pāda-hīnaṃ hitaṃ laghu | a-snigdha-rūkṣam aśitaṃ sānu-pānaṃ dravādi ca || 22 || 19.22dv sānu-pānaṃ dravādi vā kṛta-caṅkramaṇaṃ mukta-viṇ-mūtraṃ śayane sukhe | nāty-ucchrite na coc-chīrṣe saṃviṣṭaṃ vāma-pārśvataḥ || 23 || saṃkocya dakṣiṇaṃ sakthi prasārya ca tato 'param | athāsya netraṃ praṇayet snigdhe snigdha-mukhaṃ gude || 24 || 19.24dv snigdhaṃ snigdha-mukhe gude ucchvāsya vaster vadane baddhe hastam a-kampayan | pṛṣṭha-vaṃśaṃ prati tato nāti-druta-vilambitam || 25 || nāti-vegaṃ na vā mandaṃ sakṛd eva prapīḍayet | sāvaśeṣaṃ ca kurvīta vāyuḥ śeṣe hi tiṣṭhati || 26 || 19.26cv sāvaśeṣaṃ prakurvīta datte tūttāna-dehasya pāṇinā tāḍayet sphijau | tat-pārṣṇibhyāṃ tathā śayyāṃ pādataś ca trir utkṣipet || 27 || tataḥ prasāritāṅgasya sopadhānasya pārṣṇike | āhanyān muṣṭināṅgaṃ ca snehenābhyajya mardayet || 28 || vedanārtam iti sneho na hi śīghraṃ nivartate | yojyaḥ śīghraṃ nivṛtte 'nyaḥ sneho '-tiṣṭhann a-kārya-kṛt || 29 || dīptāgniṃ tv āgata-snehaṃ sāyāhne bhojayel laghu | nivṛtti-kālaḥ paramas trayo yāmas tataḥ param || 30 || aho-rātram upekṣeta parataḥ phala-vartibhiḥ | tīkṣṇair vā vastibhiḥ kuryād yatnaṃ sneha-nivṛttaye || 31 || ati-raukṣyād an-āgacchan na cej jāḍyādi-doṣa-kṛt | upekṣetaiva hi tato 'dhyuṣitaś ca niśāṃ pibet || 32 || prātar nāgara-dhānyāmbhaḥ koṣṇaṃ kevalam eva vā | anvāsayet tṛtīye 'hni pañcame vā punaś ca tam || 33 || yathā vā sneha-paktiḥ syād ato 'ty-ulbaṇa-mārutān | vyāyāma-nityān dīptāgnīn rūkṣāṃś ca prati-vāsaram || 34 || ādhmāna-saṃkoca-purīṣa-bandha-kṣīṇendriya-tvā-ruci-bhaṅga-śūlāḥ | pāṅgulya-śākhāśrita-vāta-bhagna-bandhāś ca sādhyā hy anuvāsanena || 34+1 || 19.34+1dv -vātāś ca sādhyā hy anuvāsanena iti snehais tri-caturaiḥ snigdhe sroto-viśuddhaye | nirūhaṃ śodhanaṃ yuñjyād a-snigdhe snehanaṃ tanoḥ || 35 || pañcame 'tha tṛtīye vā divase sādhake śubhe | madhyāhne kiñ-cid-āvṛtte prayukte bali-maṅgale || 36 || abhyakta-sveditotsṛṣṭa-malaṃ nāti-bubhukṣitam | avekṣya puruṣaṃ doṣa-bheṣajādīni cādarāt || 37 || 19.37cv avetya puruṣaṃ doṣa- vastiṃ prakalpayed vaidyas tad-vidyair bahubhiḥ saha | kvāthayed viṃśati-palaṃ dravyasyāṣṭau phalāni ca || 38 || 19.38bv tad-vedyair bahubhiḥ saha 19.38bv tad-vidhair bahubhiḥ saha tataḥ kvāthāc caturthāṃśaṃ snehaṃ vāte prakalpayet | pitte svasthe ca ṣaṣṭhāṃśam aṣṭamāṃśaṃ kaphe 'dhike || 39 || 19.39bv snehaṃ vāte 'nu kalpayet 19.39bv snehaṃ vāte tu kalpayet sarva-tra cāṣṭamaṃ bhāgaṃ kalkād bhavati vā yathā | nāty-accha-sāndra-tā vasteḥ pala-mātraṃ guḍasya ca || 40 || madhu-paṭv-ādi-śeṣaṃ ca yuktyā sarvaṃ tad ekataḥ | uṣṇāmbu-kumbhī-bāṣpeṇa taptaṃ khaja-samāhatam || 41 || prakṣipya vastau praṇayet pāyau nāty-uṣṇa-śītalam | nāti-snigdhaṃ na vā rūkṣaṃ nāti-tīkṣṇaṃ na vā mṛdu || 42 || nāty-accha-sāndraṃ nonāti-mātraṃ nā-paṭu nāti ca | lavaṇaṃ tad-vad amlaṃ ca paṭhanty anye tu tad-vidaḥ || 43 || 19.43dv vadanty anye tu tad-vidaḥ mātrāṃ tri-palikāṃ kuryāt sneha-mākṣikayoḥ pṛthak | karṣārdhaṃ māṇimanthasya svasthe kalka-pala-dvayam || 44 || sarva-dravāṇāṃ śeṣāṇāṃ palāni daśa kalpayet | mākṣikaṃ lavaṇaṃ snehaṃ kalkaṃ kvātham iti kramāt || 45 || āvapeta nirūhāṇām eṣa saṃyojane vidhiḥ | uttāno datta-mātre tu nirūhe tan-manā bhavet || 46 || kṛtopadhānaḥ sañjāta-vegaś cotkaṭakaḥ sṛjet | āgatau paramaḥ kālo muhūrto mṛtyave param || 47 || 19.47bv -vegaś cotkaṭukaḥ sṛjet 19.47bv -vegaś cotkuṭakaḥ sṛjet 19.47dv muhūrto mṛtyave paraḥ tatrānulomikaṃ sneha-kṣāra-mūtrāmla-kalpitam | tvaritaṃ snigdha-tīkṣṇoṣṇaṃ vastim anyaṃ prapīḍayet || 48 || 19.48av tatrānulomika-sneha- vidadyāt phala-vartiṃ vā svedanottrāsanādi ca | svayam eva nivṛtte tu dvitīyo vastir iṣyate || 49 || 19.49bv svedanotrāsanādi vā tṛtīyo 'pi caturtho 'pi yāvad vā su-nirūḍha-tā | virikta-vac ca yogādīn vidyād yoge tu bhojayet || 50 || 19.50bv yāvad vā su-nirūha-tā 19.50dv vidyād yoge tu yojayet koṣṇena vāriṇā snātaṃ tanu-dhanva-rasaudanam | vikārā ye nirūḍhasya bhavanti pracalair malaiḥ || 51 || 19.51av koṣṇena vāriṇā snānaṃ 19.51cv vikārā ye nirūhasya te sukhoṣṇāmbu-siktasya yānti bhukta-vataḥ śamam | atha vātārditaṃ bhūyaḥ sadya evānuvāsayet || 52 || samyag-dhīnāti-yogāś ca tasya syuḥ sneha-pīta-vat | kiñ-cit-kālaṃ sthito yaś ca sa-purīṣo nivartate || 53 || 19.53cv kiñ-cit-kālaṃ sthito yasya sānulomānilaḥ snehas tat siddham anuvāsanam | ekaṃ trīn vā balāse tu sneha-vastīn prakalpayet || 54 || 19.54dv sneha-vastīn prayojayet pañca vā sapta vā pitte navaikā-daśa vānile | punas tato 'py a-yugmāṃs tu punar āsthāpanaṃ tataḥ || 55 || kapha-pittānileṣv annaṃ yūṣa-kṣīra-rasaiḥ kramāt | vāta-ghnauṣadha-niḥkvātha-trivṛtā-saindhavair yutaḥ || 56 || vastir eko 'nile snigdhaḥ svādv-amloṣṇo rasānvitaḥ | nyagrodhādi-gaṇa-kvātha-padmakādi-sitā-yutau || 57 || 19.57bv svādv-amloṣṇa-rasānvitaḥ pitte svādu-himau sājya-kṣīrekṣu-rasa-mākṣikau | āragvadhādi-niḥkvātha-vatsakādi-yutās trayaḥ || 58 || rūkṣāḥ sa-kṣaudra-go-mūtrās tīkṣṇoṣṇa-kaṭukāḥ kaphe | trayas te saṃnipāte 'pi doṣān ghnanti yataḥ kramāt || 59 || 19.59cv trayaś ca saṃnipāte 'pi tribhyaḥ paraṃ vastim ato necchanty anye cikitsakāḥ | na hi doṣaś caturtho 'sti punar dīyeta yaṃ prati || 60 || 19.60av nācārya-carakasyāto 19.60bv vastis tribhyaḥ paraṃ mataḥ utkleśanaṃ śuddhi-karaṃ doṣāṇāṃ śamanaṃ kramāt | tri-dhaiva kalpayed vastim ity anye 'pi pracakṣate || 61 || 19.61cv tri-dhaivaṃ kalpayed vastim doṣauṣadhādi-balataḥ sarvam etat pramāṇayet | samyaṅ-nirūḍha-liṅgaṃ tu nā-saṃbhāvya nivartayet || 62 || prāk sneha ekaḥ pañcānte dvā-daśāsthāpanāni ca | sānvāsanāni karmaivaṃ vastayas triṃśad īritāḥ || 63 || kālaḥ pañca-daśaiko 'tra prāk sneho 'nte trayas tathā | ṣaṭ pañca-vasty-antaritā yogo 'ṣṭau vastayo 'tra tu || 64 || trayo nirūhāḥ snehāś ca snehāv ādy-antayor ubhau | sneha-vastiṃ nirūhaṃ vā naikam evātiśīlayet || 65 || utkleśāgni-vadhau snehān nirūhān maruto bhayam | tasmān nirūḍhaḥ snehyaḥ syān nirūhyaś cānuvāsitaḥ || 66 || sneha-śodhana-yuktyaivaṃ vasti-karma tri-doṣa-jit | hrasvayā sneha-pānasya mātrayā yojitaḥ samaḥ || 67 || mātrā-vastiḥ smṛtaḥ snehaḥ śīlanīyaḥ sadā ca saḥ | bāla-vṛddhādhva-bhāra-strī-vyāyāmāsakta-cintakaiḥ || 68 || 19.68cv bāla-vṛddhādhva-bhāṣya-strī- vāta-bhagnā-balālpāgni-nṛpeśvara-sukhātmabhiḥ | doṣa-ghno niṣ-parīhāro balyaḥ sṛṣṭa-malaḥ sukhaḥ || 69 || 19.69bv -nṛpaiśvarya-sukhātmabhiḥ vastau rogeṣu nārīṇāṃ yoni-garbhāśayeṣu ca | dvi-trāsthāpana-śuddhebhyo vidadhyād vastim uttaram || 70 || āturāṅgula-mānena tan-netraṃ dvā-daśāṅgulam | vṛttaṃ go-puccha-van mūla-madyayoḥ kṛta-karṇikam || 71 || siddhārthaka-praveśāgraṃ ślakṣṇaṃ hemādi-saṃbhavam | kundāśvamāra-sumanaḥ-puṣpa-vṛntopamaṃ dṛḍham || 72 || tasya vastir mṛdu-laghur mātrā śuktir vikalpya vā | atha snātāśītasyāsya sneha-vasti-vidhānataḥ || 73 || 19.73bv mātrā śuktir vikalpya ca 19.73bv mātrā śuktiḥ prakalpya vā ṛjoḥ sukhopaviṣṭasya pīṭhe jānu-same mṛdau | hṛṣṭe meḍhre sthite carjau śanaiḥ sroto-viśuddhaye || 74 || sūkṣmāṃ śalākāṃ praṇayet tayā śuddhe anu-sevani | ā-mehanāntaṃ netraṃ ca niṣ-kampaṃ guda-vat tataḥ || 75 || 19.75bv tayā śuddhe anu-sevanīm pīḍite 'ntar-gate snehe sneha-vasti-kramo hitaḥ | vastīn anena vidhinā dadyāt trīṃś caturo 'pi vā || 76 || 19.76av pīḍite 'nugate snehe anuvāsana-vac cheṣaṃ sarvam evāsya cintayet | strīṇām ārtava-kāle tu yonir gṛhṇāty apāvṛteḥ || 77 || vidadhīta tadā tasmād an-ṛtāv api cātyaye | yoni-vibhraṃśa-śūleṣu yoni-vyāpady asṛg-dare || 78 || netraṃ daśāṅgulaṃ mudga-praveśaṃ catur-aṅgulam | apatya-mārge yojyaṃ syād dvy-aṅgulaṃ mūtra-vartmani || 79 || mūtra-kṛcchra-vikāreṣu bālānāṃ tv ekam aṅgulam | prakuñco madhyamā mātrā bālānāṃ śuktir eva tu || 80 || uttānāyāḥ śayānāyāḥ samyak saṃkocya sakthinī | ūrdhva-jānvās tri-caturān aho-rātreṇa yojayet || 81 || vastīṃs tri-rātram evaṃ ca sneha-mātrāṃ vivardhayan | try-aham eva ca viśramya praṇidadhyāt punas try-aham || 82 || 19.82bv sneha-mātrāṃ vivardhayet pakṣād vireko vamite tataḥ pakṣān nirūhaṇam | sadyo nirūḍhaś cānvāsyaḥ sapta-rātrād virecitaḥ || 83 || yathā kusumbhādi-yutāt toyād rāgaṃ haret paṭaḥ | tathā dravī-kṛtād dehād vastir nirharate malān || 84 || śākhā-gatāḥ koṣṭha-gatāś ca rogā marmordhva-sarvāvayavāṅga-jāś ca | ye santi teṣāṃ na tu kaś-cid anyo vāyoḥ paraṃ janmani hetur asti || 85 || 19.85cv ye santi teṣāṃ na hi kaś-cid anyo viṭ-śleṣma-pittādi-maloccayānāṃ vikṣepa-saṃhāra-karaḥ sa yasmāt | tasyāti-vṛddhasya śamāya nānyad vaster vinā bheṣajam asti kiñ-cit || 86 || 19.86av viṭ-śleṣma-pittādi-malācayānāṃ 19.86av viṭ-śleṣma-pittādi-malāśayānāṃ 19.86av viṇ-mūtra-pittādi-malāśayānāṃ 19.86bv vikṣepa-saṃhāra-karo hi vāyuḥ 19.86dv vasteḥ samaṃ bheṣajam asti yasmāt tasmāc cikitsārdha iti pradiṣṭaḥ kṛtsnā cikitsāpi ca vastir ekaiḥ | tathā nijāgantu-vikāra-kāri-raktauṣadha-tvena sirā-vyadho 'pi || 87 || 19.87av tasmāc cikitsārdham iti pradiṣṭaḥ 19.87bv kṛtsnā cikitsāpi ca vastir eke Sūtrasthāna ūrdhva-jatru-vikāreṣu viśeṣān nasyam iṣyate | nāsā hi śiraso dvāraṃ tena tad vyāpya hanti tān || 1 || virecanaṃ bṛṃhaṇaṃ ca śamanaṃ ca tri-dhāpi tat | virecanaṃ śiraḥ-śūla-jāḍya-syanda-galāmaye || 2 || 20.2bv śamanaṃ ca tri-dhā bhavet marśa-dhmānāvapīḍākhyais tat punaḥ ṣaḍ-vidhaṃ smṛtam || 2.1+1 || 20.2.1+1av marśa-dhmānāvapīḍākhyāt śopha-gaṇḍa-kṛmi-granthi-kuṣṭhāpasmāra-pīnase | bṛṃhaṇaṃ vāta-je śūle sūryāvarte svara-kṣaye || 3 || snehena tīkṣṇaiḥ siddhena kalka-kvāthādibhiś ca tat || 3.1+1 || nāsāsya-śoṣe vāk-saṅge kṛcchra-bodhe 'va-bāhuke | śamanaṃ nīlikā-vyaṅga-keśa-doṣākṣi-rājiṣu || 4 || 20.4dv -keśa-doṣākṣi-rogiṣu 20.4dv -keśa-doṣākṣi-roga-jit yathā-svaṃ yaugikaiḥ snehair yathā-svaṃ ca prasādhitaiḥ | kalka-kvāthādibhiś cādyaṃ madhu-paṭv-āsavair api || 5 || bṛṃhaṇaṃ dhanva-māṃsottha-rasāsṛk-khapurair api | śamanaṃ yojayet pūrvaiḥ kṣīreṇa salilena vā || 6 || 20.6dv kṣīreṇa salilena ca 20.6dv kṣīreṇa ca jalena ca marśaś ca pratimarśaś ca dvi-dhā sneho 'tra mātrayā | kalkādyair avapīḍas tu sa tīkṣṇair mūrdha-recanaḥ || 7 || 20.7dv tīkṣṇair mūrdha-virecanaḥ dhmānaṃ virecanaś cūrṇo yuñjyāt taṃ mukha-vāyunā | ṣaḍ-aṅgula-dvi-mukhayā nāḍyā bheṣaja-garbhayā || 8 || 20.8av dhmānaṃ virecanaiś cūrṇair 20.8dv nāḍyā bhaiṣajya-garbhayā sa hi bhūri-taraṃ doṣaṃ cūrṇa-tvād apakarṣati | pradeśiny-aṅgulī-parva-dvayān magna-samuddhṛtāt || 9 || yāvat pataty asau bindur daśāṣṭau ṣaṭ krameṇa te | marśasyotkṛṣṭa-madhyonā mātrās tā eva ca kramāt || 10 || bindu-dvayonāḥ kalkāder yojayen na tu nāvanam | toya-madya-gara-sneha-pītānāṃ pātum icchatām || 11 || bhukta-bhakta-śiraḥ-snāta-snātu-kāma-srutāsṛjām | nava-pīnasa-vegārta-sūtikā-śvāsa-kāsinām || 12 || 20.12av bhuktābhyakta-śiraḥ-snāta- śuddhānāṃ datta-vastīnāṃ tathān-ārtava-dur-dine | anya-trātyayikād vyādher atha nasyaṃ prayojayet || 13 || prātaḥ śleṣmaṇi madhyāhne pitte sāyan-niśoś cale | svastha-vṛtte tu pūrvāhṇe śarat-kāla-vasantayoḥ || 14 || śīte madhyan-dine grīṣme sāyaṃ varṣāsu sātape | vātābhibhūte śirasi hidhmāyām apatānake || 15 || manyā-stambhe svara-bhraṃśe sāyaṃ prātar dine dine | ekāhāntaram anya-tra saptāhaṃ ca tad ācaret || 16 || snigdha-svinnottamāṅgasya prāk-kṛtāvaśyakasya ca | nivāta-śayana-sthasya jatrūrdhvaṃ svedayet punaḥ || 17 || athottānarju-dehasya pāṇi-pāde prasārite | kiñ-cid-unnata-pādasya kiñ-cin mūrdhani nāmite || 18 || nāsā-puṭaṃ pidhāyaikaṃ paryāyeṇa niṣecayet | uṣṇāmbu-taptaṃ bhaiṣajyaṃ praṇāḍyā picunātha-vā || 19 || 20.19dv praṇālyā picunātha-vā datte pāda-tala-skandha-hasta-karṇādi mardayet | śanair ucchidya niṣṭhīvet pārśvayor ubhayos tataḥ || 20 || 20.20cv śanair ucchindya niṣṭhīvet ā-bheṣaja-kṣayād evaṃ dvis trir vā nasyam ācaret | mūrchāyāṃ śīta-toyena siñcet pariharan śiraḥ || 21 || snehaṃ virecanasyānte dadyād doṣādy-apekṣayā | nasyānte vāk-śataṃ tiṣṭhed uttāno dhārayet tataḥ || 22 || 20.22av snehaṃ recana-nasyānte dhūmaṃ pītvā kavoṣṇāmbu-kavaḍān kaṇṭha-śuddhaye | samyak-snigdhe sukhocchvāsa-svapna-bodhākṣa-pāṭavam || 23 || rūkṣe 'kṣi-stabdha-tā śoṣo nāsāsye mūrdha-śūnya-tā | snigdhe 'ti kaṇḍū-guru-tā-prasekā-ruci-pīnasāḥ || 24 || 20.24cv snigdhe 'ti kaṇḍūr guru-tā 20.24dv prasekā-ruci-pīnasāḥ su-virikte 'kṣi-laghu-tā-vaktra-svara-viśuddhayaḥ | dur-virikte gadodrekaḥ kṣāma-tāti-virecite || 25 || pratimarśaḥ kṣata-kṣāma-bāla-vṛddha-sukhātmasu | prayojyo '-kāla-varṣe 'pi na tv iṣṭo duṣṭa-pīnase || 26 || madya-pīte '-bala-śrotre kṛmi-dūṣita-mūrdhani | utkṛṣṭotkliṣṭa-doṣe ca hīna-mātra-tayā hi saḥ || 27 || 20.27dv hīna-māna-tayā hi saḥ niśāhar-bhukta-vāntāhaḥ-svapnādhva-śrama-retasām | śiro-'bhyañjana-gaṇḍūṣa-prasrāvāñjana-varcasām || 28 || danta-kāṣṭhasya hāsasya yojyo 'nte 'sau dvi-bindukaḥ | pañcasu srotasāṃ śuddhiḥ klama-nāśas triṣu kramāt || 29 || dṛg-balaṃ pañcasu tato danta-dārḍhyaṃ maruc-chamaḥ | na nasyam ūna-saptābde nātītāśīti-vatsare || 30 || na conāṣṭā-daśe dhūmaḥ kavaḍo nona-pañcame | na śuddhir ūna-daśame na cātikrānta-saptatau || 31 || 20.31bv kavaḍo nyūna-pañcame ā-janma-maraṇaṃ śastaḥ pratimarśas tu vasti-vat | marśa-vac ca guṇān kuryāt sa hi nityopasevanāt || 32 || na cātra yantraṇā nāpi vyāpadbhyo marśa-vad bhayam | tailam eva ca nasyārthe nityābhyāsena śasyate || 33 || 20.33cv tailam eva ca nasyārthaṃ śirasaḥ śleṣma-dhāma-tvāt snehāḥ svasthasya netare | āśu-kṛc-cira-kāri-tvaṃ guṇotkarṣāpakṛṣṭa-tā || 34 || 20.34dv guṇotkṛṣṭāpakṛṣṭa-tā 20.34dv guṇotkṛṣṭāpakarṣa-tā 20.34dv guṇotkarṣāpakarṣa-tā marśe ca pratimarśe ca viśeṣo na bhaved yadi | ko marśaṃ sa-parīhāraṃ sāpadaṃ ca bhajet tataḥ || 35 || 20.35dv sāpadaṃ ca vadet tataḥ accha-pāna-vicārākhyau kuṭī-vātātapa-sthitī | anvāsa-mātrā-vastī ca tad-vad eva vinirdiśet || 36 || 20.36dv tad-vad eva ca nirdiśet paṭola-mudga-vārtāka-hrasvamūlaka-jāṅgalaiḥ | rasaiḥ śāli-yavān adyān nasya-karmaṇi ṣaḍ-vidhe || 36+1 || uccair-bhāṣaṇam āyāsam a-jīrṇā-sātmya-bhojanam | datta-nasyo naraḥ krodhaṃ yānādīṃś ca vivarjayet || 36+2 || jīvantī-jala-devadāru-jalada-tvak-sevya-gopī-himaṃ || 37a || dārvī-tvaṅ-madhuka-plavāguru-varī-puṇḍrāhva-bilvotpalam || 37b || dhāvanyau surabhiṃ sthire kṛmiharaṃ pattraṃ truṭīṃ reṇukāṃ || 37c || kiñjalkaṃ kamalād balāṃ śata-guṇe divye 'mbhasi kvāthayet || 37d || tailād rasaṃ daśa-guṇaṃ pariśeṣya tena tailaṃ paceta salilena daśaiva vārān | pāke kṣipec ca daśame samam āja-dugdhaṃ nasyaṃ mahā-guṇam uśanty aṇu-tailam etat || 38 || 20.38bv tailaṃ pacec ca salilena daśaiva vārān ghanonnata-prasanna-tvak-skandha-grīvāsya-vakṣasaḥ | dṛḍhendriyāsta-palitā bhaveyur nasya-śīlinaḥ || 39 || 20.39cv dṛḍhendriyās tv a-palitā Sūtrasthāna jatrūrdhva-kapha-vātottha-vikārāṇām a-janmane | ucchedāya ca jātānāṃ pibed dhūmaṃ sadātma-vān || 1 || 21.1av jatrūrdhvaṃ kapha-vātottha- snigdho madhyaḥ sa tīkṣṇaś ca vāte vāta-kaphe kaphe | yojyo na rakta-pittārti-viriktodara-mehiṣu || 2 || 21.2cv yojyo na pitta-raktārta- 21.2cv yojyo na pitta-raktārti- timirordhvānilādhmāna-rohiṇī-datta-vastiṣu | matsya-madya-dadhi-kṣīra-kṣaudra-sneha-viṣāśiṣu || 3 || śirasy abhihate pāṇḍu-roge jāgarite niśi | rakta-pittāndhya-bādhirya-tṛṇ-mūrchā-mada-moha-kṛt || 4 || dhūmo '-kāle 'ti-pīto vā tatra śīto vidhir hitaḥ | kṣuta-jṛmbhita-viṇ-mūtra-strī-sevā-śastra-karmaṇām || 5 || 21.5dv -strī-sevā-śastra-karmiṇām hāsasya danta-kāṣṭhasya dhūmam ante piben mṛdum | kāleṣv eṣu niśāhāra-nāvanānte ca madhyamam || 6 || 21.6av hāsyasya danta-kāṣṭhasya nidrā-nasyāñjana-snāna-ccharditānte virecanam | vasti-netra-sama-dravyaṃ tri-kośaṃ kārayed ṛju || 7 || mūlāgre 'ṅguṣṭha-kolāsthi-praveśaṃ dhūma-netrakam | tīkṣṇa-snehana-madhyeṣu trīṇi catvāri pañca ca || 8 || 21.8av mūle 'gre 'ṅguṣṭha-kolāsthi- aṅgulānāṃ kramāt pātuḥ pramāṇenāṣṭakāni tat | ṛjūpaviṣṭas tac-cetā vivṛtāsyas tri-paryayam || 9 || 21.9cv ṛjūpaviṣṭas tac-citto pidhāya cchidram ekaikaṃ dhūmaṃ nāsikayā pibet | prāk piben nāsayotkliṣṭe doṣe ghrāṇa-śiro-gate || 10 || 21.10dv doṣe nāsā-śiro-gate utkleśanārthaṃ vaktreṇa viparītaṃ tu kaṇṭha-ge | mukhenaivodvamed dhūmaṃ nāsayā dṛg-vighāta-kṛt || 11 || ākṣepa-mokṣaiḥ pātavyo dhūmas tu tris tribhis tribhiḥ | ahnaḥ pibet sakṛt snigdhaṃ dvir madhyaṃ śodhanaṃ param || 12 || 21.12bv dhūmas trīṃs trīṃs tribhis tribhiḥ triś catur vā mṛdau tatra dravyāṇy aguru guggulu | musta-sthauṇeya-śaileya-naladośīra-vālakam || 13 || 21.13av triś catur vā mṛdos tatra varāṅga-kauntī-madhuka-bilva-majjailavālukam | śrīveṣṭakaṃ sarja-raso dhyāmakaṃ madanaṃ plavam || 14 || śallakī kuṅkumaṃ māṣā yavāḥ kundurukas tilāḥ | snehaḥ phalānāṃ sārāṇāṃ medo majjā vasā ghṛtam || 15 || śamane śallakī lākṣā pṛthvīkā kamalotpalam | nyagrodhodumbarāśvattha-plakṣa-lodhra-tvacaḥ sitā || 16 || yaṣṭīmadhu suvarṇatvak padmakaṃ raktayaṣṭikā | gandhāś cā-kuṣṭha-tagarās tīkṣṇe jyotiṣmatī niśā || 17 || daśa-mūla-manohvālaṃ lākṣā śvetā phala-trayam | gandha-dravyāṇi tīkṣṇāni gaṇo mūrdha-virecanaḥ || 18 || 21.18av daśa-mūla-manohvāla- 21.18bv -lākṣā śvetā phala-trayam jale sthitām aho-rātram iṣīkāṃ dvā-daśāṅgulām | piṣṭair dhūmauṣadhair evaṃ pañca-kṛtvaḥ pralepayet || 19 || 21.19cv piṣṭair dhūmauṣadhair eva vartir aṅguṣṭhaka-sthūlā yava-madhyā yathā bhavet | chāyā-śuṣkāṃ vi-garbhāṃ tāṃ snehābhyaktāṃ yathā-yatham || 20 || 21.20av vartir aṅguṣṭha-vat sthūlā dhūma-netrārpitāṃ pātum agni-pluṣṭāṃ prayojayet | śarāva-saṃpuṭa-cchidre nāḍīṃ nyasya daśāṅgulām || 21 || aṣṭāṅgulāṃ vā vaktreṇa kāsa-vān dhūmam āpibet || 21ū̆ab || kāsaḥ śvāsaḥ pīnaso vi-svara-tvaṃ pūtir gandhaḥ pāṇḍu-tā keśa-doṣaḥ | karṇāsyākṣi-srāva-kaṇḍv-arti-jāḍyaṃ tandrā hidhmā dhūma-paṃ na spṛśanti || 22ū̆ || hṛt-kaṇṭhendriya-saṃśuddhir lāghavaṃ śirasaḥ śamaḥ | yatheritānāṃ doṣāṇāṃ samyak-pītasya lakṣaṇam || 22ū̆+1 || Sūtrasthāna catuḥ-prakāro gaṇḍūṣaḥ snigdhaḥ śamana-śodhanau | ropaṇaś ca trayas tatra triṣu yojyāś calādiṣu || 1 || antyo vraṇa-ghnaḥ snigdho 'tra svādv-amla-paṭu-sādhitaiḥ | snehaiḥ saṃśamanas tikta-kaṣāya-madhurauṣadhaiḥ || 2 || śodhanas tikta-kaṭv-amla-paṭūṣṇai ropaṇaḥ punaḥ | kaṣāya-tiktakais tatra snehaḥ kṣīraṃ madhūdakam || 3 || śuktaṃ madyaṃ raso mūtraṃ dhānyāmlaṃ ca yathā-yatham | kalkair yuktaṃ vipakvaṃ vā yathā-sparśaṃ prayojayet || 4 || danta-harṣe danta-cāle mukha-roge ca vātike | sukhoṣṇam atha-vā śītaṃ tila-kalkodakaṃ hitam || 5 || gaṇḍūṣa-dhāraṇe nityaṃ tailaṃ māṃsa-raso 'tha-vā | ūṣā-dāhānvite pāke kṣate cāgantu-saṃbhave || 6 || 22.6dv kṣate vāgantu-saṃbhave viṣe kṣārāgni-dagdhe ca sarpir dhāryaṃ payo 'tha-vā | vaiśadyaṃ janayaty āśu saṃdadhāti mukhe vraṇān || 7 || 22.7av viṣa-kṣārāgni-dagdhe ca 22.7cv vaiśadyaṃ janayaty āsye 22.7dv saṃdadhāti mukha-vraṇān dāha-tṛṣṇā-praśamanaṃ madhu-gaṇḍūṣa-dhāraṇam | dhānyāmlam āsya-vairasya-mala-daurgandhya-nāśanam || 8 || tad evā-lavaṇaṃ śītaṃ mukha-śoṣa-haraṃ param | āśu kṣārāmbu-gaṇḍūṣo bhinatti śleṣmaṇaś cayam || 9 || sukhoṣṇodaka-gaṇḍūṣair jāyate vaktra-lāghavam | nivāte sātape svinna-mṛdita-skandha-kandharaḥ || 10 || gaṇḍūṣam a-piban kiñ-cid-unnatāsyo vidhārayet | kapha-pūrṇāsya-tā yāvat sravad-ghrāṇākṣa-tātha-vā || 11 || a-saṃcāryo mukhe pūrṇe gaṇḍūṣaḥ kavaḍo 'nya-thā || 11ū̆ab || 22.11ū̆av a-saṃcāryo mukhe '-pūrṇe manyā-śiraḥ-karṇa-mukhākṣi-rogāḥ praseka-kaṇṭhāmaya-vaktra-śoṣāḥ | hṛl-lāsa-tandrā-ruci-pīnasāś ca sādhyā viśeṣāt kavaḍa-graheṇa || 12 || kalko rasa-kriyā cūrṇas tri-vidhaṃ pratisāraṇam || 13ab || 22.13av kalko rasa-kriyā cūrṇaṃ yuñjyāt tat kapha-rogeṣu gaṇḍūṣa-vihitauṣadhaiḥ | mukhālepas tri-dhā doṣa-viṣa-hā varṇa-kṛc ca saḥ || 14 || 22.14cv mukha-lepas tri-dhā doṣa- vyādher apacayaḥ puṣṭir vaiśadyaṃ vaktra-lāghavam | indriyāṇāṃ prasādaś ca kavaḍe śuddhi-lakṣaṇam || 14.1+1 || hīnāj jāḍya-kaphotkleśāv a-rasa-jñānam eva ca | ati-yogān mukhe pākaḥ śoṣa-tṛṣṇā-ruci-klamaḥ || 14.1+2 || 22.14.1+2av hīnād dhmāna-kaphotleśāv uṣṇo vāta-kaphe śastaḥ śeṣeṣv aty-artha-śītalaḥ | tri-pramāṇaś catur-bhāga-tri-bhāgārdhāṅgulonnatiḥ || 15 || a-śuṣkasya sthitis tasya śuṣko dūṣayati cchavim | tam ārdrayitvāpanayet tad-ante 'bhyaṅgam ācaret || 16 || vivarjayed divā-svapna-bhāṣyāgny-ātapa-śuk-krudhaḥ | na yojyaḥ pīnase '-jīrṇe datta-nasye hanu-grahe || 17 || 22.17dv datte nasye hanu-grahe a-rocake jāgarite sa tu hanti su-yojitaḥ | a-kāla-palita-vyaṅga-valī-timira-nīlikāḥ || 18 || 22.18bv sa ca hanti su-yojitaḥ kola-majjā vṛṣān mūlaṃ śābaraṃ gaura-sarṣapāḥ | siṃhī-mūlaṃ tilāḥ kṛṣṇā dārvī-tvaṅ nis-tuṣā yavāḥ || 19 || darbha-mūla-himośīra-śirīṣa-miśi-taṇḍulāḥ | kumudotpala-kalhāra-dūrvā-madhuka-candanam || 20 || kālīyaka-tilośīra-māṃsī-tagara-padmakam | tālīśa-gundrā-puṇḍrāhva-yaṣṭī-kāśa-natāguru || 21 || ity ardhārdhoditā lepā hemantādiṣu ṣaṭ smṛtāḥ | -mukhālepana-śīlānāṃ dṛḍhaṃ bhavati darśanam || 22 || vadanaṃ cā-parimlānaṃ ślakṣṇaṃ tāmarasopamam | abhyaṅga-seka-picavo vastiś ceti catur-vidham || 23 || mūrdha-tailaṃ bahu-guṇaṃ tad vidyād uttarottaram | tatrābhyaṅgaḥ prayoktavyo raukṣya-kaṇḍū-malādiṣu || 24 || 22.24dv rūkṣa-kaṇḍū-malādiṣu arūṃṣikā-śiras-toda-dāha-pāka-vraṇeṣu tu | pariṣekaḥ picuḥ keśa-śāta-sphuṭana-dhūpane || 25 || 22.25bv -dāha-pāka-vraṇeṣu ca netra-stambhe ca vastis tu prasupty-ardita-jāgare | nāsāsya-śoṣe timire śiro-roge ca dāruṇe || 26 || vidhis tasya niṣaṇṇasya pīṭhe jānu-same mṛdau | śuddhākta-svinna-dehasya dinānte gavya-māhiṣam || 27 || dvā-daśāṅgula-vistīrṇaṃ carma-paṭṭaṃ śiraḥ-samam | ā-karṇa-bandhana-sthānaṃ lalāṭe vastra-veṣṭite || 28 || caila-veṇikayā baddhvā māṣa-kalkena lepayet | tato yathā-vyādhi śṛtaṃ snehaṃ koṣṇaṃ niṣecayet || 29 || ūrdhvaṃ keśa-bhuvo yāvad aṅgulaṃ dhārayec ca tam | ā-vaktra-nāsikotkledād daśāṣṭau ṣaṭ calādiṣu || 30 || 22.30cv ā-vaktra-nāsikā-kledād mātrā-sahasrāṇy a-ruje tv ekaṃ skandhādi mardayet | mukta-snehasya paramaṃ saptāhaṃ tasya sevanam || 31 || 22.31dv saptāhaṃ tasya secanam dhārayet pūraṇaṃ karṇe karṇa-mūlaṃ vimardayan | rujaḥ syān mārdavaṃ yāvan mātrā-śatam a-vedane || 32 || 22.32bv karṇa-mūlaṃ vimardayet yāvat paryeti hastāgraṃ dakṣiṇaṃ jānu-maṇḍalam | nimeṣonmeṣa-kālena samaṃ mātrā tu sā smṛtā || 33 || 22.33cv nimeṣonmeṣa-mātreṇa kaca-sadana-sita-tva-piñjara-tvaṃ pariphuṭanaṃ śirasaḥ samīra-rogān | jayati janayatīndriya-prasādaṃ svara-hanu-mūrdha-balaṃ ca mūrdha-tailam || 34 || 22.34av kaca-śadana-sita-tva-piñjara-tvaṃ 22.34av kaca-śadana-sita-tva-piñjara-tva- 22.34av kaca-sadana-sita-tva-piñjara-tva- Sūtrasthāna sarveṣām akṣi-rogāṇām ādāv āścyotanaṃ hitam | ruk-toda-kaṇḍu-gharṣāśru-dāha-rāga-nibarhaṇam || 1 || 23.1dv -dāha-roga-nibarhaṇam uṣṇaṃ vāte kaphe koṣṇaṃ tac chītaṃ rakta-pittayoḥ | nivāta-sthasya vāmena pāṇinonmīlya locanam || 2 || śuktau pralambayānyena picu-vartyā kanīnike | daśa dvā-daśa vā bindūn dvy-aṅgulād avasecayet || 3 || tataḥ pramṛjya mṛdunā cailena kapha-vātayoḥ | anyena koṣṇa-pānīya-plutena svedayen mṛdu || 4 || aty-uṣṇa-tīkṣṇaṃ rug-rāga-dṛṅ-nāśāyākṣi-secanam | ati-śītaṃ tu kurute nistoda-stambha-vedanāḥ || 5 || kaṣāya-vartma-tāṃ gharṣaṃ kṛcchrād unmeṣaṇaṃ bahu | vikāra-vṛddhim aty-alpaṃ saṃrambham a-parisrutam || 6 || gatvā saṃdhi-śiro-ghrāṇa-mukha-srotāṃsi bheṣajam | ūrdhva-gān nayane nyastam apavartayate malān || 7 || 23.7av gatvā saṃdhi-sirā-ghrāṇa- athāñjanaṃ śuddha-tanor netra-mātrāśraye male | pakva-liṅge 'lpa-śophāti-kaṇḍū-paicchilya-lakṣite || 8 || 23.8cv pakva-liṅge 'lpa-śophārti- manda-gharṣāśru-rāge 'kṣṇi prayojyaṃ ghana-dūṣike | ārte pitta-kaphāsṛgbhir mārutena viśeṣataḥ || 9 || lekhanaṃ ropaṇaṃ dṛṣṭi-prasādanam iti tri-dhā | añjanaṃ lekhanaṃ tatra kaṣāyāmla-paṭūṣaṇaiḥ || 10 || ropaṇaṃ tiktakair dravyaiḥ svādu-śītaiḥ prasādanam | tīkṣṇāñjanābhisaṃtapte nayane tat prasādanam || 11 || prayujyamānaṃ labhate pratyañjana-samāhvayam | daśāṅgulā tanur madhye śalākā mukulānanā || 12 || praśastā lekhane tāmrī ropaṇe kāla-loha-jā | aṅgulī ca suvarṇotthā rūpya-jā ca prasādane || 13 || piṇḍo rasa-kriyā cūrṇas tri-dhaivāñjana-kalpanā | gurau madhye laghau doṣe tāṃ krameṇa prayojayet || 14 || 23.14cv guru-madhya-laghau doṣe 23.14dv tāḥ krameṇa prayojayet piṇḍasya tīkṣṇa-dravyasya mṛdu-dravya-kṛtasya ca | hareṇu-mātraṃ dvi-guṇaṃ pramāṇaṃ kathayanty api || 14+1 || rasa-kriyāyām apy evaṃ viḍaṅga-phala-mātrakam | śalākāṃ dvi-guṇāṃ tīkṣṇe cūrṇe ca tri-guṇāṃ mṛdau || 14+2 || hareṇu-mātrā piṇḍasya vella-mātrā rasa-kriyā | tīkṣṇasya dvi-guṇaṃ tasya mṛdunaś cūrṇitasya ca || 15 || 23.15av piṇḍo hareṇu-mātras tu 23.15av hareṇu-mātraṃ piṇḍasya 23.15av hareṇu-mātraḥ piṇḍas tu 23.15bv valla-mātrā rasa-kriyā 23.15dv mṛdoś cūrṇāñjanasya ca dve śalāke tu tīkṣṇasya tisras tad-itarasya ca | niśi svapne na madhyāhne mlāne noṣṇa-gabhastibhiḥ || 16 || 23.16bv tisraḥ syur itarasya ca 23.16cv niśi svapnena madhyāhne 23.16dv pānānnoṣṇa-gabhastibhiḥ akṣi-rogāya doṣāḥ syur vardhitotpīḍita-drutāḥ | prātaḥ sāyaṃ ca tac-chāntyai vy-abhre 'rke 'to 'ñjayet sadā || 17 || vadanty anye tu na divā prayojyaṃ tīkṣṇam añjanam | vireka-dur-balaṃ cakṣur ādityaṃ prāpya sīdati || 18 || svapnena rātrau kālasya saumya-tvena ca tarpitā | śīta-sātmyā dṛg āgneyī sthira-tāṃ labhate punaḥ || 19 || aty-udrikte balāse tu lekhanīye 'tha-vā gade | kāmam ahny api nāty-uṣṇe tīkṣṇam akṣṇi prayojayet || 20 || aśmano janma lohasya tata eva ca tīkṣṇa-tā | upaghāto 'pi tenaiva tathā netrasya tejasaḥ || 21 || na rātrāv api śīte 'ti netre tīkṣṇāñjanaṃ hitam | doṣam a-srāvayet stabdhaṃ kaṇḍū-jāḍyādi-kāri tat || 22 || 23.22cv doṣam a-srāvayat stabdhaṃ 23.22cv doṣam a-srāvayat stambha- 23.22cv doṣaṃ na srāvayet stambha- 23.22dv -kaṇḍū-jāḍyādi-kāri tat nāñjayed bhīta-vamita-viriktāśita-vegite | kruddha-jvarita-tāntākṣi-śiro-ruk-śoka-jāgare || 23 || a-dṛṣṭe 'rke śiraḥ-snāte pītayor dhūma-madyayoḥ | a-jīrṇe 'gny-arka-saṃtapte divā-supte pipāsite || 24 || 23.24dv divā-svapne pipāsite ati-tīkṣṇa-mṛdu-stoka-bahv-accha-ghana-karkaśam | aty-artha-śītalaṃ taptam añjanaṃ nāvacārayet || 25 || 23.25cv aty-arthaṃ śītalaṃ taptam athānumīlayan dṛṣṭim antaḥ saṃcārayec chanaiḥ | añjite vartmanī kiñ-cic cālayec caivam añjanam || 26 || tīkṣṇaṃ vyāpnoti sahasā na conmeṣa-nimeṣaṇam | niṣpīḍanaṃ ca vartmabhyāṃ kṣālanaṃ vā samācaret || 27 || apetauṣadha-saṃrambhaṃ nirvṛtaṃ nayanaṃ yadā | vyādhi-doṣartu-yogyābhir adbhiḥ prakṣālayet tadā || 28 || dakṣiṇāṅguṣṭhakenākṣi tato vāmaṃ sa-vāsasā | ūrdhva-vartmani saṃgṛhya śodhyaṃ vāmena cetarat || 29 || vartma-prāpto 'ñjanād doṣo rogān kuryād ato 'nya-thā | kaṇḍū-jāḍye 'ñjanaṃ tīkṣṇaṃ dhūmaṃ vā yojayet punaḥ || 30 || 23.30av vartma-prāptāñjanād doṣo 23.30bv rogān kuryāt tato 'nya-thā tīkṣṇāñjanābhitapte tu cūrṇaṃ pratyañjanaṃ himam || 30ū̆ab || 23.30ū̆av tīkṣṇāñjanāti-tapte tu 23.30ū̆av tīkṣṇāñjanāti-yoge tu 23.30ū̆bv cūrṇaṃ pratyañjanaṃ hitam Sūtrasthāna nayane tāmyati stabdhe śuṣke rūkṣe 'bhighātite | vāta-pittāture jihme śīrṇa-pakṣmāvilekṣaṇe || 1 || kṛcchronmīla-sirā-harṣa-sirotpāta-tamo-'rjunaiḥ | syanda-manthānyato-vāta-vāta-paryāya-śukrakaiḥ || 2 || āture śānta-rāgāśru-śūla-saṃrambha-dūṣike | nivāte tarpaṇaṃ yojyaṃ śuddhayor mūrdha-kāyayoḥ || 3 || kāle sādhāraṇe prātaḥ sāyaṃ vottāna-śāyinaḥ | yava-māṣa-mayīṃ pālīṃ netra-kośād bahiḥ samām || 4 || 24.4bv sāyaṃ cottāna-śāyinaḥ dvy-aṅguloccāṃ dṛḍhāṃ kṛtvā yathā-svaṃ siddham āvapet | sarpir nimīlite netre taptāmbu-pravilāyitam || 5 || 24.5dv taptāmbu-pravilāpitam naktāndhya-vāta-timira-kṛcchra-bodhādike vasām | ā-pakṣmāgrād athonmeṣaṃ śanakais tasya kurvataḥ || 6 || mātrā vigaṇayet tatra vartma-saṃdhi-sitāsite | dṛṣṭau ca krama-śo vyādhau śataṃ trīṇi ca pañca ca || 7 || 24.7av mātrāṃ vigaṇayet tatra śatāni sapta cāṣṭau ca daśa manthe daśānile | pitte ṣaṭ svastha-vṛtte ca balāse pañca dhārayet || 8 || 24.8bv daśa manthe 'nile daśa kṛtvāpāṅge tato dvāraṃ snehaṃ pātre nigālayet | pibec ca dhūmaṃ nekṣeta vyoma rūpaṃ ca bhāsvaram || 9 || 24.9dv vyoma rūpaṃ ca bhās-karam itthaṃ prati-dinaṃ vāyau pitte tv ekāntaraṃ kaphe | svasthe tu dvy-antaraṃ dadyād ā-tṛpter iti yojayet || 10 || prakāśa-kṣama-tā svāsthyaṃ viśadaṃ laghu locanam | tṛpte viparyayo '-tṛpte 'ti-tṛpte śleṣma-jā rujaḥ || 11 || 24.11dv tṛpte 'ti śleṣma-jā rujaḥ sneha-pītā tanur iva klāntā dṛṣṭir hi sīdati | tarpaṇān-antaraṃ tasmād dṛg-balādhāna-kāriṇam || 12 || puṭa-pākaṃ prayuñjīta pūrvokteṣv eva yakṣmasu | sa vāte snehanaḥ śleṣma-sahite lekhano hitaḥ || 13 || 24.13bv pūrvokteṣv eṣu yakṣmasu 24.13bv pūrvokteṣu ca yakṣmasu dṛg-daurbalye 'nile pitte rakte svasthe prasādanaḥ | bhū-śaya-prasahānūpa-medo-majja-vasāmiṣaiḥ || 14 || snehanaṃ payasā piṣṭair jīvanīyaiś ca kalpayet | mṛga-pakṣi-yakṛn-māṃsa-muktāyas-tāmra-saindhavaiḥ || 15 || sroto-ja-śaṅkha-phenālair lekhanaṃ mastu-kalkitaiḥ | mṛga-pakṣi-yakṛn-majja-vasāntra-hṛdayāmiṣaiḥ || 16 || madhuraiḥ sa-ghṛtaiḥ stanya-kṣīra-piṣṭaiḥ prasādanam | bilva-mātraṃ pṛthak piṇḍaṃ māṃsa-bheṣaja-kalkayoḥ || 17 || urubūka-vaṭāmbho-ja-pattraiḥ snehādiṣu kramāt | veṣṭayitvā mṛdā liptaṃ dhava-dhanvana-go-mayaiḥ || 18 || 24.18bv -pattraiḥ snigdhādiṣu kramāt pacet pradīptair agny-ābhaṃ pakvaṃ niṣpīḍya tad-rasam | netre tarpaṇa-vad yuñjyāt śataṃ dve trīṇi dhārayet || 19 || lekhana-snehanāntyeṣu koṣṇau pūrvau himo 'paraḥ | dhūma-po 'nte tayor eva yogās tatra ca tṛpti-vat || 20 || tarpaṇaṃ puṭa-pākaṃ ca nasyān-arhe na yojayet | yāvanty ahāni yuñjīta dvis tato hita-bhāg bhavet || 21 || mālatī-mallikā-puṣpair baddhākṣo nivasen niśām || 21ū̆ab || 24.21ū̆bv baddhākṣo nivasen niśi sarvātmanā netra-balāya yatnaṃ kurvīta nasyāñjana-tarpaṇādyaiḥ | dṛṣṭiś ca naṣṭā vividhaṃ jagac ca tamo-mayaṃ jāyata eka-rūpam || 22ū̆ || Sūtrasthāna nānā-vidhānāṃ śalyānāṃ nānā-deśa-prabodhinām | āhartum abhyupāyo yas tad yantraṃ yac ca darśane || 1 || 25.1bv nānā-deśa-vibādhinām arśo-bhagandarādīnāṃ śastra-kṣārāgni-yojane | śeṣāṅga-parirakṣāyāṃ tathā vasty-ādi-karmaṇi || 2 || ghaṭikālābu-śṛṅgaṃ ca jāmbavauṣṭhādikāni ca | aneka-rūpa-kāryāṇi yantrāṇi vividhāny ataḥ || 3 || vikalpya kalpayet buddhyā yathā-sthūlaṃ tu vakṣyate | tulyāni kaṅka-siṃharkṣa-kākādi-mṛga-pakṣiṇām || 4 || mukhair mukhāni yantrāṇāṃ kuryāt tat-saṃjñakāni ca | aṣṭā-daśāṅgulāyāmāny āyasāni ca bhūri-śaḥ || 5 || masūrākāra-pary-antaiḥ kaṇṭhe baddhāni kīlakaiḥ | vidyāt svastika-yantrāṇi mūle 'ṅkuśa-natāni ca || 6 || 25.6dv mūle 'ṅkuśa-nibhāni ca tair dṛḍhair asthi-saṃlagna-śalyāharaṇam iṣyate | kīla-baddha-vimuktāgrau saṃdaṃśau ṣo-ḍaśāṅgulau || 7 || tvak-sirā-snāyu-piśita-lagna-śalyāpakarṣaṇau | ṣaḍ-aṅgulo 'nyo haraṇe sūkṣma-śalyopa-pakṣmaṇām || 8 || mucuṇḍī sūkṣma-dantarjur mūle rucaka-bhūṣaṇā | gambhīra-vraṇa-māṃsānām armaṇaḥ śeṣitasya ca || 9 || 25.9av mucuṭī sūkṣma-dantarjur dve dvā-daśāṅgule matsya-tāla-vat dvy-eka-tālake | tāla-yantre smṛte karṇa-nāḍī-śalyāpahāriṇī || 10 || 25.10bv -tālu-vat dvy-eka-tāluke 25.10cv tālu-yantre smṛte karṇa- 25.10dv -nāḍī-śalyāpahāraṇe 25.10dv -nāḍī-śalyāpakarṣaṇī nāḍī-yantrāṇi suṣirāṇy ekāneka-mukhāni ca | sroto-gatānāṃ śalyānām āmayānāṃ ca darśane || 11 || 25.11bv ekāneka-mukhāni tu kriyāṇāṃ su-kara-tvāya kuryād ācūṣaṇāya ca | tad-vistāra-parīṇāha-dairghyaṃ sroto-'nurodhataḥ || 12 || daśāṅgulārdha-nāhāntaḥ-kaṇṭha-śalyāvalokinī | nāḍī pañca-mukha-cchidrā catuṣ-karṇasya saṃgrahe || 13 || 25.13bv -kaṇṭha-śalyāvalokane vāraṅgasya dvi-karṇasya tri-cchidrā tat-pramāṇataḥ | vāraṅga-karṇa-saṃsthānānāha-dairghyānurodhataḥ || 14 || nāḍīr evaṃ-vidhāś cānyā draṣṭuṃ śalyāni kārayet | padma-karṇikayā mūrdhni sadṛśī dvā-daśāṅgulā || 15 || caturtha-suṣirā nāḍī śalya-nirghātinī matā | arśasāṃ go-stanākāraṃ yantrakaṃ catur-aṅgulam || 16 || nāhe pañcāṅgulaṃ puṃsāṃ pramadānāṃ ṣaḍ-aṅgulam | dvi-cchidraṃ darśane vyādher eka-cchidraṃ tu karmaṇi || 17 || madhye 'sya try-aṅgulaṃ chidram aṅguṣṭhodara-vistṛtam | ardhāṅgulocchritodvṛtta-karṇikaṃ ca tad-ūrdhvataḥ || 18 || 25.18dv -karṇikaṃ tu tad-ūrdhvataḥ śamy-ākhyaṃ tādṛg a-cchidraṃ yantram arśaḥ-prapīḍanam | sarva-thāpanayed oṣṭhaṃ chidrād ūrdhvaṃ bhagandare || 19 || ghrāṇārbudārśasām eka-cchidrā nāḍy-aṅgula-dvayā | pradeśinī-parīṇāhā syād bhagandara-yantra-vat || 20 || aṅgulī-trāṇakaṃ dāntaṃ vārkṣaṃ vā catur-aṅgulam | dvi-cchidraṃ go-stanākāraṃ tad-vaktra-vivṛtau sukham || 21 || yoni-vraṇekṣaṇaṃ madhye suṣiraṃ ṣo-ḍaśāṅgulam | mudrā-baddhaṃ catur-bhittam ambho-ja-mukulānanam || 22 || 25.22cv mudrā-baddhaṃ catur-bhinnam 25.22cv mudrā-baddhaṃ catuṣ-koṇam catuḥ-śalākam ākrāntaṃ mūle tad vikasen mukhe | yantre nāḍī-vraṇābhyaṅga-kṣālanāya ṣaḍ-aṅgule || 23 || vasti-yantrākṛtī mūle mukhe 'ṅguṣṭha-kalāya-khe | agrato '-karṇike mūle nibaddha-mṛdu-carmaṇī || 24 || dvi-dvārā nalikā piccha-nalikā vodakodare | dhūma-vasty-ādi-yantrāṇi nirdiṣṭāni yathā-yatham || 25 || try-aṅgulāsyaṃ bhavec chṛṅgaṃ cūṣaṇe 'ṣṭā-daśāṅgulam | agre siddhārthaka-cchidraṃ su-naddhaṃ cūcukākṛti || 26 || syād dvā-daśāṅgulo 'lābur nāhe tv aṣṭā-daśāṅgulaḥ | catus-try-aṅgula-vṛttāsyo dīpto 'ntaḥ śleṣma-rakta-hṛt || 27 || tad-vad ghaṭī hitā gulma-vilayonnamane ca sā | śalākākhyāni yantrāṇi nānā-karmākṛtīni ca || 28 || 25.28dv nānā-karmākṛtīni tu yathā-yoga-pramāṇāni teṣām eṣaṇa-karmaṇī | ubhe gaṇḍū-pada-mukhe srotobhyaḥ śalya-hāriṇī || 29 || 25.29bv teṣām eṣaṇa-karmaṇi masūra-dala-vaktre dve syātām aṣṭa-navāṅgule | śaṅkavaḥ ṣaḍ ubhau teṣāṃ ṣo-ḍaśa-dvā-daśāṅgulau || 30 || vyūhane 'hi-phaṇā-vaktrau dvau daśa-dvā-daśāṅgulau | cālane śara-puṅkhāsyāv āhārye baḍiśākṛtī || 31 || nato 'gre śaṅkunā tulyo garbha-śaṅkur iti smṛtaḥ | aṣṭāṅgulāyatas tena mūḍha-garbhaṃ haret striyāḥ || 32 || aśmary-āharaṇaṃ sarpa-phaṇā-vad vakram agrataḥ | śara-puṅkha-mukhaṃ danta-pātanaṃ catur-aṅgulam || 33 || 25.33av aśmary-āharaṇe sarpa- 25.33bv -phaṇā-vad vaktram agrataḥ kārpāsa-vihitoṣṇīṣāḥ śalākāḥ ṣaṭ pramārjane | pāyāv āsanna-dūrārthe dve daśa-dvā-daśāṅgule || 34 || dve ṣaṭ-saptāṅgule ghrāṇe dve karṇe 'ṣṭa-navāṅgule | karṇa-śodhanam aśvattha-pattra-prāntaṃ sruvānanam || 35 || śalākā-jāmbavauṣṭhānāṃ kṣāre 'gnau ca pṛthak trayam | yuñjyāt sthūlāṇu-dīrghāṇāṃ śalākām antra-vardhmani || 36 || madhyordhva-vṛtta-daṇḍāṃ ca mūle cārdhendu-saṃnibhām | kolāsthi-dala-tulyāsyā nāsārśo-'rbuda-dāha-kṛt || 37 || aṣṭāṅgulā nimna-mukhās tisraḥ kṣārauṣadha-krame | kanīnī-madhyamānāmī-nakha-māna-samair mukhaiḥ || 38 || 25.38cv kaniṣṭhā-madhyamānāmī- svaṃ svam uktāni yantrāṇi meḍhra-śuddhy-añjanādiṣu | anu-yantrāṇy ayas-kānta-rajjū-vastrāśma-mudgarāḥ || 39 || 25.39cv aṇu-yantrāṇy ayas-kānta- vadhrāntra-jihvā-vālāś ca śākhā-nakha-mukha-dvi-jāḥ | kālaḥ pākaḥ karaḥ pādo bhayaṃ harṣaś ca tat-kriyāḥ || 40 || 25.40av vadhry-antra-jihvā-vālāś ca 25.40av vardhrāntra-jihvā-vālāś ca 25.40bv -śākhā-nakha-mukha-dvi-jāḥ upāya-vit pravibhajed ālocya nipuṇaṃ dhiyā || 40ū̆ab || nirghātanonmathana-pūraṇa-mārga-śuddhi-saṃvyūhanāharaṇa-bandhana-pīḍanāni | ācūṣaṇonnamana-nāmana-cāla-bhaṅga-vyāvartanarju-karaṇāni ca yantra-karma || 41ū̆ || vivartate sādhv avagāhate ca grāhyaṃ gṛhītvoddharate ca yasmāt | yantreṣv ataḥ kaṅka-mukhaṃ pradhānaṃ sthāneṣu sarveṣv adhikāri yac ca || 42ū̆ || 25.42ū̆av nivartate sādhv avagāhate ca 25.42ū̆dv sthāneṣu sarveṣv a-vikāri yac ca Sūtrasthāna ṣaḍ-viṃśatiḥ su-karmārair ghaṭitāni yathā-vidhi | śastrāṇi roma-vāhīni bāhulyenāṅgulāni ṣaṭ || 1 || su-rūpāṇi su-dhārāṇi su-grahāṇi ca kārayet | a-karālāni su-dhmāta-su-tīkṣṇāv artite 'yasi || 2 || samāhita-mukhāgrāṇi nīlāmbho-ja-cchavīni ca | nāmānugata-rūpāṇi sadā saṃnihitāni ca || 3 || svonmānārdha-caturthāṃśa-phalāny ekaika-śo 'pi ca | prāyo dvi-trāṇi yuñjīta tāni sthāna-viśeṣataḥ || 4 || 26.4av sva-mānārdha-caturthāṃśa- maṇḍalāgraṃ vṛddhi-pattram utpalādhy-ardha-dhārake | sarpaiṣaṇyau vetasākhyaṃ śarāry-āsya-tri-kūrcake || 4+(1) || kuśāsyaṃ sāṭa-vadanam antar-vaktrārdha-candrake | vrīhi-mukhaṃ kuṭhārī ca śalākāṅguli-śastrake || 4+(2) || 26.4+(2)av kuśāsyā sāṭa-vadanā 26.4+(2)bv antar-vaktrārdha-candrakam 26.4+(2)bv channa-vaktrārdha-candrake 26.4+(2)bv channa-vaktrārdha-candrakam baḍiśaṃ kara-pattrākhyaṃ kartarī nakha-śastrakam | danta-lekhanakaṃ sūcyaḥ kūrco nāma khajāhvayam || 4+(3) || ārā catur-vidhākārā tathā syāt karṇa-vedhanī || 4+(4)ab || 26.4+(4)bv tathā syāt karṇa-vedhanam maṇḍalāgraṃ phale teṣāṃ tarjany-antar-nakhākṛti | lekhane chedane yojyaṃ pothakī-śuṇḍikādiṣu || 5 || 26.5av maṇḍalāgraṃ phalaṃ teṣāṃ vṛddhi-pattraṃ kṣurākāraṃ cheda-bhedana-pāṭane | ṛjv-agram unnate śophe gambhīre ca tad anya-thā || 6 || 26.6dv gambhīre tu tato 'nya-thā natāgraṃ pṛṣṭhato dīrgha-hrasva-vaktraṃ yathāśrayam | utpalādhy-ardha-dhārākhye bhedane chedane tathā || 7 || 26.7bv -hrasva-vaktraṃ yathāśayam 26.7bv -hrasva-vaktraṃ yathā-kramam 26.7bv -hrasva-vaktraṃ yathā-yatham 26.7bv -hrasva-vaktre yathā-yatham sarpāsyaṃ ghrāṇa-karṇārśaś-chedane 'rdhāṅgulaṃ phale | gater anveṣaṇe ślakṣṇā gaṇḍū-pada-mukhaiṣaṇī || 8 || bhedanārthe 'parā sūcī-mukhā mūla-niviṣṭa-khā | vetasaṃ vyadhane srāvye śarāry-āsya-tri-kūrcake || 9 || kuśāṭā-vadane srāvye dvy-aṅgulaṃ syāt tayoḥ phalam | tad-vad antar-mukhaṃ tasya phalam adhy-ardham aṅgulam || 10 || 26.10ac kuśāṭā vadane srāvye ardha-candrānanaṃ caitat tathādhy-ardhāṅgulaṃ phale | vrīhi-vaktraṃ prayojya ca tat sirodarayor vyadhe || 11 || pṛthuḥ kuṭhārī go-danta-sadṛśārdhāṅgulānanā | tayordhva-daṇḍayā vidhyed upary asthnāṃ sthitāṃ sirām || 12 || tāmrī śalākā dvi-mukhī mukhe kurubakākṛtiḥ | liṅga-nāśaṃ tayā vidhyet kuryād aṅguli-śastrakam || 13 || 26.13av tāmrī śalākā dvi-mukhā mudrikā-nirgata-mukhaṃ phale tv ardhāṅgulāyatam | yogato vṛddhi-pattreṇa maṇḍalāgreṇa vā samam || 14 || tat pradeśiny-agra-parva-pramāṇārpaṇa-mudrikam | sūtra-baddhaṃ gala-sroto-roga-cchedana-bhedane || 15 || 26.15bv -pramāṇārpita-mudrikam grahaṇe śuṇḍikārmāder baḍiśaṃ su-natānanam | chede 'sthnāṃ karapattraṃ tu khara-dhāraṃ daśāṅgulam || 16 || 26.16bv baḍiśaḥ su-natānanaḥ vistāre dvy-aṅgulaṃ sūkṣma-dantaṃ su-tsaru-bandhanam | snāyu-sūtra-kaca-cchede kartarī kartarī-nibhā || 17 || vakrarju-dhāraṃ dvi-mukhaṃ nakha-śastraṃ navāṅgulam | sūkṣma-śalyoddhṛti-ccheda-bheda-pracchāna-lekhane || 18 || 26.18dv -bheda-pracchanna-lekhane eka-dhāraṃ catuṣ-koṇaṃ prabaddhākṛti caikataḥ | danta-lekhanakaṃ tena śodhayed danta-śarkarām || 19 || 26.19bv pravṛddhākṛti caikataḥ vṛttā gūḍha-dṛḍhāḥ pāśe tisraḥ sūcyo 'tra sīvane | māṃsalānāṃ pradeśānāṃ try-aśrā try-aṅgulam āyatā || 20 || alpa-māṃsāsthi-saṃdhi-stha-vraṇānāṃ dvy-aṅgulāyatā | vrīhi-vaktrā dhanur-vakrā pakvāmāśaya-marmasu || 21 || sā sārdha-dvy-aṅgulā sarva-vṛttās tāś catur-aṅgulāḥ | kūrco vṛttaika-pīṭha-sthāḥ saptāṣṭau vā su-bandhanāḥ || 22 || 26.22av sā sārdha-dvy-aṅgulā sarvā 26.22bv vṛttās tāś catur-aṅgulāḥ sa yojyo nīlikā-vyaṅga-keśa-śāteṣu kuṭṭane | ardhāṅgula-mukhair vṛttair aṣṭābhiḥ kaṇṭakaiḥ khajaḥ || 23 || 26.23bv -keśa-śātana-kuṭṭane pāṇibhyāṃ mathyamānena ghrāṇāt tena hared asṛk | vyadhanaṃ karṇa-pālīnāṃ yūthikā-mukulānanam || 24 || 26.24cv vyadhane karṇa-pālīnāṃ 26.24dv yūthikā-mukulānanā ārārdhāṅgula-vṛttāsyā tat-praveśā tathordhvataḥ | catur-aśrā tayā vidhyec chophaṃ pakvāma-saṃśaye || 25 || karṇa-pālīṃ ca bahalāṃ bahalāyāś ca śasyate | sūcī tri-bhāga-suṣirā try-aṅgulā karṇa-vedhanī || 26 || 26.26bv tasyā eva ca śasyate jalaukaḥ-kṣāra-dahana-kācopala-nakhādayaḥ | a-lauhāny anu-śastrāṇi tāny evaṃ ca vikalpayet || 27 || aparāṇy api yantrādīny upayogaṃ ca yaugikam | utpāṭya-pāṭya-sīvyaiṣya-lekhya-pracchāna-kuṭṭanam || 28 || 26.28cv utpāṭya-pāṭya-sevyaiṣya- 26.28dv -lekhya-pracchanna-kuṭṭanam chedyaṃ bhedyaṃ vyadho mantho graho dāhaś ca tat-kriyāḥ | kuṇṭha-khaṇḍa-tanu-sthūla-hrasva-dīrgha-tva-vakra-tāḥ || 29 || śastrāṇāṃ khara-dhāra-tvam aṣṭau doṣāḥ prakīrtitāḥ | cheda-bhedana-lekhyārthaṃ śastraṃ vṛnta-phalāntare || 30 || tarjanī-madhyamāṅguṣṭhair gṛhṇīyāt su-samāhitaḥ | visrāvaṇāni vṛntāgre tarjany-aṅguṣṭhakena ca || 31 || tala-pracchanna-vṛntāgraṃ grāhyaṃ vrīhi-mukhaṃ mukhe | mūleṣv āharaṇārthāni kriyā-saukaryato 'param || 32 || 26.32cv mūleṣv āharaṇārthe tu 26.32cv mūleṣv āharaṇārtheṣu syān navāṅgula-vistāraḥ su-ghano dvā-daśāṅgulaḥ | kṣauma-pattrorṇa-kauśeya-dukūla-mṛdu-carma-jaḥ || 33 || vinyasta-pāśaḥ su-syūtaḥ sāntarorṇā-stha-śastrakaḥ | śalākā-pihitāsyaś ca śastra-kośaḥ su-saṃcayaḥ || 34 || jalaukasas tu sukhināṃ rakta-srāvāya yojayet | duṣṭāmbu-matsya-bhekāhi-śava-kotha-malodbhavāḥ || 35 || 26.35cv duṣṭāmbu-matsya-bhekādi- raktāḥ śvetā bhṛśaṃ kṛṣṇāś capalāḥ sthūla-picchilāḥ | indrāyudha-vicitrordhva-rājayo romaśāś ca tāḥ || 36 || sa-viṣā varjayet tābhiḥ kaṇḍū-pāka-jvara-bhramāḥ | viṣa-pittāsra-nut kāryaṃ tatra śuddhāmbu-jāḥ punaḥ || 37 || 26.37cv viṣa-pittāsra-jit kāryaṃ 26.37dv tatra śuddhāmbu-saṃbhavāḥ nir-viṣāḥ śaivala-śyāvā vṛttā nīlordhva-rājayaḥ | kaṣāya-pṛṣṭhās tanv-aṅgyaḥ kiñ-cit-pītodarāś ca yāḥ || 38 || tā apy a-samyag-vamanāt pratataṃ ca nipātanāt | sīdantiḥ salilaṃ prāpya rakta-mattā iti tyajet || 39 || 26.39cv sīdanti salilaṃ prāpya athetarā niśā-kalka-yukte 'mbhasi pariplutāḥ | avanti-some takre vā punaś cāśvāsitā jale || 40 || 26.40cv kāñjike kālaśeye vā lāgayed ghṛta-mṛt-stanya-rakta-śastra-nipātanaiḥ | pibantīr unnata-skandhāś chādayen mṛdu-vāsasā || 41 || 26.41av lāgayet pala-mṛt-stanya- saṃpṛktād duṣṭa-śuddhāsrāj jalaukā duṣṭa-śoṇitam | ādatte prathamaṃ haṃsaḥ kṣīraṃ kṣīrodakād iva || 42 || 26.42av saṃsṛṣṭād duṣṭa-śuddhāsrāj gulmārśo-vidradhīn kuṣṭha-vāta-rakta-galāmayān | netra-rug-viṣa-vīsarpān śamayanti jalaukasaḥ || 42+(1) || daṃśasya tode kaṇḍvāṃ vā mokṣayed vāmayec ca tām | paṭu-tailākta-vadanāṃ ślakṣṇa-kaṇḍana-rūṣitām || 43 || 26.43bv mokṣayed vāmayec ca tāḥ 26.43cv paṭu-tailākta-vadanāḥ 26.43dv ślakṣṇa-kaṇḍana-rūkṣitām 26.43dv ślakṣṇa-kaṇḍana-rūṣitāḥ 26.43dv ślakṣṇa-kaṇḍana-rūkṣitāḥ rakṣan rakta-madād bhūyaḥ saptāhaṃ tā na pātayet | pūrva-vat paṭu-tā dārḍhyaṃ samyag-vānte jalaukasām || 44 || klamo 'ti-yogān mṛtyur vā dur-vānte stabdha-tā madaḥ | anya-trānya-tra tāḥ sthāpyā ghaṭe mṛtsnāmbu-garbhiṇi || 45 || lālādi-kotha-nāśārthaṃ sa-viṣāḥ syus tad-anvayāt | a-śuddhau srāvayed daṃśān haridrā-guḍa-mākṣikaiḥ || 46 || śata-dhautājya-picavas tato lepāś ca śītalāḥ | duṣṭa-raktāpagamanāt sadyo rāga-rujāṃ śamaḥ || 47 || a-śuddhaṃ calitaṃ sthānāt sthitaṃ raktaṃ vraṇāśaye | vy-amlī-bhavet paryuṣitaṃ tasmāt tat srāvayet punaḥ || 48 || 26.48cv amlī-bhavet paryuṣitaṃ yuñjyān nālābu-ghaṭikā rakte pittena dūṣite | tāsām anala-saṃyogād yuñjyāt tu kapha-vāyunā || 49 || 26.49dv yuñjyāc ca kapha-vāyunā kaphena duṣṭaṃ rudhiraṃ na śṛṅgeṇa vinirharet | skanna-tvād vāta-pittābhyāṃ duṣṭaṃ śṛṅgeṇa nirharet || 50 || 26.50bv na śṛṅgeṇāti nirharet 26.50bv na śṛṅgeṇābhinirharet gātraṃ baddhvopari dṛḍhaṃ rajjvā paṭṭena vā samam | snāyu-saṃdhy-asthi-marmāṇi tyajan pracchānam ācaret || 51 || adho-deśa pravisṛtaiḥ padair upari-gāmibhiḥ | na gāḍha-ghana-tiryagbhir na pade padam ācaran || 52 || 26.52dv na pade padam ācaret pracchānenaika-deśa-sthaṃ grathitaṃ jala-janmabhiḥ | harec chṛṅgādibhiḥ suptam asṛg vyāpi sirā-vyadhaiḥ || 53 || 26.53bv granthitaṃ jala-janmabhiḥ pracchānaṃ piṇḍite vā syād avagāḍhe jalaukasaḥ | tvak-sthe 'lābu-ghaṭī-śṛṅgaṃ siraiva vyāpake 'sṛji || 54 || vātādi-dhāma vā śṛṅga-jalauko-'lābubhiḥ kramāt | srutāsṛjaḥ pradehādyaiḥ śītaiḥ syād vāyu-kopataḥ || 55 || sa-toda-kaṇḍuḥ śophas taṃ sarpiṣoṣṇena secayet || 55ū̆ab || 26.55ū̆av sa-toda-kaṇḍū-śophas taṃ Sūtrasthāna madhuraṃ lavaṇaṃ kiñ-cid a-śītoṣṇam a-saṃhatam | padmendragopa-hemāvi-śaśa-lohita-lohitam || 1 || lohitaṃ prabhavaḥ śuddhaṃ tanos tenaiva ca sthitaḥ | tat pitta-śleṣmalaiḥ prāyo dūṣyate kurute tataḥ || 2 || 27.2av lohitaṃ pravadec chuddhaṃ visarpa-vidradhi-plīha-gulmāgni-sadana-jvarān | mukha-netra-śiro-roga-mada-tṛḍ-lavaṇāsya-tāḥ || 3 || kuṣṭha-vātāsra-pittāsra-kaṭv-amlodgiraṇa-bhramān | śītoṣṇa-snigdha-rūkṣādyair upakrāntāś ca ye gadāḥ || 4 || samyak sādhyā na sidhyanti te ca rakta-prakopa-jāḥ | teṣu srāvayituṃ raktam udriktaṃ vyadhayet sirām || 5 || na tūna-ṣo-ḍaśātīta-saptaty-abda-srutāsṛjām | a-snigdhā-sveditāty-artha-sveditānila-rogiṇām || 6 || 27.6av na nyūna-ṣo-ḍaśātīta- garbhiṇī-sūtikā-jīrṇa-pittāsra-śvāsa-kāsinām | atīsārodara-cchardi-pāṇḍu-sarvāṅga-śophinām || 7 || sneha-pīte prayukteṣu tathā pañcasu karmasu | nā-yantritāṃ sirāṃ vidhyen na tiryaṅ nāpy an-utthitām || 8 || 27.8dv na tiryaṅ nāpy an-ucchritām nāti-śītoṣṇa-vātābhreṣv anya-trātyayikād gadāt | śiro-netra-vikāreṣu lalāṭyāṃ mokṣayet sirām || 9 || 27.9dv lālāṭyāṃ mokṣayet sirām 27.9dv lālāṭyā mokṣayet sirāḥ 27.9dv lalāṭyā mokṣayet sirāḥ apāṅgyām upanāsyāṃ vā karṇa-rogeṣu karṇa-jām | nāsā-rogeṣu nāsāgre sthitāṃ nāsā-lalāṭayoḥ || 10 || 27.10av apāṅgyā upanāsyā vā pīnase mukha-rogeṣu jihvauṣṭha-hanu-tālu-gāḥ | jatrūrdhva-granthiṣu grīvā-karṇa-śaṅkha-śiraḥ-śritāḥ || 11 || 27.11cv jatrūrdhvaṃ granthiṣu grīvā- uro-'pāṅga-lalāṭa-sthā unmāde 'pasmṛtau punaḥ | hanu-saṃdhau samaste vā sirāṃ bhrū-madhya-gāminīm || 12 || 27.12av uro-'pāṅga-lalāṭa-sthām 27.12dv sirā bhrū-madhya-gāminīḥ vidradhau pārśva-śūle ca pārśva-kakṣā-stanāntare | tṛtīyake 'ṃsayor madhye skandhasyādhaś caturthake || 13 || pravāhikāyāṃ śūlinyāṃ śroṇito dvy-aṅgule sthitām | śukra-meḍhrāmaye meḍhra ūru-gāṃ gala-gaṇḍayoḥ || 14 || gṛdhrasyāṃ jānuno 'dhas-tād ūrdhvaṃ vā catur-aṅgule | indra-vaster adho 'pacyāṃ dvy-aṅgule catur-aṅgule || 15 || ūrdhvaṃ gulphasya sakthy-artau tathā kroṣṭuka-śīrṣake | pāda-dāhe khuḍe harṣe vipādyāṃ vāta-kaṇṭake || 16 || 27.16av ūrdhvaṃ gulphasya saṃdhy-artau cipye ca dvy-aṅgule vidhyed upari kṣipra-marmaṇaḥ | gṛdhrasyām iva viśvācyāṃ yathoktānām a-darśane || 17 || marma-hīne yathāsanne deśe 'nyāṃ vyadhayet sirām | atha snigdha-tanuḥ sajja-sarvopakaraṇo balī || 18 || kṛta-svasty-ayanaḥ snigdha-rasānna-pratibhojitaḥ | agni-tāpātapa-svinno jānūccāsana-saṃsthitaḥ || 19 || mṛdu-paṭṭātta-keśānto jānu-sthāpita-kūrparaḥ | muṣṭibhyāṃ vastra-garbhābhyāṃ manye gāḍhaṃ nipīḍayet || 20 || 27.20dv manye gāḍhaṃ prapīḍayet danta-prapīḍanotkāsa-gaṇḍādhmānāni cācaret | pṛṣṭhato yantrayec cainaṃ vastram āveṣṭayan naraḥ || 21 || 27.21dv vastram āveṣṭayen naraḥ kandharāyāṃ parikṣipya nyasyāntar vāma-tarjanīm | eṣo 'ntar-mukha-varjyānāṃ sirāṇāṃ yantraṇe vidhiḥ || 22 || 27.22bv tasyāntar vāma-tarjanīm 27.22cv eṣo 'ntar-mukha-varjānāṃ tato madhyamayāṅgulyā vaidyo 'ṅguṣṭha-vimuktayā | tāḍayed utthitāṃ jñātvā sparśād vāṅguṣṭha-pīḍanaiḥ || 23 || 27.23dv sparśāṅguṣṭha-prapīḍanaiḥ kuṭhāryā lakṣayen madhye vāma-hasta-gṛhītayā | phaloddeśe su-niṣ-kampaṃ sirāṃ tad-vac ca mokṣayet || 24 || tāḍayan pīḍayaṃś caināṃ vidhyed vrīhi-mukhena tu | aṅguṣṭhenonnamayyāgre nāsikām upa-nāsikām || 25 || 27.25av tāḍayan pīḍayan vaināṃ 27.25av tāḍayan pīḍayec caināṃ abhyunnata-vidaṣṭāgra-jihvasyādhas tad-āśrayām | yantrayet stanayor ūrdhvaṃ grīvāśrita-sirā-vyadhe || 26 || pāṣāṇa-garbha-hastasya jānu-sthe prasṛte bhuje | kukṣer ārabhya mṛdite vidhyed baddhordhva-paṭṭake || 27 || vidhyed dhasta-sirāṃ bāhāv an-ākuñcita-kūrpare | baddhvā sukhopaviṣṭasya muṣṭim aṅguṣṭha-garbhiṇam || 28 || 27.28dv muṣṭim aṅguṣṭha-garbhiṇīm ūrdhvaṃ vedhya-pradeśāc ca paṭṭikāṃ catur-aṅgule | vidhyed ālambamānasya bāhubhyāṃ pārśvayoḥ sirām || 29 || prahṛṣṭe mehane jaṅghā-sirāṃ jānuny a-kuñcite | pāde tu su-sthite 'dhas-tāj jānu-saṃdher nipīḍite || 30 || 27.30cv pāde tu bhū-sthite 'dhas-tāj gāḍhaṃ karābhyām ā-gulphaṃ caraṇe tasya copari | dvitīye kuñcite kiñ-cid-ārūḍhe hasta-vat tataḥ || 31 || baddhvā vidhyet sirām ittham an-ukteṣv api kalpayet | teṣu teṣu pradeśeṣu tat tad yantram upāya-vit || 32 || māṃsale nikṣiped deśe vrīhy-āsyaṃ vrīhi-mātrakam | yavārdham asthnām upari sirāṃ vidhyan kuṭhārikām || 33 || 27.33dv sirāṃ vidhyan kuṭhārayā 27.33dv sirāṃ vidhyet kuṭhārayā 27.33dv sirāṃ vidhyet kuṭhārikām samyag-viddhā sraved dhārāṃ yantre mukte tu na sravet | alpa-kālaṃ vahaty alpaṃ dur-viddhā taila-cūrṇanaiḥ || 34 || 27.34av samyag-viddhe sraved dhārā 27.34bv yantre mukte ca na sravet 27.34dv dur-viddhā taila-cūrṇitaiḥ sa-śabdam ati-viddhā tu sraved duḥkhena dhāryate | bhī-mūrchā-yantra-śaithilya-kuṇṭha-śastrāti-tṛptayaḥ || 35 || kṣāma-tva-vegi-tā-svedā raktasyā-sruti-hetavaḥ | a-samyag asre sravati vella-vyoṣa-niśā-nataiḥ || 36 || sāgāra-dhūma-lavaṇa-tailair dihyāt sirā-mukham | samyak-pravṛtte koṣṇena tailena lavaṇena ca || 37 || 27.37dv tailena lavaṇena vā agre sravati duṣṭāsraṃ kusumbhād iva pītikā | samyak srutvā svayaṃ tiṣṭhec chuddhaṃ tad iti nāharet || 38 || yantraṃ vimucya mūrchāyāṃ vījite vyajanaiḥ punaḥ | srāvayen mūrchati punas tv apare-dyus try-ahe 'pi vā || 39 || vātāc chyāvāruṇaṃ rūkṣaṃ vega-srāvy accha-phenilaṃ | pittāt pītāsitaṃ visram a-skandy auṣṇyāt sa-candrikam || 40 || 27.40dv a-skandy auṣṇyāt sa-candrakam vātikaṃ śoṇitaṃ śīghraṃ bhūmiḥ pibati cāvṛtam | makṣikāṇām a-kāntaṃ ca raktaṃ bhavati paittikam || 40+1 || ślaiṣmikaṃ makṣikākrāntaṃ śuṣyaty api na ceṇayat || 40+2ab || kaphāt snigdham asṛk pāṇḍu tantu-mat picchilaṃ ghanam | saṃsṛṣṭa-liṅgaṃ saṃsargāt tri-doṣaṃ malināvilam || 41 || a-śuddhau balino 'py asraṃ na prasthāt srāvayet param | ati-srutau hi mṛtyuḥ syād dāruṇā vā calāmayāḥ || 42 || 27.42av a-śuddhaṃ balino 'py asraṃ tatrābhyaṅga-rasa-kṣīra-rakta-pānāni bheṣajam | srute rakte śanair yantram apanīya himāmbunā || 43 || prakṣālya taila-plotāktaṃ bandhanīyaṃ sirā-mukham | a-śuddhaṃ srāvayed bhūyaḥ sāyam ahny apare 'pi vā || 44 || 27.44cv a-śuddhau srāvayed bhūyaḥ snehopaskṛta-dehasya pakṣād vā bhṛśa-dūṣitam | kiñ-cid dhi śeṣe duṣṭāsre naiva rogo 'tivartate || 45 || sa-śeṣam apy ato dhāryaṃ na cāti-srutim ācaret | harec chṛṅgādibhiḥ śeṣaṃ prasādam atha-vā nayet || 46 || śītopacāra-pittāsra-kriyā-śuddhi-viśoṣaṇaiḥ | duṣṭaṃ raktam an-udriktam evam eva prasādayet || 47 || rakte tv a-tiṣṭhati kṣipraṃ stambhanīm ācaret kriyām | lodhra-priyaṅgu-pattaṅga-māṣa-yaṣṭy-āhva-gairikaiḥ || 48 || mṛt-kapālāñjana-kṣauma-maṣī-kṣīri-tvag-aṅkuraiḥ | vicūrṇayed vraṇa-mukhaṃ padmakādi-himaṃ pibet || 49 || tām eva vā sirāṃ vidhyed vyadhāt tasmād an-antaram | sirā-mukhaṃ vā tvaritaṃ dahet tapta-śalākayā || 50 || 27.50cv sirā-mukhaṃ ca tvaritaṃ un-mārga-gā yantra-nipīḍanena sva-sthānam āyānti punar na yāvat | doṣāḥ praduṣṭā rudhiraṃ prapannās tāvad dhitāhāra-vihāra-bhāk syāt || 51 || nāty-uṣṇa-śītaṃ laghu dīpanīyaṃ rakte 'panīte hitam anna-pānam | tadā śarīraṃ hy an-avasthitāsṛg agnir viśeṣād iti rakṣitavyaḥ || 52 || 27.52cv tadā śarīraṃ hy an-avasthitāsram 27.52dv agnir viśeṣād iti rakṣaṇīyaḥ 27.52dv agnir viśeṣeṇa ca rakṣitavyaḥ prasanna-varṇendriyam indriyārthān icchantam a-vyāhata-paktṛ-vegam | sukhānvitaṃ puṣṭi-balopapannaṃ viśuddha-raktaṃ puruṣaṃ vadanti || 53 || rakta-jā vyaṅga-kuṣṭhādyāḥ kaṇṭhāsyākṣi-śiro-gadāḥ | palitārūṃṣikābādhāḥ śāmyanty ete sirā-vyadhāt || 53+1 || nir-vyādhi-nīlotpala-pattra-netraṃ su-vyakta-mūlāsita-baddha-keśam | candropamaṃ padma-su-gandhi vaktraṃ bhavel lalāṭe tu sirā-vyadhena || 53+2 || Sūtrasthāna vakrarju-tiryag-ūrdhvādhaḥ śalyānāṃ pañca-dhā gatiḥ | dhyāmaṃ śopha-rujā-vantaṃ sravantaṃ śoṇitaṃ muhuḥ || 1 || abhyudgataṃ budbuda-vat piṭikopacitaṃ vraṇam | mṛdu-māṃsaṃ ca jānīyād antaḥ-śalyaṃ samāsataḥ || 2 || 28.2av abhyunnataṃ budbuda-vat 28.2cv mṛdu-māṃsaṃ vijānīyād viśeṣāt tvag-gate śalye vi-varṇaḥ kaṭhināyataḥ | śopho bhavati māṃsa-sthe coṣaḥ śopho vivardhate || 3 || pīḍanā-kṣama-tā pākaḥ śalya-mārgo na rohati | peśy-antara-gate māṃsa-prāpta-vac chvayathuṃ vinā || 4 || 28.4av pīḍane '-kṣama-tā pākaḥ 28.4dv -prāpta-vac chvayathor vinā ākṣepaḥ snāyu-jālasya saṃrambha-stambha-vedanāḥ | snāyu-ge dur-haraṃ caitat sirādhmānaṃ sirāśrite || 5 || 28.5cv snāva-ge dur-haraṃ caitat sva-karma-guṇa-hāniḥ syāt srotasāṃ srotasi sthite | dhamanī-sthe 'nile raktaṃ phena-yuktam udīrayet || 6 || 28.6dv phena-yuktam udīrayan niryāti śabda-vān syāc ca hṛl-lāsaḥ sāṅga-vedanaḥ | saṃgharṣo bala-vān asthi-saṃdhi-prāpte 'sthi-pūrṇa-tā || 7 || 28.7cv saṃharṣo bala-vān asthi- naika-rūpā rujo 'sthi-sthe śophas tad-vac ca saṃdhi-ge | ceṣṭā-nivṛttiś ca bhaved āṭopaḥ koṣṭha-saṃśrite || 8 || ānāho 'nna-śakṛn-mūtra-darśanaṃ ca vraṇānane | vidyān marma-gataṃ śalyaṃ marma-viddhopalakṣaṇaiḥ || 9 || yathā-svaṃ ca parisrāvais tvag-ādiṣu vibhāvayet | ruhyate śuddha-dehānām anuloma-sthitaṃ tu tat || 10 || 28.10av yathā-yathaṃ parisrāvais doṣa-kopābhighātādi-kṣobhād bhūyo 'pi bādhate | tvaṅ-naṣṭe yatra tatra syur abhyaṅga-sveda-mardanaiḥ || 11 || rāga-rug-dāha-saṃrambhā yatra cājyaṃ vilīyate | āśu śuṣyati lepo vā tat-sthānaṃ śalya-vad vadet || 12 || 28.12bv yatra vājyaṃ vilīyate 28.12cv āśuṣyati pralepo vā māṃsa-praṇaṣṭaṃ saṃśuddhyā karśanāc chlatha-tāṃ gatam | kṣobhād rāgādibhiḥ śalyaṃ lakṣayet tad-vad eva ca || 13 || 28.13bv karṣaṇāc chlatha-tāṃ gatam peśy-asthi-saṃdhi-koṣṭheṣu naṣṭam asthiṣu lakṣayet | asthnām abhyañjana-sveda-bandha-pīḍana-mardanaiḥ || 14 || prasāraṇākuñcanataḥ saṃdhi-naṣṭaṃ tathāsthi-vat | naṣṭe snāyu-sirā-sroto-dhamanīṣv a-same pathi || 15 || aśva-yuktaṃ rathaṃ khaṇḍa-cakram āropya rogiṇam | śīghraṃ nayet tatas tasya saṃrambhāc chalyam ādiśet || 16 || marma-naṣṭaṃ pṛthaṅ noktaṃ teṣāṃ māṃsādi-saṃśrayāt | sāmānyena sa-śalyaṃ tu kṣobhiṇyā kriyayā sa-ruk || 17 || vṛttaṃ pṛthu catuṣ-koṇaṃ tri-puṭaṃ ca samāsataḥ | a-dṛśya-śalya-saṃsthānaṃ vraṇākṛtyā vibhāvayet || 18 || teṣām āharaṇopāyau pratilomānulomakau | arvācīna-parācīne nirharet tad-viparyayāt || 19 || 28.19cv avācīna-parācīne sukhāhāryaṃ yataś chittvā tatas tiryag-gataṃ haret | śalyaṃ na nirghātyam uraḥ-kakṣā-vaṅkṣaṇa-pārśva-gam || 20 || pratilomam an-uttuṇḍaṃ chedyaṃ pṛthu-mukhaṃ ca yat | naivāhared vi-śalya-ghnaṃ naṣṭaṃ vā nir-upadravam || 21 || athāharet kara-prāpyaṃ kareṇaivetarat punaḥ | dṛśyaṃ siṃhāhi-makara-varmi-karkaṭakānanaiḥ || 22 || a-dṛśyaṃ vraṇa-saṃsthānād grahītuṃ śakyate yataḥ | kaṅka-bhṛṅgāhva-kurara-śarāri-vāyasānanaiḥ || 23 || saṃdaṃśābhyāṃ tvag-ādi-sthaṃ tālābhyāṃ suṣiraṃ haret | suṣira-sthaṃ tu nalakaiḥ śeṣaṃ śeṣair yathā-yatham || 24 || śastreṇa vā viśasyādau tato nir-lohitaṃ vraṇam | kṛtvā ghṛtena saṃsvedya baddhācārikam ādiśet || 25 || 28.25dv baddhācārikam ācaret sirā-snāyu-vilagnaṃ tu cālayitvā śalākayā | hṛdaye saṃsthitaṃ śalyaṃ trāsitasya himāmbunā || 26 || 28.26av sirā-snāyu-vilagnaṃ ca 28.26av sirā-snāva-vilagnaṃ tu tataḥ sthānāntaraṃ prāptaṃ āharet tad yathā-yatham | yathā-mārgaṃ dur-ākarṣam anyato 'py evam āharet || 27 || asthi-daṣṭe naraṃ padbhyāṃ pīḍayitvā vinirharet | ity a-śakye su-balibhiḥ su-gṛhītasya kiṅkaraiḥ || 28 || 28.28av asthi-dṛṣṭe naraṃ padbhyāṃ 28.28av asthi-naṣṭe naraṃ padbhyāṃ 28.28av asthi-lagnaṃ naraṃ padbhyāṃ 28.28av asthi-sthaṃ na paraṃ padbhyāṃ tathāpy a-śakye vāraṅgaṃ vakrī-kṛtya dhanur-jyayā | su-baddhaṃ vaktra-kaṭake badhnīyāt su-samāhitaḥ || 29 || su-saṃyatasya pañcāṅgyā vājinaḥ kaśayātha tam | tāḍayed iti mūrdhānaṃ vegenonnamayan yathā || 30 || 28.30dv vegenonnamayed yathā uddharec chalyam evaṃ vā śākhāyāṃ kalpayet taroḥ | baddhvā dur-bala-vāraṅgaṃ kuśābhiḥ śalyam āharet || 31 || śvayathu-grasta-vāraṅgaṃ śopham utpīḍya yuktitaḥ | mudgarāhatayā nāḍyā nirghātyottuṇḍitaṃ haret || 32 || tair eva cānayen mārgam a-mārgottuṇḍitaṃ tu yat | mṛditvā karṇināṃ karṇaṃ nāḍy-āsyena nigṛhya vā || 33 || 28.33av tenaiva vā nayen mārgam 28.33bv a-mārgottuṇḍitaṃ ca yat ayas-kāntena niṣ-karṇaṃ vivṛtāsyam ṛju-sthitam | pakvāśaya-gataṃ śalyaṃ virekeṇa vinirharet || 34 || duṣṭa-vāta-viṣa-stanya-rakta-toyādi cūṣaṇaiḥ | kaṇṭha-sroto-gate śalye sūtraṃ kaṇṭhe praveśayet || 35 || bisenātte tataḥ śalye bisaṃ sūtraṃ samaṃ haret | nāḍyāgni-tāpitāṃ kṣiptvā śalākām ap-sthirī-kṛtām || 36 || 28.36bv jatu-digdham a-jātuṣam ānayej jātuṣaṃ kaṇṭhāj jatu-digdhām a-jātuṣam | keśondukena pītena dravaiḥ kaṇṭakam ākṣipet || 37 || 28.37bv jatu-digdham a-jātuṣam 28.37cv keśāṇḍakena pītena 28.37cv keśāṇḍukena pītena 28.37cv keśoṇḍukena pītena sahasā sūtra-baddhena vamatas tena cetarat | a-śakyaṃ mukha-nāsābhyām āhartuṃ parato nudet || 38 || ap-pāna-skandha-ghātābhyāṃ grāsa-śalyaṃ praveśayet | sūkṣmākṣi-vraṇa-śalyāni kṣauma-vāla-jalair haret || 39 || apāṃ pūrṇaṃ vidhunuyād avāk-śirasam āyatam | vāmayec cā-mukhaṃ bhasma-rāśau vā nikhanen naram || 40 || 28.40cv vāmayed ā-mukhaṃ bhasma- 28.40cv vāmayed vā-mukhaṃ bhasma- 28.40cv vāmayed vā sukhaṃ bhasma- karṇe 'mbu-pūrṇe hastena mathitvā taila-vāriṇī | kṣiped adho-mukhaṃ karṇaṃ hanyād vācūṣayeta vā || 41 || 28.41dv hanyād vācūṣayet tadā 28.41dv hanyād vācūṣayeta ca kīṭe sroto-gate karṇaṃ pūrayed lavaṇāmbunā | śuktena vā sukhoṣṇena mṛte kleda-haro vidhiḥ || 42 || jātuṣaṃ hema-rūpyādi-dhātu-jaṃ ca cira-sthitam | ūṣmaṇā prāya-śaḥ śalyaṃ deha-jena vilīyate || 43 || mṛd-veṇu-dāru-śṛṅgāsthi-danta-vālopalāni na | viṣāṇa-veṇv-ayas-tāla-dāru-śalyaṃ cirād api || 44 || 28.44bv -danta-vālopalādi na prāyo nirbhujyate tad dhi pacaty āśu palāsṛjī | śalye māṃsāvagāḍhe cet sa deśo na vidahyate || 45 || 28.45cv śalye māṃsāvagāḍhe ca tatas taṃ mardana-sveda-śuddhi-karṣaṇa-bṛṃhaṇaiḥ | tīkṣṇopanāha-pānānna-ghana-śastra-padāṅkanaiḥ || 46 || 28.46bv -śuddhi-karśana-bṛṃhaṇaiḥ pācayitvā harec chalyaṃ pāṭanaiṣaṇa-bhedanaiḥ | śalya-pradeśa-yantrāṇām avekṣya bahu-rūpa-tām || 47 || tais tair upāyair mati-mān śalyaṃ vidyāt tathāharet || 47ū̆ab || 28.47ū̆bv śalyaṃ vidyāt tato haret Sūtrasthāna vraṇaḥ saṃjāyate prāyaḥ pākāc chvayathu-pūrvakāt | tam evopacaret tasmād rakṣan pākaṃ prayatnataḥ || 1 || su-śīta-lepa-sekāsra-mokṣa-saṃśodhanādibhiḥ | śopho 'lpo 'lpoṣma-ruk sāmaḥ sa-varṇaḥ kaṭhinaḥ sthiraḥ || 2 || 29.2av su-śīta-lepa-sekāsṛṅ- 29.2cv śopho 'lpo 'lpoṣma-ruk cāmaḥ pacyamāno vi-varṇas tu rāgī vastir ivātataḥ | sphuṭatīva sa-nistodaḥ sāṅga-marda-vijṛmbhikaḥ || 3 || saṃrambhā-ruci-dāhoṣā-tṛḍ-jvarā-nidra-tānvitaḥ | styānaṃ viṣyandayaty ājyaṃ vraṇa-vat sparśanā-sahaḥ || 4 || pakve 'lpa-vega-tā mlāniḥ pāṇḍu-tā vali-saṃbhavaḥ | nāmo 'nteṣūnnatir madhye kaṇḍū-śophādi-mārdavam || 5 || 29.5av pakve 'lpa-vega-tā glāniḥ 29.5av pakve 'lpa-vedanā glāniḥ 29.5av pakve 'lpa-vedanā mlāniḥ 29.5av pakve 'lpā vedanā mlāniḥ spṛṣṭe pūyasya saṃcāro bhaved vastāv ivāmbhasaḥ | śūlaṃ narte 'nilād dāhaḥ pittāc chophaḥ kaphodayāt || 6 || rāgo raktāc ca pākaḥ syād ato doṣaiḥ sa-śoṇitaiḥ | pāke 'tivṛtte suṣiras tanu-tvag-doṣa-bhakṣitaḥ || 7 || valībhir ācitaḥ śyāvaḥ śīryamāṇa-tanū-ruhaḥ | kapha-jeṣu tu śopheṣu gambhīraṃ pākam ety asṛk || 8 || 29.8av valībhir ācitaḥ śyāmaḥ pakva-liṅgaṃ tato '-spaṣṭaṃ yatra syāc chīta-śopha-tā | tvak-sāvarṇyaṃ rujo 'lpa-tvaṃ ghana-sparśa-tvam aśma-vat || 9 || rakta-pākam iti brūyāt taṃ prājño mukta-saṃśayaḥ | alpa-sat-tve '-bale bāle pākād vāty-artham uddhate || 10 || 29.10dv pākād aty-artham uddhate 29.10dv pāke vāty-artham uddhate dāraṇaṃ marma-saṃdhy-ādi-sthite cānya-tra pāṭanam | āma-cchede sirā-snāyu-vyāpado 'sṛg-ati-srutiḥ || 11 || rujo 'ti-vṛddhir daraṇaṃ visarpo vā kṣatodbhavaḥ | tiṣṭhann antaḥ punaḥ pūyaḥ sirā-snāyv-asṛg-āmiṣam || 12 || vivṛddho dahati kṣipraṃ tṛṇolapam ivānalaḥ | yaś chinatty āmam a-jñānād yaś ca pakvam upekṣate || 13 || 29.13bv tṛṇolupam ivānalaḥ 29.13bv tṛṇopalam ivānalaḥ 29.13bv tṛṇoccayam ivānalaḥ śva-pacāv iva vijñeyau tāv a-niścita-kāriṇau | prāk śastra-karmaṇaś ceṣṭaṃ bhojayed annam āturam || 14 || 29.14av śva-pacāv iva jānīyāt 29.14bv dvāv a-niścita-kāriṇau 29.14cv prāk śastra-karmaṇaḥ śreṣṭhaṃ pāna-paṃ pāyayen madyaṃ tīkṣṇaṃ yo vedanā-kṣamaḥ | na mūrchaty anna-saṃyogān mattaḥ śastraṃ na budhyate || 15 || anya-tra mūḍha-garbhāśma-mukha-rogodarāturāt | athāhṛtopakaraṇaṃ vaidyaḥ prāṅ-mukham āturam || 16 || 29.16cv athāhṛtopakaraṇo saṃmukho yantrayitvāśu nyasyen marmādi varjayan | anulomaṃ su-niśitaṃ śastram ā-pūya-darśanāt || 17 || 29.17av saṃmukhaṃ yantrayitvāśu sakṛd evāharec tac ca pāke tu su-mahaty api | pāṭayed dvy-aṅgulaṃ samyag dvy-aṅgula-try-aṅgulāntaram || 18 || eṣitvā samyag eṣiṇyā paritaḥ su-nirūpitam | aṅgulī-nāla-vālair vā yathā-deśaṃ yathāśayam || 19 || yato gatāṃ gatiṃ vidyād utsaṅgo yatra yatra ca | tatra tatra vraṇaṃ kuryāt su-vibhaktaṃ nir-āśayam || 20 || 29.20bv utsaṅgaṃ yatra yatra ca āyataṃ ca viśālaṃ ca yathā doṣo na tiṣṭhati | śauryam āśu-kriyā tīkṣṇaṃ śastram a-sveda-vepathū || 21 || 29.21cv śauryam āśu-kriyā tīkṣṇa- 29.21dv -śastram a-sveda-vepathū a-saṃmohaś ca vaidyasya śastra-karmaṇi śasyate | tiryak chindyāl lalāṭa-bhrū-danta-veṣṭaka-jatruṇi || 22 || kukṣi-kakṣākṣi-kūṭauṣṭha-kapola-gala-vaṅkṣaṇe | anya-tra cchedanāt tiryak sirā-snāyu-vipāṭanam || 23 || śastre 'vacārite vāgbhiḥ śītāmbhobhiś ca rogiṇam | āśvāsya parito 'ṅgulyā paripīḍya vraṇaṃ tataḥ || 24 || kṣālayitvā kaṣāyeṇa plotenāmbho 'panīya ca | guggulv-aguru-siddhārtha-hiṅgu-sarja-rasānvitaiḥ || 25 || dhūpayec paṭu-ṣaḍgranthā-nimba-pattrair ghṛta-plutaiḥ | tila-kalkājya-madhubhir yathā-svaṃ bheṣajena ca || 26 || digdhāṃ vartiṃ tato dadyāt tair evācchādayec ca tām | ghṛtāktaiḥ saktubhiś cordhvaṃ ghanāṃ kavalikāṃ tataḥ || 27 || 29.27bv tair evācchādayec ca tam nidhāya yuktyā badhnīyāt paṭṭena su-samāhitam | pārśve savye 'pa-savye vā nādhas-tān naiva copari || 28 || 29.28bv paṭṭena su-samāhitaḥ śuci-sūkṣma-dṛḍhāḥ paṭṭāḥ kavalyaḥ sa-vikeśikāḥ | dhūpitā mṛdavaḥ ślakṣṇā nir-valīkā vraṇe hitāḥ || 29 || 29.29bv kavalyaḥ su-vikeśikāḥ kurvītān-antaraṃ tasya rakṣāṃ rakṣo-niṣiddhaye | baliṃ copaharet tebhyaḥ sadā mūrdhnā ca dhārayet || 30 || 29.30av kurvītān-antaraṃ samyag- 29.30bv rakṣāṃ rakṣo-nivṛttaye 29.30bv -rakṣāṃ rakṣo-niṣiddhaye 29.30dv sadā mūrdhnāvadhārayet lakṣmīṃ guhām atiguhāṃ jaṭilāṃ brahmacāriṇīm | vacāṃ chattrām aticchattrāṃ dūrvāṃ siddhārthakān api || 31 || tataḥ sneha-dinehoktaṃ tasyācāraṃ samādiśet | divā-svapno vraṇe kaṇḍū-rāga-ruk-śopha-pūya-kṛt || 32 || 29.32av tataḥ sneha-vidhānoktaṃ strīṇāṃ tu smṛti-saṃsparśa-darśanaiś calita-srute | śukre vyavāya-jān doṣān a-saṃsarge 'py avāpnuyāt || 33 || vraṇe śvayathur āyāsāt sa ca rāgaś ca jāgarāt | tau ca ruk ca divā-svāpāt tāś ca mṛtyuś ca maithunāt || 33+(1) || bhojanaṃ ca yathā-sātmyaṃ yava-godhūma-ṣaṣṭikāḥ | masūra-mudga-tubarī-jīvantī-suniṣaṇṇakāḥ || 34 || 29.34av bhojanaṃ tu yathā-sātmyaṃ bāla-mūlaka-vārtāka-taṇḍulīyaka-vāstukam | kāravellaka-karkoṭa-paṭola-kaṭukā-phalam || 35 || saindhavaṃ dāḍimaṃ dhātrī ghṛtaṃ tapta-himaṃ jalam | jīrṇa-śāly-odanaṃ snigdham alpam uṣṇodakottaram || 36 || 29.36dv alpam uṣṇaṃ dravottaram bhuñjāno jāṅgalair māṃsaiḥ śīghraṃ vraṇam apohati | aśitaṃ mātrayā kāle pathyaṃ yāti jarāṃ sukham || 37 || a-jīrṇāt tv anilādīnāṃ vibhramo bala-vān bhavet | tataḥ śopha-rujā-pāka-dāhānāhān avāpnuyāt || 38 || 29.38av a-jīrṇe tv anilādīnāṃ navaṃ dhānyaṃ tilān māṣān madyaṃ māṃsam a-jāṅgalam | kṣīrekṣu-vikṛtīr amlaṃ lavaṇaṃ kaṭukaṃ tyajet || 39 || 29.39bv madyaṃ māṃsaṃ tv a-jāṅgalam yac cānyad api viṣṭambhi vidāhi guru śītalam | vargo 'yaṃ nava-dhānyādir vraṇinaḥ sarva-doṣa-kṛt || 40 || 29.40dv vraṇināṃ sarva-doṣa-kṛt madyaṃ tīkṣṇoṣṇa-rūkṣāmlam āśu vyāpādayed vraṇam | vālośīraiś ca vījyeta na cainaṃ parighaṭṭayet || 41 || 29.41cv bālośīraiś ca vījyeta na tuden na ca kaṇḍūyec ceṣṭamānaś ca pālayet | snigdha-vṛddha-dvi-jātīnāṃ kathāḥ śṛṇvan manaḥ-priyāḥ || 42 || 29.42bv chayānaḥ paripālayet 29.42cv siddha-vṛddha-dvi-jātīnāṃ āśā-vān vyādhi-mokṣāya kṣipraṃ vraṇam apohati | tṛtīye 'hni punaḥ kuryād vraṇa-karma ca pūrva-vat || 43 || prakṣālanādi divase dvitīye nācaret tathā | tīvra-vyatho vigrathitaś cirāt saṃrohati vraṇaḥ || 44 || snigdhāṃ rūkṣāṃ ślathāṃ gāḍhāṃ dur-nyastāṃ ca vikeśikām | vraṇe na dadyāt kalkaṃ vā snehāt kledo vivardhate || 45 || māṃsa-cchedo 'ti-rug-raukṣyād daraṇaṃ śoṇitāgamaḥ | ślathāti-gāḍha-dur-nyāsair vraṇa-vartmāvagharṣaṇam || 46 || 29.46cv ślathāti-gāḍha-dur-nyastair sa-pūti-māṃsaṃ sotsaṅgaṃ sa-gatiṃ pūya-garbhiṇam | vraṇaṃ viśodhayec chīghraṃ sthitā hy antar vikeśikā || 47 || vy-amlaṃ tu pāṭitaṃ śophaṃ pācanaiḥ samupācaret | bhojanair upanāhaiś ca nāti-vraṇa-virodhibhiḥ || 48 || 29.48dv nāti-vraṇa-viśodhibhiḥ sadyaḥ sadyo-vraṇān sīvyed vivṛtān abhighāta-jān | medo-jāō̃ likhitān granthīn hrasvāḥ pālīś ca karṇayoḥ || 49 || śiro-'kṣi-kūṭa-nāsauṣṭha-gaṇḍa-karṇoru-bāhuṣu | grīvā-lalāṭa-muṣka-sphiṅ-meḍhra-pāyūdarādiṣu || 50 || gambhīreṣu pradeśeṣu māṃsaleṣv a-caleṣu ca | na tu vaṅkṣaṇa-kakṣādāv alpa-māṃse cale vraṇān || 51 || 29.51dv alpa-māṃsa-cale vraṇān 29.51dv alpa-māṃsa-calān vraṇān vāyu-nirvāhiṇaḥ śalya-garbhān kṣāra-viṣāgni-jān | sīvyec calāsthi-śuṣkāsra-tṛṇa-romāpanīya tu || 52 || 29.52dv -tṛṇa-romāpanīya ca pralambi māṃsaṃ vicchinnaṃ niveśya sva-niveśane | saṃdhy-asthi ca sthite rakte snāyvā sūtreṇa valkalaiḥ || 53 || 29.53cv saṃdhy-asthy avasthite rakte 29.53dv snāvnā sūtreṇa valkalaiḥ sīvyen na dūre nāsanne gṛhṇan nālpaṃ na vā bahu | sāntvayitvā tataś cārtaṃ vraṇe madhu-ghṛta-drutaiḥ || 54 || 29.54dv vraṇe madhu-ghṛta-plutaiḥ añjana-kṣauma-ja-maṣī-phalinī-śallakī-phalaiḥ | 29.54bv gṛhṇan sv-alpaṃ na vā bahu 29.54cv śāntayitvā tataś cārtaṃ 29.54cv sāntayitvā tataś cārtaṃ sa-lodhra-madhukair digdhe yuñjyād bandhādi pūrva-vat || 55 || vraṇo niḥ-śoṇitauṣṭho yaḥ kiñ-cid evāvalikhya tam | saṃjāta-rudhiraṃ sīvyet saṃdhānaṃ hy asya śoṇitam || 56 || bandhanāni tu deśādīn vīkṣya yuñjīta teṣu ca | 29.56bv kiñ-cid eva vilikhya tam āvikājina-kauśeyam uṣṇaṃ kṣaumaṃ tu śītalam || 57 || śītoṣṇaṃ tulā-saṃtāna-kārpāsa-snāyu-valka-jam | tāmrāyas-trapu-sīsāni vraṇe medaḥ-kaphādhike || 58 || 29.58bv -kārpāsa-snāva-valka-jam bhaṅge ca yuñjyāt phalakaṃ carma-valka-kuśādi ca | sva-nāmānugatākārā bandhās tu daśa pañca ca || 59 || kośa-svastika-muttolī-cīna-dāmānuvellitam | khaṭvā-vibandha-sthagikā-vitānotsaṅga-goṣ-phaṇāḥ || 60 || 29.60dv -vitānotsaṅga-go-phaṇāḥ yamakaṃ maṇḍalākhyaṃ ca pañcāṅgī ceti yojayet | yo yatra su-niviṣṭaḥ syāt taṃ teṣāṃ tatra buddhi-mān || 61 || 29.61cv yo yatra saṃniviṣṭaḥ syāt vidadhyāt teṣu teṣv eva kośam aṅguli-parvasu | svastikaṃ karṇa-kakṣādi-staneṣūktaṃ ca saṃdhiṣu || 61.1+(1) || muttolīṃ meḍhra-grīvādau yuñjyāc cīnam apāṅgayoḥ | saṃbādhe 'ṅge tathā dāma śākhāsv evānuvellitam || 61.1+(2) || khaṭvāṃ gaṇḍe hanau śaṅkhe vibandhaṃ pṛṣṭhakodare | aṅguṣṭhāṅgulimeḍhrāgre sthagikām antra-vṛddhiṣu || 61.1+(3) || vitānaṃ pṛthulāṅgādau tathā śirasi cerayet | vilambini tathotsaṅgaṃ nāsauṣṭha-cibukādiṣu || 61.1+(4) || goṣ-phaṇaṃ saṃdhiṣu tathā yamakaṃ yamike vraṇe | vṛtte 'ṅge maṇḍalākhyaṃ ca pañcāṅgīṃ cordhva-jatruṣu || 61.1+(5) || badhnīyād gāḍham ūru-sphik-kakṣā-vaṅkṣaṇa-mūrdhasu | śākhā-vadana-karṇoraḥ-pṛṣṭha-pārśva-galodare || 62 || samaṃ mehana-muṣke ca netre saṃdhiṣu ca ślatham | badhnīyāc chithila-sthāne vāta-śleṣmodbhave samam || 63 || gāḍham eva sama-sthāne bhṛśaṃ gāḍhaṃ tad-āśaye | śīte vasante 'pi ca tau mokṣaṇīyau try-ahāt try-ahāt || 64 || 29.64bv bhṛśaṃ gāḍhaṃ tad-āśraye 29.64cv śīte vasante ca tathā 29.64dv mokṣayet tau try-ahāt try-ahāt 29.64dv mokṣaṇīyas try-ahāt try-ahāt pitta-raktotthayor bandho gāḍha-sthāne samo mataḥ | sama-sthāne ślatho naiva śithilasyāśaye tathā || 65 || sāyaṃ prātas tayor mokṣo grīṣme śaradi ceṣyate | a-baddho daṃśa-maśaka-śīta-vātādi-pīḍitaḥ || 66 || duṣṭī-bhavec ciraṃ cātra na tiṣṭhet sneha-bheṣajam | kṛcchreṇa śuddhiṃ rūḍhiṃ vā yāti rūḍho vi-varṇa-tām || 67 || baddhas tu cūrṇito bhagno viśliṣṭaḥ pāṭito 'pi vā | chinna-snāyu-siro 'py āśu sukhaṃ saṃrohati vraṇaḥ || 68 || utthāna-śayanādyāsu sarvehāsu na pīḍyate | udvṛttauṣṭhaḥ samutsanno viṣamaḥ kaṭhino 'ti-ruk || 69 || 29.69bv sarvehāsu na pīḍayet 29.69cv uddhṛtauṣṭhaḥ samutsanno samo mṛdur a-ruk śīghraṃ vraṇaḥ śudhyati rohati | sthirāṇām alpa-māṃsānāṃ raukṣyād an-uparohatām || 70 || pracchādyam auṣadhaṃ pattrair yathā-doṣaṃ yathartu ca | a-jīrṇa-taruṇāc chidraiḥ samantāt su-niveśitaiḥ || 71 || 29.71cv a-jīrṇā-taruṇāc chidraiḥ dhautair a-karkaśaiḥ kṣīri-bhūrjārjuna-kadamba-jaiḥ | kuṣṭhinām agni-dagdhānāṃ piṭikā madhu-mehinām || 72 || karṇikāś conduru-viṣe kṣāra-dagdhā viṣānvitāḥ | bandhanīyā na māṃs-pāke guda-pāke ca dāruṇe || 73 || 29.73cv na māṃs-pāke ca badhnīyād 29.73cv māṃsa-pāke na badhnīyād śīryamāṇāḥ sa-rug-dāhāḥ śophāvasthā-visarpiṇaḥ | a-rakṣayā vraṇe yasmin makṣikā nikṣipet kṛmīn || 74 || te bhakṣayantaḥ kurvanti rujā-śophāsra-saṃsravān | surasādiṃ prayuñjīta tatra dhāvana-pūraṇe || 75 || 29.75bv rujā-śophāsra-visrutīḥ saptaparṇa-karañjārka-nimba-rājādana-tvacaḥ | go-mūtra-kalkito lepaḥ sekaḥ kṣārāmbunā hitaḥ || 76 || 29.76cv go-mūtra-kalkitālepaḥ pracchādya māṃsa-peśyā vā vraṇaṃ tān āśu nirharet | na cainaṃ tvaramāṇo 'ntaḥ sa-doṣam uparohayet || 77 || so 'lpenāpy apacāreṇa bhūyo vikurute yataḥ | rūḍhe 'py a-jīrṇa-vyāyāma-vyavāyādīn vivarjayet || 78 || harṣaṃ krodhaṃ bhayaṃ cāpi yāvad ā-sthairya-saṃbhavāt | ādareṇānuvartyo 'yaṃ māsān ṣaṭ sapta vā vidhiḥ || 79 || 29.79av harṣaṃ krodhaṃ bhayaṃ vāpi utpadyamānāsu ca tāsu tāsu vārtāsu doṣādi-balānusārī | tais tair upāyaiḥ prayataś cikitsed ālocayan vistaram uttaroktam || 80 || Sūtrasthāna sarva-śastrānu-śastrāṇāṃ kṣāraḥ śreṣṭho bahūni yat | chedya-bhedyādi-karmāṇi kurute viṣameṣv api || 1 || duḥkhāvacārya-śāstreṣu tena siddhim a-yātsu ca | ati-kṛcchreṣu rogeṣu yac ca pāne 'pi yujyate || 2 || 30.2bv tena siddhiṃ na yātsu ca sa peyo 'rśo-'gni-sādāśma-gulmodara-garādiṣu | yojyaḥ sākṣān maṣa-śvitra-bāhyārśaḥ-kuṣṭha-suptiṣu || 3 || bhagandarārbuda-granthi-duṣṭa-nāḍī-vraṇādiṣu | na tūbhayo 'pi yoktavyaḥ pitte rakte cale '-bale || 4 || 30.4av bhagandarāpacī-granthi- 30.4dv pitte rakte bale '-bale jvare 'tīsāre hṛn-mūrdha-roge pāṇḍv-āmaye '-rucau | timire kṛta-saṃśuddhau śvayathau sarva-gātra-ge || 5 || 30.5dv śvayathau sarva-gātra-je bhīru-garbhiṇy-ṛtu-matī-prodvṛtta-phala-yoniṣu | a-jīrṇe 'nne śiśau vṛddhe dhamanī-saṃdhi-marmasu || 6 || taruṇāsthi-sirā-snāyu-sevanī-gala-nābhiṣu | deśe 'lpa-māṃse vṛṣaṇa-meḍhra-sroto-nakhāntare || 7 || 30.7cv deśe 'lpa-māṃse vṛṣaṇe 30.7dv meḍhre sroto-nakhāntare vartma-rogād ṛte 'kṣṇoś ca śīta-varṣoṣṇa-dur-dine | kāla-muṣkaka-śamyāka-kadalī-pāribhadrakān || 8 || aśvakarṇa-mahāvṛkṣa-palāśāsphota-vṛkṣakān | indravṛkṣārka-pūtīka-naktamālāśvamārakān || 9 || kākajaṅghām apāmārgam agnimanthāgni-tilvakān | sārdrān sa-mūla-śākhādīn khaṇḍa-śaḥ parikalpitān || 10 || kośātakīs catasraś ca śūkaṃ nālaṃ yavasya ca | nivāte nicayī-kṛtya pṛthak tāni śilā-tale || 11 || 30.11bv śūka-nālaṃ yavasya ca prakṣipya muṣkaka-caye sudhāśmāni ca dīpayet | tatas tilānāṃ kutalair dagdhvāgnau vigate pṛthak || 12 || 30.12cv tatas tilānāṃ kutilair 30.12cv tatas tilānāṃ kuntālair kṛtvā sudhāśmanāṃ bhasma droṇaṃ tv itara-bhasmanaḥ | muṣkakottaram ādāya praty-ekaṃ jala-mūtrayoḥ || 13 || 30.13bv droṇaṃ cetara-bhasmanaḥ gālayed ardha-bhāreṇa mahatā vāsasā ca tat | yāvat picchila-raktācchas tīkṣṇo jātas tadā ca tam || 14 || gṛhītvā kṣāra-niṣyandaṃ pacel lauhyāṃ vighaṭṭayan | pacyamāne tatas tasmiṃs tāḥ sudhā-bhasma-śarkarāḥ || 15 || śuktīḥ kṣīra-pakaṃ śaṅkha-nābhīś cāyasa-bhājane | kṛtvāgni-varṇān bahu-śaḥ kṣārotthe kuḍavonmite || 16 || 30.16bv ṃnābhīṃś cāyasa-bhājane 30.16cv kṣārācche kuḍavonmite nirvāpya piṣṭvā tenaiva pratīvāpaṃ vinikṣipet | ślakṣṇaṃ śakṛd dakṣa-śikhi-gṛdhra-kaṅka-kapota-jam || 17 || catuṣ-pāt-pakṣi-pittāla-manohvā-lavaṇāni ca | paritaḥ su-tarāṃ cāto darvyā tam avaghaṭtayet || 18 || sa-bāṣpaiś ca yadottiṣṭhed budbudair leha-vad ghanaḥ | avatārya tadā śīto yava-rāśāv ayo-maye || 19 || 30.19av sa-bāṣpaiś ca yadā tiṣṭhed 30.19cv avatārya tataḥ śīte 30.19cv avatārya tataḥ śīto 30.19cv avatārya tadā śīte sthāpyo 'yaṃ madhyamaḥ kṣāro na tu piṣṭvā kṣipen mṛdau | nirvāpyāpanayet tīkṣṇe pūrva-vat prativāpanam || 20 || tathā lāṅgalikā-dantī-citrakātiviṣā-vacāḥ | svarjikā-kanakakṣīrī-hiṅgu-pūtika-pallavāḥ || 21 || tālapattrī viḍaṃ ceti sapta-rātrāt paraṃ tu saḥ | yojyas tīkṣṇo 'nila-śleṣma-medo-jeṣv arbudādiṣu || 22 || 30.22av tālapattrī viḍaṅgaṃ ca madhyeṣv eṣv eva madhyo 'nyaḥ pittāsra-guda-janmasu | balārthaṃ kṣīṇa-pānīye kṣārāmbu punar āvapet || 23 || 30.23av madhyeṣv eva ca madhyo 'nyaḥ 30.23av madhyeṣv eṣu ca madhyo 'nyaḥ 30.23bv pittāsṛg-guda-janmasu nāti-tīkṣṇa-mṛduḥ ślakṣṇaḥ picchilaḥ śīghra-gaḥ sitaḥ | śikharī sukha-nirvāpyo na viṣyandī na cāti-ruk || 24 || 30.24av nāti-tīkṣṇo mṛduḥ ślakṣṇaḥ kṣāro daśa-guṇaḥ śastra-tejasor api karma-kṛt | ācūṣann iva saṃrambhād gātram āpīḍayann iva || 25 || sarvato 'nusaran doṣān unmūlayati mūlataḥ | karma kṛtvā gata-rujaḥ svayaṃ evopaśāmyati || 26 || kṣāra-sādhye gade chinne likhite srāvite 'tha-vā | kṣāraṃ śalākayā dattvā plota-prāvṛta-dehayā || 27 || 30.27dv plota-plāvita-dehayā mātrā-śatam upekṣeta tatrārśaḥsv āvṛtānanam | hastena yantraṃ kurvīta vartma-rogeṣu vartmanī || 28 || nirbhujya picunācchādya kṛṣṇa-bhāgaṃ vinikṣipet | padma-pattra-tanuḥ kṣāra-lepo ghrāṇārbudeṣu ca || 29 || 30.29dv -lepo ghrāṇārbudeṣu tu praty-ādityaṃ niṣaṇṇasya samunnamyāgra-nāsikām | mātrā vidhāryaḥ pañcāśat tad-vad arśasi karṇa-je || 30 || 30.30bv samunnasyāgra-nāsikām 30.30cv mātrā vidhārya pañcāśat 30.30cv mātrā vidhāryāḥ pañcāśat kṣāraṃ pramārjanenānu parimṛjyāvagamya ca | su-dagdhaṃ ghṛta-madhv-aktaṃ tat payo-mastu-kāñjikaiḥ || 31 || 30.31av kṣāraṃ pramārjanenāśu nirvāpayet tataḥ sājyaiḥ svādu-śītaiḥ pradehayet | abhiṣyandīni bhojyāni bhojyāni kledanāya ca || 32 || yadi ca sthira-mūla-tvāt kṣāra-dagdhaṃ na śīryate | dhānyāmla-bīja-yaṣṭy-āhva-tilair ālepayet tataḥ || 33 || tila-kalkaḥ sa-madhuko ghṛtākto vraṇa-ropaṇaḥ | pakva-jambv-asitaṃ sannaṃ samyag-dagdhaṃ viparyaye || 34 || 30.34cv pakva-jambū-nibhaṃ sannaṃ tāmra-tā-toda-kaṇḍv-ādyair dur-dagdhaṃ taṃ punar dahet | ati-dagdhe sraved raktaṃ mūrchā-dāha-jvarādayaḥ || 35 || 30.35bv dur-dagdhaṃ tat punar dahet gude viśeṣād viṇ-mūtra-saṃrodho 'ti-pravartanam | puṃs-tvopaghāto mṛtyur vā gudasya śātanād dhruvam || 36 || 30.36dv gudasya śātanaṃ dhruvam 30.36dv gudasya sadanād dhruvam 30.36dv gudasya sadanaṃ dhruvam nāsāyāṃ nāsikā-vaṃśa-daraṇākuñcanodbhavaḥ | bhavec ca viṣayā-jñānaṃ tad-vac chrotrādikeṣv api || 37 || viśeṣād atra seko 'mlair lepo madhu ghṛtaṃ tilāḥ | vāta-pitta-harā ceṣṭā sarvaiva śiśirā kriyā || 38 || amlo hi śītaḥ sparśena kṣāras tenopasaṃhitaḥ | yāty āśu svādu-tāṃ tasmād amlair nirvāpayet-tarām || 39 || viṣāgni-śastrāśani-mṛtyu-tulyaḥ kṣāro bhaved alpam ati-prayuktaḥ | rogān nihanyād a-cireṇa ghorān sa dhī-matā samyag-anuprayukto || 39+(1) || agniḥ kṣārād api śreṣṭhas tad-dagdhānām a-saṃbhavāt | bheṣaja-kṣāra-śastraiś ca na siddhānāṃ prasādhanāt || 40 || tvaci māṃse sirā-snāyu-saṃdhy-asthiṣu sa yujyate | maṣāṅga-glāni-mūrdhārti-mantha-kīla-tilādiṣu || 41 || 30.41bv -saṃdhy-asthiṣu sa yojyate tvag-dāho varti-go-danta-sūrya-kānta-śarādibhiḥ | arśo-bhagandara-granthi-nāḍī-duṣṭa-vraṇādiṣu || 42 || māṃsa-dāho madhu-sneha-jāmbavauṣṭha-guḍādibhiḥ | śliṣṭa-vartmany asṛk-srāva-nīly-a-samyag-vyadhādiṣu || 43 || 30.43cv śliṣṭa-vartmany asṛk-srāve 30.43dv nīly-a-samyag-vyadhādiṣu sirādi-dāhas tair eva na dahet kṣāra-vāritān | antaḥ-śalyāsṛjo bhinna-koṣṭhān bhūri-vraṇāturān || 44 || 30.44bv na dahet kṣāra-varjitān su-dagdhaṃ ghṛta-madhv-aktaṃ snigdha-śītaiḥ pradehayet | tasya liṅgaṃ sthite rakte śabda-val lasikānvitam || 45 || pakva-tāla-kapotābhaṃ su-rohaṃ nāti-vedanam | pramāda-dagdha-vat sarvaṃ dur-dagdhāty-artha-dagdhayoḥ || 46 || catur-dhā tat tu tucchena saha tucchasya lakṣaṇam | tvag vi-varṇoṣyate 'ty-arthaṃ na ca sphoṭa-samudbhavaḥ || 47 || 30.47av catur-dhā tac ca tucchena 30.47av catur-dhā tat tu tutthena 30.47av catur-dhā tatra tucchena 30.47bv saha tutthasya lakṣaṇam sa-sphoṭa-dāha-tīvroṣaṃ dur-dagdham ati-dāhataḥ | māṃsa-lambana-saṃkoca-dāha-dhūpana-vedanāḥ || 48 || sirādi-nāśas tṛṇ-mūrchā-vraṇa-gāmbhīrya-mṛtyavaḥ | tucchasyāgni-pratapanaṃ kāryam uṣṇaṃ ca bheṣajam || 49 || 30.49av sirādi-nāśa-tṛṇ-mūrchā- 30.49cv tutthasyāgni-pratapanaṃ styāne 'sre vedanāty-arthaṃ vilīne manda-tā rujaḥ | dur-dagdhe śītam uṣṇaṃ ca yuñjyād ādau tato himam || 50 || samyag-dagdhe tavakṣīrī-plakṣa-candana-gairikaiḥ | limpet sājyāmṛtair ūrdhvaṃ pitta-vidradhi-vat kriyā || 51 || 30.51av samyag-dagdhe tukākṣīrī- 30.51dv pitta-vidradhi-vat kriyām 30.51dv pitta-vidradhi-vat kriyāḥ ati-dagdhe drutaṃ kuryāt sarvaṃ pitta-visarpa-vat | sneha-dagdhe bhṛśa-taraṃ rūkṣaṃ tatra tu yojayet || 52 || śastra-kṣārāgnayo yasmān mṛtyoḥ paramam āyudham | a-pramatto bhiṣak tasmāt tān samyag avacārayet || 52+(1) || 30.52+(1)dv tat samyag avacārayet samāpyate sthānam idaṃ hṛdayasya rahasya-vat | atrārthāḥ sūtritāḥ sūkṣmāḥ pratanyante hi sarvataḥ || 53 || 30.53cv atrārthāḥ sūcitāḥ sūkṣmāḥ ”ārīrasthāna śuddhe śukrārtave sat-tvaḥ sva-karma-kleśa-coditaḥ | garbhaḥ saṃpadyate yukti-vaśād agnir ivāraṇau || 1 || 1.1bv sva-karma-phala-noditaḥ bījātmakair mahā-bhūtaiḥ sūkṣmaiḥ sat-tvānugaiś ca saḥ | mātuś cāhāra-rasa-jaiḥ kramāt kukṣau vivardhate || 2 || tejo yathārka-raśmīnāṃ sphaṭikena tiras-kṛtam | nendhanaṃ dṛśyate gacchat sat-tvo garbhāśayaṃ tathā || 3 || kāraṇānuvidhāyi-tvāt kāryāṇāṃ tat-sva-bhāva-tā | nānā-yony-ākṛtīḥ sat-tvo dhatte 'to druta-loha-vat || 4 || ata eva ca śukrasya bāhulyāj jāyate pumān | raktasya strī tayoḥ sāmye klībaḥ śukrārtave punaḥ || 5 || vāyunā bahu-śo bhinne yathā-svaṃ bahv-apatya-tā | vi-yoni-vikṛtākārā jāyante vikṛtair malaiḥ || 6 || māsi māsi rajaḥ strīṇāṃ rasa-jaṃ sravati try-aham | vatsarād dvā-daśād ūrdhvaṃ yāti pañcāśataḥ kṣayam || 7 || pūrṇa-ṣo-ḍaśa-varṣā strī pūrṇa-viṃśena saṃgatā | śuddhe garbhāśaye mārge rakte śukre 'nile hṛdi || 8 || vīrya-vantaṃ sutaṃ sūte tato nyūnābdayoḥ punaḥ | rogy alpāyur a-dhanyo vā garbho bhavati naiva vā || 9 || vātādi-kuṇapa-granthi-pūya-kṣīṇa-malāhvayam | bījā-samarthaṃ reto-'sraṃ sva-liṅgair doṣa-jaṃ vadet || 10 || 1.10cv prajā-samarthaṃ reto-'sraṃ raktena kuṇapaṃ śleṣma-vātābhyāṃ granthi-saṃnibham | pūyābhaṃ rakta-pittābhyāṃ kṣīṇaṃ māruta-pittataḥ || 11 || kṛcchrāṇy etāny a-sādhyaṃ tu tri-doṣaṃ mūtra-viṭ-prabham | kuryād vātādibhir duṣṭe svauṣadhaṃ kuṇape punaḥ || 12 || dhātakī-puṣpa-khadira-dāḍimārjuna-sādhitam | pāyayet sarpir atha-vā vipakvam asanādibhiḥ || 13 || palāśa-bhasmāśmabhidā granthy-ābhe pūya-retasi | parūṣaka-vaṭādibhyāṃ kṣīṇe śukra-karī kriyā || 14 || snigdhaṃ vāntaṃ viriktaṃ ca nirūḍham anuvāsitam | yojayec chukra-doṣārtaṃ samyag uttara-vastibhiḥ || 14+1 || saṃśuddho viṭ-prabhe sarpir hiṅgu-sevyādi-sādhitam | pibed granthy-ārtave pāṭhā-vyoṣa-vṛkṣaka-jaṃ jalam || 15 || 1.15bv hiṅgu-sevyāgni-sādhitam peyaṃ kuṇapa-pūyāsre candanaṃ vakṣyate tu yat | guhya-roge ca tat sarvaṃ kāryaṃ sottara-vastikam || 16 || śukraṃ śuklaṃ guru snigdhaṃ madhuraṃ bahalaṃ bahu | ghṛta-mākṣika-tailābhaṃ sad-garbhāyārtavaṃ punaḥ || 17 || 1.17av śuddhaṃ śukraṃ guru snigdhaṃ lākṣā-rasa-śaśāsrābhaṃ dhautaṃ yac ca virajyate | śuddha-śukrārtavaṃ svasthaṃ saṃraktaṃ mithunaṃ mithaḥ || 18 || snehaiḥ puṃ-savanaiḥ snigdhaṃ śuddhaṃ śīlita-vastikam | naraṃ viśeṣāt kṣīrājyair madhurauṣadha-saṃskṛtaiḥ || 19 || 1.19dv madhurauṣadha-sādhitaiḥ nārīṃ tailena māṣaiś ca pittalaiḥ samupācaret | kṣāma-prasanna-vadanāṃ sphurac-chroṇi-payo-dharām || 20 || 1.20cv kṣāmāṃ prasanna-vadanāṃ srastākṣi-kukṣiṃ puṃs-kāmāṃ vidyād ṛtu-matīṃ striyam | padmaṃ saṃkocam āyāti dine 'tīte yathā tathā || 21 || ṛtāv atīte yoniḥ sā śukraṃ nātaḥ pratīcchati | māsenopacitaṃ raktaṃ dhamanībhyām ṛtau punaḥ || 22 || 1.22bv śukraṃ nāntaḥ pratīcchati īṣat-kṛṣṇaṃ vi-gandhaṃ ca vāyur yoni-mukhān nudet | tataḥ puṣpekṣaṇād eva kalyāṇa-dhyāyinī try-aham || 23 || mṛjālaṅkāra-rahitā darbha-saṃstara-śāyinī | kṣaireyaṃ yāvakaṃ stokaṃ koṣṭha-śodhana-karṣaṇam || 24 || 1.24dv koṣṭha-śodhana-karśanam parṇe śarāve haste vā bhuñjīta brahma-cāriṇī | caturthe 'hni tataḥ snātā śukla-mālyāmbarā śuciḥ || 25 || icchantī bhartṛ-sadṛśaṃ putraṃ paśyet puraḥ patim | ṛtus tu dvā-daśa niśāḥ pūrvās tisro 'tra ninditāḥ || 26 || 1.26dv pūrvās tisraś ca ninditāḥ ekā-daśī ca yugmāsu syāt putro 'nyāsu kanyakā | upādhyāyo 'tha putrīyaṃ kurvīta vidhi-vad vidhim || 27 || 1.27bv syāt putro 'nya-tra kanyakā namas-kāra-parāyās tu śūdrāyā mantra-varjitam | a-vandhya evaṃ saṃyogaḥ syād apatyaṃ ca kāmataḥ || 28 || santo hy āhur apatyārthaṃ dam-patyoḥ saṃgatiṃ rahaḥ | dur-apatyaṃ kulāṅgāro gotre jātaṃ mahaty api || 29 || 1.29bv dam-patyoḥ saṃgataṃ rahaḥ 1.29cv dur-apatyaṃ kulāṅgāraṃ icchetāṃ yādṛśaṃ putraṃ tad-rūpa-caritāṃś ca tau | cintayetāṃ jana-padāṃs tad-ācāra-paricchadau || 30 || karmānte ca pumān sarpiḥ-kṣīra-śāly-odanāśitaḥ | prāg dakṣiṇena pādena śayyāṃ mauhūrtikājñayā || 31 || ārohet strī tu vāmena tasya dakṣiṇa-pārśvataḥ | taila-māṣottarāhārā tatra mantr aṃ prayojayet || 32 || 1.32av ārohet strī ca vāmena āhir asy āyur asi sarvataḥ pratiṣṭhāsi || 32+1a || 1.32+1av ahir asi sarvataḥ pratiṣṭhāsi dhātā tvāṃ dadhātu vidhātā tvāṃ dadhātu || 32+1b || brahma-varcasā bhaveti || 32+1c || 1.32+1cv brahma-varcasā bhaved iti brahmā bṛhaspatir viṣṇuḥ somaḥ sūryas tathāśvinau | bhago 'tha mitrā-varuṇau vīraṃ dadatu me sutam || 33 || sāntvayitvā tato 'nya-nyaṃ saṃviśetāṃ mudānvitau | uttānā tan-manā yoṣit tiṣṭhed aṅgaiḥ su-saṃsthitaiḥ || 34 || 1.34av sāntayitvā tato 'nyo-'nyaṃ 1.34bv saṃvasetāṃ mudānvitau tathā hi bījaṃ gṛhṇāti doṣaiḥ sva-sthānam āsthitaiḥ | liṅgaṃ tu sadyo-garbhāyā yonyā bījasya saṃgrahaḥ || 35 || 1.35bv doṣaiḥ sva-sthānam āśritaiḥ 1.35dv yonyāṃ bījasya saṃgrahaḥ tṛptir guru-tvaṃ sphuraṇaṃ śukrāsrān-anu bandhanam | hṛdaya-spandanaṃ tandrā tṛḍ glānī roma-harṣaṇam || 36 || a-vyaktaḥ prathame māsi saptāhāt kalalī-bhavet | garbhaḥ puṃ-savanāny atra pūrvaṃ vyakteḥ prayojayet || 37 || balī puruṣa-kāro hi daivam apy ativartate | puṣye puruṣakaṃ haimaṃ rājataṃ vātha-vāyasam || 38 || kṛtvāgni-varṇaṃ nirvāpya kṣīre tasyāñjaliṃ pibet | gauradaṇḍam apāmārgaṃ jīvakarṣabha-sairyakān || 39 || pibet puṣye jale piṣṭān eka-dvi-tri-samasta-śaḥ | kṣīreṇa śveta-bṛhatī-mūlaṃ nāsā-puṭe svayam || 40 || putrārthaṃ dakṣiṇe siñced vāme duhitṛ-vāñchayā | payasā lakṣmaṇā-mūlaṃ putrotpāda-sthiti-pradam || 41 || nāsayāsyena vā pītaṃ vaṭa-śuṅgāṣṭakaṃ tathā | oṣadhīr jīvanīyāś ca bāhyāntar upayojayet || 42 || 1.42bv vaṭa-śṛṅgāṣṭakaṃ tathā upacāraḥ priya-hitair bhartrā bhṛtyaiś ca garbha-dhṛk | nava-nīta-ghṛta-kṣīraiḥ sadā cainām upācaret || 43 || ati-vyavāyam āyāsaṃ bhāraṃ prāvaraṇaṃ guru | a-kāla-jāgara-svapnaṃ kaṭhinotkaṭakāsanam || 44 || 1.44av ati-vyavāyaṃ vyāyāmaṃ 1.44cv a-kāla-jāgara-svapna- 1.44dv -kaṭhinotkaṭakāsanam 1.44dv kaṭhinotkaṭukāsanam 1.44dv -kaṭhinotkuṭakāsanam śoka-krodha-bhayodvega-vega-śraddhā-vidhāraṇam | upavāsādhva-tīkṣṇoṣṇa-guru-viṣṭambhi-bhojanam || 45 || 1.45cv upavāsādi-tīkṣṇoṣṇa- raktaṃ nivasanaṃ śvabhra-kūpekṣāṃ madyam āmiṣam | uttāna-śayanaṃ yac ca striyo necchanti tat tyajet || 46 || 1.46av raktaṃ vi-vasanaṃ śvabhra- tathā rakta-srutiṃ śuddhiṃ vastim ā-māsato 'ṣṭamāt | ebhir garbhaḥ sraved āmaḥ kukṣau śuṣyen mriyeta vā || 47 || 1.47cv evaṃ garbhaḥ sraved āmaḥ vātalaiś ca bhaved garbhaḥ kubjāndha-jaḍa-vāmanaḥ | pittalaiḥ khalatiḥ piṅgaḥ śvitrī pāṇḍuḥ kaphātmabhiḥ || 48 || vyādhīṃś cāsyā mṛdu-sukhair a-tīkṣṇair auṣadhair jayet | dvitīye māsi kalalād ghanaḥ peśy atha-vārbudam || 49 || puṃ-strī-klībāḥ kramāt tebhyas tatra vyaktasya lakṣaṇam | kṣāma-tā garimā kukṣer mūrchā chardir a-rocakaḥ || 50 || 1.50cv kṣāma-tā garimā kukṣau jṛmbhā prasekaḥ sadanaṃ roma-rājyāḥ prakāśanam | amleṣṭa-tā stanau pīnau sa-stanyau kṛṣṇa-cūcukau || 51 || pāda-śopho vidāho 'nye śraddhāś ca vividhātmikāḥ | mātṛ-jaṃ hy asya hṛdayaṃ mātuś ca hṛdayena tat || 52 || 1.52av pāda-śopho vidāho 'nne saṃbaddhaṃ tena garbhiṇyā neṣṭaṃ śraddhā-vimānanam | deyam apy a-hitaṃ tasyai hitopahitam alpakam || 53 || 1.53bv neṣṭaṃ śraddhā-vidhāraṇam 1.53bv neṣṭaṃ śraddhāvamānanam śraddhā-vighātād garbhasya vikṛtiś cyutir eva vā | vyaktī-bhavati māse 'sya tṛtīye gātra-pañcakam || 54 || 1.54av śraddhābhighātād garbhasya mūrdhā dve sakthinī bāhū sarva-sūkṣmāṅga-janma ca | samam eva hi mūrdhādyair jñānaṃ ca sukha-duḥkhayoḥ || 55 || 1.55bv sarva-sūkṣmāṅga-janma tu 1.55dv vijñānaṃ sukha-duḥkhayoḥ garbhasya nābhau mātuś ca hṛdi nāḍī nibadhyate | yayā sa puṣṭim āpnoti kedāra iva kulyayā || 56 || 1.56cv yayā puṣṭim avāpnoti caturthe vyakta-tāṅgānāṃ cetanāyāś ca pañcame | ṣaṣṭhe snāyu-sirā-roma-bala-varṇa-nakha-tvacām || 57 || sarvaiḥ sarvāṅga-saṃpūrṇo bhāvaiḥ puṣyati saptame || 58ab || garbheṇotpīḍitā doṣās tasmin hṛdayam āśritāḥ || 58cd || kaṇḍūṃ vidāhaṃ kurvanti garbhiṇyāḥ kikkisāni ca || 58ef || nava-nītaṃ hitaṃ tatra kolāmbu-madhurauṣadhaiḥ | siddham alpa-paṭu-snehaṃ laghu svādu ca bhojanam || 59 || candanośīra-kalkena limped ūru-stanodaram | śreṣṭhayā vaiṇa-hariṇa-śaśa-śoṇita-yuktayā || 60 || aśvaghna-pattra-siddhena tailenābhyajya mardayet | paṭola-nimba-mañjiṣṭhā-surasaiḥ secayet punaḥ || 61 || dārvī-madhuka-toyena mṛjāṃ ca pariśīlayet | ojo 'ṣṭame saṃcarati mātā-putrau muhuḥ kramāt || 62 || tena tau mlāna-muditau tatra jāto na jīvati | śiśur ojo-'n-avasthānān nārī saṃśayitā bhavet || 63 || 1.63bv syātām atra na jīvati 1.63bv syātāṃ jāto na jīvati kṣīra-peyā ca peyātra sa-ghṛtānvāsanaṃ ghṛtam | madhuraiḥ sādhitaṃ śuddhyai purāṇa-śakṛtas tathā || 64 || 1.64bv sa-ghṛtānvāsanaṃ hitam śuṣka-mūlaka-kolāmla-kaṣāyeṇa praśasyate | śatāhvā-kalkito vastiḥ sa-taila-ghṛta-saindhavaḥ || 65 || tasmiṃs tv ekāha-yāte 'pi kālaḥ sūter ataḥ param | varṣād vikāra-kārī syāt kukṣau vātena dhāritaḥ || 66 || 1.66av tasminn ekāha-yāte 'pi śastaś ca navame māsi snigdho māṃsa-rasaudanaḥ | bahu-snehā yavāgūr vā pūrvoktaṃ cānuvāsanam || 67 || 1.67bv snigdha-māṃsa-rasaudanaḥ tata eva picuṃ cāsyā yonau nityaṃ nidhāpayet | vāta-ghna-pattra-bhaṅgāmbhaḥ śītaṃ snāne 'nv-ahaṃ hitam || 68 || niḥ-snehāṅgī na navamān māsāt prabhṛti vāsayet | prāg dakṣiṇa-stana-stanyā pūrvaṃ tat-pārśva-ceṣṭinī || 69 || puṃ-nāma-daurhṛda-praśna-ratā puṃ-svapna-darśinī | unnate dakṣiṇe kukṣau garbhe ca parimaṇḍale || 70 || putraṃ sūte 'nya-thā kanyāṃ yā cecchati nṛ-saṃgatim | nṛtya-vāditra-gāndharva-gandha-mālya-priyā ca yā || 71 || klībaṃ tat-saṃkare tatra madhyaṃ kukṣeḥ samunnatam | yamau pārśva-dvayonnāmāt kukṣau droṇyām iva sthite || 72 || prāk caiva navamān māsāt sā sūti-gṛham āśrayet | deśe praśaste saṃbhāraiḥ saṃpannaṃ sādhake 'hani || 73 || 1.73bv sūtikā-gṛham āśrayet tatrodīkṣeta sā sūtiṃ sūtikā-parivāritā | adya-śvaḥ-prasave glāniḥ kukṣy-akṣi-ślatha-tā klamaḥ || 74 || 1.74cv āsanna-prasave glāniḥ adho-guru-tvam a-ruciḥ praseko bahu-mūtra-tā | vedanorūdara-kaṭī-pṛṣṭha-hṛd-vasti-vaṅkṣaṇe || 75 || yoni-bheda-rujā-toda-sphuraṇa-sravaṇāni ca | āvīnām anu janmātas tato garbhodaka-srutiḥ || 76 || athopasthita-garbhāṃ tāṃ kṛta-kautuka-magalām | hasta-stha-puṃ-nāma-phalāṃ sv-abhyaktoṣṇāmbu-secitām || 77 || 1.77dv sv-aktām uṣṇāmbu-secitām pāyayet sa-ghṛtāṃ peyāṃ tanau bhū-śayane sthitām | ābhugna-sakthim uttānām abhyaktāṅgīṃ punaḥ punaḥ || 78 || adho nābher vimṛdnīyāt kārayej jṛmbha-caṅkramam | garbhaḥ prayāty avāg evaṃ tal-liṅgaṃ hṛd-vimokṣataḥ || 79 || āviśya jaṭharaṃ garbho vaster upari tiṣṭhati | āvyo 'bhitvarayanty enāṃ khaṭvām āropayet tataḥ || 80 || 1.80cv āvyo hi tvarayanty enāṃ atha saṃpīḍite garbhe yonim asyāḥ prasārayet | mṛdu pūrvaṃ pravāheta bāḍham ā-prasavāc ca sā || 81 || 1.81bv yonim asyāḥ prasādhayet harṣayet tāṃ muhuḥ putra-janma-śabda-jalānilaiḥ | pratyāyānti tathā prāṇāḥ sūti-kleśāvasāditāḥ || 82 || dhūpayed garbha-saṅge tu yoniṃ kṛṣṇāhi-kañcukaiḥ | hiraṇyapuṣpī-mūlaṃ ca pāṇi-pādena dhārayet || 83 || suvarcalāṃ viśalyāṃ vā jarāyv-a-patane 'pi ca | kāryam etat tathotkṣipya bāhvor enāṃ vikampayet || 84 || 1.84cv kāryam etat tathotkṛṣya 1.84dv bāhvor etāṃ vikampayet kaṭīm ākoṭayet pārṣṇyā sphijau gāḍhaṃ nipīḍayet | tālu-kaṇṭhaṃ spṛśed veṇyā mūrdhni dadyāt snuhī-payaḥ || 85 || bhūrja-lāṅgalikī-tumbī-sarpa-tvak-kuṣṭha-sarṣapaiḥ | pṛthag dvābhyāṃ samastair vā yoni-lepana-dhūpanam || 86 || 1.86dv yoni-dhūpaṃ ca lepanam kuṣṭha-tālīśa-kalkaṃ vā surā-maṇḍena pāyayet | yūṣeṇa vā kulatthānāṃ bālbajenāsavena vā || 87 || 1.87dv bilva-jenāsavena vā śatāhvā-sarṣapājājī-śigru-tīkṣṇaka-citrakaiḥ | sa-hiṅgu-kuṣṭha-madanair mūtre kṣīre ca sārṣapam || 88 || tailaṃ siddhaṃ hitaṃ pāyau yonyāṃ vāpy anuvāsanam | śatapuṣpā-vacā-kuṣṭha-kaṇā-sarṣapa-kalkitaḥ || 89 || 1.89bv yonyāṃ vā hy anuvāsanam nirūhaḥ pātayaty āśu sa-sneha-lavaṇo 'parām | tat-saṅge hy anilo hetuḥ sā niryāty āśu taj-jayāt || 90 || kuśalā pāṇināktena haret kḷpta-nakhena vā | mukta-garbhāparāṃ yoniṃ tailenāṅgaṃ ca mardayet || 91 || makkallākhye śiro-vasti-koṣṭha-śūle tu pāyayet | su-cūrṇitaṃ yava-kṣāraṃ ghṛtenoṣṇa-jalena vā || 92 || dhānyāmbu vā guḍa-vyoṣa-tri-jātaka-rajo-'nvitam | atha bālopacāreṇa bālaṃ yoṣid upācared || 93 || sūtikā kṣud-vatī tailād ghṛtād vā mahatīṃ pibet | pañca-kolakinīṃ mātrām anu coṣṇaṃ guḍodakam || 94 || vāta-ghnauṣadha-toyaṃ vā tathā vāyur na kupyati | viśudhyati ca duṣṭāsraṃ dvi-tri-rātram ayaṃ kramaḥ || 95 || 1.95bv yathā vāyur na kupyati snehā-yogyā tu niḥ-sneham amum eva vidhiṃ bhajet | pīta-vatyāś ca jaṭharaṃ yamakāktaṃ viveṣṭayet || 96 || jīrṇe snātā pibet peyāṃ pūrvoktauṣadha-sādhitām | try-ahād ūrdhvaṃ vidāry-ādi-varga-kvāthena sādhitā || 97 || hitā yavāgūḥ snehāḍhyā sātmyataḥ payasātha-vā | sapta-rātrāt paraṃ cāsyai krama-śo bṛṃhaṇaṃ hitam || 98 || 1.98cv sapta-rātrāt paraṃ cāsyāḥ 1.98cv sapta-rātrāt paraṃ vāsyāḥ dvā-daśāhe 'n-atikrānte piśitaṃ nopayojayet | yatnenopacaret sūtāṃ duḥ-sādhyo hi tad-āmayaḥ || 99 || 1.99bv piśitaṃ naiva yojayet garbha-vṛddhi-prasava-ruk-kledāsra-sruti-pīḍanaiḥ | evaṃ ca māsād adhy-ardhān muktāhārādi-yantraṇā || 100 || gata-sūtābhidhānā syāt punar ārtava-darśanāt || 100ū̆ab || ”ārīrasthāna garbhiṇyāḥ parihāryāṇāṃ sevayā rogato 'tha-vā | puṣpe dṛṣṭe 'tha-vā śūle bāhyāntaḥ snigdha-śītalam || 1 || 2.1bv sevayā rogato 'pi vā sevyāmbho-ja-hima-kṣīri-valka-kalkājya-lepitān | dhārayed yoni-vastibhyām ārdrārdrān picu-naktakān || 2 || 2.2cv dhārayed vasti-yonibhyām śata-dhauta-ghṛtāktāṃ strīṃ tad-ambhasy avagāhayet | sa-sitā-kṣaudra-kumuda-kamalotpala-kesaram || 3 || lihyāt kṣīra-ghṛtaṃ khādec chṛṅgāṭaka-kaserukam | pibet kāntāb-ja-śālūka-bālodumbara-vat payaḥ || 4 || śṛtena śāli-kākolī-dvi-balā-madhukekṣubhiḥ | payasā rakta-śāly-annam adyāt sa-madhu-śarkaram || 5 || rasair vā jāṅgalaiḥ śuddhi-varjaṃ cāsroktam ācaret | a-saṃpūrṇa-tri-māsāyāḥ pratyākhyāya prasādhayet || 6 || 2.6bv -varjaṃ vāsroktam ācaret āmānvaye ca tatreṣṭaṃ śītaṃ rūkṣopasaṃhitam | upavāso ghanośīra-guḍūcy-aralu-dhānyakāḥ || 7 || durālabhā-parpaṭaka-candanātiviṣā-balāḥ | kvathitāḥ salile pānaṃ tṛṇa-dhānyāni bhojanam || 8 || 2.8dv tṛṇa-dhānyādi bhojanam mudgādi-yūṣair āme tu jite snigdhādi pūrva-vat | garbhe nipatite tīkṣṇaṃ madyaṃ sāmarthyataḥ pibet || 9 || garbha-koṣṭha-viśuddhy-artham arti-vismaraṇāya ca | laghunā pañca-mūlena rūkṣāṃ peyāṃ tataḥ pibet || 10 || peyām a-madya-pā kalke sādhitāṃ pāñcakaulike | bilvādi-pañcaka-kvāthe tiloddālaka-taṇḍulaiḥ || 11 || māsa-tulya-dināny evaṃ peyādiḥ patite kramaḥ | laghur a-sneha-lavaṇo dīpanīya-yuto hitaḥ || 12 || 2.12dv dīpanīya-yuto hi saḥ doṣa-dhātu-parikleda-śoṣārthaṃ vidhir ity ayam | snehānna-vastayaś cordhvaṃ balya-dīpana-jīvanāḥ || 13 || saṃjāta-sāre mahati garbhe yoni-parisravāt | vṛddhim a-prāpnuvan garbhaḥ koṣṭhe tiṣṭhati sa-sphuraḥ || 14 || upaviṣṭakam āhus taṃ vardhate tena nodaram | śokopavāsa-rūkṣādyair atha-vā yony-ati-sravāt || 15 || vāte kruddhe kṛśaḥ śuṣyed garbho nāgodaraṃ tu tam | udaraṃ vṛddham apy atra hīyate sphuraṇaṃ cirāt || 16 || 2.16bv garbho nāgodaraṃ tu tat tayor bṛṃhaṇa-vāta-ghna-madhura-dravya-saṃskṛtaiḥ | ghṛta-kṣīra-rasais tṛptir āma-garbhāṃś ca khādayet || 17 || tair eva ca su-bhikṣāyāḥ kṣobhaṇaṃ yāna-vāhanaiḥ | līnākhye nisphure śyena-go-matsyotkrośa-barhi-jāḥ || 18 || 2.18av tair eva ca su-tṛptāyāḥ rasā bahu-ghṛtā deyā māṣa-mūlaka-jā api | bāla-bilvaṃ tilān māṣān saktūṃś ca payasā pibet || 19 || sa-medya-māṃsaṃ madhu vā kaṭy-abhyaṅgaṃ ca śīlayet | harṣayet satataṃ cainām evaṃ garbhaḥ pravardhate || 20 || puṣṭo 'nya-thā varṣa-gaṇaiḥ kṛcchrāj jāyeta naiva vā | udāvartaṃ tu garbhiṇyāḥ snehair āśu-tarāṃ jayet || 21 || yogyaiś ca vastibhir hanyāt sa-garbhāṃ sa hi garbhiṇīm | garbhe 'ti-doṣopacayād a-pathyair daivato 'pi vā || 22 || mṛte 'ntar udaraṃ śītaṃ stabdhaṃ dhmātaṃ bhṛśa-vyatham | garbhā-spando bhrama-tṛṣṇā kṛcchrād ucchvasanaṃ klamaḥ || 23 || 2.23av mṛte 'ntar jaṭharaṃ śītaṃ 2.23bv stabdhādhmātaṃ bhṛśa-vyatham a-ratiḥ srasta-netra-tvam āvīnām a-samudbhavaḥ | tasyāḥ koṣṇāmbu-siktāyāḥ piṣṭvā yoniṃ pralepayet || 24 || guḍaṃ kiṇvaṃ sa-lavaṇaṃ tathāntaḥ pūrayen muhuḥ | ghṛtena kalkī-kṛtayā śālmaly-atasi-picchayā || 25 || mantrair yogair jarāyūktair mūḍha-garbho na cet patet | athāpṛcchyeśvaraṃ vaidyo yatnenāśu tam āharet || 26 || 2.26cv atha pṛṣṭveśvaraṃ vaidyo 2.26cv athāpṛṣṭveśvaraṃ vaidyo hastam abhyajya yoniṃ ca sājya-śālmali-picchayā | hastena śakyaṃ tenaiva gātraṃ ca viṣamaṃ sthitam || 27 || 2.27dv gātraṃ ca viṣama-sthitam āñchanotpīḍa-saṃpīḍa-vikṣepotkṣepaṇādibhiḥ | ānulomya samākarṣed yoniṃ praty ārjavāgatam || 28 || 2.28cv ānulomye samākarṣed hasta-pāda-śirobhir yo yoniṃ bhugnaḥ prapadyate | pādena yonim ekena bhugno 'nyena gudaṃ ca yaḥ || 29 || viṣkambhau nāma tau mūḍhau śastra-dāraṇam arhataḥ | maṇḍalāṅguli-śastrābhyāṃ tatra karma praśasyate || 30 || vṛddhi-pattraṃ hi tīkṣṇāgraṃ na yonāv avacārayet | pūrvaṃ śiraḥ-kapālāni dārayitvā viśodhayet || 31 || kakṣoras-tālu-cibuka-pradeśe 'nya-tame tataḥ | samālambya dṛḍhaṃ karṣet kuśalo garbha-śaṅkunā || 32 || 2.32av kakṣoras-tālu-cibuke 2.32bv pradeśe 'nya-tame tataḥ a-bhinna-śirasaṃ tv akṣi-kūṭayor gaṇḍayor api | bāhuṃ chittvāṃsa-saktasya vātādhmātodarasya tu || 33 || vidārya koṣṭham antrāṇi bahir vā saṃnirasya ca | kaṭī-saktasya tad-vac ca tat-kapālāni dārayet || 34 || yad yad vāyu-vaśād aṅgaṃ sajjed garbhasya khaṇḍa-śaḥ | tat tac chittvāharet samyag rakṣen nārīṃ ca yatnataḥ || 35 || 2.35cv tat tac chittvāharan samyag garbhasya hi gatiṃ citrāṃ karoti vi-guṇo 'nilaḥ | tatrān-alpa-matis tasmād avasthāpekṣam ācaret || 36 || chindyād garbhaṃ na jīvantaṃ mātaraṃ sa hi mārayet | sahātmanā na copekṣyaḥ kṣaṇam apy asta-jīvitaḥ || 37 || yoni-saṃvaraṇa-bhraṃśa-makkalla-śvāsa-pīḍitām | pūty-udgārāṃ himāṅgīṃ ca mūḍha-garbhāṃ parityajet || 38 || athā-patantīm aparāṃ pātayet pūrva-vad bhiṣak | evaṃ nirhṛta-śalyāṃ tu siñced uṣṇena vāriṇā || 39 || dadyād abhyakta-dehāyai yonau sneha-picuṃ tataḥ | yonir mṛdur bhavet tena śūlaṃ cāsyāḥ praśāmyati || 40 || dīpyakātiviṣā-rāsnā-hiṅgv-elā-pañca-kolakāt | cūrṇaṃ snehena kalkaṃ vā kvāthaṃ vā pāyayet tataḥ || 41 || 2.41dv kvāthaṃ tāṃ pāyayet tataḥ kaṭukātiviṣā-pāṭhā-śāka-tvag-ghiṅgu-tejinīḥ | tad-vac ca doṣa-syandārthaṃ vedanopaśamāya ca || 42 || 2.42bv -śāka-tvag-ghiṅgu-tejanīḥ tri-rātram evaṃ saptāhaṃ sneham eva tataḥ pibet | sāyaṃ pibed ariṣṭaṃ ca tathā su-kṛtam āsavam || 43 || śirīṣa-kakubha-kvātha-picūn yonau vinikṣipet | upadravāś ca ye 'nye syus tān yathā-svam upācaret || 44 || payo vāta-haraiḥ siddhaṃ daśāhaṃ bhojane hitam | raso daśāhaṃ ca paraṃ laghu-pathyālpa-bhojanā || 45 || svedābhyaṅga-parā snehān balā-tailādikān bhajet | ūrdhvaṃ caturbhyo māsebhyaḥ sā krameṇa sukhāni ca || 46 || balā-mūla-kaṣāyasya bhāgāḥ ṣaṭ payasas tathā | yava-kola-kulatthānāṃ daśa-mūlasya caikataḥ || 47 || niḥkvātha-bhāgo bhāgaś ca tailasya tu catur-daśaḥ | dvi-medā-dāru-mañjiṣṭhā-kākolī-dvaya-candanaiḥ || 48 || 2.48bv tailasya ca catur-daśaḥ śārivā-kuṣṭha-tagara-jīvakarṣabha-saindhavaiḥ | kālānusāryā-śaileya-vacāguru-punarnavaiḥ || 49 || 2.49cv kālānusārī-śaileya- 2.49cv kālānusārya-śaileya- aśvagandhā-varī-kṣīraśuklā-yaṣṭī-varā-rasaiḥ | śatāhvā-śūrpaparṇy-elā-tvak-pattraiḥ ślakṣṇa-kalkitaiḥ || 50 || pakvaṃ mṛdv-agninā tailaṃ sarva-vāta-vikāra-jit | sūtikā-bāla-marmāsthi-hata-kṣīṇeṣu pūjitam || 51 || 2.51dv -kṣata-kṣīṇeṣu pūjitam jvara-gulma-grahonmāda-mūtrāghātāntra-vṛddhi-jit | dhanvantarer abhimataṃ yoni-roga-kṣayāpaham || 52 || vasti-dvāre vipannāyāḥ kukṣiḥ praspandate yadi | janma-kāle tataḥ śīghraṃ pāṭayitvoddharec chiśum || 53 || madhukaṃ śāka-bījaṃ ca payasyā suradāru ca | aśmantakaḥ kṛṣṇa-tilās tāmravallī śatāvarī || 54 || 2.54bv payasyāmaradāru ca vṛkṣādanī payasyā ca latā sotpala-śārivā | anantā śārivā rāsnā padmā ca madhuyaṣṭikā || 55 || 2.55bv latā cotpala-śārivā 2.55dv padmātha madhuyaṣṭikā 2.55dv padmāhva-madhuyaṣṭikā 2.55dv padmakaṃ madhuyaṣṭikā bṛhatī-dvaya-kāśmarya-kṣīri-śuṅga-tvacā ghṛtam | pṛśniparṇī balā śigruḥ śvadaṃṣṭrā madhuparṇikā || 56 || 2.56av bṛhatī-dvaya-kāśmaryaḥ 2.56bv -kṣīri-śṛṅga-tvacā ghṛtam 2.56bv kṣīri-śuṅga-tvacā ghṛtam śṛṅgāṭakaṃ bisaṃ drākṣā kaseru madhukaṃ sitā | saptaitān payasā yogān ardha-śloka-samāpanān || 57 || kramāt saptasu māseṣu garbhe sravati yojayet | kapittha-bilva-bṛhatī-paṭolekṣu-nidigdhikāt || 58 || 2.58dv -paṭolekṣu-nidigdhi-jaiḥ mūlaiḥ śṛtaṃ prayuñjīta kṣīraṃ māse tathāṣṭame | navame śārivānantā-payasyā-madhuyaṣṭibhiḥ || 59 || yojayed daśame māsi siddhaṃ kṣīraṃ payasyayā | atha-vā yaṣṭimadhuka-nāgarāmaradārubhiḥ || 60 || avasthitaṃ lohitam aṅganāyā vātena garbhaṃ bruvate 'n-abhijñāḥ | garbhākṛti-tvāt kaṭukoṣṇa-tīkṣṇaiḥ srute punaḥ kevala eva rakte || 61 || garbhaṃ jaḍā bhūta-hṛtaṃ vadanti mūrter na dṛṣṭaṃ haraṇaṃ yatas taiḥ | ojo-'śana-tvād atha-vā-vyavasthair bhūtair upekṣyeta na garbha-mātā || 62 || ”ārīrasthāna śiro 'ntar-ādhir dvau bāhū sakthinīti samāsataḥ | ṣaḍ-aṅgam aṅgaṃ pratyaṅgaṃ tasyākṣi-hṛdayādikam || 1 || 3.1bv sakthinī ca samāsataḥ śabdaḥ sparśaś ca rūpaṃ ca raso gandhaḥ kramād guṇāḥ | khānilāgny-ab-bhuvām eka-guṇa-vṛddhy-anvayaḥ pare || 2 || 3.2cv khānilāgny-ambu-bhūṣv eka- 3.2dv -guṇa-vṛddhyānvayaḥ pare tatra khāt khāni dehe 'smin śrotraṃ śabdo vivikta-tā | vātāt sparśa-tvag-ucchvāsā vahner dṛg-rūpa-paktayaḥ || 3 || āpyā jihvā-rasa-kledā ghrāṇa-gandhāsthi pārthivam | mṛdv atra mātṛ-jaṃ rakta-māṃsa-majja-gudādikam || 4 || paitṛkaṃ tu sthiraṃ śukra-dhamany-asthi-kacādikam | caitanaṃ cittam akṣāṇi nānā-yoniṣu janma ca || 5 || 3.5cv ātma-jaṃ cittaṃ akṣāṇi sātmya-jaṃ tv āyur ārogyam an-ālasyaṃ prabhā balam | rasa-jaṃ vapuṣo janma vṛttir vṛddhir a-lola-tā || 6 || 3.6av sātmya-jaṃ cāyur ārogyam sāttvikaṃ śaucam āstikyaṃ śukla-dharma-rucir matiḥ | rājasaṃ bahu-bhāṣi-tvaṃ māna-krud-dambha-matsaram || 7 || 3.7dv māna-krud-dambha-matsarāḥ tāmasaṃ bhayam a-jñānaṃ nidrālasyaṃ viṣādi-tā | iti bhūta-mayo dehas tatra sapta tvaco 'sṛjaḥ || 8 || pacyamānāt prajāyante kṣīrāt saṃtānikā iva | dhātv-āśayāntara-kledo vipakvaḥ svaṃ svam ūṣmaṇā || 9 || śleṣma-snāyv-aparācchannaḥ kalākhyaḥ kāṣṭha-sāra-vat | tāḥ sapta sapta cādhārā raktasyādyaḥ kramāt pare || 10 || 3.10ac śleṣma-snāyv-aparā-channaḥ 3.10dv raktasyādhaḥ kramāt pare kaphāma-pitta-pakvānāṃ vāyor mūtrasya ca smṛtāḥ | garbhāśayo 'ṣṭamaḥ strīṇāṃ pitta-pakvāśayāntare || 11 || koṣṭhāṅgāni sthitāny eṣu hṛdayaṃ kloma phupphusam | yakṛt-plīhoṇḍukaṃ vṛkkau nābhi-ḍimbāntra-vastayaḥ || 12 || 3.12bv hṛdayaṃ kloma phupphusaḥ 3.12bv hṛdayaṃ kloma-phupphuse daśa jīvita-dhāmāni śiro-rasana-bandhanam | kaṇṭho 'sraṃ hṛdayaṃ nābhir vastiḥ śukraujasī gudam || 13 || 3.13dv vastiḥ śukraujasī gudaḥ jālāni kaṇḍarāś cāṅge pṛthak ṣo-ḍaśa nirdiśet | ṣaṭ kūrcāḥ sapta sīvanyo meḍhra-jihvā-śiro-gatāḥ || 14 || 3.14cv ṣaṭ kūrcāḥ sapta sevanyo 3.14cv ṣaṭ kūrcāḥ sapta sevinyo śastreṇa tāḥ pariharec catasro māṃsa-rajjavaḥ | catur-daśāsthi-saṃghātāḥ sīmantā dvi-guṇā nava || 15 || 3.15av śastreṇaitāḥ pariharec asthnāṃ śatāni ṣaṣṭiś ca trīṇi danta-nakhaiḥ saha | dhanvantaris tu trīṇy āha saṃdhīnāṃ ca śata-dvayam || 16 || 3.16av asthnāṃ śatāni ṣaṣṭhīni daśottaraṃ sahasre dve nijagādātri-nandanaḥ | snāvnāṃ nava-śatī pañca puṃsāṃ peśī-śatāni tu || 17 || 3.17cv snāyor nava-śatī pañca 3.17dv puṃsāṃ peśī-śatāni ca adhikā viṃśatiḥ strīṇāṃ yoni-stana-samāśritāḥ | daśa mūla-sirā hṛt-sthās tāḥ sarvaṃ sarvato vapuḥ || 18 || 3.18bv yoni-stana-samāśrayāḥ rasātmakaṃ vahanty ojas tan-nibaddhaṃ hi ceṣṭitam | sthūla-mūlāḥ su-sūkṣmāgrāḥ pattra-rekhā-pratāna-vat || 19 || bhidyante tās tataḥ sapta-śatāny āsāṃ bhavanti tu | tatraikaikaṃ ca śākhāyāṃ śataṃ tasmin na vedhayet || 20 || 3.20cv tatraikaika-tra śākhāyāṃ sirāṃ jālan-dharāṃ nāma tisraś cābhyantarāśritāḥ | ṣo-ḍaśa-dvi-guṇāḥ śroṇyāṃ tāsāṃ dve dve tu vaṅkṣaṇe || 21 || dve dve kaṭīka-taruṇe śastreṇāṣṭau spṛśen na tāḥ | pārśvayoḥ ṣo-ḍaśaikaikām ūrdhva-gāṃ varjayet tayoḥ || 22 || 3.22dv ūrdhva-gāṃ varjayet sirām dvā-daśa-dvi-guṇāḥ pṛṣṭhe pṛṣṭha-vaṃśasya pārśvayoḥ | dve dve tatrordhva-gāminyau na śastreṇa parāmṛśet || 23 || 3.23bv pṛṣṭha-vaṃśasya pārśva-ge pṛṣṭha-vaj jaṭhare tāsāṃ mehanasyopari sthite | roma-rājīm ubhayato dve dve śastreṇa na spṛśet || 24 || catvāriṃśad urasy āsāṃ catur-daśa na vedhayet | stana-rohita-tan-mūla-hṛdaye tu pṛthag dvayam || 25 || apastambhākhyayor ekāṃ tathāpālāpayor api | grīvāyāṃ pṛṣṭha-vat tāsāṃ nīle manye kṛkāṭike || 26 || vidhure mātṛkāś cāṣṭau ṣo-ḍaśeti parityajet | hanvoḥ ṣo-ḍaśa tāsāṃ dve saṃdhi-bandhana-karmaṇī || 27 || 3.27bv ṣo-ḍaśaitāḥ parityajet jihvāyāṃ hanu-vat tāsām adho dve rasa-bodhane | dve ca vācaḥ-pravartinyau nāsāyāṃ catur-uttarā || 28 || viṃśatir gandha-vedinyau tāsām ekāṃ ca tālu-gām | ṣaṭ-pañcāśan nayanayor nimeṣonmeṣa-karmaṇī || 29 || dve dve apāṅgayor dve ca tāsāṃ ṣaḍ iti varjayet | nāsā-netrāśritāḥ ṣaṣṭir lalāṭe sthapanī-śritām || 30 || tatraikāṃ dve tathāvartau catasraś ca kacānta-gāḥ | saptaivaṃ varjayet tāsāṃ karṇayoḥ ṣo-ḍaśātra tu || 31 || dve śabda-bodhane śaṅkhau sirās tā eva cāśritāḥ | dve śaṅkha-saṃdhi-ge tāsāṃ mūrdhni dvā-daśa tatra tu || 32 || ekaikāṃ pṛthag utkṣepa-sīmantādhipati-sthitām | ity a-vedhya-vibhāgārthaṃ pratyaṅgaṃ varṇitāḥ sirāḥ || 33 || a-vedhyās tatra kārtsnyena dehe 'ṣṭā-navatis tathā | saṃkīrṇā grathitāḥ kṣudrā vakrāḥ saṃdhiṣu cāśritāḥ || 34 || tāsāṃ śatānāṃ saptānāṃ pādo 'sraṃ vahate pṛthak | vāta-pitta-kaphair juṣṭaṃ śuddhaṃ caivaṃ sthitā malāḥ || 35 || śarīram anugṛhṇanti pīḍayanty anya-thā punaḥ | tatra śyāvāruṇāḥ sūkṣmāḥ pūrṇa-riktāḥ kṣaṇāt sirāḥ || 36 || praspandinyaś ca vātāsraṃ vahante pitta-śoṇitam | sparśoṣṇāḥ śīghra-vāhinyo nīla-pītāḥ kaphaṃ punaḥ || 37 || gauryaḥ snigdhāḥ sthirāḥ śītāḥ saṃsṛṣṭaṃ liṅga-saṃkare | gūḍhāḥ sama-sthitāḥ snigdhā rohiṇyaḥ śuddha-śoṇitam || 38 || dhamanyo nābhi-saṃbaddhā viṃśatiś catur-uttarā | tābhiḥ parivṛtā nābhiś cakra-nābhir ivārakaiḥ || 39 || 3.39cv tābhiḥ parivṛto nābhiś tābhiś cordhvam adhas tiryag deho 'yam anugṛhyate | srotāṃsi nāsike karṇau netre pāyv-āsya-mehanam || 40 || stanau rakta-pathaś ceti nārīṇām adhikaṃ trayam | jīvitāyatanāny antaḥ srotāṃsy āhus trayo-daśa || 41 || prāṇa-dhātu-malāmbho-'nna-vāhīny a-hita-sevanāt | tāni duṣṭāni rogāya viśuddhāni sukhāya ca || 42 || sva-dhātu-sama-varṇāni vṛtta-sthūlāny aṇūni ca | srotāṃsi dīrghāṇy ākṛtyā pratāna-sadṛśāni ca || 43 || āhāraś ca vihāraś ca yaḥ syād doṣa-guṇaiḥ samaḥ | dhātubhir vi-guṇo yaś ca srotasāṃ sa pradūṣakaḥ || 44 || ati-pravṛttiḥ saṅgo vā sirāṇāṃ granthayo 'pi vā | vi-mārgato vā gamanaṃ srotasāṃ duṣṭi-lakṣaṇam || 45 || 3.45dv srotasāṃ duṣṭa-lakṣaṇam bisānām iva sūkṣmāṇi dūraṃ pravisṛtāni ca | dvārāṇi srotasāṃ dehe raso yair upacīyate || 46 || vyadhe tu srotasāṃ moha-kampādhmāna-vami-jvarāḥ | pralāpa-śūla-viṇ-mūtra-rodhā maraṇam eva vā || 47 || sroto-viddham ato vaidyaḥ pratyākhyāya prasādhayet | uddhṛtya śalyaṃ yatnena sadyaḥ-kṣata-vidhānataḥ || 48 || annasya paktā pittaṃ tu pācakākhyaṃ pureritam | doṣa-dhātu-malādīnām ūṣmety ātreya-śāsanam || 49 || vāma-pārśvāśritaṃ nābheḥ kiñ-cit sūryasya maṇḍalam | tan-madhye maṇḍalaṃ saumyaṃ tan-madhye 'gnir vyavasthitaḥ || 49+1 || jarāyu-mātra-pracchannaḥ kāca-kośa-stha-dīpa-vat || 49+2ab || tad-adhiṣṭhānam annasya grahaṇād grahaṇī matā | saiva dhanvantari-mate kalā pitta-dharāhvayā || 50 || āyur-ārogya-vīryaujo-bhūta-dhātv-agni-puṣṭaye | sthitā pakvāśaya-dvāri bhukta-mārgārgaleva sā || 51 || 3.51dv bhukta-mārgārgaleva yā bhuktam āmāśaye ruddhvā sā vipācya nayaty adhaḥ | bala-vaty a-balā tv annam āmam eva vimuñcati || 52 || grahaṇyā balam agnir hi sa cāpi grahaṇī-balaḥ | dūṣite 'gnāv ato duṣṭā grahaṇī roga-kāriṇī || 53 || yad annaṃ deha-dhātv-ojo-bala-varṇādi-poṣaṇam | tatrāgnir hetur āhārān na hy a-pakvād rasādayaḥ || 54 || annaṃ kāle 'bhyavahṛtaṃ koṣṭhaṃ prāṇānilāhṛtam | dravair vibhinna-saṃghātaṃ nītaṃ snehena mārdavam || 55 || 3.55bv koṣṭhe prāṇānilāhṛtam saṃdhukṣitaḥ samānena pacaty āmāśaya-sthitam | audaryo 'gnir yathā bāhyaḥ sthālī-sthaṃ toya-taṇḍulam || 56 || ādau ṣaḍ-rasam apy annaṃ madhurī-bhūtam īrayet | phenī-bhūtaṃ kaphaṃ yātaṃ vidāhād amla-tāṃ tataḥ || 57 || 3.57cv phena-bhūtaṃ kaphaṃ yātaṃ pittam āmāśayāt kuryāc cyavamānaṃ cyutaṃ punaḥ | agninā śoṣitaṃ pakvaṃ piṇḍitaṃ kaṭu mārutam || 58 || bhaumāpyāgneya-vāyavyāḥ pañcoṣmāṇaḥ sa-nābhasāḥ | pañcāhāra-guṇān svān svān pārthivādīn pacanty anu || 59 || yathā-svaṃ te ca puṣṇanti pakvā bhūta-guṇān pṛthak | pārthivāḥ pārthivān eva śeṣāḥ śeṣāṃś ca deha-gān || 60 || 3.60av yathā-svaṃ te ca puṣyanti kiṭṭaṃ sāraś ca tat pakvam annaṃ saṃbhavati dvi-dhā | tatrācchaṃ kiṭṭam annasya mūtraṃ vidyād ghanam śakṛt || 61 || 3.61av kiṭṭaṃ sāras tathā pakvam sāras tu saptabhir bhūyo yathā-svaṃ pacyate 'gnibhiḥ | rasād raktaṃ tato māṃsaṃ māṃsān medas tato 'sthi ca || 62 || 3.62dv māṃsān medo 'sthi medasaḥ asthno majjā tataḥ śukraṃ śukrād garbhaḥ prajāyate | kaphaḥ pittaṃ malāḥ kheṣu prasvedo nakha-roma ca || 63 || 3.63cv kaphaḥ pittaṃ malaḥ kheṣu sneho 'kṣi-tvag-viṣām ojo dhātūnāṃ krama-śo malāḥ | prasāda-kiṭṭau dhātūnāṃ pākād evaṃ dvi-dharcchataḥ || 64 || paras-paropasaṃstambhād dhātu-sneha-param-parā | ke-cid āhur aho-rātrāt ṣaḍ-ahād apare pare || 65 || māsena yāti śukra-tvam annaṃ pāka-kramādibhiḥ | saṃtatā bhojya-dhātūnāṃ parivṛttis tu cakra-vat || 66 || vṛṣyādīni prabhāveṇa sadyaḥ śukrādi kurvate | prāyaḥ karoty aho-rātrāt karmānyad api bheṣajam || 67 || 3.67bv sadyaḥ śukraṃ prakurvate vyānena rasa-dhātur hi vikṣepocita-karmaṇā | yuga-pat sarvato 'jasraṃ dehe vikṣipyate sadā || 68 || kṣipyamāṇaḥ kha-vaiguṇyād rasaḥ sajjati yatra saḥ | tasmin vikāraṃ kurute khe varṣam iva toya-daḥ || 69 || doṣāṇām api caivaṃ syād eka-deśa-prakopaṇam | anna-bhautika-dhātv-agni-karmeti paribhāṣitam || 70 || annasya paktā sarveṣāṃ paktṝṇām adhiko mataḥ | tan-mūlās te hi tad-vṛddhi-kṣaya-vṛddhi-kṣayātmakāḥ || 71 || tasmāt taṃ vidhi-vad yuktair anna-pānendhanair hitaiḥ | pālayet prayatas tasya sthitau hy āyur-bala-sthitiḥ || 72 || samaḥ samāne sthāna-sthe viṣamo 'gnir vi-mārga-ge | pittābhimūrchite tīkṣṇo mando 'smin kapha-pīḍite || 73 || samo 'gnir viṣamas tīkṣṇo mandaś caivaṃ catur-vidhaḥ | yaḥ pacet samyag evānnaṃ bhuktaṃ samyak samas tv asau || 74 || 3.74dv bhuktaṃ samyak samas tu saḥ viṣamo '-samyag apy āśu samyag vāpi cirāt pacet | tīkṣṇo vahniḥ pacec chīghram a-samyag api bhojanam || 75 || 3.75av viṣamo '-samyag evāśu 3.75bv samyag eva cirāt pacet mandas tu samyag apy annam upayuktaṃ cirāt pacet | kṛtvāsya-śoṣāṭopāntra-kūjanādhmāna-gauravam || 76 || 3.76bv upabhuktaṃ cirāt pacet śānte 'gnau mriyate yukte ciraṃ jīvaty an-āmayaḥ | rogī syād vikṛte mūlam agni-stambhān nirucyate || 76+1 || 3.76+1dv agni-stambhān nirūpyate saha-jaṃ kāla-jaṃ yukti-kṛtaṃ deha-balaṃ tri-dhā | tatra sat-tva-śarīrotthaṃ prākṛtaṃ saha-jaṃ balam || 77 || vayaḥ-kṛtam ṛtūtthaṃ ca kāla-jaṃ yukti-jaṃ punaḥ | vihārāhāra-janitaṃ tathorjas-kara-yoga-jam || 78 || deśo 'lpa-vāri-dru-nago jāṅgalaḥ sv-alpa-roga-daḥ | ānūpo viparīto 'smāt samaḥ sādhāraṇaḥ smṛtaḥ || 79 || majja-medo-vasā-mūtra-pitta-śleṣma-śakṛnty asṛk | raso jalaṃ ca dehe 'sminn ekaikāñjali-vardhitam || 80 || pṛthak sva-prasṛtaṃ proktam ojo-mastiṣka-retasām | dvāv añjalī tu stanyasya catvāro rajasaḥ striyāḥ || 81 || sama-dhātor idaṃ mānaṃ vidyād vṛddhi-kṣayāv ataḥ || 82ab || śukrāsṛg-garbhiṇī-bhojya-ceṣṭā-garbhāśayartuṣu | yaḥ syād doṣo 'dhikas tena prakṛtiḥ sapta-dhoditā || 83 || 3.83dv prakṛtiḥ sapta-dhā smṛtā vibhu-tvād āśu-kāri-tvād bali-tvād anya-kopanāt | svātantryād bahu-roga-tvād doṣāṇāṃ prabalo 'nilaḥ || 84 || prāyo 'ta eva pavanādhyuṣitā manuṣyā doṣātmakāḥ sphuṭita-dhūsara-keśa-gātrāḥ | śīta-dviṣaś cala-dhṛti-smṛti-buddhi-ceṣṭā-sauhārda-dṛṣṭi-gatayo 'ti-bahu-pralāpāḥ || 85 || alpa-vitta-bala-jīvita-nidrāḥ sanna-sakta-cala-jarjara-vācaḥ | nāstikā bahu-bhujaḥ sa-vilāsā gīta-hāsa-mṛgayā-kali-lolāḥ || 86 || 3.86av alpa-pitta-kapha-jīvita-nidrāḥ 3.86av alpa-vitta-kapha-jīvita-nidrāḥ 3.86av alpa-pitta-bala-jīvita-nidrāḥ madhurāmla-paṭūṣṇa-sātmya-kāṅkṣāḥ kṛśa-dīrghākṛtayaḥ sa-śabda-yātāḥ | na dṛḍhā na jitendriyā na cāryā na ca kāntā-dayitā bahu-prajā vā || 87 || 3.87bv kṛśa-dīrghākṛtayaḥ sa-śabda-yānāḥ netrāṇi caiṣāṃ khara-dhūsarāṇi vṛttāny a-cārūṇi mṛtopamāni | unmīlitānīva bhavanti supte śaila-drumāṃs te gaganaṃ ca yānti || 88 || 3.88av netrāṇi vaiṣāṃ khara-dhūsarāṇi a-dhanyā matsarādhmātāḥ stenāḥ prodbaddha-piṇḍikāḥ | śva-śṛgāloṣṭra-gṛdhrākhu-kākānūkāś ca vātikāḥ || 89 || 3.89bv stenāḥ prodvṛtta-piṇḍikāḥ pittaṃ vahnir vahni-jaṃ vā yad asmāt pittodriktas tīkṣṇa-tṛṣṇā-bubhukṣaḥ | gauroṣṇāṅgas tāmra-hastāṅghri-vaktraḥ śūro mānī piṅga-keśo 'lpa-romā || 90 || 3.90bv pittodriktas tīvra-tṛṣṇā-bubhukṣaḥ dayita-mālya-vilepana-maṇḍanaḥ su-caritaḥ śucir āśrita-vatsalaḥ | vibhava-sāhasa-buddhi-balānvito bhavati bhīṣu gatir dviṣatām api || 91 || medhāvī pra-śithila-saṃdhi-bandha-māṃso nārīṇām an-abhimato 'lpa-śukra-kāmaḥ | āvāsaḥ palita-taraṅga-nīlikānāṃ bhuṅkte 'nnaṃ madhura-kaṣāya-tikta-śītam || 92 || gharma-dveṣī svedanaḥ pūti-gandhir bhūry-uccāra-krodha-pānāśanerṣyaḥ | suptaḥ paśyet karṇikārān palāśān dig-dāholkā-vidyud-arkānalāṃś ca || 93 || tanūni piṅgāni calāni caiṣāṃ tanv-alpa-pakṣmāṇi hima-priyāṇi | krodhena madyena raveś ca bhāsā rāgaṃ vrajanty āśu vilocanāni || 94 || 3.94av tanūni piṅgāni calāni vaiṣāṃ madhyāyuṣo madhya-balāḥ piṇḍitāḥ kleśa-bhīravaḥ | vyāghrarkṣa-kapi-mārjāra-yakṣānūkāś ca paittikāḥ || 95 || 3.95dv -vṛkānūkāś ca paittikāḥ śleṣmā somaḥ śleṣmalas tena saumyo gūḍha-snigdha-śliṣṭa-saṃdhy-asthi-māṃsaḥ | kṣut-tṛḍ-duḥkha-kleśa-gharmair a-tapto buddhyā yuktaḥ sāttvikaḥ satya-saṃdhaḥ || 96 || priyaṅgu-dūrvā-śara-kāṇḍa-śastra- go-rocanā-padma-suvarṇa-varṇaḥ | pralamba-bāhuḥ pṛthu-pīna-vakṣā mahā-lalāṭo ghana-nīla-keśaḥ || 97 || mṛdv-aṅgaḥ sama-su-vibhakta-cāru-deho bahv-ojo-rati-rasa-śukra-putra-bhṛtyaḥ | dharmātmā vadati na niṣṭhuraṃ ca jātu pracchannaṃ vahati dṛḍhaṃ ciraṃ ca vairam || 98 || 3.98av mṛdv-aṅgaḥ sama-su-vibhakta-cāru-varṣmā sa-mada-dvi-radendra-tulya-yāto jala-dāmbho-dhi-mṛdaṅga-siṃha-ghoṣaḥ | smṛti-mān abhiyoga-vān vinīto na ca bālye 'py ati-rodano na lolaḥ || 99 || 3.99bv jala-dāmbho-dhi-mṛdaṅga-śaṅkha-ghoṣaḥ tiktaṃ kaṣāyaṃ kaṭukoṣṇa-rūkṣam alpaṃ sa bhuṅkte bala-vāṃs tathāpi | raktānta-su-snigdha-viśāla-dīrgha- su-vyakta-śuklāsita-pakṣmalākṣaḥ || 100 || alpa-vyāhāra-krodha-pānāśanehaḥ prājyāyur-vitto dīrgha-darśī vadānyaḥ | śrāddho gambhīraḥ sthūla-lakṣaḥ kṣamā-vān āryo nidrālur dīrgha-sūtraḥ kṛta-jñaḥ || 101 || 3.101av alpa-vyāhāra-krodha-pānāśanerṣyaḥ 3.101bv prājyāyur-vṛtto dīrgha-darśī vadānyaḥ 3.101cv śrāddho gambhīraḥ sthūla-lakṣyaḥ kṣamā-vān 3.101dv āryo nidrālur dīrgha-sūtrī kṛta-jñaḥ ṛjur vipaścit su-bhagaḥ su-lajjo bhakto gurūṇāṃ sthira-sauhṛdaś ca | svapne sa-padmān sa-vihaṅga-mālāṃs toyāśayān paśyati toya-dāṃś ca || 102 || 3.102av ṛjur vipaścit su-bhagaḥ sa-lajjo brahma-rudrendra-varuṇa-tārkṣya-haṃsa-gajādhipaiḥ | śleṣma-prakṛtayas tulyās tathā siṃhāśva-go-vṛṣaiḥ || 103 || prakṛtīr dvaya-sarvotthā dvandva-sarva-guṇodaye | śaucāstikyādibhiś caivaṃ guṇair guṇa-mayīr vadet || 104 || vayas tv ā-ṣo-ḍaśād bālaṃ tatra dhātv-indriyaujasām | vṛddhir ā-saptater madhyaṃ tatrā-vṛddhiḥ paraṃ kṣayaḥ || 105 || svaṃ svaṃ hasta-trayaṃ sārdhaṃ vapuḥ pātraṃ sukhāyuṣoḥ | na ca yad yuktam udriktair aṣṭābhir ninditair nijaiḥ || 106 || a-romaśāsita-sthūla-dīrgha-tvaiḥ sa-viparyayaiḥ | su-snigdhā mṛdavaḥ sūkṣmā naika-mūlāḥ sthirāḥ kacāḥ || 107 || lalāṭam unnataṃ śliṣṭa-śaṅkham ardhendu-saṃnibham | karṇau nīconnatau paścān mahāntau śliṣṭa-māṃsalau || 108 || netre vyaktāsita-site su-baddha-ghana-pakṣmaṇī | unnatāgrā mahocchvāsā pīnarjur nāsikā samā || 109 || 3.109bv su-baddhe ghana-pakṣmaṇī oṣṭhau raktāv an-udvṛttau mahatyau nolbaṇe hanū | mahad āsyaṃ ghanā dantāḥ snigdhāḥ ślakṣṇāḥ sitāḥ samāḥ || 110 || jihvā raktāyatā tanvī māṃsalaṃ cibukaṃ mahat | grīvā hrasvā ghanā vṛttā skandhāv unnata-pīvarau || 111 || udaraṃ dakṣiṇāvarta-gūḍha-nābhi samunnatam | tanu-raktonnata-nakhaṃ snigdhaṃ ā-tāmra-māṃsalam || 112 || dīrghā-cchidrāṅguli mahat pāṇi-pādaṃ pratiṣṭhitam | gūḍha-vaṃśaṃ bṛhat pṛṣṭhaṃ nigūḍhāḥ saṃdhayo dṛḍhāḥ || 113 || 3.113cv gūḍha-vaṃśaṃ mahat pṛṣṭhaṃ dhīraḥ svaro 'nunādī ca varṇaḥ snigdhaḥ sthira-prabhaḥ | sva-bhāva-jaṃ sthiraṃ sat-tvam a-vikāri vipatsv api || 114 || uttarottara-su-kṣetraṃ vapur garbhādi-nī-rujam | āyāma-jñāna-vijñānair vardhamānaṃ śanaiḥ śubham || 115 || iti sarva-guṇopete śarīre śaradāṃ śatam | āyur aiśvaryam iṣṭāś ca sarve bhāvāḥ pratiṣṭhitāḥ || 116 || tvag-raktādīni sat-tvāntāny agryāṇy aṣṭau yathottaram | bala-pramāṇa-jñānārthaṃ sārāṇy uktāni dehinām || 117 || 3.117bv agrāṇy aṣṭau yathottaram sārair upetaḥ sarvaiḥ syāt paraṃ gaurava-saṃyutaḥ | sarvārambheṣu cāśā-vān sahiṣṇuḥ san-matiḥ sthiraḥ || 118 || 3.118dv sahiṣṇuḥ su-matiḥ sthiraḥ an-utsekaṃ a-dainyaṃ ca sukhaṃ duḥkhaṃ ca sevate | sat-tva-vāṃs tapyamānas tu rājaso naiva tāmasaḥ || 119 || 3.119cv sat-tva-vān stabhyamānas tu dāna-śīla-dayā-satya-brahma-carya-kṛta-jña-tāḥ | rasāyanāni maitrī ca puṇyāyur-vṛddhi-kṛd gaṇaḥ || 120 || ”ārīrasthāna saptottaraṃ marma-śataṃ teṣām ekā-daśādiśet | pṛthak sakthnos tathā bāhvos trīṇi koṣṭhe navorasi || 1 || pṛṣṭhe catur-daśordhvaṃ tu jatros triṃśac ca sapta ca | madhye pāda-talasyāhur abhito madhyamāṅgulīm || 2 || tala-hṛn nāma rujayā tatra viddhasya pañca-tā | aṅguṣṭhāṅguli-madhya-sthaṃ kṣipraṃ ākṣepa-māraṇam || 3 || tasyordhvaṃ dvy-aṅgule kūrcaḥ pāda-bhramaṇa-kampa-kṛt | gulpha-saṃdher adhaḥ kūrca-śiraḥ śopha-rujā-karam || 4 || jaṅghā-caraṇayoḥ saṃdhau gulpho ruk-stambha-māndya-kṛt | jaṅghāntare tv indra-vastir mārayaty asṛjaḥ kṣayāt || 5 || 4.5bv gulpho ruk-stambha-ṣāṇḍhya-kṛt 4.5bv gulpho ruk-stambha-khāñjya-kṛt 4.5bv gulpho ruk-stambha-jāḍya-kṛt jaṅghorvoḥ saṃgame jānu khañja-tā tatra jīvataḥ | jānunas try-aṅgulād ūrdhvam āṇy-ūru-stambha-śopha-kṛt || 6 || urvy ūru-madhye tad-vedhāt sakthi-śoṣo 'sra-saṃkṣayāt | ūru-mūle lohitākṣaṃ hanti pakṣam asṛk-kṣayāt || 7 || 4.7cv ūru-mūle lohitākhyaṃ muṣka-vaṅkṣaṇayor madhye viṭapaṃ ṣaṇḍha-tā-karam | iti sakthnos tathā bāhvor maṇi-bandho 'tra gulpha-vat || 8 || 4.8bv viṭipaṃ ṣaṇḍha-tā-karam kūrparaṃ jānu-vat kauṇyaṃ tayor viṭapa-vat punaḥ | kakṣākṣa-madhye kakṣā-dhṛk kuṇi-tvaṃ tatra jāyate || 9 || sthūlāntra-baddhaḥ sadyo-ghno viḍ-vāta-vamano gudaḥ | mūtrāśayo dhanur-vakro vastir alpāsra-māṃsa-gaḥ || 10 || ekādho-vadano madhye kaṭyāḥ sadyo nihanty asūn | ṛte 'śmarī-vraṇād viddhas tatrāpy ubhayataś ca saḥ || 11 || 4.11dv tatrāpy ubhayataś ca yaḥ mūtra-srāvy ekato bhinne vraṇo rohec ca yatnataḥ | dehāma-pakva-sthānānāṃ madhye sarva-sirāśrayaḥ || 12 || nābhiḥ so 'pi hi sadyo-ghno dvāram āmāśayasya ca | sat-tvādi-dhāma hṛdayaṃ stanoraḥ-koṣṭha-madhya-gam || 13 || stana-rohita-mūlākhye dvy-aṅgule stanayor vadet | ūrdhvādho 'sra-kaphāpūrṇa-koṣṭho naśyet tayoḥ kramāt || 14 || 4.14cv ūrdhvādho 'sṛk-kaphāpūrṇa- apastambhāv uraḥ-pārśve nāḍyāv anila-vāhinī | raktena pūrṇa-koṣṭho 'tra śvāsāt kāsāc ca naśyati || 15 || 4.15cv raktasya pūrṇa-koṣṭho 'tra pṛṣṭha-vaṃśorasor madhye tayor eva ca pārśvayoḥ | adho 'ṃsa-kūṭayor vidyād apālāpākhya-marmaṇī || 16 || tayoḥ koṣṭhe 'sṛjā pūrṇe naśyed yātena pūya-tām | pārśvayoḥ pṛṣṭha-vaṃśasya śroṇi-karṇau prati sthite || 17 || 4.17dv śroṇi-karṇa-pratiṣṭhite 4.17dv śroṇi-karṇau pratiṣṭhitau vaṃśāśrite sphijor ūrdhvaṃ kaṭīka-taruṇe smṛte | tatra rakta-kṣayāt pāṇdur hīna-rūpo vinaśyati || 18 || pṛṣṭha-vaṃśaṃ hy ubhayato yau saṃdhī kaṭi-pārśvayoḥ | jaghanasya bahir-bhāge marmaṇī tau kukundarau || 19 || 4.19av pṛṣṭha-vaṃśasyobhayato ceṣṭā-hānir adhaḥ-kāye sparśā-jñānaṃ ca tad-vyadhāt | pārśvāntara-nibaddhau yāv upari śroṇi-karṇayoḥ || 20 || āśaya-cchādanau tau tu nitambau taruṇāsthi-gau | adhaḥ-śarīre śopho 'tra daurbalyaṃ maraṇaṃ tataḥ || 21 || 4.21av āśayācchādanau tau tu pārśvāntara-nibaddhau ca madhye jaghana-pārśvayoḥ | tiryag ūrdhvaṃ ca nirdiṣṭau pārśva-saṃdhī tayor vyadhāt || 22 || 4.22bv madhyau jaghana-pārśvayoḥ 4.22cv nirdiṣṭau pārśva-saṃdhī tau 4.22dv tiryag ūrdhvaṃ tayor vyadhāt rakta-pūrita-koṣṭhasya śarīrāntara-saṃbhavaḥ | stana-mūlārjave bhāge pṛṣṭha-vaṃśāśraye sire || 23 || bṛhatyau tatra viddhasya maraṇaṃ rakta-saṃkṣayāt | bāhu-mūlābhisaṃbaddhe pṛṣṭha-vaṃśasya pārśvayoḥ || 24 || aṃsayoḥ phalake bāhu-svāpa-śoṣau tayor vyadhāt | grīvām ubhayataḥ snāvnī grīvā-bāhu-śiro-'ntare || 25 || 4.25bv -svāpa-śoṣau tayor vyadhe 4.25bv -svāpa-śophau tayor vyadhe 4.25bv -svāpa-śophau tayor vyadhāt skandhāṃsa-pīṭha-saṃbandhāv aṃsau bāhu-kriyā-harau | kaṇṭha-nālīm ubhayataḥ sirā hanu-samāśritāḥ || 26 || 4.26av skandhāṃsa-pīṭha-baddhārthāv 4.26av skandhāṃsa-pīṭha-bandhārthāv 4.26av skandhāṃsa-pīṭha-saṃbaddhāv catasras tāsu nīle dve manye dve marmaṇī smṛte | svara-praṇāśa-vaikṛtyaṃ rasā-jñānaṃ ca tad-vyadhe || 27 || 4.27cv svara-praṇāśa-vaikṛtya- 4.27cv svara-praṇāśo vaikṛtyaṃ 4.27dv -rasā-jñānaṃ ca tad-vyadhe kaṇṭha-nālīm ubhayato jihvā-nāsā-gatāḥ sirāḥ | pṛthak catasras tāḥ sadyo ghnanty asūn mātṛkāhvayāḥ || 28 || kṛkāṭike śiro-grīvā-saṃdhau tatra calaṃ śiraḥ | adhas-tāt karṇayor nimne vidhure śruti-hāriṇī || 29 || 4.29bv -saṃdhī tatra calaṃ śiraḥ phaṇāv ubhayato ghrāṇa-mārgaṃ śrotra-pathānugau | antar-gala-sthitau vedhād gandha-vijñāna-hāriṇau || 30 || netrayor bāhyato 'pāṅgau bhruvoḥ pucchāntayor adhaḥ | tathopari bhruvor nimnāv āvartāv āndhyam eṣu tu || 31 || anu-karṇaṃ lalāṭānte śaṅkhau sadyo-vināśanau | keśānte śaṅkhayor ūrdhvam utkṣepau sthapani punaḥ || 32 || bhruvor madhye traye 'py atra śalye jīved an-uddhṛte | svayaṃ vā patite pākāt sadyo naśyati tūddhṛte || 33 || jihvākṣi-nāsikā-śrotra-kha-catuṣṭaya-saṃgame | tālūny āsyāni catvāri srotasāṃ teṣu marmasu || 34 || viddhaḥ śṛṅgāṭakākhyeṣu sadyas tyajati jīvitam | kapāle saṃdhayaḥ pañca sīmantās tiryag-ūrdhva-gāḥ || 35 || 4.35cv kapāla-saṃdhayaḥ pañca bhramonmāda-mano-nāśais teṣu viddheṣu naśyati | āntaro mastakasyordhvaṃ sirā-saṃdhi-samāgamaḥ || 36 || 4.36cv antare mastakasyordhvaṃ romāvarto 'dhipo nāma marma sadyo haraty asūn | viṣamaṃ spandanaṃ yatra pīḍite ruk ca marma tat || 37 || māṃsāsthi-snāyu-dhamanī-sirā-saṃdhi-samāgamaḥ | syān marmeti ca tenātra su-tarāṃ jīvitaṃ sthitam || 38 || bāhulyena tu nirdeśaḥ ṣo-ḍhaivaṃ marma-kalpanā | prāṇāyatana-sāmānyād aikyaṃ vā marmaṇāṃ matam || 39 || 4.39dv aikyaṃ vā marmaṇāṃ smṛtam māṃsa-jāni daśendrākhya-tala-hṛt-stana-rohitāḥ | śaṅkhau kaṭīka-taruṇe nitambāv aṃsayoḥ phale || 40 || asthny aṣṭau snāva-marmāṇi trayo-viṃśatir āṇayaḥ | kūrca-kūrca-śiro-'pāṅga-kṣiprotkṣepāṃsa-vastayaḥ || 41 || 4.41av asthny aṣṭau snāyu-marmāṇi gudāpastambha-vidhura-śṛṅgāṭāni navādiśet | marmāṇi dhamanī-sthāni sapta-triṃśat sirāśrayāḥ || 42 || 4.42av gudo 'pastambha-vidhura- bṛhatyau mātṛkā nīle manye kakṣā-dharau phaṇau | viṭape hṛdayaṃ nābhiḥ pārśva-saṃdhī stanādhare || 43 || 4.43dv pārśva-saṃdhī stanāntare apālāpau sthapany urvyaś catasro lohitāni ca | saṃdhau viṃśatir āvartau maṇi-bandhau kukundarau || 44 || sīmantāḥ kūrparau gulphau kṛkāṭyau jānunī patiḥ | māṃsa-marma gudo 'nyeṣāṃ snāvni kakṣā-dharau tathā || 45 || 4.45dv snāvnī kakṣā-dharau tathā viṭapau vidhurākhye ca śṛṅgāṭāni sirāsu tu | apastambhāv apāṅgau ca dhamanī-sthaṃ na taiḥ smṛtam || 46 || viddhe 'jasram asṛk-srāvo māṃsa-dhāvana-vat tanuḥ | pāṇḍu-tvam indriyā-jñānaṃ maraṇam cāśu māṃsa-je || 47 || 4.47dv maraṇam vāśu māṃsa-je majjānvito 'ccho vicchinnaḥ srāvo ruk cāsthi-marmaṇi | āyāmākṣepaka-stambhāḥ snāva-je 'bhyadhikaṃ rujā || 48 || 4.48dv snāva-je 'bhyadhikaṃ rujaḥ 4.48dv snāva-je 'bhyadhikā rujaḥ 4.48dv snāyu-ge 'bhyadhikaṃ rujā yāna-sthānāsanā-śaktir vaikalyam atha vāntakaḥ | raktaṃ sa-śabda-phenoṣṇaṃ dhamanī-sthe vi-cetasaḥ || 49 || sirā-marma-vyadhe sāndram ajasraṃ bahv asṛk sravet | tat-kṣayāt tṛḍ-bhrama-śvāsa-moha-hidhmābhir antakaḥ || 50 || vastu śūkair ivākīrṇaṃ rūḍhe ca kuṇi-khañja-tā | bala-ceṣṭā-kṣayaḥ śoṣaḥ parva-śophaś ca saṃdhi-je || 51 || nābhi-śaṅkhādhipāpāna-hṛc-chṛṅgāṭaka-vastayaḥ | aṣṭau ca mātṛkāḥ sadyo nighnanty ekān-na-viṃśatiḥ || 52 || 4.52dv nighnanty ekona-viṃśatiḥ saptāhaḥ paramas teṣāṃ kālaḥ kālasya karṣaṇe | trayas-triṃśad-apastambha-tala-hṛt-pārśva-saṃdhayaḥ || 53 || 4.53av saptāhaḥ paramaṃ teṣāṃ kaṭī-taruṇa-sīmanta-stana-mūlendra-vastayaḥ | kṣiprāpālāpa-bṛhatī-nitamba-stana-rohitāḥ || 54 || kālāntara-prāṇa-harā māsa-māsārdha-jīvitāḥ | utkṣepau sthapanī trīṇi vi-śalya-ghnāni tatra hi || 55 || 4.55dv vi-śalya-ghnāni tatra tu vāyur māṃsa-vasā-majja-mastuluṅgāni śoṣayet | śalyāpāye vinirgacchan śvāsāt kāsāc ca hanty asūn || 56 || phaṇāv apāṅgau vidhure nīle manye kṛkāṭike | aṃsāṃsa-phalakāvarta-viṭaporvī-kukundarāḥ || 57 || 4.57av phaṇāv apāṅgau vidhurau sa-jānu-lohitākṣāṇi-kakṣā-dhṛk-kūrca-kūrparāḥ | vaikalyam iti catvāri catvāriṃśac ca kurvate || 58 || 4.58av sa-jānu-lohitākhyāni- haranti tāny api prāṇān kadā-cid abhighātataḥ | aṣṭau kūrca-śiro-gulpha-maṇi-bandhā rujā-karāḥ || 59 || teṣāṃ viṭapa-kakṣā-dhṛg-urvyaḥ kūrca-śirāṃsi ca | dvā-daśāṅgula-mānāni dvy-aṅgule maṇi-bandhane || 60 || 4.60bv -urvī-kūrca-śirāṃsi ca gulphau ca stana-mūle ca try-aṅgulaṃ jānu-kūrparam | apāna-vasti-hṛn-nābhi-nīlāḥ sīmanta-mātṛkāḥ || 61 || 4.61bv try-aṅgulau jānu-kūrparau 4.61dv -nīlā-sīmanta-mātṛkāḥ kūrca-śṛṅgāṭa-manyāś ca triṃśad ekena varjitāḥ | ātma-pāṇi-talonmānāḥ śeṣāṇy ardhāṅgulaṃ vadet || 62 || pañcāśat ṣaṭ ca marmāṇi tila-vrīhi-samāny api | iṣṭāni marmāṇy anyeṣāṃ catur-dhoktāḥ sirās tu yāḥ || 63 || tarpayanti vapuḥ kṛtsnaṃ tā marmāṇy āśritās tataḥ | tat-kṣatāt kṣata-jāty-artha-pravṛtter dhātu-saṃkṣaye || 64 || 4.64cv tat-kṣatāt kṣata-jāty-arthaṃ 4.64dv pravṛttir dhātu-saṃkṣaye vṛddhaś calo rujas tīvrāḥ pratanoti samīrayan | tejas tad uddhṛtaṃ dhatte tṛṣṇā-śoṣa-mada-bhramān || 65 || svinna-srasta-ślatha-tanuṃ haraty enaṃ tato 'ntakaḥ | vardhayet saṃdhito gātraṃ marmaṇy abhihate drutam || 66 || chedanāt saṃdhi-deśasya saṃkucanti sirā hy ataḥ | jīvitaṃ prāṇināṃ tatra rakte tiṣṭhati tiṣṭhati || 67 || su-vikṣato 'py ato jīved a-marmaṇi na marmaṇi | prāṇa-ghātini jīvet tu kaś-cid vaidya-guṇena cet || 68 || a-samagrābhighātāc ca so 'pi vaikalyam aśnute | tasmāt kṣāra-viṣāgny-ādīn yatnān marmasu varjayet || 69 || marmābhighātaḥ sv-alpo 'pi prāya-śo bādhate-tarām | rogā marmāśrayās tad-vat prakrāntā yatnato 'pi ca || 70 || 4.70cv rogā marmāśritās tad-vat ”ārīrasthāna puṣpaṃ phalasya dhūmo 'gner varṣasya jala-dodayaḥ | yathā bhaviṣyato liṅgaṃ riṣṭaṃ mṛtyos tathā dhruvam || 1 || āyuṣ-mati kriyāḥ sarvāḥ sa-phalāḥ saṃprayojitāḥ | bhavanti bhiṣajāṃ bhūtyai kṛta-jña iva bhū-bhuji || 1+(1) || kṣīṇāyuṣi kṛtaṃ karma vyarthaṃ kṛtam ivādhame | a-yaśo deha-saṃdehaṃ svārtha-hāniṃ ca yacchati || 1+(2) || 5.1+(2)cv āyāsād deha-saṃdehaṃ tarhīdānīṃ gatāsūnāṃ lakṣaṇaṃ saṃpracakṣate | vikṛtiḥ prakṛteḥ prājñaiḥ pradiṣṭā riṣṭa-saṃjñayā || 1+(3) || 5.1+(3)av tad idānīṃ gatāsūnāṃ ariṣṭaṃ nāsti maraṇaṃ dṛṣṭa-riṣṭaṃ ca jīvitam | ariṣṭe riṣṭa-vijñānaṃ na ca riṣṭe 'py a-naipuṇāt || 2 || ke-cit tu tad dvi-dhety āhuḥ sthāyy-a-sthāyi-vibhedataḥ | doṣāṇām api bāhulyād riṣṭābhāsaḥ samudbhavet || 3 || sa doṣāṇāṃ śame śāmyet sthāyy avaśyaṃ tu mṛtyave | rūpendriya-svara-cchāyā-praticchāyā-kriyādiṣu || 4 || 5.4av tad doṣāṇāṃ śame śāmyet anyeṣv api ca bhāveṣu prākṛteṣv a-nimittataḥ | vikṛtir yā samāsena riṣṭaṃ tad iti lakṣayet || 5 || keśa-roma-nir-abhyaṅgaṃ yasyābhyaktam ivekṣyate | yasyāty-arthaṃ cale netre stabdhāntar-gata-nirgate || 6 || jihme vistṛta-saṃkṣipte saṃkṣipta-vinata-bhruṇī | udbhrānta-darśane hīna-darśane nakulopame || 7 || kapotābhe alātābhe srute lulita-pakṣmaṇī | nāsikāty-artha-vivṛtā saṃvṛtā piṭikācitā || 8 || ucchūnā sphuṭitā mlānā yasyauṣṭho yāty adho 'dharaḥ | ūrdhvaṃ dvitīyaḥ syātāṃ vā pakva-jambū-nibhāv ubhau || 9 || dantāḥ sa-śarkarāḥ śyāvās tāmrāḥ puṣpita-paṅkitāḥ | sahasaiva pateyur vā jihvā jihmā visarpiṇī || 10 || śūnā śuṣkā guruḥ śyāvā liptā suptā sa-kaṇṭakā | śiraḥ śiro-dharā voḍhuṃ pṛṣṭhaṃ vā bhāram ātmanaḥ || 11 || hanū vā piṇḍam āsya-sthaṃ śaknuvanti na yasya ca | yasyā-nimittam aṅgāni gurūṇy ati-laghūni vā || 12 || viṣa-doṣād vinā yasya khebhyo raktaṃ pravartate | utsiktaṃ mehanaṃ yasya vṛṣaṇāv ati-niḥsṛtau || 13 || ato 'nya-thā vā yasya syāt sarve te kāla-coditāḥ | yasyā-pūrvāḥ sirā-lekhā bālendv-ākṛtayo 'pi vā || 14 || 5.14bv sarve te kāla-noditāḥ lalāṭe vasti-śīrṣe vā ṣaṇ māsān na sa jīvati | padminī-pattra-vat toyaṃ śarīre yasya dehinaḥ || 15 || plavate plavamānasya ṣaṇ māsās tasya jīvitam | haritābhāḥ sirā yasya roma-kūpāś ca saṃvṛtāḥ || 16 || 5.16bv ṣaṇ-māsaṃ tasya jīvitam 5.16bv ṣaṇ-māsāt tasya jīvitam 5.16bv ṣaṇ māsāṃs tasya jīvitam so 'mlābhilāṣī puruṣaḥ pittān maraṇam aśnute | yasya go-maya-cūrṇābhaṃ cūrṇaṃ mūrdhni mukhe 'pi vā || 17 || sa-snehaṃ mūrdhni dhūmo vā māsāntaṃ tasya jīvitam | mūrdhni bhruvor vā kurvanti sīmantāvartakā navāḥ || 18 || 5.18cv mūrdhni bhruvor vā yasya syuḥ mṛtyuṃ svasthasya ṣaḍ-rātrāt tri-rātrād āturasya tu | jihvā śyāvā mukhaṃ pūti savyam akṣi nimajjati || 19 || 5.19bv tri-rātrād āturasya ca khagā vā mūrdhni līyante yasya taṃ parivarjayet | yasya snātānuliptasya pūrvaṃ śuṣyaty uro bhṛśam || 20 || ārdreṣu sarva-gātreṣu so 'rdha-māsaṃ na jīvati | a-kasmād yuga-pad gātre varṇau prākṛta-vaikṛtau || 21 || tathaivopacaya-glāni-raukṣya-snehādi mṛtyave | yasya sphuṭeyur aṅgulyo nākṛṣṭā na sa jīvati || 22 || kṣava-kāsādiṣu tathā yasyā-pūrvo dhvanir bhavet | hrasvo dīrgho 'ti vocchvāsaḥ pūtiḥ surabhir eva vā || 23 || āplutān-āplute kāye yasya gandho 'ti-mānuṣaḥ | mala-vastra-vraṇādau vā varṣāntaṃ tasya jīvitam || 24 || 5.24cv mala-vastra-vraṇādye vā bhajante 'ty-aṅga-saurasyād yaṃ yūkā-makṣikādayaḥ | tyajanti vāti-vairasyāt so 'pi varṣaṃ na jīvati || 25 || satatoṣmasu gātreṣu śaityaṃ yasyopalakṣyate | śīteṣu bhṛśam auṣṇyaṃ vā svedaḥ stambho 'py a-hetukaḥ || 26 || 5.26dv svedaḥ stambho 'ty a-hetukaḥ yo jāta-śīta-piṭikaḥ śītāṅgo vā vidahyate | uṣṇa-dveṣī ca śitārtaḥ sa pretādhipa-go-caraḥ || 27 || 5.27bv śītāṅgo vātidahyate 5.27bv śītāṅgo vāpi dahyate urasy ūṣmā bhaved yasya jaṭhare cāti-śīta-tā | bhinnaṃ purīṣaṃ tṛṣṇā ca yathā pretas tathaiva saḥ || 28 || 5.28bv jaṭhare vāti-śīta-tā mūtraṃ purīṣaṃ niṣṭhyūtaṃ śukraṃ vāpsu nimajjati | niṣṭhyūtaṃ bahu-varṇaṃ vā yasya māsāt sa naśyati || 29 || ghanī-bhūtam ivākāśam ākāśam iva yo ghanam | a-mūrtam iva mūrtaṃ ca mūrtaṃ cā-mūrta-vat sthitam || 30 || tejasvy a-tejas tad-vac ca śuklaṃ kṛṣṇam a-sac ca sat | a-netra-rogaś candraṃ ca bahu-rūpam a-lāñchanam || 31 || 5.31av tejasy a-tejas tad-vac ca 5.31cv a-netra-rogī candraṃ ca jāgrad rakṣāṃsi gandharvān pretān anyāṃś ca tad-vidhān | rūpaṃ vy-ākṛti tat tac ca yaḥ paśyati sa naśyati || 32 || 5.32cv rūpaṃ vy-ākṛti tad-vac ca saptarṣīṇāṃ samīpa-sthāṃ yo na paśyaty arundhatīm | dhruvam ākāśa-gaṅgāṃ vā sa na paśyati tāṃ samām || 33 || megha-toyaugha-nirghoṣa-vīṇā-paṇava-veṇu-jān | śṛṇoty anyāṃś ca yaḥ śabdān a-sato na sato 'pi vā || 34 || niṣpīḍya karṇau śṛṇuyān na yo dhukadhukā-svanam | tad-vad gandha-rasa-sparśān manyate yo viparyayāt || 35 || 5.35bv na yo dhukadhuka-svanam sarva-śo vā na yo yaś ca dīpa-gandhaṃ na jighrati | vidhinā yasya doṣāya svāsthyāyā-vidhinā rasāḥ || 36 || yaḥ pāṃsuneva kīrṇāṅgo yo 'ṅge ghātaṃ na vetti vā | antareṇa tapas tīvraṃ yogaṃ vā vidhi-pūrvakam || 37 || 5.37av yo bhasmaneva kīrṇāṅgo jānāty atīndriyaṃ yaś ca teṣāṃ maraṇam ādiśet | hīno dīnaḥ svaro '-vyakto yasya syād gadgado 'pi vā || 38 || sahasā yo vimuhyed vā vivakṣur na sa jīvati | svarasya dur-balī-bhāvaṃ hāniṃ ca bala-varṇayoḥ || 39 || roga-vṛddhim a-yuktyā ca dṛṣṭvā maraṇam ādiśet | apa-svaraṃ bhāṣamāṇaṃ prāptaṃ maraṇam ātmanaḥ || 40 || śrotāraṃ cāsya śabdasya dūrataḥ parivarjayet | saṃsthānena pramāṇena varṇena prabhayāpi vā || 41 || 5.41av śrotāraṃ tasya śabdasya 5.41av śrotāraṃ vāsya śabdasya chāyā vivartate yasya svapne 'pi preta eva saḥ | ātapādarśa-toyādau yā saṃsthāna-pramāṇataḥ || 42 || chāyāṅgāt saṃbhavaty uktā praticchāyeti sā punaḥ | varṇa-prabhāśrayā yā tu sā chāyaiva śarīra-gā || 43 || bhaved yasya praticchāyā chinnā bhinnādhikākulā | vi-śirā dvi-śirā jihmā vikṛtā yadi vānya-thā || 44 || taṃ samāptāyuṣaṃ vidyān na cel lakṣya-nimitta-jā | praticchāyā-mayī yasya na cākṣṇīkṣyeta kanyakā || 45 || khādīnāṃ pañca pañcānāṃ chāyā vividha-lakṣaṇāḥ | nābhasī nir-malā-nīlā sa-snehā sa-prabheva ca || 46 || vātād rajo-'ruṇā śyāvā bhasma-rūkṣā hata-prabhā | viśuddha-raktā tv āgneyī dīptābhā darśana-priyā || 47 || śuddha-vaiḍūrya-vi-malā su-snigdhā toya-jā sukhā | sthirā snigdhā ghanā śuddhā śyāmā śvetā ca pārthivī || 48 || 5.48bv su-snigdhā toya-jā hi sā vāyavī roga-maraṇa-kleśāyānyāḥ sukhodayāḥ | prabhoktā taijasī sarvā sā tu sapta-vidhā smṛtā || 49 || 5.49av vāyavyā roga-maraṇa- raktā pītā sitā śyāvā haritā pāṇḍurāsitā | tāsāṃ yāḥ syur vikāsinyaḥ snigdhāś ca vi-malāś ca yāḥ || 50 || 5.50av raktā pītā sitā śyāmā tāḥ śubhā malinā rūkṣāḥ saṃkṣiptāś cā-śubhodayāḥ | varṇam ākrāmati cchāyā prabhā varṇa-prakāśinī || 51 || 5.51bv saṃkṣiptāś cā-sukhodayāḥ 5.51dv prabhā varṇa-vikāśinī āsanne lakṣyate chāyā vikṛṣṭe bhā prakāśate | nā-cchāyo nā-prabhaḥ kaś-cid viśeṣāś cihnayanti tu || 52 || nṛṇāṃ śubhā-śubhotpattiṃ kāle chāyā-samāśrayāḥ | nikaṣann iva yaḥ pādau cyutāṃsaḥ parisarpati || 53 || 5.53bv kāle chāyā-samāśritāḥ hīyate balataḥ śaśvad yo 'nnam aśnan hitaṃ bahu | yo 'lpāśī bahu-viṇ-mūtro bahv-āśī cālpa-mūtra-viṭ || 54 || 5.54dv bahv-āśī vālpa-mūtra-viṭ yo vālpāśī kaphenārto dīrghaṃ śvasiti ceṣṭate | dīrgham ucchvasya yo hrasvaṃ niḥśvasya paritāmyati || 55 || hrasvaṃ ca yaḥ praśvasiti vyāviddhaṃ spandate bhṛśam | śiro vikṣipate kṛcchrād yo 'ñcayitvā prapāṇikau || 56 || yo lalāṭāt sruta-svedaḥ ślatha-saṃdhāna-bandhanaḥ | utthāpyamānaḥ saṃmuhyed yo balī dur-balo 'pi vā || 57 || uttāna eva svapiti yaḥ pādau vikaroti ca | śayanāsana-kuḍyāder yo '-sad eva jighṛkṣati || 58 || 5.58cv śayanāsana-kuḍyādau 5.58dv yaḥ sadaiva jighṛkṣati a-hāsya-hāsī saṃmuhyan yo leḍhi daśana-cchadau | uttarauṣṭhaṃ parilihan phūt-kārāṃś ca karoti yaḥ || 59 || 5.59dv notkārāṃś ca karoti yaḥ yam abhidravati cchāyā kṛṣṇā pītāruṇāpi vā | bhiṣag-bheṣaja-pānānna-guru-mitra-dviṣaś ca ye || 60 || 5.60bv kṛṣṇā pītāruṇāpi ca vaśa-gāḥ sarva evaite vijñeyāḥ sama-vartinaḥ | grīvā-lalāṭa-hṛdayaṃ yasya svidyati śītalam || 61 || uṣṇo 'paraḥ pradeśaś ca śaraṇaṃ tasya devatāḥ | yo 'ṇu-jyotir anekāgro duś-chāyo dur-manāḥ sadā || 62 || pūrva-rūpāṇi sarvāṇi jvarādiṣv ati-mātrayā | yaṃ viśanti viśaty enaṃ mṛtyur jvara-puraḥ-saraḥ || 62.1+(1) || baliṃ bali-bhṛto yasya praṇītaṃ nopabhuñjate | nir-nimittaṃ ca yo medhāṃ śobhām upacayaṃ śriyam || 63 || 5.63av baliṃ bali-bhujo yasya prāpnoty ato vā vibhraṃśaṃ sa prāpnoti yama-kṣayam | guṇa-doṣa-mayī yasya svasthasya vyādhitasya vā || 64 || 5.64cv guṇā-guṇa-mayī yasya yāty anya-thā-tvaṃ prakṛtiḥ ṣaṇ māsān na sa jīvati | bhaktiḥ śīlaṃ smṛtis tyāgo buddhir balam a-hetukam || 65 || ṣaḍ etāni nivartante ṣaḍbhir māsair mariṣyataḥ | matta-vad-gati-vāk-kampa-mohā māsān mariṣyataḥ || 66 || naśyaty a-jānan ṣaḍ-ahāt keśa-luñcana-vedanām | na yāti yasya cāhāraḥ kaṇṭhaṃ kaṇṭhāmayād ṛte || 67 || preṣyāḥ pratīpa-tāṃ yānti pretākṛtir udīryate | yasya nidrā bhaven nityā naiva vā na sa jīvati || 68 || 5.68cv yasya nidrā bhaven nityaṃ vaktram āpūryate 'śrūṇāṃ svidyataś caraṇau bhṛśam | cakṣuś cākula-tāṃ yāti yama-rājyaṃ gamiṣyataḥ || 69 || 5.69dv yama-rāṣṭraṃ gamiṣyataḥ yaiḥ purā ramate bhāvair a-ratis tair na jīvati | sahasā jāyate yasya vikāraḥ sarva-lakṣaṇaḥ || 70 || nivartate vā sahasā sahasā sa vinaśyati | jvaro nihanti bala-vān gambhīro dairgharātrikaḥ || 71 || sa-pralāpa-bhrama-śvāsaḥ kṣīṇaṃ śūnaṃ hatānalam | a-kṣāmaṃ sakta-vacanaṃ raktākṣaṃ hṛdi śūlinam || 72 || sa-śuṣka-kāsaḥ pūrvāhṇe yo 'parāhṇe 'pi vā bhavet | bala-māṃsa-vihīnasya śleṣma-kāsa-samanvitaḥ || 73 || 5.73av saṃśuṣka-kāsaḥ pūrvāhṇe rakta-pittaṃ bhṛśaṃ raktaṃ kṛṣṇam indra-dhanuṣ-prabham | tāmra-hāridra-haritaṃ rūpaṃ raktaṃ pradarśayet || 74 || roma-kūpa-pravisṛtaṃ kaṇṭhāsya-hṛdaye sajat | vāsaso '-rañjanaṃ pūti vega-vac cāti bhūri ca || 75 || 5.75cv vāsaso rañjanaṃ pūti vṛddhaṃ pāṇḍu-jvara-cchardi-kāsa-śophātisāriṇam | kāsa-śvāsau jvara-cchardi-tṛṣṇātīsāra-śophinam || 76 || yakṣmā pārśva-rujānāha-rakta-cchardy-aṃsa-tāpinam | chardir vega-vatī mūtra-śakṛd-gandhiḥ sa-candrikā || 77 || 5.77bv -rakta-cchardy-aṅga-tāpinam sāsra-viṭ-pūya-ruk-kāsa-śvāsa-vaty anuṣaṅgiṇī | tṛṣṇānya-roga-kṣapitaṃ bahir-jihvaṃ vi-cetanam || 78 || 5.78dv bahir-jihvam a-cetanam 5.78dv bahir-jihvaṃ vi-cetasam madātyayo 'ti-śītārtaṃ kṣīṇaṃ taila-prabhānanam | arśāṃsi pāṇi-pan-nābhi-guda-muṣkāsya-śophinam || 79 || 5.79dv -guda-muṣkādi-śophinam hṛt-pārśvāṅga-rujā-chardi-pāyu-pāka-jvarāturam | atīsāro yakṛt-piṇḍa-māṃsa-dhāvana-mecakaiḥ || 80 || tulyas taila-ghṛta-kṣīra-dadhi-majja-vasāsavaiḥ | mastuluṅga-maṣī-pūya-vesavārāmbu-mākṣikaiḥ || 81 || ati-raktāsita-snigdha-pūty-accha-ghana-vedanaḥ | karburaḥ prasravan dhātūn niṣ-purīṣo 'tha-vāti-viṭ || 82 || tantu-mān makṣikākrānto rājī-māṃś candrakair yutaḥ | śīrṇa-pāyu-valiṃ mukta-nālaṃ parvāsthi-śūlinam || 83 || 5.83dv -tālaṃ parvāsthi-śūlinam 5.83dv -tāḍaṃ parvāsthi-śūlinam srasta-pāyuṃ bala-kṣīṇam annam evopaveśayan | sa-tṛṭ-śvāsa-jvara-cchardi-dāhānāha-pravāhikaḥ || 84 || 5.84bv annam evopaveśayet aśmarī śūna-vṛṣaṇaṃ baddha-mūtraṃ rujārditam | mehas tṛḍ-dāha-piṭikā-māṃsa-kothātisāriṇam || 85 || piṭikā marma-hṛt-pṛṣṭha-stanāṃsa-guda-mūrdha-gāḥ | parva-pāda-kara-sthā vā mandotsāhaṃ pramehiṇam || 86 || 5.86bv -stanāṃsa-guda-mūrdha-jāḥ 5.86cv parva-pāda-kara-sthāś ca sarvaṃ ca māṃsa-saṃkotha-dāha-tṛṣṇā-mada-jvaraiḥ | visarpa-marma-saṃrodha-hidhmā-śvāsa-bhrama-klamaiḥ || 87 || 5.87av sarvaṃ ca māṃsa-saṃkoca- gulmaḥ pṛthu-parīṇāho ghanaḥ kūrma ivonnataḥ | sirā-naddho jvara-cchardi-hidhmādhmāna-rujānvitaḥ || 88 || kāsa-pīnasa-hṛl-lāsa-śvāsātīsāra-śopha-vān | viṇ-mūtra-saṃgraha-śvāsa-śopha-hidhmā-jvara-bhramaiḥ || 89 || mūrchā-chardy-atisāraiś ca jaṭharaṃ hanti dur-balam | śūnākṣaṃ kuṭilopastham upaklinna-tanu-tvacam || 90 || virecana-hṛtānāham ānahyantaṃ punaḥ punaḥ | pāṇḍu-rogaḥ śvayathu-mān pītākṣi-nakha-darśanam || 91 || 5.91av virecana-hatānāham tandrā-dāhā-ruci-cchardi-mūrchādhmānātisāra-vān | anekopadrava-yutaḥ pādābhyāṃ prasṛto naram || 92 || nārīṃ śopho mukhād dhanti kukṣi-guhyād ubhāv api | rājī-citaḥ sravaṃś chardi-jvara-śvāsātisāriṇam || 93 || jvarātīsārau śophānte śvayathur vā tayoḥ kṣaye | dur-balasya viśeṣeṇa jāyante 'ntāya dehinaḥ || 94 || śvayathur yasya pāda-sthaḥ parisraste ca piṇḍike | sīdataḥ sakthinī caiva taṃ bhiṣak parivarjayet || 95 || ānanaṃ hasta-pādaṃ ca viśeṣād yasya śuṣyataḥ | śūyete vā vinā dehāt sa māsād yāti pañca-tām || 96 || 5.96bv viśeṣād yasya śuṣyati visarpaḥ kāsa-vaivarṇya-jvara-mūrchāṅga-bhaṅga-vān | bhramāsya-śopha-hṛl-lāsa-deha-sādātisāra-vān || 97 || 5.97cv bhramāsya-śoṣa-hṛl-lāsa- kuṣṭhaṃ viśīryamāṇāṅgaṃ rakta-netraṃ hata-svaram | mandāgniṃ jantubhir juṣṭaṃ hanti tṛṣṇātisāriṇam || 98 || vāyuḥ supta-tvacaṃ bhugnaṃ kampa-śopha-rujāturam | vātāsraṃ moha-mūrchāya-madā-svapna-jvarānvitam || 99 || 5.99av vāyuḥ supta-tvacaṃ bhagnaṃ śiro-grahā-ruci-śvāsa-saṃkoca-sphoṭa-kotha-vat | śiro-rogā-ruci-śvāsa-moha-viḍ-bheda-tṛḍ-bhramaiḥ || 100 || ghnanti sarvāmayāḥ kṣīṇa-svara-dhātu-balānalam | vāta-vyādhir apasmārī kuṣṭhī rakty udarī kṣayī || 101 || gulmī mehī ca tān kṣīṇān vikāre 'lpe 'pi varjayet | bala-māṃsa-kṣayas tīvro roga-vṛddhir a-rocakaḥ || 102 || yasyāturasya lakṣyante trīn pakṣān na sa jīvati | vātāṣṭhīlāti-saṃvṛddhā tiṣṭhanti dāruṇā hṛdi || 103 || tṛṣṇayānuparītasya sadyo muṣṇāti jīvitam | śaithilyaṃ piṇḍike vāyur nītvā nāsāṃ ca jihma-tām || 104 || 5.104av tṛṣṇayā tu parītasya kṣīṇasyāyamya manye vā sadyo muṣṇāti jīvitam | nābhi-gudāntaraṃ gatvā vaṅkṣaṇau vā samāśrayan || 105 || 5.105av kṣīṇasyāyasya manye vā gṛhītvā pāyu-hṛdaye kṣīṇa-dehasya vā balī | malān vasti-śiro nābhiṃ vibadhya janayan rujam || 106 || kurvan vaṅkṣaṇayoḥ śūlaṃ tṛṣṇāṃ bhinna-purīṣa-tām | śvāsaṃ vā janayan vāyur gṛhītvā guda-vaṅkṣaṇam || 107 || 5.107dv gṛhītvā guda-vaṅkṣaṇau vitatya parśukāgrāṇi gṛhītvoraś ca mārutaḥ | stimitasyātatākṣasya sadyo muṣṇāti jīvitam || 108 || 5.108av vitatya pārśvakāgrāṇi sahasā jvara-saṃtāpas tṛṣṇā mūrchā bala-kṣayaḥ | viśleṣaṇaṃ ca saṃdhīnāṃ mumūrṣor upajāyate || 109 || go-sarge vadanād yasya svedaḥ pracyavate bhṛśam | lepa-jvaropataptasya dur-labhaṃ tasya jīvitam || 110 || pravāla-guṭikābhāsā yasya gātre masūrikāḥ | utpadyāśu vinaśyanti na cirāt sa vinaśyati || 111 || masūra-vidala-prakhyās tathā vidruma-saṃnibhāḥ | antar-vaktrāḥ kiṇābhāś ca visphoṭā deha-nāśanāḥ || 112 || kāmalākṣṇor mukhaṃ pūrṇaṃ śaṅkhayor mukta-māṃsa-tā | saṃtrāsaś coṣṇa-tāṅge ca yasya taṃ parivarjayet || 113 || a-kasmād anudhāvac ca vighṛṣṭaṃ tvak-samāśrayam | yo vāta-jo na śūlāya syān na dāhāya pitta-jaḥ || 114 || candanośīra-madirā-kuṇapa-dhvāṅkṣa-gandhayaḥ | śaivāla-kukkuṭa-śikhā-kuṅkumāla-maṣī-prabhāḥ || 114.1+(1) || 5.114.1+(1)dv -naktamāla-maṣī-prabhāḥ 5.114.1+(1)dv -kunda-śāli-maya-prabhāḥ antar-dāhā nir-ūṣmaṇaḥ prāṇa-nāśa-karā vraṇāḥ || 114.1+(2)ab || kapha-jo na ca pūyāya marma-jaś ca ruje na yaḥ | a-cūrṇaś cūrṇa-kīrṇābho yatrākasmāc ca dṛśyate || 115 || rūpaṃ śakti-dhvajādīnāṃ sarvāṃs tān varjayed vraṇān | viṇ-mūtra-māruta-vahaṃ kṛmiṇaṃ ca bhagandaram || 116 || ghaṭṭayañ jānunā jānu pādāv udyamya pātayan | yo 'pāsyati muhur vaktram āturo na sa jīvati || 117 || dantaiś chindan nakhāgrāṇi taiś ca keśāṃs tṛṇāni ca | bhūmiṃ kāṣṭhena vilikhan loṣṭaṃ loṣṭena tāḍayan || 118 || 5.118bv taiś ca keśāṃs tṛṇāni vā hṛṣṭa-romā sāndra-mūtraḥ śuṣka-kāsī jvarī ca yaḥ | muhur hasan muhuḥ kṣveḍan śayyāṃ pādena hanti yaḥ || 119 || 5.119dv śayyāṃ pādena hanti ca muhuś chidrāṇi vimṛśann āturo na sa jīvati | mṛtyave sahasārtasya tilaka-vyaṅga-viplavaḥ || 120 || mukhe danta-nakhe puṣpaṃ jaṭhare vividhāḥ sirāḥ | ūrdhva-śvāsaṃ gatoṣmāṇaṃ śūlopahata-vaṅkṣaṇam || 121 || śarma cān-adhigacchantaṃ buddhi-mān parivarjayet | vikārā yasya vardhante prakṛtiḥ parihīyate || 122 || 5.122av śarma vān-adhigacchantaṃ sahasā sahasā tasya mṛtyur harati jīvitam | yam uddiśyāturaṃ vaidyaḥ saṃpādayitum auṣadham || 123 || yatamāno na śaknoti dur-labhaṃ tasya jīvitam | vijñātaṃ bahu-śaḥ siddhaṃ vidhi-vac cāvacāritam || 124 || na sidhyaty auṣadhaṃ yasya nāsti tasya cikitsitam | bhaved yasyauṣadhe 'nne vā kalpyamāne viparyayaḥ || 125 || a-kasmād varṇa-gandhādeḥ svastho 'pi na sa jīvati | nivāte sendhanaṃ yasya jyotiś cāpy upaśāmyati || 126 || āturasya gṛhe yasya bhidyante vā patanti vā | ati-mātram amatrāṇi dur-labhaṃ tasya jīvitam || 127 || yaṃ naraṃ sahasā rogo dur-balaṃ parimuñcati | saṃśaya-prāptam ātreyo jīvitaṃ tasya manyate || 128 || 5.128cv saṃśayaṃ prāptam ātreyo kathayen na ca pṛṣṭo 'pi duḥ-śravaṃ maraṇaṃ bhiṣak | gatāsor bandhu-mitrāṇāṃ na cecchet taṃ cikitsitum || 129 || 5.129av kathayen naiva pṛṣṭo 'pi yama-dūta-piśācādyair yat parāsur upāsyate | ghnadbhir auṣadha-vīryāṇi tasmāt taṃ parivarjayet || 130 || āyur-veda-phalaṃ kṛtsnaṃ yad āyur-jñe pratiṣṭhitam | riṣṭa-jñānādṛtas tasmāt sarva-daiva bhaved bhiṣak || 131 || maraṇaṃ prāṇināṃ dṛṣṭam āyuḥ-puṇyobhaya-kṣayāt | tayor apy a-kṣayād dṛṣṭaṃ viṣamā-parihāriṇām || 132 || ”ārīrasthāna pāṣaṇḍāśrama-varṇānāṃ sa-varṇāḥ karma-siddhaye | ta eva viparītāḥ syur dūtāḥ karma-vipattaye || 1 || dīnaṃ bhītaṃ drutaṃ trastaṃ rūkṣā-maṅgala-vādinam | śastriṇaṃ daṇḍinaṃ ṣaṇḍhaṃ muṇḍa-śmaśru-jaṭā-dharam || 2 || 6.2cv śastriṇaṃ daṇḍinaṃ khaṇḍaṃ 6.2dv muṇḍa-śmaśruṃ jaṭā-dharam 6.2dv muṇḍaṃ śmaśru-jaṭā-dharam a-maṅgalāhvayaṃ krūra-karmāṇaṃ malinaṃ striyam | anekaṃ vyādhitaṃ vyaṅgaṃ rakta-mālyānulepanam || 3 || taila-paṅkāṅkitaṃ jīrṇa-vi-varṇārdraika-vāsasam | kharoṣṭra-mahiṣārūḍhaṃ kāṣṭha-loṣṭādi-mardinam || 4 || 6.4dv kāṣṭha-lohādi-mardinam nānugacched bhiṣag dūtam āhvayantaṃ ca dūrataḥ | a-śasta-cintā-vacane nagne chindati bhindati || 5 || juhvāne pāvakaṃ piṇḍān pitṛbhyo nirvapaty api | supte mukta-kace 'bhyakte rudaty a-prayate tathā || 6 || 6.6dv rudaty a-prayate 'tha-vā vaidye dūtā manuṣyāṇām āgacchanti mumūrṣatām | vikāra-sāmānya-guṇe deśe kāle 'tha-vā bhiṣak || 7 || dūtam abhyāgataṃ dṛṣṭvā nāturaṃ tam upācaret | spṛśanto nābhi-nāsāsya-keśa-roma-nakha-dvi-jān || 8 || 6.8cv spṛśanto nābhi-nāsākṣi- guhya-pṛṣṭha-stana-grīvā-jaṭharānāmikāṅgulīḥ | kārpāsa-busa-sīsāsthi-kapāla-musalopalam || 9 || 6.9bv -jaṭharānāmikāṅguli mārjanī-śūrpa-cailānta-bhasmāṅgāra-daśā-tuṣān | rajjūpānat-tulā-pāśam anyad vā bhagna-vicyutam || 10 || 6.10dv anyad vā bhagna-vidyutam tat-pūrva-darśane dūtā vyāharanti mariṣyatām | tathārdha-rātre madhyāhne saṃdhyayoḥ parva-vāsare || 11 || ṣaṣṭhī-caturthī-navamī-rāhu-ketūdayādiṣu | bharaṇī-kṛttikāśleṣā-pūrvārdrā-paitrya-nairṛte || 12 || yasmiṃś ca dūte bruvati vākyam ātura-saṃśrayam | paśyen nimittam a-śubhaṃ taṃ ca nānuvrajed bhiṣak || 13 || tad yathā vikalaḥ pretaḥ pretālaṅkāra eva vā | chinnaṃ dagdhaṃ vinaṣṭaṃ vā tad-vādīni vacāṃsi vā || 14 || 6.14bv pretālaṅkāra eva ca raso vā kaṭukas tīvro gandho vā kauṇapo mahān | sparśo vā vipulaḥ krūro yad vānyad api tādṛśam || 15 || 6.15cv sparśo vā vipula-krūro tat sarvam abhito vākyaṃ vākya-kāle 'tha-vā punaḥ | dūtam abhyāgataṃ dṛṣṭvā nāturaṃ tam upācaret || 16 || hāhā-kranditam utkruṣṭam ākruṣṭaṃ skhalanaṃ kṣutam | vastrātapa-tra-pāda-tra-vyasanaṃ vyasanīkṣaṇam || 17 || caitya-dhvajānāṃ pātrāṇāṃ pūrṇānāṃ ca nimajjanam | hatān-iṣṭa-pravādāś ca dūṣaṇaṃ bhasma-pāṃsubhiḥ || 18 || pathaś chedo 'hi-mārjāra-godhā-saraṭa-vānaraiḥ | dīptāṃ prati diśaṃ vācaḥ krūrāṇāṃ mṛga-pakṣiṇām || 19 || kṛṣṇa-dhānya-guḍodaśvil-lavaṇāsava-carmaṇām | sarṣapāṇāṃ vasā-taila-tṛṇa-paṅkendhanasya ca || 20 || klība-krūra-śva-pākānāṃ jāla-vāgurayor api | charditasya purīṣasya pūti-dur-darśanasya ca || 21 || niḥ-sārasya vyavāyasya kārpāsāder arer api | śayanāsana-yānānām uttānānāṃ tu darśanam || 22 || 6.22dv uttānānāṃ ca darśanam nyubjānām itareṣāṃ ca pātrādīnām a-śobhanam | puṃ-saṃjñāḥ pakṣiṇo vāmāḥ strī-saṃjñā dakṣiṇāḥ śubhāḥ || 23 || pradakṣiṇaṃ khaga-mṛgā yānto naivaṃ śva-jambukāḥ | a-yugmāś ca mṛgāḥ śastāḥ śastā nityaṃ ca darśane || 24 || cāṣa-bhāsa-bharadvāja-nakula-cchāga-barhiṇaḥ | a-śubhaṃ sarva-tholūka-biḍāla-saraṭekṣaṇam || 25 || praśastāḥ kīrtane kola-godhāhi-śaśa-jāhakāḥ | na darśane na virute vānararkṣāv ato 'nya-thā || 26 || dhanur aindraṃ ca lālāṭam a-śubhaṃ śubham anyataḥ | agni-pūrṇāni pātrāṇi bhinnāni vi-śikhāni ca || 27 || dadhy-a-kṣatādi nirgacchad vakṣyamāṇaṃ ca maṅgalam | vaidyo mariṣyatāṃ veśma praviśann eva paśyati || 28 || dūtādy a-sādhu dṛṣṭvaivaṃ tyajed ārtam ato 'nya-thā | karuṇā-śuddha-saṃtāno yatnatas tam upācaret || 29 || 6.29dv yatnataḥ samupācaret dadhy-a-kṣatekṣu-niṣpāva-priyaṅgu-madhu-sarpiṣām | yāvakāñjana-bhṛṅgāra-ghaṇṭā-dīpa-saro-ruhām || 30 || dūrvārdra-matsya-māṃsānāṃ lājānāṃ phala-bhakṣayoḥ | ratnebha-pūrṇa-kumbhānāṃ kanyāyāḥ syandanasya ca || 31 || narasya vardhamānasya devatānāṃ nṛpasya ca | śuklānāṃ su-mano-vāla-cāmarāmbara-vājinām || 32 || śaṅkha-sādhu-dvi-joṣṇīṣa-toraṇa-svastikasya ca | bhūmeḥ samuddhatāyāś ca vahneḥ prajvalitasya ca || 33 || mano-jñasyānna-pānasya pūrṇasya śakaṭasya ca | nṛbhir dhenvāḥ sa-vatsāyā vaḍabāyāḥ striyā api || 34 || jīvañjīvaka-sāraṅga-sārasa-priyavādinām | haṃsānāṃ śatapattrāṇāṃ baddhasyaika-paśos tathā || 35 || rucakādarśa-siddhārtha-rocanānāṃ ca darśanam | gandhaḥ su-surabhir varṇaḥ su-śuklo madhuro rasaḥ || 36 || go-pater anukūlasya svanas tad-vad gavām api | mṛga-pakṣi-narāṇāṃ ca śobhināṃ śobhanā giraḥ || 37 || 6.37av go-pater anulomasya chattra-dhvaja-patākānām utkṣepaṇam abhiṣṭutiḥ | bherī-mṛdaṅga-śaṅkhānāṃ śabdāḥ puṇyāha-niḥsvanāḥ || 38 || vedādhyayana-śabdāś ca sukho vāyuḥ pradakṣiṇaḥ | pathi veśma-praveśe ca vidyād ārogya-lakṣaṇam || 39 || ity uktaṃ dūta-śakunaṃ svapnān ūrdhvaṃ pracakṣate | svapne madyaṃ saha pretair yaḥ piban kṛṣyate śunā || 40 || 6.40bv svapnān ūrdhvaṃ pracakṣyate 6.40bv svapnān ūrdhvaṃ pravakṣyate sa martyo mṛtyunā śīghraṃ jvara-rūpeṇa nīyate | rakta-mālya-vapur-vastro yo hasan hriyate striyā || 41 || 6.41av sa martyo mṛtyunā tūrṇaṃ so 'sra-pittena mahiṣa-śva-varāhoṣṭra-gardabhaiḥ | yaḥ prayāti diśaṃ yāmyāṃ maraṇaṃ tasya yakṣmaṇā || 42 || latā kaṇṭakinī vaṃśas tālo vā hṛdi jāyate | yasya tasyāśu gulmena yasya vahnim an-arciṣam || 43 || juhvato ghṛta-siktasya nagnasyorasi jāyate | padmaṃ sa naśyet kuṣṭhena caṇḍālaiḥ saha yaḥ pibet || 44 || snehaṃ bahu-vidhaṃ svapne sa prameheṇa naśyati | unmādena jale majjed yo nṛtyan rākṣasaiḥ saha || 45 || apasmāreṇa yo martyo nṛtyan pretena nīyate | yānaṃ kharoṣṭra-mārjāra-kapi-śārdūla-śūkaraiḥ || 46 || yasya pretaiḥ śṛgālair vā sa mṛtyor vartate mukhe | apūpa-śaṣkulīr jagdhvā vibuddhas tad-vidhaṃ vaman || 47 || na jīvaty akṣi-rogāya sūryendu-grahaṇekṣaṇam | sūryā-candramasoḥ pāta-darśanaṃ dṛg-vināśanam || 48 || mūrdhni vaṃśa-latādīnāṃ saṃbhavo vayasāṃ tathā | nilayo muṇḍa-tā kāka-gṛdhrādyaiḥ parivāraṇam || 49 || tathā preta-piśāca-strī-draviḍāndhra-gavāśanaiḥ | saṅgo vetra-latā-vaṃśa-tṛṇa-kaṇṭaka-saṃkaṭe || 50 || śvabhra-śmaśāna-śayanaṃ patanaṃ pāṃsu-bhasmanoḥ | majjanaṃ jala-paṅkādau śīghreṇa srotasā hṛtiḥ || 51 || nṛtya-vāditra-gītāni rakta-srag-vastra-dhāraṇam | vayo-'ṅga-vṛddhir abhyaṅgo vivāhaḥ śmaśru-karma ca || 52 || pakvānna-sneha-madyāśaḥ pracchardana-virecane | hiraṇya-lohayor lābhaḥ kalir bandha-parājayau || 53 || 6.53bv pracchardana-virecanam upānad-yuga-nāśaś ca prapātaḥ pāda-carmaṇoḥ | harṣo bhṛśaṃ prakupitaiḥ pitṛbhiś cāvabhartsanam || 54 || pradīpa-graha-nakṣatra-danta-daivata-cakṣuṣām | patanaṃ vā vināśo vā bhedanaṃ parvatasya ca || 55 || 6.55dv bhedanaṃ parvatasya vā kānane rakta-kusume pāpa-karma-niveśane | citāndha-kāra-saṃbādhe jananyāṃ ca praveśanam || 56 || 6.56cc cintāndha-kāra-saṃbādhe pātaḥ prāsāda-śailāder matsyena grasanaṃ tathā | kāṣāyiṇām a-saumyānāṃ nagnānāṃ daṇḍa-dhāriṇām || 57 || raktākṣāṇāṃ ca kṛṣṇānāṃ darśanaṃ jātu neṣyate | kṛṣṇā pāpānanācārā dīrgha-keśa-nakha-stanī || 58 || vi-rāga-mālya-vasanā svapne kāla-niśā matā | mano-vahānāṃ pūrṇa-tvāt srotasāṃ prabalair malaiḥ || 59 || dṛśyante dāruṇāḥ svapnā rogī yair yāti pañca-tām | a-rogaḥ saṃśayaṃ prāpya kaś-cid eva vimucyate || 60 || dṛṣṭaḥ śruto 'nubhūtaś ca prārthitaḥ kalpitas tathā | bhāviko doṣa-jaś ceti svapnaḥ sapta-vidho mataḥ || 61 || 6.61dv svapnaḥ sapta-vidhaḥ smṛtaḥ teṣv ādyā niṣ-phalāḥ pañca yathā-sva-prakṛtir divā | vismṛto dīrgha-hrasvo 'ti pūrva-rātre cirāt phalam || 62 || 6.62bv yathā-svaṃ prakṛtir divā 6.62cv vismṛto dīrgha-hrasvo 'pi 6.62cv vismṛto dīrgha-hrasvo vā dṛṣṭaḥ karoti tucchaṃ ca go-sarge tad-ahar mahat | nidrayā vān-upahataḥ pratīpair vacanais tathā || 63 || 6.63av dṛṣṭaḥ karoti tucchaṃ vā 6.63cv nidrayā cān-upahataḥ yāti pāpo 'lpa-phala-tāṃ dāna-homa-japādibhiḥ | a-kalyāṇam api svapnaṃ dṛṣṭvā tatraiva yaḥ punaḥ || 64 || 6.64av yāti pāpo 'py a-phala-tāṃ paśyet saumyaṃ śubhaṃ tasya śubham eva phalaṃ bhavet | devān dvi-jān go-vṛṣabhān jīvataḥ suhṛdo nṛpān || 65 || sādhūn yaśasvino vahnim iddhaṃ svacchān jalāśayān | kanyāḥ kumārakān gaurān śukla-vastrān su-tejasaḥ || 66 || 6.66cv kanyāṃ kumārakān gaurān narāśanaṃ dīpta-tanuṃ samantād rudhirokṣitam | yaḥ paśyel labhate yo vā chattrādarśa-viṣāmiṣam || 67 || 6.67av narāśanaṃ dīpta-tanuḥ 6.67bv samantād rudhirokṣitaḥ śuklāḥ su-manaso vastram a-medhyālepanaṃ phalam | śaila-prāsāda-sa-phala-vṛkṣa-siṃha-nara-dvi-pān || 68 || ārohed go-'śva-yānaṃ ca taren nada-hradoda-dhīn | pūrvottareṇa gamanam a-gamyāgamanaṃ mṛtam || 69 || 6.69bv taren nada-mahoda-dhīn saṃbādhān niḥsṛtir devaiḥ pitṛbhiś cābhinandanam | rodanaṃ patitotthānaṃ dviṣatāṃ cāvamardanam || 70 || 6.70av saṃkaṭān niḥsṛtir devaiḥ 6.70dv dviṣatāṃ cāpamardanam yasya syād āyur ārogyaṃ vittaṃ bahu ca so 'śnute | maṅgalācāra-saṃpannaḥ parivāras tathāturaḥ || 71 || 6.71bv vittaṃ sa bahu-śo 'śnute śrad-dadhāno 'nukūlaś ca prabhūta-dravya-saṃgrahaḥ | sat-tva-lakṣaṇa-saṃyogo bhaktir vaidya-dvi-jātiṣu || 72 || cikitsāyām a-nirvedas tad ārogyasya lakṣaṇam | ity atra janma-maraṇaṃ yataḥ samyag udāhṛtam || 73 || śarīrasya tataḥ sthānaṃ śārīram idam ucyate || 73ū̆ab || Nidānasthāna rogaḥ pāpmā jvaro vyādhir vikāro duḥkham āmayaḥ | yakṣmātaṅka-gadābādhāḥ śabdāḥ paryāya-vācinaḥ || 1 || nidānaṃ pūrva-rūpāṇi rūpāṇy upaśayas tathā | saṃprāptiś ceti vijñānaṃ rogāṇāṃ pañca-dhā smṛtam || 2 || nimitta-hetv-āyatana-pratyayotthāna-kāraṇaiḥ | nidānam āhuḥ paryāyaiḥ prāg-rūpaṃ yena lakṣyate || 3 || utpitsur āmayo doṣa-viśeṣeṇān-adhiṣṭhitaḥ | liṅgam a-vyaktam alpa-tvād vyādhīnāṃ tad yathā-yatham || 4 || tad eva vyakta-tāṃ yātaṃ rūpam ity abhidhīyate | saṃsthānaṃ vyañjanaṃ liṅgaṃ lakṣaṇaṃ cihnam ākṛtiḥ || 5 || hetu-vyādhi-viparyasta-viparyastārtha-kāriṇām | auṣadhānna-vihārāṇām upayogaṃ sukhāvaham || 6 || vidyād upaśayaṃ vyādheḥ sa hi sātmyam iti smṛtaḥ | viparīto 'n-upaśayo vyādhy-a-sātmyābhisaṃjñitaḥ || 7 || yathā-duṣṭena doṣeṇa yathā cānuvisarpatā | nirvṛttir āmayasyāsau saṃprāptir jātir āgatiḥ || 8 || saṃkhyā-vikalpa-prādhānya-bala-kāla-viśeṣataḥ | sā bhidyate yathātraiva vakṣyante 'ṣṭau jvarā iti || 9 || doṣāṇāṃ samavetānāṃ vikalpo 'ṃśāṃśa-kalpanā | svātantrya-pāratantryābhyāṃ vyādheḥ prādhānyam ādiśet || 10 || hetv-ādi-kārtsnyāvayavair balā-bala-viśeṣaṇam | naktan-dinartu-bhuktāṃśair vyādhi-kālo yathā-malam || 11 || iti prokto nidānārthas taṃ vyāsenopadekṣyati | sarveṣām eva rogāṇāṃ nidānaṃ kupitā malāḥ || 12 || 1.12av iti prokto nidānārthaḥ 1.12bv taṃ vyāsenopadekṣyate 1.12bv taṃ vyāsenopadiśyate 1.12bv sa vyāsenopadekṣyati 1.12bv sa vyāsenopadekṣyate 1.12bv sa vyāsenopadiśyate tat-prakopasya tu proktaṃ vividhā-hita-sevanam | a-hitaṃ tri-vidho yogas trayāṇāṃ prāg udāhṛtaḥ || 13 || 1.13cv a-hitas tri-vidho yogas tiktoṣaṇa-kaṣāyālpa-rūkṣa-pramita-bhojanaiḥ | dhāraṇodīraṇa-niśā-jāgarāty-ucca-bhāṣaṇaiḥ || 14 || kriyāti-yoga-bhī-śoka-cintā-vyāyāma-maithunaiḥ | grīṣmāho-rātri-bhuktānte prakupyati samīraṇaḥ || 15 || pittaṃ kaṭv-amla-tīkṣṇoṣṇa-paṭu-krodha-vidāhibhiḥ | śaran-madhyāhna-rātry-ardha-vidāha-samayeṣu ca || 16 || 1.16dv -nidāgha-samayeṣu ca svādv-amla-lavaṇa-snigdha-gurv-abhiṣyandi-śītalaiḥ | āsyā-svapna-sukhā-jīrṇa-divā-svapnāti-bṛṃhaṇaiḥ || 17 || 1.17cv ati-svapna-sukhā-jīrṇa- pracchardanādya-yogena bhukta-mātra-vasantayoḥ | pūrvāhṇe pūrva-rātre ca śleṣmā dvandvaṃ tu saṃkarāt || 18 || miśrī-bhāvāt samastānāṃ saṃnipātas tathā punaḥ | saṃkīrṇā-jīrṇa-viṣama-viruddhādhyaśanādibhiḥ || 19 || vyāpanna-madya-pānīya-śuṣka-śākāma-mūlakaiḥ | piṇyāka-mṛd-yava-surā-pūti-śuṣka-kṛśāmiṣaiḥ || 20 || doṣa-traya-karais tais tais tathānna-parivartanāt | ṛtor duṣṭāt puro-vātād grahāveśād viṣād garāt || 21 || 1.21bv tathānna-parivartataḥ 1.21bv tathānna-parivṛttitaḥ duṣṭānnāt parvatāśleṣād grahair janmarkṣa-pīḍanāt | mithyā-yogāc ca vividhāt pāpānāṃ ca niṣevaṇāt || 22 || 1.22av duṣṭāmāt parvatāśleṣād strīṇāṃ prasava-vaiṣamyāt tathā mithyopacārataḥ | prati-rogam iti kruddhā rogādhiṣṭhāna-gāminīḥ || 23 || rasāyanīḥ prapadyāśu doṣā dehe vikurvate || 23ū̆ab || Nidānasthāna jvaro roga-patiḥ pāpmā mṛtyur ojo-'śano 'ntakaḥ | krodho dakṣādhvara-dhvaṃsī rudrordhva-nayanodbhavaḥ || 1 || 2.1bv mṛtyus tejo-'śano 'ntakaḥ janmāntayor moha-mayaḥ saṃtāpātmāpacāra-jaḥ | vividhair nāmabhiḥ krūro nānā-yoniṣu vartate || 2 || sa jāyate 'ṣṭa-dhā doṣaiḥ pṛthaṅ miśraiḥ samāgataiḥ | āgantuś ca malās tatra svaiḥ svair duṣṭāḥ pradūṣaṇaiḥ || 3 || āmāśayaṃ praviśyāmam anugamya pidhāya ca | srotāṃsi pakti-sthānāc ca nirasya jvalanaṃ bahiḥ || 4 || saha tenābhisarpantas tapantaḥ sakalaṃ vapuḥ | kurvanto gātram aty-uṣṇaṃ jvaraṃ nirvartayanti te || 5 || 2.5cv kurvanto gātram ā-śuṣkaṃ sroto-vibandhāt prāyeṇa tataḥ svedo na jāyate | tasya prāg-rūpam ālasyam a-ratir gātra-gauravam || 6 || āsya-vairasyam a-ruci-jṛmbhā sāsrākulākṣi-tā | aṅga-mardo '-vipāko 'lpa-prāṇa-tā bahu-nidra-tā || 7 || 2.7bv -jṛmbhā sāsrākulākṣa-tā roma-harṣo vinamanaṃ piṇḍikodveṣṭanaṃ klamaḥ | hitopadeśeṣv a-kṣāntiḥ prītir amla-paṭūṣaṇe || 8 || dveṣaḥ svāduṣu bhakṣyeṣu tathā bāleṣu tṛḍ bhṛśam | śabdāgni-śīta-vātāmbu-cchāyoṣṇeṣv a-nimittataḥ || 9 || icchā dveṣaś ca tad anu jvarasya vyakta-tā bhavet | āgamāpagama-kṣobha-mṛdu-tā-vedanoṣmaṇām || 10 || vaiṣamyaṃ tatra tatrāṅge tās tāḥ syur vedanāś calāḥ | pādayoḥ supta-tā stambhaḥ piṇḍikodveṣṭanaṃ śamaḥ || 11 || 2.11dv piṇḍikodveṣṭanaṃ klamaḥ viśleṣa iva saṃdhīnāṃ sāda ūrvoḥ kaṭī-grahaḥ | pṛṣṭhaṃ kṣodam ivāpnoti niṣpīḍyata ivodaram || 12 || chidyanta iva cāsthīni pārśva-gāni viśeṣataḥ | hṛdayasya grahas todaḥ prājaneneva vakṣasaḥ || 13 || skandhayor mathanaṃ bāhvor bhedaḥ pīḍanam aṃsayoḥ | a-śaktir bhakṣaṇe hanvor jṛmbhaṇaṃ karṇayoḥ svanaḥ || 14 || nistodaḥ śaṅkhayor mūrdhni vedanā vi-rasāsya-tā | kaṣāyāsya-tvam atha-vā malānām a-pravartanam || 15 || rūkṣāruṇa-tvag-āsyākṣi-nakha-mūtra-purīṣa-tā | prasekā-rocakā-śraddhā-vipākā-sveda-jāgarāḥ || 16 || kaṇṭhauṣṭha-śoṣas tṛṭ śuṣkau chardi-kāsau viṣādi-tā | harṣo romāṅga-danteṣu vepathuḥ kṣavathor grahaḥ || 17 || 2.17dv śvayathuḥ kṣavathor grahaḥ bhramaḥ pralāpo gharmecchā vināmaś cānila-jvare | yuga-pad vyāptir aṅgānāṃ pralāpaḥ kaṭu-vaktra-tā || 18 || nāsāsya-pākaḥ śītecchā bhramo mūrchā mado '-ratiḥ | viṭ-sraṃsaḥ pitta-vamanaṃ rakta-ṣṭhīvanam amlakaḥ || 19 || rakta-koṭhodgamaḥ pīta-harita-tvaṃ tvag-ādiṣu | svedo niḥśvāsa-vaigandhyam ati-tṛṣṇā ca pitta-je || 20 || viśeṣād a-rucir jāḍyaṃ sroto-rodho 'lpa-vega-tā | praseko mukha-mādhuryaṃ hṛl-lepa-śvāsa-pīnasāḥ || 21 || hṛl-lāsaś chardanaṃ kāsaḥ stambhaḥ śvaityaṃ tvag-ādiṣu | aṅgeṣu śīta-piṭikās tandrodardaḥ kaphodbhave || 22 || kāle yathā-svaṃ sarveṣāṃ pravṛttir vṛddhir eva vā || 23ab || nidānoktān-upaśayo viparītopaśāyi-tā || 23cd || yathā-svaṃ liṅga-saṃsarge jvaraḥ saṃsarga-jo 'pi ca || 23ef || śiro-'rti-mūrchā-vami-dāha-moha-kaṇṭhāsya-śoṣā-rati-parva-bhedāḥ | unnidra-tā-tṛḍ-bhrama-roma-harṣā jṛmbhāti-vāk-tvaṃ ca calāt sa-pittāt || 24 || tāpa-hāny-a-ruci-parva-śiro-ruk-pīnasa-śvasana-kāsa-vibandhāḥ | śīta-jāḍya-timira-bhrama-tandrāḥ śleṣma-vāta-janita-jvara-liṅgam || 25 || śīta-stambha-sveda-dāhā-vyavasthā tṛṣṇā-kāsa-śleṣma-pitta-pravṛttiḥ | mohas tandrā lipta-tiktāsya-tā ca jñeyaṃ rūpaṃ śleṣma-pitta-jvarasya || 26 || 2.26bv tṛṣṇā kāsaḥ śleṣma-pitta-pravṛttiḥ sarva-jo lakṣaṇaiḥ sarvair dāho 'tra ca muhur muhuḥ | tad-vac chītaṃ mahā-nidrā divā jāgaraṇaṃ niśi || 27 || sadā vā naiva vā nidrā mahā-svedo 'ti naiva vā | gīta-nartana-hāsyādi-vikṛtehā-pravartanam || 28 || 2.28bv mahān svedo 'ti naiva vā sāśruṇī kaluṣe rakte bhugne lulita-pakṣmaṇī | akṣiṇī piṇḍikā-pārśva-mūrdha-parvāsthi-rug-bhramaḥ || 29 || sa-svanau sa-rujau karṇau kaṇṭhaḥ śūkair ivācitaḥ | paridagdhā kharā jihvā guru-srastāṅga-saṃdhi-tā || 30 || 2.30dv guruḥ srastāṅga-saṃdhi-tā rakta-pitta-kapha-ṣṭhīvo lolanaṃ śiraso 'ti-ruk | koṭhānāṃ śyāva-raktānāṃ maṇḍalānāṃ ca darśanam || 31 || 2.31bv lolanaṃ śiraso 'ti-tṛṭ hṛd-vyathā mala-saṃsaṅgaḥ pravṛttir vālpa-śo 'ti vā | snigdhāsya-tā bala-bhraṃśaḥ svara-sādaḥ pralāpi-tā || 32 || 2.32av hṛd-vyathā mala-saṃsargaḥ doṣa-pākaś cirāt tandrā pratataṃ kaṇṭha-kūjanam | saṃnipātam abhinyāsaṃ taṃ brūyāc ca hṛtaujasam || 33 || 2.33dv taṃ brūyāc ca hataujasam vāyunā kapha-ruddhena pittam antaḥ prapīḍitam | vyavāyi-tvāc ca sūkṣma-tvād bahir-mārgaṃ pravartate || 33+1 || tena hāridra-netra-tvaṃ saṃnipātodbhave jvare || 33+2ab || doṣe vibaddhe naṣṭe 'gnau sarva-saṃpūrṇa-lakṣaṇaḥ | a-sādhyaḥ so 'nya-thā kṛcchro bhaved vaikalya-do 'pi vā || 34 || anyac ca saṃnipātottho yatra pittaṃ pṛthak sthitam | tvaci koṣṭhe 'tha-vā dāhaṃ vidadhāti puro 'nu vā || 35 || 2.35av anyaś ca saṃnipātottho tad-vad vāta-kaphau śītaṃ dāhādir dus-taras tayoḥ | śītādau tatra pittena kaphe syandita-śoṣite || 36 || śīte śānte 'mlako mūrchā madas tṛṣṇā ca jāyate | dāhādau punar ante syus tandrā-ṣṭhīva-vami-klamāḥ || 37 || āgantur abhighātābhiṣaṅga-śāpābhicārataḥ | catur-dhātra kṣata-ccheda-dāhādyair abhighāta-jaḥ || 38 || śramāc ca tasmin pavanaḥ prāyo raktaṃ pradūṣayan | sa-vyathā-śopha-vaivarṇyaṃ sa-rujaṃ kurute jvaram || 39 || grahāveśauṣadhi-viṣa-krodha-bhī-śoka-kāma-jaḥ | abhiṣaṅgād graheṇāsminn a-kasmād dhāsa-rodane || 40 || oṣadhi-gandha-je mūrchā śiro-rug vamathuḥ kṣavaḥ | viṣān mūrchātisārāsya-śyāva-tā-dāha-hṛd-gadāḥ || 41 || 2.41bv śiro-ruk śvayathuḥ kṣavaḥ 2.41bv śiro-rug vepathuḥ kṣavaḥ 2.41dv -śyāva-tā-dāha-hṛd-grahāḥ krodhāt kampaḥ śiro-ruk ca pralāpo bhaya-śoka-je | kāmād bhramo '-rucir dāho hrī-nidrā-dhī-dhṛti-kṣayaḥ || 42 || 2.42dv bhī-nidrā-dhī-dhṛti-kṣayaḥ grahādau saṃnipātasya bhayādau marutas traye | kopaḥ kope 'pi pittasya yau tu śāpābhicāra-jau || 43 || 2.43cv kopaḥ kope tu pittasya 2.43cv kopaḥ krodhe tu pittasya saṃnipāta-jvarau ghorau tāv a-sahya-tamau matau | tatrābhicārikair mantrair hūyamānasya tapyate || 44 || 2.44bv tāv a-sādhya-tamau matau pūrvaṃ cetas tato dehas tato visphoṭa-tṛḍ-bhramaiḥ | sa-dāha-mūrchair grastasya praty-ahaṃ vardhate jvaraḥ || 45 || iti jvaro 'ṣṭa-dhā dṛṣṭaḥ samāsād vividhas tu saḥ | śārīro mānasaḥ saumyas tīkṣṇo 'ntar-bahir-āśrayaḥ || 46 || prākṛto vaikṛtaḥ sādhyo '-sādhyaḥ sāmo nir-āmakaḥ | pūrvaṃ śarīre śārīre tāpo manasi mānase || 47 || pavane yoga-vāhi-tvāc chītaṃ śleṣma-yute bhavet | dāhaḥ pitta-yute miśraṃ miśre 'ntaḥ-saṃśraye punaḥ || 48 || jvare 'dhikaṃ vikārāḥ syur antaḥ kṣobho mala-grahaḥ | bahir eva bahir-vege tāpo 'pi ca su-sādhya-tā || 49 || varṣā-śarad-vasanteṣu vātādyaiḥ prākṛtaḥ kramāt | vaikṛto 'nyaḥ sa duḥ-sādhyaḥ prāyaś ca prākṛto 'nilāt || 50 || varṣāsu māruto duṣṭaḥ pitta-śleṣmānvito jvaram | kuryāt pittaṃ ca śaradi tasya cānu-balaṃ kaphaḥ || 51 || 2.51dv tasya cānu-balaḥ kaphaḥ tat-prakṛtyā visargāc ca tatra nān-aśanād bhayam | kapho vasante tam api vāta-pittaṃ bhaved anu || 52 || 2.52av tat-prakṛtyā visargasya bala-vatsv alpa-doṣeṣu jvaraḥ sādhyo 'n-upadravaḥ | sarva-thā vikṛti-jñāne prāg a-sādhya udāhṛtaḥ || 53 || jvaropadrava-tīkṣṇa-tvam a-glānir bahu-mūtra-tā | na pravṛttir na viḍ jīrṇā na kṣut sāma-jvarākṛtiḥ || 54 || jvara-vego 'dhikaṃ tṛṣṇā pralāpaḥ śvasanaṃ bhramaḥ | mala-pravṛttir utkleśaḥ pacyamānasya lakṣaṇam || 55 || 2.55av jvara-vego 'dhikas tṛṣṇā jīrṇa-tāma-viparyāsāt sapta-rātraṃ ca laṅghanāt | jvaraḥ pañca-vidhaḥ prokto mala-kāla-balā-balāt || 56 || prāya-śaḥ saṃnipātena bhūyasā tūpadiśyate | saṃtataḥ satato 'nye-dyus tṛtīyaka-caturthakau || 57 || 2.57av prāyaḥ sa saṃnipātena dhātu-mūtra-śakṛd-vāhi-srotasāṃ vyāpino malāḥ | tāpayantas tanuṃ sarvāṃ tulya-dūṣyādi-vardhitāḥ || 58 || balino guravaḥ stabdhā viśeṣeṇa rasāśritāḥ | saṃtataṃ niṣ-prati-dvandvā jvaraṃ kuryuḥ su-duḥ-saham || 59 || malaṃ jvaroṣmā dhātūn vā sa śīghraṃ kṣapayet tataḥ | sarvākāraṃ rasādīnāṃ śuddhyā-śuddhyāpi vā kramāt || 60 || 2.60av malāñ jvaroṣmā dhātūn vā vāta-pitta-kaphaiḥ sapta daśa dvā-daśa vāsarān | prāyo 'nuyāti maryādāṃ mokṣāya ca vadhāya ca || 61 || 2.61dv vimokṣāya vadhāya vā ity agniveśasya mataṃ hārītasya punaḥ smṛtiḥ | dvi-guṇā saptamī yāvan navamy ekā-daśī tathā || 62 || eṣā tri-doṣa-maryādā mokṣāya ca vadhāya ca | śuddhy-a-śuddhau jvaraḥ kālaṃ dīrgham apy anuvartate || 63 || 2.63cv śuddhy-a-śuddhyor jvaraḥ kālaṃ kṛśānāṃ vyādhi-muktānāṃ mithyāhārādi-sevinām | alpo 'pi doṣo dūṣyāder labdhvānya-tamato balam || 64 || sa-vipakṣo jvaraṃ kuryād viṣamaṃ kṣaya-vṛddhi-bhāk | doṣaḥ pravartate teṣāṃ sve kāle jvarayan balī || 65 || 2.65dv sva-kāle jvarayan balī nivartate punaś caiṣa praty-anīka-balā-balaḥ | kṣīṇe doṣe jvaraḥ sūkṣmo rasādiṣv eva līyate || 66 || līna-tvāt kārśya-vaivarṇya-jāḍyādīn ādadhāti saḥ | āsanna-vivṛtāsya-tvāt srotasāṃ rasa-vāhinām || 67 || āśu sarvasya vapuṣo vyāptir doṣeṇa jāyate | saṃtataḥ satatas tena viparīto viparyayāt || 68 || viṣamo viṣamārambha-kriyā-kālo 'nuṣaṅga-vān | doṣo raktāśrayaḥ prāyaḥ karoti satataṃ jvaram || 69 || aho-rātrasya sa dviḥ syāt sakṛd anye-dyur āśritaḥ | tasmin māṃsa-vahā nāḍīr medo-nāḍīs tṛtīyake || 70 || 2.70cv asmin māṃsa-vahā nāḍīr grāhī pittānilān mūrdhnas trikasya kapha-pittataḥ | sa-pṛṣṭhasyānila-kaphāt sa caikāhāntaraḥ smṛtaḥ || 71 || 2.71dv sa vaikāhāntaraḥ smṛtaḥ caturthako male medo-majjāsthy-anya-tama-sthite | majja-stha evety apare prabhāvaṃ sa tu darśayet || 72 || dvi-dhā kaphena jaṅghābhyāṃ sa pūrvaṃ śiraso 'nilāt | asthi-majjobhaya-gate caturthaka-viparyayaḥ || 73 || 2.73dv cāturthika-viparyayaḥ tri-dhā dvy-ahaṃ jvarayati dinam ekaṃ tu muñcati | balā-balena doṣāṇām anna-ceṣṭādi-janmanā || 74 || 2.74av try-ahād dvy-ahaṃ jvarayati 2.74bv dinam ekaṃ vimuñcati jvaraḥ syān manasas tad-vat karmaṇaś ca tadā tadā | doṣa-dūṣyartv-aho-rātra-prabhṛtīnāṃ balāj jvaraḥ || 75 || manaso viṣayāṇāṃ ca kālaṃ taṃ taṃ prapadyate | dhātūn prakṣobhayan doṣo mokṣa-kāle vilīyate || 76 || tato naraḥ śvasan svidyan kūjan vamati ceṣṭate | vepate pralapaty uṣṇaiḥ śītaiś cāṅgair hata-prabhaḥ || 77 || vi-saṃjño jvara-vegārtaḥ sa-krodha iva vīkṣate | sa-doṣa-śabdaṃ ca śakṛd dravaṃ sṛjati vega-vat || 78 || deho laghur vyapagata-klama-moha-tāpaḥ pāko mukhe karaṇa-sauṣṭhavam a-vyatha-tvam | svedaḥ kṣavaḥ prakṛti-yogi mano 'nna-lipsā kaṇḍūś ca mūrdhni vigata-jvara-lakṣaṇāni || 79 || Nidānasthāna bhṛśoṣṇa-tīkṣṇa-kaṭv-amla-lavaṇādi-vidāhibhiḥ | kodravoddālakaiś cānnais tad-yuktair ati-sevitaiḥ || 1 || kupitaṃ pittalaiḥ pittaṃ dravaṃ raktaṃ ca mūrchite | te mithas tulya-rūpa-tvam āgamya vyāpnutas tanum || 2 || pittaṃ raktasya vikṛteḥ saṃsargād dūṣaṇād api | gandha-varṇānuvṛtteś ca raktena vyapadiśyate || 3 || 3.3av pittaṃ raktasya vikṛtiḥ prabhavaty asṛjaḥ sthānāt plīhato yakṛtaś ca tat | śiro-guru-tvam a-ruciḥ śītecchā dhūmako 'mlakaḥ || 4 || chardiś chardita-baibhatsyaṃ kāsaḥ śvāso bhramaḥ klamaḥ | loha-lohita-matsyāma-gandhāsya-tvaṃ svara-kṣayaḥ || 5 || rakta-hāridra-harita-varṇa-tā nayanādiṣu | nīla-lohita-pītānāṃ varṇānām a-vivecanam || 6 || svapne tad-varṇa-darśi-tvaṃ bhavaty asmin bhaviṣyati | ūrdhvaṃ nāsākṣi-karṇāsyair meḍhra-yoni-gudair adhaḥ || 7 || kupitaṃ roma-kūpaiś ca samastais tat pravartate | ūrdhvaṃ sādhyaṃ kaphād yasmāt tad virecana-sādhanam || 8 || bahv-auṣadhaṃ ca pittasya vireko hi varauṣadham | anubandhī kapho yaś ca tatra tasyāpi śuddhi-kṛt || 9 || kaṣāyāḥ svādavo 'py asya viśuddha-śleṣmaṇo hitāḥ | kim u tiktāḥ kaṣāyā vā ye nisargāt kaphāpahāḥ || 10 || adho yāpyaṃ calād yasmāt tat pracchardana-sādhanam | alpauṣadhaṃ ca pittasya vamanaṃ na varauṣadham || 11 || anubandhī calo yaś ca śāntaye 'pi na tasya tat | kaṣāyāś ca hitās tasya madhurā eva kevalam || 12 || kapha-māruta-saṃsṛṣṭam a-sādhyam ubhayāyanam | a-śakya-prātilomya-tvād a-bhāvād auṣadhasya ca || 13 || na hi saṃśodhanaṃ kiñ-cid asty asya pratiloma-gam | śodhanaṃ pratilomaṃ ca rakta-pitte bhiṣag-jitam || 14 || 3.14bv asty asya pratilomanam 3.14bv asty asya pratilomakam evam evopaśamanaṃ sarva-śo nāsya vidyate | saṃsṛṣṭeṣu hi doṣeṣu sarva-jic chamanaṃ hitam || 15 || tatra doṣānugamanaṃ sirāsra iva lakṣayet | upadravāṃś ca vikṛti-jñānatas teṣu cādhikam || 16 || āśu-kārī yataḥ kāsas tam evātaḥ pravakṣyati | pañca kāsāḥ smṛtā vāta-pitta-śleṣma-kṣata-kṣayaiḥ || 17 || 3.17bv tam evātaḥ pracakṣyate 3.17bv tam evātaḥ pracakṣate kṣayāyopekṣitāḥ sarve balinaś cottarottaram | teṣāṃ bhaviṣyatāṃ rūpaṃ kaṇṭhe kaṇḍūr a-rocakaḥ || 18 || 3.18bv balinaś ca yathottaram śūka-pūrṇābha-kaṇṭha-tvaṃ tatrādho vihato 'nilaḥ | ūrdhvaṃ pravṛttaḥ prāpyoras tasmin kaṇṭhe ca saṃsajan || 19 || śiraḥ-srotāṃsi saṃpūrya tato 'ṅgāny utkṣipann iva | kṣipann ivākṣiṇī pṛṣṭham uraḥ pārśve ca pīḍayan || 20 || pravartate sa vaktreṇa bhinna-kāṃsyopama-dhvaniḥ | hetu-bhedāt pratīghāta-bhedo vāyoḥ sa-raṃhasaḥ || 21 || yad rujā-śabda-vaiṣamyaṃ kāsānāṃ jāyate tataḥ | kupito vātalair vātaḥ śuṣkoraḥ-kaṇṭha-vaktra-tām || 22 || 3.22cv kupito vātalair vāyuḥ hṛt-pārśvoraḥ-śiraḥ-śūlaṃ moha-kṣobha-svara-kṣayān | karoti śuṣkaṃ kāsaṃ ca mahā-vega-rujā-svanam || 23 || 3.23cv karoti śuṣka-kāsaṃ ca so 'ṅga-harṣī kaphaṃ śuṣkaṃ kṛcchrān muktvālpa-tāṃ vrajet | pittāt pītākṣi-kapha-tā tiktāsya-tvaṃ jvaro bhramaḥ || 24 || pittāsṛg-vamanaṃ tṛṣṇā vaisvaryaṃ dhūmako 'mlakaḥ | pratataṃ kāsa-vegena jyotiṣām iva darśanam || 25 || 3.25bv vaisvaryaṃ dhūmako madaḥ kaphād uro 'lpa-ruṅ mūrdha-hṛdayaṃ stimitaṃ guru | kaṇṭhopalepaḥ sadanaṃ pīnasa-cchardy-a-rocakāḥ || 26 || 3.26cv kaṇṭhāsya-lepaḥ sadanaṃ roma-harṣo ghana-snigdha-śveta-śleṣma-pravartanam | yuddhādyaiḥ sāhasais tais taiḥ sevitair a-yathā-balam || 27 || urasy antaḥ-kṣate vāyuḥ pittenānugato balī | kupitaḥ kurute kāsaṃ kaphaṃ tena sa-śoṇitam || 28 || pītaṃ śyāvaṃ ca śuṣkaṃ ca grathitaṃ kuthitaṃ bahu | ṣṭhīvet kaṇṭhena rujatā vibhinneneva corasā || 29 || 3.29av pītaṃ śyāmaṃ ca śuṣkaṃ ca sūcībhir iva tīkṣṇābhis tudyamānena śūlinā | parva-bheda-jvara-śvāsa-tṛṣṇā-vaisvarya-kampa-vān || 30 || pārāvata ivākūjan pārśva-śūlī tato 'sya ca | kramād vīryaṃ ruciḥ paktā balaṃ varṇaś ca hīyate || 31 || kṣīṇasya sāsṛṅ-mūtra-tvaṃ syāc ca pṛṣṭha-kaṭī-grahaḥ | vāyu-pradhānāḥ kupitā dhātavo rāja-yakṣmiṇaḥ || 32 || kurvanti yakṣmāyatanaiḥ kāsaṃ ṣṭhīvet kaphaṃ tataḥ | pūti-pūyopamaṃ pītaṃ visraṃ harita-lohitam || 33 || lucyete iva pārśve ca hṛdayaṃ patatīva ca | a-kasmād uṣṇa-śītecchā bahv-āśi-tvaṃ bala-kṣayaḥ || 34 || 3.34av lupyete iva pārśve ca snigdha-prasanna-vaktra-tvaṃ śrī-mad-darśana-netra-tā | tato 'sya kṣaya-rūpāṇi sarvāṇy āvir-bhavanti ca || 35 || 3.35bv śrī-mad-daśana-netra-tā ity eṣa kṣaya-jaḥ kāsaḥ kṣīṇānāṃ deha-nāśanaḥ | yāpyo vā balināṃ tad-vat kṣata-jo 'bhinavau tu tau || 36 || sidhyetām api sānāthyāt sādhyā doṣaiḥ pṛthak trayaḥ | miśrā yāpyā dvayāt sarve jarasā sthavirasya ca || 37 || 3.37av sidhyetām api sāmarthyāt kāsāc chvāsa-kṣaya-cchardi-svara-sādādayo gadāḥ | bhavanty upekṣayā yasmāt tasmāt taṃ tvarayā jayet || 38 || Nidānasthāna kāsa-vṛddhyā bhavec chvāsaḥ pūrvair vā doṣa-kopanaiḥ | āmātīsāra-vamathu-viṣa-pāṇḍu-jvarair api || 1 || rajo-dhūmānilair marma-ghātād ati-himāmbunā | kṣudrakas tamakaś chinno mahān ūrdhvaś ca pañcamaḥ || 2 || kaphoparuddha-gamanaḥ pavano viṣvag-āsthitaḥ | prāṇodakānna-vāhīni duṣṭaḥ srotāṃsi dūṣayan || 3 || uraḥ-sthaḥ kurute śvāsam āmāśaya-samudbhavam | prāg-rūpaṃ tasya hṛt-pārśva-śūlaṃ prāṇa-viloma-tā || 4 || ānāhaḥ śaṅkha-bhedaś ca tatrāyāsāti-bhojanaiḥ | preritaḥ prerayet kṣudraṃ svayaṃ saṃśamanaṃ marut || 5 || pratilomaṃ sirā gacchann udīrya pavanaḥ kapham | parigṛhya śiro-grīvam uraḥ pārśve ca pīḍayan || 6 || kāsaṃ ghurghurakaṃ moham a-rucim pīnasaṃ tṛṣam | karoti tīvra-vegaṃ ca śvāsaṃ prāṇopatāpinam || 7 || pratāmyet tasya vegena niṣṭhyūtānte kṣaṇaṃ sukhī | kṛcchrāc chayānaḥ śvasiti niṣaṇṇaḥ svāsthyam ṛcchati || 8 || ucchritākṣo lalāṭena svidyatā bhṛśam arti-mān | viśuṣkāsyo muhuḥ-śvāsī kāṅkṣaty uṣṇaṃ sa-vepathuḥ || 9 || meghāmbu-śīta-prāg-vātaiḥ śleṣmalaiś ca vivardhate | sa yāpyas tamako sādhyo navo vā balino bhavet || 10 || jvara-mūrchā-yutaḥ śītaiḥ śāmyet pratamakas tu saḥ | chinnāc chvasiti vicchinnaṃ marma-ccheda-rujārditaḥ || 11 || sa-sveda-mūrchaḥ sānāho vasti-dāha-nirodha-vān | adho-dṛg viplutākṣaś ca muhyan raktaika-locanaḥ || 12 || śuṣkāsyaḥ pralapan dīno naṣṭa-cchāyo vi-cetanaḥ | mahatā mahatā dīno nādena śvasiti krathan || 13 || 4.13cv mahato mahatā dīno uddhūyamānaḥ saṃrabdho mattarṣabha ivā-niśam | praṇaṣṭa-jñāna-vijñāno vibhrānta-nayanānanaḥ || 14 || vakṣaḥ samākṣipan baddha-mūtra-varcā viśīrṇa-vāk | śuṣka-kaṇṭho muhur muhyan karṇa-śaṅkha-śiro-'ti-ruk || 15 || dīrgham ūrdhvaṃ śvasity ūrdhvān na ca pratyāharaty adhaḥ | śleṣmāvṛta-mukha-srotāḥ kruddha-gandha-vahārditaḥ || 16 || ūrdhva-dṛg vīkṣate bhrāntam akṣiṇī paritaḥ kṣipan | marmasu cchidyamāneṣu paridevī niruddha-vāk || 17 || ete sidhyeyur a-vyaktā vyaktāḥ prāṇa-harā dhruvam | śvāsaika-hetu-prāg-rūpa-saṃkhyā-prakṛti-saṃśrayāḥ || 18 || 4.18dv -saṃkhyā-prakṛti-saṃśrayā hidhmā bhaktodbhavā kṣudrā yamalā mahatīti ca | gambhīrā ca marut tatra tvarayā-yukti-sevitaiḥ || 19 || rūkṣa-tīkṣṇa-kharā-sātmyair anna-pānaiḥ prapīḍitaḥ | karoti hidhmām a-rujāṃ manda-śabdāṃ kṣavānugām || 20 || śamaṃ sātmyānna-pānena yā prayāti ca sānna-jā | āyāsāt pavanaḥ kṣudraḥ kṣudrāṃ hidhmāṃ pravartayet || 21 || 4.21cv āyāsāt pavanaḥ kruddhaḥ jatru-mūla-pravisṛtām alpa-vegāṃ mṛduṃ ca sā | vṛddhim āyāsyato yāti bhukta-mātre ca mārdavam || 22 || cireṇa yamalair vegair āhāre yā pravartate | pariṇāmon-mukhe vṛddhiṃ pariṇāme ca gacchati || 23 || kampayantī śiro-grīvam ādhmātasyāti-tṛṣyataḥ | pralāpa-cchardy-atīsāra-netra-vipluti-jṛmbhiṇaḥ || 24 || 4.24av kampayantī śiro-grīvām yamalā veginī hidhmā pariṇāma-vatī ca sā | stabdha-bhrū-śaṅkha-yugmasya sāsra-vipluta-cakṣuṣaḥ || 25 || 4.25cv dhvasta-bhrū-śaṅkha-yugmasya 4.25dv sāśru-vipluta-cakṣuṣaḥ stambhayantī tanuṃ vācaṃ smṛtiṃ saṃjñāṃ ca muṣṇatī | rundhatī mārgam annasya kurvatī marma-ghaṭṭanam || 26 || pṛṣṭhato namanaṃ śoṣaṃ mahā-hidhmā pravartate | mahā-mūlā mahā-śabdā mahā-vegā mahā-balā || 27 || pakvāśayād vā nābher vā pūrva-vad yā pravartate | tad-rūpā sā muhuḥ kuryāj jṛmbhām aṅga-prasāraṇam || 28 || gambhīreṇānunādena gambhīrā tāsu sādhayet | ādye dve varjayed antye sarva-liṅgāṃ ca veginīm || 29 || sarvāś ca saṃcitāmasya sthavirasya vyavāyinaḥ | vyādhibhiḥ kṣīṇa-dehasya bhakta-ccheda-kṣatasya vā || 30 || sarve 'pi rogā nāśāya na tv evaṃ śīghra-kāriṇaḥ | hidhmā-śvāsau yathā tau hi mṛtyu-kāle kṛtālayau || 31 || Nidānasthāna aneka-rogānugato bahu-roga-puro-gamaḥ | rāja-yakṣmā kṣayaḥ śoṣo roga-rāḍ iti ca smṛtaḥ || 1 || nakṣatrāṇāṃ dvi-jānāṃ ca rājño 'bhūd yad ayaṃ purā | yac ca rājā ca yakṣmā ca rāja-yakṣmā tato mataḥ || 2 || dehauṣadha-kṣaya-kṛteḥ kṣayas tat-saṃbhavāc ca saḥ | rasādi-śoṣaṇāc choṣo roga-rāṭ teṣu rājanāt || 3 || 5.3dv roga-rāṭ roga-rājanāt sāhasaṃ vega-saṃrodhaḥ śukraujaḥ-sneha-saṃkṣayaḥ | anna-pāna-vidhi-tyāgaś catvāras tasya hetavaḥ || 4 || tair udīrṇo 'nilaḥ pittaṃ kaphaṃ codīrya sarvataḥ | śarīra-saṃdhīn āviśya tān sirāś ca prapīḍayan || 5 || mukhāni srotasāṃ ruddhvā tathaivātivivṛtya vā | sarpann ūrdhvam adhas tiryag yathā-svaṃ janayed gadān || 6 || rūpaṃ bhaviṣyatas tasya pratiśyāyo bhṛśaṃ kṣavaḥ | praseko mukha-mādhuryaṃ sadanaṃ vahni-dehayoḥ || 7 || sthāly-amatrānna-pānādau śucāv apy a-śucīkṣaṇam | makṣikā-tṛṇa-keśādi-pātaḥ prāyo 'nna-pānayoḥ || 8 || hṛl-lāsaś chardir a-rucir aśnato 'pi bala-kṣayaḥ | pāṇyor avekṣā pādāsya-śopho 'kṣṇor ati-śukla-tā || 9 || bāhvoḥ pramāṇa-jijñāsā kāye baibhatsya-darśanam | strī-madya-māṃsa-priya-tā ghṛṇi-tvaṃ mūrdha-guṇṭhanam || 10 || nakha-keśāti-vṛddhiś ca svapne cābhibhavo bhavet | pataṅga-kṛkalāsāhi-kapi-śvāpada-pakṣibhiḥ || 11 || 5.11dv -kapi-śvāpada-pattribhiḥ keśāsthi-tuṣa-bhasmādi-rāśau samadhirohaṇam | śūnyānāṃ grāma-deśānāṃ darśanaṃ śuṣyato 'mbhaso || 12 || jyotir girīṇāṃ patatāṃ jvalatāṃ ca mahī-ruhām | pīnasa-śvāsa-kāsāṃsa-mūrdha-svara-rujo '-ruciḥ || 13 || ūrdhvaṃ viḍ-bhraṃśa-saṃśoṣāv adhaś chardiś ca koṣṭha-ge | tiryak-sthe pārśva-rug-doṣe saṃdhi-ge bhavati jvaraḥ || 14 || 5.14av ūrdhvaṃ viṭ-sraṃsa-saṃśoṣāv 5.14bv adhaś chardis tu koṣṭha-ge rūpāṇy ekā-daśaitāni jāyante rāja-yakṣmiṇaḥ | teṣām upadravān vidyāt kaṇṭhoddhvaṃsam uro-rujam || 15 || jṛmbhāṅga-marda-niṣṭhīva-vahni-sādāsya-pūti-tāḥ | tatra vātāc chiraḥ-pārśva-śūlam aṃsāṅga-mardanam || 16 || kaṇṭhoddhvaṃsaḥ svara-bhraṃśaḥ pittāt pādāṃsa-pāṇiṣu | dāho 'tīsāro 'sṛk-chardir mukha-gandho jvaro madaḥ || 17 || kaphād a-rocakaś chardiḥ kāso mūrdhāṅga-gauravam | prasekaḥ pīnasaḥ śvāsaḥ svara-sādo 'lpa-vahni-tā || 18 || 5.18dv svara-bhedo 'lpa-vahni-tā doṣair mandānala-tvena sopalepaiḥ kapholbaṇaiḥ | sroto-mukheṣu ruddheṣu dhātūṣmasv alpakeṣu ca || 19 || vidahyamānaḥ sva-sthāne rasas tāṃs tān upadravān | kuryād a-gacchan māṃsādīn asṛk cordhvaṃ pradhāvati || 20 || pacyate koṣṭha evānnam anna-paktraiva cāsya yat | prāyo 'smān mala-tāṃ yātaṃ naivālaṃ dhātu-puṣṭaye || 21 || raso 'py asya na raktāya māṃsāya kuta eva tu | upastabdhaḥ sa śakṛtā kevalaṃ vartate kṣayī || 22 || 5.22cv upaṣṭabdhaḥ sa śakṛtā liṅgeṣv alpeṣv api kṣīṇaṃ vyādhy-auṣadha-balā-kṣamam | varjayet sādhayed eva sarveṣv api tato 'nya-thā || 23 || 5.23cv varjayet sādhayed evaṃ kṣīṇa-māṃsa-balaṃ jahyāt pūrva-liṅgair upadrutam | pratyākhyāya naraṃ cāśu dravya-vantam upācaret || 23+1 || doṣair vyastaiḥ samastaiś ca kṣayāt ṣaṣṭhaś ca medasā | svara-bhedo bhavet tatra kṣāmo rūkṣaś calaḥ svaraḥ || 24 || 5.24bv kṣayāt ṣaṣṭhaś ca medasaḥ śūka-pūrṇābha-kaṇṭha-tvaṃ snigdhoṣṇopaśayo 'nilāt | pittāt tālu-gale dāhaḥ śoṣa uktāvasūyanam || 25 || limpann iva kaphāt kaṇṭhaṃ mandaḥ khurakhurāyate | svaro vibaddhaḥ sarvais tu sarva-liṅgaḥ kṣayāt kaṣet || 26 || dhūmāyatīva cāty-arthaṃ medasā śleṣma-lakṣaṇaḥ | kṛcchra-lakṣyākṣaraś cātra sarvair antyaṃ ca varjayet || 27 || a-rocako bhaved doṣair jihvā-hṛdaya-saṃśrayaiḥ | saṃnipātena manasaḥ saṃtāpena ca pañcamaḥ || 28 || 5.28bv jihvā-hṛdaya-saṃśritaiḥ kaṣāya-tikta-madhuraṃ vātādiṣu mukhaṃ kramāt | sarvotthe vi-rasaṃ śoka-krodhādiṣu yathā-malam || 29 || chardir doṣaiḥ pṛthak sarvair dviṣṭair arthaiś ca pañcamī | udāno vikṛto doṣān sarvāsv apy ūrdhvam asyati || 30 || tāsūtkleśāsya-lāvaṇya-prasekā-rucayo 'gra-gāḥ | nābhi-pṛṣṭhaṃ rujan vāyuḥ pārśve cāhāram utkṣipet || 31 || tato vicchinnam alpālpaṃ kaṣāyaṃ phenilaṃ vamet | śabdodgāra-yutaṃ kṛṣṇam acchaṃ kṛcchreṇa vega-vat || 32 || kāsāsya-śoṣa-hṛn-mūrdha-svara-pīḍā-klamānvitaḥ | pittāt kṣārodaka-nibhaṃ dhūmraṃ harita-pītakam || 33 || sāsṛg amlaṃ kaṭūṣṇaṃ ca tṛṇ-mūrchā-tāpa-dāha-vat | kaphāt snigdhaṃ ghanaṃ śītaṃ śleṣma-tantu-gavākṣitam || 34 || 5.34bv tṛṇ-mūrchā-tāpa-dāha-vān madhuraṃ lavaṇaṃ bhūri prasaktaṃ roma-harṣaṇam | mukha-śvayathu-mādhurya-tandrā-hṛl-lāsa-kāsa-vān || 35 || sarva-liṅgā malaiḥ sarvai riṣṭoktā yā ca tāṃ tyajet | pūty-a-medhyā-śuci-dviṣṭa-darśana-śravaṇādibhiḥ || 36 || tapte citte hṛdi kliṣṭe chardir dviṣṭārtha-yoga-jā | vātādīn eva vimṛśet kṛmi-tṛṇāma-daurhṛde || 37 || śūla-vepathu-hṛl-lāsair viśeṣāt kṛmi-jāṃ vadet | kṛmi-hṛd-roga-liṅgaiś ca smṛtāḥ pañca tu hṛd-gadāḥ || 38 || teṣāṃ gulma-nidānoktaiḥ samutthānaiś ca saṃbhavaḥ | vātena śūlyate 'ty-arthaṃ tudyate sphuṭatīva ca || 39 || 5.39bv samutthānaiḥ samudbhavaḥ bhidyate śuṣyati stabdhaṃ hṛdayaṃ śūnya-tā dravaḥ | a-kasmād dīna-tā śoko bhayaṃ śabdā-sahiṣṇu-tā || 40 || 5.40bv hṛdayaṃ śūnya-tā-dravam vepathur veṣṭanaṃ mohaḥ śvāsa-rodho 'lpa-nidra-tā | pittāt tṛṣṇā bhramo mūrchā dāhaḥ svedo 'mlakaḥ klamaḥ || 41 || chardanaṃ cāmla-pittasya dhūmakaḥ pīta-tā jvaraḥ | śleṣmaṇā hṛdayaṃ stabdhaṃ bhārikaṃ sāśma-garbha-vat || 42 || 5.42bv tamakaḥ pīta-tā jvaraḥ kāsāgni-sāda-niṣṭhīva-nidrālasyā-ruci-jvarāḥ | sarva-liṅgas tribhir doṣaiḥ kṛmibhiḥ śyāva-netra-tā || 43 || 5.43cv sarva-liṅgaṃ tribhir doṣaiḥ tamaḥ-praveśo hṛl-lāsaḥ śoṣaḥ kaṇḍūḥ kapha-srutiḥ | hṛdayaṃ pratataṃ cātra krakaceneva dāryate || 44 || cikitsed āmayaṃ ghoraṃ taṃ śīghraṃ śīghra-kāriṇam | vātāt pittāt kaphāt tṛṣṇā saṃnipātād rasa-kṣayāt || 45 || ṣaṣṭhī syād upasargāc ca vāta-pitte tu kāraṇam | sarvāsu tat-prakopo hi saumya-dhātu-praśoṣaṇāt || 46 || sarva-deha-bhramotkampa-tāpa-tṛḍ-dāha-moha-kṛt | jihvā-mūla-gala-kloma-tālu-toya-vahāḥ sirāḥ || 47 || saṃśoṣya tṛṣṇā jāyante tāsāṃ sāmānya-lakṣaṇam | mukha-śoṣo jalā-tṛptir anna-dveṣaḥ svara-kṣayaḥ || 48 || kaṇṭhauṣṭha-jihvā-kārkaśyaṃ jihvā-niṣkramaṇaṃ klamaḥ | pralāpaś citta-vibhraṃśas tṛḍ-grahoktās tathāmayāḥ || 49 || mārutāt kṣāma-tā dainyaṃ śaṅkha-todaḥ śiro-bhramaḥ | gandhā-jñānāsya-vairasya-śruti-nidrā-bala-kṣayāḥ || 50 || 5.50cv gandhā-jñānāsya-vairasyaṃ 5.50dv -śruti-nidrā-bala-kṣayaḥ 5.50dv śruti-nidrā-bala-kṣayaḥ śītāmbu-pānād vṛddhiś ca pittān mūrchāsya-tikta-tā | raktekṣaṇa-tvaṃ pratataṃ śoṣo dāho 'ti-dhūmakaḥ || 51 || kapho ruṇaddhi kupitas toya-vāhiṣu mārutam | srotaḥsu sa kaphas tena paṅka-vac choṣyate tataḥ || 52 || śūkair ivācitaḥ kaṇṭho nidrā madhura-vaktra-tā | ādhmānaṃ śiraso jāḍyaṃ staimitya-cchardy-a-rocakāḥ || 53 || ālasyam a-vipākaś ca sarvaiḥ syāt sarva-lakṣaṇā | āmodbhavā ca bhaktasya saṃrodhād vāta-pitta-jā || 54 || uṣṇa-klāntasya sahasā śītāmbho bhajatas tṛṣam | ūṣmā ruddho gataḥ koṣṭhaṃ yāṃ kuryāt pitta-jaiva sā || 55 || yā ca pānāti-pānotthā tīkṣṇāgneḥ sneha-jā ca yā | snigdha-gurv-amla-lavaṇa-bhojanena kaphodbhavā || 56 || 5.56bv tīkṣṇāgni-sneha-jā ca yā tṛṣṇā rasa-kṣayoktena lakṣaṇena kṣayātmikā | śoṣa-meha-jvarādy-anya-dīrgha-rogopasargataḥ || 57 || 5.57cv śoṣa-moha-jvarādy-anya- yā tṛṣṇā jāyate tīvrā sopasargātmikā smṛtā || 57ū̆ab || Nidānasthāna tīkṣṇoṣṇa-rūkṣa-sūkṣmāmlaṃ vyavāyy āśu-karaṃ laghu | vikāṣi viśadaṃ madyam ojaso 'smād viparyayaḥ || 1 || 6.1av tīkṣṇoṣṇa-rūkṣa-sūkṣmāmla- 6.1bv -vyavāyy āśu-karaṃ laghu 6.1cv vikāśi viśadaṃ madyam tīkṣṇādayo viṣe 'py uktāś cittopaplāvino guṇāḥ | jīvitāntāya jāyante viṣe tūtkarṣa-vṛttitaḥ || 2 || tīkṣṇādibhir guṇair madyaṃ mandādīn ojaso guṇān | daśabhir daśa saṃkṣobhya ceto nayati vi-kriyām || 3 || ādye made dvitīye tu pramādāyatane sthitaḥ | dur-vikalpa-hato mūḍhaḥ sukham ity adhimucyate || 4 || 6.4av ādye made dvitīye ca 6.4av ādye made dvitīye sa 6.4dv sukham ity abhimucyate 6.4dv sukham ity abhimanyate 6.4dv sukham ity avamanyate madhyamottamayoḥ saṃdhiṃ prāpya rājasa-tāmasaḥ | nir-aṅkuśa iva vyālo na kiñ-cin nācarej jaḍaḥ || 5 || 6.5dv na kiṃ kiṃ vācarej jaḍaḥ iyaṃ bhūmir a-vadyānāṃ dauḥśīlyasyedam āspadam | eko 'yaṃ bahu-mārgāya dur-gater deśikaḥ param || 6 || 6.6av iyaṃ bhūmir a-vidyānāṃ niś-ceṣṭaḥ śava-vac chete tṛtīye tu made sthitaḥ | maraṇād api pāpātmā gataḥ pāpa-tarāṃ daśām || 7 || dharmā-dharmaṃ sukhaṃ duḥkham arthān-arthaṃ hitā-hitam | yad āsakto na jānāti kathaṃ tac chīlayed budhaḥ || 8 || madye moho bhayaṃ śokaḥ krodho mṛtyuś ca saṃśritāḥ | sonmāda-mada-mūrchāyāḥ sāpasmārāpatānakāḥ || 9 || yatraikaḥ smṛti-vibhraṃśas tatra sarvam a-sādhu yat | a-yukti-yuktam annaṃ hi vyādhaye maraṇāya vā || 10 || madyaṃ tri-varga-dhī-dhairya-lajjāder api nāśanam | nātimādyanti balinaḥ kṛtāhārā mahāśanāḥ || 11 || snigdhāḥ sat-tva-vayo-yuktā madya-nityās tad-anvayāḥ | medaḥ-kaphādhikā manda-vāta-pittā dṛḍhāgnayaḥ || 12 || viparyaye 'timādyanti viśrabdhāḥ kupitāś ca ye | madyena cāmla-rūkṣeṇa sā-jīrṇe bahunāti ca || 13 || 6.13dv sā-jīrṇe bahunāpi ca vātāt pittāt kaphāt sarvaiś catvāraḥ syur madātyayāḥ | sarve 'pi sarvair jāyante vyapadeśas tu bhūyasā || 14 || sāmānyaṃ lakṣaṇaṃ teṣāṃ pramoho hṛdaya-vyathā | viḍ-bhedaḥ pratataṃ tṛṣṇā saumyāgneyo jvaro '-ruciḥ || 15 || 6.15bv pramoho hṛdaye vyathā śiraḥ-pārśvāsthi-ruk-kampo marma-bhedas trika-grahaḥ | uro-vibandhas timiraṃ kāsaḥ śvāsaḥ prajāgaraḥ || 16 || 6.16av śiraḥ-pārśvāsthi-ruk-stambho svedo 'ti-mātraṃ viṣṭambhaḥ śvayathuś citta-vibhramaḥ | pralāpaś chardir utkleśo bhramo duḥ-svapna-darśanam || 17 || viśeṣāj jāgara-śvāsa-kampa-mūrdha-rujo 'nilāt | svapne bhramaty utpatati pretaiś ca saha bhāṣate || 18 || pittād dāha-jvara-sveda-mohātīsāra-tṛḍ-bhramāḥ | deho harita-hāridro rakta-netra-kapola-tā || 19 || śleṣmaṇā chardi-hṛl-lāsa-nidrodardāṅga-gauravam | sarva-je sarva-liṅga-tvaṃ muktvā madyaṃ pibet tu yaḥ || 20 || 6.20av śleṣmaṇaś chardi-hṛl-lāsa- sahasān-ucitaṃ vānyat tasya dhvaṃsaka-vikṣayau | bhavetāṃ mārutāt kaṣṭau dur-balasya viśeṣataḥ || 21 || 6.21av sahasān-ucitaṃ cānyat 6.21bv tasya dhvaṃsaka-viṭ-kṣayau dhvaṃsake śleṣma-niṣṭhīvaḥ kaṇṭha-śoṣo 'ti-nidra-tā | śabdā-saha-tvaṃ tandrā ca vikṣaye 'ṅga-śiro-'ti-ruk || 22 || 6.22dv viṭ-kṣaye 'ṅga-śiro-'ti-ruk hṛt-kaṇṭha-rogaḥ saṃmohaḥ kāsas tṛṣṇā vamir jvaraḥ | nivṛtto yas tu madyebhyo jitātmā buddhi-pūrva-kṛt || 23 || 6.23av hṛt-kaṇṭha-rodhaḥ saṃmohaḥ vikāraiḥ spṛśyate jātu na sa śārīra-mānasaiḥ | rajo-mohā-hitāhāra-parasya syus trayo gadāḥ || 24 || rasāsṛk-cetanā-vāhi-sroto-rodha-samudbhavāḥ | mada-mūrchāya-saṃnyāsā yathottara-balottarāḥ || 25 || mado 'tra doṣaiḥ sarvaiś ca rakta-madya-viṣair api | saktān-alpa-drutābhāṣaś calaḥ skhalita-ceṣṭitaḥ || 26 || rūkṣa-śyāvāruṇa-tanur made vātodbhave bhavet | pittena krodhano rakta-pītābhaḥ kalaha-priyaḥ || 27 || 6.27bv made vāta-kṛte bhavet sv-alpa-saṃbaddha-vāk pāṇḍuḥ kaphād dhyāna-paro 'lasaḥ | sarvātmā saṃnipātena raktāt stabdhāṅga-dṛṣṭi-tā || 28 || 6.28av sv-alpā-saṃbaddha-vāk pāṇḍuḥ pitta-liṅgaṃ ca madyena vikṛteha-svarāṅga-tā | viṣe kampo 'ti-nidrā ca sarvebhyo 'bhyadhikas tu saḥ || 29 || 6.29cv viṣāt kampo 'ti-nidrā ca 6.29dv sarvebhyo 'bhyadhikaś ca saḥ lakṣayel lakṣaṇotkarṣād vātādīn śoṇitādiṣu | aruṇaṃ kṛṣṇa-nīlaṃ vā khaṃ paśyan praviśet tamaḥ || 30 || śīghraṃ ca pratibudhyeta hṛt-pīḍā vepathur bhramaḥ | kārśyaṃ śyāvāruṇā chāyā mūrchāye mārutātmake || 31 || 6.31cv kārśyaṃ śyāvāruṇa-cchāye pittena raktaṃ pītaṃ vā nabhaḥ paśyan viśet tamaḥ | vibudhyeta ca sa-svedo dāha-tṛṭ-tāpa-pīḍitaḥ || 32 || bhinna-viṇ nīla-pītābho rakta-pītākulekṣaṇaḥ | kaphena megha-saṃkāśaṃ paśyann ākāśam āviśet || 33 || tamaś cirāc ca budhyeta sa-hṛl-lāsaḥ praseka-vān | gurubhiḥ stimitair aṅgair ārdra-carmāvanaddha-vat || 34 || sarvākṛtis tribhir doṣair apasmāra ivāparaḥ | pātayaty āśu niś-ceṣṭaṃ vinā bībhatsa-ceṣṭitaiḥ || 35 || 6.35dv vinā baibhatsya-ceṣṭitaiḥ doṣeṣu mada-mūrchāyāḥ kṛta-vegeṣu dehinām | svayam evopaśāmyanti saṃnyāso nauṣadhair vinā || 36 || vāg-deha-manasāṃ ceṣṭām ākṣipyāti-balā malāḥ | saṃnyāsaṃ saṃnipatitāḥ prāṇāyatana-saṃśrayāḥ || 37 || kurvanti tena puruṣaḥ kāṣṭhī-bhūto mṛtopamaḥ | mriyeta śīghraṃ śīghraṃ cec cikitsā na prayujyate || 38 || 6.38bv kāṣṭha-bhūto mṛtopamaḥ a-gādhe grāha-bahule salilaugha ivāṭate | saṃnyāse vinimajjantaṃ naram āśu nivartayet || 39 || 6.39cv abhinyāse ca majjantaṃ mada-māna-roṣa-toṣa-prabhṛtibhir aribhir nijaiḥ pariṣvaṅgaḥ | yuktā-yuktaṃ ca samaṃ yukti-viyuktena madyena || 40 || bala-kāla-deśa-sātmya-prakṛti-sahāyāmaya-vayāṃsi | pravibhajya tad-anurūpaṃ yadi pibati tataḥ pibaty amṛtam || 41 || Nidānasthāna ari-vat prāṇino māṃsa-kīlakā viśasanti yat | arśāṃsi tasmād ucyante guda-mārga-nirodhataḥ || 1 || doṣās tvaṅ-māṃsa-medāṃsi saṃdūṣya vividhākṛtīn | māṃsāṅkurān apānādau kurvanty arśāṃsi tān jaguḥ || 2 || saha-janmottarotthāna-bhedād dve-dhā samāsataḥ | śuṣka-srāvi-vibhedāc ca gudaḥ sthūlāntra-saṃśrayaḥ || 3 || ardha-pañcāṅgulas tasmiṃs tisro 'dhy-ardhāṅgulāḥ sthitāḥ | balyaḥ pravāhiṇī tāsām antar madhye visarjanī || 4 || bāhyā saṃvaraṇī tasyā gudauṣṭho bahir aṅgule | yavādhy-ardhaḥ pramāṇena romāṇy atra tataḥ param || 5 || 7.5av bāhyā saṃvaraṇī tasyāṃ 7.5cv yavādhy-ardha-pramāṇena tatra hetuḥ sahotthānāṃ valī-bījopatapta-tā | arśasāṃ bīja-taptis tu mātā-pitr-apacārataḥ || 6 || 7.6bv valī-bījopatapti-tā daivāc ca tābhyāṃ kopo hi saṃnipātasya tāny ataḥ | a-sādhyāny evam ākhyātāḥ sarve rogāḥ kulodbhavāḥ || 7 || saha-jāni viśeṣeṇa rūkṣa-dur-darśanāni ca | antar-mukhāni pāṇḍūni dāruṇopadravāṇi ca || 8 || ṣo-ḍhānyāni pṛthag doṣa-saṃsarga-nicayāsrataḥ | śuṣkāṇi vāta-śleṣmabhyām ārdrāṇi tv asra-pittataḥ || 9 || doṣa-prakopa-hetus tu prāg uktas tena sādite | agnau male 'ti-nicite punaś cāti-vyavāyataḥ || 10 || yāna-saṃkṣobha-viṣama-kaṭhinotkaṭakāsanāt | vasti-netrāśma-loṣṭorvī-tala-cailādi-ghaṭṭanāt || 11 || bhṛśaṃ śītāmbu-saṃsparśāt pratatāti-pravāhaṇāt | vāta-mūtra-śakṛd-vega-dhāraṇāt tad-udīraṇāt || 12 || jvara-gulmātisārāma-grahaṇī-śopha-pāṇḍubhiḥ | karśanād viṣamābhyaś ca ceṣṭābhyo yoṣitāṃ punaḥ || 13 || āma-garbha-prapatanād garbha-vṛddhi-prapīḍanāt | īdṛśaiś cāparair vāyur apānaḥ kupito malam || 14 || pāyor valīṣu taṃ dhatte tāsv abhiṣyaṇṇa-mūrtiṣu | jāyante 'rśāṃsi tat-pūrva-lakṣaṇaṃ manda-vahni-tā || 15 || 7.15av pāyu-valīṣu taṃ dhatte 7.15av pāyor valīṣu saṃdhatte viṣṭambhaḥ sakthi-sadanaṃ piṇḍikodveṣṭanaṃ bhramaḥ | sādo 'ṅge netrayoḥ śophaḥ śakṛd-bhedo 'tha-vā grahaḥ || 16 || mārutaḥ pracuro mūḍhaḥ prāyo nābher adhaś caran | sa-ruk sa-parikartaś ca kṛcchrān nirgacchati svanam || 17 || antra-kūjanam āṭopaḥ kṣāma-todgāra-bhūri-tā | prabhūtaṃ mūtram alpā viḍ a-śraddhā dhūmako 'mlakaḥ || 18 || 7.18cv prabhūta-mūtra-tālpā viḍ śiraḥ-pṛṣṭhorasāṃ śūlam ālasyaṃ bhinna-varṇa-tā | tandrendriyāṇāṃ daurbalyaṃ krodho duḥkhopacāra-tā || 19 || āśaṅkā grahaṇī-doṣa-pāṇḍu-gulmodareṣu ca | etāny eva vivardhante jāteṣu hata-nāmasu || 20 || 7.20cv etāny eva ca vardhante nivartamāno 'pāno hi tair adho-mārga-rodhataḥ | kṣobhayann anilān anyān sarvendriya-śarīra-gān || 21 || tathā mūtra-śakṛt-pitta-kaphān dhātūṃś ca sāśayān | mṛdnāty agniṃ tataḥ sarvo bhavati prāya-śo 'rśasaḥ || 22 || kṛśo bhṛśaṃ hatotsāho dīnaḥ kṣāmo 'ti-niṣ-prabhaḥ | a-sāro vigata-cchāyo jantu-juṣṭa iva drumaḥ || 23 || kṛtsnair upadravair grasto yathoktair marma-pīḍanaiḥ | tathā kāsa-pipāsāsya-vairasya-śvāsa-pīnasaiḥ || 24 || klamāṅga-bhaṅga-vamathu-kṣavathu-śvayathu-jvaraiḥ | klaibya-bādhirya-taimirya-śarkarāśmari-pīḍitaḥ || 25 || kṣāma-bhinna-svaro dhyāyan muhuḥ ṣṭhīvan a-rocakī | sarva-parvāsthi-hṛn-nābhi-pāyu-vaṅkṣaṇa-śūla-vān || 26 || gudena sravatā picchāṃ pulākodaka-saṃnibhām | vibaddha-muktaṃ śuṣkārdraṃ pakvāmaṃ cāntarāntarā || 27 || pāṇḍu pītaṃ harid raktaṃ picchilaṃ copaveśyate | gudāṅkurā bahv-anilāḥ śuṣkāś cimicimānvitāḥ || 28 || mlānāḥ śyāvāruṇāḥ stabdhā viṣamāḥ paruṣāḥ kharāḥ | mitho vi-sadṛśā vakrās tīkṣṇā visphuṭitānanāḥ || 29 || bimbī-karkandhu-kharjūra-kārpāsī-phala-saṃnibhāḥ | ke-cit kadamba-puṣpābhāḥ ke-cit siddhārthakopamāḥ || 30 || śiraḥ-pārśvāṃsa-kaṭy-ūru-vaṅkṣaṇābhyadhika-vyathāḥ | kṣavathūdgāra-viṣṭambha-hṛd-grahā-rocaka-pradāḥ || 31 || 7.31dv -hṛd-ravā-rocaka-pradāḥ kāsa-śvāsāgni-vaiṣamya-karṇa-nāda-bhramāvahāḥ | tair ārto grathitaṃ stokaṃ sa-śabdaṃ sa-pravāhikam || 32 || ruk-phena-picchānugataṃ vibaddham upaveśyate | kṛṣṇa-tvaṅ-nakha-viṇ-mūtra-netra-vaktraś ca jāyate || 33 || gulma-plīhodarāṣṭhīlā-saṃbhavas tata eva ca | pittottarā nīla-mukhā rakta-pītāsita-prabhāḥ || 34 || tanv-asra-srāviṇo visrās tanavo mṛdavaḥ ślathāḥ | śuka-jihvā-yakṛt-khaṇḍa-jalauko-vaktra-saṃnibhāḥ || 35 || dāha-pāka-jvara-sveda-tṛṇ-mūrchā-ruci-moha-dāḥ | soṣmāṇo drava-nīloṣṇa-pīta-raktāma-varcasaḥ || 36 || yava-madhyā harit-pīta-hāridra-tvaṅ-nakhādayaḥ | śleṣmolbaṇā mahā-mūlā ghanā manda-rujaḥ sitāḥ || 37 || 7.37av yava-madhyā harit-pītā 7.37bv hāridra-tvaṅ-nakhādayaḥ ucchūnopācitāḥ snigdhāḥ stabdha-vṛtta-guru-sthirāḥ | picchilāḥ stimitāḥ ślakṣṇāḥ kaṇḍv-āḍhyāḥ sparśana-priyāḥ || 38 || karīra-panasāsthy-ābhās tathā go-stana-saṃnibhāḥ | vaṅkṣaṇānāhinaḥ pāyu-vasti-nābhi-vikartinaḥ || 39 || sa-kāsa-śvāsa-hṛl-lāsa-prasekā-ruci-pīnasāḥ | meha-kṛcchra-śiro-jāḍya-śiśira-jvara-kāriṇaḥ || 40 || klaibyāgni-mārdava-cchardir-āma-prāya-vikāra-dāḥ | vasābha-sa-kapha-prājya-purīṣāḥ sa-pravāhikāḥ || 41 || 7.41cv vasābhāḥ sa-kapha-prājya- na sravanti na bhidyante pāṇḍu-snigdha-tvag-ādayaḥ | saṃsṛṣṭa-liṅgāḥ saṃsargān nicayāt sarva-lakṣaṇāḥ || 42 || raktolbaṇā gude-kīlāḥ pittākṛti-samanvitāḥ | vaṭa-praroha-sadṛśā guñjā-vidruma-saṃnibhāḥ || 43 || te 'ty-arthaṃ duṣṭam uṣṇaṃ ca gāḍha-viṭ-pratipīḍitāḥ | sravanti sahasā raktaṃ tasya cāti-pravṛttitaḥ || 44 || bhekābhaḥ pīḍyate duḥkhaiḥ śoṇita-kṣaya-saṃbhavaiḥ | hīna-varṇa-balotsāho hataujaḥ kaluṣendriyaḥ || 45 || mudga-kodrava-jūrṇāhva-karīra-caṇakādibhiḥ | rūkṣaiḥ saṃgrāhibhir vāyuḥ sve sthāne kupito balī || 46 || 7.46dv sva-sthāne kupito balī adho-vahāni srotāṃsi saṃrudhyādhaḥ praśoṣayan | purīṣaṃ vāta-viṇ-mūtra-saṅgaṃ kurvīta dāruṇam || 47 || tena tīvrā rujā koṣṭha-pṛṣṭha-hṛt-pārśva-gā bhavet | ādhmānam udarāveṣṭo hṛl-lāso parikartanam || 48 || vastau ca su-tarāṃ śūlaṃ gaṇḍa-śvayathu-saṃbhavaḥ | pavanasyordhva-gāmi-tvaṃ tataś chardy-a-ruci-jvarāḥ || 49 || hṛd-roga-grahaṇī-doṣa-mūtra-saṅga-pravāhikāḥ | bādhirya-timira-śvāsa-śiro-ruk-kāsa-pīnasāḥ || 50 || mano-vikāras tṛṣṇāsra-pitta-gulmodarādayaḥ | te te ca vāta-jā rogā jāyante bhṛśa-dāruṇāḥ || 51 || dur-nāmnām ity udāvartaḥ paramo 'yam upadravaḥ | vātābhibhūta-koṣṭhānāṃ tair vināpi sa jāyate || 52 || saha-jāni tri-doṣāṇi yāni cābhyantare valau | sthitāni tāny a-sādhyāni yāpyante 'gni-balādibhiḥ || 53 || dvandva-jāni dvitīyāyāṃ valau yāny āśritāni ca | kṛcchra-sādhyāni tāny āhuḥ pari-saṃvatsarāṇi ca || 54 || bāhyāyāṃ tu valau jātāny eka-doṣolbaṇāni ca | arśāṃsi sukha-sādhyāni na cotpatitāni ca || 55 || meḍhrādiṣv api vakṣyante yathā-svaṃ nābhi-jāni tu | gaṇḍū-padāsya-rūpāṇi picchilāni mṛdūni ca || 56 || vyāno gṛhītvā śleṣmāṇaṃ karoty arśas tvaco bahiḥ | kīlopamaṃ sthira-kharaṃ carma-kīlaṃ tu taṃ viduḥ || 57 || vātena todaḥ pāruṣyaṃ pittād asita-rakta-tā | śleṣmaṇā snigdha-tā tasya grathita-tvaṃ sa-varṇa-tā || 58 || arśasāṃ praśame yatnam āśu kurvīta buddhi-mān | tāny āśu hi gudaṃ baddhvā kuryur baddha-gudodaram || 59 || Nidānasthāna doṣair vyastaiḥ samastaiś ca bhayāc chokāc ca ṣaḍ-vidhaḥ | atīsāraḥ sa su-tarāṃ jāyate 'ty-ambu-pānataḥ || 1 || kṛśa-śuṣkāmiṣā-sātmya-tila-piṣṭa-virūḍhakaiḥ | madya-rūkṣāti-mātrānnair arśobhiḥ sneha-vibhramāt || 2 || kṛmibhyo vega-rodhāc ca tad-vidhaiḥ kupito 'nilaḥ | visraṃsayaty adho 'b-dhātuṃ hatvā tenaiva cānalam || 3 || vyāpadyānu-śakṛt koṣṭhaṃ purīṣaṃ drava-tāṃ nayan | prakalpate 'tisārāya lakṣaṇaṃ tasya bhāvinaḥ || 4 || todo hṛd-guda-koṣṭheṣu gātra-sādo mala-grahaḥ | ādhmānam a-vipākaś ca tatra vātena viḍ-jalam || 5 || alpālpaṃ śabda-śūlāḍhyaṃ vibaddham upaveśyate | rūkṣaṃ sa-phenam acchaṃ ca grathitaṃ vā muhur muhuḥ || 6 || tathā dagdha-guḍābhāsaṃ sa-picchā-parikartikam | śuṣkāsyo bhraṣṭa-pāyuś ca hṛṣṭa-romā viniṣṭanan || 7 || 8.7dv hṛṣṭa-romā vinaṣṭa-vāk pittena pītam asitaṃ hāridraṃ śādvala-prabham | sa-raktam ati-dur-gandhaṃ -tṛṇ-mūrchā-sveda-dāha-vān || 8 || 8.8dv -tṛṇ-mūrchā-sveda-dāha-vat sa-śūlaṃ pāyu-saṃtāpa-pāka-vāñ chleṣmaṇā ghanam | picchilaṃ tantu-mac chvetaṃ snigdham āmaṃ kaphānvitam || 9 || 8.9bv -pāka-vac chleṣmaṇā ghanam abhīkṣṇam guru dur-gandhaṃ vibaddham anubaddha-ruk | nidrālur alaso 'nna-dviḍ alpālpaṃ sa-pravāhikam || 10 || sa-roma-harṣaṃ sotkleśo guru-vasti-gudodaraḥ | kṛte 'py a-kṛta-saṃjñaś ca sarvātmā sarva-lakṣaṇaḥ || 11 || 8.11bv guru-vastir gurūdaraḥ bhayena kṣobhite citte sa-pitto drāvayec chakṛt | vāyus tato 'tisāryeta kṣipram uṣṇaṃ dravaṃ plavam || 12 || vāta-pitta-samaṃ liṅgair āhus tad-vac ca śokataḥ | atīsāraḥ samāsena dvi-dhā sāmo nir-āmakaḥ || 13 || 8.13dv dve-dhā sāmo nir-āmakaḥ sāsṛṅ nir-asras tatrādye gauravād apsu majjati | śakṛd dur-gandham āṭopa-viṣṭambhārti-prasekinaḥ || 14 || viparīto nir-āmas tu kaphāt pakvo 'pi majjati | atīsāreṣu yo nāti-yatna-vān grahaṇī-gadaḥ || 15 || tasya syād agni-vidhvaṃsa-karair anyasya sevitaiḥ | sāmaṃ śakṛn nir-āmaṃ vā jīrṇe yenātisāryate || 16 || so 'tīsāro 'ti-saraṇād āśu-kārī sva-bhāvataḥ | sāmaṃ sānnam a-jīrṇe 'nne jīrṇe pakvaṃ tu naiva vā || 17 || a-kasmād vā muhur baddham a-kasmāc chithilaṃ muhuḥ | cira-kṛd grahaṇī-doṣaḥ saṃcayāc copaveśayet || 18 || sa catur-dhā pṛthag doṣaiḥ saṃnipātāc ca jāyate | prāg-rūpaṃ tasya sadanaṃ cirāt pacanam amlakaḥ || 19 || praseko vaktra-vairasyam a-rucis tṛṭ klamo bhramaḥ | ānaddhodara-tā chardiḥ karṇa-kṣveḍo 'ntra-kūjanam || 20 || sāmānyaṃ lakṣaṇaṃ kārśyaṃ dhūmakas tamako jvaraḥ | mūrchā śiro-rug viṣṭambhaḥ śvayathuḥ kara-pādayoḥ || 21 || tatrānilāt tālu-śoṣas timiraṃ karṇayoḥ svanaḥ | pārśvoru-vaṅkṣaṇa-grīvā-rujābhīkṣṇaṃ viṣūcikā || 22 || raseṣu gṛddhiḥ sarveṣu kṣut tṛṣṇā parikartikā | jīrṇe jīryati cādhmānaṃ bhukte svāsthyaṃ samaśnute || 23 || vāta-hṛd-roga-gulmārśaḥ-plīha-pāṇḍu-tva-śaṅkitaḥ | cirād duḥkhaṃ dravaṃ śuṣkaṃ tanv āmaṃ śabda-phena-vat || 24 || punaḥ punaḥ sṛjed varcaḥ pāyu-ruk-śvāsa-kāsa-vān | pittena nīla-pītābhaṃ pītābhaḥ sṛjati dravam || 25 || 8.25cv pittena nīlaṃ pītābhaṃ 8.25cv pittena pīta-nīlābhaṃ pūty-amlodgāra-hṛt-kaṇṭha-dāhā-ruci-tṛḍ-arditaḥ | śleṣmaṇā pacyate duḥkham annaṃ chardir a-rocakaḥ || 26 || āsyopadeha-niṣṭhīva-kāsa-hṛl-lāsa-pīnasāḥ | hṛdayaṃ manyate styānam udaraṃ stimitaṃ guru || 27 || 8.27av āsyopadeha-mādhurya- 8.27bv -kāsa-ṣṭhīvana-pīnasāḥ udgāro duṣṭa-madhuraḥ sadanaṃ strīṣv a-harṣaṇam | bhinnāma-śleṣma-saṃsṛṣṭa-guru-varcaḥ-pravartanam || 28 || a-kṛśasyāpi daurbalyaṃ sarva-je sarva-saṃkaraḥ | vibhāge 'ṅgasya ye coktā viṣamādyās trayo 'gnayaḥ || 29 || te 'pi syur grahaṇī-doṣāḥ samas tu svāsthya-kāraṇam || 30ab || vāta-vyādhy-aśmarī-kuṣṭha-mehodara-bhagandarāḥ || 30cd || arśāṃsi grahaṇīty aṣṭau mahā-rogāḥ su-dus-tarāḥ || 30ef || Nidānasthāna vasti-vasti-śiro-meḍhra-kaṭī-vṛṣaṇa-pāyavaḥ | eka-saṃbandhanāḥ proktā gudāsthi-vivarāśrayāḥ || 1 || adho-mukho 'pi vastir hi mūtra-vāhi-sirā-mukhaiḥ | pārśvebhyaḥ pūryate sūkṣmaiḥ syandamānair an-āratam || 2 || yais tair eva praviśyainaṃ doṣāḥ kurvanti viṃśatim | mūtrāghātān pramehāṃś ca kṛcchrān marma-samāśrayān || 3 || vasti-vaṅkṣaṇa-meḍhrārti-yukto 'lpālpaṃ muhur muhuḥ | mūtrayed vāta-je kṛcchre paitte pītaṃ sa-dāha-ruk || 4 || raktaṃ vā kapha-je vasti-meḍhra-gaurava-śopha-vān | sa-picchaṃ sa-vibandhaṃ ca sarvaiḥ sarvātmakaṃ malaiḥ || 5 || yadā vāyur mukhaṃ vaster āvṛtya pariśoṣayet | mūtraṃ sa-pittaṃ sa-kaphaṃ sa-śukraṃ vā tadā kramāt || 6 || saṃjāyate 'śmarī ghorā pittād gor iva rocanā | śleṣmāśrayā ca sarvā syād athāsyāḥ pūrva-lakṣaṇam || 7 || vasty-ādhmānaṃ tad-āsanna-deśeṣu parito 'ti-ruk | mūtre ca basta-gandha-tvaṃ mūtra-kṛcchraṃ jvaro '-ruciḥ || 8 || 9.8cv mūtre basta-sa-gandha-tvaṃ sāmānya-liṅgaṃ ruṅ nābhi-sevanī-vasti-mūrdhasu | viśīrṇa-dhāraṃ mūtraṃ syāt tayā mārga-nirodhane || 9 || 9.9dv tathā mārga-nirodhane tad-vyapāyāt sukhaṃ mehed acchaṃ gomedakopamam | tat-saṃkṣobhāt kṣate sāsram āyāsāc cāti-rug bhavet || 10 || tatra vātād bhṛśārty-ārto dantān khādati vepate | mṛdnāti mehanaṃ nābhiṃ pīḍayaty a-niśaṃ kvaṇan || 11 || sānilaṃ muñcati śakṛn muhur mehati bindu-śaḥ | śyāvā rūkṣāśmarī cāsya syāc citā kaṇṭakair iva || 12 || pittena dahyate vastiḥ pacyamāna ivoṣma-vān | bhallātakāsthi-saṃsthānā raktā pītāsitāśmarī || 13 || 9.13dv rakta-pītāsitāśmarī vastir nistudyata iva śleṣmaṇā śītalo guruḥ | aśmarī mahatī ślakṣṇā madhu-varṇātha-vā sitā || 14 || etā bhavanti bālānāṃ teṣām eva ca bhūyasā | āśrayopacayālpa-tvād grahaṇāharaṇe sukhāḥ || 15 || śukrāśmarī tu mahatāṃ jāyate śukra-dhāraṇāt | sthānāc cyutam a-muktaṃ hi muṣkayor antare 'nilaḥ || 16 || śoṣayaty upasaṃgṛhya śukraṃ tac chuṣkam aśmarī | vasti-ruk-kṛcchra-mūtra-tva-muṣka-śvayathu-kāriṇī || 17 || tasyām utpanna-mātrāyāṃ śukram eti vilīyate | pīḍite tv avakāśe 'sminn aśmary eva ca śarkarā || 18 || aṇu-śo vāyunā bhinnā sā tv asminn anuloma-ge | nireti saha mūtreṇa pratilome vibadhyate || 19 || mūtra-saṃdhāriṇaḥ kuryād ruddhvā vaster mukhaṃ marut | mūtra-saṅgaṃ rujaṃ kaṇḍūṃ kadā-cic ca sva-dhāmataḥ || 20 || pracyāvya vastim udvṛttaṃ garbhābhaṃ sthūla-viplutam | karoti tatra rug-dāha-spandanodveṣṭanāni ca || 21 || bindu-śaś ca pravarteta mūtraṃ vastau tu pīḍite | dhārayā dvi-vidho 'py eṣa vāta-vastir iti smṛtaḥ || 22 || dus-taro dus-tara-taro dvitīyaḥ prabalānilaḥ | śakṛn-mārgasya vasteś ca vāyur antaram āśritaḥ || 23 || aṣṭhīlābhaṃ ghanaṃ granthiṃ karoty a-calam unnatam | vātāṣṭhīleti sādhmāna-viṇ-mūtrānila-saṅga-kṛt || 24 || vi-guṇaḥ kuṇḍalī-bhūto vastau tīvra-vyatho 'nilaḥ | āvidhya mūtraṃ bhramati sa-stambhodveṣṭa-gauravaḥ || 25 || 9.25cv āviśya mūtraṃ bhramati mūtram alpālpam atha-vā vimuñcati śakṛt sṛjan | vāta-kuṇḍalikety eṣā mūtraṃ tu vidhṛtaṃ ciram || 26 || na nireti vibaddhaṃ vā mūtrātītaṃ tad alpa-ruk | vidhāraṇāt pratihataṃ vātodāvartitaṃ yadā || 27 || nābher adhas-tād udaraṃ mūtram āpūrayet tadā | kuryāt tīvra-rug ādhmānam a-paktiṃ mala-saṃgraham || 28 || tan mūtra-jaṭharaṃ chidra-vaiguṇyenānilena vā | ākṣiptam alpaṃ mūtraṃ tad vastau nāle 'tha-vā maṇau || 29 || 9.29cv ākṣiptam alpaṃ mūtrasya sthitvā sravec chanaiḥ paścāt sa-rujaṃ vātha nī-rujam | mūtrotsaṅgaḥ sa vicchinna-tac-cheṣa-guru-śephasaḥ || 30 || 9.30bv sa-rujaṃ vātha-vā-rujam 9.30cv mūtrotsaṅgaḥ sa vicchinnas 9.30cv mūtrotsaṅgaḥ sa vicchinnaṃ 9.30dv tac-cheṣa-guru-śephasaḥ antar vasti-mukhe vṛttaḥ sthiro 'lpaḥ sahasā bhavet | aśmarī-tulya-rug granthir mūtra-granthiḥ sa ucyate || 31 || mūtritasya striyaṃ yāto vāyunā śukram uddhatam | sthānāc cyutaṃ mūtrayataḥ prāk paścād vā pravartate || 32 || bhasmodaka-pratīkāśaṃ mūtra-śukraṃ tad ucyate | rūkṣa-dur-balayor vātād udāvartaṃ śakṛd yadā || 33 || 9.33dv udāvṛttaṃ śakṛd yadā mūtra-sroto 'nuparyeti saṃsṛṣṭaṃ śakṛtā tadā | mūtraṃ viṭ-tulya-gandhaṃ syād viḍ-vighātaṃ tam ādiśet || 34 || pittaṃ vyāyāma-tīkṣṇoṣṇa-bhojanādhvātapādibhiḥ | pravṛddhaṃ vāyunā kṣiptaṃ vasty-upasthārti-dāha-vat || 35 || mūtraṃ pravartayet pītaṃ sa-raktaṃ raktam eva vā | uṣṇaṃ punaḥ punaḥ kṛcchrād uṣṇa-vātaṃ vadanti tam || 36 || rūkṣasya klānta-dehasya vasti-sthau pitta-mārutau | mūtra-kṣayaṃ sa-rug-dāhaṃ janayetāṃ tad-āhvayam || 37 || pittaṃ kapho dvāv api vā saṃhanyete 'nilena cet | kṛcchrān mūtraṃ tadā pītaṃ raktaṃ śvetaṃ ghanaṃ sṛjet || 38 || sa-dāhaṃ rocanā-śaṅkha-cūrṇa-varṇaṃ bhavec ca tat | śuṣkaṃ samasta-varṇaṃ vā mūtra-sādaṃ vadanti tam || 39 || iti vistarataḥ proktā rogā mūtrā-pravṛtti-jāḥ | nidāna-lakṣaṇair ūrdhvaṃ vakṣyante 'ti-pravṛtti-jāḥ || 40 || Nidānasthāna pramehā viṃśatis tatra śleṣmato daśa pittataḥ | ṣaṭ catvāro 'nilāt teṣāṃ medo-mūtra-kaphāvaham || 1 || anna-pāna-kriyā-jātaṃ yat prāyas tat pravartakam | svādv-amla-lavaṇa-snigdha-guru-picchila-śītalam || 2 || nava-dhānya-surānūpa-māṃsekṣu-guḍa-go-rasam | eka-sthānāsana-ratiḥ śayanaṃ vidhi-varjitam || 3 || vastim āśritya kurute pramehān dūṣitaḥ kaphaḥ | dūṣayitvā vapuḥ-kleda-sveda-medo-rasāmiṣam || 4 || 10.4dv -sveda-medo-vasāmiṣam pittaṃ raktam api kṣīṇe kaphādau mūtra-saṃśrayam | dhātūn vastim upānīya tat-kṣaye 'pi ca mārutaḥ || 5 || sādhya-yāpya-parityājyā mehās tenaiva tad-bhavāḥ | samāsam a-kriya-tayā mahātyaya-tayāpi ca || 6 || sāmānyaṃ lakṣaṇaṃ teṣāṃ prabhūtāvila-mūtra-tā | doṣa-dūṣyā-viśeṣe 'pi tat-saṃyoga-viśeṣataḥ || 7 || 10.7bv prabhūtākula-mūtra-tā mūtra-varṇādi-bhedena bhedo meheṣu kalpyate | acchaṃ bahu sitaṃ śītaṃ nir-gandham udakopamam || 8 || mehaty udaka-mehena kiñ-cic cāvila-picchilam | ikṣo rasam ivāty-arthaṃ madhuraṃ cekṣu-mehataḥ || 9 || sāndrī-bhavet paryuṣitaṃ sāndra-mehena mehati | surā-mehī surā-tulyam upary accham adho ghanam || 10 || saṃhṛṣṭa-romā piṣṭena piṣṭa-vad bahalaṃ sitam | śukrābhaṃ śukra-miśraṃ vā śukra-mehī pramehati || 11 || 10.11bv piṣṭa-vad bahulaṃ sitam mūrtāṇūn sikatā-mehī sikatā-rūpiṇo malān | śīta-mehī su-bahu-śo madhuraṃ bhṛśa-śītalam || 12 || 10.12av mūtrāṇūn sikatā-mehī 10.12av mūtre 'ṇūn sikatā-mehī śanaiḥ śanaiḥ śanair-mehī mandaṃ mandaṃ pramehati | lālā-tantu-yutaṃ mūtraṃ lālā-mehena picchilam || 13 || gandha-varṇa-rasa-sparśaiḥ kṣāreṇa kṣāra-toya-vat | nīla-mehena nīlābhaṃ kāla-mehī maṣī-nibham || 14 || hāridra-mehī kaṭukaṃ haridrā-saṃnibhaṃ dahat | visraṃ māñjiṣṭha-mehena mañjiṣṭhā-salilopamam || 15 || visram uṣṇaṃ sa-lavaṇaṃ raktābhaṃ rakta-mehataḥ | vasā-mehī vasā-miśraṃ vasāṃ vā mūtrayen muhuḥ || 16 || majjānaṃ majja-miśraṃ vā majja-mehī muhur muhuḥ | hastī matta ivājasraṃ mūtraṃ vega-vivarjitam || 17 || 10.17av majjābhaṃ majja-miśraṃ vā sa-lasīkaṃ vibaddhaṃ ca hasti-mehī pramehati | madhu-mehī madhu-samaṃ jāyate sa kila dvi-dhā || 18 || 10.18cv madhu-mehe madhu-samaṃ kruddhe dhātu-kṣayād vāyau doṣāvṛta-pathe 'tha-vā | āvṛto doṣa-liṅgāni so '-nimittaṃ pradarśayet || 19 || 10.19bv doṣāvṛta-pathe 'pi vā kṣīṇaḥ kṣaṇāt kṣaṇāt pūrṇo bhajate kṛcchra-sādhya-tām | kālenopekṣitāḥ sarve yad yānti madhu-meha-tām || 20 || madhuraṃ yac ca sarveṣu prāyo madhv iva mehati | sarve 'pi madhu-mehākhyā mādhuryāc ca tanor ataḥ || 21 || a-vipāko '-ruciś chardir nidrā kāsaḥ sa-pīnasaḥ | upadravāḥ prajāyante mehānāṃ kapha-janmanām || 22 || vasti-mehanayos todo muṣkāvadaraṇaṃ jvaraḥ | dāhas tṛṣṇāmlako mūrchā viḍ-bhedaḥ pitta-janmanām || 23 || vātikānām udāvarta-kampa-hṛd-graha-lola-tāḥ | śūlam unnidra-tā śoṣaḥ kāsaḥ śvāsaś ca jāyate || 24 || 10.24bv -kaṇṭha-hṛd-graha-lola-tāḥ śarāvikā kacchapikā jālinī vinatālajī | masūrikā sarṣapikā putriṇī sa-vidārikā || 25 || 10.25dv putriṇī ca vidārikā vidradhiś ceti piṭikāḥ pramehopekṣayā daśa | saṃdhi-marmasu jāyante māṃsaleṣu ca dhāmasu || 26 || antonnatā madhya-nimnā śyāvā kleda-rujānvitā | śarāva-māna-saṃsthānā piṭikā syāc charāvikā || 27 || avagāḍhārti-nistodā mahā-vastu-parigrahā | ślakṣṇā kacchapa-pṛṣṭhābhā piṭikā kacchapī matā || 28 || stabdhā sirā-jāla-vatī snigdha-srāvā mahāśayā | rujā-nistoda-bahulā sūkṣma-cchidrā ca jālinī || 29 || 10.29bv snigdha-srāvā mahāśrayā avagāḍha-rujā-kledā pṛṣṭhe vā jaṭhare 'pi vā | mahatī piṭikā nīlā vinatā vinatā smṛtā || 30 || dahati tvacam utthāne bhṛśaṃ kaṣṭā visarpiṇī | rakta-kṛṣṇāti-tṛṭ-sphoṭa-dāha-moha-jvarālajī || 31 || māna-saṃsthānayos tulyā masūreṇa masūrikā | sarṣapā-māna-saṃsthānā kṣipra-pākā mahā-rujā || 32 || sarṣapī sarṣapā-tulya-piṭikā-parivāritā | putriṇī mahatī bhūri-su-sūkṣma-piṭikācitā || 33 || 10.33av sarṣapā sarṣapā-tulya- 10.33dv -su-sūkṣma-piṭikāvṛtā 10.33dv -su-sūkṣma-piṭikānvitā vidārī-kanda-vad vṛttā kaṭhinā ca vidārikā | vidradhir vakṣyate 'nya-tra tatrādyaṃ piṭikā-trayam || 34 || putriṇī ca vidārī ca duḥ-sahā bahu-medasaḥ | sahyāḥ pittolbaṇās tv anyāḥ saṃbhavanty alpa-medasaḥ || 35 || tāsu meha-vaśāc ca syād doṣodreko yathā-yatham || 36ab || prameheṇa vināpy etā jāyante duṣṭa-medasaḥ || 36cd || tāvac ca nopalakṣyante yāvad vastu-parigrahaḥ || 36ef || hāridra-varṇaṃ raktaṃ vā meha-prāg-rūpa-varjitam | yo mūtrayen na taṃ mehaṃ rakta-pittaṃ tu tad viduḥ || 37 || 10.37dv rakta-pittaṃ tu taṃ viduḥ 10.37dv rakta-pittaṃ ca tad viduḥ svedo 'ṅga-gandhaḥ śithila-tvam aṅge śayyāsana-svapna-sukhābhiṣaṅgaḥ | hṛn-netra-jihvā-śravaṇopadeho ghanāṅga-tā keśa-nakhāti-vṛddhiḥ || 38 || 10.38bv śayyāsana-sthāna-sukhābhilāṣaḥ śīta-priya-tvaṃ gala-tālu-śoṣo mādhuryam āsye kara-pāda-dāhaḥ | bhaviṣyato meha-gaṇasya rūpaṃ mūtre 'bhidhāvanti pipīlikāś ca || 39 || dṛṣṭvā pramehaṃ madhuraṃ sa-picchaṃ madhūpamaṃ syād vividho vicāraḥ | saṃpūraṇād vā kapha-saṃbhavaḥ syāt kṣīṇeṣu doṣeṣv anilātmako vā || 40 || 10.40cv saṃtarpaṇād vā kapha-saṃbhavaḥ syāt sa-pūrva-rūpāḥ kapha-pitta-mehāḥ krameṇa ye vāta-kṛtāś ca mehāḥ | sādhyā na te pitta-kṛtās tu yāpyāḥ sādhyās tu medo yadi nāti-duṣṭam || 41 || 10.41dv sādhyāś ca medo yadi nāti-duṣṭam Nidānasthāna bhuktaiḥ paryuṣitāty-uṣṇa-rūkṣa-śuṣka-vidāhibhiḥ | jihma-śayyā-viceṣṭābhis tais taiś cāsṛk-pradūṣaṇaiḥ || 1 || duṣṭa-tvaṅ-māṃsa-medo-'sthi-snāyv-asṛk-kaṇḍarāśrayaḥ | yaḥ śopho bahir antar vā mahā-mūlo mahā-rujaḥ || 2 || 11.2av duṣṭas tvaṅ-māṃsa-medo-'sthi- vṛttaḥ syād āyato yo vā smṛtaḥ ṣo-ḍhā sa vidradhiḥ | doṣaiḥ pṛthak samuditaiḥ śoṇitena kṣatena ca || 3 || bāhyo 'tra tatra tatrāṅge dāruṇo grathitonnataḥ | āntaro dāruṇa-taro gambhīro gulma-vad ghanaḥ || 4 || valmīka-vat samucchrāyī śīghra-ghāty agni-śastra-vat | nābhi-vasti-yakṛt-plīha-kloma-hṛt-kukṣi-vaṅkṣaṇe || 5 || syād vṛkkayor apāne ca vātāt tatrāti-tīvra-ruk | śyāvāruṇaś cirotthāna-pāko viṣama-saṃsthitiḥ || 6 || 11.6av syād vṛkkayor apāne vā vyadha-ccheda-bhramānāha-spanda-sarpaṇa-śabda-vān | rakta-tāmrāsitaḥ pittāt tṛṇ-moha-jvara-dāha-vān || 7 || kṣiprotthāna-prapākaś ca pāṇḍuḥ kaṇḍū-yutaḥ kaphāt | sotkleśa-śītaka-stambha-jṛmbhā-rocaka-gauravaḥ || 8 || cirotthāna-vipākaś ca saṃkīrṇaḥ saṃnipātataḥ | sāmarthyāc cātra vibhajed bāhyābhyantara-lakṣaṇam || 9 || 11.9av cirotthāna-prapākaś ca kṛṣṇa-sphoṭāvṛtaḥ śyāvas tīvra-dāha-rujā-jvaraḥ | pitta-liṅgo 'sṛjā bāhyaḥ strīṇām eva tathāntaraḥ || 10 || śastrādyair abhighātena kṣate vā-pathya-kāriṇaḥ | kṣatoṣmā vāyu-vikṣiptaḥ sa-raktaṃ pittam īrayan || 11 || 11.11dv sa-raktaṃ pittam īrayet pittāsṛg-lakṣaṇaṃ kuryād vidradhiṃ bhūry-upadravam | teṣūpadrava-bhedaś ca smṛto 'dhiṣṭhāna-bhedataḥ || 12 || nābhyāṃ hidhmā bhaved vastau mūtraṃ kṛcchreṇa pūti ca | śvāso yakṛti rodhas tu plīhny ucchvāsasya tṛṭ punaḥ || 13 || gala-grahaś ca klomni syāt sarvāṅga-pragraho hṛdi | pramohas tamakaḥ kāso hṛdaye ghaṭṭanaṃ vyathā || 14 || kukṣi-pārśvāntarāṃsārtiḥ kukṣāv āṭopa-janma ca | sakthnor graho vaṅkṣaṇayor vṛkkayoḥ kaṭi-pṛṣṭhayoḥ || 15 || pārśvayoś ca vyathā pāyau pavanasya nirodhanam | āma-pakva-vidagdha-tvaṃ teṣāṃ śopha-vad ādiśet || 16 || nābher ūrdhvaṃ mukhāt pakvāḥ prasravanty adhare gudāt | gudāsyān nābhi-jo vidyād doṣaṃ kledāc ca vidradhau || 17 || 11.17cv ubhābhyāṃ nābhi-jo vidyād yathā-svaṃ vraṇa-vat tatra vivarjyaḥ saṃnipāta-jaḥ | pakvo hṛn-nābhi-vasti-stho bhinno 'ntar bahir eva vā || 18 || pakvaś cāntaḥ sravan vaktrāt kṣīṇasyopadravānvitaḥ | evam eva stana-sirā vivṛtāḥ prāpya yoṣitām || 19 || sūtānāṃ garbhiṇīnāṃ vā saṃbhavec chvayathur ghanaḥ | stane sa-dugdhe '-dugdhe vā bāhya-vidradhi-lakṣaṇaḥ || 20 || nāḍīnāṃ sūkṣma-vaktra-tvāt kanyānāṃ na sa jāyate | kruddho ruddha-gatir vāyuḥ śopha-śūla-karaś caran || 21 || 11.21bv kanyānāṃ tu na jāyate 11.21cv kruddho 'n-ūrdhva-gatir vāyuḥ muṣkau vaṅkṣaṇataḥ prāpya phala-kośābhivāhinīḥ | prapīḍya dhamanīr vṛddhiṃ karoti phala-kośayoḥ || 22 || doṣāsra-medo-mūtrāntraiḥ sa vṛddhiḥ sapta-dhā gadaḥ | mūtrāntra-jāv apy anilād dhetu-bhedas tu kevalam || 23 || vāta-pūrṇa-dṛti-sparśo rūkṣo vātād a-hetu-ruk | pakvodumbara-saṃkāśaḥ pittād dāhoṣma-pāka-vān || 24 || kaphāc chīto guruḥ snigdhaḥ kaṇḍū-mān kaṭhino 'lpa-ruk | kṛṣṇa-sphoṭāvṛtaḥ pitta-vṛddhi-liṅgaś ca raktataḥ || 25 || 11.25cv kṛṣṇaḥ sphoṭāvṛtaḥ pitta- kapha-van medasā vṛddhir mṛdus tāla-phalopamaḥ | mūtra-dhāraṇa-śīlasya mūtra-jaḥ sa tu gacchataḥ || 26 || ambhobhiḥ pūrṇa-dṛti-vat kṣobhaṃ yāti sa-ruṅ mṛduḥ | mūtra-kṛcchram adhas-tāc ca valayaṃ phala-kośayoḥ || 27 || vāta-kopibhir āhāraiḥ śīta-toyāvagāhanaiḥ | dhāraṇeraṇa-bhārādhva-viṣamāṅga-pravartanaiḥ || 28 || kṣobhaṇaiḥ kṣubhito 'nyaiś ca kṣudrāntrāvayavaṃ yadā | pavano vi-guṇī-kṛtya sva-niveśād adho nayet || 29 || 11.29cv pavano dvi-guṇī-kṛtya kuryād vaṅkṣaṇa-saṃdhi-stho granthy-ābhaṃ śvayathuṃ tadā || 30ab || upekṣyamāṇasya ca muṣka-vṛddhim ādhmāna-ruk-stambha-vatīṃ sa vāyuḥ || 30cd || prapīḍito 'ntaḥ svana-vān prayāti pradhmāpayann eti punaś ca muktaḥ || 30ef || antra-vṛddhir a-sādhyo 'yaṃ vāta-vṛddhi-samākṛtiḥ || 31 || iti vṛddhi-nidānam atha gulma-nidānam || 31+1 || rūkṣa-kṛṣṇāruṇa-sirā-tantu-jāla-gavākṣitaḥ | gulmo 'ṣṭa-dhā pṛthag doṣaiḥ saṃsṛṣṭair nicayaṃ gataiḥ || 32 || ārtavasya ca doṣeṇa nārīṇāṃ jāyate 'ṣṭamaḥ | jvara-cchardy-atisārādyair vamanādyaiś ca karmabhiḥ || 33 || karśito vātalāny atti śītaṃ vāmbu bubhukṣitaḥ | yaḥ pibaty anu cānnāni laṅghana-plavanādikam || 34 || 11.34bv śītaṃ cāmbu bubhukṣitaḥ sevate deha-saṃkṣobhi cchardiṃ vā samudīrayet | an-udīrṇām udīrṇān vā vātādīn na vimuñcati || 35 || sneha-svedāv an-abhyasya śodhanaṃ vā niṣevate | śuddho vāśu vidāhīni bhajate syandanāni vā || 36 || vātolbaṇās tasya malāḥ pṛthak kruddhā dvi-śo 'tha-vā | sarve vā rakta-yuktā vā mahā-sroto-'nuśāyinaḥ || 37 || ūrdhvādho-mārgam āvṛtya kurvate śūla-pūrvakam | sparśopalabhyaṃ gulmākhyam utplutaṃ granthi-rūpiṇam || 38 || 11.38dv unnataṃ granthi-rūpiṇam karśanāt kapha-viṭ-pittair mārgasyāvaraṇena vā | vāyuḥ kṛtāśrayaḥ koṣṭhe raukṣyāt kāṭhinyam āgataḥ || 39 || sva-tantraḥ svāśraye duṣṭaḥ para-tantraḥ parāśraye | piṇḍita-tvād a-mūrto 'pi mūrta-tvam iva saṃśritaḥ || 40 || gulma ity ucyate vasti-nābhi-hṛt-pārśva-saṃśrayaḥ | vātān manyā-śiraḥ-śūlaṃ jvara-plīhāntra-kūjanam || 41 || vyadhaḥ sūcyeva viṭ-saṅgaḥ kṛcchrād ucchvasanaṃ muhuḥ | stambho gātre mukhe śoṣaḥ kārśyaṃ viṣama-vahni-tā || 42 || rūkṣa-kṛṣṇa-tvag-ādi-tvaṃ cala-tvād anilasya ca | a-nirūpita-saṃsthāna-sthāna-vṛddhi-kṣaya-vyathaḥ || 43 || pipīlikā-vyāpta iva gulmaḥ sphurati tudyate | pittād dāho 'mlako mūrchā-viḍ-bheda-sveda-tṛḍ-jvarāḥ || 44 || hāridra-tvaṃ tvag-ādyeṣu gulmaś ca sparśanā-sahaḥ | dūyate dīpyate soṣmā sva-sthānaṃ dahatīva ca || 45 || kaphāt staimityam a-ruciḥ sadanaṃ śiśira-jvaraḥ | pīnasālasya-hṛl-lāsa-kāsa-śukla-tvag-ādi-tāḥ || 46 || gulmo 'vagāḍhaḥ kaṭhino guruḥ suptaḥ sthiro 'lpa-ruk | sva-doṣa-sthāna-dhāmānaḥ sve sve kāle ca ruk-karāḥ || 47 || prāyas trayas tu dvandvotthā gulmāḥ saṃsṛṣṭa-lakṣaṇāḥ | sarva-jas tīvra-rug-dāhaḥ śīghra-pākī ghanonnataḥ || 48 || so '-sādhyo rakta-gulmas tu striyā eva prajāyate | ṛtau vā nava-sūtā vā yadi vā yoni-rogiṇī || 49 || sevate vātalāni strī kruddhas tasyāḥ samīraṇaḥ | niruṇaddhy ārtavaṃ yonyāṃ prati-māsam avasthitam || 50 || kukṣiṃ karoti tad-garbha-liṅgam āviṣ-karoti ca | hṛl-lāsa-daurhṛda-stanya-darśana-kṣāma-tādikam || 51 || krameṇa vāyu-saṃsargāt pitta-yoni-tayā ca tat | śoṇitaṃ kurute tasyā vāta-pittottha-gulma-jān || 52 || ruk-stambha-dāhātīsāra-tṛḍ-jvarādīn upadravān | garbhāśaye ca su-tarāṃ śūlaṃ duṣṭāsṛg-āśraye || 53 || yonyāś ca srāva-daurgandhya-toda-spandana-vedanāḥ | na cāṅgair garbha-vad gulmaḥ sphuraty api tu śūla-vān || 54 || 11.54bv -toda-sphuraṇa-vedanāḥ 11.54bv -kleda-svedana-vedanāḥ piṇḍī-bhūtaḥ sa evāsyāḥ kadā-cit spandate cirāt | na cāsyā vardhate kukṣir gulma eva tu vardhate || 55 || sva-doṣa-saṃśrayo gulmaḥ sarvo bhavati tena saḥ | pākaṃ cireṇa bhajate naiva vā vidradhiḥ punaḥ || 56 || pacyate śīghram aty-arthaṃ duṣṭa-raktāśraya-tvataḥ | ataḥ śīghra-vidāhi-tvād vidradhiḥ so 'bhidhīyate || 57 || gulme 'ntar-āśraye vasti-kukṣi-hṛt-plīha-vedanāḥ | agni-varṇa-bala-bhraṃśo vegānāṃ cā-pravartanam || 58 || 11.58bv -kukṣi-hṛt-pārśva-vedanāḥ ato viparyayo bāhye koṣṭhāṅgeṣu tu nāti-ruk | vaivarṇyam avakāśasya bahir unnata-tādhikam || 59 || sāṭopam aty-ugra-rujam ādhmānam udare bhṛśam | ūrdhvādho-vāta-rodhena tam ānāhaṃ pracakṣate || 60 || ghano 'ṣṭhīlopamo granthir aṣṭhīlordhvaṃ samunnataḥ | ānāha-liṅgas tiryak tu pratyaṣṭhīlā tad-ākṛtiḥ || 61 || 11.61cv ānāha-liṅgas tiryak ca pakvāśayād gudopasthaṃ vāyus tīvra-rujaḥ prayān | tūṇī pratūṇī tu bhavet sa evāto viparyaye || 62 || udgāra-bāhulya-purīṣa-bandha-tṛpty-a-kṣama-tvāntra-vikūjanāni | āṭopam ādhmānam a-pakti-śaktim āsanna-gulmasya vadanti cihnam || 63 || 11.63cv āṭopam ādhmānam a-pakty-a-śaktim Nidānasthāna rogāḥ sarve 'pi mande 'gnau su-tarām udarāṇi tu | a-jīrṇān malinaiś cānnair jāyante mala-saṃcayāt || 1 || ūrdhvādho dhātavo ruddhvā vāhinīr ambu-vāhinīḥ | prāṇāgny-apānān saṃdūṣya kuryus tvaṅ-māṃsa-saṃdhi-gāḥ || 2 || ādhmāpya kukṣim udaram aṣṭa-dhā tac ca bhidyate | pṛthag doṣaiḥ samastaiś ca plīha-baddha-kṣatodakaiḥ || 3 || tenārtāḥ śuṣka-tālv-oṣṭhāḥ śūna-pāda-karodarāḥ | naṣṭa-ceṣṭā-balāhārāḥ kṛśāḥ pradhmāta-kukṣayaḥ || 4 || syuḥ preta-rūpāḥ puruṣā bhāvinas tasya lakṣaṇam | kṣun-nāśo 'nnaṃ cirāt sarvaṃ sa-vidāhaṃ ca pacyate || 5 || 12.5dv sa-vidāhaṃ vipacyate jīrṇā-jīrṇaṃ na jānāti sauhityaṃ sahate na ca | kṣīyate balataḥ śaśvac chvasity alpe 'pi ceṣṭite || 6 || vṛddhir viṣo '-pravṛttiś ca kiñ-cic chophaś ca pādayoḥ | rug-vasti-saṃdhau tata-tā laghv-alpā-bhojanair api || 7 || 12.7av vṛddhir viṣo '-pravṛttir vā rājī-janma valī-nāśo jaṭhare jaṭhareṣu tu | sarveṣu tandrā sadanaṃ mala-saṅgo 'lpa-vahni-tā || 8 || dāhaḥ śvayathur ādhmānam ante salila-saṃbhavaḥ | sarvaṃ tv a-toyam aruṇam a-śophaṃ nāti-bhārikam || 9 || gavākṣitaṃ sirā-jālaiḥ sadā guḍaguḍāyate | nābhim antraṃ ca viṣṭabhya vegaṃ kṛtvā praṇaśyati || 10 || māruto hṛt-kaṭī-nābhi-pāyu-vaṅkṣaṇa-vedanāḥ | sa-śabdo niścared vāyur viḍ baddhā mūtram alpakam || 11 || 12.11bv -pāyu-vaṅkṣaṇa-vedanā nāti-mando 'nalo laulyaṃ na ca syād vi-rasaṃ mukham | tatra vātodare śophaḥ pāṇi-pān-muṣka-kukṣiṣu || 12 || kukṣi-pārśvodara-kaṭī-pṛṣṭha-ruk parva-bhedanam | śuṣka-kāso 'ṅga-mardo 'dho-guru-tā mala-saṃgrahaḥ || 13 || śyāvāruṇa-tvag-ādi-tvam a-kasmād vṛddhi-hrāsa-vat | sa-toda-bhedam udaraṃ tanu-kṛṣṇa-sirā-tatam || 14 || 12.14dv tanu kṛṣṇa-sirā-tatam ādhmāta-dṛti-vac chabdam āhataṃ prakaroti ca | vāyuś cātra sa-ruk-śabdo vicaret sarvato-gatiḥ || 15 || pittodare jvaro mūrchā dāhas tṛṭ kaṭukāsya-tā | bhramo 'tīsāraḥ pīta-tvaṃ tvag-ādāv udaraṃ harit || 16 || pīta-tāmra-sirānaddhaṃ sa-svedaṃ soṣma dahyate | dhūmāyati mṛdu-sparśaṃ kṣipra-pākaṃ pradūyate || 17 || 12.17cv dhūmāyate mṛdu-sparśaṃ śleṣmodare 'ṅga-sadanaṃ svāpaḥ śvayathu-gauravam | nidrotkleśā-ruci-śvāsa-kāsa-śukla-tvag-ādi-tā || 18 || 12.18bv svāpa-śvayathu-gauravam udaraṃ stimitaṃ ślakṣṇaṃ śukla-rājī-tataṃ mahat | cirābhivṛddhi kaṭhinaṃ śīta-sparśaṃ guru sthiram || 19 || 12.19av udaraṃ stimitaṃ snigdhaṃ tri-doṣa-kopanais tais taiḥ strī-dattaiś ca rajo-malaiḥ | gara-dūṣī-viṣādyaiś ca sa-raktāḥ saṃcitā malāḥ || 20 || koṣṭhaṃ prāpya vikurvāṇāḥ śoṣa-mūrchā-bhramānvitam | kuryus tri-liṅgam udaraṃ śīghra-pākaṃ su-dāruṇam || 21 || bādhate tac ca su-tarāṃ śīta-vātābhra-darśane | aty-āśitasya saṃkṣobhād yāna-yānādi-ceṣṭitaiḥ || 22 || 12.22bv śīta-vātābhra-darśanaiḥ ati-vyavāya-karmādhva-vamana-vyādhi-karśanaiḥ | vāma-pārśvāśritaḥ plīhā cyutaḥ sthānād vivardhate || 23 || śoṇitaṃ vā rasādibhyo vivṛddhaṃ taṃ vivardhayet | so 'ṣṭhīlevāti-kaṭhinaḥ prāk tataḥ kūrma-pṛṣṭha-vat || 24 || 12.24dv prākṛtaḥ kūrma-pṛṣṭha-vat krameṇa vardhamānaś ca kukṣāv udaram āvahet | śvāsa-kāsa-pipāsāsya-vairasyādhmāna-rug-jvaraiḥ || 25 || pāṇḍu-tva-mūrchā-chardībhir dāha-mohaiś ca saṃyutam | aruṇābhaṃ vi-varṇaṃ vā nīla-hāridra-rāji-mat || 26 || 12.26av pāṇḍu-tva-mūrchāti-chardi- 12.26bv -dāha-mohaiś ca saṃyutam udāvarta-rujānāhair moha-tṛḍ-dahana-jvaraiḥ | gauravā-ruci-kāṭhinyair vidyāt tatra malān kramāt || 27 || 12.27av udāvarta-rug-ānāhair plīha-vad dakṣiṇāt pārśvāt kuryād yakṛd api cyutam | pakṣma-vālaiḥ sahānnena bhuktair baddhāyane gude || 28 || dur-nāmabhir udāvartair anyair vāntropalepibhiḥ | varcaḥ-pitta-kaphān ruddhvā karoti kupito 'nilaḥ || 29 || 12.29bv annair vāntropalepibhiḥ apāno jaṭharaṃ tena syur dāha-jvara-tṛṭ-kṣavāḥ | kāsa-śvāsoru-sadanaṃ śiro-hṛn-nābhi-pāyu-ruk || 30 || 12.30bv syur dāha-jvara-tṛṭ-kṣudhāḥ 12.30bv syur dāha-jvara-tṛṭ-kṣutaḥ mala-saṅgo '-ruciś chardir udaraṃ mūḍha-mārutam | sthiraṃ nīlāruṇa-sirā-rājī-naddham a-rāji vā || 31 || nābher upari ca prāyo go-pucchākṛti jāyate | asthy-ādi-śalyaiḥ sānnaiś ced bhuktair aty-aśanena vā || 32 || 12.32cv asthy-ādi-śalyaiḥ sānnaiś ca bhidyate pacyate vāntraṃ tac-chidraiś ca sravan bahiḥ | āma eva gudād eti tato 'lpālpaṃ sa-viḍ-rasaḥ || 33 || 12.33av bhidyate pacyate cāntraṃ 12.33dv 'lpālpaḥ sa-viḍ-rasaḥ tulyaḥ kuṇapa-gandhena picchilaḥ pīta-lohitaḥ | śeṣaś cāpūrya jaṭharaṃ jaṭharaṃ ghoram āvahet || 34 || vardhayet tad adho nābher āśu caiti jalātma-tām | udrikta-doṣa-rūpaṃ ca vyāptaṃ ca śvāsa-tṛḍ-bhramaiḥ || 35 || 12.35av vardhate tad adho nābher 12.35dv vyāptaṃ ca śvāsa-tṛḍ-jvaraiḥ chidrodaram idaṃ prāhuḥ parisrāvīti cāpare | pravṛtta-sneha-pānādeḥ sahasāmāmbu-pāyinaḥ || 36 || aty-ambu-pānān mandāgneḥ kṣīṇasyāti-kṛśasya vā | ruddhvāmbu-mārgān anilaḥ kaphaś ca jala-mūrchitaḥ || 37 || vardhayetāṃ tad evāmbu tat-sthānād udarāśritau | tataḥ syād udaraṃ tṛṣṇā-guda-sruti-rujānvitam || 38 || 12.38dv -guda-sruti-rujā-yutam kāsa-śvāsā-ruci-yutaṃ nānā-varṇa-sirā-tatam | toya-pūrṇa-dṛti-sparśa-śabda-prakṣobha-vepathu || 39 || 12.39bv nānā-varṇa-sirānvitam 12.39bv nānā-varṇa-sirācitam 12.39bv nānā-varṇa-sirāvṛtam dakodaraṃ mahat snigdhaṃ sthiram āvṛtta-nābhi tat | upekṣayā ca sarveṣu doṣāḥ sva-sthānataś cyutāḥ || 40 || pākād dravā dravī-kuryuḥ saṃdhi-sroto-mukhāny api | svedaś ca bāhya-srotaḥsu vihatas tiryag-āsthitaḥ || 41 || 12.41av pākād dravād dravī-kuryuḥ tad evodakam āpyāyya picchāṃ kuryāt tadā bhavet | gurūdaraṃ sthiraṃ vṛttam āhataṃ ca na śabda-vat || 42 || mṛdu vyapeta-rājīkaṃ nābhyāṃ spṛṣṭaṃ ca sarpati | tad anūdaka-janmāsmin kukṣi-vṛddhis tato 'dhikam || 43 || sirāntardhānam udaka-jaṭharoktaṃ ca lakṣaṇam | vāta-pitta-kapha-plīha-saṃnipātodakodaram || 44 || kṛcchraṃ yathottaraṃ pakṣāt paraṃ prāyo 'pare hataḥ | sarvaṃ ca jāta-salilaṃ riṣṭoktopadravānvitam || 45 || janmanaivodaraṃ sarvaṃ prāyaḥ kṛcchra-tamaṃ matam | balinas tad a-jātāmbu yatna-sādhyaṃ navotthitam || 46 || Nidānasthāna pitta-pradhānāḥ kupitā yathoktaiḥ kopanair malāḥ | tatrānilena balinā kṣiptaṃ pittaṃ hṛdi sthitam || 1 || dhamanīr daśa saṃprāpya vyāpnuvat sakalāṃ tanum | śleṣma-tvag-rakta-māṃsāni pradūṣyāntaram āśritam || 2 || tvaṅ-māṃsayos tat kurute tvaci varṇān pṛthag-vidhān | pāṇḍu-hāridra-haritān pāṇḍu-tvaṃ teṣu cādhikam || 3 || yato 'taḥ pāṇḍur ity uktaḥ sa rogas tena gauravam | dhātūnāṃ syāc ca śaithilyam ojasaś ca guṇa-kṣayaḥ || 4 || tato 'lpa-rakta-medasko niḥ-sāraḥ syāc chlathendriyaḥ | mṛdyamānair ivāṅgair nā dravatā hṛdayena ca || 5 || 13.5bv niḥ-sāraḥ śithilendriyaḥ 13.5dv dravatā hṛdayena vā śūnākṣi-kūṭaḥ sadanaḥ kopanaḥ ṣṭhīvano 'lpa-vāk | anna-dviṭ śiśira-dveṣī śīrṇa-romā hatānalaḥ || 6 || 13.6av śūnākṣi-kūṭa-vadanaḥ 13.6bv kopanaḥ svedano 'lpa-vāk 13.6bv kopanaḥ sadano 'lpa-vāk sanna-saktho jvarī śvāsī karṇa-kṣveḍī bhramī śramī | sa pañca-dhā pṛthag doṣaiḥ samastair mṛttikādanāt || 7 || 13.7av sanna-sakthī jvarī śvāsī prāg-rūpam asya hṛdaya-spandanaṃ rūkṣa-tā tvaci | a-ruciḥ pīta-mūtra-tvaṃ svedā-bhāvo 'lpa-vahni-tā || 8 || sādaḥ śramo 'nilāt tatra gātra-ruk-toda-kampanam | kṛṣṇa-rūkṣāruṇa-sirā-nakha-viṇ-mūtra-netra-tā || 9 || śophānāhāsya-vairasya-viṭ-śoṣāḥ pārśva-mūrdha-ruk | pittād dharita-pītābha-sirādi-tvaṃ jvaras tamaḥ || 10 || tṛṭ-sveda-mūrchā-śītecchā daurgandhyaṃ kaṭu-vaktra-tā | varco-bhedo 'mlako dāhaḥ kaphāc chukla-sirādi-tā || 11 || tandrā lavaṇa-vaktra-tvaṃ roma-harṣaḥ svara-kṣayaḥ | kāsaś chardiś ca nicayān miśra-liṅgo 'ti-duḥ-sahaḥ || 12 || 13.12bv harṣo romṇāṃ svara-kṣayaḥ mṛt kaṣāyānilaṃ pittam ūṣarā madhurā kapham | dūṣayitvā rasādīṃś ca raukṣyād bhuktaṃ virūkṣya ca || 13 || srotāṃsy a-pakvaivāpūrya kuryād ruddhvā ca pūrva-vat | pāṇḍu-rogaṃ tataḥ śūna-nābhi-pādāsya-mehanaḥ || 14 || purīṣaṃ kṛmi-man muñced bhinnaṃ sāsṛk kaphaṃ naraḥ | yaḥ pāṇḍu-rogī seveta pittalaṃ tasya kāmalām || 15 || koṣṭha-śākhāśrayāṃ pittaṃ dagdhvāsṛṅ-māṃsam āvahet | hāridra-netra-mūtra-tvaṅ-nakha-vaktra-śakṛt-tayā || 16 || 13.16av koṣṭha-śākhāśrayaṃ pittaṃ dāhā-vipāka-tṛṣṇā-vān bhekābho dur-balendriyaḥ | bhavet pittolbaṇasyāsau pāṇḍu-rogād ṛte 'pi ca || 17 || upekṣayā ca śophāḍhyā sā kṛcchrā kumbha-kāmalā | harita-śyāva-pīta-tvaṃ pāṇḍu-roge yadā bhavet || 18 || vāta-pittād bhramas tṛṣṇā strīṣv a-harṣo mṛdur jvaraḥ | tandrā balānala-bhraṃśo loḍharaṃ taṃ halīmakam || 19 || alasaṃ ceti śaṃsanti teṣāṃ pūrvam upadravāḥ | śopha-pradhānāḥ kathitāḥ sa evāto nigadyate || 20 || pitta-rakta-kaphān vāyur duṣṭo duṣṭān bahiḥ-sirāḥ | nītvā ruddha-gatis tair hi kuryāt tvaṅ-māṃsa-saṃśrayam || 21 || utsedhaṃ saṃhataṃ śophaṃ tam āhur nicayād ataḥ | sarvaṃ hetu-viśeṣais tu rūpa-bhedān navātmakam || 22 || doṣaiḥ pṛthag dvayaiḥ sarvair abhighātād viṣād api | dvi-dhā vā nijam āgantuṃ sarvāṅgaikāṅga-jaṃ ca tam || 23 || pṛthūnnata-grathita-tā-viśeṣaiś ca tri-dhā viduḥ | sāmānya-hetuḥ śophānāṃ doṣa-jānāṃ viśeṣataḥ || 24 || vyādhi-karmopavāsādi-kṣīṇasya bhajato drutam | ati-mātram athānyasya gurv-amla-snigdha-śītalam || 25 || 13.25bv -kṣīṇasya bhajato dravam 13.25cv ati-mātram athānnaṃ ca lavaṇa-kṣāra-tīkṣṇoṣṇa-śākāmbu svapna-jāgaram | mṛd-grāmya-māṃsa-vallūram a-jīrṇa-śrama-maithunam || 26 || padāter mārga-gamanaṃ yānena kṣobhiṇāpi vā | śvāsa-kāsātisārārśo-jaṭhara-pradara-jvarāḥ || 27 || viṣūcy-alasaka-cchardi-garbha-visarpa-pāṇḍavaḥ | anye ca mithyopakrāntās tair doṣā vakṣasi sthitāḥ || 28 || 13.28bv -garbha-visarpa-pāṇḍu-tā ūrdhvaṃ śopham adho vastau madhye kurvanti madhya-gāḥ | sarvāṅga-gāḥ sarva-gataṃ pratyaṅgeṣu tad-āśrayāḥ || 29 || tat-pūrva-rūpaṃ davathuḥ sirāyāmo 'ṅga-gauravam | vātāc chophaś calo rūkṣaḥ khara-romāruṇāsitaḥ || 30 || saṃkoca-spanda-harṣārti-toda-bheda-prasupti-mān | kṣiprotthāna-śamaḥ śīghram unnamet pīḍitas tanuḥ || 31 || snigdhoṣṇa-mardanaiḥ śāmyed rātrāv alpo divā mahān | tvak ca sarṣapa-lipteva tasmiṃś cimicimāyate || 32 || pīta-raktāsitābhāsaḥ pittād ā-tāmra-roma-kṛt | śīghrānusāra-praśamo madhye prāg jāyate tanuḥ || 33 || sa-tṛḍ-dāha-jvara-sveda-dava-kleda-mada-bhramaḥ | śītābhilāṣī viḍ-bhedī gandhī sparśā-saho mṛduḥ || 34 || kaṇḍū-mān pāṇḍu-roma-tvak kaṭhinaḥ śītalo guruḥ | snigdhaḥ ślakṣṇaḥ sthiraḥ styāno nidrā-chardy-agni-sāda-kṛt || 35 || ākrānto nonnamet kṛcchra-śama-janmā niśā-balaḥ | sraven nāsṛk cirāt picchāṃ kuśa-śastrādi-vikṣataḥ || 36 || sparśoṣṇa-kāṅkṣī ca kaphād yathā-svaṃ dvandva-jās trayaḥ | saṃkarād dhetu-liṅgānāṃ nicayān nicayātmakaḥ || 37 || abhighātena śastrādi-ccheda-bheda-kṣatādibhiḥ | himāniloda-dhy-anilair bhallāta-kapikacchu-jaiḥ || 38 || 13.38cv himānaloda-dhy-anilair rasaiḥ śūkaiś ca saṃsparśāc chvayathuḥ syād visarpa-vān | bhṛśoṣmā lohitābhāsaḥ prāya-śaḥ pitta-lakṣaṇaḥ || 39 || viṣa-jaḥ sa-viṣa-prāṇi-parisarpaṇa-mūtraṇāt | daṃṣṭrā-danta-nakhāpātād a-viṣa-prāṇinām api || 40 || 13.40cv daṃṣṭrā-danta-nakhāghātād viṇ-mūtra-śukropahata-mala-vad-vastra-saṃkarāt | viṣa-vṛkṣānila-sparśād gara-yogāvacūrṇanāt || 41 || 13.41bv -mala-vad-vastra-dhāraṇāt mṛduś calo 'valambī ca śīghro dāha-rujā-karaḥ | navo 'n-upadravaḥ śophaḥ sādhyo '-sādhyaḥ pureritaḥ || 42 || syād visarpo 'bhighātāntair doṣair dūṣyaiś ca śopha-vat | try-adhiṣṭhānaṃ ca taṃ prāhur bāhyāntar-ubhayāśrayāt || 43 || yathottaraṃ ca duḥ-sādhyās tatra doṣā yathā-yatham | prakopaṇaiḥ prakupitā viśeṣeṇa vidāhibhiḥ || 44 || dehe śīghraṃ visarpanti te 'ntar antaḥ-sthitā bahiḥ | bahiḥ-sthā dvitaye dvi-sthā vidyāt tatrāntar-āśrayam || 45 || marmopatāpāt saṃmohād ayanānāṃ vighaṭṭanāt | tṛṣṇāti-yogād vegānāṃ viṣamaṃ ca pravartanāt || 46 || 13.46av marmopaghātāt saṃmohād 13.46dv viṣamāc ca pravartanāt āśu cāgni-bala-bhraṃśād ato bāhyaṃ viparyayāt | tatra vātāt parīsarpo vāta-jvara-sama-vyathaḥ || 47 || śopha-sphuraṇa-nistoda-bhedāyāmārti-harṣa-vān | pittād druta-gatiḥ pitta-jvara-liṅgo 'ti-lohitaḥ || 48 || kaphāt kaṇḍū-yutaḥ snigdhaḥ kapha-jvara-samāna-ruk | sva-doṣa-liṅgaiś cīyante sarve sphoṭair upekṣitāḥ || 49 || te pakva-bhinnāḥ svaṃ svaṃ ca bibhrati vraṇa-lakṣaṇam | vāta-pittāj jvara-cchardi-mūrchātīsāra-tṛḍ-bhramaiḥ || 50 || asthi-bhedāgni-sadana-tamakā-rocakair yutaḥ | karoti sarvam aṅgaṃ ca dīptāṅgārāvakīrṇa-vat || 51 || yaṃ yaṃ deśaṃ visarpaś ca visarpati bhavet sa saḥ | śāntāṅgārāsito nīlo rakto vāśu ca cīyate || 52 || agni-dagdha iva sphoṭaiḥ śīghra-ga-tvād drutaṃ ca saḥ | marmānusārī vīsarpaḥ syād vāto 'ti-balas tataḥ || 53 || vyathetāṅgaṃ haret saṃjñāṃ nidrāṃ ca śvāsam īrayet | hidhmāṃ ca sa gato 'vasthām īdṛśīṃ labhate na nā || 54 || kva-cic charmā-rati-grasto bhūmi-śayyāsanādiṣu | ceṣṭamānas tataḥ kliṣṭo mano-deha-śramodbhavām || 55 || duṣ-prabodho 'śnute nidrāṃ so 'gni-visarpa ucyate | kaphena ruddhaḥ pavano bhittvā taṃ bahu-dhā kapham || 56 || raktaṃ vā vṛddha-raktasya tvak-sirā-snāva-māṃsa-gam | dūṣayitvā ca dīrghāṇu-vṛtta-sthūla-kharātmanām || 57 || granthīnāṃ kurute mālāṃ raktānāṃ tīvra-rug-jvarām | śvāsa-kāsātisārāsya-śoṣa-hidhmā-vami-bhramaiḥ || 58 || moha-vaivarṇya-mūrchāṅga-bhaṅgāgni-sadanair yutām | ity ayaṃ granthi-vīsarpaḥ kapha-māruta-kopa-jaḥ || 59 || kapha-pittāj jvaraḥ stambho nidrā-tandrā-śiro-rujaḥ | aṅgāvasāda-vikṣepa-pralāpā-rocaka-bhramāḥ || 60 || mūrchāgni-hānir bhedo 'sthnāṃ pipāsendriya-gauravam | āmopaveśanaṃ lepaḥ srotasāṃ sa ca sarpati || 61 || prāyeṇāmāśaye gṛhṇann eka-deśaṃ na cāti-ruk | piṭikair avakīrṇo 'ti-pīta-lohita-pāṇḍuraiḥ || 62 || mecakābho 'sitaḥ snigdho malinaḥ śopha-vān guruḥ | gambhīra-pākaḥ prājyoṣmā spṛṣṭaḥ klinno 'vadīryate || 63 || 13.63av mecakābho 'sita-snigdho paṅka-vac-chīrṇa-māṃsaś ca spaṣṭa-snāyu-sirā-gaṇaḥ | śava-gandhiś ca vīsarpaṃ kardamākhyam uśanti tam || 64 || sarva-jo lakṣaṇaiḥ sarvaiḥ sarva-dhātv-atisarpaṇaḥ | bāhya-hetoḥ kṣatāt kruddhaḥ sa-raktaṃ pittam īrayan || 65 || 13.65bv sarva-dhātv-abhisarpaṇaḥ visarpaṃ mārutaḥ kuryāt kulattha-sadṛśaiś citam | sphoṭaiḥ śopha-jvara-rujā-dāhāḍhyaṃ śyāva-lohitam || 66 || pṛthag doṣais trayaḥ sādhyā dvandva-jāś cān-upadravāḥ | a-sādhyau kṣata-sarvotthau sarve cākrānta-marmakāḥ || 67 || śīrṇa-snāyu-sirā-māṃsāḥ praklinnāḥ śava-gandhayaḥ || 67ū̆ab || Nidānasthāna mithyāhāra-vihāreṇa viśeṣeṇa virodhinā | sādhu-nindā-vadhānya-sva-haraṇādyaiś ca sevitaiḥ || 1 || pāpmabhiḥ karmabhiḥ sadyaḥ prāktanair veritā malāḥ | sirāḥ prapadya tiryag-gās tvag-lasīkāsṛg-āmiṣam || 2 || 14.2bv prāktanaiḥ preritā malāḥ dūṣayanti ślathī-kṛtya niścarantas tato bahiḥ | tvacaḥ kurvanti vaivarṇyaṃ duṣṭāḥ kuṣṭham uśanti tat || 3 || 14.3av dūṣayantaḥ ślathī-kṛtya kālenopekṣitaṃ yasmāt sarvaṃ kuṣṇāti tad vapuḥ | prapadya dhātūn vyāpyāntaḥ sarvān saṃkledya cāvahet || 4 || sa-sveda-kleda-saṃkothān kṛmīn sūkṣmān su-dāruṇān | roma-tvak-snāyu-dhamanī-taruṇāsthīni yaiḥ kramāt || 5 || bhakṣayec chvitram asmāc ca kuṣṭha-bāhyam udāhṛtam | kuṣṭhāni sapta-dhā doṣaiḥ pṛthaṅ miśraiḥ samāgataiḥ || 6 || 14.6dv pṛthag dvandvaiḥ samāgataiḥ sarveṣv api tri-doṣeṣu vyapadeśo 'dhika-tvataḥ | vātena kuṣṭhaṃ kāpālaṃ pittād audumbaraṃ kaphāt || 7 || maṇḍalākhyaṃ vicarcī ca ṛkṣākhyaṃ vāta-pitta-jam | carmaika-kuṣṭha-kiṭibha-sidhmālasa-vipādikāḥ || 8 || 14.8bv ṛkṣākṣaṃ vāta-pitta-jam vāta-śleṣmodbhavāḥ śleṣma-pittād dadrū-śatāruṣī | puṇḍarīkaṃ sa-visphoṭaṃ pāmā carma-dalaṃ tathā || 9 || sarvaiḥ syāt kākaṇaṃ pūrvaṃ trikaṃ dadru sa-kākaṇam | puṇḍarīkarkṣa-jihve ca mahā-kuṣṭhāni sapta tu || 10 || 14.10bv trikaṃ dadrūḥ sa-kākaṇā 14.10cv puṇḍarīkarśya-jihve ca ati-ślakṣṇa-khara-sparśa-khedā-sveda-vi-varṇa-tāḥ | dāhaḥ kaṇḍūs tvaci svāpas todaḥ koṭhonnatiḥ śramaḥ || 11 || vraṇānām adhikaṃ śūlaṃ śīghrotpattiś cira-sthitiḥ | rūḍhānām api rūkṣa-tvaṃ nimitte 'lpe 'pi kopanam || 12 || roma-harṣo 'sṛjaḥ kārṣṇyam kuṣṭha-lakṣaṇam agra-jam | kṛṣṇāruṇa-kapālābhaṃ rūkṣaṃ suptaṃ kharaṃ tanu || 13 || vistṛtā-sama-pary-antaṃ hṛṣitair romabhiś citam | todāḍhyam alpa-kaṇḍūkaṃ kāpālaṃ śīghra-sarpi ca || 14 || 14.14bv dūṣitair romabhiś citam pakvodumbara-tāmra-tvag-roma gaura-sirā-citam | bahalaṃ bahala-kleda-raktaṃ dāha-rujādhikam || 15 || 14.15bv -roma gaura-sirā-tatam 14.15cv bahulaṃ bahula-kleda- āśūtthānāvadaraṇa-kṛmi vidyād udumbaram | sthiraṃ styānaṃ guru snigdhaṃ śveta-raktam an-āśu-gam || 16 || anyo-'nya-saktam utsannaṃ bahu-kaṇḍū-sruti-krimi | ślakṣṇa-pītābha-pary-antaṃ maṇḍalaṃ parimaṇḍalam || 17 || 14.17av anyo-'nya-saktam ucchūnaṃ 14.17av anyo-'nya-saktam utsaṅgaṃ sa-kaṇḍū-piṭikā śyāvā lasīkāḍhyā vicarcikā | paruṣaṃ tanu raktāntam antaḥ-śyāvaṃ samunnatam || 18 || sa-toda-dāha-ruk-kledaṃ karkaśaiḥ piṭikaiś citam | ṛkṣa-jihvākṛti proktam ṛkṣa-jihvaṃ bahu-krimi || 19 || 14.19cv ṛśya-jihvākṛti proktam 14.19dv ṛśya-jihvaṃ bahu-krimi hasti-carma-khara-sparśaṃ carmaikākhyaṃ mahāśrayam | a-svedaṃ matsya-śakala-saṃnibhaṃ kiṭibhaṃ punaḥ || 20 || rūkṣaṃ kiṇa-khara-sparśaṃ kaṇḍū-mat paruṣāsitam | sidhmaṃ rūkṣaṃ bahiḥ snigdham antar ghṛṣṭaṃ rajaḥ kiret || 21 || ślakṣṇa-sparśaṃ tanu śveta-tāmraṃ daugdhika-puṣpa-vat | prāyeṇa cordhva-kāye syād gaṇḍaiḥ kaṇḍū-yutaiś citam || 22 || raktair alasakaṃ pāṇi-pāda-dāryo vipādikāḥ | tīvrārtyo manda-kaṇḍvaś ca sa-rāga-piṭikācitāḥ || 23 || dīrgha-pratānā dūrvā-vad atasī-kusuma-cchaviḥ | utsanna-maṇḍalā dadrūḥ kaṇḍū-maty anuṣaṅgiṇī || 24 || sthūla-mūlaṃ sa-dāhārti rakta-śyāvaṃ bahu-vraṇam | śatāruḥ kleda-jantv-āḍhyaṃ prāya-śaḥ parva-janma ca || 25 || raktāntam antarā pāṇḍu kaṇḍū-dāha-rujānvitam | sotsedham ācitaṃ raktaiḥ padma-pattram ivāṃśubhiḥ || 26 || ghana-bhūri-lasīkāsṛk-prāyam āśu vibhedi ca | puṇḍarīkaṃ tanu-tvagbhiś citaṃ sphoṭaiḥ sitāruṇaiḥ || 27 || visphoṭaṃ piṭikāḥ pāmā kaṇḍū-kleda-rujādhikāḥ | sūkṣmāḥ śyāvāruṇā bahvyaḥ prāyaḥ sphik-pāṇi-kūrpare || 28 || sa-sphoṭam a-sparśa-sahaṃ kaṇḍūṣā-toda-dāha-vat | raktaṃ dalac carma-dalaṃ kākaṇaṃ tīvra-dāha-ruk || 29 || pūrvaṃ raktaṃ ca kṛṣṇaṃ ca kākaṇantī-phalopamam | kuṣṭha-liṅgair yutaṃ sarvair naika-varṇaṃ tato bhavet || 30 || doṣa-bhedīya-vihitair ādiśel liṅga-karmabhiḥ | kuṣṭheṣu doṣolbaṇa-tāṃ sarva-doṣolbaṇaṃ tyajet || 31 || riṣṭoktaṃ yac ca yac cāsthi-majja-śukra-samāśrayam | yāpyaṃ medo-gataṃ kṛcchraṃ pitta-dvandvāsra-māṃsa-gam || 32 || a-kṛcchraṃ kapha-vātāḍhyaṃ tvak-stham eka-malaṃ ca yat | tatra tvaci sthite kuṣṭhe toda-vaivarṇya-rūkṣa-tāḥ || 33 || sveda-svāpa-śvayathavaḥ śoṇite piśite punaḥ | pāṇi-pādāśritāḥ sphoṭāḥ kledaḥ saṃdhiṣu cādhikam || 34 || kauṇyaṃ gati-kṣayo 'ṅgānāṃ dalanaṃ syāc ca medasi | nāsā-bhaṅgo 'sthi-majja-sthe netra-rāgaḥ svara-kṣayaḥ || 35 || kṣate ca kṛmayaḥ śukre sva-dārāpatya-bādhanam | yathā-pūrvaṃ ca sarvāṇi syur liṅgāny asṛg-ādiṣu || 36 || 14.36bv sva-dārāpatya-dhāvanam kuṣṭhaika-saṃbhavaṃ śvitraṃ kilāsaṃ dāruṇaṃ ca tat | nirdiṣṭam a-parisrāvi tri-dhātūdbhava-saṃśrayam || 37 || 14.37bv kilāsaṃ cāruṇaṃ ca tat vātād rūkṣāruṇaṃ pittāt tāmraṃ kamala-pattra-vat | sa-dāhaṃ roma-vidhvaṃsi kaphāc chvetaṃ ghanaṃ guru || 38 || sa-kaṇḍu ca kramād rakta-māṃsa-medaḥsu cādiśet | varṇenaivedṛg ubhayaṃ kṛcchraṃ tac cottarottaram || 39 || a-śukla-romā-bahalam a-saṃsṛṣṭaṃ mitho navam | an-agni-dagdha-jaṃ sādhyaṃ śvitraṃ varjyam ato 'nya-thā || 40 || 14.40av a-śukla-romā-bahulam 14.40bv a-saṃsṛṣṭam atho navam guhya-pāṇi-talauṣṭheṣu jātam apy a-ciran-tanam | sparśaikāhāra-śayyādi-sevanāt prāya-śo gadāḥ || 41 || sarve saṃcāriṇo netra-tvag-vikārā viśeṣataḥ | kṛmayas tu dvi-dhā proktā bāhyābhyantara-bhedataḥ || 42 || bahir-mala-kaphāsṛg-viḍ-janma-bhedāc catur-vidhāḥ | nāmato viṃśati-vidhā bāhyās tatrā-mṛjodbhavāḥ || 43 || 14.43dv bāhyās tatra malodbhavāḥ 14.43dv bāhyās tatrāsṛg-udbhavāḥ tila-pramāṇa-saṃsthāna-varṇāḥ keśāmbarāśrayāḥ | bahu-pādāś ca sūkṣmāś ca yūkā likṣāś ca nāmataḥ || 44 || dvi-dhā te koṭha-piṭikā-kaṇḍū-gaṇḍān prakurvate | kuṣṭhaika-hetavo 'ntar-jāḥ śleṣma-jās teṣu cādhikam || 45 || madhurānna-guḍa-kṣīra-dadhi-saktu-navaudanaiḥ | śakṛj-jā bahu-viḍ-dhānya-parṇa-śākolakādibhiḥ || 46 || 14.46av madhurāmla-guḍa-kṣīra- 14.46dv -parṇa-śākaukulādibhiḥ kaphād āmāśaye jātā vṛddhāḥ sarpanti sarvataḥ | pṛthu-bradhna-nibhāḥ ke-cit ke-cid gaṇḍū-padopamāḥ || 47 || rūḍha-dhānyāṅkurākārās tanu-dīrghās tathāṇavaḥ | śvetās tāmrāvabhāsāś ca nāmataḥ sapta-dhā tu te || 48 || antrādā udarāveṣṭā hṛdayādā mahā-kuhāḥ | kuravo darbha-kusumāḥ su-gandhās te ca kurvate || 49 || 14.49av antrādā udarāviṣṭā 14.49bv hṛdayādā mahā-ruhāḥ 14.49cv curavo darbha-kusumāḥ hṛl-lāsam āsya-sravaṇam a-vipākam a-rocakam | mūrchā-chardi-jvarānāha-kārśya-kṣavathu-pīnasān || 50 || rakta-vāhi-sirotthānā rakta-jā jantavo 'ṇavaḥ | a-pādā vṛtta-tāmrāś ca saukṣmyāt ke-cid a-darśanāḥ || 51 || 14.51av rakta-vāhi-sirā-sthānād 14.51av rakta-vāhi-sirā-sthānā keśādā roma-vidhvaṃsā roma-dvīpā udumbarāḥ | ṣaṭ te kuṣṭhaika-karmāṇaḥ saha-saurasa-mātaraḥ || 52 || 14.52dc saha-jā rasa-mātaraḥ pakvāśaye purīṣotthā jāyante 'dho-visarpiṇaḥ | vṛddhāḥ santo bhaveyuś ca te yadāmāśayon-mukhāḥ || 53 || 14.53cv vṛddhās te syur bhaveyuś ca tadāsyodgāra-niḥśvāsā viḍ-gandhānuvidhāyinaḥ | pṛthu-vṛtta-tanu-sthūlāḥ śyāva-pīta-sitāsitāḥ || 54 || te pañca nāmnā kṛmayaḥ kakeruka-makerukāḥ | sausurādāḥ sulūnākhyā lelihā janayanti ca || 55 || 14.55av sausurādāḥ śalūnākhyā viḍ-bheda-śūla-viṣṭambha-kārśya-pāruṣya-pāṇḍu-tāḥ | roma-harṣāgni-sadana-guda-kaṇḍūr vinirgamāt || 56 || 14.56dv -guda-kaṇḍūr vinirgatāḥ 14.56dv -guda-kaṇḍūr vi-mārga-gāḥ Nidānasthāna sarvārthān-artha-karaṇe viśvasyāsyaika-kāraṇam | a-duṣṭa-duṣṭaḥ pavanaḥ śarīrasya viśeṣataḥ || 1 || sa viśva-karmā viśvātmā viśva-rūpaḥ prajāpatiḥ | sraṣṭā dhātā vibhur viṣṇuḥ saṃhartā mṛtyur antakaḥ || 2 || tad-a-duṣṭau prayatnena yatitavyam ataḥ sadā | tasyoktaṃ doṣa-vijñāne karma prākṛta-vaikṛtam || 3 || samāsād vyāsato doṣa-bhedīye nāma dhāma ca | praty-ekaṃ pañca-dhā cāro vyāpāraś ceha vaikṛtam || 4 || tasyocyate vibhāgena sa-nidānaṃ sa-lakṣaṇam | dhātu-kṣaya-karair vāyuḥ kupyaty ati-niṣevitaiḥ || 5 || a-saṃkhyam api saṃkhyāya yad aśītyā pureritam 5.1+(1)ab || 15.5.1+(1)bv yathāśīty apareritam caran srotaḥsu rikteṣu bhṛśaṃ tāny eva pūrayan | tebhyo 'nya-doṣa-pūrṇebhyaḥ prāpya vāvaraṇaṃ balī || 6 || tatra pakvāśaye kruddhaḥ śūlānāhāntra-kūjanam | mala-rodhāśma-vardhmārśas-trika-pṛṣṭha-kaṭī-graham || 7 || karoty adhara-kāye ca tāṃs tān kṛcchrān upadravān | āmāśaye tṛḍ-vamathu-śvāsa-kāsa-viṣūcikāḥ || 8 || 15.8av karoty adhara-kāyeṣu kaṇṭhoparodham udgārān vyādhīn ūrdhvaṃ ca nābhitaḥ | śrotrādiṣv indriya-vadhaṃ tvaci sphuṭana-rūkṣa-te || 9 || rakte tīvrā rujaḥ svāpaṃ tāpaṃ rāgaṃ vi-varṇa-tām | arūṃṣy annasya viṣṭambham a-ruciṃ kṛśa-tāṃ bhramam || 10 || 15.10cv arūṃṣy aṅgasya viṣṭambham māṃsa-medo-gato granthīṃs todāḍhyān karkaśāñ chramam | gurv aṅgaṃ cāti-ruk stabdhaṃ muṣṭi-daṇḍa-hatopamam || 11 || 15.11bv todāḍhyān karkaśāñ chramān 15.11bv todāḍhyān karkaśān bhṛśam asthi-sthaḥ sakthi-saṃdhy-asthi-śūlaṃ tīvraṃ bala-kṣayam | majja-stho 'sthiṣu sauṣiryam a-svapnaṃ saṃtatāṃ rujam || 12 || 15.12dv a-svapnaṃ stabdha-tāṃ rujam śukrasya śīghram utsargaṃ saṅgaṃ vikṛtim eva vā | tad-vad garbhasya śukra-sthaḥ sirāsv ādhmāna-rikta-te || 13 || tat-sthaḥ snāva-sthitaḥ kuryād gṛdhrasy-āyāma-kubja-tāḥ | vāta-pūrṇa-dṛti-sparśaṃ śophaṃ saṃdhi-gato 'nilaḥ || 14 || 15.14bv gṛdhrasy-āyāma-kubja-tām prasāraṇākuñcanayoḥ pravṛttiṃ ca sa-vedanām | sarvāṅga-saṃśrayas toda-bheda-sphuraṇa-bhañjanam || 15 || stambhanākṣepaṇa-svāpa-saṃdhy-ākuñcana-kampanam | yadā tu dhamanīḥ sarvāḥ kruddho 'bhyeti muhur muhuḥ || 16 || tadāṅgam ākṣipaty eṣa vyādhir ākṣepakaḥ smṛtaḥ | adhaḥ pratihato vāyur vrajann ūrdhvaṃ hṛd-āśritāḥ || 17 || 15.17dv vrajann ūrdhvaṃ hṛd-āśrayāḥ nāḍīḥ praviśya hṛdayaṃ śiraḥ śaṅkhau ca pīḍayan | ākṣipet parito gātraṃ dhanur-vac cāsya nāmayet || 18 || 15.18bv śiraḥ śaṅkhau ca pīḍayet kṛcchrād ucchvasiti stabdha-srasta-mīlita-dṛk tataḥ | kapota iva kūjec ca niḥ-saṃjñaḥ so 'patantrakaḥ || 19 || sa eva cāpatānākyho mukte tu marutā hṛdi | aśnuvīta muhuḥ svāsthyaṃ muhur a-svāsthyam āvṛte || 20 || 15.20cv aśnuvīta iva svāsthyaṃ garbha-pāta-samutpannaḥ śoṇitāti-sravotthitaḥ | abhighāta-samutthaś ca duś-cikitsya-tamo hi saḥ || 21 || manye saṃstabhya vāto 'ntar āyacchan dhamanīr yadā | vyāpnoti sakalaṃ dehaṃ jatrur āyamyate tadā || 22 || 15.22bv āgacchan dhamanīr yadā antar dhanur ivāṅgaṃ ca vegaiḥ stambhaṃ ca netrayoḥ | karoti jṛmbhāṃ daśanaṃ daśanānāṃ kaphodvamam || 23 || pārśvayor vedanāṃ vākya-hanu-pṛṣṭha-śiro-graham | antar-āyāma ity eṣa bāhyāyāmaś ca tad-vidhaḥ || 24 || dehasya bahir-āyāmāt pṛṣṭhato nīyate śiraḥ | uraś cotkṣipyate tatra kandharā cāvamṛdyate || 25 || 15.25bv pṛṣṭhato hriyate śiraḥ danteṣv āsye ca vaivarṇyaṃ prasvedaḥ srasta-gātra-tā | bāhyāyāmaṃ dhanuḥ-ṣkambhaṃ bruvate veginaṃ ca tam || 26 || 15.26cv bāhyāyāmaṃ dhanuḥ-stambhaṃ vraṇaṃ marmāśritaṃ prāpya samīraṇa-samīraṇāt | vyāyacchanti tanuṃ doṣāḥ sarvām ā-pāda-mastakam || 27 || 15.27av vraṇaṃ marmāśrayaṃ prāpya tṛṣyataḥ pāṇḍu-gātrasya vraṇāyāmaḥ sa varjitaḥ | gate vege bhavet svāsthyaṃ sarveṣv ākṣepakeṣu ca || 28 || 15.28dv sarveṣv ākṣepakeṣu tu jihvāti-lekhanāc chuṣka-bhakṣaṇād abhighātataḥ | kupito hanu-mūla-sthaḥ sraṃsayitvānilo hanū || 29 || karoti vivṛtāsya-tvam atha-vā saṃvṛtāsya-tām | hanu-sraṃsaḥ sa tena syāt kṛcchrāc carvaṇa-bhāṣaṇam || 30 || vāg-vāhinī-sirā-saṃstho jihvāṃ stambhayate 'nilaḥ | jihvā-stambhaḥ sa tenānna-pāna-vākyeṣv an-īśa-tā || 31 || śirasā bhāra-haraṇād ati-hāsya-prabhāṣaṇāt | uttrāsa-vaktra-kṣavathoḥ khara-kārmuka-karṣaṇāt || 32 || 15.32cv ucchvāsa-vakra-kṣavathu- 15.32cv uttrāsa-vaktra-kṣavathu- 15.32dv -khara-kārmuka-karṣaṇāt viṣamād upadhānāc ca kaṭhinānāṃ ca carvaṇāt | vāyur vivṛddhas tais taiś ca vātalair ūrdhvam āsthitaḥ || 33 || vakrī-karoti vaktrārdham uktaṃ hasitam īkṣitam | tato 'sya kampate mūrdhā vāk-saṅgaḥ stabdha-netra-tā || 34 || 15.34dv vāg-bhaṅgaḥ stabdha-netra-tā danta-cālaḥ svara-bhraṃśaḥ śruti-hāniḥ kṣava-grahaḥ | gandhā-jñānaṃ smṛter mohas trāsaḥ suptasya jāyate || 35 || niṣṭhīvaḥ pārśvato yāyād ekasyākṣṇo nimīlanam | jatror ūrdhvaṃ rujā tīvrā śarīrārdhe 'dhare 'pi vā || 36 || tam āhur arditaṃ ke-cid ekāyāmam athāpare | raktam āśritya pavanaḥ kuryān mūrdha-dharāḥ sirāḥ || 37 || rūkṣāḥ sa-vedanāḥ kṛṣṇāḥ so '-sādhyaḥ syāt sirā-grahaḥ | gṛhītvārdhaṃ tanor vāyuḥ sirāḥ snāyūr viśoṣya ca || 38 || pakṣam anya-taraṃ hanti saṃdhi-bandhān vimokṣayan | kṛtsno 'rdha-kāyas tasya syād a-karmaṇyo vi-cetanaḥ || 39 || ekāṅga-rogaṃ taṃ ke-cid anye pakṣa-vadhaṃ viduḥ | sarvāṅga-rogaṃ tad-vac ca sarva-kāyāśrite 'nile || 40 || śuddha-vāta-hataḥ pakṣaḥ kṛcchra-sādhya-tamo mataḥ | kṛcchras tv anyena saṃsṛṣṭo vivarjyaḥ kṣaya-hetukaḥ || 41 || āma-baddhāyanaḥ kuryāt saṃsthabhyāṅgaṃ kaphānvitaḥ | a-sādhyaṃ hata-sarvehaṃ daṇḍa-vad daṇḍakaṃ marut || 42 || aṃsa-mūla-sthito vāyuḥ sirāḥ saṃkocya tatra-gāḥ | bāhu-praspandita-haraṃ janayaty ava-bāhukam || 43 || talaṃ praty aṅgulīnāṃ yā kaṇḍarā bāhu-pṛṣṭhataḥ | bāhu-ceṣṭāpaharaṇī viśvācī nāma sā smṛtā || 44 || 15.44cv bāhvoḥ karma-kṣaya-karī vāyuḥ kaṭyāṃ sthitaḥ sakthnaḥ kaṇḍarām ākṣiped yadā | tadā khañjo bhavej jantuḥ paṅguḥ sakthnor dvayor api || 45 || kampate gamanārambhe khañjann iva ca yāti yaḥ | kalāya-khañjaṃ taṃ vidyān mukta-saṃdhi-prabandhanam || 46 || śītoṣṇa-drava-saṃśuṣka-guru-snigdhair niṣevitaiḥ | jīrṇā-jīrṇe tathāyāsa-saṃkṣobha-svapna-jāgaraiḥ || 47 || sa-śleṣma-medaḥ-pavanam āmam aty-artha-saṃcitam | abhibhūyetaraṃ doṣam ūrū cet pratipadyate || 48 || sakthy-asthīni prapūryāntaḥ śleṣmaṇā stimitena tat | tadā skabhnāti tenorū stabdhau śītāvacetanau || 49 || 15.49cv tadā skandati tenorū 15.49cv tadā skannāti tenorū parakīyāv iva gurū syātām ati-bhṛśa-vyathau | dhyānāṅga-marda-staimitya-tandrā-chardy-a-ruci-jvaraiḥ || 50 || saṃyutau pāda-sadana-kṛcchroddharaṇa-suptibhiḥ | tam ūru-stambham ity āhur āḍhya-vātam athāpare || 51 || 15.51av saṃyuktau pāda-sadana- vāta-śoṇita-jaḥ śopho jānu-madhye mahā-rujaḥ | jñeyaḥ kroṣṭuka-śīrṣaś ca sthūlaḥ kroṣṭuka-śīrṣa-vat || 52 || 15.52dv sthūlaḥ kroṣṭuka-mūrdha-vat ruk pāde viṣama-nyaste śramād vā jāyate yadā | vātena gulpham āśritya tam āhur vāta-kaṇṭakam || 53 || pārṣṇiṃ praty aṅgulīnāṃ yā kaṇḍarā mārutārditā | sakthy-utkṣepaṃ nigṛhṇāti gṛdhrasīṃ tāṃ pracakṣate || 54 || viśvācī gṛdhrasī coktā khallis tīvra-rujānvite | hṛṣyete caraṇau yasya bhavetāṃ ca prasupta-vat || 55 || 15.55bv khallis tīvra-rujānvitā pāda-harṣaḥ sa vijñeyaḥ kapha-māruta-kopa-jaḥ | pādayoḥ kurute dāhaṃ pittāsṛk-sahito 'nilaḥ || 56 || viśeṣataś caṅkramite pāda-dāhaṃ tam ādiśet || 56ū̆ab || 15.56ū̆av viśeṣataś caṅkramataḥ Nidānasthāna vidāhy annaṃ viruddhaṃ ca tat tac cāsṛk-pradūṣaṇam | bhajatāṃ vidhi-hīnaṃ ca svapna-jāgara-maithunam || 1 || 16.1bv tat tathāsṛk-pradūṣaṇam prāyeṇa su-kumārāṇām a-caṅkramaṇa-śīlinām | abhighātād a-śuddheś ca nṛṇām asṛji dūṣite || 2 || vātalaiḥ śītalair vāyur vṛddhaḥ kruddho vi-mārga-gaḥ | tādṛśaivāsṛjā ruddhaḥ prāk tad eva pradūṣayet || 3 || 16.3cv tādṛśenāsṛjā ruddhaḥ āḍhya-rogaṃ khuḍaṃ vāta-balāsaṃ vāta-śoṇitam | tad āhur nāmabhis tac ca pūrvaṃ pādau pradhāvati || 4 || 16.4bv -palāśaṃ vāta-śoṇitam viśeṣād yāna-yānād yaiḥ pralambau tasya lakṣaṇam | bhaviṣyataḥ kuṣṭha-samaṃ tathā sādaḥ ślathāṅga-tā || 5 || jānu-jaṅghoru-kaṭy-aṃsa-hasta-pādāṅga-saṃdhiṣu | kaṇḍū-sphuraṇa-nistoda-bheda-gaurava-supta-tāḥ || 6 || bhūtvā bhūtvā praṇaśyanti muhur āvir-bhavanti ca | pādayor mūlam āsthāya kadā-cid dhastayor api || 7 || ākhor iva viṣaṃ kruddhaṃ kṛtsnaṃ dehaṃ vidhāvati | tvaṅ-māṃsāśrayam uttānaṃ tat pūrvaṃ jāyate tataḥ || 8 || kālāntareṇa gambhīraṃ sarvān dhātūn abhidravat | kaṇḍv-ādi-saṃyutottāne tvak tāmrā śyāva-lohitā || 9 || sāyāmā bhṛśa-dāhoṣā gambhīre 'dhika-pūrva-ruk | śvayathur grathitaḥ pākī vāyuḥ saṃdhy-asthi-majjasu || 10 || chindann iva caraty antar vakrī-kurvaṃś ca vega-vān | karoti khañjaṃ paṅguṃ vā śarīre sarvataś caran || 11 || 16.11av chindann iva carann antar vāte 'dhike 'dhikaṃ tatra śūla-sphuraṇa-todanam | śophasya raukṣya-kṛṣṇa-tva-śyāva-tā-vṛddhi-hānayaḥ || 12 || dhamany-aṅguli-saṃdhīnāṃ saṃkoco 'ṅga-graho 'ti-ruk | śīta-dveṣān-upaśayau stambha-vepathu-suptayaḥ || 13 || rakte śopho 'ti-ruk todas tāmraś cimicimāyate | snigdha-rūkṣaiḥ śamaṃ naiti kaṇḍū-kleda-samanvitaḥ || 14 || pitte vidāhaḥ saṃmohaḥ svedo mūrchā madaḥ sa-tṛṭ | sparśā-kṣama-tvaṃ rug rāgaḥ śophaḥ pāko bhṛśoṣma-tā || 15 || kaphe staimitya-guru-tā-supti-snigdha-tva-śita-tāḥ | kaṇḍūr mandā ca rug dvandva-sarva-liṅgaṃ ca saṃkare || 16 || eka-doṣānugaṃ sādhyaṃ navaṃ yāpyaṃ dvi-doṣa-jam | tri-doṣa-jaṃ tyajet srāvi stabdham arbuda-kāri ca || 17 || 16.17cv tri-doṣaṃ tat tyajet srāvi rakta-mārgaṃ nihatyāśu śākhā-saṃdhiṣu mārutaḥ | niviśyānyo-'nyam āvārya vedanābhir haraty asūn || 18 || 16.18av rakta-mārgaṃ nihanty āśu vāyau pañcātmake prāṇo raukṣya-vyāyāma-laṅghanaiḥ | aty-āhārābhighātādhva-vegodīraṇa-dhāraṇaiḥ || 19 || 16.19bv rūkṣa-vyāyāma-laṅghanaiḥ kupitaś cakṣur-ādīnām upaghātaṃ pravartayet | pīnasārdita-tṛṭ-kāsa-śvāsādīṃś cāmayān bahūn || 20 || udānaḥ kṣavathūdgāra-cchardi-nidrā-vidhāraṇaiḥ | guru-bhārāti-rudita-hāsyādyair vikṛto gadān || 21 || 16.21bv -cchardi-nidrāvadhāraṇaiḥ kaṇṭha-rodha-mano-bhraṃśa-cchardy-a-rocaka-pīnasān | kuryāc ca gala-gaṇḍādīṃs tāṃs tāñ jatrūrdhva-saṃśrayān || 22 || vyāno 'ti-gamana-dhyāna-krīḍā-viṣama-ceṣṭitaiḥ | virodhi-rūkṣa-bhī-harṣa-viṣādādyaiś ca dūṣitaḥ || 23 || 16.23av vyāno 'ti-gamana-sthāna- puṃs-tvotsāha-bala-bhraṃśa-śopha-cittotplava-jvarān | sarvāṅga-roga-nistoda-roma-harṣāṅga-supta-tāḥ || 24 || 16.24dv -roma-harṣāṅga-supti-tāḥ kuṣṭhaṃ visarpam anyāṃś ca kuryāt sarvāṅga-gān gadān | samāno viṣamā-jīrṇa-śīta-saṃkīrṇa-bhojanaiḥ || 25 || karoty a-kāla-śayana-jāgarādyaiś ca dūṣitaḥ | śūla-gulma-grahaṇy-ādīn pakvāmāśaya-jān gadān || 26 || apāno rūkṣa-gurv-anna-vegāghātāti-vāhanaiḥ | yāna-yānāsana-sthāna-caṅkramaiś cāti-sevitaiḥ || 27 || 16.27bv -vega-ghātāti-vāhanaiḥ kupitaḥ kurute rogān kṛcchrān pakvāśayāśrayān | mūtra-śukra-pradoṣārśo-guda-bhraṃśādikān bahūn || 28 || sarvaṃ ca mārutaṃ sāmaṃ tandrā-staimitya-gauravaiḥ | snigdha-tvā-rocakālasya-śaitya-śophāgni-hānibhiḥ || 29 || kaṭu-rūkṣābhilāṣeṇa tad-vidhopaśayena ca | yuktaṃ vidyān nir-āmaṃ tu tandrādīnāṃ viparyayāt || 30 || vāyor āvaraṇaṃ cāto bahu-bhedaṃ pravakṣyate | liṅgaṃ pittāvṛte dāhas tṛṣṇā śūlaṃ bhramas tamaḥ || 31 || 16.31bv bahu-bhedaṃ pracakṣyate kaṭukoṣṇāmla-lavaṇair vidāhaḥ śīta-kāma-tā | śaitya-gaurava-śūlāni kaṭv-ādy-upaśayo 'dhikam || 32 || laṅghanāyāsa-rūkṣoṣṇa-kāma-tā ca kaphāvṛte | raktāvṛte sa-dāhārtis tvaṅ-māṃsāntara-jā bhṛśam || 33 || bhavec ca rāgī śvayathur jāyante maṇḍalāni ca | māṃsena kaṭhinaḥ śopho vi-varṇaḥ piṭikās tathā || 34 || harṣaḥ pipīlikānāṃ ca saṃcāra iva jāyate | calaḥ snigdho mṛduḥ śītaḥ śopho gātreṣv a-rocakaḥ || 35 || 16.35av harṣaḥ pipīlikādīnāṃ āḍhya-vāta iti jñeyaḥ sa kṛcchro medasāvṛte | sparśam asthy-āvṛte 'ty-uṣṇaṃ pīḍanaṃ cābhinandati || 36 || sūcyeva tudyate 'ty-artham aṅgaṃ sīdati śūlyate | majjāvṛte vinamanaṃ jṛmbhaṇaṃ pariveṣṭanam || 37 || śūlaṃ ca pīḍyamānena pāṇibhyāṃ labhate sukham | śukrāvṛte 'ti-vego vā na vā niṣ-phala-tāpi vā || 38 || 16.38av śūlaṃ ca pīḍyamāne ca 16.38av śūlaṃ ca pīḍyamāne tu 16.38dv na vā niṣ-phala-tāpi ca bhukte kukṣau rujā jīrṇe śāmyaty annāvṛte 'nile | mūtrā-pravṛttir ādhmānaṃ vaster mūtrāvṛte bhavet || 39 || 16.39dv vastau mūtrāvṛte bhavet viḍ-āvṛte vibandho 'dhaḥ sva-sthāne parikṛntati | vrajaty āśu jarāṃ sneho bhukte cānahyate naraḥ || 40 || 16.40av viḍ-āvṛte 'ti-viḍ-rodhaḥ 16.40bv sve sthāne parikṛntati śakṛt pīḍitam annena duḥkhaṃ śuṣkaṃ cirāt sṛjet | sarva-dhātv-āvṛte vāyau śroṇi-vaṅkṣaṇa-pṛṣṭha-ruk || 41 || vilomo māruto '-svasthaṃ hṛdayaṃ pīḍyate 'ti ca | bhramo mūrchā rujā dāhaḥ pittena prāṇa āvṛte || 42 || 16.42av vilomo māruto '-svāsthyaṃ 16.42cv bhramo mūrchā rujānāhaḥ vidagdhe 'nne ca vamanam udāne 'pi bhramādayaḥ | dāho 'ntar ūrjā-bhraṃśaś ca dāho vyāne ca sarva-gaḥ || 43 || 16.43dv dāho vyāne tu sarva-gaḥ klamo 'ṅga-ceṣṭā-saṅgaś ca sa-saṃtāpaḥ sa-vedanaḥ | samāna ūṣmopahatir ati-svedo '-ratiḥ sa-tṛṭ || 44 || 16.44av klamo 'ṅga-ceṣṭā-bhaṅgaś ca dāhaś ca syād apāne tu male hāridra-varṇa-tā | rajo-'tivṛttis tāpaś ca yoni-mehana-pāyuṣu || 45 || 16.45cv rajo-'ti-vṛddhis tāpaś ca śleṣmaṇā tv āvṛte prāṇe sādas tandrā-rucir vamiḥ | ṣṭhīvanaṃ kṣavathūdgāra-niḥśvāsocchvāsa-saṃgrahaḥ || 46 || udāne guru-gātra-tvam a-rucir vāk-svara-grahaḥ | bala-varṇa-praṇāśaś ca vyāne parvāsthi-vāg-grahaḥ || 47 || 16.47dv vyāne pārśvāsthi-vāg-grahaḥ guru-tāṅgeṣu sarveṣu skhalitaṃ ca gatau bhṛśam | samāne 'ti-himāṅga-tvam a-svedo manda-vahni-tā || 48 || apāne sa-kaphaṃ mūtra-śakṛtaḥ syāt pravartanam | iti dvā-viṃśati-vidhaṃ vāyor āvaraṇaṃ viduḥ || 49 || 16.49av apāne sa-kaphaṃ mūtraṃ 16.49bv śakṛtaḥ syāt pravartanam prāṇādayas tathānyo-'nyam āvṛṇvanti yathā-kramam | sarve 'pi viṃśati-vidhaṃ vidyād āvaraṇaṃ ca tat || 50 || 16.50bv āvṛṇvanti yathā-yatham niḥśvāsocchvāsa-saṃrodhaḥ pratiśyāyaḥ śiro-grahaḥ | hṛd-rogo mukha-śoṣaś ca prāṇenodāna āvṛte || 51 || 16.51cv hṛd-rogo mukha-rogaś ca udānenāvṛte prāṇe varṇaujo-bala-saṃkṣayaḥ | diśānayā ca vibhajet sarvam āvaraṇaṃ bhiṣak || 52 || sthānāny avekṣya vātānāṃ vṛddhiṃ hāniṃ ca karmaṇām | prāṇādīnāṃ ca pañcānāṃ miśram āvaraṇaṃ mithaḥ || 53 || pittādibhir dvā-daśabhir miśrāṇāṃ miśritaiś ca taiḥ | miśraiḥ pittādibhis tad-van miśraṇābhir aneka-dhā || 54 || tāratamya-vikalpāc ca yāty āvṛtir a-saṃkhya-tām | tāṃ lakṣayed avahito yathā-svaṃ lakṣaṇodayāt || 55 || śanaiḥ śanaiś copaśayād gūḍhām api muhur muhuḥ | viśeṣāj jīvitaṃ prāṇa udāno balam ucyate || 56 || syāt tayoḥ pīḍanād dhānir āyuṣaś ca balasya ca | āvṛtā vāyavo '-jñātā jñātā vā vatsaraṃ sthitāḥ || 57 || prayatnenāpi duḥ-sādhyā bhaveyur vān-upakramāḥ | vidradhi-plīha-hṛd-roga-gulmāgni-sadanādayaḥ || 58 || bhavanty upadravās teṣām āvṛtānām upekṣaṇāt || 58ū̆ab || vyādhīnāṃ saṃśayaṃ chettum anyato yo '-pramatta-vān | nidānaṃ satataṃ tena cintanīyaṃ vipaścitā || 58ū̆+1 || Cikitsāsthāna āmāśaya-stho hatvāgniṃ sāmo mārgān pidhāya yat | vidadhāti jvaraṃ doṣas tasmāt kurvīta laṅghanam || 1 || prāg-rūpeṣu jvarādau vā balaṃ yatnena pālayan | balādhiṣṭhānam ārogyam ārogyārthaḥ kriyā-kramaḥ || 2 || 1.2dv ārogyārthaṃ kriyā-kramaḥ laṅghanaiḥ kṣapite doṣe dīpte 'gnau lāghave sati | svāsthyaṃ kṣut tṛḍ ruciḥ paktir balam ojaś ca jāyate || 3 || tatrotkṛṣṭe samutkliṣṭe kapha-prāye cale male | sa-hṛl-lāsa-prasekānna-dveṣa-kāsa-viṣūcike || 4 || sadyo-bhuktasya saṃjāte jvare sāme viśeṣataḥ | vamanaṃ vamanārhasya śastaṃ kuryāt tad anya-thā || 5 || śvāsātīsāra-saṃmoha-hṛd-roga-viṣama-jvarān | pippalībhir yutān gālān kaliṅgair madhukena vā || 6 || uṣṇāmbhasā sa-madhunā pibet sa-lavaṇena vā | paṭola-nimba-karkoṭa-vetra-pattrodakena vā || 7 || tarpaṇena rasenekṣor madyaiḥ kalpoditāni vā | vamanāni prayuñjīta bala-kāla-vibhāga-vit || 8 || kṛte '-kṛte vā vamane jvarī kuryād viśoṣaṇam | doṣāṇāṃ samudīrṇānāṃ pācanāya śamāya ca || 9 || doṣeṇa bhasmanevāgnau channe 'nnaṃ na vipacyate | tasmād ā-doṣa-pacanāj jvaritān upavāsayet || 10 || 1.10av āmena bhasmanevāgnau tṛṣṇag alpālpam uṣṇāmbu pibed vāta-kapha-jvare | tat kaphaṃ vilayaṃ nītvā tṛṣṇām āśu nivartayet || 11 || 1.11av tṛṣyann alpālpam uṣṇāmbu udīrya cāgniṃ srotāṃsi mṛdū-kṛtya viśodhayet | līna-pittānila-sveda-śakṛn-mūtrānulomanam || 12 || nidrā-jāḍyā-ruci-haraṃ prāṇānām avalambanam | viparītam ataḥ śītaṃ doṣa-saṃghāta-vardhanam || 13 || uṣṇam evaṅ-guṇa-tve 'pi yuñjyān naikānta-pittale | udrikta-pitte davathu-dāha-mohātisāriṇi || 14 || viṣa-madyotthite grīṣme kṣata-kṣīṇe 'sra-pittini | ghana-candana-śuṇṭhy-ambu-parpaṭośīra-sādhitam || 15 || śītaṃ tebhyo hitaṃ toyaṃ pācanaṃ tṛḍ-jvarāpaham | ūṣmā pittād ṛte nāsti jvaro nāsty ūṣmaṇā vinā || 16 || tasmāt pitta-viruddhāni tyajet pittādhike 'dhikam | snānābhyaṅga-pradehāṃś ca pariśeṣaṃ ca laṅghanam || 17 || a-jīrṇa iva śūla-ghnaṃ sāme tīvra-ruji jvare | na pibed auṣadhaṃ tad dhi bhūya evāmam āvahet || 18 || āmābhibhūta-koṣṭhasya kṣīraṃ viṣam aher iva | sodarda-pīnasa-śvāse jaṅghā-parvāsthi-śūlini || 19 || 1.19dv jaṅghā-pārśvāsthi-śūlini vāta-śleṣmātmake svedaḥ praśastaḥ sa pravartayet | sveda-mūtra-śakṛd-vātān kuryād agneś ca pāṭavam || 20 || snehoktam ācāra-vidhiṃ sarva-śaś cānupālayet | laṅghanaṃ svedanaṃ kālo yavāgvas tiktako rasaḥ || 21 || 1.21dv yavāgūs tiktako rasaḥ malānāṃ pācanāni syur yathāvasthaṃ krameṇa vā | śuddha-vāta-kṣayāgantu-jīrṇa-jvariṣu laṅghanam || 22 || neṣyate teṣu hi hitaṃ śamanaṃ yan na karśanam | tatra sāma-jvarākṛtyā jānīyād a-viśoṣitam || 23 || 1.23bv śamanaṃ yan na karṣaṇam dvi-vidhopakrama-jñānam avekṣeta ca laṅghane | yuktaṃ laṅghita-liṅgais tu taṃ peyābhir upācaret || 24 || yathā-svauṣadha-siddhābhir maṇḍa-pūrvābhir āditaḥ | ṣaḍ-ahaṃ vā mṛdu-tvaṃ vā jvaro yāvad avāpnuyāt || 25 || tasyāgnir dīpyate tābhiḥ samidbhir iva pāvakaḥ | prāg lāja-peyāṃ su-jarāṃ sa-śuṇṭhī-dhānya-pippalīm || 26 || sa-saindhavāṃ tathāmlārthī tāṃ pibet saha-dāḍimām | sṛṣṭa-viḍ bahu-pitto vā sa-śuṇṭhī-mākṣikāṃ himām || 27 || vasti-pārśva-śiraḥ-śūlī vyāghrī-gokṣura-sādhitām | pṛśniparṇī-balā-bilva-nāgarotpala-dhānyakaiḥ || 28 || siddhāṃ jvarātisāry amlāṃ peyāṃ dīpana-pācanīm | hrasvena pañca-mūlena hikkā-ruk-śvāsa-kāsa-vān || 29 || pañca-mūlena mahatā kaphārto yava-sādhitām | vibaddha-varcāḥ sa-yavāṃ pippaly-āmalakaiḥ kṛtāṃ || 30 || 1.30dv pippaly-āmalakaiḥ śṛtāṃ yavāgūṃ sarpiṣā bhṛṣṭāṃ mala-doṣānulomanīm | cavikā-pippalī-mūla-drākṣāmalaka-nāgaraiḥ || 31 || koṣṭhe vibaddhe sa-ruji pibet tu parikartini | kola-vṛkṣāmla-kalaśī-dhāvanī-śrīphalaiḥ kṛtām || 32 || 1.32dv -dhāvanī-śrī-balā-kṛtām a-sveda-nidras tṛṣṇārtaḥ sitāmalaka-nāgaraiḥ | sitā-badara-mṛdvīkā-śārivā-musta-candanaiḥ || 33 || 1.33av a-sveda-nidrā-tṛṣṇārtaḥ tṛṣṇā-chardi-parīdāha-jvara-ghnīṃ kṣaudra-saṃyutām | kuryāt peyauṣadhair eva rasa-yūṣādikān api || 34 || 1.34av tṛṣṇā-chardi-parīvāra- 1.34av tṛṣṇā-chardi-paro dāha- madyodbhave madya-nitye pitta-sthāna-gate kaphe | grīṣme tayor vādhikayos tṛṭ-chardir-dāha-pīḍite || 35 || 1.35dv tṛṭ-chardi-dāha-pīḍite ūrdhvaṃ pravṛtte rakte ca peyāṃ necchanti teṣu tu | jvarāpahaiḥ phala-rasair adbhir vā lāja-tarpaṇāt || 36 || 1.36dv adbhir vā lāja-tarpaṇam pibet sa-śarkarā-kṣaudrān tato jīrṇe tu tarpaṇe | yavāgvāṃ vaudanaṃ kṣud-vān aśnīyād bhṛṣṭa-taṇḍulam || 37 || 1.37av pibet sa-śarkarā-kṣaudraṃ 1.37bv tato jīrṇe ca tarpaṇe 1.37cv yavāgvām odanaṃ kṣud-vān 1.37cv yavāgvāṃ caudanaṃ kṣud-vān daka-lāvaṇikair yūṣai rasair vā mudga-lāva-jaiḥ | ity ayaṃ ṣaḍ-aho neyo balaṃ doṣaṃ ca rakṣatā || 38 || tataḥ pakveṣu doṣeṣu laṅghanādyaiḥ praśasyate | kaṣāyo doṣa-śeṣasya pācanaḥ śamano 'tha-vā || 39 || tiktaḥ pitte viśeṣeṇa prayojyaḥ kaṭukaḥ kaphe | pitta-śleṣma-hara-tve 'pi kaṣāyaḥ sa na śasyate || 40 || 1.40dv kaṣāyas tu na śasyate nava-jvare mala-stambhāt kaṣāyo viṣama-jvaram | kurute '-ruci-hṛl-lāsa-hidhmādhmānādikān api || 41 || saptāhād auṣadhaṃ ke-cid āhur anye daśāhataḥ | ke-cil laghv-anna-bhuktasya yojyam āmolbaṇe na tu || 42 || 1.42bv āhuś cānye daśāhataḥ tīvra-jvara-parītasya doṣa-vegodaye yataḥ | doṣe 'tha-vāti-nicite tandrā-staimitya-kāriṇi || 43 || a-pacyamānaṃ bhaiṣajyaṃ bhūyo jvalayati jvaram | mṛdur jvaro laghur dehaś calitāś ca malā yadā || 44 || a-cira-jvaritasyāpi bheṣajaṃ yojayet tadā | mustayā parpaṭaṃ yuktaṃ śuṇṭhyā duḥsparśayāpi vā || 45 || pākyaṃ śīta-kaṣāyaṃ vā pāṭhośīraṃ sa-vālakam | pibet tad-vac ca bhūnimba-guḍūcī-musta-nāgaram || 46 || yathā-yogam ime yojyāḥ kaṣāyā doṣa-pācanāḥ | jvarā-rocaka-tṛṣṇāsya-vairasyā-pakti-nāśanāḥ || 47 || kaliṅgakāḥ paṭolasya pattraṃ kaṭuka-rohiṇī || 48ab || paṭolaṃ śārivā mustā pāṭhā kaṭuka-rohiṇī | paṭola-nimba-tri-phalā-mṛdvīkā-musta-vatsakāḥ || 49 || kirātatiktam amṛtā candanaṃ viśva-bheṣajam | dhātrī-mustāmṛtā-kṣaudram ardha-śloka-samāpanāḥ || 50 || pañcaite saṃtatādīnāṃ pañcānāṃ śamanā matāḥ | durālabhāmṛtā-mustā-nāgaraṃ vāta-je jvare || 51 || atha-vā pippalī-mūla-guḍūcī-viśva-bheṣajam | kanīyaḥ pañca-mūlaṃ ca pitte śakrayavā ghanam || 52 || 1.52dv pitte kṣaudra-samanvitāḥ kaṭukā ceti sa-kṣaudraṃ mustā-parpaṭakaṃ tathā | sa-dhanvayāsa-bhūnimbaṃ vatsakādyo gaṇaḥ kaphe || 53 || 1.53av kaliṅga-musta-kaṭukā atha-vā vṛṣa-gāṅgeyī-śṛṅgavera-durālabhāḥ | rug-vibandhānila-śleṣma-yukte dīpana-pācanam || 54 || abhayā-pippalī-mūla-śamyāka-kaṭukā-ghanam | drākṣā-madhūka-madhuka-lodhra-kāśmarya-śārivāḥ || 55 || mustāmalaka-hrīvera-padma-kesara-padmakam | mṛṇāla-candanośīra-nīlotpala-parūṣakam || 56 || phāṇṭo himo vā drākṣādir jātī-kusuma-vāsitaḥ | yukto madhu-sitā-lājair jayaty anila-pitta-jam || 57 || jvaraṃ madātyayaṃ chardiṃ mūrchāṃ dāhaṃ śramaṃ bhramam | ūrdhva-gaṃ rakta-pittaṃ ca pipāsāṃ kāmalām api || 58 || 1.58av jvaraṃ madātyayaṃ chardir pācayet kaṭukāṃ piṣṭvā karpare 'bhinave śucau | niṣpīḍito ghṛta-yutas tad-raso jvara-dāha-jit || 59 || kapha-vāte vacā-tiktā-pāṭhāragvadha-vatsakāḥ | pippalī-cūrṇa-yukto vā kvāthaś chinnodbhavodbhavaḥ || 60 || vyāghrī-śuṇṭhy-amṛtā-kvāthaḥ pippalī-cūrṇa-saṃyutaḥ | vāta-śleṣma-jvara-śvāsa-kāsa-pīnasa-śūla-jit || 61 || pathyā-kustumburī-mustā-śuṇṭhī-kaṭtṛṇa-parpaṭam | sa-kaṭphala-vacā-bhārgī-devāhvaṃ madhu-hiṅgu-mat || 62 || kapha-vāta-jvara-ṣṭhīva-kukṣi-hṛt-pārśva-vedanāḥ | kaṇṭhāmayāsya-śvayathu-kāsa-śvāsān niyacchati || 63 || 1.63av kapha-vāta-jvare ṣṭheva- āragvadhādiḥ sa-kṣaudraḥ kapha-pitta-jvaraṃ jayet | tathā tiktā-vṛṣośīra-trāyantī-tri-phalāmṛtāḥ || 64 || paṭolātiviṣā-nimba-mūrvā-dhanvayavāsakāḥ | saṃnipāta-jvare vyāghrī-devadāru-niśā-ghanam || 65 || paṭola-pattra-nimba-tvak-tri-phalā-kaṭukā-yutam | nāgaraṃ pauṣkaraṃ mūlaṃ guḍūcī kaṇṭakārikā || 66 || sa-kāsa-śvāsa-pārśvārtau vāta-śleṣmottare jvare | madhūka-puṣpa-mṛdvīkā-trāyamāṇā-parūṣakam || 67 || sośīra-tiktā-tri-phalā-kāśmaryaṃ kalpayed dhimam | kaṣāyaṃ taṃ piban kāle jvarān sarvān apohati || 68 || 1.68dv jvarān sarvān vyapohati jāty-āmalaka-mustāni tad-vad dhanvayavāsakam | baddha-viṭ kaṭukā-drākṣā-trāyantī-tri-phalā-guḍam || 69 || 1.69dv -trāyantī-tri-phalā-guḍān 1.69dv -trāyantī-tri-phalā-guḍāḥ jīrṇauṣadho 'nnaṃ peyādyam ācarec chleṣma-vān na tu | peyā kaphaṃ vardhayati paṅkaṃ pāṃsuṣu vṛṣṭi-vat || 70 || śleṣmābhiṣyaṇṇa-dehānām ataḥ prāg api yojayet | yūṣān kulattha-caṇaka-kalāyādi-kṛtān laghūn || 71 || 1.71av śleṣmābhiṣava-dehānām 1.71av śleṣmābhispanda-dehānām rūkṣāṃs tikta-rasopetān hṛdyān ruci-karān paṭūn | raktādyāḥ śālayo jīrṇāḥ ṣaṣṭikāś ca jvare hitāḥ || 72 || śleṣmottare vīta-tuṣās tathā vāṭī-kṛtā yavāḥ | odanas taiḥ sruto dvis triḥ prayoktavyo yathā-yatham || 73 || doṣa-dūṣyādi-balato jvara-ghna-kvātha-sādhitaḥ | mudgādyair laghubhir yūṣāḥ kulatthaiś ca jvarāpahāḥ || 74 || kāravellaka-karkoṭa-bāla-mūlaka-parpaṭaiḥ | vārtāka-nimba-kusuma-paṭola-phala-pallavaiḥ || 75 || aty-anta-laghubhir māṃsair jāṅgalaiś ca hitā rasāḥ | vyāghrī-parūṣa-tarkārī-drākṣāmalaka-dāḍimaiḥ || 76 || saṃskṛtāḥ pippalī-śuṇṭhī-dhānya-jīraka-saindhavaiḥ | sitā-madhubhyāṃ prāyeṇa saṃyutā vā kṛtā-kṛtāḥ || 77 || an-amla-takra-siddhāni rucyāni vyañjanāni ca | acchāny anala-saṃpannāny anu-pāne 'pi yojayet || 78 || tāni kvathita-śītaṃ ca vāri madyaṃ ca sātmyataḥ | sa-jvaraṃ jvara-muktaṃ vā dinānte bhojayel laghu || 79 || śleṣma-kṣaya-vivṛddhoṣmā bala-vān analas tadā | yathocite 'tha-vā kāle deśa-sātmyānurodhataḥ || 80 || prāg alpa-vahnir bhuñjāno na hy a-jīrṇena pīḍyate | kaṣāya-pāna-pathyānnair daśāha iti laṅghite || 81 || sarpir dadyāt kaphe mande vāta-pittottare jvare | pakveṣu doṣeṣv amṛtaṃ tad viṣopamam anya-thā || 82 || daśāhe syād atīte 'pi jvaropadrava-vṛddhi-kṛt | laṅghanādi-kramaṃ tatra kuryād ā-kapha-saṃkṣayāt || 83 || deha-dhātv-a-bala-tvāc ca jvaro jīrṇo 'nuvartate | rūkṣaṃ hi tejo jvara-kṛt tejasā rūkṣitasya ca || 84 || vamana-sveda-kālāmbu-kaṣāya-laghu-bhojanaiḥ | yaḥ syād ati-balo dhātuḥ saha-cārī sadā-gatiḥ || 85 || tasya saṃśamanaṃ sarpir dīptasyevāmbu veśmanaḥ | vāta-pitta-jitām agryaṃ saṃskāraṃ cānurudhyate || 86 || 1.86dv saṃskāram anurudhyate su-tarāṃ tad dhy ato dadyād yathā-svauṣadha-sādhitam | viparītaṃ jvaroṣmāṇaṃ jayet pittaṃ ca śaityataḥ || 87 || snehād vātaṃ ghṛtaṃ tulyaṃ yoga-saṃskārataḥ kapham | pūrve kaṣāyāḥ sa-ghṛtāḥ sarve yojyā yathā-malam || 88 || tri-phalā-picumanda-tvaṅ-madhukaṃ bṛhatī-dvayam | sa-masūra-dalaṃ kvāthaḥ sa-ghṛto jvara-kāsa-hā || 89 || pippalīndrayava-dhāvani-tiktā-śārivāmalaka-tāmalakībhiḥ | bilva-musta-hima-pālani-sevyair drākṣayātiviṣayā sthirayā ca || 90 || ghṛtam āśu nihanti sādhitaṃ jvaram agniṃ viṣamaṃ halīmakam | a-ruciṃ bhṛśa-tāpam aṃsayor vamathuṃ pārśva-śiro-rujaṃ kṣayam || 91 || 1.91bv jvaram ugraṃ viṣamaṃ halīmakam tailvakaṃ pavana-janmani jvare yojayet trivṛtayā viyojitam | tiktakaṃ vṛṣa-ghṛtaṃ ca paittike yac ca pālanikayā śṛtaṃ haviḥ || 92 || viḍaṅga-sauvarcala-cavya-pāṭhā-vyoṣāgni-sindhūdbhava-yāva-śūkaiḥ | palāṃśakaiḥ kṣīra-samaṃ ghṛtasya prasthaṃ pacej jīrṇa-kapha-jvara-ghnam || 93 || 1.93cv palāṃśikaiḥ kṣīra-samaṃ ghṛtasya guḍūcyā rasa-kalkābhyāṃ tri-phalāyā vṛṣasya vā | mṛdvīkāyā balāyāś ca snehāḥ siddhā jvara-cchidaḥ || 94 || jīrṇe ghṛte ca bhuñjīta mṛdu-māṃsa-rasaudanam | balaṃ hy alaṃ doṣa-haraṃ paraṃ tac ca bala-pradam || 95 || 1.95bv mṛdu-māṃsa-rasāśanam kapha-pitta-harā mudga-kāravellādi-jā rasāḥ | prāyeṇa tasmān na hitā jīrṇe vātottare jvare || 96 || śūlodāvarta-viṣṭambha-jananā jvara-vardhanāḥ | na śāmyaty evam api cej jvaraḥ kurvīta śodhanam || 97 || śodhanārhasya vamanaṃ prāg uktaṃ tasya yojayet | āmāśaya-gate doṣe balinaḥ pālayan balam || 98 || pakve tu śithile doṣe jvare vā viṣa-madya-je | modakaṃ tri-phalā-śyāmā-trivṛt-pippali-kesaraiḥ || 99 || sa-sitā-madhubhir dadyād vyoṣādyaṃ vā virecanam | drākṣā-dhātrī-rasaṃ tad-vat sa-drākṣāṃ vā harītakīm || 100 || lihyād vā traivṛtaṃ cūrṇaṃ saṃyuktaṃ madhu-sarpiṣā || 100.1+1ab || āragvadhaṃ vā payasā mṛdvīkānāṃ rasena vā | tri-phalāṃ trāyamāṇāṃ vā payasā jvaritaḥ pibet || 101 || viriktānāṃ ca saṃsargī maṇḍa-pūrvā yathā-kramam | cyavamānaṃ jvarotkliṣṭam upekṣeta malaṃ sadā || 102 || pakvo 'pi hi vikurvīta doṣaḥ koṣṭhe kṛtāspadaḥ | atipravartamānaṃ vā pācayan saṃgrahaṃ nayet || 103 || āma-saṃgrahaṇe doṣā doṣopakrama īritāḥ | pāyayed doṣa-haraṇaṃ mohād āma-jvare tu yaḥ || 104 || 1.104av āma-saṃgrahaṇād doṣo 1.104bv doṣopakrama īritaḥ prasuptaṃ kṛṣṇa-sarpaṃ sa karāgreṇa parāmṛśet | jvara-kṣīṇasya na hitaṃ vamanaṃ na virecanam || 105 || kāmaṃ tu payasā tasya nirūhair vā haren malān | kṣīrocitasya prakṣīṇa-śleṣmaṇo dāha-tṛḍ-vataḥ || 106 || kṣīraṃ pittānilārtasya pathyam apy atisāriṇaḥ | tad vapur laṅghanottaptaṃ pluṣṭaṃ vanam ivāgninā || 107 || divyāmbu jīvayet tasya jvaraṃ cāśu niyacchati | saṃskṛtaṃ śītam uṣṇaṃ vā tasmād dhāroṣṇam eva vā || 108 || 1.108dv tad-vad dhāroṣṇam eva vā vibhajya kāle yuñjīta jvariṇaṃ hanty ato 'nya-thā | payaḥ sa-śuṇṭhī-kharjūra-mṛdvīkā-śarkarā-ghṛtam || 109 || śṛta-śītaṃ madhu-yutaṃ tṛḍ-dāha-jvara-nāśanam | tad-vad drākṣā-balā-yaṣṭī-śārivā-kaṇa-candanaiḥ || 110 || catur-guṇenāmbhasā vā pippalyā vā śṛtaṃ pibet | kāsāc chvāsāc chiraḥ-śūlāt pārśva-śūlāc cira-jvarāt || 111 || mucyate jvaritaḥ pītvā pañca-mūlī-śṛtaṃ payaḥ | śṛtam eraṇḍa-mūlena bāla-bilvena vā jvarāt || 112 || dhāroṣṇaṃ vā payaḥ pītvā vibaddhānila-varcasaḥ | sa-rakta-picchātisṛteḥ sa-tṛṭ-śūla-pravāhikāt || 113 || siddhaṃ śuṇṭhī-balā-vyāghrī-gokaṇṭaka-guḍaiḥ payaḥ | śopha-mūtra-śakṛd-vāta-vibandha-jvara-kāsa-jit || 114 || vṛścīva-bilva-varṣābhū-sādhitaṃ jvara-śopha-nut | śiṃśipā-sāra-siddhaṃ ca kṣīram āśu jvarāpaham || 115 || 1.115cv śiṃśipā-sāra-siddhaṃ vā nirūhas tu balaṃ vahniṃ vi-jvara-tvaṃ mudaṃ rucim | doṣe yuktaḥ karoty āśu pakve pakvāśayaṃ gate || 116 || pittaṃ vā kapha-pittaṃ vā pakvāśaya-gataṃ haret | sraṃsanaṃ trīn api malān vastiḥ pakvāśayāśrayān || 117 || 1.117dv vastiḥ pakvāśayāśritān prakṣīṇa-kapha-pittasya trika-pṛṣṭha-kaṭī-grahe | dīptāgner baddha-śakṛtaḥ prayuñjītānuvāsanam || 118 || paṭola-nimba-cchadana-kaṭukā-caturaṅgulaiḥ | sthirā-balā-gokṣuraka-madanośīra-vālakaiḥ || 119 || payasy ardhodake kvāthaṃ kṣīra-śeṣaṃ vimiśritam | kalkitair musta-madana-kṛṣṇā-madhuka-vatsakaiḥ || 120 || vastiṃ madhu-ghṛtābhyāṃ ca pīḍayej jvara-nāśanam | catasraḥ parṇinīr yaṣṭī-phalośīra-nṛpadrumān || 121 || kvāthayet kalkayed yaṣṭī-śatāhvā-phalinī-phalam | mustaṃ ca vastiḥ sa-guḍa-kṣaudra-sarpir jvarāpahaḥ || 122 || jīvantīṃ madanaṃ medāṃ pippalīṃ madhukaṃ vacām | ṛddhiṃ rāsnāṃ balāṃ bilvaṃ śatapuṣpāṃ śatāvarīm || 123 || piṣṭvā kṣīraṃ jalaṃ sarpis tailaṃ caika-tra sādhitam | jvare 'nuvāsanaṃ dadyād yathā-snehaṃ yathā-malam || 124 || 1.124cv jvare 'nuvāsanaṃ dadyāt 1.124dv tathā snehaṃ yathā malam 1.124dv yathā-doṣaṃ yathā-balam ye ca siddhiṣu vakṣyante vastayo jvara-nāśanāḥ | śiro-rug-gaurava-śleṣma-haram indriya-bodhanam || 125 || jīrṇa-jvare ruci-karaṃ dadyān nasyaṃ virecanam | snaihikaṃ śūnya-śiraso dāhārte pitta-nāśanam || 126 || dhūma-gaṇḍūṣa-kavaḍān yathā-doṣaṃ ca kalpayet | pratiśyāyāsya-vairasya-śiraḥ-kaṇṭhāmayāpahān || 127 || a-rucau mātuluṅgasya kesaraṃ sājya-saindhavam | dhātrī-drākṣā-sitānāṃ vā kalkam āsyena dhārayet || 128 || yathopaśaya-saṃsparśān śītoṣṇa-dravya-kalpitān | abhyaṅgālepa-sekādīñ jvare jīrṇe tvag-āśrite || 129 || kuryād añjana-dhūmāṃś ca tathaivāgantu-je 'pi tān | dāhe sahasra-dhautena sarpiṣābhyaṅgam ācaret || 130 || sūtroktaiś ca gaṇais tais tair madhurāmla-kaṣāyakaiḥ | dūrvādibhir vā pitta-ghnaiḥ śodhanādi-gaṇoditaiḥ || 131 || śīta-vīryair hima-sparśaiḥ kvātha-kalkī-kṛtaiḥ pacet | tailaṃ sa-kṣīram abhyaṅgāt sadyo dāha-jvaropaham || 132 || śiro gātraṃ ca tair eva nāti-piṣṭaiḥ pralepayet | tat-kvāthena parīṣekam avagāhaṃ ca yojayet || 133 || tathāranāla-salila-kṣīra-śukta-ghṛtādibhiḥ | kapittha-mātuluṅgāmla-vidārī-lodhra-dāḍimaiḥ || 134 || badarī-pallavotthena phenenāriṣṭakasya vā | lipte 'ṅge dāha-ruṅ-mohāś chardis tṛṣṇā ca śāmyati || 135 || 1.135bv phenenāriṣṭakasya ca 1.135bv phenenāriṣṭa-jena vā yo varṇitaḥ pitta-haro doṣopakramaṇe kramaḥ | taṃ ca śīlayataḥ śīghraṃ sa-dāho naśyati jvaraḥ || 136 || vīryoṣṇair uṣṇa-saṃsparśais tagarāguru-kuṅkumaiḥ | kuṣṭha-sthauṇeya-śaileya-saralāmaradārubhiḥ || 137 || nakha-rāsnā-pura-vacā-caṇḍailā-dvaya-corakaiḥ | pṛthvīkā-śigru-surasā-hiṃsrā-dhyāmaka-sarṣapaiḥ || 138 || 1.138av nakha-rāsnā-mukha-vacā- daśa-mūlāmṛtairaṇḍa-dvaya-pattūra-rohiṣaiḥ | tamāla-pattra-bhūtīka-śallakī-dhānya-dīpyakaiḥ || 139 || 1.139cv tamāla-pattra-pūtīka- miśi-māṣa-kulatthāgni-prakīryā-nākulī-dvayaiḥ | anyaiś ca tad-vidhair dravyaiḥ śīte tailaṃ jvare pacet || 140 || kvathitaiḥ kalkitair yuktaiḥ surā-sauvīrakādibhiḥ | tenābhyañjyāt sukhoṣṇena taiḥ su-piṣṭaiś ca lepayet || 141 || 1.141cv tenābhyajya sukhoṣṇena kavoṣṇais taiḥ parīṣekam avagāhaṃ ca kalpayet | kevalair api tad-vac ca śukta-go-mūtra-mastubhiḥ || 142 || āragvadhādi-vargaṃ ca pānābhyañjana-lepane | dhūpān aguru-jān yāṃś ca vakṣyante viṣama-jvare || 143 || 1.143cv dhūpān aguru-jān ye ca agny-an-agni-kṛtān svedān svedi bheṣaja-bhojanan | garbha-bhū-veśma-śayanaṃ kutha-kambala-rallakān || 144 || nir-dhūma-dīptair aṅgārair hasantīś ca hasantikāḥ | madyaṃ sa-try-ūṣaṇaṃ takraṃ kulattha-vrīhi-kodravān || 145 || saṃśīlayed vepathu-mān yac cānyad api pittalam | dayitāḥ stana-śālinyaḥ pīnā vibhrama-bhūṣaṇāḥ || 146 || 1.146av bhajec chītārdito yuktyā yauvanāsava-mattāś ca tam āliṅgeyur aṅganāḥ | vīta-śītaṃ ca vijñāya tās tato 'panayet punaḥ || 147 || 1.147cv vīta-śītaṃ tu viyatās vardhanenaika-doṣasya kṣapaṇenocchritasya vā | kapha-sthānānupūrvyā vā tulya-kakṣāñ jayen malān || 148 || 1.148bv kṣapaṇenocchritasya ca śamayet pittam evādau jvareṣu samavāyiṣu | dur-nivāra-taraṃ tad dhi jvarārtānāṃ viśeṣataḥ || 148+1 || chardi-mūrchā-pipāsādīn a-virodhāñ jvarasya tu || 148+2ab || saṃnipāta-jvarasyānte karṇa-mūle su-dāruṇaḥ | śophaḥ saṃjāyate yena kaś-cid eva vimucyate || 149 || 1.149cv śophaḥ saṃjāyate tena 1.149dv kaś-cid eva pramucyate raktāvasecanaiḥ śīghraṃ sarpiḥ-pānaiś ca taṃ jayet | pradehaiḥ kapha-pitta-ghnair nāvanaiḥ kavaḍa-grahaiḥ || 150 || 1.150cv pradehaiḥ kapha-vāta-ghnair śītoṣṇa-snigdha-rūkṣādyair jvaro yasya na śāmyati | śākhānusārī tasyāśu muñced bāhvoḥ kramāt sirām || 151 || ayam eva vidhiḥ kāryo viṣame 'pi yathā-yatham | jvare vibhajya vātādīn yaś cān-antaram ucyate || 152 || 1.152bv viṣame ca yathā-yatham paṭola-kaṭukā-mustā-prāṇadā-madhukaiḥ kṛtāḥ | tri-catuḥ-pañca-śaḥ kvāthā viṣama-jvara-nāśanāḥ || 153 || yojayet tri-phalāṃ pathyāṃ guḍūcīṃ pippalīṃ pṛthak | tais tair vidhānaiḥ sa-guḍaṃ bhallātakam athāpi vā || 154 || laṅghanaṃ bṛṃhaṇaṃ vādau jvarāgamana-vāsare | prātaḥ sa-tailaṃ laśunaṃ prāg-bhaktaṃ vā tathā ghṛtam || 155 || 1.155av laṅghanaṃ bṛṃhaṇaṃ vāpi jīrṇaṃ tad-vad dadhi payas takraṃ sarpiś ca ṣaṭ-palam | kalyāṇakaṃ pañca-gavyaṃ tiktākhyaṃ vṛṣa-sādhitam || 156 || tri-phalā-kola-tarkārī-kvāthe dadhnā śṛtaṃ ghṛtam | tilvaka-tvak-kṛtāvāpaṃ viṣama-jvara-jit param || 157 || surāṃ tīkṣṇaṃ ca yan madyaṃ śikhi-tittiri-dakṣa-jam | māṃsaṃ medyoṣṇa-vīryaṃ ca sahānnena pra-kāmataḥ || 158 || 1.158bv śikhi-tittiri-kukkuṭāt 1.158cv māṃsaṃ madhyoṣṇa-vīryaṃ ca 1.158cv māṃsaṃ medhyoṣṇa-vīryaṃ ca sevitvā tad-ahaḥ svapyād atha-vā punar ullikhet | sarpiṣo mahatīṃ mātrāṃ pītvā vā chardayet punaḥ || 159 || nīlinīm ajagandhāṃ ca trivṛtāṃ kaṭu-rohiṇīm | pibej jvarasyāgamane sneha-svedopapāditaḥ || 160 || manohvā saindhavaṃ kṛṣṇā tailena nayanāñjanam | yojyaṃ hiṅgu-samā vyāghrī-vasā nasyaṃ sa-saindhavam || 161 || purāṇa-sarpiḥ siṃhasya vasā tad-vat sa-saindhavā | palaṅkaṣā nimba-pattraṃ vacā kuṣṭhaṃ harītakī || 162 || sarṣapāḥ sa-yavāḥ sarpir dhūpo viḍ vā biḍāla-jā | pura-dhyāma-vacā-sarja-nimbārkāguru-dārubhiḥ || 163 || dhūpo jvareṣu sarveṣu kāryo 'yam a-parājitaḥ | dhūpa-nasyāñjanottrāsā ye coktāś citta-vaikṛte || 164 || 1.164bv prayoktavyo '-parājitaḥ 1.164cv dhūpa-nasyāñjana-trāsā daivāśrayaṃ ca bhaiṣajyaṃ jvarān sarvān vyapohati | viśeṣād viṣamān prāyas te hy āgantv-anubandha-jāḥ || 165 || yathā-svaṃ ca sirāṃ vidhyed a-śāntau viṣama-jvare | kevalānila-vīsarpa-visphoṭābhihata-jvare || 166 || 1.166bv a-śānte viṣama-jvare 1.166dv -visphoṭābhihate jvare sarpiḥ-pāna-himālepa-seka-māṃsa-rasāśanam | kuryād yathā-svam uktaṃ ca rakta-mokṣādi sādhanam || 167 || 1.167av sarpiḥ-pānaṃ himālepa- 1.167bv -sekān māṃsa-rasāśanam grahotthe bhūta-vidyoktaṃ bali-mantrādi sādhanam | oṣadhi-gandha-je pitta-śamanaṃ viṣa-jid viṣe || 168 || 1.168cv auṣadhi-gandha-je pitta- iṣṭair arthair mano-jñaiś ca yathā-doṣa-śamena ca | hitā-hita-vivekaiś ca jvaraṃ krodhādi-jaṃ jayet || 169 || krodha-jo yāti kāmena śāntiṃ krodhena kāma-jaḥ | bhaya-śokodbhavau tābhyāṃ bhī-śokābhyāṃ tathetarau || 170 || śāpātharvaṇa-mantrotthe vidhir daiva-vyapāśrayaḥ | te jvarāḥ kevalāḥ pūrvaṃ vyāpyante 'n-antaram malaiḥ || 171 || tasmād doṣānusāreṇa teṣv āhārādi kalpayet | na hi jvaro 'nubadhnāti mārutādyair vinā kṛtaḥ || 172 || jvara-kāla-smṛtiṃ cāsya hāribhir viṣayair haret | karuṇārdraṃ manaḥ śuddhaṃ sarva-jvara-vināśanam || 173 || 1.173dv sarva-jvara-vimokṣaṇam tyajed ā-bala-lābhāc ca vyāyāma-snāna-maithunam | gurv-a-sātmya-vidāhy annaṃ yac cānyaj jvara-kāraṇam || 174 || na vi-jvaro 'pi sahasā sarvānnīno bhavet tathā | nivṛtto 'pi jvaraḥ śīghraṃ vyāpādayati dur-balam || 175 || 1.175bv sarvānnīno bhavet tadā 1.175cv nivṛtto hi jvaraḥ śīghraṃ sadyaḥ prāṇa-haro yasmāt tasmāt tasya viśeṣataḥ | tasyāṃ tasyām avasthāyāṃ tat tat kuryād bhiṣag-jitam || 176 || 1.176dv tat tat kuryāc cikitsitam oṣadhayo maṇayaś ca su-mantrāḥ sādhu-guru-dvi-ja-daivata-pūjāḥ | prīti-karā manaso viṣayāś ca ghnanty api viṣṇu-kṛtaṃ jvaram ugram || 177 || 1.177av auṣadhayo maṇayaś ca su-mantrāḥ Cikitsāsthāna ūrdhva-gaṃ balino '-vegam eka-doṣānugaṃ navam | rakta-pittaṃ sukhe kāle sādhayen nir-upadravam || 1 || adho-gaṃ yāpayed raktaṃ yac ca doṣa-dvayānugam | śāntaṃ śāntaṃ punaḥ kupyan mārgān mārgāntaraṃ ca yat || 2 || ati-pravṛttaṃ mandāgnes tri-doṣaṃ dvi-pathaṃ tyajet | jñātvā nidānam ayanaṃ malāv anu-balau balam || 3 || deśa-kālādy-avasthāṃ ca rakta-pitte prayojayet | laṅghanaṃ bṛṃhaṇaṃ vādau śodhanaṃ śamanaṃ tathā || 4 || 2.4cv laṅghanaṃ bṛṃhaṇaṃ cādau saṃtarpaṇotthaṃ balino bahu-doṣasya sādhayet | ūrdhva-bhāgaṃ virekeṇa vamanena tv adho-gatam || 5 || 2.5dv vamanena tv adho-gamam śamanair bṛṃhaṇaiś cānyal laṅghya-bṛṃhyān avekṣya ca | ūrdhvaṃ pravṛtte śamanau rasau tikta-kaṣāyakau || 6 || 2.6bv laṅghya-bṛṃhyān apekṣya ca upavāsaś ca niḥ-śuṇṭhī-ṣaḍ-aṅgodaka-pāyinaḥ | adho-ge rakta-pitte tu bṛṃhaṇo madhuro rasaḥ || 7 || ūrdhva-ge tarpaṇaṃ yojyaṃ prāk ca peyā tv adho-gate | aśnato balino '-śuddhaṃ na dhāryaṃ tad dhi roga-kṛt || 8 || 2.8bv peyā pūrvam adho-gate 2.8bv prāk ca peyā tv adho-game 2.8bv vā prāk peyā tv adho-game dhārayed anya-thā śīghram agni-vac chīghra-kāri tat | trivṛc-chyāmā-kaṣāyeṇa kalkena ca sa-śarkaram || 9 || gala-grahaṃ pūti-nasyaṃ mūrchāyam a-ruciṃ jvaram | gulmaṃ plīhānam ānāhaṃ kilāsaṃ mūtra-kṛcchra-tām || 9.1+1 || kuṣṭhāny arśāṃsi vīsarpaṃ varṇa-nāśaṃ bhagandaram | buddhīndriyoparodhaṃ ca kuryāt stambhitam āditaḥ || 9.1+2 || sādhayed vidhi-val lehaṃ lihyāt pāṇi-talaṃ tataḥ | trivṛtā tri-phalā śyāmā pippalī śarkarā madhu || 10 || modakaḥ saṃnipātordhva-rakta-śopha-jvarāpahaḥ | trivṛt sama-sitā tad-vat pippalī-pāda-saṃyutā || 11 || 2.11bv -rakta-pitta-jvarāpahaḥ vamanaṃ phala-saṃyuktaṃ tarpaṇaṃ sa-sitā-madhu | sa-sitaṃ vā jalaṃ kṣaudra-yuktaṃ vā madhukodakam || 12 || kṣīraṃ vā rasam ikṣor vā śuddhasyān-antaro vidhiḥ | yathā-svaṃ mantha-peyādiḥ prayojyo rakṣatā balam || 13 || mantho jvarokto drākṣādiḥ pitta-ghnair vā phalaiḥ kṛtaḥ | madhu-kharjūra-mṛdvīkā-parūṣaka-sitāmbhasā || 14 || mantho vā pañca-sāreṇa sa-ghṛtair lāja-saktubhiḥ | dāḍimāmalakāmlo vā mandāgny-amlābhilāṣiṇām || 15 || 2.15dv mandāgny-amlābhilāṣiṇaḥ kamalotpala-kiñjalka-pṛśniparṇī-priyaṅgukāḥ | uśīraṃ śabaraṃ lodhraṃ śṛṅgaveraṃ ku-candanam || 16 || hrīveraṃ dhātakī-puṣpaṃ bilva-madhyaṃ durālabhā | ardhārdhair vihitāḥ peyā vakṣyante pāda-yaugikāḥ || 17 || 2.17cv ardharcair vihitāḥ peyā 2.17cv ardhārdha-vihitāḥ peyā bhūnimba-sevya-jaladā masūrāḥ pṛśniparṇy api | vidārigandhā mudgāś ca balā sarpir hareṇukāḥ || 18 || 2.18dv balā sarpiḥ priyaṅgukāḥ jāṅgalāni ca māṃsāni śīta-vīryāṇi sādhayet | pṛthak pṛthag jale teṣāṃ yavāgūḥ kalpayed rase || 19 || śītāḥ sa-śarkarā-kṣaudrās tad-van māṃsa-rasān api | īṣad-amlān an-amlān vā ghṛta-bhṛṣṭān sa-śarkarān || 20 || śūka-śimbī-bhavaṃ dhānyaṃ rakte śākaṃ ca śasyate | anna-sva-rūpa-vijñāne yad uktaṃ laghu-śītalam || 21 || pūrvoktam ambu pānīyaṃ pañca-mūlena vā śṛtam | laghunā śṛta-śītaṃ vā madhv-ambho vā phalāmbu vā || 22 || śaśaḥ sa-vāstukaḥ śasto vibandhe tittiriḥ punaḥ | udumbarasya niryūhe sādhito mārute 'dhike || 23 || plakṣasya barhiṇas tad-van nyagrodhasya ca kukkuṭaḥ | yat kiñ-cid rakta-pittasya nidānaṃ tac ca varjayet || 24 || vāsā-rasena phalinī-mṛl-lodhrāñjana-mākṣikam | pittāsṛk śamayet pītaṃ niryāso vāṭarūṣakāt || 25 || śarkarā-madhu-saṃyuktaḥ kevalo vā śṛto 'pi vā | vṛṣaḥ sadyo jayaty asraṃ sa hy asya param auṣadham || 26 || paṭola-mālatī-nimba-candana-dvaya-padmakam | lodhro vṛṣas taṇḍulīyaḥ kṛṣṇā mṛn madayantikā || 27 || 2.27av paṭolāmalakī-nimba- śatāvarī gopakanyā kākolyau madhuyaṣṭikā | rakta-pitta-harāḥ kvāthās trayaḥ sa-madhu-śarkarāḥ || 28 || palāśa-valka-kvātho vā su-śītaḥ śarkarānvitaḥ | lihyād vā madhu-sarpirbhyāṃ gavāśva-śakṛto rasam || 29 || 2.29cv pibed vā madhu-sarpirbhyāṃ sa-kṣaudraṃ grathite rakte lihyāt pārāvatāc chakṛt | ati-niḥsruta-raktaś ca kṣaudreṇa rudhiraṃ pibet || 30 || 2.30bv lihyāt pārāvataṃ śakṛt 2.30cv ati-niḥsṛta-raktaś ca 2.30cv ati-niḥsṛta-rakto vā 2.30cv ati-niḥsruta-rakto vā jāṅgalaṃ bhakṣayed vājam āmaṃ pitta-yutaṃ yakṛt | candanośīra-jalada-lāja-mudga-kaṇā-yavaiḥ || 31 || balā-jale paryuṣitaiḥ kaṣāyo rakta-pitta-hā | prasādaś candanāmbho-ja-sevya-mṛd-bhṛṣṭa-loṣṭa-jaḥ || 32 || su-śītaḥ sa-sitā-kṣaudraḥ śoṇitāti-pravṛtti-jit | āpothya vā nave kumbhe plāvayed ikṣu-gaṇḍikāḥ || 33 || sthitaṃ tad guptam ākāśe rātriṃ prātaḥ srutaṃ jalam | madhu-mad vikacāmbho-ja-kṛtottaṃsaṃ ca tad-guṇam || 34 || ye ca pitta-jvare coktāḥ kaṣāyās tāṃś ca yojayet | kaṣāyair vividhair ebhir dīpte 'gnau vijite kaphe || 35 || rakta-pittaṃ na cec chāmyet tatra vātolbaṇe payaḥ | yuñjyāc chāgaṃ śṛtaṃ tad-vad gavyaṃ pañca-guṇe 'mbhasi || 36 || pañca-mūlena laghunā śṛtaṃ vā sa-sitā-madhu | jīvakarṣabhaka-drākṣā-balā-gokṣura-nāgaraiḥ || 37 || pṛthak pṛthak śṛtaṃ kṣīraṃ sa-ghṛtaṃ sitayātha-vā | gokaṇṭakābhīru-śṛtaṃ parṇinībhis tathā payaḥ || 38 || hanty āśu raktaṃ sa-rujaṃ viśeṣān mūtra-mārga-gam | viṇ-mārga-ge viśeṣeṇa hitaṃ moca-rasena tu || 39 || vaṭa-prarohair śuṅgair vā śuṇṭhy-udīcyotpalair api | raktātīsāra-dur-nāma-cikitsāṃ cātra kalpayet || 40 || 2.40av vaṭa-prarohair śṛṅgair vā pītvā kaṣāyān payasā bhuñjīta payasaiva ca | kaṣāya-yogair ebhir vā vipakvaṃ pāyayed ghṛtam || 41 || sa-mūla-mastakaṃ kṣuṇṇaṃ vṛṣam aṣṭa-guṇe 'mbhasi | paktvāṣṭāṃśāvaśeṣeṇa ghṛtaṃ tena vipācayet || 42 || tat-puṣpa-garbhaṃ tac chītaṃ sa-kṣaudraṃ pitta-śoṇitam | pitta-gulma-jvara-śvāsa-kāsa-hṛd-roga-kāmalāḥ || 43 || timira-bhrama-vīsarpa-svara-sādāṃś ca nāśayet | palāśa-vṛnta-sva-rase tad-garbhaṃ ca ghṛtaṃ pacet || 44 || sa-kṣaudraṃ tac ca rakta-ghnaṃ tathaiva trāyamāṇayā | rakte sa-picche sa-kaphe grathite kaṇṭha-mārga-ge || 45 || lihyān mākṣika-sarpirbhyāṃ kṣāram utpala-nāla-jam | pṛthak pṛthak tathāmbho-ja-reṇu-śyāmā-madhūka-jam || 46 || gudāgame viśeṣeṇa śoṇite vastir iṣyate | ghrāṇa-ge rudhire śuddhe nāvanaṃ cānuṣecayet || 47 || kaṣāya-yogān pūrvoktān kṣīrekṣv-ādi-rasāplutān | kṣīrādīn sa-sitāṃs toyaṃ kevalaṃ vā jalaṃ hitaṃ || 48 || 2.48bv kṣīrekṣv-ādi-rasa-plutān raso dāḍima-puṣpāṇām āmrāsthnaḥ śādvalasya vā | kalpayec chīta-vargaṃ ca pradehābhyañjanādiṣu || 49 || 2.49bv āmrāsthnaḥ śādvalasya ca su-sūkṣmā māṣa-piṣṭī ca ghṛta-bhṛṣṭā śivasya ca | ruṇaddhi mūrdha-lepena nāsā-raktaṃ na saṃśayaḥ || 49.1+1 || yac ca pitta-jvare proktaṃ bahir antaś ca bheṣajam | rakta-pitte hitaṃ tac ca kṣata-kṣīṇe hitaṃ ca yat || 50 || Cikitsāsthāna kevalānila-jaṃ kāsaṃ snehair ādāv upācaret | vāta-ghna-siddhaiḥ snigdhaiś ca peyā-yūṣa-rasādibhiḥ || 1 || lehair dhūmais tathābhyaṅga-sveda-sekāvagāhanaiḥ | vastibhir baddha-viḍ-vātaṃ sa-pittaṃ tūrdhva-bhaktikaiḥ || 2 || 3.2dv sa-pittaṃ vordhva-bhaktikaiḥ 3.2dv sa-pittaṃ vordhva-bhaktikaiḥ ghṛtaiḥ kṣīraiś ca sa-kaphaṃ jayet sneha-virecanaiḥ | guḍūcī-kaṇṭakārībhyāṃ pṛthak triṃśat-palād rase || 3 || prasthaḥ siddho ghṛtād vāta-kāsa-nud vahni-dīpanaḥ | kṣāra-rāsnā-vacā-hiṅgu-pāṭhā-yaṣṭy-āhva-dhānyakaiḥ || 4 || dvi-śāṇaiḥ sarpiṣaḥ prasthaṃ pañca-kola-yutaiḥ pacet | daśa-mūlasya niryūhe pīto maṇḍānupāyinā || 5 || sa kāsa-śvāsa-hṛt-pārśva-grahaṇī-roga-gulma-nut | droṇe 'pāṃ sādhayed rāsnā-daśa-mūla-śatāvarīḥ || 6 || palonmitā dvi-kuḍavaṃ kulatthaṃ badaraṃ yavaṃ | tulārdhaṃ cāja-māṃsasya tena sādhyaṃ ghṛtāḍhakam || 7 || sama-kṣīraṃ palāṃśaiś ca jīvanīyaiḥ samīkṣya tat | prayuktaṃ vāta-rogeṣu pāna-nāvana-vastibhiḥ || 8 || pañca-kāsāñ chiraḥ-kampaṃ yoni-vaṅkṣaṇa-vedanām | sarvāṅgaikāṅga-rogāṃś ca sa-plīhordhvānilāñ jayet || 9 || vidāry-ādi-gaṇa-kvātha-kalka-siddhaṃ ca kāsa-jit | aśoka-bīja-kṣavaka-jantughnāñjana-padmakaiḥ || 10 || sa-viḍaiś ca ghṛtaṃ siddhaṃ tac-cūrṇaṃ vā ghṛta-plutam | lihyāt payaś cānupibed ājaṃ kāsāti-pīḍitaḥ || 11 || 3.11dv ājaṃ kāsābhipīḍitaḥ 3.11dv ājaṃ kāsādi-pīḍitaḥ viḍaṅgaṃ nāgaraṃ rāsnā pippalī hiṅgu saindhavam | bhārgī kṣāraś ca tac cūrṇaṃ pibed vā ghṛta-mātrayā || 12 || sa-kaphe 'nila-je kāse śvāsa-hidhmā-hatāgniṣu | durālabhāṃ śṛṅgaveraṃ śaṭhīṃ drākṣāṃ sitopalām || 13 || 3.13dv śuṇṭhīṃ drākṣāṃ sitopalām lihyāt karkaṭaśṛṅgīṃ ca kāse tailena vāta-je | duḥsparśāṃ pippalīṃ mustāṃ bhārgīṃ karkaṭakīṃ śaṭhīm || 14 || purāṇa-guḍa-tailābhyāṃ cūrṇitāny avalehayet | tad-vat sa-kṛṣṇāṃ śuṇṭhīṃ ca sa-bhārgīṃ tad-vad eva ca || 15 || pibec ca kṛṣṇāṃ koṣṇena salilena sa-saindhavām | mastunā sa-sitāṃ śuṇṭhīṃ dadhnā vā kaṇa-reṇukām || 16 || 3.16dv dadhnā vā kaṇa-reṇukam pibed badara-majjño vā madirā-dadhi-mastubhiḥ | atha-vā pippalī-kalkaṃ ghṛta-bhṛṣṭaṃ sa-saindhavam || 17 || 3.17av pibed badara-majjāṃ vā kāsī sa-pīnaso dhūmaṃ snaihikaṃ vidhinā pibet | hidhmā-śvāsokta-dhūmāṃś ca kṣīra-māṃsa-rasāśanaḥ || 18 || grāmyānūpaudakaiḥ śāli-yava-godhūma-ṣaṣṭikān | rasair māṣātmaguptānāṃ yūṣair vā bhojayed dhitān || 19 || 3.19av grāmyānūpodbhavaiḥ śāli- yavānī-pippalī-bilva-madhya-nāgara-citrakaiḥ | rāsnājājī-pṛthakparṇī-palāśa-śaṭhi-pauṣkaraiḥ || 20 || siddhāṃ snigdhāmla-lavaṇāṃ peyām anila-je pibet | kaṭī-hṛt-pārśva-koṣṭhārti-śvāsa-hidhmā-praṇāśanīm || 21 || daśa-mūla-rase tad-vat pañca-kola-guḍānvitām | pibet peyāṃ sama-tilāṃ kṣaireyīṃ vā sa-saindhavām || 22 || mātsya-kaukkuṭa-vārāhair māṃsair vā sājya-saindhavām | vāstuko vāyasī-śākaṃ kāsaghnaḥ suniṣaṇṇakaḥ || 23 || kaṇṭakāryāḥ phalaṃ pattraṃ bālaṃ śuṣkaṃ ca mūlakam | snehās tailādayo bhakṣyāḥ kṣīrekṣu-rasa-gauḍikāḥ || 24 || dadhi-mastv-āranālāmla-phalāmbu-madirāḥ pibet | pitta-kāse tu sa-kaphe vamanaṃ sarpiṣā hitam || 25 || tathā madana-kāśmarya-madhuka-kvathitair jalaiḥ | phala-yaṣṭy-āhva-kalkair vā vidārīkṣu-rasāplutaiḥ || 26 || pitta-kāse tanu-kaphe trivṛtāṃ madhurair yutām | yuñjyād virekāya yutāṃ ghana-śleṣmaṇi tiktakaiḥ || 27 || hṛta-doṣo himaṃ svādu snigdhaṃ saṃsarjanaṃ bhajet | ghane kaphe tu śiśiraṃ rūkṣaṃ tiktopasaṃhitam || 28 || lehaḥ paitte sitā-dhātrī-kṣaudra-drākṣā-himotpalaiḥ | sa-ghṛtaḥ sānile hitaḥ sa-kaphe sābda-maricaḥ || 29 || 3.29av lehaḥ pitte sitā-dhātrī- mṛdvīkārdha-śataṃ triṃśat pippalīḥ śarkarā-palam | lehayen madhunā gor vā kṣīra-pasya śakṛd-rasam || 30 || tvag-elā-vyoṣa-mṛdvīkā-pippalī-mūla-pauṣkaraiḥ | lāja-mustā-śaṭhī-rāsnā-dhātrī-phala-vibhītakaiḥ || 31 || śarkarā-kṣaudra-sarpirbhir leho hṛd-roga-kāsa-hā | madhurair jāṅgala-rasair yava-śyāmāka-kodravāḥ || 32 || mudgādi-yūṣaiḥ śākaiś ca tiktakair mātrayā hitāḥ | ghana-śleṣmaṇi lehāś ca tiktakā madhu-saṃyutāḥ || 33 || śālayaḥ syus tanu-kaphe ṣaṣṭikāś ca rasādibhiḥ | śarkarāmbho 'nu-pānārthaṃ drākṣekṣu-sva-rasāḥ payaḥ || 34 || kākolī-bṛhatī-medā-dvayaiḥ sa-vṛṣa-nāgaraiḥ | pitta-kāse rasa-kṣīra-peyā-yūṣān prakalpayet || 35 || drākṣāṃ kaṇāṃ pañca-mūlaṃ tṛṇākhyaṃ ca pacej jale | tena kṣīraṃ śṛtaṃ śītaṃ pibet sa-madhu-śarkaram || 36 || sādhitāṃ tena peyāṃ vā su-śītāṃ madhunānvitām | śaṭhī-hrīvera-bṛhatī-śarkarā-viśva-bheṣajam || 37 || piṣṭvā rasaṃ pibet pūtaṃ vastreṇa ghṛta-mūrchitam | medāṃ vidārīṃ kākolīṃ svayaṅguptā-phalaṃ balām || 38 || śarkarāṃ jīvakaṃ mudga-māṣaparṇyau durālabhām | kalkī-kṛtya pacet sarpiḥ kṣīreṇāṣṭa-guṇena tat || 39 || pāna-bhojana-leheṣu prayuktaṃ pitta-kāsa-jit | lihyād vā cūrṇam eteṣāṃ kaṣāyam atha-vā pibet || 40 || kapha-kāsī pibed ādau surakāṣṭhāt pradīpitāt | snehaṃ parisrutaṃ vyoṣa-yava-kṣārāvacūrṇitam || 41 || 3.41av kapha-kāse pibed ādau snigdhaṃ virecayed ūrdhvam adho mūrdhni ca yuktitaḥ | tīkṣṇair virekair balinaṃ saṃsargīṃ cāsya yojayet || 42 || yava-mudga-kulatthānnair uṣṇa-rūkṣaiḥ kaṭūtkaṭaiḥ | kāsamardaka-vārtāka-vyāghrī-kṣāra-kaṇānvitaiḥ || 43 || dhānva-baila-rasaiḥ snehais tila-sarṣapa-nimba-jaiḥ | daśa-mūlāmbu gharmāmbu madyaṃ madhv-ambu vā pibet || 44 || 3.44av dhānva-baila-rasair lehais 3.44bv tila-sarṣapa-bilva-jaiḥ mūlaiḥ pauṣkara-śamyāka-paṭolaiḥ saṃsthitaṃ niśām | pibed vāri saha-kṣaudraṃ kāleṣv annasya vā triṣu || 45 || 3.45bv -paṭolair anvitaṃ niśām pippalī pippalī-mūlaṃ śṛṅgaveraṃ vibhītakam | śikhi-kukkuṭa-picchānāṃ maṣī kṣāro yavodbhavaḥ || 46 || viśālā pippalī-mūlaṃ trivṛtā ca madhu-dravāḥ | kapha-kāsa-harā lehās trayaḥ ślokārdha-yojitāḥ || 47 || madhunā maricaṃ lihyān madhunaiva ca joṅgakam | pṛthag rasāṃś ca madhunā vyāghrī-vārtāka-bhṛṅga-jān || 48 || kāsaghnasyāśva-śakṛtaḥ surasasyāsitasya ca | devadāru-śaṭhī-rāsnā-karkaṭākhyā-durālabhāḥ || 49 || 3.49bv surasasyāsitasya vā pippalī nāgaraṃ mustaṃ pathyā dhātrī sitopalā | lājāḥ sitopalā sarpiḥ śṛṅgī dhātrī-phalodbhavā || 50 || 3.50dv śṛṅgī dhātrī-phalād rajaḥ madhu-taila-yutā lehās trayo vātānuge kaphe | dve pale dāḍimād aṣṭau guḍād vyoṣāt pala-trayam || 51 || rocanaṃ dīpanaṃ svaryaṃ pīnasa-śvāsa-kāsa-jit | guḍa-kṣāroṣaṇa-kaṇā-dāḍimaṃ śvāsa-kāsa-jit || 52 || 3.52dv -dāḍimāc chvāsa-kāsa-jit kramāt pala-dvayārdhākṣa-karṣārdhākṣa-palonmitam | pibej jvaroktaṃ pathyādi sa-śṛṅgīkaṃ ca pācanam || 53 || 3.53bv -karṣākṣārdha-palonmitam atha-vā dīpyaka-trivṛd-viśālā-ghana-pauṣkaram | sa-kaṇaṃ kvathitaṃ mūtre kapha-kāsī jale 'pi vā || 54 || taila-bhṛṣṭaṃ ca vaidehī-kalkākṣaṃ sa-sitopalam | pāyayet kapha-kāsa-ghnaṃ kulattha-salilāplutam || 55 || daśa-mūlāḍhake prasthaṃ ghṛtasyākṣa-samaiḥ pacet | puṣkarāhva-śaṭhī-bilva-surasā-vyoṣa-hiṅgubhiḥ || 56 || 3.56cv puṣkarākhya-śaṭhī-bilva- peyānu-pānaṃ tat sarva-vāta-śleṣmāmayāpaham | nirguṇḍī-pattra-niryāsa-sādhitaṃ kāsa-jid ghṛtam || 57 || ghṛtaṃ rase viḍaṅgānāṃ vyoṣa-garbhaṃ ca sādhitam || 57ū̆ab || punarnava-śivātikā-sarala-kāsamardāmṛtā- || 58a || paṭola-bṛhatī-phaṇijjaka-rasaiḥ payaḥ-saṃyutaiḥ || 58b || ghṛtaṃ tri-kaṭunā ca siddham upayujya saṃjāyate || 58c || na kāsa-viṣama-jvara-kṣaya-gudāṅkurebhyo bhayam || 58d || sa-mūla-phala-pattrāyāḥ kaṇṭakāryā rasāḍhake || 59ab || 3.59av sa-mūla-phala-śākhāyāḥ ghṛta-prasthaṃ balā-vyoṣa-viḍaṅga-śaṭhi-dāḍimaiḥ | sauvarcala-yava-kṣāra-mūlāmalaka-pauṣkaraiḥ || 60 || vṛścīva-bṛhatī-pathyā-yavānī-citrakarddhibhiḥ | mṛdvīkā-cavya-varṣābhū-durālabhāmla-vetasaiḥ || 61 || śṛṅgī-tāmalakī-bhārgī-rāsnā-gokṣurakaiḥ pacet | kalkais tat sarva-kāseṣu śvāsa-hidhmāsu ceṣyate || 62 || kaṇṭakārī-ghṛtaṃ caitat kapha-vyādhi-vināśanam | paced vyāghrī-tulāṃ kṣuṇṇāṃ vahe 'pām āḍhaka-sthite || 63 || kṣipet pūte tu saṃcūrṇya vyoṣa-rāsnāmṛtāgnikān | śṛṅgī-bhārgī-ghana-granthi-dhanvayāsān palārdhakān || 64 || 3.64av kṣipet pūte ca saṃcūrṇya sarpiṣaḥ ṣo-ḍaśa-palaṃ catvāriṃśat palāni ca | matsyaṇḍikāyāḥ śuddhāyāḥ punaś ca tad adhiśrayet || 65 || darvī-lepini śīte ca pṛthag dvi-kuḍavaṃ kṣipet | pippalīnāṃ tavakṣīryā mākṣikasyā-navasya ca || 66 || 3.66cv pippalīnāṃ tukākṣīryā leho 'yaṃ gulma-hṛd-roga-dur-nāma-śvāsa-kāsa-jit | śamanaṃ ca pibed dhūmaṃ śodhanaṃ bahale kaphe || 67 || 3.67dv śodhanaṃ bahule kaphe manaḥśilāla-madhuka-māṃsī-musteṅgudī-tvacaḥ | dhūmaṃ kāsa-ghna-vidhinā pītvā kṣīraṃ pibed anu || 68 || niṣṭhyūtānte guḍa-yutaṃ koṣṇaṃ dhūmo nihanti saḥ | vāta-śleṣmottarān kāsān a-cireṇa ciran-tanān || 69 || tamakaḥ kapha-kāse tu syāc cet pittānubandha-jaḥ | pitta-kāsa-kriyāṃ tatra yathāvasthaṃ prayojayet || 70 || kaphānubandhe pavane kuryāt kapha-harāṃ kriyām | pittānubandhayor vāta-kaphayoḥ pitta-nāśinīm || 71 || vāta-śleṣmātmake śuṣke snigdham ārdre virūkṣaṇam | kāse karma sa-pitte tu kapha-je tikta-saṃyutam || 72 || 3.72bv snigdhaṃ cārdre virūkṣaṇam urasy antaḥ-kṣate sadyo lākṣāṃ kṣaudra-yutāṃ pibet | kṣīreṇa śālīn jīrṇe 'dyāt kṣīreṇaiva sa-śarkarān || 73 || pārśva-vasti-sa-ruk cālpa-pittāgnis tāṃ surā-yutām | bhinna-viṭkaḥ sa-mustātiviṣā-pāṭhāṃ sa-vatsakām || 74 || lākṣāṃ sarpir madhūcchiṣṭaṃ jīvanīyaṃ gaṇaṃ sitām | tvakkṣīrīṃ samitaṃ kṣīre paktvā dīptānalaḥ pibet || 75 || 3.75cv tvakkṣīrīṃ saṃmitaṃ kṣīre ikṣvārikā-bisa-granthi-padma-kesara-candanaiḥ | śṛtaṃ payo madhu-yutaṃ saṃdhānārthaṃ pibet kṣatī || 76 || yavānāṃ cūrṇam āmānāṃ kṣīre siddhaṃ ghṛtānvitam | jvara-dāhe sitā-kṣaudra-saktūn vā payasā pibet || 77 || 3.77bv kṣīra-siddhaṃ ghṛtānvitam kāsa-vāṃs tu pibet sarpir madhurauṣadha-sādhitam | guḍodakaṃ vā kvathitaṃ sa-kṣaudra-maricaṃ hitam || 78 || 3.78av kāsa-vāṃś ca pibet sarpir cūrṇam āmalakānāṃ vā kṣīre pakvaṃ ghṛtānvitam | rasāyana-vidhānena pippalīr vā prayojayet || 79 || 3.79bv kṣīra-pakvaṃ ghṛtānvitam kāsī parvāsthi-śūlī ca lihyāt sa-ghṛta-mākṣikāḥ | madhūka-madhuka-drākṣā-tvakkṣīrī-pippalī-balāḥ || 80 || 3.80bv lihyāt sa-ghṛta-mākṣikān 3.80dv -tvakkṣīrī-pippalī-balān tri-jātam ardha-karṣāṃśaṃ pippaly-ardha-palaṃ sitā | drākṣā madhūkaṃ kharjūraṃ palāśaṃ ślakṣṇa-cūrṇitam || 81 || madhunā guṭikā ghnanti tā vṛṣyāḥ pitta-śoṇitam | kāsa-śvāsā-ruci-cchardi-mūrchā-hidhmā-mada-bhramān || 82 || 3.82dv -mūrchā-hidhmā-vami-bhramān kṣata-kṣaya-svara-bhraṃśa-plīha-śoṣāḍhya-mārutān | rakta-niṣṭhīva-hṛt-pārśva-ruk-pipāsā-jvarān api || 83 || 3.83bv -plīha-śophāḍhya-mārutān varṣābhū-śarkarā-rakta-śāli-taṇḍula-jaṃ rajaḥ | rakta-ṣṭhīvī pibet siddhaṃ drākṣā-rasa-payo-ghṛtaiḥ || 84 || madhūka-madhuka-kṣīra-siddhaṃ vā taṇḍulīyakam | yathā-svaṃ mārga-visṛte rakte kuryāc ca bheṣajam || 85 || mūḍha-vātas tv ajā-medaḥ surā-bhṛṣṭaṃ sa-saindhavam | kṣāmaḥ kṣīṇaḥ kṣatorasko manda-nidro 'gni-dīpti-mān || 86 || śṛta-kṣīra-sareṇādyāt sa-ghṛta-kṣaudra-śarkaram | śarkarā-yava-godhūmaṃ jīvakarṣabhakau madhu || 87 || 3.87cv śarkarāṃ yava-godhūmaṃ śṛta-kṣīrānu-pānaṃ vā lihyāt kṣīṇaḥ kṣataḥ kṛśaḥ | kravyāt-piśita-niryūhaṃ ghṛta-bhṛṣṭaṃ pibec ca saḥ || 88 || pippalī-kṣaudra-saṃyuktaṃ māṃsa-śoṇita-vardhanam | nyagrodhodumbarāśvattha-plakṣa-śāla-priyaṅgubhiḥ || 89 || tāla-mastaka-jambū-tvak-priyālaiś ca sa-padmakaiḥ | sāśvakarṇaiḥ śṛtāt kṣīrād adyāj jātena sarpiṣā || 90 || śāly-odanaṃ kṣatoraskaḥ kṣīṇa-śukra-balendriyaḥ | vāta-pittārdite 'bhyaṅgo gātra-bhede ghṛtair mataḥ || 91 || tailaiś cānila-roga-ghnaiḥ pīḍite mātariśvanā | hṛt-pārśvārtiṣu pānaṃ syāj jīvanīyasya sarpiṣaḥ || 92 || 3.92cv hṛta-pārśvārtau tu pānaṃ syāj kuryād vā vāta-roga-ghnaṃ pitta-raktā-virodhi yat | yaṣṭy-āhva-nāgabalayoḥ kvāthe kṣīra-same ghṛtam || 93 || payasyā-pippalī-vāṃśī-kalkaiḥ siddhaṃ kṣate hitam | jīvanīyo gaṇaḥ śuṇṭhī varī vīrā punarnavā || 94 || balā-bhārgī-svaguptarddhi-śaṭhī-tāmalakī-kaṇāḥ | śṛṅgāṭakaṃ payasyā ca pañca-mūlaṃ ca yal laghu || 95 || drākṣākṣoṭādi ca phalaṃ madhura-snigdha-bṛṃhaṇam | taiḥ pacet sarpiṣaḥ prasthaṃ karṣāṃśaiḥ ślakṣṇa-kalkitaiḥ || 96 || kṣīra-dhātrī-vidārīkṣu-cchāga-māṃsa-rasānvitam | prasthārdhaṃ madhunaḥ śīte śarkarārdha-tulā-rajaḥ || 97 || palārdhakaṃ ca marica-tvag-elā-pattra-kesaram | vinīya prasṛtaṃ tasmāl lihyān mātrāṃ yathā-balam || 98 || 3.98dv lihyān mātrāṃ yathānalam amṛta-prāśam ity etan narāṇām amṛtaṃ ghṛtam | sudhāmṛta-rasaṃ prāśyaṃ kṣīra-māṃsa-rasāśinā || 99 || naṣṭa-śukra-kṣata-kṣīṇa-dur-bala-vyādhi-karśitān | strī-prasaktān kṛśān varṇa-svara-hīnāṃś ca bṛṃhayet || 100 || 3.100bv -dur-bala-vyādhi-karṣitān kāsa-hidhmā-jvara-śvāsa-dāha-tṛṣṇāsra-pitta-nut | putra-daṃ chardi-mūrchā-hṛd-yoni-mūtrāmayāpaham || 101 || śvadaṃṣṭrośīra-mañjiṣṭhā-balā-kāśmarya-kaṭtṛṇam | darbha-mūlaṃ pṛthakparṇīṃ palāśarṣabhakau sthirām || 102 || pālikāni pacet teṣāṃ rase kṣīra-catur-guṇe | kalkaiḥ svaguptā-jīvantī-medarṣabhaka-jīvakaiḥ || 103 || śatāvary-ṛddhi-mṛdvīkā-śarkarā-śrāvaṇī-bisaiḥ | prasthaḥ siddho ghṛtād vāta-pitta-hṛd-roga-śūla-nut || 104 || 3.104dv -pitta-hṛd-drava-śūla-nut mūtra-kṛcchra-pramehārśaḥ-kāsa-śoṣa-kṣayāpahaḥ | dhanuḥ-strī-madya-bhārādhva-khinnānāṃ bala-māṃsa-daḥ || 105 || madhukāṣṭa-pala-drākṣā-prastha-kvāthe paced ghṛtam | pippaly-aṣṭa-pale kalke prasthaṃ siddhe ca śītale || 106 || pṛthag aṣṭa-palaṃ kṣaudra-śarkarābhyāṃ vimiśrayet | sama-saktu kṣata-kṣīṇa-rakta-gulmeṣu tad dhitam || 107 || dhātrī-phala-vidārīkṣu-jīvanīya-rasād ghṛtāt | gavyājayoś ca payasoḥ prasthaṃ prasthaṃ vipācayet || 108 || siddha-śīte sitā-kṣaudraṃ dvi-prasthaṃ vinayet tataḥ | yakṣmāpasmāra-pittāsṛk-kāsa-meha-kṣayāpaham || 109 || 3.109av siddha-pūte sitā-kṣaudraṃ 3.109dv -kāsa-meha-jvarāpaham vayaḥ-sthāpanam āyuṣyaṃ māṃsa-śukra-bala-pradam | ghṛtaṃ tu pitte 'bhyadhike lihyād vāte 'dhike pibet || 110 || 3.110dv lihyād vātādhike pibet līḍhaṃ nirvāpayet pittam alpa-tvād dhanti nānalam | ākrāmaty anilaṃ pītam ūṣmāṇaṃ niruṇaddhi ca || 111 || kṣāma-kṣīṇa-kṛśāṅgānām etāny eva ghṛtāni tu | tvakkṣīrī-śarkarā-lāja-cūrṇaiḥ styānāni yojayet || 112 || 3.112cv tvakkṣīrī-pippalī-lāja- 3.112dv -cūrṇaiḥ pānāni yojayet sarpir-guḍān sa-madhv-aṃśān kṛtvā dadyāt payo 'nu ca | reto vīryaṃ balaṃ puṣṭiṃ tair āśu-taram āpnuyāt || 113 || vīta-tvag-asthi-kūṣmāṇḍa-tulāṃ svinnāṃ punaḥ pacet | ghaṭṭayan sarpiṣaḥ prasthe kṣaudra-varṇe 'tra ca kṣipet || 114 || 3.114dv kṣaudra-varṇe tu nikṣipet khaṇḍāc chataṃ kaṇā-śuṇṭhyor dvi-palaṃ jīrakād api | tri-jāta-dhānya-maricaṃ pṛthag ardha-palāṃśakam || 115 || avatārita-śīte ca dattvā kṣaudraṃ ghṛtārdhakam | khajenāmathya ca sthāpyaṃ tan nihanty upayojitam || 116 || kāsa-hidhmā-jvara-śvāsa-rakta-pitta-kṣata-kṣayān | uraḥ-saṃdhāna-jananaṃ medhā-smṛti-bala-pradam || 117 || aśvibhyāṃ vihitaṃ hṛdyaṃ kūṣmāṇḍaka-rasāyanam | piben nāgabalā-mūlasyārdha-karṣābhivardhitam || 118 || 3.118dv ṃyārdha-karṣādi-vardhitam 3.118dv ṃyārdha-karṣa-vivardhitam palaṃ kṣīra-yutaṃ māsaṃ kṣīra-vṛttir an-anna-bhuk | eṣa prayogaḥ puṣṭy-āyur-bala-varṇa-karaḥ param || 119 || maṇḍūkaparṇyāḥ kalpo 'yaṃ yaṣṭyā viśvauṣadhasya ca | pāda-śeṣaṃ jala-droṇe pacen nāgabalā-tulām || 120 || tena kvāthena tulyāṃśaṃ ghṛtaṃ kṣīraṃ ca sādhayet | palārdhikaiś cātibalā-balā-yaṣṭī-punarnavaiḥ || 121 || prapauṇḍarīka-kāśmarya-priyāla-kapikacchubhiḥ | aśvagandhā-sitābhīru-medā-yugma-trikaṇṭakaiḥ || 122 || kākolī-kṣīra-kākolī-kṣīraśuklā-dvi-jīrakaiḥ | mṛṇāla-bisa-kharjūra-śṛṅgāṭaka-kaserukaiḥ || 123 || 3.123bv -kṣīraśuklā-dvi-jīvakaiḥ etan nāgabalā-sarpiḥ pitta-rakta-kṣata-kṣayān | jayet tṛḍ-bhrama-dāhāṃś ca bala-puṣṭi-karaṃ param || 124 || varṇyam āyuṣyam ojasyaṃ valī-palita-nāśanam | upayujya ca ṣaṇ māsān vṛddho 'pi taruṇāyate || 125 || 3.125cv upayujya tu ṣaṇ-māsād dīpte 'gnau vidhir eṣa syān mande dīpana-pācanaḥ | yakṣmoktaḥ kṣatināṃ śasto grāhī śakṛti tu drave || 126 || daśa-mūlaṃ svayaṅguptāṃ śaṅkhapuṣpīṃ śaṭhīṃ balām | hasti-pippaly-apāmārga-pippalī-mūla-citrakān || 127 || bhārgīṃ puṣkara-mūlaṃ ca dvi-palāṃśaṃ yavāḍhakam | harītakī-śataṃ caikaṃ jala-pañcāḍhake pacet || 128 || 3.128bv dvi-palāṃśān yavāḍhakam 3.128dv jale pañcāḍhake pacet yava-svede kaṣāyaṃ taṃ pūtaṃ tac cābhayā-śatam | paced guḍa-tulāṃ dattvā kuḍavaṃ ca pṛthag ghṛtāt || 129 || 3.129av yave svinne kaṣāyaṃ taṃ tailāt sa-pippalī-cūrṇāt siddha-śīte ca mākṣikāt | lehaṃ dve cābhaye nityam ataḥ khāded rasāyanāt || 130 || 3.130cv lehe dve cābhaye nityam tad valī-palitaṃ hanyād varṇāyur-bala-vardhanam | pañca-kāsān kṣayaṃ śvāsaṃ sa-hidhmaṃ viṣama-jvaram || 131 || meha-gulma-grahaṇy-arśo-hṛd-rogā-ruci-pīnasān | agastya-vihitaṃ dhanyam idaṃ śreṣṭhaṃ rasāyanam || 132 || daśa-mūlaṃ balāṃ mūrvāṃ haridre pippalī-dvayam | pāṭhāśvagandhāpāmārga-svaguptātiviṣāmṛtāḥ || 133 || 3.133bv haridrā-pippalī-dvayam 3.133dv -svaguptātiviṣāmṛtam bāla-bilvaṃ trivṛd-dantī-mūlaṃ pattraṃ ca citrakāt | payasyāṃ kuṭajaṃ hiṃsrāṃ puṣpaṃ sāraṃ ca bījakāt || 134 || boṭa-sthavira-bhallāta-vikaṅkata-śatāvarīḥ | pūti-karañja-śamyāka-candralekhā-sahācaram || 135 || 3.135dv -candralekhā-sahācarāt śaubhāñjanaka-nimba-tvag-ikṣuraṃ ca palāṃśakam | pathyā-sahasraṃ sa-śataṃ yavānāṃ cāḍhaka-dvayam || 136 || paced aṣṭa-guṇe toye yava-svede 'vatārayet | pūte kṣipet sa-pathye ca tatra jīrṇa-guḍāt tulām || 137 || 3.137cv pūte kṣipet sa-pathyāṃ ca tailājya-dhātrī-rasataḥ prasthaṃ prasthaṃ tataḥ punaḥ | adhiśrayen mṛdāv agnau darvī-lepe 'vatārya ca || 138 || śīte prastha-dvayaṃ kṣaudrāt pippalī-kuḍavaṃ kṣipet | cūrṇī-kṛtaṃ tri-jātāc ca tri-palaṃ nikhanet tataḥ || 139 || dhānye purāṇa-kumbha-sthaṃ māsaṃ khādec ca pūrva-vat | rasāyanaṃ vasiṣṭhoktam etat pūrva-guṇādhikam || 140 || svasthānāṃ niṣ-parīhāraṃ sarvartuṣu ca śasyate | pālikaṃ saindhavaṃ śuṇṭhī dve ca sauvarcalāt pale || 141 || kuḍavāṃśāni vṛkṣāmlaṃ dāḍimaṃ pattram ārjakāt | ekaikāṃ maricājājyor dhānyakād dve caturthike || 142 || 3.142bv dāḍimaṃ pattram ārjakam śarkarāyāḥ palāny atra daśa dve ca pradāpayet | kṛtvā cūrṇam ato mātrām anna-pāneṣu dāpayet || 143 || rucyaṃ tad dīpanaṃ balyaṃ pārśvārti-śvāsa-kāsa-jit | ekāṃ ṣo-ḍaśikāṃ dhānyād dve dve cājāji-dīpyakāt || 144 || 3.144bv pārśvārti-śvāsa-kāsa-nut tābhyāṃ dāḍima-vṛkṣāmle dvir dviḥ sauvarcalāt palam | śuṇṭhyāḥ karṣaṃ dadhitthasya madhyāt pañca palāni ca || 145 || 3.145cv śuṇṭhyāḥ karṣaṃ kapitthasya tac cūrṇaṃ ṣo-ḍaśa-palaiḥ śarkarāyā vimiśrayet | ṣāḍavo 'yaṃ pradeyaḥ syād anna-pāneṣu pūrva-vat || 146 || vidhiś ca yakṣma-vihito yathāvasthaṃ kṣate hitaḥ | nivṛtte kṣata-doṣe tu kaphe vṛddha uraḥ śiraḥ || 147 || dālyate kāsino yasya sa nā dhūmān pibed imān | dvi-medā-dvi-balā-yaṣṭī-kalkaiḥ kṣaume su-bhāvite || 148 || 3.148av dālyete kāsino yasya 3.148bv sa dhūmān nā pibed imān vartiṃ kṛtvā pibed dhūmaṃ jīvanīya-ghṛtānupaḥ | manaḥśilā-palāśājagandhā-tvakkṣīri-nāgaraiḥ || 149 || tad-vad evānu-pānaṃ tu śarkarekṣu-guḍodakam | piṣṭvā manaḥśilāṃ tulyām ārdrayā vaṭa-śuṅgayā || 150 || sa-sarpiṣkaṃ pibed dhūmaṃ tittiri-pratibhojanam | kṣaya-je bṛṃhaṇaṃ pūrvaṃ kuryād agneś ca vardhanam || 151 || 3.151bv tittiri-pratibhojitam bahu-doṣāya sa-snehaṃ mṛdu dadyād virecanam | śamyākena trivṛtayā mṛdvīkā-rasa-yuktayā || 152 || tilvakasya kaṣāyeṇa vidārī-sva-rasena ca | sarpiḥ siddhaṃ pibed yuktyā kṣīṇa-deho viśodhanam || 153 || pitte kaphe dhātuṣu ca kṣīṇeṣu kṣaya-kāsa-vān | ghṛtaṃ karkaṭakī-kṣīra-dvi-balā-sādhitaṃ pibet || 154 || vidārībhiḥ kadambair vā tāla-sasyaiś ca sādhitam | ghṛtaṃ payaś ca mūtrasya vaivarṇye kṛcchra-nirgame || 155 || śūne sa-vedane meḍhre pāyau sa-śroṇi-vaṅkṣaṇe | ghṛta-maṇḍena laghunānuvāsyo miśrakeṇa vā || 156 || jāṅgalair pratibhuktasya vartakādyā bile-śayāḥ | krama-śaḥ prasahās tad-vat prayojyāḥ piśitāśinaḥ || 157 || auṣṇyāt pramāthi-bhāvāc ca srotobhyaś cyāvayanti te | kaphaṃ śuddhaiś ca taiḥ puṣṭiṃ kuryāt samyag vahan rasaḥ || 158 || cavikā-tri-phalā-bhārgī-daśa-mūlaiḥ sa-citrakaiḥ | kulattha-pippalī-mūla-pāṭhā-kola-yavair jale || 159 || śṛtair nāgara-duḥsparśā-pippalī-śaṭhi-pauṣkaraiḥ | piṣṭaiḥ karkaṭaśṛṅgyā ca samaiḥ sarpir vipācayet || 160 || siddhe 'smiṃś cūrṇitau kṣārau dvau pañca lavaṇāni ca | dattvā yuktyā piben mātrāṃ kṣaya-kāsa-nipīḍitaḥ || 161 || 3.161bv dvau pañca lavaṇāni tu kāsamardābhayā-mustā-pāṭhā-kaṭphala-nāgaraiḥ | pippalyā kaṭu-rohiṇyā kāśmaryā surasena ca || 162 || akṣa-mātrair ghṛta-prasthaṃ kṣīra-drākṣā-rasāḍhake | pacec choṣa-jvara-plīha-sarva-kāsa-haraṃ śivam || 163 || vṛṣa-vyāghrī-guḍūcīnāṃ pattra-mūla-phalāṅkurāt | rasa-kalkair ghṛtaṃ pakvaṃ hanti kāsa-jvarā-rucīḥ || 164 || dvi-guṇe dāḍima-rase siddhaṃ vā vyoṣa-saṃyutam | pibed upari bhuktasya yava-kṣāra-yutaṃ naraḥ || 165 || 3.165cv pibed upari bhaktasya 3.165dv yava-kṣāra-ghṛtaṃ naraḥ 3.165dv yava-kṣāra-yutaṃ ghṛtam pippalī-guḍa-siddhaṃ vā chāga-kṣīra-yutaṃ ghṛtam | etāny agni-vivṛddhy-arthaṃ sarpīṃṣi kṣaya-kāsinām || 166 || syur doṣa-baddha-kaṇṭhoraḥ-srotasāṃ ca viśuddhaye | prasthonmite yava-kvāthe viṃśatiṃ vijayāḥ pacet || 167 || svinnā mṛditvā tās tasmin purāṇāt ṣaṭ-palaṃ guḍāt | pippalyā dvi-palaṃ karṣaṃ manohvāyā rasāñjanāt || 168 || dattvārdhākṣaṃ paced bhūyaḥ sa lehaḥ śvāsa-kāsa-jit | śvāvidhāṃ sūcayo dagdhāḥ sa-ghṛta-kṣaudra-śarkarāḥ || 169 || 3.169bv sa lehaḥ śvāsa-kāsa-nut śvāsa-kāsa-harā barhi-pādau vā madhu-sarpiṣā | eraṇḍa-pattra-kṣāraṃ vā vyoṣa-taila-guḍānvitam || 170 || lehayet kṣāram evaṃ vā surasairaṇḍa-pattra-jam | lihyāt try-ūṣaṇa-cūrṇaṃ vā purāṇa-guḍa-sarpiṣā || 171 || padmakaṃ tri-phalā vyoṣaṃ viḍaṅgaṃ devadāru ca | balā rāsnā ca tac-cūrṇaṃ samastaṃ sama-śarkaram || 172 || 3.172dv samasta-sama-śarkaram khāden madhu-ghṛtābhyāṃ vā lihyāt kāsa-haraṃ param | tad-van marica-cūrṇaṃ vā sa-ghṛta-kṣaudra-śarkaram || 173 || 3.173cv tad-van marica-cūrṇaṃ ca pathyā-śuṇṭhī-ghana-guḍair guṭikāṃ dhārayen mukhe | sarveṣu śvāsa-kāseṣu kevalaṃ vā vibhītakam || 174 || pattra-kalkaṃ ghṛta-bhṛṣṭaṃ tilvakasya sa-śarkaram | peyā votkārikā chardi-tṛṭ-kāsāmātisāra-jit || 175 || 3.175cv peyā cotkārikā chardi- 3.175dv -tṛṭ-kāsāmātisāra-nut kaṇṭakārī-rase siddho kṣīraṃ yūṣān rasān api | sa-gaurāmalakaḥ sāmlaḥ sarva-kāsa-bhiṣag-jitam || 176 || vāta-ghnauṣadha-niḥkvāthe kṣīraṃ yūṣān rasān api | vaiṣkirān prātudān bailān dāpayet kṣaya-kāsine || 177 || kṣata-kāse ca ye dhūmāḥ sānu-pānā nidarśitāḥ | kṣaya-kāse 'pi te yojyā vakṣyate yac ca yakṣmaṇi || 178 || 3.178dv vakṣyante ye ca yakṣmaṇi bṛṃhaṇaṃ dīpanaṃ cāgneḥ srotasāṃ ca viśodhanam | vyatyāsāt kṣaya-kāsibhyo balyaṃ sarvaṃ praśasyate || 179 || saṃnipātodbhavo ghoraḥ kṣaya-kāso yatas tataḥ | yathā-doṣa-balaṃ tasya saṃnipāta-hitaṃ hitam || 180 || Cikitsāsthāna śvāsa-hidhmā yatas tulya-hetv-ādyāḥ sādhanaṃ tataḥ | tulyam eva tad-ārtaṃ ca pūrvaṃ svedair upācaret || 1 || snigdhair lavaṇa-tailāktaṃ taiḥ kheṣu grathitaḥ kaphaḥ | su-līno 'pi vilīno 'sya koṣṭhaṃ prāptaḥ su-nirharaḥ || 2 || srotasāṃ syān mṛdu-tvaṃ ca marutaś cānuloma-tā | svinnaṃ ca bhojayed annaṃ snigdham ānūpa-jai rasaiḥ || 3 || 4.3bv mārutasyānuloma-tā dadhy-uttareṇa vā dadyāt tato 'smai vamanaṃ mṛdu | viśeṣāt kāsa-vamathu-hṛd-graha-svara-sādine || 4 || pippalī-saindhava-kṣaudra-yuktaṃ vātā-virodhi yat | nirhṛte sukham āpnoti sa kaphe duṣṭa-vigrahe || 5 || srotaḥsu ca viśuddheṣu caraty a-vihato 'nilaḥ | dhmānodāvarta-tamake mātuluṅgāmla-vetasaiḥ || 6 || hiṅgu-pīlu-viḍair yuktam annaṃ syād anulomanam | sa-saindhavaṃ phalāmlaṃ vā koṣṇaṃ dadyād virecanam || 7 || ete hi kapha-saṃruddha-gati-prāṇa-prakopa-jāḥ | tasmāt tan-mārga-śuddhy-artham ūrdhvādhaḥ śodhanaṃ hitam || 8 || udīryate bhṛśa-taraṃ mārga-rodhād vahaj jalam | yathā tathānilas tasya mārgam asmād viśodhayet || 9 || a-śāntau kṛta-saṃśuddher dhūmair līnaṃ malaṃ haret | haridrā-pattram eraṇḍa-mūlaṃ lākṣāṃ manaḥśilām || 10 || 4.10dv -mūlaṃ drākṣāṃ manaḥśilām sa-devadārv alaṃ māṃsīṃ piṣṭvā vartiṃ prakalpayet | tāṃ ghṛtāktāṃ pibed dhūmaṃ yavān vā ghṛta-saṃyutān || 11 || madhūcchiṣṭaṃ sarja-rasaṃ ghṛtaṃ vā guru vāguru | candanaṃ vā tathā śṛṅgaṃ vālān vā snāva vā gavām || 12 || 4.12dv vālān vā snāyu vā gavām ṛkṣa-godhā-kuraṅgaiṇa-carma-śṛṅga-khurāṇi vā | gugguluṃ vā manohvāṃ vā śāla-niryāsam eva vā || 13 || 4.13av ṛśya-godhā-kuraṅgaiṇa- 4.13bv -carma-śṛṅga-khurāṇi ca śallakīṃ gugguluṃ lohaṃ padmakaṃ vā ghṛtāplutam | avaśyaṃ svedanīyānām a-svedyānām api kṣaṇam || 14 || 4.14bv padmakaṃ vā ghṛta-plutam svedayet sa-sitā-kṣīra-sukhoṣṇa-sneha-secanaiḥ | utkārikopanāhaiś ca svedādhyāyokta-bheṣajaiḥ || 15 || uraḥ kaṇṭhaṃ ca mṛdubhiḥ sāme tv āma-vidhiṃ caret | ati-yogoddhataṃ vātaṃ dṛṣṭvā pavana-nāśanaiḥ || 16 || snigdhai rasādyair nāty-uṣṇair abhyaṅgaiś ca śamaṃ nayet | an-utkliṣṭa-kaphā-svinna-dur-balānāṃ hi śodhanāt || 17 || vāyur labdhāspado marma saṃśoṣyāśu hared asūn | kaṣāya-leha-snehādyais teṣāṃ saṃśamayed ataḥ || 18 || kṣīṇa-kṣatātisārāsṛk-pitta-dāhānubandha-jān | madhura-snigdha-śītādyair hidhmā-śvāsān upācaret || 19 || kulattha-daśa-mūlānāṃ kvāthe syur jāṅgalā rasāḥ | yūṣāś ca śigru-vārtāka-kāsaghna-vṛṣa-mūlakaiḥ || 20 || pallavair nimba-kulaka-bṛhatī-mātuluṅga-jaiḥ | vyāghrī-durālabhā-śṛṅgī-bilva-madhya-trikaṇṭakaiḥ || 21 || sāmṛtāgni-kulatthaiś ca yūṣaḥ syāt kvathitair jale | tad-vad rāsnā-bṛhaty-ādi-balā-mudgaiḥ sa-citrakaiḥ || 22 || 4.22bv yūṣaḥ syāt kvathitair jalaiḥ peyā ca citrakājājī-śṛṅgī-sauvarcalaiḥ kṛtā | daśa-mūlena vā kāsa-śvāsa-hidhmā-rujāpahā || 23 || daśa-mūla-śaṭhī-rāsnā-bhārgī-bilvarddhi-pauṣkaraiḥ | kulīraśṛṅgī-capalā-tāmalaky-amṛtauṣadhaiḥ || 24 || pibet kaṣāyaṃ jīrṇe 'smin peyāṃ tair eva sādhitām | śāli-ṣaṣṭika-godhūma-yava-mudga-kulattha-bhuk || 25 || kāsa-hṛd-graha-pārśvārti-hidhmā-śvāsa-praśāntaye | saktūn vārkāṅkura-kṣīra-bhāvitānāṃ sa-mākṣikān || 26 || yavānāṃ daśa-mūlādi-niḥkvātha-lulitān pibet | anne ca yojayet kṣāra-hiṅgv-ājya-viḍa-dāḍimān || 27 || sa-pauṣkara-śaṭhī-vyoṣa-mātuluṅgāmla-vetasān | daśa-mūlasya vā kvātham atha-vā devadāruṇaḥ || 28 || 4.28cv daśa-mūlasya niḥkvātham pibed vā vāruṇī-maṇḍaṃ hidhmā-śvāsī pipāsitaḥ | pippalī-pippalī-mūla-pathyā-jantughna-citrakaiḥ || 29 || kalkitair lepite rūḍhe niḥkṣiped ghṛta-bhājane | takraṃ māsa-sthitaṃ tad dhi dīpanaṃ śvāsa-kāsa-jit || 30 || pāṭhāṃ madhurasāṃ dāru saralaṃ ca niśi sthitam | surā-maṇḍe 'lpa-lavaṇaṃ pibet prasṛta-saṃmitam || 31 || 4.31bv saralaṃ niśi saṃsthitam 4.31dv pibet prasṛti-saṃmitam bhārgī-śuṇṭhyau sukhāmbhobhiḥ kṣāraṃ vā maricānvitam | sva-kvātha-piṣṭāṃ lulitāṃ bāṣpikāṃ pāyayeta vā || 32 || sva-rasaḥ saptaparṇasya puṣpāṇāṃ vā śirīṣataḥ | hidhmā-śvāse madhu-kaṇā-yuktaḥ pitta-kaphānuge || 33 || utkārikā tugā-kṛṣṇā-madhūlī-ghṛta-nāgaraiḥ | pittānubandhe yoktavyā pavane tv anubandhini || 34 || śvāvic-chaśāmiṣa-kaṇā-ghṛta-śalyaka-śoṇitaiḥ | suvarcalā-rasa-vyoṣa-sarpirbhiḥ sahitaṃ payaḥ || 35 || anu śāly-odanaṃ peyam vāta-pittānubandhini | catur-guṇāmbu-siddhaṃ vā chāgaṃ sa-guḍa-nāgaram || 36 || pippalī-mūla-madhuka-guḍa-go-'śva-śakṛd-rasān | hidhmābhiṣyanda-kāsa-ghnāō̃ lihyān madhu-ghṛtānvitān || 37 || go-gajāśva-varāhoṣṭra-khara-meṣāja-viḍ-rasam | sa-madhv ekaika-śo lihyād bahu-śleṣmātha-vā pibet || 38 || catuṣ-pāc-carma-romāsthi-khura-śṛṅgodbhavāṃ maṣīm | tathaiva vājigandhāyā lihyāc chvāsī kapholbaṇaḥ || 39 || śaṭhī-pauṣkara-dhātrīr vā pauṣkaraṃ vā kaṇānvitam | gairikāñjana-kṛṣṇā vā sva-rasaṃ vā kapittha-jam || 40 || rasena vā kapitthasya dhātrī-saindhava-pippalīḥ | ghṛta-kṣaudreṇa vā pathyā-viḍaṅgoṣaṇa-pippalīḥ || 41 || kola-lājāmala-drākṣā-pippalī-nāgarāṇi vā | guḍa-taila-niśā-drākṣā-kaṇā-rāsnoṣaṇāni vā || 42 || pibed rasāmbu-madyāmlair lehauṣadha-rajāṃsi vā | jīvantī-musta-surasa-tvag-elā-dvaya-pauṣkaram || 43 || caṇḍā-tāmalakī-loha-bhārgī-nāgara-vālakam | karkaṭākhyā-śaṭhī-kṛṣṇā-nāgakesara-corakam || 44 || upayuktaṃ yathā-kāmaṃ cūrṇaṃ dvi-guṇa-śarkaram | pārśva-rug-jvara-kāsa-ghnaṃ hidhmā-śvāsa-haraṃ param || 45 || śaṭhī-tāmalakī-bhārgī-caṇḍā-vālaka-pauṣkaram | śarkarāṣṭa-guṇaṃ cūrṇaṃ hidhmā-śvāsa-haraṃ param || 46 || tulyaṃ guḍaṃ nāgaraṃ ca bhakṣayen nāvayeta vā | laśunasya palāṇḍor vā mūlaṃ gṛñjanakasya vā || 47 || candanād vā rasaṃ dadyān nārī-kṣīreṇa nāvanam | stanyena makṣikā-viṣṭhām alaktaka-rasena vā || 48 || sa-saindhavaṃ ghṛtācchaṃ vā siddhaṃ stanyena vā ghṛtam | kalkitair madhura-dravyais tat piben nāvayeta vā || 49 || sakṛd uṣṇaṃ sakṛc chītaṃ vyatyāsāt sa-sitā-madhu | tad-vat payas tathā siddham adho-bhāgauṣadhair ghṛtam || 50 || kaṇā-sauvarcala-kṣāra-vayaḥsthā-hiṅgu-corakaiḥ | sa-kāyasthair ghṛtaṃ mastu-daśa-mūla-rase pacet || 51 || tat pibej jīvanīyair vā lihyāt sa-madhu sādhitam | tejovaty abhayā kuṣṭhaṃ pippalī kaṭu-rohiṇī || 52 || bhūtikaṃ pauṣkaraṃ mūlaṃ palāśaś citrakaḥ śaṭhī | paṭu-dvayaṃ tāmalakī jīvantī bilva-peśikā || 53 || vacā pattraṃ ca tālīśaṃ karṣāṃśais tair vipācayet | hiṅgu-pādair ghṛta-prasthaṃ pītam āśu nihanti tat || 54 || 4.54av vacā pattraṃ ca tālīśāt śākhānilārśo-grahaṇī-hidhmā-hṛt-pārśva-vedanāḥ | ardhāṃśena pibet sarpiḥ kṣāreṇa paṭunātha-vā || 55 || dhānvantaraṃ vṛṣa-ghṛtaṃ dādhikaṃ hapuṣādi vā | śītāmbu-sekaḥ sahasā trāsa-vikṣepa-bhī-śucaḥ || 56 || harṣerṣyocchvāsa-rodhāś ca hitaṃ kīṭaiś ca daṃśanam | yat kiñ-cit kapha-vāta-ghnam uṣṇaṃ vātānulomanam || 57 || 4.57av harṣerṣyocchvāsa-saṃrodhā tat sevyaṃ prāya-śo yac ca su-tarāṃ mārutāpaham | sarveṣāṃ bṛṃhaṇe hy alpaḥ śakyaś ca prāya-śo bhavet || 58 || nāty-arthaṃ śamane 'pāyo bhṛśo '-śakyaś ca karṣaṇe | śamanair bṛṃhaṇaiś cāto bhūyiṣṭhaṃ tān upācaret || 59 || 4.59bv bhṛśo '-śakyaś ca karśane kāsa-śvāsa-kṣaya-cchardi-hidhmāś cānyo-'nya-bheṣajaiḥ || 59ū̆ab || Cikitsāsthāna balino bahu-doṣasya snigdha-svinnasya śodhanam | ūrdhvādho yakṣmiṇaḥ kuryāt sa-snehaṃ yan na karśanam || 1 || 5.1dv sa-snehaṃ yan na karṣaṇam payasā phala-yuktena madhureṇa rasena vā | sarpiṣ-matyā yavāgvā vā vamana-dravya-siddhayā || 2 || vamed virecanaṃ dadyāt trivṛc-chyāmā-nṛpadrumān | śarkarā-madhu-sarpirbhiḥ payasā tarpaṇena vā || 3 || drākṣā-vidārī-kāśmarya-māṃsānāṃ vā rasair yutān | śuddha-koṣṭhasya yuñjīta vidhiṃ bṛṃhaṇa-dīpanam || 4 || 5.4bv -māṃsānāṃ vā rasair yutam hṛdyāni cānna-pānāni vāta-ghnāni laghūni ca | śāli-ṣaṣṭika-godhūma-yava-mudgaṃ samoṣitam || 5 || laghum a-cyuta-vīryaṃ ca su-jaraṃ bala-kṛc ca yat || 5+(1)ab || 5.5+(1)av laghuṃ cā-cyuta-vīryaṃ ca 5.5+(1)av laghum adbhuta-vīryaṃ ca ājaṃ kṣīraṃ ghṛtaṃ māṃsaṃ kravyān-māṃsaṃ ca śoṣa-jit | kākolūka-vṛka-dvīpi-gavāśva-nakuloragam || 6 || gṛdhra-bhāsa-kharoṣṭraṃ ca hitaṃ chadmopasaṃhitam | jñātaṃ jugupsitaṃ tad dhi cchardiṣe na balaujase || 7 || 5.7av gṛdhra-cāṣa-kharoṣṭraṃ ca mṛgādyāḥ pitta-kaphayoḥ pavane prasahādayaḥ | vesavārī-kṛtāḥ pathyā rasādiṣu ca kalpitāḥ || 8 || bhṛṣṭāḥ sarṣapa-tailena sarpiṣā vā yathā-yatham | rasikā mṛdavaḥ snigdhāḥ paṭu-dravyābhisaṃskṛtāḥ || 9 || hitā maulaka-kaulatthās tad-vad yūṣāś ca sādhitāḥ | sa-pippalīkaṃ sa-yavaṃ sa-kulatthaṃ sa-nāgaram || 10 || sa-dāḍimaṃ sāmalakaṃ snigdham ājaṃ rasaṃ pibet | tena ṣaḍ vinivartante vikārāḥ pīnasādayaḥ || 11 || 5.11bv snigdham āja-rasaṃ pibet pibec ca su-tarāṃ madyaṃ jīrṇaṃ sroto-viśodhanam | pittādiṣu viśeṣeṇa madhv-ariṣṭāccha-vāruṇīḥ || 12 || 5.12dv madhv-ariṣṭaṃ ca vāruṇīm siddhaṃ vā pañca-mūlena tāmalakyātha-vā jalam | parṇinībhiś catasṛbhir dhānya-nāgarakeṇa vā || 13 || kalpayec cānukūlo 'sya tenānnaṃ śuci yatna-vān | daśa-mūlena payasā siddhaṃ māṃsa-rasena vā || 14 || balā-garbhaṃ ghṛtaṃ yojyaṃ kravyān-māṃsa-rasena vā | sa-kṣaudraṃ payasā siddhaṃ sarpir daśa-guṇena vā || 15 || jīvantīṃ madhukaṃ drākṣāṃ phalāni kuṭajasya ca | puṣkarāhvaṃ śaṭhīṃ kṛṣṇāṃ vyāghrīṃ gokṣurakaṃ balām || 16 || 5.16dv vyāghrīṃ gokṣurakaṃ balāḥ nīlotpalaṃ tāmalakīṃ trāyamāṇāṃ durālabhām | kalkī-kṛtya ghṛtaṃ pakvaṃ roga-rāja-haraṃ param || 17 || ghṛtaṃ kharjūra-mṛdvīkā-madhukaiḥ sa-parūṣakaiḥ | sa-pippalīkaṃ vaisvarya-kāsa-śvāsa-jvarāpaham || 18 || daśa-mūla-śṛtāt kṣīrāt sarpir yad udiyān navam | sa-pippalīkaṃ sa-kṣaudraṃ tat paraṃ svara-bodhanam || 19 || śiraḥ-pārśvāṃsa-śūla-ghnaṃ kāsa-śvāsa-jvarāpaham | pañcabhiḥ pañca-mūlair vā śṛtād yad udiyād ghṛtam || 20 || pañcānāṃ pañca-mūlānāṃ rase kṣīra-catur-guṇe | siddhaṃ sarpir jayaty etad yakṣmaṇaḥ saptakaṃ balam || 21 || 5.21dv yakṣmiṇaḥ saptakaṃ balam pañca-kola-yava-kṣāra-ṣaṭ-palena paced ghṛtam | prasthonmitaṃ tulya-payaḥ srotasāṃ tad viśodhanam || 22 || gulma-jvarodara-plīha-grahaṇī-pāṇḍu-pīnasān | śvāsa-kāsāgni-sadana-śvayathūrdhvānilāñ jayet || 23 || rāsnā-balā-gokṣuraka-sthirā-varṣābhu-vāriṇi | jīvantī-pippalī-garbhaṃ sa-kṣīraṃ śoṣa-jid ghṛtam || 24 || aśvagandhā-śṛtāt kṣīrād ghṛtaṃ ca sa-sitā-payaḥ | sādhāraṇāmiṣa-tulāṃ toya-droṇa-dvaye pacet || 25 || tenāṣṭa-bhāga-śeṣeṇa jīvanīyaiḥ palonmitaiḥ | sādhayet sarpiṣaḥ prasthaṃ vāta-pittāmayāpaham || 26 || māṃsa-sarpir idam pītaṃ yuktaṃ māṃsa-rasena vā | kāsa-śvāsa-svara-bhraṃśa-śoṣa-hṛt-pārśva-śūla-jit || 27 || 5.27bv yuktaṃ māṃsa-raseṣu vā elājamodā-tri-phalā-saurāṣṭrī-vyoṣa-citrakān | sārān ariṣṭa-gāyatrī-śāla-bījaka-saṃbhavān || 28 || bhallātakaṃ viḍaṅgaṃ ca pṛthag aṣṭa-palonmitam | salile ṣo-ḍaśa-guṇe ṣo-ḍaśāṃśa-sthitaṃ pacet || 29 || punas tena ghṛta-prasthaṃ siddhe cāsmin palāni ṣaṭ | tavakṣīryāḥ kṣipet triṃśat sitāyā dvi-guṇaṃ madhu || 30 || ghṛtāt tri-jātāt tri-palaṃ tato līḍhaṃ khajāhatam | payo-'nu-pānaṃ tat prāhṇe rasāyanam a-yantraṇam || 31 || medhyaṃ cakṣuṣyam āyuṣyaṃ dīpanaṃ hanti cā-cirāt | meha-gulma-kṣaya-vyādhi-pāṇḍu-roga-bhagandarān || 32 || ye ca sarpir-guḍāḥ proktāḥ kṣate yojyāḥ kṣaye 'pi te | tvag-elā-pippalī-kṣīrī-śarkarā dvi-guṇāḥ kramāt || 33 || cūrṇitā bhakṣitāḥ kṣaudra-sarpiṣā vāvalehitāḥ | svaryāḥ kāsa-kṣaya-śvāsa-pārśva-ruk-kapha-nāśanāḥ || 34 || 5.34bv -sarpiṣā cāvalehitāḥ viśeṣāt svara-sāde 'sya nasya-dhūmādi yojayet | tatrāpi vāta-je koṣṇaṃ pibed auttarabhaktikam || 35 || 5.35dv pibed uttara-bhaktikam kāsamardaka-vārtākī-mārkava-sva-rasair ghṛtam | sādhitaṃ kāsa-jit svaryaṃ siddham ārtagalena vā || 36 || badarī-pattra-kalkaṃ vā ghṛta-bhṛṣṭaṃ sa-saindhavam | tailaṃ vā madhuka-drākṣā-pippalī-kṛminut-phalaiḥ || 37 || 5.37dv -pippalī-kṛmihṛt-phalaiḥ haṃsapadyāś ca mūlena pakvaṃ nasto niṣecayet | sukhodakānu-pānaṃ ca sa-sarpiṣkaṃ guḍaudanam || 38 || aśnīyāt pāyasaṃ caivaṃ snigdhaṃ svedaṃ niyojayet | pittodbhave pibet sarpiḥ śṛta-śīta-payo-'nupaḥ || 39 || kṣīri-vṛkṣāṅkura-kvātha-kalka-siddhaṃ sa-mākṣikam | aśnīyāc ca sa-sarpiṣkaṃ yaṣṭīmadhuka-pāyasam || 40 || balā-vidārigandhābhyāṃ vidāryā madhukena ca | siddhaṃ sa-lavaṇaṃ sarpir nasyaṃ svaryam an-uttamam || 41 || prapauṇḍarīkaṃ madhukaṃ pippalī bṛhatī balā | sādhitaṃ kṣīra-sarpiś ca tat svaryaṃ nāvanaṃ param || 42 || lihyān madhurakāṇāṃ ca cūrṇaṃ madhu-ghṛtāplutam | pibet kaṭūni mūtreṇa kapha-je rūkṣa-bhojanaḥ || 43 || kaṭphalāmalaka-vyoṣaṃ lihyāt taila-madhu-plutam | vyoṣa-kṣārāgni-cavikā-bhārgī-pathyā-madhūni vā || 44 || yavair yavāgūṃ yamake kaṇā-dhātrī-kṛtāṃ pibet | bhuktvādyāt pippalīṃ śuṇṭhīṃ tīkṣṇaṃ vā vamanaṃ bhajet || 45 || śarkarā-kṣaudra-miśrāṇi śṛtāni madhuraiḥ saha | pibet payāṃsi yasyoccair vadato 'bhihataḥ svaraḥ || 46 || vicitram annam a-rucau hitair upahitaṃ hitam | bahir-antar-mṛjā citta-nirvāṇaṃ hṛdyam auṣadham || 47 || dvau kālau danta-pavanaṃ bhakṣayen mukha-dhāvanaiḥ | kaṣāyaiḥ kṣālayed āsyaṃ dhūmaṃ prāyogikaṃ pibet || 48 || tālīśa-cūrṇa-vaṭakāḥ sa-karpūra-sitopalāḥ | śaśāṅka-kiraṇākhyāś ca bhakṣyā ruci-karāḥ param || 49 || 5.49dv bhakṣyā ruci-karā bhṛśam vātād a-rocake tatra pibec cūrṇaṃ prasannayā | hareṇu-kṛṣṇā-kṛmijid-drākṣā-saindhava-nāgarāt || 50 || elā-bhārgī-yava-kṣāra-hiṅgu-yuktād ghṛtena vā | chardayed vā vacāmbhobhiḥ pittāc ca guḍa-vāribhiḥ || 51 || lihyād vā śarkarā-sarpir-lavaṇottama-mākṣikam | kaphād vamen nimba-jalair dīpyakāragvadhodakam || 52 || pānaṃ sa-madhv-ariṣṭāś ca tīkṣṇāḥ sa-madhu-mādhavāḥ | pibec cūrṇaṃ ca pūrvoktaṃ hareṇv-ādy-uṣṇa-vāriṇā || 53 || elā-tvaṅ-nāgakusuma-tīkṣṇa-kṛṣṇā-mahauṣadham | bhāga-vṛddhaṃ kramāc cūrṇaṃ nihanti sama-śarkaram || 54 || prasekā-ruci-hṛt-pārśva-kāsa-śvāsa-galāmayān | yavānī-tintiḍīkāmla-vetasauṣadha-dāḍimam || 55 || kṛtvā kolaṃ ca karṣāṃśaṃ sitāyāś ca catuḥ-palam | dhānya-sauvarcalājājī-varāṅgaṃ cārdha-kārṣikam || 56 || pippalīnāṃ śataṃ caikaṃ dve śate maricasya ca | cūrṇam etat paraṃ rucyaṃ hṛdyaṃ grāhi hinasti ca || 57 || 5.57cv tac-cūrṇaṃ dīpanaṃ rucyaṃ vibandha-kāsa-hṛt-pārśva-plīhārśo-grahaṇī-gadān | tālīśa-pattraṃ maricaṃ nāgaraṃ pippalī śubhā || 58 || yathottaraṃ bhāga-vṛddhyā tvag-ele cārdha-bhāgike | tad rucyaṃ dīpanaṃ cūrṇaṃ kaṇāṣṭa-guṇa-śarkaram || 59 || 5.59av yathottaraṃ bhāga-vṛddhās 5.59cv tad dravyaṃ dīpanaṃ cūrṇaṃ kāsa-śvāsā-ruci-cchardi-plīha-hṛt-pārśva-śūla-nut | pāṇḍu-jvarātisāra-ghnaṃ mūḍha-vātānulomanam || 60 || arkāmṛtā-kṣāra-jale śarvarīm uṣitair yavaiḥ | praseke kalpitān saktūn bhakṣyāṃś cādyād balī vamet || 61 || 5.61av arkāmṛtā-kṣīra-jale kaṭu-tiktais tathā śūlyaṃ bhakṣayej jāṅgalaṃ palam | śuṣkāṃś ca bhakṣyān su-laghūṃś caṇakādi-rasānupaḥ || 62 || śleṣmaṇo 'ti-prasekena vāyuḥ śleṣmāṇam asyati | kapha-prasekaṃ taṃ vidvān snigdhoṣṇair eva nirjayet || 63 || 5.63dv snigdhoṣṇenaiva nirjayet pīnase 'pi kramam imaṃ vamathau ca prayojayet | viśeṣāt pīnase 'bhyaṅgān snehān svedāṃś ca śīlayet || 64 || 5.64av pīnase ca kramam imaṃ snigdhān utkārikā-piṇḍaiḥ śiraḥ-pārśva-galādiṣu | lavaṇāmla-kaṭūṣṇāṃś ca rasān snehopasaṃhitān || 65 || śiro-'ṃsa-pārśva-śūleṣu yathā-doṣa-vidhiṃ caret | audakānūpa-piśitair upanāhāḥ su-saṃskṛtāḥ || 66 || tatreṣṭāḥ sa-catuḥ-snehā doṣa-saṃsarga iṣyate | pralepo nata-yaṣṭy-āhva-śatāhvā-kuṣṭha-candanaiḥ || 67 || balā-rāsnā-tilais tad-vat sa-sarpir-madhukotpalaiḥ | punarnavā-kṛṣṇagandhā-balā-vīrā-vidāribhiḥ || 68 || nāvanaṃ dhūma-pānāni snehāś cauttarabhaktikāḥ | tailāny abhyaṅga-yogīni vasti-karma tathā param || 69 || śṛṅgādyair vā yathā-doṣaṃ duṣṭam eṣāṃ hared asṛk | pradehaḥ sa-ghṛtaiḥ śreṣṭhaḥ padmakośīra-candanaiḥ || 70 || dūrvā-madhuka-mañjiṣṭhā-kesarair vā ghṛtāplutaiḥ | vaṭādi-siddha-tailena śata-dhautena sarpiṣā || 71 || abhyaṅgaḥ payasā sekaḥ śastaś ca madhukāmbunā | prāyeṇopahatāgni-tvāt sa-piccham atisāryate || 72 || tasyātīsāra-grahaṇī-vihitaṃ hitam auṣadham | purīṣaṃ yatnato rakṣec chuṣyato rāja-yakṣmiṇaḥ || 73 || sarva-dhātu-kṣayārtasya balaṃ tasya hi viḍ-balam | māṃsam evāśnato yuktyā mārdvīkaṃ pibato 'nu ca || 74 || a-vidhārita-vegasya yakṣmā na labhate 'ntaram | surāṃ sa-maṇḍāṃ mārdvīkam ariṣṭān sīdhu-mādhavān || 75 || 5.75dv ariṣṭaṃ sīdhu-mādhavān yathārham anu-pānārthaṃ piben māṃsāni bhakṣayan | sroto-vibandha-mokṣārthaṃ balaujaḥ-puṣṭaye ca tat || 76 || sneha-kṣīrāmbu-koṣṭheṣu sv-abhyaktam avagāhayet | uttīrṇaṃ miśrakaiḥ snehair bhūyo 'bhyaktaṃ sukhaiḥ karaiḥ || 77 || 5.77cv uttīrṇaṃ miśraka-snehair mṛdnīyāt sukham āsīnaṃ sukhaṃ codvartayet param | jīvantīṃ śatavīryāṃ ca vikasāṃ sa-punarnavām || 78 || aśvagandhām apāmārgaṃ tarkārīṃ madhukaṃ balām | vidārīṃ sarṣapān kuṣṭhaṃ taṇḍulān atasī-phalam || 79 || māṣāṃs tilāṃś ca kiṇvaṃ ca sarvam eka-tra cūrṇayet | yava-cūrṇaṃ tri-guṇitaṃ dadhnā yuktaṃ sa-mākṣikam || 80 || etad udvartanaṃ kāryaṃ puṣṭi-varṇa-bala-pradam | gaura-sarṣapa-kalkena snānīyauṣadhibhiś ca saḥ || 81 || 5.81av etad utsādanaṃ kāryaṃ 5.81dv snānair auṣadhibhiś ca saḥ snāyād ṛtu-sukhais toyair jīvanīyopasādhitaiḥ | gandha-mālyādikāṃ bhūṣām a-lakṣmī-nāśanīṃ bhajet || 82 || 5.82cv gandha-mālyādikair bhūṣām suhṛdāṃ darśanaṃ gīta-vāditrotsava-saṃśrutiḥ | vastayaḥ kṣīra-sarpīṃṣi madya-māṃsa-su-śīla-tā || 83 || 5.83dv madyaṃ māṃsaṃ su-śīla-tā daiva-vyapāśrayaṃ tat tad atharvoktaṃ ca pūjitam || 83ū̆ab || Cikitsāsthāna āmāśayotkleśa-bhavāḥ prāyaś chardyo hitaṃ tataḥ | laṅghanaṃ prāg ṛte vāyor vamanaṃ tatra yojayet || 1 || 6.1bv prāyaś chardyo hitaṃ matam balino bahu-doṣasya vamataḥ pratataṃ bahu | tato virekaṃ krama-śo hṛdyaṃ madyaiḥ phalāmbubhiḥ || 2 || kṣīrair vā saha sa hy ūrdhvaṃ gataṃ doṣaṃ nayaty adhaḥ | śamanaṃ cauṣadhaṃ rūkṣa-dur-balasya tad eva tu || 3 || pariśuṣkaṃ priyaṃ sātmyam annaṃ laghu ca śasyate | upavāsas tathā yūṣā rasāḥ kāmbalikāḥ khalāḥ || 4 || śākāni lehā bhojyāni rāga-ṣāḍava-pānakāḥ | bhakṣyāḥ śuṣkā vicitrāś ca phalāni snāna-gharṣaṇam || 5 || gandhāḥ su-gandhayo gandha-phala-puṣpānna-pāna-jāḥ | bhukta-mātrasya sahasā mukhe śītāmbu-secanam || 6 || hanti māruta-jāṃ chardiṃ sarpiḥ pītaṃ sa-saindhavam | kiñ-cid-uṣṇaṃ viśeṣeṇa sa-kāsa-hṛdaya-dravām || 7 || vyoṣa-tri-lavaṇāḍhyaṃ vā siddhaṃ vā dāḍimāmbunā | sa-śuṇṭhī-dadhi-dhānyena śṛtaṃ tulyāmbu vā payaḥ || 8 || 6.8dv śṛtaṃ tulyāmbunā payaḥ 6.8dv pītaṃ tulyāmbunā payaḥ vyakta-saindhava-sarpir vā phalāmlo vaiṣkiro rasaḥ | snigdhaṃ ca bhojanaṃ śuṇṭhī-dadhi-dāḍima-sādhitam || 9 || koṣṇaṃ sa-lavaṇaṃ cātra hitaṃ sneha-virecanam | pitta-jāyāṃ virekārthaṃ drākṣekṣu-sva-rasais trivṛt || 10 || sarpir vā tailvakaṃ yojyaṃ vṛddhaṃ ca śleṣma-dhāma-gam | ūrdhvam eva haret pittaṃ svādu-tiktair viśuddhi-mān || 11 || piben manthaṃ yavāgūṃ vā lājaiḥ sa-madhu-śarkarām | mudga-jāṅgala-jair adyād vyañjanaiḥ śāli-ṣaṣṭikam || 12 || 6.12bv lājaiḥ sa-madhu-śarkaraiḥ mṛd-bhṛṣṭa-loṣṭa-prabhavaṃ su-śītaṃ salilaṃ pibet | mudgośīra-kaṇā-dhānyaiḥ saha vā saṃsthitaṃ niśām || 13 || drākṣā-rasaṃ rasaṃ vekṣor guḍūcy-ambu payo 'pi vā | jambv-āmra-pallavośīra-vaṭa-śuṅgāvaroha-jaḥ || 14 || 6.14av drākṣā-rasaṃ rasaṃ cekṣor 6.14dv -vaṭa-śṛṅgāvaroha-jaḥ kvāthaḥ kṣaudra-yutaḥ pītaḥ śīto vā viniyacchati | chardiṃ jvaram atīsāraṃ mūrchāṃ tṛṣṇāṃ ca dur-jayām || 15 || dhātrī-rasena vā śītaṃ piben mudga-dalāmbu vā | kola-majja-sitā-lājā-makṣikā-viṭ-kaṇāñjanam || 16 || 6.16cv kola-majja-sitā-lākṣā- 6.16dv -makṣikā-viṭ-rasāñjanam lihyāt kṣaudreṇa pathyāṃ vā drākṣāṃ vā badarāṇi vā | kapha-jāyāṃ vamen nimba-kṛṣṇā-piṇḍīta-sarṣapaiḥ || 17 || yuktena koṣṇa-toyena dur-balaṃ copavāsayet | āragvadhādi-niryūhaṃ śītaṃ kṣaudra-yutaṃ pibet || 18 || 6.18cv āragvadhāder niryūhaṃ manthān yavair vā bahu-śaś chardi-ghnauṣadha-bhāvitaiḥ | kapha-ghnam annaṃ hṛdyaṃ ca rāgāḥ sārjaka-bhūstṛṇāḥ || 19 || līḍhaṃ manaḥśilā-kṛṣṇā-maricaṃ bījapūrakāt | sva-rasena kapitthasya sa-kṣaudreṇa vamiṃ jayet || 20 || khādet kapitthaṃ sa-vyoṣaṃ madhunā vā durālabhām | lihyān marica-cocailā-go-śakṛd-rasa-mākṣikam || 21 || anukūlopacāreṇa yāti dviṣṭārtha-jā śamam | kṛmi-jā kṛmi-hṛd-roga-gaditaiś ca bhiṣag-jitaiḥ || 22 || yathā-svaṃ pariśeṣāś ca tat-kṛtāś ca tathāmayāḥ || 22ū̆ab || chardi-prasaṅgena hi mātariśvā dhātu-kṣayāt kopam upaity avaśyam | kuryād ato 'smin vamanāti-yoga-proktaṃ vidhiṃ stambhana-bṛṃhaṇīyam || 23 || 6.23cv kuryād ato 'smin vamanāti-yoge 6.23dv proktaṃ vidhiṃ stambhana-bṛṃhaṇīyam sarpir-guḍā māṃsa-rasā ghṛtāni kalyāṇaka-try-ūṣaṇa-jīvanāni | payāṃsi pathyopahitāni lehāś chardiṃ prasaktāṃ praśamaṃ nayanti || 24 || 6.24av sarpir guḍo māṃsa-rasā ghṛtāni iti chardi-cikitsitam atha hṛd-roga-cikitsitam || 24+1 || hṛd-roge vāta-je tailaṃ mastu-sauvīra-takra-vat || 25 || tailaṃ ca lavaṇaiḥ siddhaṃ sa-mūtrāmlaṃ tathā-guṇam || 26 || pibet sukhoṣṇaṃ sa-viḍaṃ gulmānāhārti-jic ca tat | tailaṃ ca lavaṇaiḥ siddhaṃ sa-mūtrāmlaṃ tathā-guṇam || 26 || bilvaṃ rāsnāṃ yavān kolaṃ devadāruṃ punarnavām | kulatthān pañca-mūlaṃ ca paktvā tasmin pacej jale || 27 || tailaṃ tan nāvane pāne vastau ca viniyojayet | śuṇṭhī-vayaḥsthā-lavaṇa-kāyasthā-hiṅgu-pauṣkaraiḥ || 28 || 6.28cv śuṇṭhī-kayasthā-lavaṇa- 6.28cv -vayaḥsthā-hiṅgu-pauṣkaraiḥ pathyayā ca śṛtaṃ pārśva-hṛd-rujā-gulma-jid ghṛtam | sauvarcalasya dvi-pale pathyā-pañcāśad-anvite || 29 || ghṛtasya sādhitaḥ prastho hṛd-roga-śvāsa-gulma-jit | dāḍimaṃ kṛṣṇa-lavaṇaṃ śuṇṭhī-hiṅgv-amla-vetasam || 30 || 6.30bv hṛd-roga-śvāsa-gulma-hṛt 6.30dv śuṇṭhī hiṅgv amla-vetasaḥ apatantraka-hṛd-roga-śvāsa-ghnaṃ cūrṇam uttamam | puṣkarāhva-śaṭhī-śuṇṭhī-bījapūra-jaṭābhayāḥ || 31 || pītāḥ kalkī-kṛtāḥ kṣāra-ghṛtāmla-lavaṇair yutāḥ | vikartikā-śūla-harāḥ kvāthaḥ koṣṇaś ca tad-guṇaḥ || 32 || yavānī-lavaṇa-kṣāra-vacājājy-auṣadhaiḥ kṛtaḥ | sa-pūtidāru-bījāhva-palāśa-śaṭhi-pauṣkaraiḥ || 33 || 6.33cv sa pūtidāru-bījāhva- 6.33dv -vijayā-śaṭhi-pauṣkaraiḥ yava-kṣāro yavānī ca pibed uṣṇena vāriṇā | etena vāta-jaṃ śūlaṃ gulmaṃ caiva cirotthitam || 33+(1) || bhidyate sapta-rātreṇa pavanena yathā ghanaḥ || 33+(1ū̆)ab || pañca-kola-śaṭhī-pathyā-guḍa-bījāhva-pauṣkaram | vāruṇī-kalkitaṃ bhṛṣṭaṃ yamake lavaṇānvitam || 34 || hṛt-pārśva-yoni-śūleṣu khāded gulmodareṣu ca | snigdhāś ceha hitāḥ svedāḥ saṃskṛtāni ghṛtāni ca || 35 || 6.35dv saṃskṛtāni ghṛtāni tu laghunā pañca-mūlena śuṇṭhyā vā sādhitaṃ jalam | vāruṇī-dadhi-maṇḍaṃ vā dhānyāmlaṃ vā pibet tṛṣi || 36 || 6.36cv vāruṇīṃ dadhi-maṇḍaṃ vā sāyāma-stambha-śūlāme hṛdi māruta-dūṣite | kriyaiṣā sa-dravāyāma-pramohe tu hitā rasāḥ || 37 || snehāḍhyās tittiri-krauñca-śikhi-vartaka-dakṣa-jāḥ | balā-tailaṃ sa-hṛd-rogaḥ pibed vā su-kumārakam || 38 || 6.38av snehādyās tittiri-krauñca- yaṣṭy-āhva-śata-pākaṃ vā mahā-snehaṃ tathottamam | rāsnā-jīvaka-jīvantī-balā-vyāghrī-punarnavaiḥ || 39 || bhārgī-sthirā-vacā-vyoṣair mahā-snehaṃ vipācayet | dadhi-pādaṃ tathāmlaiś ca lābhataḥ sa niṣevitaḥ || 40 || tarpaṇo bṛṃhaṇo balyo vāta-hṛd-roga-nāśanaḥ | dīpte 'gnau sa-dravāyāme hṛd-roge vātike hitam || 41 || kṣīraṃ dadhi guḍaḥ sarpir audakānūpam āmiṣam | etāny eva ca varjyāni hṛd-rogeṣu caturṣv api || 42 || śeṣeṣu stambha-jāḍyāma-saṃyukte 'pi ca vātike | kaphānubandhe tasmiṃs tu rūkṣoṣṇām ācaret kriyām || 43 || paitte drākṣekṣu-niryāsa-sitā-kṣaudra-parūṣakaiḥ | yukto vireko hṛdyaḥ syāt kramaḥ śuddhe ca pitta-hā || 44 || 6.44cv yukto vireco hṛdyaḥ syāt kṣata-pitta-jvaroktaṃ ca bāhyāntaḥ parimārjanam | kaṭvī-madhuka-kalkaṃ ca pibet sa-sitam ambhasā || 45 || śreyasī-śarkarā-drākṣā-jīvakarṣabhakotpalaiḥ | balā-kharjūra-kākolī-medā-yugmaiś ca sādhitam || 46 || sa-kṣīraṃ māhiṣaṃ sarpiḥ pitta-hṛd-roga-nāśanam | prapauṇḍarīka-madhuka-bisa-granthi-kaserukāḥ || 47 || sa-śuṇṭhī-śaivalās tābhiḥ sa-kṣīraṃ vipaced ghṛtam | śītaṃ sa-madhu tac ceṣṭaṃ svādu-varga-kṛtaṃ ca yat || 48 || vastiṃ ca dadyāt sa-kṣaudraṃ tailaṃ madhuka-sādhitam | kaphodbhave vamet svinnaḥ picumanda-vacāmbhasā || 49 || 6.49av vastiṃ ca dadyāt sa-kṣaudra- 6.49bv -tailaṃ madhuka-sādhitam 6.49dv picumanda-vacāmbunā kulattha-dhanvottha-rasa-tīkṣṇa-madya-yavāśanaḥ | pibec cūrṇaṃ vacā-hiṅgu-lavaṇa-dvaya-nāgarāt || 50 || sailā-yavānaka-kaṇā-yava-kṣārāt sukhāmbunā | phala-dhānyāmla-kaulattha-yūṣa-mūtrāsavais tathā || 51 || 6.51av sailā-yavānika-kaṇā- puṣkarāhvābhayā-śuṇṭhī-śaṭhī-rāsnā-vacā-kaṇāt | kvāthaṃ tathābhayā-śuṇṭhī-mādrī-pītadru-kaṭphalāt || 52 || 6.52bc -śaṭhī-rāsnā-vacā-kaṇā- 6.52cc -kvāthaṃ tathābhayā-śuṇṭhī- kvāthe rohītakāśvattha-khadirodumbarārjune | sa-palāśa-vaṭe vyoṣa-trivṛc-cūrṇānvite kṛtaḥ || 53 || sukhodakānu-pānaś ca lehaḥ kapha-vikāra-hā | śleṣma-gulmoditājyāni kṣārāṃś ca vividhān pibet || 54 || 6.54av sukhodakānu-pānasya prayojayec chilāhvaṃ vā brāhmaṃ vātra rasāyanam | tathāmalaka-lehaṃ vā prāśaṃ vāgastya-nirmitam || 55 || 6.55bv brāhmaṃ cātra rasāyanam 6.55dv prāśyaṃ vāgastya-nirmitam 6.55dv prāśyaṃ cāgastya-nirmitam syāc chūlaṃ yasya bhukte 'ti jīryaty alpaṃ jarāṃ gate | śāmyet sa kuṣṭha-kṛmijil-lavaṇa-dvaya-tilvakaiḥ || 56 || 6.56av syāc chūlaṃ yasya bhukte 'nne sa-devadārv-ativiṣaiś cūrṇam uṣṇāmbunā pibet | yasya jīrṇe 'dhikaṃ snehaiḥ sa virecyaḥ phalaiḥ punaḥ || 57 || jīryaty anne tathā mūlais tīkṣṇaiḥ śūle sadādhike | prāyo 'nilo ruddha-gatiḥ kupyaty āmāśaye gataḥ || 58 || 6.58dv kupyaty āmāśaye tataḥ 6.58dv kupyaty āmāśaye yataḥ tasyānulomanaṃ kāryaṃ śuddhi-laṅghana-pācanaiḥ | kṛmi-ghnam auṣadhaṃ sarvaṃ kṛmi-je hṛdayāmaye || 59 || 6.59dv kṛmi-je ca hṛd-āmaye tṛṣṇāsu vāta-pitta-ghno vidhiḥ prāyeṇa śasyate | sarvāsu śīto bāhyāntas tathā śamana-śodhanaḥ || 60 || 6.60bv vidhiḥ prāyeṇa yujyate 6.60dv tathā śamana-śodhanam divyāmbu śītaṃ sa-kṣaudraṃ tad-vad bhaumaṃ ca tad-guṇam | nirvāpitaṃ tapta-loṣṭa-kapāla-sikatādibhiḥ || 61 || sa-śarkaraṃ vā kvathitaṃ pañca-mūlena vā jalam | darbha-pūrveṇa manthaś ca praśasto lāja-saktubhiḥ || 62 || vāṭyaś cāma-yavaiḥ śītaḥ śarkarā-mākṣikānvitaḥ | yavāgūḥ śālibhis tad-vat kodravaiś ca ciran-tanaiḥ || 63 || śītena śīta-vīryaiś ca dravyaiḥ siddhena bhojanam | himāmbu-pariṣiktasya payasā sa-sitā-madhu || 64 || rasaiś cān-amla-lavaṇair jāṅgalair ghṛta-bharjitaiḥ | mudgādīnāṃ tathā yūṣair jīvanīya-rasānvitaiḥ || 65 || 6.65av rasaiś cān-alpa-lavaṇair nasyaṃ kṣīra-ghṛtaṃ siddhaṃ śītair ikṣos tathā rasaḥ | nirvāpaṇāś ca gaṇḍūṣāḥ sūtra-sthānoditā hitāḥ || 66 || 6.66bv śītair ikṣos tathā rasaiḥ 6.66bv śītair ikṣos tathā rase dāha-jvaroktā lepādyā nirīha-tvaṃ mano-ratiḥ | mahā-sarid-dhradādīnāṃ darśana-smaraṇāni ca || 67 || 6.67dv darśana-smaraṇādi ca tṛṣṇāyāṃ pavanotthāyāṃ sa-guḍaṃ dadhi śasyate | rasāś ca bṛṃhaṇāḥ śītā vidāry-ādi-gaṇāmbu ca || 68 || 6.68dv vidāry-ādi-gaṇāmbu vā pitta-jāyāṃ sitā-yuktaḥ pakvodumbara-jo rasaḥ | tat-kvātho vā himas tad-vac chārivādi-gaṇāmbu vā || 69 || tad-vidhaiś ca gaṇaiḥ śīta-kaṣāyān sa-sitā-madhūn | madhurair auṣadhais tad-vat kṣīri-vṛkṣaiś ca kalpitān || 70 || bījapūraka-mṛdvīkā-vaṭa-vetasa-pallavān | mūlāni kuśa-kāśānāṃ yaṣṭy-āhvaṃ ca jale śṛtam || 71 || jvaroditaṃ vā drākṣādi pañca-sārāmbu vā pibet | kaphodbhavāyāṃ vamanaṃ nimba-prasava-vāriṇā || 72 || bilvāḍhakī-pañca-kola-darbha-pañcaka-sādhitam | jalaṃ pibed rajanyā vā siddhaṃ sa-kṣaudra-śarkaram || 73 || 6.73bv -darbha-kacchaka-sādhitam 6.73cv jalaṃ pibed rajanyāṃ vā mudga-yūṣaṃ ca sa-vyoṣa-paṭolī-nimba-pallavam | yavānnaṃ tīkṣṇa-kavaḍa-nasya-lehāṃś ca śīlayet || 74 || sarvair āmāc ca tad dhantrī kriyeṣṭā vamanaṃ tathā | try-ūṣaṇāruṣkara-vacā-phalāmloṣṇāmbu-mastubhiḥ || 75 || annātyayān maṇḍam uṣṇaṃ himaṃ manthaṃ ca kāla-vit | tṛṣi śramān māṃsa-rasaṃ manthaṃ vā sa-sitaṃ pibet || 76 || 6.76dv madyaṃ vā sa-sitaṃ pibet ātapāt sa-sitaṃ manthaṃ yava-kola-ja-saktubhiḥ | sarvāṇy aṅgāni limpec ca tila-piṇyāka-kāñjikaiḥ || 77 || śīta-snānāc ca madyāmbu pibet tṛṇ-mān guḍāmbu vā | madyād ardha-jalaṃ madyaṃ snāto 'mla-lavaṇair yutam || 78 || 6.78av śīta-snānāt tu madyāmbu 6.78bv pibet tṛḍ-vān guḍāmbu vā 6.78dv snāto 'mla-lavaṇāyutam sneha-tīkṣṇa-tarāgnis tu sva-bhāva-śiśiraṃ jalam | snehād uṣṇāmbv a-jīrṇāt tu jīrṇān maṇḍaṃ pipāsitaḥ || 79 || 6.79av snehāt tīkṣṇa-tarāgnis tu pibet snigdhānna-tṛṣito hima-spardhi guḍodakam | gurv-ādy-annena tṛṣitaḥ pītvoṣṇāmbu tad ullikhet || 80 || kṣaya-jāyāṃ kṣaya-hitaṃ sarvaṃ bṛṃhaṇam auṣadham | kṛśa-dur-bala-rūkṣāṇāṃ kṣīraṃ chāgo raso 'tha-vā || 81 || kṣīraṃ ca sordhva-vātāyāṃ kṣaya-kāsa-haraiḥ śṛtam | rogopasargāj jātāyāṃ dhānyāmbu sa-sitā-madhu || 82 || 6.82cv rogopasarga-jātāyāṃ pāne praśastaṃ sarvā ca kriyā rogādy-apekṣayā | tṛṣyan pūrvāmaya-kṣīṇo na labheta jalaṃ yadi || 83 || 6.83cv tṛṣṇan pūrvāmaya-kṣīṇo 6.83cc tṛṣṇak pūrvāmaya-kṣīṇo maraṇaṃ dīrgha-rogaṃ vā prāpnuyāt tvaritaṃ tataḥ | sātmyānna-pāna-bhaiṣajyais tṛṣṇāṃ tasya jayet purā || 84 || 6.84dv tṛṣṇāṃ tasya jayet puras tasyāṃ jitāyām anyo 'pi vyādhiḥ śakyaś cikitsitum || 84ū̆ab || Cikitsāsthāna yaṃ doṣam adhikaṃ paśyet tasyādau pratikārayet | kapha-sthānānupūrvyā ca tulya-doṣe madātyaye || 1 || 7.1cv kapha-sthānānupūrvyā tu pitta-māruta-pary-antaḥ prāyeṇa hi madātyayaḥ | hīna-mithyāti-pītena yo vyādhir upajāyate || 2 || sama-pītena tenaiva sa madyenopaśāmyati | madyasya viṣa-sādṛśyād viṣaṃ tūtkarṣa-vṛttibhiḥ || 3 || tīkṣṇādibhir guṇair yogād viṣāntaram apekṣate | tīkṣṇoṣṇenāti-mātreṇa pītenāmla-vidāhinā || 4 || madyenānna-rasa-kledo vidagdhaḥ kṣāra-tāṃ gataḥ | yān kuryān mada-tṛṇ-moha-jvarāntar-dāha-vibhramān || 5 || madyotkliṣṭena doṣeṇa ruddhaḥ srotaḥsu mārutaḥ | su-tīvrā vedanā yāś ca śirasy asthiṣu saṃdhiṣu || 6 || jīrṇāma-madya-doṣasya prakāṅkṣā-lāghave sati | yaugikaṃ vidhi-vad yuktaṃ madyam eva nihanti tān || 7 || kṣāro hi yāti mādhuryaṃ śīghram amlopasaṃhitaḥ | madyam amleṣu ca śreṣṭhaṃ doṣa-viṣyandanād alam || 8 || 7.8dv doṣa-visrāvaṇād alam tīkṣṇoṣṇādyaiḥ purā proktair dīpanādyais tathā guṇaiḥ | sātmya-tvāc ca tad evāsya dhātu-sāmya-karaṃ param || 9 || saptāham aṣṭa-rātraṃ vā kuryāt pānātyayauṣadham | jīryaty etāvatā pānaṃ kālena vi-pathāśritam || 10 || paraṃ tato 'nubadhnāti yo rogas tasya bheṣajam | yathā-yathaṃ prayuñjīta kṛta-pānātyayauṣadhaḥ || 11 || 7.11dv kṛta-pānātyayauṣadham tatra vātolbaṇe madyaṃ dadyāt piṣṭa-kṛtaṃ yutam | bījapūraka-vṛkṣāmla-kola-dāḍima-dīpyakaiḥ || 12 || yavānī-hapuṣājājī-vyoṣa-tri-lavaṇārdrakaiḥ | śūlya-māṃsair harītakaiḥ sneha-vadbhiś ca saktubhiḥ || 13 || 7.13bv -vyoṣa-tri-lavaṇārjakaiḥ 7.13cv śūlya-māṃsair haritakaiḥ uṣṇa-snigdhāmla-lavaṇā medya-māṃsa-rasā hitāḥ | āmrāmrātaka-peśībhiḥ saṃskṛtā rāga-ṣāḍavāḥ || 14 || 7.14av uṣṇāḥ snigdhāmla-lavaṇā 7.14bv madya-māṃsa-rasā hitāḥ 7.14dv saṃskṛtā rāga-khāṇḍavāḥ godhūma-māṣa-vikṛtir mṛduś citrā mukha-priyā | ārdrikārdraka-kulmāṣa-śukta-māṃsādi-garbhiṇī || 15 || surabhir lavaṇā śītā nir-gadā vāccha-vāruṇī | sva-raso dāḍimāt kvāthaḥ pañca-mūlāt kanīyasaḥ || 16 || 7.16bv nigadā vāccha-vāruṇī śuṇṭhī-dhānyāt tathā mastu śuktāmbho-'cchāmla-kāñjikam | abhyaṅgodvartana-snānam uṣṇaṃ prāvaraṇaṃ ghanam || 17 || ghanaś cāguru-jo dhūpaḥ paṅkaś cāguru-kuṅkumaḥ | kucoru-śroṇi-śālinyo yauvanoṣṇāṅga-yaṣṭayaḥ || 18 || harṣeṇāliṅgane yuktāḥ priyāḥ saṃvāhaneṣu ca | pittolbaṇe bahu-jalaṃ śārkaraṃ madhu vā yutam || 19 || rasair dāḍima-kharjūra-bhavya-drākṣā-parūṣa-jaiḥ | su-śītaṃ sa-sitā-saktu yojyaṃ tādṛk ca pānakam || 20 || 7.20bv -bhavya-drākṣā-parūṣakaiḥ 7.22bv -paṭolī-dāḍimair api svādu-varga-kaṣāyair vā yuktaṃ madyaṃ sa-mākṣikam | śāli-ṣaṣṭikam aśnīyāc chaśājaiṇa-kapiñjalaiḥ || 21 || satīna-mudgāmalaka-paṭolī-dāḍimai rasaiḥ | kapha-pittaṃ samutkliṣṭam ullikhet tṛḍ-vidāha-vān || 22 || pītvāmbu śītaṃ madyaṃ vā bhūrīkṣu-rasa-saṃyutam | drākṣā-rasaṃ vā saṃsargī tarpaṇādiḥ paraṃ hitaḥ || 23 || tathāgnir dīpyate tasya doṣa-śeṣānna-pācanaḥ | kāse sa-rakta-niṣṭhīve pārśva-stana-rujāsu ca || 24 || tṛṣṇāyāṃ sa-vidāhāyāṃ sotkleśe hṛdayorasi | guḍūcī-bhadra-mustānāṃ paṭolasyātha-vā rasam || 25 || sa-śṛṅgaveraṃ yuñjīta tittiri-pratibhojanam | tṛṣyate cāti bala-vad vāta-pitte samuddhate || 26 || 7.26av sa-nāgaraṃ yojayeta dadyād drākṣā-rasaṃ pānaṃ śītaṃ doṣānulomanam | jīrṇe 'dyān madhurāmlena cchāga-māṃsa-rasena ca || 27 || tṛṣy alpa-śaḥ piben madyaṃ madaṃ rakṣan bahūdakam | musta-dāḍima-lājāmbu jalaṃ vā parṇinī-śṛtam || 28 || pāṭaly-utpala-kandair vā sva-bhāvād eva vā himam | madyāti-pānād ab-dhātau kṣīṇe tejasi coddhate || 29 || 7.29av paṭoly-utpala-kandair vā yaḥ śuṣka-gala-tālv-oṣṭho jihvāṃ niṣkṛṣya ceṣṭate | pāyayet kāmato 'mbhas taṃ niśītha-pavanāhatam || 30 || kola-dāḍima-vṛkṣāmla-cukrīkā-cukrikā-rasaḥ | pañcāmlako mukhālepaḥ sadyas tṛṣṇāṃ niyacchati || 31 || tvacaṃ prāptaś ca pānoṣmā pitta-raktābhimūrchitaḥ | dāhaṃ prakurute ghoraṃ tatrāti-śiśiro vidhiḥ || 32 || 7.32av tvacaṃ prāptas tu pānoṣmā 7.32av tvacaṃ prāptaḥ sa pānoṣmā a-śāmyati rasais tṛpte rohiṇīṃ vyadhayet sirām | ullekhanopavāsābhyāṃ jayec chleṣmolbaṇaṃ pibet || 33 || śītaṃ śuṇṭhī-sthirodīcya-duḥsparśānya-tamodakam | nir-āmaṃ kṣudhitaṃ kāle pāyayed bahu-mākṣikam || 34 || śārkaraṃ madhu vā jīrṇam ariṣṭaṃ sīdhum eva vā | rūkṣa-tarpaṇa-saṃyuktaṃ yavānī-nāgarānvitam || 35 || yūṣeṇa yava-godhūmaṃ tanunālpena bhojayet | uṣṇāmla-kaṭu-tiktena kaulatthenālpa-sarpiṣā || 36 || 7.36cv uṣṇāmbu-kaṭu-tiktena śuṣka-mūlaka-jaiś chāgai rasair vā dhanva-cāriṇām | sāmla-vetasa-vṛkṣāmla-paṭolī-vyoṣa-dāḍimaiḥ || 37 || 7.37dv -pāṭalī-vyoṣa-dāḍimaiḥ prabhūta-śuṇṭhī-marica-haritārdraka-peśikam | bījapūra-rasādy-amla-bhṛṣṭa-nī-rasa-vartitam || 38 || karīra-karamardādi rociṣṇu bahu-śālanam | pravyaktāṣṭāṅga-lavaṇaṃ vikalpita-nimardakam || 39 || 7.39dv vikalpita-vimardakam yathāgni bhakṣayan māṃsaṃ mādhavaṃ nigadaṃ pibet | sitā-sauvarcalājājī-tintiḍīkāmla-vetasam || 40 || 7.40bv mādhavaṃ nir-gadaṃ pibet tvag-elā-maricārdhāṃśam aṣṭāṅga-lavaṇaṃ hitam | sroto-viśuddhy-agni-karaṃ kapha-prāye madātyaye || 41 || rūkṣoṣṇodvartanodgharṣa-snāna-bhojana-laṅghanaiḥ | sa-kāmābhiḥ saha strībhir yuktyā jāgaraṇena ca || 42 || madātyayaḥ kapha-prāyaḥ śīghraṃ samupaśāmyati | yad idaṃ karma nirdiṣṭaṃ pṛthag doṣa-balaṃ prati || 43 || saṃnipāte daśa-vidhe tac cheṣe 'pi vikalpayet | tvaṅ-nāgapuṣpa-magadhā-maricājāji-dhānyakaiḥ || 44 || parūṣaka-madhūkailā-surāhvaiś ca sitānvitaiḥ | sa-kapittha-rasaṃ hṛdyaṃ pānakaṃ śaśi-bodhitam || 45 || madātyayeṣu sarveṣu peyaṃ rucy-agni-dīpanam | nā-vikṣobhya mano madyaṃ śarīram a-vihanya vā || 46 || 7.46cv nā-kṣobhya hi mano madyaṃ 7.46dv śarīram a-vihatya vā kuryān madātyayaṃ tasmād iṣyate harṣaṇī kriyā | saṃśuddhi-śamanādyeṣu mada-doṣaḥ kṛteṣv api || 47 || na cec chāmyet kaphe kṣīṇe jāte daurbalya-lāghave | tasya madya-vidagdhasya vāta-pittādhikasya ca || 48 || grīṣmopataptasya taror yathā varṣaṃ tathā payaḥ | madya-kṣīṇasya hi kṣīṇaṃ kṣīram āśv eva puṣyati || 49 || 7.49cv madya-kṣīṇasya hi kṣīraṃ 7.49dv pītam āśv eva puṣyati ojas tulyaṃ guṇaiḥ sarvair viparītaṃ ca madyataḥ | payasā vihate roge bale jāte nivartayet || 50 || 7.50cv payasā vijite roge kṣīra-prayogaṃ madyaṃ ca krameṇālpālpam ācaret | na vikṣaya-dhvaṃsakotthaiḥ spṛśetopadravair yathā || 51 || 7.51cv na viṭ-kṣaya-dhvaṃsakotthaiḥ 7.51dv spṛśyetopadravair yathā tayos tu syād ghṛtaṃ kṣīraṃ vastayo bṛṃhaṇāḥ śivāḥ | abhyaṅgodvartana-snānāny anna-pānaṃ ca vāta-jit || 52 || yukta-madyasya madyottho na vyādhir upajāyate | ato 'sya vakṣyate yogo yaḥ sukhāyaiva kevalam || 53 || āśvinaṃ yā mahat tejo balaṃ sārasvataṃ ca yā | dadhāty aindraṃ ca yā vīryaṃ prabhāvaṃ vaiṣṇavaṃ ca yā || 54 || astraṃ makara-ketor yā puruṣārtho balasya yā | sautrāmaṇyāṃ dvi-ja-mukhe yā hutāśe ca hvayate || 55 || 7.55bv puruṣārtho balasya ca yā sarvauṣadhi-saṃpūrṇān mathyamānāt surāsuraiḥ | mahoda-dheḥ samudbhūtā śrī-śaśāṅkāmṛtaiḥ saha || 56 || madhu-mādhava-maireya-sīdhu-gauḍāsavādibhiḥ | mada-śaktim an-ujjhantī yā rūpair bahubhiḥ sthitā || 57 || 7.57cv mada-śaktim a-tyajantī yām āsvādya vilāsinyo yathārthaṃ nāma bibhrati | kulāṅganāpi yāṃ pītvā nayaty uddhata-mānasā || 58 || 7.58av yām āsādya vilāsinyo an-aṅgāliṅgitair aṅgaiḥ kvāpi ceto muner api | taraṅga-bhaṅga-bhrū-kuṭī-tarjanair māninī-manaḥ || 59 || ekaṃ prasādya kurute yā dvayor api nirvṛtim | yathā-kāmaṃ bhaṭāvāpti-parihṛṣṭāpsaro-gaṇe || 60 || 7.60cv yathā-kāma-bhaṭāvāpti- tṛṇa-vat puruṣā yuddhe yām āsvādya tyajanty asūn | yāṃ śīlayitvāpi ciraṃ bahu-dhā bahu-vigrahām || 61 || 7.61bv yām āsādya tyajanty asūn nityaṃ harṣāti-vegena tat-pūrvam iva sevate | śokodvegā-rati-bhayair yāṃ dṛṣṭvā nābhibhūyate || 62 || goṣṭhī-mahotsavodyānaṃ na yasyāḥ śobhate vinā | smṛtvā smṛtvā ca bahu-śo viyuktaḥ śocate yayā || 63 || 7.63cv smṛtvā tu yāṃ ca bahu-śo a-prasannāpi yā prītyai prasannā svarga eva yā | apīndraṃ manyate duḥ-sthaṃ hṛdaya-sthitayā yayā || 64 || a-nirdeśya-sukhāsvādā svayaṃ-vedyaiva yā param | iti citrāsv avasthāsu priyām anukaroti yā || 65 || priyāti-priya-tāṃ yāti yat priyasya viśeṣataḥ | yā prītir yā ratir vā vāg yā puṣṭir iti ca stutā || 66 || deva-dānava-gandharva-yakṣa-rākṣasa-mānuṣaiḥ | pāna-pravṛttau satyāṃ tu tāṃ surāṃ vidhinā pibet || 67 || 7.67bv -yakṣa-rākṣasa-mānavaiḥ 7.67bv -yakṣa-rākṣasa-mānavaiḥ saṃbhavanti na te rogā medo-'nila-kaphodbhavāḥ | vidhi-yuktād ṛte madyād ye na sidhyanti dāruṇāḥ || 68 || 7.68av saṃbhavanti ca ye rogā 7.68cv vidhi-yuktād ṛte madyāt 7.68dv te na sidhyanti dāruṇāḥ asti dehasya sāvasthā yasyāṃ pānaṃ nivāryate | anya-tra madyān nigadād vividhauṣadha-saṃskṛtāt || 69 || 7.69dv vividhauṣadha-saṃbhṛtāt ānūpaṃ jāṅgalaṃ ṃāṃsaṃ vidhināpy upakalpitam | madyaṃ sahāyam a-prāpya samyak pariṇamet katham || 70 || su-tīvra-māruta-vyādhi-ghātino laśunasya ca | madya-māṃsa-viyuktasya prayoge syāt kiyān guṇaḥ || 71 || 7.71dv prayogaḥ syāt kiyān guṇaḥ 7.71dv prayogāt syāt kiyān guṇaḥ nigūḍha-śalyāharaṇe śastra-kṣārāgni-karmaṇi | pīta-madyaś viṣahate sukhaṃ vaidya-vikatthanām || 72 || 7.72bv śastra-kṣārāgni-karmasu analottejanaṃ rucyaṃ śoka-śrama-vinodakam | na cātaḥ param asty anyad ārogya-bala-puṣṭi-kṛt || 73 || 7.73bv śoka-śrama-vinodanam rakṣatā jīvitaṃ tasmāt peyam ātma-vatā sadā | āśritopāśrita-hitaṃ paramaṃ dharma-sādhanam || 74 || snātaḥ praṇamya sura-vipra-gurūn yathā-svaṃ vṛttiṃ vidhāya ca samasta-parigrahasya | āpāna-bhūmim atha gandha-jalābhiṣiktām āhāra-maṇḍapa-samīpa-gatāṃ śrayet || 75 || sv-āstṛte 'tha śayane kamanīye mitra-bhṛtya-ramaṇī-samavetaḥ | svaṃ yaśaḥ kathaka-cāraṇa-saṃghair uddhataṃ niśamayann ati-lokam || 76 || vilāsinīnāṃ ca vilāsa-śobhi gītaṃ sa-nṛtyaṃ kala-tūrya-ghoṣaiḥ | kāñcī-kalāpaiś cala-kiṅkiṇīkaiḥ krīḍā-vihaṅgaiś ca kṛtānunādam || 77 || 7.77bv gītaṃ sa-nṛttaṃ kala-tūrya-ghoṣaiḥ 7.77cv kāñcī-kalāpaiḥ sphuṭa-kiṅkiṇīkaiḥ maṇi-kanaka-samutthair āvaneyair vicitraiḥ || 78a || 7.78av maṇi-kanaka-samutthair aupageyair vicitraiḥ 7.78av maṇi-kanaka-samutthaiḥ pāna-pātrair vicitraiḥ sa-jala-vividha-lekha-kṣauma-vastrāvṛtāṅgaiḥ || 78b || 7.78bv sa-jala-vividha-bhakti-kṣauma-vastrāvṛtāṅgaiḥ api muni-jana-citta-kṣobha-saṃpādinībhiś || 78c || cakita-hariṇa-lola-prekṣaṇībhiḥ priyābhiḥ || 78d || 7.78dv cakita-hariṇa-lola-prekṣaṇābhiḥ priyābhiḥ stana-nitamba-kṛtād ati-gauravād alasam ākulam īśvara-saṃbhramāt | iti gataṃ dadhatībhir a-saṃsthitaṃ taruṇa-citta-vilobhana-kārmaṇam || 79 || yauvanāsava-mattābhir vilāsādhiṣṭhitātmabhiḥ | saṃcāryamāṇaṃ yuga-pat tanv-aṅgībhir itas-tataḥ || 80 || tāla-vṛnta-nalinī-dalānilaiḥ śītalī-kṛtam atīva śītalaiḥ | darśane 'pi vidadhad vaśānugam svāditaṃ kim uta citta-janmanaḥ || 81 || 7.81dv sevitaṃ kim uta citta-janmanaḥ cūta-rasendu-mṛgaiḥ kṛta-vāsaṃ mallikayojjvalayā ca sa-nātham | sphāṭika-śukti-gataṃ sa-taraṅgaṃ kāntam an-aṅgam ivodvahad aṅgam || 82 || 7.82bv mallikayojjvalayātha sa-nātham 7.82cv sphāṭika-śukti-gataṃ su-taraṅgaṃ tālīśādyaṃ cūrṇam elādikaṃ vā hṛdyaṃ prāśya prāg vayaḥ-sthāpanaṃ vā | tat-prārthibhyo bhūmi-bhāge su-mṛṣṭe toyonmiśraṃ dāpayitvā tataś ca || 83 || 7.83bv hṛdyaṃ prāśyaṃ prāg vayaḥ-sthāpanaṃ vā dhṛti-mān smṛti-mān nityam an-ūnādhikam ācaran | ucitenopacāreṇa sarvam evopapādayan || 84 || 7.84bv a-nyūnādhikam ācaran 7.84cv uditenopacāreṇa 7.84dv sarvam evopapālayan jita-vikasitāsita-saro-ja-nayana-saṃkrānti-vardhita-śrīkam | kāntā-mukham iva saurabha-hṛta-madhu-pa-gaṇaṃ piben madyam || 85 || 7.85bv -ja-nayana-saṃkrānta-vardhita-śrīkam 7.85bv -ja-nayanaṃ sat kānti-vardhita-śrīkam pītvaivaṃ caṣaka-dvayaṃ parijanaṃ san-mānya sarvaṃ tato || 86a || 7.86av pītvaivaṃ caṣaka-trayaṃ parijanaṃ san-mānya sarvaṃ tato 7.86av pītvaivaṃ caṣaka-dvayaṃ parijanaṃ saṃbhāvya sarvaṃ tato gatvāhāra-bhuvaṃ puraḥ su-bhiṣajo bhuñjīta bhūyo 'tra ca || 86b || māṃsāpūpa-ghṛtārdrakādi-haritair yuktaṃ sa-sauvarcalair || 86c || dvis trir vā niśi cālpam eva vanitā-saṃvalganārthaṃ pibet || 86d || rahasi dayitām aṅke kṛtvā bhujāntara-pīḍanāt || 87a || pulakita-tanuṃ jāta-svedāṃ sa-kampa-payo-dharām || 87b || yadi sa-rabhasaṃ sīdhor vāraṃ na pāyayate kṛtī || 87c || 7.87cv yadi sa-rabhasaṃ sīdhūdgāraṃ na pāyayate kṛtī kim anubhavati kleśa-prāyaṃ tato gṛha-tantra-tām || 87d || 7.87dv kim anubhavati kleśa-prāyāṃ vṛthā gṛha-tantra-tām 7.87dv kim anubhavati kleśa-prāyāṃ tadā gṛha-tantra-tām vara-tanu-vaktra-saṃgati-su-gandhi-taraṃ sarakam || 88a || drutam iva padma-rāga-maṇim āsava-rūpa-dharam || 88b || bhavati rati-śrameṇa ca madaḥ pibato 'lpam api || 88c || kṣayam ata ojasaḥ pariharan sa śayīta param || 88d || itthaṃ yuktyā piban madyaṃ na tri-vargād vihīyate | a-sāra-saṃsāra-sukhaṃ paramaṃ cādhigacchati || 89 || aiśvaryasyopabhogo 'yaṃ spṛhaṇīyaḥ surair api | anya-thā hi vipatsu syāt paścāt tāpendhanaṃ dhanam || 90 || 7.90cv anya-thā hi vipatsv asya upabhogena rahito bhoga-vān iti nindyate | nirmito 'ti-kad-aryo 'yaṃ vidhinā nidhi-pālakaḥ || 91 || tasmād vyavasthayā pānaṃ pānasya satataṃ hitam | jitvā viṣaya-lubdhānām indriyāṇāṃ sva-tantra-tām || 92 || 7.92av tasmād avasthayā pānaṃ vidhir vasu-matām eṣa bhaviṣyad-vasavas tu ye | yathopapatti tair madyaṃ pātavyaṃ mātrayā hitam || 93 || yāvad dṛṣṭer na saṃbhrāntir yāvan na kṣobhate manaḥ | tāvad eva virantavyaṃ madyād ātma-vatā sadā || 94 || abhyaṅgodvartana-snāna-vāsa-dhūpānulepanaiḥ | snigdhoṣṇair bhāvitaś cānnaiḥ pānaṃ vātottaraḥ pibet || 95 || śītopacārair vividhair madhura-snigdha-śītalaiḥ | paittiko bhāvitaś cānnaiḥ piban madyaṃ na sīdati || 96 || upacārair a-śiśirair yava-godhūma-bhuk pibet | ślaiṣmiko dhanva-jair māṃsair madyaṃ māricikaiḥ saha || 97 || 7.97cv ślaiṣmiko jāṅgalair māṃsair 7.97dv madyaṃ maricakaiḥ saha tatra vāte hitaṃ madyaṃ prāyaḥ paiṣṭika-gauḍikam | pitte sāmbho madhu kaphe mārdvīkāriṣṭa-mādhavam || 98 || 7.98dv mādhvīkāriṣṭa-mādhavam prāk pibec chlaiṣmiko madyaṃ bhuktasyopari paittikaḥ | vātikas tu piben madhye sama-doṣo yathecchayā || 99 || 7.99dv sama-doṣo yathecchati 7.99dv sama-doṣo yad-ṛcchayā madeṣu vāta-pitta-ghnaṃ prāyo mūrchāsu ceṣyate | sarva-trāpi viśeṣeṇa pittam evopalakṣayet || 100 || śītāḥ pradehā maṇayaḥ sekā vyajana-mārutāḥ | sitā drākṣekṣu-kharjūra-kāśmarya-sva-rasāḥ payaḥ || 101 || siddhaṃ madhura-vargeṇa rasā yūṣāḥ sa-dāḍimāḥ | ṣaṣṭikāḥ śālayo raktā yavāḥ sarpiś ca jīvanam || 102 || kalyāṇakaṃ mahā-tiktaṃ ṣaṭ-palaṃ payasāgnikaḥ | pippalyo vā śilāhvaṃ vā rasāyana-vidhānataḥ || 103 || tri-phalā vā prayoktavyā sa-ghṛta-kṣaudra-śarkarā | prasakta-vegeṣu hitaṃ mukha-nāsāvarodhanam || 104 || pibed vā mānuṣī-kṣīraṃ tena dadyāc ca nāvanam | mṛṇāla-bisa-kṛṣṇā vā lihyāt kṣaudreṇa sābhayāḥ || 105 || 7.105av pibed vā mānuṣaṃ kṣīraṃ durālabhāṃ vā mustaṃ vā śītena salilena vā | piben marica-kolāsthi-majjośīrāhikesaram || 106 || dhātrī-phala-rase siddhaṃ pathyā-kvāthena vā ghṛtam | kuryāt kriyāṃ yathoktāṃ ca yathā-doṣa-balodayam || 107 || pañca karmāṇi ceṣṭāni secanaṃ śoṇitasya ca | sat-tvasyālambanaṃ jñānam a-gṛddhir viṣayeṣu ca || 108 || madeṣv ati-pravṛddheṣu mūrchāyeṣu ca yojayet | tīkṣṇaṃ saṃnyāsa-vihitaṃ viṣa-ghnaṃ viṣa-jeṣu ca || 109 || 7.109cv karma saṃnyāsa-vihitaṃ 7.109dv viṣa-ghnaṃ viṣa-jeṣu tu āśu prayojyaṃ saṃnyāse su-tīkṣṇaṃ nasyam añjanam | dhūmaḥ pradhamanaṃ todaḥ sūcībhiś ca nakhāntare || 110 || 7.110cv dhūmaṃ pradhamanaṃ todaḥ 7.110dv sūcībhiś ca nakhāntaraiḥ keśānāṃ luñcanaṃ dāho daṃśo daśana-vṛścikaiḥ | kaṭv-amla-gālanaṃ vaktre kapikacchv-avagharṣaṇam || 111 || 7.111dv kapikacchvāvagharṣaṇam utthito labdha-saṃjñaś ca laśuna-sva-rasaṃ pibet | khādet sa-vyoṣa-lavaṇaṃ bījapūraka-kesaram || 112 || laghv-anna-prati tīkṣṇoṣṇam adyāt sroto-viśuddhaye | vismāpanaiḥ saṃsmaraṇaiḥ priya-śravaṇa-darśanaiḥ || 113 || 7.113av laghv annaṃ kaṭu-tīkṣṇoṣṇam paṭubhir gīta-vāditra-śabdair vyāyāma-śīlanaiḥ | sraṃsanollekhanair dhūmaiḥ śoṇitasyāvasecanaiḥ || 114 || upācaret taṃ pratatam anubandha-bhayāt punaḥ | tasya saṃrakṣitavyaṃ ca manaḥ pralaya-hetutaḥ || 115 || Cikitsāsthāna kāle sādhāraṇe vy-abhre nāti-dur-balam arśasam | viśuddha-koṣṭhaṃ laghv-alpam anulomanam āśitam || 1 || 8.1cv viśuddha-koṣṭhaṃ laghv-annam śuciṃ kṛta-svasty-ayanaṃ mukta-viṇ-mūtram a-vyatham | śayane phalake vānya-narotsaṅge vyapāśritam || 2 || pūrveṇa kāyenottānaṃ praty-āditya-gudaṃ samam | samunnata-kaṭī-deśam atha yantraṇa-vāsasā || 3 || sakthnoḥ śiro-dharāyāṃ ca parikṣiptam ṛju sthitam | ālambitaṃ paricaraiḥ sarpiṣābhyakta-pāyave || 4 || tato 'smai sarpiṣābhyaktaṃ nidadhyād ṛju yantrakam | śanair anu-sukhaṃ pāyau tato dṛṣṭvā pravāhaṇāt || 5 || yantre praviṣṭaṃ dur-nāma plota-guṇṭhitayānu ca | śalākayotpīḍya bhiṣag yathokta-vidhinā dahet || 6 || 8.6av yantre praviṣṭe dur-nāma kṣāreṇaivārdram itarat kṣāreṇa jvalanena vā | mahad vā balinaś chittvā vīta-yantram athāturam || 7 || sv-abhyakta-pāyu-jaghanam avagāhe nidhāpayet | nir-vāta-mandira-sthasya tato 'syācāram ādiśet || 8 || 8.8cv nir-vātāgāra-saṃsthasya ekaikam iti saptāhāt saptāhāt samupācaret | prāg dakṣiṇaṃ tato vāmam arśaḥ pṛṣṭhāgra-jaṃ tataḥ || 9 || bahv-arśasaḥ su-dagdhasya syād vāyor anuloma-tā | rucir anne 'gni-paṭu-tā svāsthyaṃ varṇa-balodayaḥ || 10 || vasti-śūle tv adho nābher lepayec chlakṣṇa-kalkitaiḥ | varṣābhū-kuṣṭha-surabhi-miśi-lohāmarāhvayaiḥ || 11 || śakṛn-mūtra-pratīghāte pariṣekāvagāhayoḥ | varaṇālambuṣair aṇḍa-gokaṇṭaka-punarnavaiḥ || 12 || 8.12av śakṛn-mūtra-parīghāte suṣavī-surabhībhyāṃ ca kvātham uṣṇaṃ prayojayet | sa-sneham atha-vā kṣīraṃ tailaṃ vā vāta-nāśanam || 13 || yuñjītānnaṃ śakṛd-bhedi snehān vāta-ghna-dīpanān | athā-prayojya-dāhasya nirgatān kapha-vāta-jān || 14 || sa-stambha-kaṇḍū-ruk-śophān abhyajya guda-kīlakān | bilva-mūlāgnika-kṣāra-kuṣṭhaiḥ siddhena secayet || 15 || 8.15av saṃrambha-kaṇḍū-ruk-śophān 8.15av saṃstambha-kaṇḍū-ruk-śophān tailenāhi-biḍāloṣṭra-varāha-vasayātha-vā | svedayed anu piṇḍena drava-svedena vā punaḥ || 16 || kāsīsaṃ saindhavaṃ rāsnā śuṇṭhī kuṣṭhaṃ ca lāṅgalī | śilābhrakāśvamāraṃ ca jantuhṛd danti-citrakau || 16.1+(1) || haritālaṃ tathā svarṇakṣīrī taiś ca pacet samaiḥ | tailaṃ sudhārka-payasī gavāṃ mūtre catur-guṇe || 16.1+(2) || etad abhyaṅgato 'rśāṃsi kṣāra-vat pātayed drutam | kṣāra-karma-karaṃ hy etan na ca dūṣayate valīm || 16.1+(3) || saktūnāṃ piṇḍikābhir vā snigdhānāṃ taila-sarpiṣā | rāsnāyā hapuṣāyā vā piṇḍair vā kārṣṇyagandhikaiḥ || 17 || 8.17dv piṇḍair vā kārṣakānvitaiḥ arka-mūlaṃ śamī-pattram nṛ-keśaḥ sarpa-kañcukam | mārjāra-carma sarpiś ca dhūpanaṃ hitam arśasām || 18 || tathāśvagandhā surasā bṛhatī pippalī ghṛtam | dhānyāmla-piṣṭair jīmūta-bījais taj-jālakaṃ mṛdu || 19 || lepitaṃ chāyayā śuṣkaṃ vartir guda-ja-śātanī | sa-jāla-mūla-jīmūta-lehe vā kṣāra-saṃyute || 20 || guñjā-sūraṇa-kūṣmāṇḍa-bījair vartis tathā-guṇā | snuk-kṣīrārdra-niśā-lepas tathā go-mūtra-kalkitaiḥ || 21 || kṛkavāku-śakṛt-kṛṣṇā-niśā-guñjā-phalais tathā | snuk-kṣīra-piṣṭaiḥ ṣaḍgranthā-halinī-vāraṇāsthibhiḥ || 22 || kulīraśṛṅgī-vijayā-kuṣṭhāruṣkara-tutthakaiḥ | śigru-mūlaka-jair bījaiḥ pattrair aśvaghna-nimba-jaiḥ || 23 || 8.23cv śigru-mūlaka-bījair vā pīlu-mūlena bilvena hiṅgunā ca samanvitaiḥ | kuṣṭhaṃ śirīṣa-bījāni pippalyaḥ saindhavaṃ guḍaḥ || 24 || arka-kṣīraṃ sudhā-kṣīraṃ tri-phalā ca pralepanam | ārkaṃ payaḥ sudhā-kāṇḍaṃ kaṭukālābu-pallavāḥ || 25 || 8.25av ārkaṃ payaḥ snuhī-kāṇḍaṃ karañjo basta-mūtraṃ ca lepanaṃ śreṣṭham arśasām | ānuvāsanikair lepaḥ pippaly-ādyaiś ca pūjitaḥ || 26 || ebhir evauṣadhaiḥ kuryāt tailāny abhyañjanāya ca | dhūpanālepanābhyaṅgaiḥ prasravanti gudāṅkurāḥ || 27 || 8.27av ebhir lepauṣadhaiḥ kuryāt 8.27bv tailāny abhyañjanāni ca saṃcitaṃ duṣṭa-rudhiraṃ tataḥ saṃpadyate sukhī | a-vartamānam ucchūna-kaṭhinebhyo hared asṛk || 28 || arśobhyo jala-jā-śastra-sūcī-kūrcaiḥ punaḥ punaḥ | śītoṣṇa-snigdha-rūkṣair hi na vyādhir upaśāmyati || 29 || 8.29cv śītoṣṇa-snigdha-rūkṣādyair rakte duṣṭe bhiṣak tasmād raktam evāvasecayet | yo jāto go-rasaḥ kṣīrād vahni-cūrṇāvacūrṇitāt || 30 || 8.30dv bahu-mūlāvacūrṇitāt pibaṃs tam eva tenaiva bhuñjāno guda-jān jayet | kovidārasya mūlānāṃ mathitena rajaḥ piban || 31 || 8.31dv mathitena rajaḥ pibet aśnan jīrṇe ca pathyāni mucyate hata-nāmabhiḥ | guda-śvayathu-śūlārto mandāgnir gaulmikān pibet || 32 || hiṅgv-ādīn anu-takraṃ vā khāded guḍa-harītakīm | takreṇa vā pibet pathyā-vellāgni-kuṭaja-tvacaḥ || 33 || 8.33av hiṅgv-ādīn anu-takrāṃ vā 8.33cv takreṇa vā pibet pathyāṃ 8.33dv vellāgni-kuṭaja-tvacaḥ kaliṅga-magadhā-jyotiḥ-sūraṇān vāṃśa-vardhitān | koṣṇāmbunā vā tri-paṭu-vyoṣa-hiṅgv-amla-vetasam || 34 || yuktaṃ bilva-kapitthābhyāṃ mahauṣadha-viḍena vā | aruṣkarair yavānyā vā pradadyāt takra-tarpaṇam || 35 || 8.35cv āruṣkarair yavānyā vā dadyād vā hapuṣā-hiṅgu-citrakaṃ takra-saṃyutam | māsaṃ takrānu-pānāni khādet pīlu-phalāni vā || 36 || pibed ahar ahas takraṃ nir-anno vā pra-kāmataḥ | aty-arthaṃ manda-kāyāgnes takram evāvacārayet || 37 || 8.37cv aty-artha-manda-kāyāgnes saptāhaṃ vā daśāhaṃ vā māsārdhaṃ māsam eva ca | bala-kāla-vikāra-jño bhiṣak takraṃ prayojayet || 38 || sāyaṃ vā lāja-saktūnāṃ dadyāt takrāvalehikām | jīrṇe takre pradadyād vā takra-peyāṃ sa-saindhavām || 39 || takrānu-pānaṃ sa-snehaṃ takraudanam ataḥ param | yūṣai rasair vā takrāḍhyaiḥ śālīn bhuñjīta mātrayā || 40 || rūkṣam ardhoddhṛta-snehaṃ yataś cān-uddhṛtaṃ ghṛtam | takraṃ doṣāgni-bala-vit tri-vidhaṃ tat prayojyet || 41 || na virohanti guda-jāḥ punas takra-samāhatāḥ | niṣiktaṃ tad dhi dahati bhūmāv api tṛṇolupam || 42 || 8.42cv niṣiktaṃ tad vidahati srotaḥsu takra-śuddheṣu raso dhātūn upaiti yaḥ | tena puṣṭir balaṃ varṇaḥ paraṃ tuṣṭiś ca jāyate || 43 || vāta-śleṣma-vikārāṇāṃ śataṃ ca vinivartate | mathitaṃ bhājane kṣudra-bṛhatī-phala-lepite || 44 || niśāṃ paryuṣitaṃ peyam icchadbhir guda-ja-kṣayam | dhānyopakuñcikājājī-hapuṣā-pippalī-dvayaiḥ || 45 || kāravī-granthika-śaṭhī-yavāny-agni-yavānakaiḥ | cūrṇitair ghṛta-pātra-sthaṃ nāty-amlaṃ takram āsutam || 46 || 8.46bv -yavāny-agni-yavānikaiḥ takrāriṣṭaṃ pibej jātaṃ vyaktāmla-kaṭu kāmataḥ | dīpanaṃ rocanaṃ varṇyaṃ kapha-vātānulomanam || 47 || guda-śvayathu-kaṇḍv-arti-nāśanaṃ bala-vardhanam | tvacaṃ citraka-mūlasya piṣṭvā kumbhaṃ pralepayet || 48 || takraṃ vā dadhi vā tatra jātam arśo-haraṃ pibet | bhārgy-āsphotāmṛtā-pañca-koleṣv apy eṣa saṃvidhiḥ || 49 || piṣṭair gaja-kaṇā-pāṭhā-kāravī-pañca-kolakaiḥ | tumburv-ajājī-dhanikā-bilva-madhyaiś ca kalpayet || 50 || phalāmlān yamaka-snehān peyā-yūṣa-rasādikān | ebhir evauṣadhaiḥ sādhyaṃ vāri sarpiś ca dīpanam || 51 || kramo 'yaṃ bhinna-śakṛtāṃ vakṣyate gāḍha-varcasām | snehāḍhyaiḥ saktubhir yuktāṃ lavaṇāṃ vāruṇīṃ pibet || 52 || lavaṇā eva vā takra-sīdhu-dhānyāmla-vāruṇīḥ | prāg-bhaktān yamake bhṛṣṭān saktubhiś cāvacūrṇitān || 53 || 8.53cv prāg-bhaktaṃ yamake bhṛṣṭān karañja-pallavān khāded vāta-varco-'nulomanān | sa-guḍaṃ nāgaraṃ pāṭhāṃ guḍa-kṣāra-ghṛtāni vā || 54 || 8.54cv sa-guḍaṃ nāgaraṃ pāṭhā- 8.54dv -guḍa-kṣāra-ghṛtāni vā go-mūtrādhyuṣitām adyāt sa-guḍāṃ vā harītakīm | pathyā-śata-dvayān mūtra-droṇenā-mūtra-saṃkṣayāt || 55 || 8.55cv pathyā-śata-dvayaṃ mūtra- pakvāt khādet sa-madhunī dve dve hanti kaphodbhavān | dur-nāma-kuṣṭha-śvayathu-gulma-mehodara-kṛmīn || 56 || 8.56av paktvā khādet sa-madhunī granthy-arbudāpacī-sthaulya-pāṇḍu-rogāḍhya-mārutān | ajaśṛṅgī-jaṭā-kalkam ajā-mūtreṇa yaḥ pibet || 57 || guḍa-vārtāka-bhuk tasya naśyanty āśu gudāṅkurāḥ | śreṣṭhā-rasena trivṛtāṃ pathyāṃ takreṇa vā saha || 58 || pathyāṃ vā pippalī-yuktāṃ ghṛta-bhṛṣṭāṃ guḍānvitām | atha-vā sa-trivṛd-dantīṃ bhakṣayed anulomanīm || 59 || hate gudāśraye doṣe guda-jā yānti saṃkṣayam | dāḍima-sva-rasājājī-yavānī-guḍa-nāgaraiḥ || 60 || 8.60av hṛte gudāśraye doṣe pāṭhayā vā yutaṃ takraṃ vāta-varco-'nulomanam | sīdhuṃ vā gauḍam atha-vā sa-citraka-mahauṣadham || 61 || pibet surāṃ vā hapuṣā-pāṭhā-sauvarcalānvitām | daśādi-daśakair vṛddhāḥ pippalīr dvi-picuṃ tilān || 62 || 8.62dv pippalīr dvi-picuṃ tilāt pītvā kṣīreṇa labhate balaṃ deha-hutāśayoḥ | duḥsparśakena bilvena yavānyā nāgareṇa vā || 63 || 8.63dv yavānyā nāgareṇa ca ekaikenāpi saṃyuktā pāṭhā hanty arśasāṃ rujam | salilasya vahe paktvā prasthārdham abhayā-tvacām || 64 || 8.64dv prasthārdham abhayā-tvacam prasthaṃ dhātryā daśa-palaṃ kapitthānāṃ tato 'rdhataḥ | viśālāṃ lodhra-marica-kṛṣṇā-vellailavālukam || 65 || dvi-palāṃśaṃ pṛthak pāda-śeṣe pūte guḍāt tule | dattvā prasthaṃ ca dhātakyāḥ sthāpayed ghṛta-bhājane || 66 || 8.66cv dattvā prasthaṃ tu dhātakyāḥ pakṣāt sa śīlito 'riṣṭaḥ karoty agniṃ nihanti ca | guda-ja-grahaṇī-pāṇḍu-kuṣṭhodara-gara-jvarān || 67 || śvayathu-plīha-hṛd-roga-gulma-yakṣma-vami-kṛmīn | jala-droṇe paced dantī-daśa-mūla-varāgnikān || 68 || pālikān pāda-śeṣe tu kṣiped guḍa-tulāṃ param | pūrva-vat sarvam asya syād ānulomi-taras tv ayam || 69 || paced durālabhā-prasthaṃ droṇe 'pāṃ prāsṛtaiḥ saha | dantī-pāṭhāgni-vijayā-vāsāmalaka-nāgaraiḥ || 70 || 8.70bv droṇe 'pāṃ dvi-palaiḥ saha tasmin sitā-śataṃ dadyāt pāda-sthe 'nyac ca pūrva-vat | limpet kumbhaṃ tu phalinī-kṛṣṇā-cavyājya-mākṣikaiḥ || 71 || prāg-bhaktam ānulomyāya phalāmlaṃ vā pibed ghṛtam | cavya-citraka-siddhaṃ vā yava-kṣāra-guḍānvitam || 72 || pippalī-mūla-siddhaṃ vā sa-guḍa-kṣāra-nāgaram | pippalī-pippalī-mūla-dhānakā-dāḍimair ghṛtam || 73 || 8.73dv -dhānyakā-dāḍimair ghṛtam dadhnā ca sādhitaṃ vāta-śakṛn-mūtra-vibandha-nut | palāśa-kṣāra-toyena tri-guṇena paced ghṛtam || 74 || 8.74bv -śakṛn-mūtra-vibandha-hṛt vatsakādi-pratīvāpam arśo-ghnaṃ dīpanaṃ param | pañca-kolābhayā-kṣāra-yavānī-viḍa-saindhavaiḥ || 75 || sa-pāṭhā-dhānya-maricaiḥ sa-bilvair dadhi-mat ghṛtam | sādhayet taj jayaty āśu guda-vaṅkṣaṇa-vedanām || 76 || pravāhikāṃ guda-bhraṃśaṃ mūtra-kṛcchraṃ parisravam | pāṭhājamoda-dhanikā-śvadaṃṣṭrā-pañca-kolakaiḥ || 77 || sa-bilvair dadhni cāṅgerī-sva-rase ca catur-guṇe | hanty ājyaṃ siddham ānāhaṃ mūtra-kṛcchraṃ pravāhikām || 78 || guda-bhraṃśārti-guda-ja-grahaṇī-gada-mārutān | śikhi-tittiri-lāvānāṃ rasān amlān su-saṃskṛtān || 79 || dakṣāṇāṃ vartakānāṃ vā dadyād viḍ-vāta-saṃgrahe | vāstukāgni-trivṛd-dantī-pāṭhāmlīkādi-pallavān || 80 || anyac ca kapha-vāta-ghnaṃ śākaṃ ca laghu bhedi ca | sa-hiṅgu yamake bhṛṣṭaṃ siddhaṃ dadhi-saraiḥ saha || 81 || 8.81dv siddhaṃ dadhi-sareṇa ca dhanikā-pañca-kolābhyāṃ piṣṭābhyāṃ dāḍimāmbunā | ārdrikāyāḥ kisalayaiḥ śakalair ārdrakasya ca || 82 || yuktam aṅgāra-dhūpena hṛdyena surabhī-kṛtam | sa-jīrakaṃ sa-maricaṃ viḍa-sauvarcalotkaṭam || 83 || 8.83av yuktam aṅgāra-dhūmena vātottarasya rūkṣasya mandāgner baddha-varcasaḥ | kalpayed rakta-śāly-anna-vyañjanaṃ śāka-vad rasān || 84 || 8.84cv kalpayed rakta-śāly-annaṃ 8.84dv vyañjanaṃ śāka-vad rasān 8.84dv vyañjanāñ chāka-vad rasān go-godhā-chagaloṣṭrāṇāṃ viśeṣāt kravya-bhojinām | madirāṃ śārkaraṃ gauḍaṃ sīdhuṃ takraṃ tuṣodakam || 85 || ariṣṭaṃ mastu pānīyaṃ pānīyaṃ vālpakaṃ śṛtam | dhānyena dhānya-śuṇṭhībhyāṃ kaṇṭakārikayātha-vā || 86 || ante bhaktasya madhye vā vāta-varco-'nulomanam | viḍ-vāta-kapha-pittānām ānulomye hi nir-male || 87 || gude śāmyanti guda-jāḥ pāvakaś cābhivardhate | udāvarta-parītā ye ye cāty-arthaṃ virūkṣitāḥ || 88 || viloma-vātāḥ śūlārtās teṣv iṣṭam anuvāsanam | pippalīṃ madanaṃ bilvaṃ śatāhvāṃ madhukaṃ vacām || 89 || kuṣṭhaṃ śaṭhīṃ puṣkarākhyaṃ citrakaṃ devadāru ca | piṣṭvā tailaṃ vipaktavyaṃ dvi-guṇa-kṣīra-saṃyutam || 90 || 8.90av kuṣṭhaṃ śaṭhīṃ puṣkarāhvaṃ 8.90av kuṣṭhaṃ śaṭhīṃ pauṣkarākhyaṃ 8.90av kuṣṭhaṃ śuṇṭhīṃ puṣkarākhyaṃ arśasāṃ mūḍha-vātānāṃ tac chreṣṭham anuvāsanam | guda-niḥsaraṇaṃ śūlaṃ mūtra-kṛcchraṃ pravāhikām || 91 || kaṭy-ūru-pṛṣṭha-daurbalyam ānāhaṃ vaṅkṣaṇāśrayam | picchā-srāvaṃ gude śophaṃ vāta-varco-vinigraham || 92 || utthānaṃ bahu-śo yac ca jayet tac cānuvāsanāt | nirūhaṃ vā prayuñjīta sa-kṣīraṃ pāñcamūlikam || 93 || sa-mūtra-sneha-lavaṇaṃ kalkair yuktaṃ phalādibhiḥ | atha raktārśasāṃ vīkṣya mārutasya kaphasya vā || 94 || 8.94dv mārutasya kaphasya ca anubandhaṃ tataḥ snigdhaṃ rūkṣaṃ vā yojayed dhimam | śakṛc chyāvaṃ kharaṃ rūkṣam adho niryāti nānilaḥ || 95 || kaṭy-ūru-guda-śūlaṃ ca hetur yadi ca rūkṣaṇam | tatrānubandho vātasya śleṣmaṇo yadi viṭ ślathā || 96 || śvetā pītā guruḥ snigdhā sa-picchaḥ stimito gudaḥ | hetuḥ snigdha-gurur vidyād yathā-svaṃ cāsra-lakṣaṇāt || 97 || duṣṭe 'sre śodhanaṃ kāryaṃ laṅghanaṃ ca yathā-balam | yāvac ca doṣaiḥ kāluṣyaṃ srutes tāvad upekṣaṇam || 98 || doṣāṇāṃ pācanārthaṃ ca vahni-saṃdhukṣaṇāya ca | saṃgrahāya ca raktasya paraṃ tiktair upācaret || 99 || yat tu prakṣīṇa-doṣasya raktaṃ vātolbaṇasya vā | snehais tat sādhayet yuktaiḥ pānābhyañjana-vastiṣu || 100 || yat tu pittolbaṇaṃ raktaṃ gharma-kāle pravartate | stambhanīyaṃ tad ekāntān na ced vāta-kaphānugam || 101 || sa-kaphe 'sre pibet pākyaṃ śuṇṭhī-kuṭaja-valkalam | kirātatiktakaṃ śuṇṭhīṃ dhanvayāsaṃ ku-candanam || 102 || dārvī-tvaṅ-nimba-sevyāni tvacaṃ vā dāḍimodbhavām | kuṭaja-tvak-phalaṃ tārkṣyaṃ mākṣikaṃ ghuṇavallabhām || 103 || pibet taṇḍula-toyena kalkitaṃ vā mayūrakam | tulāṃ divyāmbhasi paced ārdrāyāḥ kuṭaja-tvacaḥ || 104 || nī-rasāyāṃ tvaci kvāthe dadyāt sūkṣma-rajī-kṛtān | samaṅgā-phalinī-moca-rasān muṣṭy-aṃśakān samān || 105 || taiś ca śakrayavān pūte tato darvī-pralepanam | paktvāvalehaṃ līḍhvā ca taṃ yathāgni-balaṃ pibet || 106 || 8.106av taiś ca śakrayavān pūtaṃ peyāṃ maṇḍaṃ payaś chāgaṃ gavyaṃ vā chāga-dugdha-bhuk | leho 'yaṃ śamayaty āśu raktātīsāra-pāyu-jān || 107 || bala-vad rakta-pittaṃ ca sravad ūrdhvam adho 'pi vā | kuṭaja-tvak-tulāṃ droṇe paced aṣṭāṃśa-śeṣitam || 108 || 8.108dv paced aṣṭāṃśa-śeṣitām kalkī-kṛtya kṣipet tatra tārkṣya-śailaṃ kaṭu-trayam | lodhra-dvayaṃ moca-rasaṃ balāṃ dāḍima-jaṃ tvacam || 109 || bilva-karkaṭikāṃ mustaṃ samaṅgāṃ dhātakī-phalam | palonmitaṃ daśa-palaṃ kuṭajasyaiva ca tvacaḥ || 110 || triṃśat palāni guḍato ghṛtāt pūte ca viṃśatiḥ | tat pakvaṃ leha-tāṃ yātaṃ dhānye pakṣa-sthitaṃ lihan || 111 || sarvārśo-grahaṇī-doṣa-śvāsa-kāsān niyacchati | lodhraṃ tilān moca-rasaṃ samaṅgāṃ candanotpalam || 112 || 8.112bv -śvāsa-kāsān nibarhati pāyayitvāja-dugdhena śālīṃs tenaiva bhojayet | yaṣṭy-āhva-padmakānantā-payasyā-kṣīra-moraṭam || 113 || sa-sitā-madhu pātavyaṃ śīta-toyena tena vā | lodhra-kaṭvaṅga-kuṭaja-samaṅgā-śālmalī-tvacam || 114 || 8.114dv -samaṅgā-śālmalī-tvacaḥ hima-kesara-yaṣṭy-āhva-sevyaṃ vā taṇḍulāmbunā | yavānīndrayavāḥ pāṭḥā bilvaṃ śuṇṭhī rasāñjanam || 115 || cūrṇaś cale hitaḥ śūle pravṛtte cāti-śoṇite | dugdhikā-kaṇṭakārībhyāṃ siddhaṃ sarpiḥ praśasyate || 116 || atha-vā dhātakī-lodhra-kuṭaja-tvak-phalotpalaiḥ | sa-kesarair yava-kṣāra-dāḍima-sva-rasena vā || 117 || śarkarāmbho-ja-kiñjalka-sahitaṃ saha vā tilaiḥ | abhyastaṃ rakta-guda-jān nava-nītaṃ niyacchati || 118 || chāgāni nava-nītājya-kṣīra-māṃsāni jāṅgalaḥ | an-amlo vā kad-amla vā sa-vāstuka-raso rasaḥ || 119 || rakta-śāliḥ saro dadhnaḥ ṣaṣṭikas taruṇī surā | taruṇaś ca surā-maṇḍaḥ śoṇitasyauṣadhaṃ param || 120 || peyā-yūṣa-rasādyeṣu palāṇḍuḥ kevalo 'pi vā | sa jayaty ulbaṇaṃ raktaṃ mārutaṃ ca prayojitaḥ || 121 || vātolbaṇāni prāyeṇa bhavanty asre 'ti-niḥsṛte | arśāṃsi tasmād adhikaṃ taj-jaye yatnam ācaret || 122 || dṛṣṭvāsra-pittaṃ prabalam a-balau ca kaphānilau | śītopacāraḥ kartavyaḥ sarva-thā tat-praśāntaye || 123 || na ced evaṃ śamas tasya snigdhoṣṇais tarpayet tataḥ | rasaiḥ koṣṇaiś ca sarpirbhir avapīḍaka-yojitaiḥ || 124 || 8.124av yadā caivaṃ śamo na syāt secayet taṃ kavoṣṇaiś ca kāmaṃ taila-payo-ghṛtaiḥ | yavāsa-kuśa-kāśānāṃ mūlaṃ puṣpaṃ ca śālmaleḥ || 125 || nyagrodhodumbarāśvattha-śuṅgāś ca dvi-palonmitāḥ | tri-prasthe salilasyaitat kṣīra-prasthe ca sādhayet || 126 || kṣīra-śeṣe kaṣāye ca tasmin pūte vimiśrayet | kalkī-kṛtaṃ moca-rasaṃ samaṅgāṃ candanotpalam || 127 || priyaṅguṃ kauṭajaṃ bījaṃ kamalasya ca kesaram | picchā-vastir ayaṃ siddhaḥ sa-ghṛta-kṣaudra-śarkaraḥ || 128 || pravāhikā-guda-bhraṃśa-rakta-srāva-jvarāpahaḥ | yaṣṭy-āhva-puṇḍarīkeṇa tathā moca-rasādibhiḥ || 129 || kṣīra-dvi-guṇitaḥ pakvo deyaḥ sneho 'nuvāsanam | madhukotpala-lodhrāmbu samaṅgā bilva-candanam || 130 || cavikātiviṣā mustaṃ pāṭhā kṣāro yavāgra-jaḥ | dārvī-tvaṅ nāgaraṃ māṃsī citrako devadāru ca || 131 || cāṅgerī-sva-rase sarpiḥ sādhitaṃ tais tri-doṣa-jit | arśo-'tīsāra-grahaṇī-pāṇḍu-roga-jvarā-rucau || 132 || mūtra-kṛcchre guda-bhraṃśe vasty-ānāhe pravāhaṇe | picchā-srāve 'rśasāṃ śūle deyaṃ tat paramauṣadham || 133 || vyatyāsān madhurāmlāni śītoṣṇāni ca yojayet | nityam agni-balāpekṣī jayaty arśaḥ-kṛtān gadān || 134 || 8.134dv jayaty arśaḥ-kṛtāṃ rujam udāvartārtam abhyajya tailaiḥ śīta-jvarāpahaiḥ | su-snigdhaiḥ svedayet piṇḍair vartim asmai gude tataḥ || 135 || abhyaktāṃ tat-karāṅguṣṭha-saṃnibhām anulomanīm | dadyāc chyāmā-trivṛd-dantī-pippalī-nīlinī-phalaiḥ || 136 || vicūrṇitair dvi-lavaṇair guḍa-go-mūtra-saṃyutaiḥ | tad-van māgadhikā-rāṭha-gṛha-dhūmaiḥ sa-sarṣapaiḥ || 137 || 8.137bv guḍa-go-mūtra-pācitaiḥ eteṣām eva vā cūrṇaṃ gude nāḍyā vinirdhamet | tad-vighāte su-tīkṣṇaṃ tu vastiṃ snigdhaṃ prapīḍayet || 138 || ṛjū-kuryād guda-sirā-viṇ-mūtra-maruto 'sya saḥ | bhūyo 'nubandhe vāta-ghnair virecyaḥ sneha-recanaiḥ || 139 || 8.139av ṛjū-kuryād guda-śiro- anuvāsyaś ca raukṣyād dhi saṅgo māruta-varcasoḥ | tri-paṭu-tri-kaṭu-śreṣṭhā-danty-aruṣkara-citrakam || 140 || jarjaraṃ sneha-mūtrāktam antar-dhūmaṃ vipācayet | śarāva-saṃdhau mṛl-lipte kṣāraḥ kalyāṇakāhvayaḥ || 141 || sa pītaḥ sarpiṣā yukto bhakte vā snigdha-bhojinā | udāvarta-vibandhārśo-gulma-pāṇḍūdara-kṛmīn || 142 || mūtra-saṅgāśmarī-śopha-hṛd-roga-grahaṇī-gadān | meha-plīha-rujānāha-śvāsa-kāsāṃś ca nāśayet || 143 || sarvaṃ ca kuryād yat proktam arśasāṃ gāḍha-varcasām || 144ab || droṇe 'pāṃ pūti-valka-dvi-tulam atha pacet pāda-śeṣe ca tasmin || 144c || 8.144cv droṇe 'pāṃ pūti-valkaṃ dvi-tulam atha pacet pāda-śeṣe ca tasmin deyāśītir guḍasya pratanuka-rajaso vyoṣato 'ṣṭau palāni || 144d || etan māsena jātaṃ janayati paramām ūṣmaṇaḥ pakti-śaktiṃ || 144e || śuktaṃ kṛtvānulomyaṃ prajayati guda-ja-plīha-gulmodarāṇi || 144f || pacet tulāṃ pūti-karañja-valkād dve mūlataś citraka-kaṇṭakāryoḥ | droṇa-traye 'pi caraṇāvaśeṣe pūte śataṃ tatra guḍasya dadyāt || 145 || palikaṃ ca su-cūrṇitaṃ tri-jāta-tri-kaṭu-granthika-dāḍimāśmabhedam | pura-puṣkara-mūla-dhānya-cavyaṃ hapuṣām ārdrakam amla-vetasaṃ ca || 146 || śītī-bhūtaṃ kṣaudra-viṃśaty-upetam ārdra-drākṣā-bījapūrārdrakaiś ca | yuktaṃ kāmaṃ gaṇḍikābhis tathekṣoḥ sarpiḥ-pātre māsa-mātreṇa jātam || 147 || cukraṃ krakacam ivedaṃ dur-nāmnāṃ vahni-dīpanaṃ paramam | pāṇḍu-garodara-gulma-plīhānāhāśma-kṛcchra-ghnam || 148 || droṇaṃ pīlu-rasasya vastra-galitaṃ nyastaṃ havir-bhājane || 149a || yuñjīta dvi-palair madā-madhuphalā-kharjūra-dhātrī-phalaiḥ || 149b || pāṭhā-mādri-durālabhāmla-vidula-vyoṣa-tvag-elollakaiḥ || 149c || 8.149cv pāṭhā-mādri-durālabhāmla-vidula-vyoṣa-tvag-ellāllakaiḥ spṛkkā-kola-lavaṅga-vella-capalā-mūlāgnikaiḥ pālikaiḥ || 149d || guḍa-pala-śata-yojitaṃ nivāte nihitam idaṃ prapibaṃś ca pakṣa-mātrāt | niśamayati gudāṅkurān sa-gulmān anala-balaṃ prabalaṃ karoti cāśu || 150 || 8.150cv praśamayati gudāṅkurān sa-gulmān ekaika-śo daśa-pale daśa-mūla-kumbha-pāṭhā-dvayārka-ghuṇavallabha-kaṭphalānām | dagdhe srute 'nu kalaśena jalena pakve pāda-sthite guḍa-tulāṃ pala-pañcakaṃ ca || 151 || 8.151bv -pāṭhābhayārka-ghuṇavallabha-kaṭphalānām dadyāt praty-ekaṃ vyoṣa-cavyābhayānāṃ vahner muṣṭī dve yava-kṣārataś ca | darvīm ālimpan hanti līḍho guḍo 'yaṃ gulma-plīhārśaḥ-kuṣṭha-mehāgni-sādān || 152 || toya-droṇe citraka-mūla-tulārdhaṃ sādhyaṃ yāvat pāda-dala-stham athedam | aṣṭau dattvā jīrṇa-guḍasya palāni kvāthyaṃ bhūyaḥ sāndra-tayā samam etat || 153 || 8.153bv sādhyaṃ yāvat pāda-jala-stham apy idam tri-kaṭuka-miśi-pathyā-kuṣṭha-mustā-varāṅga-kṛmiripu-dahanailā-cūrṇa-kīrṇo 'valehaḥ | jayati guda-ja-kuṣṭha-plīha-gulmodarāṇi prabalayati hutāśaṃ śaśvad abhyasyamānaḥ || 154 || 8.154cv jayati guda-ja-yukta-plīha-gulmodarāṇi guḍa-vyoṣa-varā-vella-tilāruṣkara-citrakaiḥ | arśāṃsi hanti guṭikā tvag-vikāraṃ ca śīlitā || 155 || mṛl-liptaṃ sauraṇaṃ kandaṃ paktvāgnau puṭa-pāka-vat | adyāt sa-taila-lavaṇaṃ dur-nāma-vinivṛttaye || 156 || marica-pippali-nāgara-citrakān krama-vivardhita-bhāga-samāhṛtān | śikhi-catur-guṇa-sūraṇa-yojitān kuru guḍena guḍān guda-ja-cchidaḥ || 157 || cūrṇī-kṛtāḥ ṣo-ḍaśa sūraṇasya bhāgās tato 'rdhena ca citrakasya | mahauṣadhād dvau maricasya caiko guḍena dur-nāma-jayāya piṇḍī || 158 || pathyā-nāgara-kṛṣṇā-karañja-vellāgnibhiḥ sitā-tulyaiḥ | vaḍabā-mukha iva jarayati bahu-gurv api bhojanaṃ cūrṇaḥ || 159 || 8.159dv bahu-gurv api bhojanaṃ cūrṇam kaliṅga-lāṅgalī-kṛṣṇā-vahny-apāmārga-taṇḍulaiḥ | bhūnimba-saindhava-guḍair guḍā guda-ja-nāśanāḥ || 160 || lavaṇottama-vahni-kaliṅga-yavāṃś ciribilva-mahāpicumanda-yutān | piba sapta-dinaṃ mathitāluḍitān yadi marditum icchasi pāyu-ruhān || 161 || 8.161cv piba sapta-dinaṃ mathitālulitān 8.161dv yadi marditum icchasi pāyu-ruhaḥ śuṣkeṣu bhallātakam agryam uktaṃ bhaiṣajyam ārdreṣu tu vatsaka-tvak | sarveṣu sarvartuṣu kālaśeyam arśaḥsu balyaṃ ca malāpahaṃ ca || 162 || bhittvā vibandhān anulomanāya yan mārutasyāgni-balāya yac ca | tad anna-pānauṣadham arśasena sevyaṃ vivarjyaṃ viparītam asmāt || 163 || arśo-'tisāra-grahaṇī-vikārāḥ prāyeṇa cānyo-'nya-nidāna-bhūtāḥ | sanne 'nale santi na santi dīpte rakṣed atas teṣu viśeṣato 'gnim || 164 || 8.164dv rakṣet tatas teṣu viśeṣato 'gnim Cikitsāsthāna atīsāro hi bhūyiṣṭhaṃ bhavaty āmāśayānvayaḥ | hatvāgniṃ vāta-je 'py asmāt prāk tasmiō̃ laṅghanaṃ hitam || 1 || 9.1dv prāg asmiō̃ laṅghanaṃ hitam śūlānāha-prasekārtaṃ vāmayed atisāriṇam | doṣāḥ saṃnicitā ye ca vidagdhāhāra-mūrchitāḥ || 2 || atīsārāya kalpante teṣūpekṣaiva bheṣajam | bhṛśotkleśa-pravṛtteṣu svayam eva calātmasu || 3 || na tu saṃgrahaṇaṃ yojyaṃ pūrvam āmātisāriṇi | api cādhmāna-guru-tā-śūla-staimitya-kāriṇi || 4 || 9.4av prayojyaṃ na tu saṃgrāhi 9.4bv pūrvam āmolbaṇe na tu prāṇadā prāṇa-dā doṣe vibaddhe saṃpravartinī | pibet prakvathitās toye madhya-doṣo viśoṣayan || 5 || bhūtika-pippalī-śuṇṭhī-vacā-dhānya-harītakīḥ | atha-vā bilva-dhanikā-musta-nāgara-vālakam || 6 || viḍa-pāṭhā-vacā-pathyā-kṛmijin-nāgarāṇi vā | śuṇṭhī-ghana-vacā-mādrī-bilva-vatsaka-hiṅgu vā || 7 || śasyate tv alpa-doṣāṇām upavāso 'tisāriṇām | vacā-prativiṣābhyāṃ vā mustā-parpaṭakena vā || 8 || hrīvera-nāgarābhyāṃ vā vipakvaṃ pāyayej jalam | yukte 'nna-kāle kṣut-kṣāmaṃ laghv-anna-prati bhojayet || 9 || 9.9dv laghv annaṃ pratibhojayet tathā sa śīghraṃ prāpnoti rucim agni-balaṃ balam | takreṇāvanti-somena yavāgvā tarpaṇena vā || 10 || surayā madhunā vātha yathā-sātmyam upācaret | bhojyāni kalpayed ūrdhvaṃ grāhi-dīpana-pācanaiḥ || 11 || 9.11av surayā madhunā cātha bāla-bilva-śaṭhī-dhānya-hiṅgu-vṛkṣāmla-dāḍimaiḥ | palāśa-hapuṣājājī-yavānī-viḍa-saindhavaiḥ || 12 || laghunā pañca-mūlena pañca-kolena pāṭhayā | śāliparṇī-balā-bilvaiḥ pṛśniparṇyā ca sādhitā || 13 || dāḍimāmlā hitā peyā kapha-pitte samulbaṇe | abhayā-pippalī-mūla-bilvair vātānulomanī || 14 || vibaddhaṃ doṣa-bahulo dīptāgnir yo 'tisāryate | kṛṣṇā-viḍaṅga-tri-phalā-kaṣāyais taṃ virecayet || 15 || peyāṃ yuñjyād viriktasya vāta-ghnair dīpanaiḥ kṛtām | āme pariṇate yas tu dīpte 'gnāv upaveśyate || 16 || sa-phena-picchaṃ sa-rujaṃ sa-vibandhaṃ punaḥ punaḥ | alpālpam alpa-śamalaṃ nir-viḍ vā sa-pravāhikam || 17 || 9.17cv alpālpam alpaṃ sa-malaṃ dadhi-taila-ghṛta-kṣīraiḥ sa śuṇṭhīṃ sa-guḍāṃ pibet | svinnāni guḍa-tailena bhakṣayed badarāṇi vā || 18 || gāḍha-viḍ-vihitaiḥ śākair bahu-snehais tathā rasaiḥ | kṣudhitaṃ bhojayed enaṃ dadhi-dāḍima-sādhitaiḥ || 19 || 9.19dv dadhi-dāḍima-saṃskṛtaiḥ śāly-odanaṃ tilair māṣair mudgair vā sādhu sādhitam | śaṭhyā mūlaka-potāyāḥ pāṭhāyāḥ svastikasya vā || 20 || 9.20cv śuṇṭhyā mūlaka-potāyāḥ sūṣā-yavānī-karkāru-kṣīriṇī-cirbhaṭasya vā | upodakāyā jīvantyā vākucyā vāstukasya vā || 21 || suvarcalāyāś cuñcor vā loṇikāyā rasair api | kūrma-vartaka-lopāka-śikhi-tittiri-kaukkuṭaiḥ || 22 || 9.22dv -śikhi-tittiri-dakṣa-jaiḥ bilva-mustākṣi-bhaiṣajya-dhātakī-puṣpa-nāgaraiḥ | pakvātīsāra-jit takre yavāgūr dādhikī tathā || 23 || kapittha-kacchurā-phañjī-yūthikā-vaṭa-śelu-jaiḥ | dāḍimī-śaṇa-kārpāsī-śālmalīnāṃ ca pallavaiḥ || 24 || 9.24dv -śālmalī-moca-pallavaiḥ kalko bilva-śalāṭūnāṃ tila-kalkaś ca tat-samaḥ | dadhnaḥ saro 'mlaḥ sa-snehaḥ khalo hanti pravāhikām || 25 || maricaṃ dhanikājājī tintiḍīkaṃ śaṭhī viḍam | dāḍimaṃ dhātakī pāṭhā tri-phalā pañca-kolakam || 26 || yāva-śūkaṃ kapitthāmra-jambū-madhyaṃ sa-dīpyakam | piṣṭaiḥ ṣaḍ-guṇa-bilvais tair dadhni mudga-rase guḍe || 27 || snehe ca yamake siddhaḥ khalo 'yam a-parājitaḥ | dīpanaḥ pācano grāhī rucyo bimbiśi-nāśanaḥ || 28 || kolānāṃ bāla-bilvānāṃ kalkaiḥ śāli-yavasya ca | mudga-māṣa-tilānāṃ ca dhānya-yūṣaṃ prakalpayet || 29 || aikadhyaṃ yamake bhṛṣṭaṃ dadhi-dāḍima-sārikam | varcaḥ-kṣaye śuṣka-mukhaṃ śāly-annaṃ tena bhojayet || 30 || dadhnaḥ saraṃ vā yamake bhṛṣṭaṃ sa-guḍa-nāgaram | surāṃ vā yamake bhṛṣṭāṃ vyañjanārthaṃ prayojayet || 31 || phalāmlaṃ yamake bhṛṣṭaṃ yūṣaṃ gṛñjanakasya vā | bhṛṣṭān vā yamake saktūn khāded vyoṣāvacūrṇitān || 32 || māṣān su-siddhāṃs tad-vad vā ghṛta-maṇḍopasevanān | rasaṃ su-siddha-pūtaṃ vā chāga-meṣāntar-ādhi-jam || 33 || 9.33cv rasaṃ su-siddhaṃ pūtaṃ vā paced dāḍima-sārāmlaṃ sa-dhānya-sneha-nāgaram | rakta-śāly-odanaṃ tena bhuñjānaḥ prapibaṃś ca tam || 34 || varcaḥ-kṣaya-kṛtair āśu vikāraiḥ parimucyate | bāla-bilvaṃ guḍaṃ tailaṃ pippalīṃ viśva-bheṣajam || 35 || 9.35dv pippalī-viśva-bheṣajam lihyād vāte pratihate sa-śūlaḥ sa-pravāhikaḥ | valkalaṃ śābaraṃ puṣpaṃ dhātakyā badarī-dalam || 36 || 9.36bv sa-śūle sa-pravāhike 9.36dv dhātakyā badarī-phalam eraṇḍa-bilva-yava-gokṣurakāmla-siddhāṃ pathyāṃ lihan madhu-yutām atha vā guḍena | kṛcchra-pravṛttam ati-śūlam asṛg-vimiśraṃ hanyād avaśyam atisāram udīrṇa-vegam || 36.1+1 || pibed dadhi-sara-kṣaudra-kapittha-sva-rasāplutam | vibaddha-vāta-varcās tu bahu-śūla-pravāhikaḥ || 37 || sa-rakta-picchas tṛṣṇārtaḥ kṣīra-sauhityam arhati | yamakasyopari kṣīraṃ dhāroṣṇaṃ vā prayojayet || 38 || śṛtam eraṇḍa-mūlena bāla-bilvena vā punaḥ | payasy utkvāthya mustānāṃ viṃśatiṃ tri-guṇe 'mbhasi || 39 || 9.39dv viṃśatiṃ tri-guṇāmbhasi kṣīrāvaśiṣṭaṃ tat pītaṃ hanyād āmaṃ sa-vedanam | pippalyāḥ pibataḥ sūkṣmaṃ rajo marica-janma vā || 40 || cira-kālānuṣaktāpi naśyaty āśu pravāhikā | nir-āma-rūpaṃ śūlārtaṃ laṅghanādyaiś ca karṣitam || 41 || rūkṣa-koṣṭham apekṣyāgniṃ sa-kṣāraṃ pāyayed ghṛtam | siddhaṃ dadhi-surā-maṇḍe daśa-mūlasya cāmbhasi || 42 || 9.42dv daśa-mūlasya vāmbhasi sindhūttha-pañca-kolābhyāṃ tailaṃ sadyo 'rti-nāśanam | ṣaḍbhiḥ śuṇṭhyāḥ palair dvābhyāṃ dvābhyāṃ granthy-agni-saindhavāt || 43 || taila-prasthaṃ paced dadhnā niḥ-sāraka-rujāpaham | ekato māṃsa-dugdhājyaṃ purīṣa-graha-śūla-jit || 44 || pānānuvāsanābhyaṅga-prayuktaṃ tailam ekataḥ | tad dhi vāta-jitām agryaṃ śūlaṃ ca vi-guṇo 'nilaḥ || 45 || dhātv-antaropamardeddhaś calo vyāpī sva-dhāma-gaḥ | tailaṃ mandānalasyāpi yuktyā śarma-karaṃ param || 46 || 9.46av dhātv-antaropamardād vai 9.46av dhātv-antaropamardena vāyv-āśaye sa-taile hi bimbiśir nāvatiṣṭhate || 46ū̆ab || kṣīṇe male svāyatana-cyuteṣu doṣāntareṣv īraṇa eka-vīre | ko niṣṭanan prāṇiti koṣṭha-śūlī nāntar-bahis-taila-paro yadi syāt || 47 || guda-rug-bhraṃśayor yuñjyāt sa-kṣīraṃ sādhitaṃ haviḥ || 48ab || rase kolāmla-cāṅgeryor dadhni piṣṭe ca nāgare | tair eva cāmlaiḥ saṃyojya siddhaṃ su-ślakṣṇa-kalkitaiḥ || 49 || 9.49cv tair eva cāmlaiḥ saṃyuktaiḥ dhānyoṣaṇa-viḍājājī-pañca-kolaka-dāḍimaiḥ | yojayet sneha-vastiṃ vā daśa-mūlena sādhitam || 50 || śaṭhī-śatāhvā-kuṣṭhair vā vacayā citrakeṇa vā | pravāhaṇe guda-bhraṃśe mūtrāghāte kaṭī-grahe || 51 || madhurāmlaiḥ śṛtaṃ tailaṃ ghṛtaṃ vāpy anuvāsanam | praveśayed gudaṃ dhvastam abhyaktaṃ sveditaṃ mṛdu || 52 || kuryāc ca go-phaṇā-bandhaṃ madhya-cchidreṇa carmaṇā | pañca-mūlasya mahataḥ kvāthaṃ kṣīre vipācayet || 53 || 9.53dv kvāthaṃ kṣīreṇa pācayet unduruṃ cāntra-rahitaṃ tena vāta-ghna-kalka-vat | tailaṃ paced guda-bhraṃśaṃ pānābhyaṅgena taj jayet || 54 || paitte tu sāme tīkṣṇoṣṇa-varjyaṃ prāg iva laṅghanam | tṛḍ-vān pibet ṣaḍ-aṅgāmbu sa-bhūnimbaṃ sa-śārivam || 55 || peyādi kṣudhitasyānnam agni-saṃdhukṣaṇaṃ hitam | bṛhaty-ādi-gaṇābhīru-dvi-balā-śūrpaparṇibhiḥ || 56 || pāyayed anubandhe tu sa-kṣaudraṃ taṇḍulāmbhasā | kuṭajasya phalaṃ piṣṭaṃ sa-valkaṃ sa-ghuṇapriyam || 57 || 9.57bv sa-kṣaudraṃ taṇḍulāmbunā 9.57cv vatsakasya phalaṃ piṣṭaṃ pāṭhā-vatsaka-bīja-tvag-dārvī-granthika-śuṇṭhi vā | kvāthaṃ vātiviṣā-bilva-vatsakodīcya-musta-jam || 58 || atha-vātiviṣā-mūrvā-niśendrayava-tārkṣya-jam | sa-madhv-ativiṣā-śuṇṭhī-mustendrayava-kaṭphalam || 59 || palaṃ vatsaka-bījasya śrapayitvā rasaṃ pibet | yo rasāśī jayec chīghraṃ sa paittaṃ jaṭharāmayam || 60 || mustā-kaṣāyam evaṃ vā piben madhu-samāyutam | sa-kṣaudraṃ śālmalī-vṛnta-kaṣāyaṃ vā himāhvayam || 61 || kirātatiktakaṃ mustaṃ vatsakaṃ sa-rasāñjanam | kaṭaṅkaṭerī hrīveraṃ bilva-madhyaṃ durālabhā || 62 || tilā moca-rasaṃ lodhraṃ samaṅgā kamalotpalam | nāgaraṃ dhātakī-puṣpaṃ dāḍimasya tvag utpalam || 63 || ardha-ślokaiḥ smṛtā yogāḥ sa-kṣaudrās taṇḍulāmbunā | niśendrayava-lodhrailā-kvāthaḥ pakvātisāra-jit || 64 || 9.64dv -kvāthaḥ pakvātisāra-nut nāgarātiviṣā-mustā-bhūnimbāmṛta-vatsakaiḥ | sarva-jvara-haraḥ kvāthaḥ sarvātīsāra-nāśanaḥ || 64+1 || guḍūcy-ativiṣā-dhānya-śuṇṭhī-bilvābda-vālakaiḥ | pāṭhā-bhūnimba-kuṭaja-candanośīra-padmakaiḥ || 64+2 || kaṣāyaḥ śitalaḥ peyo jvarātīsāra-śāntaye | hṛl-lāsā-rocaka-cchardi-pipāsā-dāha-nāśanaḥ || 64+3 || lodhrāmbaṣṭhā-priyaṅgv-ādi-gaṇāṃs tad-vat pṛthak pibet | kaṭvaṅga-valka-yaṣṭy-āhva-phalinī-dāḍimāṅkuraiḥ || 65 || peyā-vilepī-khalakān kuryāt sa-dadhi-dāḍimān | tad-vad dadhittha-bilvāmra-jambū-madhyaiḥ prakalpayet || 66 || ajā-payaḥ prayoktavyaṃ nir-āme tena cec chamaḥ | doṣādhikyān na jāyeta balinaṃ taṃ virecayet || 67 || vyatyāsena śakṛd-raktam upaveśyeta yo 'pi vā | palāśa-phala-niryūhaṃ yuktaṃ vā payasā pibet || 68 || tato 'nu koṣṇaṃ pātavyaṃ kṣīram eva yathā-balam | pravāhite tena male praśāmyaty udarāmayaḥ || 69 || palāśa-vat prayojyā vā trāyamāṇā viśodhanī | saṃsargyāṃ kriyamāṇāyāṃ śūlaṃ yady anuvartate || 70 || 9.70bv trāyamāṇā viśodhane sruta-doṣasya taṃ śīghraṃ yathā-vahny anuvāsayet | śatapuṣpā-varībhyāṃ ca bilvena madhukena ca || 71 || taila-pādaṃ payo-yuktaṃ pakvam anvāsanaṃ ghṛtam | a-śāntāv ity atīsāre picchā-vastiḥ paraṃ hitaḥ || 72 || pariveṣṭya kuśair ārdrair ārdra-vṛntāni śālmaleḥ | kṛṣṇa-mṛttikayālipya svedayed go-mayāgninā || 73 || mṛc-choṣe tāni saṃkṣudya tat-piṇḍaṃ muṣṭi-saṃmitam | mardayet payasaḥ prasthe pūtenāsthāpayet tataḥ || 74 || nata-yaṣṭy-āhva-kalkājya-kṣaudra-taila-vatānu ca | snāto bhuñjīta payasā jāṅgalena rasena vā || 75 || pittātisāra-jvara-śopha-gulma-samīraṇāsra-grahaṇī-vikārān | jayaty ayaṃ śīghram ati-pravṛttiṃ virecanāsthāpanayoś ca vastiḥ || 76 || kaṭvaṅga-bilva-jaṃ tv asthi kapitthaṃ surasāñjanam | lākṣā-haridre hrīveraṃ kaṭphalaṃ śukanāsikā || 76+1 || lodhraṃ moca-rasaṃ mustaṃ dhātakī vaṭa-śuṅgakān | piṣṭvā taṇḍula-toyena vaṭakān akṣa-saṃmitān || 76+2 || pibet tenaiva toyena jvarātīsāra-nāśanaḥ | rakta-prasādano hy eṣa śophātīsāra-nāśanaḥ || 76+3 || phāṇitaṃ kuṭajotthaṃ ca sarvātīsāra-nāśanam | vatsakādi-samāyuktaṃ sāmbaṣṭhādi sa-mākṣikam || 77 || nī-ruṅ-nir-āmaṃ dīptāgner api sāsraṃ cirotthitam | nānā-varṇam atīsāraṃ puṭa-pākair upācaret || 78 || tvak-piṇḍād dīrghavṛntasya śrīparṇī-pattra-saṃvṛtāt | mṛl-liptād agninā svinnād rasaṃ niṣpīḍitaṃ himam || 79 || atīsārī pibed yuktaṃ madhunā sitayātha-vā | evaṃ kṣīri-druma-tvagbhis tat-prarohaiś ca kalpayet || 80 || 9.80cv evaṃ kṣīra-druma-tvagbhis kaṭvaṅga-tvag-ghṛta-yutā sveditā saliloṣmaṇā | sa-kṣaudrā hanty atīsāraṃ bala-vantam api drutam || 81 || pittātīsārī seveta pittalāny eva yaḥ punaḥ | raktātīsāraṃ kurute tasya pittaṃ sa-tṛḍ-jvaram || 82 || dāruṇaṃ guda-pākaṃ ca tatra cchāgaṃ payo hitam | padmotpala-samaṅgābhiḥ śṛtaṃ moca-rasena ca || 83 || śārivā-yaṣṭi-lodhrair vā prasavair vā vaṭādi-jaiḥ | sa-kṣaudra-śarkaraṃ pāne bhojane guda-secane || 84 || tad-vad rasādayo 'n-amlāḥ sājyāḥ pānānnayor hitāḥ | kāśmarya-phala-yūṣaś ca kiñ-cid-amlaḥ sa-śarkaraḥ || 85 || payasy ardhodake chāge hrīverotpala-nāgaraiḥ | peyā raktātisāra-ghnī pṛśniparṇī-rasānvitā || 86 || prāg-bhaktaṃ nava-nītaṃ vā lihyān madhu-sitā-yutam | baliny asre 'sram evājaṃ mārgaṃ vā ghṛta-bharjitam || 87 || kṣīrānu-pānaṃ kṣīrāśī try-ahaṃ kṣīrodbhavaṃ ghṛtam | kapiñjala-rasāśī vā lihann ārogyam aśnute || 88 || pītvā śatāvarī-kalkaṃ kṣīreṇa kṣīra-bhojanaḥ | raktātīsāraṃ hanty āśu tayā vā sādhitaṃ ghṛtam || 89 || lākṣā-nāgara-vaidehī-kaṭukā-dārvi-valkalaiḥ | sarpiḥ sendrayavaiḥ siddhaṃ peyā-maṇḍāvacāritam || 90 || atīsāraṃ jayec chīghraṃ tri-doṣam api dāruṇam | kṛṣṇa-mṛc-chaṅkha-yaṣṭy-āhva-kṣaudrāsṛk-taṇḍulodakam || 91 || jayaty asraṃ priyaṅguś ca taṇḍulāmbu-madhu-plutā | kalkas tilānāṃ kṛṣṇānāṃ śarkarā-pāñcabhāgikaḥ || 92 || 9.92dv śarkarā-bhāga-saṃyutaḥ ājena payasā pītaḥ sadyo raktaṃ niyacchati | pītvā sa-śarkarā-kṣaudraṃ candanaṃ taṇḍulāmbunā || 93 || dāha-tṛṣṇā-pramohebhyo rakta-srāvāc ca mucyate | gudasya dāhe pāke vā seka-lepā hitā himāḥ || 94 || 9.94av dāha-tṛṣṇā-pramehebhyo 9.94dv sekā lepā hitā himāḥ alpālpaṃ bahu-śo raktaṃ sa-śūlam upaveśyate | yadā vibaddho vāyuś ca kṛcchrāc carati vā na vā || 95 || picchā-vastiṃ tadā tasya pūrvoktam upakalpayet | pallavān jarjarī-kṛtya śiṃśipā-kovidārayoḥ || 96 || paced yavāṃś ca sa kvāthe ghṛta-kṣīra-samanvitaḥ | picchā-srutau guda-bhraṃśe pravāhaṇa-rujāsu vā || 97 || picchā-vastiḥ prayoktavyaḥ kṣata-kṣīṇa-balāvahaḥ | prapauṇḍarīka-siddhena sarpiṣā cānuvāsanam || 98 || raktaṃ viṭ-sahitaṃ pūrvaṃ paścād vā yo 'tisāryate | śatāvarī-ghṛtaṃ tasya lehārtham upakalpayet || 99 || śarkarārdhāṃśakaṃ līḍhaṃ nava-nītaṃ navoddhṛtam | kṣaudra-pādaṃ jayec chīghraṃ taṃ vikāraṃ hitāśinaḥ || 100 || nyagrodhodumbarāśvattha-śuṅgān āpothya vāsayet | aho-rātraṃ jale tapte ghṛtaṃ tenāmbhasā pacet || 101 || tad ardha-śarkarā-yuktaṃ lehayet kṣaudra-pādikam | adho vā yadi vāpy urdhvaṃ yasya raktaṃ pravartate || 102 || 9.102cv adho vā yadi vāty-urdhvaṃ śleṣmātīsāre vātoktaṃ viśeṣād āma-pācanam | kartavyam anubandhe 'sya pibet paktvāgni-dīpanam || 103 || bilva-karkaṭikā-musta-prāṇadā-viśva-bheṣajam | vacā-viḍaṅga-bhūtīka-dhānakāmaradāru vā || 104 || 9.104dv -dhānyakāmaradāru vā atha-vā pippalī-mūla-pippalī-dvaya-citrakam | pāṭhāgni-vatsaka-granthi-tiktā-śuṇṭhī-vacābhayāḥ || 105 || 9.105bv -pippalī-dvaya-citrakān kvathitā yadi vā piṣṭāḥ śleṣmātīsāra-bheṣajam | sauvarcala-vacā-vyoṣa-hiṅgu-prativiṣābhayāḥ || 106 || pibec chleṣmātisārārtaś cūrṇitāḥ koṣṇa-vāriṇā | madhyaṃ līḍhvā kapitthasya sa-vyoṣa-kṣaudra-śarkaram || 107 || 9.107dv sa-kṣaudraṃ vyoṣa-śarkaram kaṭphalaṃ madhu-yuktaṃ vā mucyate jaṭharāmayāt | kaṇāṃ madhu-yutāṃ līḍhvā takraṃ pītvā sa-citrakam || 108 || bhuktvā vā bāla-bilvāni vyapohaty udarāmayam | pāṭhā-moca-rasāmbhoda-dhātakī-bilva-nāgaram || 109 || su-kṛcchram apy atīsāraṃ guḍa-takreṇa nāśayet | yavānī-pippalī-mūla-cāturjātaka-nāgaraiḥ || 110 || maricāgni-jalājājī-dhānya-sauvarcalaiḥ samaiḥ | vṛṣāmla-dhātakī-kṛṣṇā-bilva-dāḍima-dīpyakaiḥ || 111 || 9.111cc vṛkṣāmla-dhātakī-kṛṣṇā- 9.111dc -bilva-dāḍima-tindukaiḥ tri-guṇaiḥ ṣaḍ-guṇa-sitaiḥ kapitthāṣṭa-guṇaiḥ kṛtaḥ | cūrṇo 'tīsāra-grahaṇī-kṣaya-gulma-galāmayān || 112 || 9.112av tri-guṇaiḥ ṣaḍ-guṇa-site 9.112bv kapitthe 'ṣṭa-guṇe kṛtaḥ 9.112dv -kṣaya-gulmodarāmayān kāsa-śvāsāgni-sādārśaḥ-pīnasā-rocakāñ jayet | karṣonmitā tavakṣīrī cāturjātaṃ dvi-kārṣikam || 113 || 9.113cv karṣonmitaṃ tavakṣīrī- 9.113dv -cāturjātaṃ dvi-kārṣikam yavānī-dhānyakājājī-granthi-vyoṣaṃ palāṃśakam | palāni dāḍimād aṣṭau sitāyāś caikataḥ kṛtaḥ || 114 || 9.114av yavānī-dhānyakājāji 9.114bv granthi-vyoṣaṃ palāṃśakam guṇaiḥ kapitthāṣṭaka-vac cūrṇo 'yaṃ dāḍimāṣṭakaḥ | bhojyo vātātisāroktair yathāvasthaṃ khalādibhiḥ || 115 || sa-viḍaṅgaḥ sa-maricaḥ sa-kapitthaḥ sa-nāgaraḥ | cāṅgerī-takra-kolāmlaḥ khalaḥ śleṣmātisāra-jit || 116 || kṣīṇe śleṣmaṇi pūrvoktam amlaṃ lākṣādi ṣaṭ-palam | purāṇaṃ vā ghṛtaṃ dadyād yavāgū-maṇḍa-miśritam || 117 || kaṭphalaṃ madhukaṃ lodhraṃ tvag-dāḍima-phalasya ca | vāta-pittātisāra-ghnaṃ pibet taṇḍula-vāriṇā || 117+1 || mustaṃ sātiviṣā dārvī vacā śuṇṭhī ca tat-samam | kaṣāyaṃ kṣaudra-saṃyuktaṃ śleṣma-vātātisāriṇe || 117+2 || pītadāru vacā lodhraṃ kaliṅga-phala-nāgaram | dāḍimāmbu-yutaṃ dadyāt pitta-śleṣmātisāriṇe || 117+3 || vāta-śleṣma-vibandhe vā sravaty ati kaphe 'pi vā | śūle pravāhikāyāṃ vā picchā-vastiḥ praśasyate || 118 || 9.118av vāta-śleṣma-vibandhe ca vacā-bilva-kaṇā-kuṣṭha-śatāhvā-lavaṇānvitaḥ | bilva-tailena tailena vacādyaiḥ sādhitena vā || 119 || bahu-śaḥ kapha-vātārte koṣṇenānvāsanaṃ hitam | kṣīṇe kaphe gude dīrgha-kālātīsāra-dur-bale || 120 || anilaḥ prabalo 'vaśyaṃ sva-sthāna-sthaḥ prajāyate | sa balī sahasā hanyāt tasmāt taṃ tvarayā jayet || 121 || vāyor an-antaraṃ pittaṃ pittasyān-antaraṃ kapham | jayet pūrvaṃ trayāṇāṃ vā bhaved yo bala-vat-tamaḥ || 122 || bhī-śokābhyām api calaḥ śīghraṃ kupyaty atas tayoḥ | kāryā kriyā vāta-harā harṣaṇāśvāsanāni ca || 123 || yasyoccārād vinā mūtraṃ pavano vā pravartate | dīptāgner laghu-koṣṭhasya śāntas tasyodarāmayaḥ || 124 || Cikitsāsthāna grahaṇīm āśritaṃ doṣam a-jīrṇa-vad upācaret | atīsārokta-vidhinā tasyāmaṃ ca vipācayet || 1 || anna-kāle yavāgv-ādi pañca-kolādibhir yutam | vitaret paṭu-laghv-annaṃ punar yogāṃś ca dīpanān || 2 || dadyāt sātiviṣāṃ peyām āme sāmlāṃ sa-nāgarām | pāne 'tīsāra-vihitaṃ vāri takraṃ surādi ca || 3 || grahaṇī-doṣiṇāṃ takraṃ dīpana-grāhi-lāghavāt | pathyaṃ madhura-pāki-tvān na ca pitta-pradūṣaṇam || 4 || kaṣāyoṣṇa-vikāśi-tvād rūkṣa-tvāc ca kaphe hitam | vāte svādv-amla-sāndra-tvāt sadyaskam a-vidāhi tat || 5 || 10.5av kaṣāyoṣṇa-vikāṣi-tvād caturṇāṃ prastham amlānāṃ try-ūṣaṇāc ca pala-trayam | lavaṇānāṃ ca catvāri śarkarāyāḥ palāṣṭakam || 6 || tac cūrṇaṃ śāka-sūpānna-rāgādiṣv avacārayet | kāsā-jīrṇā-ruci-śvāsa-hṛt-pāṇḍu-plīha-gulma-nut || 7 || 10.7dv -hṛt-pārśvāmaya-śūla-nut 10.7dv -hṛt-pāṇḍv-āmaya-śūla-nut nāgarātiviṣā-mustaṃ pākyam āma-haraṃ pibet | uṣṇāmbunā vā tat-kalkaṃ nāgaraṃ vātha-vābhayām || 8 || sa-saindhavaṃ vacādiṃ vā tad-van madirayātha-vā | varcasy āme sa-pravāhe pibed vā dāḍimāmbunā || 9 || viḍena lavaṇaṃ piṣṭaṃ bilva-citraka-nāgaram | sāme kaphānile koṣṭha-ruk-kare koṣṇa-vāriṇā || 10 || kaliṅga-hiṅgv-ativiṣā-vacā-sauvarcalābhayam | chardi-hṛd-roga-śūleṣu peyam uṣṇena vāriṇā || 11 || pathyā-sauvarcalājājī-cūrṇaṃ marica-saṃyutam | pippalīṃ nāgaraṃ pāṭhāṃ śārivāṃ bṛhatī-dvayam || 12 || citrakaṃ kauṭajaṃ kṣāraṃ tathā lavaṇa-pañcakam | cūrṇī-kṛtaṃ dadhi-surā-tan-maṇḍoṣṇāmbu-kāñjikaiḥ || 13 || pibed agni-vivṛddhy-arthaṃ koṣṭha-vāta-haraṃ param | paṭūni pañca dvau kṣārau maricaṃ pañca-kolakam || 14 || dīpyakaṃ hiṅgu guṭikā bījapūra-rase kṛtā | kola-dāḍima-toye vā paraṃ pācana-dīpanī || 15 || tālīśa-pattra-cavikā-maricānāṃ palaṃ palam | kṛṣṇā-tan-mūlayor dve dve pale śuṇṭhī-pala-trayam || 16 || catur-jātam uśīraṃ ca karṣāṃśaṃ ślakṣṇa-cūrṇitam | guḍena vaṭakān kṛtvā tri-guṇena sadā bhajet || 17 || madya-yūṣa-rasāriṣṭa-mastu-peyā-payo-'nupaḥ | vāta-śleṣmātmanāṃ chardi-grahaṇī-pārśva-hṛd-rujām || 18 || jvara-śvayathu-pāṇḍu-tva-gulma-pānātyayārśasām | praseka-pīnasa-śvāsa-kāsānāṃ ca nivṛttaye || 19 || abhayāṃ nāgara-sthāne dadyāt tatraiva viḍ-grahe | chardy-ādiṣu ca paitteṣu catur-guṇa-sitānvitāḥ || 20 || 10.20bv dadyād atraiva viḍ-grahe pakvena vaṭakāḥ kāryā guḍena sitayāpi vā | paraṃ hi vahni-saṃparkāl laghimānaṃ bhajanti te || 21 || athainaṃ paripakvāmaṃ māruta-grahaṇī-gadam | dīpanīya-yutaṃ sarpiḥ pāyayed alpa-śo bhiṣak || 22 || 10.22av athainaṃ paripakvāma- 10.22bv -māruta-grahaṇī-gadam kiñ-cit-saṃdhukṣite tv agnau sakta-viṇ-mūtra-mārutam | dvy-ahaṃ try-ahaṃ vā saṃsnehya svinnābhyaktaṃ nirūhayet || 23 || tata eraṇḍa-tailena sarpiṣā tailvakena vā | sa-kṣāreṇānile śānte srasta-doṣaṃ virecayet || 24 || śuddha-rūkṣāśayaṃ baddha-varcaskaṃ cānuvāsayet | dīpanīyāmla-vāta-ghna-siddha-tailena taṃ tataḥ || 25 || nirūḍhaṃ ca viriktaṃ ca samyak cāpy anuvāsitam | laghv-anna-pratisaṃyuktaṃ sarpir abhyāsayet punaḥ || 26 || 10.26bv samyag vāpy anuvāsitam pañca-mūlābhayā-vyoṣa-pippalī-mūla-saindhavaiḥ | rāsnā-kṣāra-dvayājājī-viḍaṅga-śaṭhibhir ghṛtam || 27 || śuktena mātuluṅgasya sva-rasenārdrakasya ca | śuṣka-mūlaka-kolāmla-cukrikā-dāḍimasya ca || 28 || takra-mastu-surā-maṇḍa-sauvīraka-tuṣodakaiḥ | kāñjikena ca tat pakvam agni-dīpti-karaṃ param || 29 || śūla-gulmodara-śvāsa-kāsānila-kaphāpaham | sa-bījapūraka-rasaṃ siddhaṃ vā pāyayed ghṛtam || 30 || tailam abhyañjanārthaṃ ca siddham ebhiś calāpaham | eteṣām auṣadhānāṃ vā pibec cūrṇaṃ sukhāmbunā || 31 || vāte śleṣmāvṛte sāme kaphe vā vāyunoddhate | agner nirvāpakaṃ pittaṃ rekeṇa vamanena vā || 32 || hatvā tikta-laghu-grāhi-dīpanair a-vidāhibhiḥ | annaiḥ saṃdhukṣayed agniṃ cūrṇaiḥ snehaiś ca tiktakaiḥ || 33 || paṭola-nimba-trāyantī-tiktā-tiktaka-parpaṭam | kuṭaja-tvak-phalaṃ mūrvā madhu-śigru-phalaṃ vacā || 34 || dārvī-tvak-padmakośīra-yavānī-musta-candanam | saurāṣṭry-ativiṣā-vyoṣa-tvag-elā-pattra-dāru ca || 35 || cūrṇitaṃ madhunā lehyaṃ peyaṃ madyair jalena vā | hṛt-pāṇḍu-grahaṇī-roga-gulma-śūlā-ruci-jvarān || 36 || kāmalāṃ saṃnipātaṃ ca mukha-rogāṃś ca nāśayet | bhūnimba-kaṭukā-mustā-try-ūṣaṇendrayavān samān || 37 || dvau citrakād vatsaka-tvag-bhāgān ṣo-ḍaśa cūrṇayet | guḍa-śītāmbunā pītaṃ grahaṇī-doṣa-gulma-nut || 38 || kāmalā-jvara-pāṇḍu-tva-mehā-rucy-atisāra-jit | nāgarātiviṣā-mustā-pāṭhā-bilvaṃ rasāñjanam || 39 || 10.39bv -mehā-rucy-atisāra-nut kuṭaja-tvak-phalaṃ tiktā dhātakī ca kṛtaṃ rajaḥ | kṣaudra-taṇḍula-vāribhyāṃ paittike grahaṇī-gade || 40 || pravāhikārśo-guda-rug-raktotthāneṣu ceṣyate | candanaṃ padmakośīraṃ pāṭhāṃ mūrvāṃ kuṭannaṭam || 41 || ṣaḍgranthā-śārivāsphotā-saptaparṇāṭarūṣakān | paṭolodumbarāśvattha-vaṭa-plakṣa-kapītanān || 42 || 10.42dv -vaṭa-plakṣa-kapītanam kaṭukāṃ rohiṇīṃ mustāṃ nimbaṃ ca dvi-palāṃśakān | droṇe 'pāṃ sādhayet tena pacet sarpiḥ picūnmitaiḥ || 43 || kirātatiktendrayava-vīrā-māgadhikotpalaiḥ | pitta-grahaṇyāṃ tat peyaṃ kuṣṭhoktaṃ tiktakaṃ ca yat || 44 || grahaṇyāṃ śleṣma-duṣṭāyāṃ tīkṣṇaiḥ pracchardane kṛte | kaṭv-amla-lavaṇa-kṣāraiḥ kramād agniṃ vivardhayet || 45 || pañca-kolābhayā-dhānya-pāṭhā-gandha-palāśakaiḥ | bījapūra-pragāḍhaiś ca siddhaiḥ peyādi kalpayet || 46 || droṇaṃ madhūka-puṣpāṇāṃ viḍaṅgaṃ ca tato 'rdhataḥ | citrakasya tato 'rdhaṃ ca tathā bhallātakāḍhakam || 47 || mañjiṣṭhāṣṭa-palaṃ caitaj jala-droṇa-traye pacet | droṇa-śeṣaṃ śṛtaṃ śītaṃ madhv-ardhāḍhaka-saṃyutam || 48 || elā-mṛṇālāgurubhiś candanena ca rūṣite | kumbhe māsaṃ sthitaṃ jātam āsavaṃ taṃ prayojayet || 49 || 10.49cv kumbhe māsa-sthitaṃ jātam grahaṇīṃ dīpayaty eṣa bṛṃhaṇaḥ pitta-rakta-nut | śoṣa-kuṣṭha-kilāsānāṃ pramehāṇāṃ ca nāśanaḥ || 50 || 10.50bv bṛṃhaṇo rakta-pitta-nut madhūka-puṣpa-sva-rasaṃ śṛtam ardha-kṣayī-kṛtam | kṣaudra-pāda-yutaṃ śītaṃ pūrva-vat saṃnidhāpayet || 51 || 10.51av madhūka-puṣpa-kuḍavaṃ tat piban grahaṇī-doṣān jayet sarvān hitāśanaḥ | tad-vad drākṣekṣu-kharjūra-sva-rasān āsutān pibet || 52 || hiṅgu-tiktā-vacā-mādrī-pāṭhendrayava-gokṣuram | pañca-kolaṃ ca karṣāṃśaṃ palāṃśaṃ paṭu-pañcakam || 53 || ghṛta-taila-dvi-kuḍave dadhnaḥ prastha-dvaye ca tat | āpothya kvāthayed agnau mṛdāv anugate rase || 54 || antar-dhūmaṃ tato dagdhvā cūrṇī-kṛtya ghṛtāplutam | pibet pāṇi-talaṃ tasmiñ jīrṇe syān madhurāśanaḥ || 55 || vāta-śleṣmāmayān sarvān hanyād viṣa-garāṃś ca saḥ | bhūnimbaṃ rohiṇīṃ tiktāṃ paṭolaṃ nimba-parpaṭam || 56 || dagdhvā māhiṣa-mūtreṇa pibed agni-vivardhanam | dve haridre vacā kuṣṭhaṃ citrakaḥ kaṭu-rohiṇī || 57 || mustā ca cchāga-mūtreṇa siddhaḥ kṣāro 'gni-vardhanaḥ | catuḥ-palaṃ sudhā-kāṇḍāt tri-palaṃ lavaṇa-trayāt || 58 || 10.58dv tri-phalā-lavaṇāni ca vārtāka-kuḍavaṃ cārkād aṣṭau dve citrakāt pale | dagdhvā rasena vārtākād guṭikā bhojanottarāḥ || 59 || 10.59av vārtākāt kuḍavaṃ cārkād bhuktam annaṃ pacanty āśu kāsa-śvāsārśasāṃ hitāḥ | viṣūcikā-pratiśyāya-hṛd-roga-śamanāś ca tāḥ || 60 || mātuluṅga-śaṭhī-rāsnā-kaṭu-traya-harītaki | svarjikā-yāva-śūkākhyau kṣārau pañca-paṭūni ca || 61 || 10.61bv -kaṭu-traya-harītakīḥ sukhāmbu-pītaṃ tac-cūrṇaṃ bala-varṇāgni-vardhanam | ślaiṣmike grahaṇī-doṣe sa-vāte tair ghṛtaṃ pacet || 62 || dhānvantaraṃ ṣaṭ-palaṃ ca bhallātaka-ghṛtābhayam | viḍa-kācoṣa-lavaṇa-svarjikā-yāva-śūka-jān || 63 || saptalāṃ kaṇṭakārīṃ ca citrakaṃ caikato dahet | sapta-kṛtvaḥ srutasyāsya kṣārasyārdhāḍhake pacet || 64 || āḍhakaṃ sarpiṣaḥ peyaṃ tad agni-bala-vṛddhaye | nicaye pañca karmāṇi yuñjyāc caitad yathā-balam || 65 || praseke ślaiṣmike 'lpāgner dīpanaṃ rūkṣa-tiktakam | yojyaṃ kṛśasya vyatyāsāt snigdha-rūkṣaṃ kaphodaye || 66 || kṣīṇa-kṣāma-śarīrasya dīpanaṃ sneha-saṃyutam | dīpanaṃ bahu-pittasya tiktaṃ madhurakair yutam || 67 || sneho 'mla-lavaṇair yukto bahu-vātasya śasyate | sneham eva paraṃ vidyād dur-balānala-dīpanam || 68 || nālaṃ sneha-samiddhasya śamāyānnaṃ su-gurv api | yo 'lpāgni-tvāt kaphe kṣīṇe varcaḥ pakvam api ślatham || 69 || muñcet paṭv-auṣadha-yutaṃ sa pibed alpa-śo ghṛtam | tena sva-mārgam ānītaḥ sva-karmaṇi niyojitaḥ || 70 || samāno dīpayaty agnim agneḥ saṃdhukṣako hi saḥ | purīṣaṃ yaś ca kṛcchreṇa kaṭhina-tvād vimuñcati || 71 || 10.71bv agneḥ saṃdhukṣako hy asau sa ghṛtaṃ lavaṇair yuktaṃ naro 'nnāvagrahaṃ pibet | raukṣyān mande 'nale sarpis tailaṃ vā dīpanaiḥ pibet || 72 || kṣāra-cūrṇāsavāriṣṭan mande snehāti-pānataḥ | udāvartāt tu yoktavyā nirūha-sneha-vastayaḥ || 73 || 10.73cv udāvartāt prayoktavyā doṣāti-vṛddhyā mande 'gnau saṃśuddho 'nna-vidhiṃ caret | vyādhi-muktasya mande 'gnau sarpir eva tu dīpanam || 74 || 10.74bv saṃśuddho 'nna-vidhiṃ bhajet adhvopavāsa-kṣāma-tvair yavāgvā pāyayed ghṛtam | annāvapīḍitaṃ balyaṃ dīpanaṃ bṛṃhaṇaṃ ca tat || 75 || dīrgha-kāla-prasaṅgāt tu kṣāma-kṣīṇa-kṛśān narān | prasahānāṃ rasaiḥ sāmlair bhojayet piśitāśinām || 76 || laghūṣṇa-kaṭu-śodhi-tvād dīpayanty āśu te 'nalam | māṃsopacita-māṃsa-tvāt paraṃ ca bala-vardhanāḥ || 77 || 10.77av laghūṣṇa-kaṭu-śodhi-tvair snehāsava-surāriṣṭa-cūrṇa-kvātha-hitāśanaiḥ | samyak-prayuktair dehasya balam agneś ca vardhate || 78 || dīpto yathaiva sthāṇuś ca bāhyo 'gniḥ sāra-dārubhiḥ | sa-snehair jāyate tad-vad āhāraiḥ koṣṭha-go 'nalaḥ || 79 || nā-bhojanena kāyāgnir dīpyate nāti-bhojanāt | yathā nir-indhano vahnir alpo vātīndhanāvṛtaḥ || 80 || 10.80dv alpo vātīndhanānvitaḥ yadā kṣīṇe kaphe pittaṃ sva-sthāne pavanānugam | pravṛddhaṃ vardhayaty agniṃ tadāsau sānilo 'nalaḥ || 81 || paktvānnam āśu dhātūṃś ca sarvān ojaś ca saṃkṣipan | mārayet syāt sa nā svastho bhukte jīrṇe tu tāmyati || 82 || 10.82cv mārayet taṃ sa nā svastho tṛṭ-kāsa-dāha-mūrchādyā vyādhayo 'ty-agni-saṃbhavāḥ | tam aty-agniṃ guru-snigdha-manda-sāndra-hima-sthiraiḥ || 83 || anna-pānair nayec chāntiṃ dīptam agnim ivāmbubhiḥ | muhur muhur a-jīrṇe 'pi bhojyāny asyopahārayet || 84 || 10.84dv bhojyāny asyopakalpayet nir-indhano 'ntaraṃ labdhvā yathainaṃ na vipādayet | kṛśarāṃ pāyasaṃ snigdhaṃ paiṣṭikaṃ guḍa-vaikṛtam || 85 || 10.85bv tathainaṃ na vipādayet aśnīyād audakānūpa-piśitāni bhṛtāni ca | matsyān viśeṣataḥ ślakṣṇān sthira-toya-carāś ca ye || 86 || āvikaṃ su-bhṛtaṃ māṃsam adyād aty-agni-vāraṇam | payaḥ saha-madhūcchiṣṭaṃ ghṛtaṃ vā tṛṣitaḥ pibet || 87 || godhūma-cūrṇaṃ payasā bahu-sarpiḥ-pariplutam | ānūpa-rasa-yuktān vā snehāṃs taila-vivarjitān || 88 || śyāmā-trivṛd-vipakvaṃ vā payo dadyād virecanam | a-sakṛt pitta-haraṇaṃ pāyasa-pratibhojanam || 89 || yat kiñ-cid guru medyaṃ ca śleṣma-kāri ca bhojanam | sarvaṃ tad aty-agni-hitaṃ bhuktvā ca svapanaṃ divā || 90 || āhāram agniḥ pacati doṣān āhāra-varjitaḥ | dhātūn kṣīṇeṣu doṣeṣu jīvitaṃ dhātu-saṃkṣaye || 91 || etat prakṛtyaiva viruddham annaṃ saṃyoga-saṃskāra-vaśena cedam | ity-ādi a-vijñāya yatheṣṭa-ceṣṭāś caranti yat sāgni-balasya śaktiḥ || 92 || tasmād agniṃ pālayet sarva-yatnais tasmin naṣṭe yāti nā nāśam eva | doṣair graste grasyate roga-saṃghair yukte tu syān nī-rujo dīrgha-jīvī || 93 || Cikitsāsthāna liṅgāgra-suṣire samyag yonyāṃ vā saṃpraveśayet | mūtra-duḥkha-haraṃ mukhyaṃ karpūraṃ parisaṃkṣipet || 0+1 || kṛcchre vāta-ghna-tailāktam adho nābheḥ samīra-je | su-snigdhaiḥ svedayed aṅgaṃ piṇḍa-sekāvagāhanaiḥ || 1 || daśa-mūla-balairaṇḍa-yavābhīru-punarnavaiḥ | kulattha-kola-pattūra-vṛścīvopalabhedakaiḥ || 2 || taila-sarpir-varāharkṣa-vasāḥ kvathita-kalkitaiḥ | sa-pañca-lavaṇāḥ siddhāḥ pītāḥ śūla-harāḥ param || 3 || dravyāṇy etāni pānānne tathā piṇḍopanāhane | saha tailaphalair yuñjyāt sāmlāni sneha-vanti ca || 4 || sauvarcalāḍhyāṃ madirāṃ piben mūtra-rujāpahām | paitte yuñjīta śiśiraṃ seka-lepāvagāhanam || 5 || pibed varīṃ gokṣurakaṃ vidārīṃ sa-kaserukām | tṛṇākhyaṃ pañca-mūlaṃ ca pākyaṃ sa-madhu-śarkaram || 6 || vṛṣakaṃ trapusairvāru-laṭvā-bījāni kuṅkumam | drākṣāmbhobhiḥ piban sarvān mūtrāghātān apohati || 7 || ervāru-bīja-yaṣṭy-āhva-dārvīr vā taṇḍulāmbunā | toyena kalkaṃ drākṣāyāḥ pibet paryuṣitena vā || 8 || kapha-je vamanaṃ svedaṃ tīkṣṇoṣṇa-kaṭu-bhojanam | yavānāṃ vikṛtīḥ kṣāraṃ kālaśeyaṃ ca śīlayet || 9 || piben madyena sūkṣmailāṃ dhātrī-phala-rasena vā | sārasāsthi-śvadaṃṣṭrailā-vyoṣaṃ vā madhu-mūtra-vat || 10 || sva-rasaṃ kaṇṭakāryā vā pāyayen mākṣikānvitam | śitivāraka-bījaṃ vā takreṇa ślakṣṇa-cūrṇitam || 11 || dhava-saptāhva-kuṭaja-guḍūcī-caturaṅgulam | kembukailā-karañjaṃ ca pākyaṃ sa-madhu sādhitām || 12 || 11.12cv kaṭukailā-karañjaṃ ca tair vā peyāṃ pravālaṃ vā cūrṇitaṃ taṇḍulāmbunā | sa-tailaṃ pāṭalā-kṣāraṃ sapta-kṛtvo 'tha-vā srutam || 13 || pāṭalī-yāva-śūkābhyāṃ pāribhadrāt tilād api | kṣārodakena madirāṃ tvag-eloṣaṇa-saṃyutām || 14 || pibed guḍopadaṃśān vā lihyād etān pṛthak pṛthak | saṃnipātātmake sarvaṃ yathāvastham idaṃ hitam || 15 || aśmany apy a-cirotthāne vāta-vasty-ādikeṣu ca | aśmarī dāruṇo vyādhir antaka-pratimo mataḥ || 16 || 11.16bv vāta-vasty-ādikeṣv api taruṇo bheṣajaiḥ sādhyaḥ pravṛddhaś chedam arhati | tasya pūrveṣu rūpeṣu snehādi-krama iṣyate || 17 || pāṣāṇabhedo vasuko vaśiro 'śmantako varī | kapotavaṅkātibalā-bhallūkośīra-kacchakam || 18 || 11.18dv -bhallūkośīra-kantakam vṛkṣādanī śāka-phalaṃ vyāghryau guṇṭhas trikaṇṭakaḥ | yavāḥ kulatthāḥ kolāni varuṇaḥ katakāt phalam || 19 || ūṣakādi-pratīvāpam eṣāṃ kvāthe śṛtaṃ ghṛtam | bhinatti vāta-saṃbhūtāṃ tat pītaṃ śīghram aśmarīm || 20 || gandharvahasta-bṛhatī-vyāghrī-gokṣurakekṣurāt | mūla-kalkaṃ pibed dadhnā madhureṇāśma-bhedanam || 21 || kuśaḥ kāśaḥ śaro guṇṭha itkaṭo moraṭo 'śmabhit | darbho vidārī vārāhī śāli-mūlaṃ trikaṇṭakaḥ || 22 || bhallūkaḥ pāṭalī pāṭhā pattūraḥ sa-kuraṇṭakaḥ | punarnave śirīṣaś ca teṣāṃ kvāthe paced ghṛtam || 23 || piṣṭena trapusādīnāṃ bījenendīvareṇa ca | madhukena śilā-jena tat pittāśmari-bhedanam || 24 || varuṇādiḥ samīra-ghnau gaṇāv elā hareṇukā | guggulur maricaṃ kuṣṭhaṃ citrakaḥ sa-surāhvayaḥ || 25 || taiḥ kalkitaiḥ kṛtāv āpam ūṣakādi-gaṇena ca | bhinatti kapha-jām āśu sādhitaṃ ghṛtam aśmarīm || 26 || kṣāra-kṣīra-yavāgv-ādi dravyaiḥ svaiḥ svaiś ca kalpayet | picukāṅkolla-kataka-śākendīvara-jaiḥ phalaiḥ || 27 || pītam uṣṇāmbu sa-guḍaṃ śarkarā-pātanaṃ param | krauñcoṣṭra-rāsabhāsthīni śvadaṃṣṭrā tālapattrikā || 28 || 11.28av pītam uṣṇāmbu sa-ghṛtaṃ ajamodā kadambasya mūlaṃ viśvasya cauṣadham | pītāni śarkarāṃ bhindyuḥ surayoṣṇodakena vā || 29 || 11.29bv mūlaṃ bilvasya cauṣadham nṛtyakuṇḍaka-bījānāṃ cūrṇaṃ mākṣika-saṃyutam | avi-kṣīreṇa saptāhaṃ pītam aśmari-pātanaḥ || 30 || 11.30av nṛtyakuṇḍala-bījānāṃ 11.30av markaṭakasya bījānāṃ kvāthaś ca śigru-mūlotthaḥ kad-uṣṇo 'śmarī-pātanaḥ | tilāpāmārga-kadalī-palāśa-yava-saṃbhavaḥ || 31 || kṣāraḥ peyo 'vi-mūtreṇa śarkarāsv aśmarīṣu ca | kapotavaṅkā-mūlaṃ vā pibed ekaṃ surādibhiḥ || 32 || tat-siddhaṃ vā pibet kṣīraṃ vedanābhir upadrutaḥ | harītaky-asthi-siddhaṃ vā sādhitaṃ vā punarnavaiḥ || 33 || kṣīrānna-bhug barhi-śikhā-mūlaṃ vā taṇḍulāmbunā | mūtrāghāteṣu vibhajed ataḥ śeṣeṣv api kriyām || 34 || bṛhaty-ādi-gaṇe siddhaṃ dvi-guṇī-kṛta-gokṣure | toyaṃ payo vā sarpir vā sarva-mūtra-vikāra-jit || 35 || devadāruṃ ghanaṃ mūrvāṃ yaṣṭīmadhu harītakīm | mūtrāghāteṣu sarveṣu surā-kṣīra-jalaiḥ pibet || 36 || rasaṃ vā dhanvayāsasya kaṣāyaṃ kakubhasya vā | sukhāmbhasā vā tri-phalāṃ piṣṭāṃ saindhava-saṃyutām || 37 || vyāghrī-gokṣuraka-kvāthe yavāgūṃ vā sa-phāṇitām | kvāthe vīratarāder vā tāmra-cūḍa-rase 'pi vā || 38 || adyād vīratarādyena bhāvitaṃ vā śilā-jatu | madyaṃ vā nigadaṃ pītvā rathenāśvena vā vrajet || 39 || 11.39cv madyaṃ vā nir-gadaṃ pītvā śīghra-vegena saṃkṣobhāt tathāsya cyavate 'śmarī | sarva-thā copayoktavyo vargo vīratarādikaḥ || 40 || rekārthaṃ tailvakaṃ sarpir vasti-karma ca śīlayet | viśeṣād uttarān vastīñ chukrāśmaryāṃ tu śodhite || 41 || 11.41dv chukrāśmaryāṃ ca śodhite tair mūtra-mārge bala-vān śukrāśaya-viśuddhaye | pumān su-tṛpto vṛṣyāṇāṃ māṃsānāṃ kukkuṭasya ca || 42 || kāmaṃ sa-kāmaḥ seveta pramadā mada-dāyinīḥ | siddhair upakramair ebhir na cec chāntis tadā bhiṣak || 43 || 11.43dv na cec chāntis tato bhiṣak iti rājānam āpṛcchya śastraṃ sādhv avacārayet | a-kriyāyāṃ dhruvo mṛtyuḥ kriyāyāṃ saṃśayo bhavet || 44 || niścitasyāpi vaidyasya bahu-śaḥ siddha-karmaṇaḥ | athāturam upasnigdha-śuddham īṣac ca karśitam || 45 || 11.45cv athāturam upasnigdhaṃ 11.45dv -śuddham īṣac ca karṣitam 11.45dv śuddham īṣac ca karśitam abhyakta-svinna-vapuṣam a-bhuktaṃ kṛta-maṅgalam | ā-jānu-phalaka-sthasya narasyāṅke vyapāśritam || 46 || pūrveṇa kāyenottānaṃ niṣaṇṇaṃ vastra-cumbhale | tato 'syākuñcite jānu-kūrpare vāsasā dṛḍham || 47 || sahāśraya-manuṣyeṇa baddhasyāśvāsitasya ca | nābheḥ samantād abhyajyād adhas tasyāś ca vāmataḥ || 48 || mṛditvā muṣṭinākrāmed yāvad aśmary adho-gatā | tailākte vardhita-nakhe tarjanī-madhyame tataḥ || 49 || a-dakṣiṇe gude 'ṅgulyau praṇidhāyānu-sevani | āsādya bala-yatnābhyām aśmarīṃ guda-meḍhrayoḥ || 50 || 11.50bv praṇidhāyānu-sevanīm kṛtvāntare tathā vastiṃ nir-valīkam an-āyatam | utpīḍayed aṅgulībhyāṃ yāvad granthir ivonnatam || 51 || śalyaṃ syāt sevanīṃ muktvā yava-mātreṇa pāṭayet | aśma-mānena na yathā bhidyate sā tathāharet || 52 || samagraṃ sarpa-vaktreṇa strīṇāṃ vastis tu pārśva-gaḥ | garbhāśayāśrayas tāsāṃ śastram utsaṅga-vat tataḥ || 53 || nyased ato 'nya-thā hy āsāṃ mūtra-srāvī vraṇo bhavet | mūtra-praseka-kṣaṇanān narasyāpy api caika-dhā || 54 || vasti-bhedo 'śmarī-hetuḥ siddhiṃ yāti na tu dvi-dhā | vi-śalyam uṣṇa-pānīya-droṇyāṃ tam avagāhayet || 55 || tathā na pūryate 'sreṇa vastiḥ pūrṇe tu pīḍayet | meḍhrāntaḥ kṣīri-vṛkṣāmbu mūtra-saṃśuddhaye tataḥ || 56 || 11.56cv meḍhrataḥ kṣīri-vṛkṣāmbu 11.56cv meḍhre 'ntaḥ kṣīri-vṛkṣāmbu kuryād guḍasya sauhityaṃ madhv-ājyākta-vraṇaḥ pibet | dvau kālau sa-ghṛtāṃ koṣṇāṃ yavāgūṃ mūtra-śodhanaiḥ || 57 || try-ahaṃ daśāhaṃ payasā guḍāḍhyenālpam odanam | bhuñjītordhvaṃ phalāmlaiś ca rasair jāṅgala-cāriṇām || 58 || kṣīri-vṛkṣa-kaṣāyeṇa vraṇaṃ prakṣālya lepayet | prapauṇḍarīka-mañjiṣṭhā-yaṣṭy-āhva-nayanauṣadhaiḥ || 59 || vraṇābhyaṅge pacet tailam ebhir eva niśānvitaiḥ | daśāhaṃ svedayec cainaṃ sva-mārgaṃ sapta-rātrataḥ || 60 || 11.60cv daśāhaṃ svedayec caiva 11.60cv daśāhaṃ svedayec caivaṃ mūtre tv a-gacchati dahed aśmarī-vraṇam agninā | sva-mārga-pratipattau tu svādu-prāyair upācaret || 61 || taṃ vastibhir na cārohed varṣaṃ rūḍha-vraṇo 'pi saḥ | naga-nāgāśva-vṛkṣa-strī-rathān nāpsu plaveta ca || 62 || mūtra-śukra-vahau vasti-vṛṣaṇau sevanīṃ gudam | mūtra-prasekaṃ yoniṃ ca śastreṇāṣṭau vivarjayet || 63 || Cikitsāsthāna mehino balinaḥ kuryād ādau vamana-recane | snigdhasya sarṣapāriṣṭa-nikumbhākṣa-karañja-jaiḥ || 1 || tailas trikaṇṭakādyena yathā-svaṃ sādhitena vā | snehena musta-devāhva-nāgara-prativāpa-vat || 2 || surasādi-kaṣāyeṇa dadyād āsthāpanaṃ tataḥ | nyagrodhādes tu pittārtaṃ rasaiḥ śuddhaṃ ca tarpayet || 3 || 12.3cv nyagrodhādes tu pittārte mūtra-graha-rujā-gulma-kṣayādyās tv apatarpaṇāt | tato 'nubandha-rakṣārthaṃ śamanāni prayojayet || 4 || a-saṃśodhyasya tāny eva sarva-meheṣu pāyayet | dhātrī-rasa-plutāṃ prāhṇe haridrāṃ mākṣikānvitām || 5 || dārvī-surāhva-tri-phalā-mustā vā kvathitā jale | citraka-tri-phalā-dārvī-kaliṅgān vā sa-mākṣikān || 6 || madhu-yuktaṃ guḍūcyā vā rasam āmalakasya vā || 7ab || lodhrābhayā-toyada-kaṭphalānāṃ pāṭhā-viḍaṅgārjuna-dhanvanānām || 7cd || gāyatri-dārvī-kṛmihṛd-dhavānāṃ kaphe trayaḥ kṣaudra-yutāḥ kaṣāyāḥ || 7ef || uśīra-lodhrārjuna-candanānāṃ paṭola-nimbāmalakāmṛtānām | lodhrāmbu-kālīyaka-dhātakīnāṃ pitte trayaḥ kṣaudra-yutāḥ kaṣāyāḥ || 8 || yathā-svam ebhiḥ pānānnaṃ yava-godhūma-bhāvanāḥ || 9ab || 12.9bv yava-godhūma-bhāvanām 12.9bv yava-godhūma-bhāvanam vātolbaṇeṣu snehāṃś ca prameheṣu prakalpayet | apūpa-saktu-vāṭyādir yavānāṃ vikṛtir hitā || 10 || gajāśva-guda-muktānām atha-vā veṇu-janmanām | tṛṇa-dhānyāni mudgādyāḥ śālir jīrṇaḥ sa-ṣaṣṭikaḥ || 11 || śrī-kukkuṭo 'mlaḥ khalakas tila-sarṣapa-kiṭṭa-jaḥ | kapitthaṃ tindukaṃ jambūs tat-kṛtā rāga-ṣāḍavāḥ || 12 || tiktaṃ śākaṃ madhu śreṣṭhā bhakṣyāḥ śuṣkāḥ sa-saktavaḥ | dhanva-māṃsāni śūlyāni pariśuṣkāṇy ayas-kṛtiḥ || 13 || madhv-ariṣṭāsavā jīrṇāḥ sīdhuḥ pakva-rasodbhavaḥ | tathāsanādi-sārāmbu darbhāmbho mākṣikodakam || 14 || vāsiteṣu varā-kvāthe śarvarīṃ śoṣiteṣv ahaḥ | yaveṣu su-kṛtān saktūn sa-kṣaudrān sīdhunā pibet || 15 || śāla-saptāhva-kampilla-vṛkṣakākṣa-kapittha-jam | rohītakaṃ ca kusumaṃ madhunādyāt su-cūrṇitam || 16 || kapha-pitta-prameheṣu pibed dhātrī-rasena vā | trikaṇṭaka-niśā-lodhra-somavalka-vacārjunaiḥ || 17 || padmakāśmantakāriṣṭa-candanāguru-dīpyakaiḥ | paṭola-musta-mañjiṣṭhā-mādrī-bhallātakaiḥ pacet || 18 || tailaṃ vāta-kaphe pitte ghṛtaṃ miśreṣu miśrakam | daśa-mūla-śaṭhī-dantī-surāhvaṃ dvi-punarnavam || 19 || mūlaṃ snug-arkayoḥ pathyāṃ bhūkadambam aruṣkaram | karañjau varuṇān mūlaṃ pippalyāḥ pauṣkaraṃ ca yat || 20 || 12.20cv karañja-varuṇān mūlaṃ pṛthag daśa-palaṃ prasthān yava-kola-kulatthataḥ | trīṃś cāṣṭa-guṇite toye vipacet pāda-vartinā || 21 || tena dvi-pippalī-cavya-vacā-nicula-rohiṣaiḥ | trivṛd-viḍaṅga-kampilla-bhārgī-viśvaiś ca sādhayet || 22 || 12.22dv -bhārgī-bilvaiś ca sādhayet prasthaṃ ghṛtāj jayet sarvāṃs tan mehān piṭikā viṣam | pāṇḍu-vidradhi-gulmārśaḥ-śoṣa-śopha-garodaram || 23 || śvāsaṃ kāsaṃ vamiṃ vṛddhiṃ plīhānaṃ vāta-śoṇitam | kuṣṭhonmādāv apasmāraṃ dhānvantaram idaṃ ghṛtam || 24 || lodhra-mūrvā-śaṭhī-vella-bhārgī-nata-nakha-plavān | kaliṅga-kuṣṭha-kramuka-priyaṅgv-ativiṣāgnikān || 25 || dve viśāle catur-jātaṃ bhūnimbaṃ kaṭu-rohiṇīm | yavānīṃ pauṣkaraṃ pāṭhāṃ granthiṃ cavyaṃ phala-trayam || 26 || karṣāṃśam ambu-kalaśe pāda-śeṣe srute hime | dvau prasthau mākṣikāt kṣiptvā rakṣet pakṣam upekṣayā || 27 || lodhrāsavo 'yaṃ mehārśaḥ-śvitra-kuṣṭhā-ruci-kṛmīn | pāṇḍu-tvaṃ grahaṇī-doṣaṃ sthūla-tāṃ ca niyacchati || 28 || sādhayed asanādīnāṃ palānāṃ viṃśatiṃ pṛthak | dvi-vahe 'pāṃ kṣipet tatra pāda-sthe dve śate guḍāt || 29 || kṣaudrāḍhakārdhaṃ palikaṃ vatsakādiṃ ca kalkitam | tat kṣaudra-pippalī-cūrṇa-pradigdhe ghṛta-bhājane || 30 || 12.30bv vatsakādi ca kalkitam sthitaṃ dṛḍhe jatu-sṛte yava-rāśau nidhāpayet | khadirāṅgāra-taptāni bahu-śo 'tra nimajjayet || 31 || tanūni tīkṣṇa-lohasya pattrāṇy ā-loha-saṃkṣayāt | ayas-kṛtiḥ sthitā pītā pūrvasmād adhikā guṇaiḥ || 32 || rūkṣam udvartanaṃ gāḍhaṃ vyāyāmo niśi jāgaraḥ | yac cānyac chleṣma-medo-ghnaṃ bahir antaś ca tad dhitam || 33 || su-bhāvitāṃ sāra-jalais tulāṃ pītvā śilodbhavāt | sārāmbunaiva bhuñjānaḥ śālīñ jāṅgala-jai rasaiḥ || 34 || 12.34dv śāliṃ jāṅgala-jai rasaiḥ sarvān abhibhaven mehān su-bahūpadravān api | gaṇḍa-mālārbuda-granthi-sthaulya-kuṣṭha-bhagandarān || 35 || kṛmi-ślīpada-śophāṃś ca paraṃ caitad rasāyanam | a-dhanaś chattra-pāda-tra-rahito muni-vartanaḥ || 36 || candanam utpalaṃ drākṣā uśīraṃ ca punarnavā | yaṣṭīmadhuka-śrīkhaṇḍaṃ tri-phalotpala-śārivā || 36.1+1 || śamī vaṃśa-phalaṃ lodhraṃ tri-jātaṃ nāgakesaram | padmakaṃ ca kaṇā-cūrṇaṃ tat-tulyā śarkarā śubhā || 36.1+2 || etac cūrṇaṃ pibet prātas taṇḍulodaka-vāriṇā | pramehe rakta-pitte ca kṛcchra-doṣe ca dāruṇe || 36.1+3 || yojanānāṃ śataṃ yāyāt khaned vā salilāśayān | go-śakṛn-mūtra-vṛttir vā gobhir eva saha bhramet || 37 || bṛṃhayed auṣadhāhārair a-medo-mūtralaiḥ kṛśam | śarāvikādyāḥ piṭikāḥ śopha-vat samupācaret || 38 || a-pakvā vraṇa-vat pakvās tāsāṃ prāg-rūpam eva ca | kṣīri-vṛkṣāmbu pānāya basta-mūtraṃ ca śasyate || 39 || tīkṣṇaṃ ca śodhanaṃ prāyo dur-virecyā hi mehinaḥ | tailam elādinā kuryād gaṇena vraṇa-ropaṇam || 40 || udvartane kaṣāyaṃ tu vargeṇāragvadhādinā | pariṣeko 'sanādyena pānānne vatsakādinā || 41 || 12.41cv pariṣeke 'sanādyena pāṭhā-citraka-śārṅgaṣṭā-śārivā-kaṇṭakārikāḥ | saptāhvaṃ kauṭajaṃ mūlaṃ somavalkaṃ nṛpadrumam || 42 || saṃcūrṇya madhunā lihyāt tad-vac cūrṇaṃ navāyasam | madhu-mehi-tvam āpanno bhiṣagbhiḥ parivarjitaḥ || 43 || śilā-jatu-tulām adyāt pramehārtaḥ punar-navaḥ || 43ū̆ab || Cikitsāsthāna vidradhiṃ sarvam evāmaṃ śopha-vat samupācaret | pratataṃ ca hared raktaṃ pakve tu vraṇa-vat kriyā || 1 || pañca-mūla-jalair dhautaṃ vātikaṃ lavaṇottaraiḥ | bhadrādi-varga-yaṣṭy-āhva-tilair ālepayed vraṇam || 2 || vairecanika-yuktena traivṛtena viśodhya ca | vidārī-varga-siddhena traivṛtenaiva ropayet || 3 || kṣālitaṃ kṣīri-toyena limped yaṣṭy-amṛtā-tilaiḥ | paittaṃ ghṛtena siddhena mañjiṣṭhośīra-padmakaiḥ || 4 || payasyā-dvi-niśā-śreṣṭhā-yaṣṭī-dugdhaiś ca ropayet | nyagrodhādi-pravāla-tvak-phalair vā kapha-jaṃ punaḥ || 5 || āragvadhādinā dhautaṃ saktu-kumbha-niśā-tilaiḥ | limpet kulatthikā-dantī -trivṛc-chyāmāgni-tilvakaiḥ || 6 || 13.6av āragvadhāmbunā dhautaṃ sa-saindhavaiḥ sa-go-mūtrais tailaṃ kurvīta ropaṇam | raktāgantūdbhave kāryā pitta-vidradhi-vat kriyā || 7 || varuṇādi-gaṇa-kvātham a-pakve 'bhyantarotthite | ūṣakādi-pratīvāpaṃ pūrvāhṇe vidradhau pibet || 8 || 13.8bv a-pakve 'bhyantara-sthite ghṛtaṃ virecana-dravyaiḥ siddhaṃ tābhyāṃ ca pāyayet | nirūhaṃ sneha-vastiṃ ca tābhyām eva prakalpayet || 9 || pāna-bhojana-lepeṣu madhu-śigruḥ prayojitaḥ | dattāvāpo yathā-doṣam a-pakvaṃ hanti vidradhim || 10 || trāyantī-tri-phalā-nimba-kaṭukā-madhukaṃ samam | trivṛt-paṭola-mūlābhyāṃ catvāro 'ṃśāḥ pṛthak pṛthak || 11 || masūrān nis-tuṣād aṣṭau tat-kvāthaḥ sa-ghṛto jayet | vidradhi-gulma-vīsarpa-dāha-moha-mada-jvarān || 12 || tṛṇ-mūrchā-chardi-hṛd-roga-pittāsṛk-kuṣṭha-kāmalāḥ | kuḍavaṃ trāyamāṇāyāḥ sādhyam aṣṭa-guṇe 'mbhasi || 13 || kuḍavaṃ tad-rasād dhātrī-sva-rasāt kṣīrato ghṛtāt | karṣāṃśaṃ kalkitaṃ tiktā-trāyantī-dhanvayāsakam || 14 || mustā-tāmalakī-vīrā-jīvantī-candanotpalam | paced eka-tra saṃyojya tad ghṛtaṃ pūrva-vad guṇaiḥ || 15 || drākṣā madhūkaṃ kharjūraṃ vidārī sa-śatāvarī | parūṣakāṇi tri-phalā tat-kvāthe pācayed ghṛtam || 16 || kṣīrekṣu-dhātrī-niryāsa-prāṇadā-kalka-saṃyutam | tac chītaṃ śarkarā-kṣaudra-pādikaṃ pūrva-vad guṇaiḥ || 17 || 13.17av kṣīrekṣu-dhātrī-niryāse 13.17bv prāṇadā-kalka-saṃyutam harec chṛṅgādibhir asṛk sirayā vā yathāntikam | vidradhiṃ pacyamānaṃ ca koṣṭha-sthaṃ bahir-unnatam || 18 || jñātvopanāhayet śūle sthite tatraiva piṇḍite | tat-pārśva-pīḍanāt suptau dāhādiṣv alpakeṣu ca || 19 || pakvaḥ syād vidradhiṃ bhittvā vraṇa-vat tam upācaret | antar-bhāgasya cāpy etac cihnaṃ pakvasya vidradeḥ || 20 || pakvaḥ srotāṃsi saṃpūrya sa yāty ūrdhvam adho 'tha-vā | svayam-pravṛttaṃ taṃ doṣam upekṣeta hitāśinaḥ || 21 || 13.21bv sa yāty ūrdhvam adho 'pi vā daśāhaṃ dvā-daśāhaṃ vā rakṣan bhiṣag upadravāt | a-samyag vahati klede varuṇādiṃ sukhāmbhasā || 22 || 13.22bv rakṣed bhiṣag upadravāt pāyayen madhu-śigruṃ vā yavāgūṃ tena vā kṛtām | yava-kola-kulatthottha-yūṣair annaṃ ca śasyate || 23 || ūrdhvaṃ daśāhāt trāyantī-sarpiṣā tailvakena vā | śodhayed balataḥ śuddhaḥ sa-kṣaudraṃ tiktakaṃ pibet || 24 || sarva-śo gulma-vac cainaṃ yathā-doṣam upācaret | sarvāvasthāsu sarvāsu gugguluṃ vidradhīṣu ca || 25 || 13.25cv sarvāvasthāsu sarveṣu kaṣāyair yaugikair yuñjyāt svaiḥ svais tad-vac chilā-jatu | pākaṃ ca vārayed yatnāt siddhiḥ pakve hi daivikī || 26 || api cāśu vidāhi-tvād vidradhiḥ so 'bhidhīyate | sati cālocayen mehe pramehāṇāṃ cikitsitam || 27 || śaubhāñjanaka-niryūho hiṅgu-saindhava-saṃyutaḥ | a-cirād vidradhiṃ hanti prātaḥ prātar niṣevitaḥ || 27+1 || kaṭu-trikaṃ tiktaka-rohiṇī ghanaṃ kirātatikto 'tha śatakrator yavāḥ | sa-saptaparṇātiviṣā durālabhā paṭola-mūlaṃ saha trāyamāṇayā || 27+2 || guḍūcī-cavyaṃ sa-viḍaṅga-nimbaṃ priyaṅgu-nīlotpala-lodhram añjanam | sa-dhātakī-moca-rasaṃ phala-trikaṃ sa-nāgaraṃ bilva-kapittha-śārivāḥ || 27+3 || samāḥ syur ete dvi-guṇaṃ tu citrakaṃ dvir aṣṭa-bhāgaṃ kuṭaja-tvacaṃ syāt | su-sūkṣma-piṣṭaṃ śiśirāmbu-yojitaṃ piben manuṣyo 'rdha-palaṃ guḍānvitam || 27+4 || bubhukṣite syān mṛdu bhojanaṃ hitaṃ śaśaiḥ sa-lāvair atha-vā 'pi tittiraiḥ | nihanti gulmān kapha-pitta-saṃbhavān virājate śārada-pūrṇa-candra-vat || 27+5 || a-jīrṇa-kāsaṃ kṣaya-pāṇḍu-te tathā jvarātisāra-grahaṇī-gadāpacīḥ | prameha-mūtra-kṣaya-vardhma-vidradhīñ jayet prayuktaḥ sa-guḍaḥ kaṭu-trikaḥ || 27+6 || bhūnimbārdha-palaṃ niśā-pala-yuktaṃ dārvī-pale dve tathā || 27+7a || dārvy-ardhena punarnavāṃ kuru tathā dārvyā samaḥ pragrahaḥ || 27+7b || sārdhaṃ duḥsparśataḥ palaṃ tu kaṭukā yojyā tad-ardhena vā || 27+7c || aśvāhvaṃ niśayā samānam amṛtā-pādādhikaṃ syāt palam || 27+7d || etad vatsaka-sapta-karṣa-sahitaṃ su-ślakṣṇa-cūrṇī-kṛtaṃ || 27+8a || vāsāyāḥ sva-rasena pañca caturas trīn vā pibed vāsarān || 27+8b || bhūyas tad guḍa-vāriṇā prati-dinaṃ peyaṃ puraḥ-sthe ravau || 27+8c || etad vidradhi-rogiṇāṃ ni-ruja-kṛc cūrṇaṃ tu guhyottamam || 27+8d || nā-putrāya na cā-bhrātre nā-śiṣyāyā-hitaiṣiṇe | ārogya-śāstra-sarva-svaṃ deyam etat kathañ-ca-na || 27+9 || stana-je vraṇa-vat sarvaṃ na tv enam upanāhayet | pāṭayet pālayan stanya-vāhinīḥ kṛṣṇa-cūcukau || 28 || sarvāsv āmādy-avasthāsu nirduhīta ca tat stanam | śodhayet tri-vṛtā snigdhaṃ vṛddhau snehaiś calātmake || 29 || kauśāmra-tilvakairaṇḍa-su-kumāraka-miśrakaiḥ | tato 'nila-ghna-niryūha-kalka-snehair nirūhayet || 30 || rasena bhojitaṃ yaṣṭī-tailenānvāsayed anu | sveda-pralepā vāta-ghnāḥ pakve bhittvā vraṇa-kriyām || 31 || pitta-raktodbhave vṛddhāv āma-pakve yathā-yatham | śopha-vraṇa-kriyāṃ kuryāt pratataṃ ca hared asṛk || 32 || go-mūtreṇa pibet kalkaṃ ślaiṣmike pītadāru-jam | vimlāpanād ṛte cāsya śleṣma-granthi-kramo hitaḥ || 33 || 13.33cv vimlāpanād ṛte cātra pakve ca pāṭite tailam iṣyate vraṇa-śodhanam | sumano-'ruṣkarāṅkolla-saptaparṇeṣu sādhitam || 34 || paṭola-nimba-rajanī-viḍaṅga-kuṭajeṣu ca | medo-jaṃ mūtra-piṣṭena su-svinnaṃ surasādinā || 35 || śiro-vireka-dravyair vā varjayan phala-sevanīm | dārayed vṛddhi-pattreṇa samyaṅ medasi sūddhṛte || 36 || 13.36dv samyaṅ medasi coddhṛte vraṇaṃ mākṣika-kāsīsa-saindhava-pratisāritam | sīvyed abhyañjanaṃ cāsya yojyaṃ medo-viśuddhaye || 37 || manaḥśilailā-sumano-granthi-bhallātakaiḥ kṛtam | tailam ā-vraṇa-saṃdhānāt sneha-svedau ca śīlayet || 38 || mūtra-jaṃ sveditaṃ snigdhair vastra-paṭṭena veṣṭitam | vidhyed adhas-tāt sevanyāḥ srāvayec ca yathodaram || 39 || vraṇaṃ ca sthagikā-baddhaṃ ropayed antra-hetuke | phala-kośam a-saṃprāpte cikitsā vāta-vṛddhi-vat || 40 || pacet punarnava-tulāṃ tathā daśa-palāḥ pṛthak | daśa-mūla-payasyāśvagandhairaṇḍa-śatāvarīḥ || 41 || dvi-darbha-śara-kāśekṣu-mūla-poṭagalānvitāḥ | vahe 'pām aṣṭa-bhāga-sthe tatra triṃśat-palaṃ guḍāt || 42 || prastham eraṇḍa-tailasya dvau ghṛtāt payasas tathā | āvaped dvi-palāṃśaṃ ca kṛṣṇā-tan-mūla-saindhavam || 43 || yaṣṭīmadhuka-mṛdvīkā-yavānī-nāgarāṇi ca | tat-siddhaṃ su-kumārākhyaṃ su-kumāraṃ rasāyanam || 44 || vātātapādhva-yānādi-parihāryeṣv a-yantraṇam | prayojyaṃ su-kumārāṇām īśvarāṇām sukhātmanām || 45 || nṛṇāṃ strī-vṛnda-bhartṝṇām a-lakṣmī-kali-nāśanam | sarva-kālopayogena kānti-lāvaṇya-puṣṭi-dam || 46 || vardhma-vidradhi-gulmārśo-yoni-meḍhrānilārtiṣu | śophodara-khuḍa-plīha-viḍ-vibandheṣu cottamam || 47 || rāsnā-yaṣṭy-amṛtairaṇḍa-balā-gokṣura-sādhitaḥ | kvātho 'ntra-vṛddhiṃ hanty āśu rubu-tailena miśritaḥ || 47+1 || yāyād vardhma na cec chāntiṃ sneha-rekānuvāsanaiḥ | vasti-karma puraḥ kṛtvā vaṅkṣaṇa-sthaṃ tato dahet || 48 || agninā mārga-rodhārthaṃ maruto 'rdhendu-vakrayā | aṅguṣṭhasyopari snāva pītaṃ tantu-samaṃ ca yat || 49 || utkṣipya sūcyā tat tiryag dahec chittvā yato gadaḥ | tato 'nya-pārśve 'nye tv āhur dahed vānāmikāṅguleḥ || 50 || gulme 'nyair vāta-kapha-je plīhni cāyaṃ vidhiḥ smṛtaḥ | kaniṣṭhikānāmikayor viśvācyāṃ ca yato gadaḥ || 51 || mūlaṃ bilva-kapitthayoḥ aralukasyāgner bṛhatyor dvayoḥ || 51+1a || śyāmā-pūti-karañja-śigruka-taror viśvauṣadhāruṣkaram || 51+1b || kṛṣṇā-granthika-vella-pañca-lavaṇa-kṣārājamodānvitaṃ || 51+1c || pītaṃ kāñjika-toya-...-mathitaiś cūrṇī-kṛtaṃ vardhma-jit || 51+1d || ajājī-kuṣṭha-gomeda-hapuṣā-badarāṇi ca | āranālena lepaḥ syād vardhma-jit param auṣadham || 51+2 || avi-kṣīreṇa godhūma-cūrṇaṃ kandurukasya ca | pralepanaṃ sukhoṣṇaṃ syād vardhma-jit param auṣadham || 51+3 || mṛta-mātre tu vai kāke viśastena pralepayet | muhūrtaṃ vardhma medhāvī tat-kṣaṇād a-rujo bhavet || 51+4 || Cikitsāsthāna gulmaṃ baddha-śakṛd-vātaṃ vātikaṃ tīvra-vedanam | rūkṣa-śītodbhavaṃ tailaiḥ sādhayed vāta-rogikaiḥ || 1 || pānānnānvāsanābhyaṅgaiḥ snigdhasya svedam ācaret | ānāha-vedanā-stambha-vibandheṣu viśeṣataḥ || 2 || srotasāṃ mārdavaṃ kṛtvā jitvā mārutam ulbaṇam | bhittvā vibandhaṃ snigdhasya svedo gulmam apohati || 3 || sneha-pānaṃ hitaṃ gulme viśeṣeṇordhva-nābhi-je | pakvāśaya-gate vastir ubhayaṃ jaṭharāśraye || 4 || dīpte 'gnau vātike gulme vibandhe 'nila-varcasoḥ | bṛṃhaṇāny anna-pānāni snigdhoṣṇāni pradāpayet || 5 || punaḥ punaḥ sneha-pānaṃ nirūhāḥ sānuvāsanāḥ | prayojyā vāta-je gulme kapha-pittānurakṣiṇaḥ || 6 || 14.6dv kapha-pittānurakṣiṇā vasti-karma paraṃ vidyād gulma-ghnaṃ tad dhi mārutam | sva-sthāne prathamaṃ jitvā sadyo gulmam apohati || 7 || tasmād abhīkṣṇa-śo gulmā nirūhaiḥ sānuvāsanaiḥ | prayujyamānaiḥ śāmyanti vāta-pitta-kaphātmakāḥ || 8 || hiṅgu-sauvarcala-vyoṣa-viḍa-dāḍima-dīpyakaiḥ | puṣkarājājī-dhānyāmla-vetasa-kṣāra-citrakaiḥ || 9 || śaṭhī-vacājagandhailā-surasair dadhi-saṃyutaiḥ | śūlānāha-haraṃ sarpiḥ sādhayed vāta-gulminām || 10 || hapuṣoṣaṇa-pṛthvīkā-pañca-kolaka-dīpyakaiḥ | sājājī-saindhavair dadhnā dugdhena ca rasena ca || 11 || dāḍimān mūlakāt kolāt pacet sarpir nihanti tat | vāta-gulmodarānāha-pārśva-hṛt-koṣṭha-vedanāḥ || 12 || yony-arśo-grahaṇī-doṣa-kāsa-śvāsā-ruci-jvarān | daśa-mūlaṃ balāṃ kālāṃ suṣavīṃ dvau punarnavau || 13 || 14.13cv daśa-mūlaṃ balāṃ kālīṃ pauṣkarairaṇḍa-rāsnāśvagandhā-bhārgy-amṛtā-śaṭhīḥ | paced gandha-palāśaṃ ca droṇe 'pāṃ dvi-palonmitam || 14 || yavaiḥ kolaiḥ kulatthaiś ca māṣaiś ca prāsthikaiḥ saha | kvāthe 'smin dadhi-pātre ca ghṛta-prasthaṃ vipācayet || 15 || sva-rasair dāḍimāmrāta-mātuluṅgodbhavair yutam | tathā tuṣāmbu-dhānyāmla-śuktaiḥ ślakṣṇaiś ca kalkitaiḥ || 16 || bhārgī-tumburu-ṣaḍgranthā-granthi-rāsnāgni-dhānyakaiḥ | yavānaka-yavāny-amla-vetasāsita-jīrakaiḥ || 17 || ajājī-hiṅgu-hapuṣā-kāravī-vṛṣakoṣakaiḥ | nikumbha-kumbha-mūrvebha-pippalī-vella-dāḍimaiḥ || 18 || śvadaṃṣṭrā-trapusairvāru-bīja-hiṃsrāśmabhedakaiḥ | miśi-dvi-kṣāra-surasa-śārivā-nīlinī-phalaiḥ || 19 || tri-kaṭu-tri-paṭūpetair dādhikaṃ tad vyapohati | rogān āśu-tarān pūrvān kaṣṭān api ca śīlitam || 20 || apasmāra-gadonmāda-mūtrāghātānilāmayān | try-ūṣaṇa-tri-phalā-dhānya-cavikā-vella-citrakaiḥ || 21 || 14.21av apasmāra-garonmāda- kalkī-kṛtair ghṛtaṃ pakvaṃ sa-kṣīraṃ vāta-gulma-nut | tulāṃ laśuna-kandānāṃ pṛthak pañca-palāṃśakam || 22 || pañca-mūlaṃ mahac cāmbu-bhārārdhe tad vipācayet | pāda-śeṣaṃ tad-ardhena dāḍima-sva-rasaṃ surām || 23 || dhānyāmlaṃ dadhi cādāya piṣṭāṃś cārdha-palāṃśakān | try-ūṣaṇa-tri-phalā-hiṅgu-yavānī-cavya-dīpyakān || 24 || sāmla-vetasa-sindhūttha-devadārūn paced ghṛtāt | taiḥ prasthaṃ tat paraṃ sarva-vāta-gulma-vikāra-jit || 25 || 14.25av sāmla-vetasa-sindhūtthaṃ 14.25bv devadāru paced ghṛtāt ṣaṭ-palaṃ vā pibet sarpir yad uktaṃ rāja-yakṣmaṇi | prasannayā vā kṣīrārthaḥ surayā dāḍimena vā || 26 || ghṛte māruta-gulma-ghnaḥ kāryo dadhnaḥ sareṇa vā | vāta-gulme kapho vṛddho hatvāgnim a-ruciṃ yadi || 27 || hṛl-lāsaṃ gauravaṃ tandrāṃ janayed ullikhet tu tam | śūlānāha-vibandheṣu jñātvā sa-sneham āśayam || 28 || niryūha-cūrṇa-vaṭakāḥ prayojyā ghṛta-bheṣajaiḥ | kola-dāḍima-gharmāmbu-takra-madyāmla-kāñjikaih || 29 || maṇḍena vā pibet prātaś cūrṇāny annasya vā puraḥ | cūrṇāni mātuluṅgasya bhāvitāny a-sakṛd rase || 30 || kurvīta kārmuka-tarān vaṭakān kapha-vātayoḥ || 31ab || hiṅgu-vacā-vijayā-paśugandhā-dāḍima-dīpyaka-dhānyaka-pāṭhāḥ || 31cd || puṣkara-mūla-śaṭhī-hapuṣāgni-kṣāra-yuga-tri-paṭu-tri-kaṭūni || 31ef || sājāji-cavyaṃ saha-tintiḍīkaṃ sa-vetasāmlaṃ vinihanti cūrṇaṃ | hṛt-pārśva-vasti-trika-yoni-pāyu-śūlāni vāyv-āma-kaphodbhavāni || 32 || kṛcchrān gulmān vāta-viṇ-mūtra-saṅgaṃ kaṇṭhe bandhaṃ hṛd-grahaṃ pāṇḍu-rogam | annā-śraddhā-plīha-dur-nāma-hidhmā-vardhmādhmāna-śvāsa-kāsāgni-sādān || 33 || lavaṇa-yavānī-dīpyaka-kaṇa-nāgaram uttarottaraṃ vṛddham | sarva-samāṃśa-harītakī- cūrṇaṃ vaiśvānaraḥ sākṣāt || 34 || 14.34cv sarva-samāṃśaṃ harītakī- 14.34cv sarva-samāṃśā vijayā- 14.34dv cūrṇo vaiśvānaraḥ sākṣāt tri-kaṭukam ajamodā saindhavaṃ jīrake dve || 35a || sama-dharaṇa-ghṛtānām aṣṭamo hiṅgu-bhāgaḥ || 35b || prathama-kavaḍa-bhojyaḥ sarpiṣā saṃprayukto || 35c || 14.35cv prathama-kavaḍa-bhojyaḥ sarpiṣā cūrṇako 'yaṃ janayati jaṭharāgniṃ vāta-gulmaṃ nihanti || 35d || 14.35dv janayati bhṛśam agniṃ vāta-gulmaṃ nihanti hiṅgūgrā-viḍa-śuṇṭhy-ajāji-vijayā-vāṭyābhidhānāmayaiś || 36a || cūrṇaḥ kumbha-nikumbha-mūla-sahitair bhāgottaraṃ vardhitaiḥ || 36b || pītaḥ koṣṇa-jalena koṣṭha-ja-rujo gulmodarādīn ayaṃ || 36c || śārdūlaḥ prasabhaṃ pramathya harati vyādhīn mṛgaughān iva || 36d || sindhūttha-pathyā-kaṇa-dīpyakānāṃ || 37a || cūrṇāni toyaiḥ pibatāṃ kavoṣṇaiḥ || 37b || prayāti nāśaṃ kapha-vāta-janmā || 37c || nārāca-nirbhinna ivāmayaughaḥ || 37d || pūtīka-pattra-gaja-cirbhaṭa-cavya-vahni- || 38a || -vyoṣaṃ ca saṃstara-citaṃ lavaṇopadhānam || 38b || dagdhvā vicūrṇya dadhi-mastu-yutaṃ prayojyaṃ || 38c || gulmodara-śvayathu-pāṇḍu-gudodbhaveṣu || 38d || 14.38dv gulmodara-śvayathu-pāṇḍu-gadodbhaveṣu hiṅgu-tri-guṇaṃ saindhavam asmāt tri-guṇaṃ ca tailam airaṇḍam || 39ab || tat tri-guṇa-laśuna-rasaṃ gulmodara-vardhma-śūla-ghnam | mātuluṅga-raso hiṅgu dāḍimaṃ viḍa-saindhavam || 40 || surā-maṇḍena pātavyaṃ vāta-gulma-rujāpaham | śuṇṭhyāḥ karṣaṃ guḍasya dvau dhautāt kṛṣṇa-tilāt palam || 41 || 14.41bv vāta-gulma-jvarāpaham khādann eka-tra saṃcūrṇya koṣṇa-kṣīrānupo jayet | vāta-hṛd-roga-gulmārśo-yoni-śūla-śakṛd-grahān || 42 || pibed eraṇḍa-tailaṃ tu vāta-gulmī prasannayā | śleṣmaṇy anu-bale vāyau pitte tu payasā saha || 43 || vivṛddhaṃ yadi vā pittaṃ saṃtāpaṃ vāta-gulminaḥ | kuryād virecanīyo 'sau sa-snehair ānulomikaiḥ || 44 || tāpānuvṛttāv evaṃ ca raktaṃ tasyāvasecayet | sādhayec chuddha-śuṣkasya laśunasya catuḥ-palam || 45 || kṣīrodake 'ṣṭa-guṇite kṣīra-śeṣaṃ ca pācayet | vāta-gulmam udāvartaṃ gṛdhrasīṃ viṣama-jvaram || 46 || hṛd-rogaṃ vidradhiṃ śoṣaṃ sādhayaty āśu tat payaḥ | tailaṃ prasannā go-mūtram āranālaṃ yavāgra-jaḥ || 47 || 14.47bv nāśayaty āśu tat payaḥ gulmaṃ jaṭharam ānāhaṃ pītam eka-tra sādhayet | citraka-granthikairaṇḍa-śuṇṭhī-kvāthaḥ paraṃ hitaḥ || 48 || śūlānāha-vibandheṣu sa-hiṅgu-viḍa-saindhavaiḥ | puṣkarairaṇḍayor mūlaṃ yava-dhanvayavāsakam || 49 || jalena kvathitaṃ pītaṃ koṣṭha-dāha-rujāpaham | vāṭyāhvairaṇḍa-darbhāṇāṃ mūlaṃ dāru mahauṣadham || 50 || pītaṃ niḥkvāthya toyena koṣṭha-pṛṣṭhāṃsa-śūla-jit | śilā-jaṃ payasān-alpa-pañca-mūla-śṛtena vā || 51 || 14.51bv koṣṭha-pṛṣṭy-aṃsa-śūla-jit vāta-gulmī pibed vāṭyam udāvarte tu bhojayet | snigdhaṃ paippalikair yūṣair mūlakānāṃ rasena vā || 52 || baddha-viṇ-māruto 'śnīyāt kṣīreṇoṣṇena yāvakam | kulmāṣān vā bahu-snehān bhakṣayel lavaṇottarān || 53 || nīlinī-trivṛtā-dantī-pathyā-kampillakaiḥ saha | sa-malāya ghṛtaṃ deyaṃ sa-viḍa-kṣāra-nāgaram || 54 || nīlinīṃ tri-phalāṃ rāsnāṃ balāṃ kaṭuka-rohiṇīm | paced viḍaṅgaṃ vyāghrīṃ ca pālikāni jalāḍhake || 55 || rase 'ṣṭa-bhāga-śeṣe tu ghṛta-prasthaṃ vipācayet | dadhnaḥ prasthena saṃyojya sudhā-kṣīra-palena ca || 56 || tato ghṛta-palaṃ dadyād yavāgū-maṇḍa-miśritam | jīrṇe samyag-viriktaṃ ca bhojayed rasa-bhojanam || 57 || gulma-kuṣṭhodara-vyaṅga-śopha-pāṇḍv-āmaya-jvarān | śvitraṃ plīhānam unmādaṃ hanty etan nīlinī-ghṛtam || 58 || kukkuṭāś ca mayūrāś ca tittiri-krauñca-vartakāḥ | śālayo madirā sarpir vāta-gulma-cikitsitam || 59 || mitam uṣṇaṃ dravaṃ snigdhaṃ bhojanaṃ vāta-gulminām | sa-maṇḍā vāruṇī pānaṃ taptaṃ vā dhānyakair jalam || 60 || snigdhoṣṇenodite gulme paittike sraṃsanaṃ hitam | drākṣābhayā-guḍa-rasaṃ kampillaṃ vā madhu-drutam || 61 || 14.61dv kampillaṃ vā madhu-dravam kalpoktaṃ rakta-pittoktaṃ gulme rūkṣoṣṇa-je punaḥ | paraṃ saṃśamanaṃ sarpis tiktaṃ vāsā-ghṛtaṃ śṛtam || 62 || tṛṇākhya-pañcaka-kvāthe jīvanīya-gaṇena vā | śṛtaṃ tenaiva vā kṣīraṃ nyagrodhādi-gaṇena vā || 63 || tatrāpi sraṃsanaṃ yuñjyāc chīghram ātyayike bhiṣak | vairecanika-siddhena sarpiṣā payasāpi vā || 64 || rasenāmalakekṣūṇāṃ ghṛta-prasthaṃ vipācayet | pathyā-pādaṃ pibet sarpis tat siddhaṃ pitta-gulma-nut || 65 || pibed vā tailvakaṃ sarpir yac coktaṃ pitta-vidradhau | drākṣāṃ payasyāṃ madhukaṃ candanaṃ padmakaṃ madhu || 66 || pibet taṇḍula-toyena pitta-gulmopaśāntaye | dvi-palaṃ trāyamāṇāyā jala-dvi-prastha-sādhitam || 67 || aṣṭa-bhāga-sthitaṃ pūtaṃ koṣṇaṃ kṣīra-samam pibet | pibed upari tasyoṣṇaṃ kṣīram eva yathā-balam || 68 || tena nirhṛta-doṣasya gulmaḥ śāmyati paittikaḥ | dāhe 'bhyaṅgo ghṛtaiḥ śītaiḥ sājyair lepo himauṣadhaiḥ || 69 || sparśaḥ saro-ruhāṃ pattraiḥ pātraiś ca pracalaj-jalaiḥ | vidāha-pūrva-rūpeṣu śūle vahneś ca mārdave || 70 || bahu-śo 'pahared raktaṃ pitta-gulme viśeṣataḥ | chinna-mūlā vidahyante na gulmā yānti ca kṣayam || 71 || raktaṃ hi vy-amla-tāṃ yāti tac ca nāsti na cāsti ruk | hṛta-doṣaṃ parimlānaṃ jāṅgalais tarpitaṃ rasaiḥ || 72 || samāśvastaṃ sa-śeṣārtiṃ sarpir abhyāsayet punaḥ | rakta-pittāti-vṛddha-tvāt kriyām an-upalabhya vā || 73 || gulme pākon-mukhe sarvā pitta-vidradhi-vat kriyā | śālir gavyāja-payasī paṭolī jāṅgalaṃ ghṛtam || 74 || dhātrī parūṣakaṃ drākṣā kharjūraṃ dāḍimaṃ sitā | bhojyaṃ pāne 'mbu balayā bṛhaty-ādyaiś ca sādhitam || 75 || śleṣma-je vāmayet pūrvam a-vamyam upavāsayet | tiktoṣṇa-kaṭu-saṃsargyā vahniṃ saṃdhukṣayet tataḥ || 76 || 14.76av kapha-je vāmayet pūrvam hiṅgv-ādibhiś ca dvi-guṇa-kṣāra-hiṅgv-amla-vetasaiḥ | nigūḍhaṃ yadi vonnaddhaṃ stimitaṃ kaṭhinaṃ sthiram || 77 || ānāhādi-yutaṃ gulmaṃ saṃsvedya vinayed anu | ghṛtaṃ sa-kṣāra-kaṭukaṃ pātavyaṃ kapha-gulminām || 78 || 14.78bv saṃśodhya vinayed anu sa-vyoṣa-kṣāra-lavaṇaṃ sa-hiṅgu-viḍa-dāḍimam | kapha-gulmaṃ jayaty āśu daśa-mūla-śṛtaṃ ghṛtam || 79 || bhallātakānāṃ dvi-palaṃ pañca-mūlaṃ palonmitam | alpaṃ toyāḍhake sādhyaṃ pāda-śeṣeṇa tena ca || 80 || tulyaṃ ghṛtaṃ tulya-payo vipaced akṣa-saṃmitaiḥ | viḍaṅga-hiṅgu-sindhūttha-yāva-śūka-śaṭhī-viḍaiḥ || 81 || sa-dvīpi-rāsnā-yaṣṭy-āhva-ṣaḍgranthā-kaṇa-nāgaraiḥ | etad bhallātaka-ghṛtaṃ kapha-gulma-haraṃ param || 82 || plīha-pāṇḍv-āmaya-śvāsa-grahaṇī-roga-kāsa-jit | tato 'sya gulme dehe ca samaste svedam ācaret || 83 || 14.83bv -grahaṇī-roga-kāsa-nut sarva-tra gulme prathamaṃ sneha-svedopapādite | yā kriyā kriyate yāti sā siddhiṃ na virūkṣite || 84 || snigdha-svinna-śarīrasya gulme śaithilyam āgate | yathoktāṃ ghaṭikāṃ nyasyed gṛhīte 'panayec ca tām || 85 || vastrāntaraṃ tataḥ kṛtvā bhindyād gulmaṃ pramāṇa-vit | vi-mārgāja-padādarśair yathā-lābhaṃ prapīḍayet || 86 || pramṛjyād gulmam evaikaṃ na tv antra-hṛdayaṃ spṛśet | tilairaṇḍātasī-bīja-sarṣapaiḥ parilipya ca || 87 || 14.87dv -sarṣapaiḥ parilipya vā śleṣma-gulmam ayaḥ-pātraiḥ sukhoṣṇaiḥ svedayet tataḥ | evaṃ ca visṛtaṃ sthānāt kapha-gulmaṃ virecanaiḥ || 88 || sa-snehair vastibhiś cainaṃ śodhayed dāśamūlikaiḥ | pippaly-āmalaka-drākṣā-śyāmādyaiḥ pālikaiḥ pacet || 89 || eraṇḍa-taila-haviṣoḥ prasthau payasi ṣaḍ-guṇe | siddho 'yaṃ miśrakaḥ sneho gulmināṃ sraṃsanaṃ hitam || 90 || vṛddhi-vidradhi-śūleṣu vāta-vyādhiṣu cāmṛtam | pibed vā nīlinī-sarpir mātrayā dvi-palīnayā || 91 || 14.91dv mātrayā dvi-palīkayā tathaiva su-kumārākhyaṃ ghṛtāny audarikāṇi vā | droṇe 'mbhasaḥ paced dantyāḥ palānāṃ pañca-viṃśatim || 92 || citrakasya tathā pathyās tāvatīs tad-rase srute | dvi-prasthe sādhayet pūte kṣiped dantī-samaṃ guḍam || 93 || 14.93bv tāvatīs tad-rase śṛte tailāt palāni catvāri trivṛtāyaś ca cūrṇataḥ | kaṇā-karṣau tathā śuṇṭhyāḥ siddhe lehe tu śītale || 94 || madhu taila-samaṃ dadyāc catur-jātāc caturthikām | ato harītakīm ekāṃ sāvaleha-palām adan || 95 || sukhaṃ viricyate snigdho doṣa-prastham an-āmayaḥ | gulma-hṛd-roga-dur-nāma-śophānāha-garodarān || 96 || kuṣṭhotkleśā-ruci-plīha-grahaṇī-viṣama-jvarān | ghnanti dantī-harītakyaḥ pāṇḍu-tāṃ ca sa-kāmalām || 97 || 14.97dv pāṇḍu-tāṃ ca sa-kāmalān sudhā-kṣīra-dravaṃ cūrṇaṃ tri-vṛtāyāḥ su-bhāvitam | kārṣikaṃ madhu-sarpirbhyāṃ līḍhvā sādhu viricyate || 98 || kuṣṭha-śyāmā-trivṛd-dantī-vijayā-kṣāra-guggulūn | go-mūtreṇa pibed ekaṃ tena guggulum eva vā || 99 || nirūhān kalpa-siddhy-uktān yojayed gulma-nāśanān | kṛta-mūlaṃ mahā-vāstuṃ kaṭhinaṃ stimitaṃ gurum || 100 || gūḍha-māṃsaṃ jayed gulmaṃ kṣārāriṣṭāgni-karmabhiḥ | ekāntaram dvy-antaraṃ vā viśramayyātha-vā try-aham || 101 || śarīra-doṣa-balayor vardhana-kṣapaṇodyataḥ | arśo-'śmarī-grahaṇy-uktāḥ kṣārā yojyāḥ kapholbaṇe || 102 || devadāru-trivṛd-dantī-kaṭukā-pañca-kolakam | svarjikā-yāva-śūkākhyau śreṣṭhā-pāṭhopakuñcikāḥ || 103 || kuṣṭhaṃ sarpasugandhāṃ ca dvy-akṣāṃśaṃ paṭu-pañcakam | pālikaṃ cūrṇitaṃ taila-vasā-dadhi-ghṛtāplutam || 104 || ghaṭasyāntaḥ pacet pakvam agni-varṇe ghaṭe ca tam | kṣāraṃ gṛhītvā kṣīrājya-takra-madyādibhiḥ pibet || 105 || gulmodāvarta-vardhmārśo-jaṭhara-grahaṇī-kṛmīn | apasmāra-garonmāda-yoni-śukrāmayāśmarīḥ || 106 || kṣārā-gado 'yaṃ śamayed viṣaṃ cākhu-bhujaṅga-jam | śleṣmāṇaṃ madhuraṃ snigdhaṃ rasa-kṣīra-ghṛtāśinaḥ || 107 || chittvā bhittvāśayāt kṣāraḥ kṣāra-tvāt kṣārayaty adhaḥ | mande 'gnāv a-rucau sātmyair madyaiḥ sa-sneham aśnatām || 108 || 14.108av chittvā chittvāśayāt kṣāraḥ 14.108av chittvā bhittvāśayaṃ kṣāraḥ 14.108bv kṣāra-tvāt pātayaty adhaḥ yojayed āsavāriṣṭān nigadān mārga-śuddhaye | śālayaḥ ṣaṣṭikā jīrṇāḥ kulatthā jāṅgalaṃ palam || 109 || ciribilvāgni-tarkārī-yavānī-varuṇāṅkurāḥ | śigrus taruṇa-bilvāni bālaṃ śuṣkaṃ ca mūlakam || 110 || 14.110cv śigros taruṇa-mūlāni bījapūraka-hiṅgv-amla-vetasa-kṣāra-dāḍimam | vyoṣaṃ takraṃ ghṛtaṃ tailaṃ bhaktaṃ pānaṃ tu vāruṇī || 111 || dhānyāmlaṃ mastu takraṃ ca yavānī-viḍa-cūrṇitam | pañca-mūla-śṛtaṃ vāri jīrṇaṃ mārdvīkam eva vā || 112 || pippalī-pippalī-mūla-citrakājājī-saindhavaiḥ | surā gulmaṃ jayaty āśu jagalaś ca vimiśritaḥ || 113 || 14.113dv jāṅgalaś ca vimiśritaḥ vamanair laṅghanaiḥ svedaiḥ sarpiḥ-pānair virecanaiḥ | vasti-kṣārāsavāriṣṭa-guṭikā-pathya-bhojanaiḥ || 114 || 14.114cv vasti-kṣārāsavāriṣṭair 14.114dv -gulmikā-pathya-bhojanaiḥ 14.114dv gaulmikaiḥ pathya-bhojanaiḥ ślaiṣmiko baddha-mūla-tvād yadi gulmo na śāmyati | tasya dāhaṃ hṛte rakte kuryād ante śarādibhiḥ || 115 || atha gulmaṃ sa-pary-antaṃ vāsasāntaritaṃ bhiṣak | nābhi-vasty-antra-hṛdayaṃ roma-rājīṃ ca varjayan || 116 || nāti-gāḍhaṃ parimṛśec chareṇa jvalatātha-vā | lohenāraṇikotthena dāruṇā taindukena vā || 117 || tato 'gni-vege śamite śītair vraṇa iva kriyā | āmānvaye tu peyādyaiḥ saṃdhukṣyāgniṃ vilaṅghite || 118 || svaṃ svaṃ kuryāt kramaṃ miśraṃ miśra-doṣe ca kāla-vit | gata-prasava-kālāyai nāryai gulme 'sra-saṃbhave || 119 || snigdha-svinna-śarīrāyai dadyāt sneha-virecanam | tila-kvāthe ghṛta-guḍa-vyoṣa-bhārgī-rajo-'nvitaḥ || 120 || pānaṃ rakta-bhave gulme naṣṭe puṣpe ca yoṣitaḥ | bhārgī-kṛṣṇā-karañja-tvag-granthikāmaradāru-jam || 121 || cūrṇaṃ tilānāṃ kvāthena pītaṃ gulma-rujāpaham | palāśa-kṣāra-pātre dve dve pātre taila-sarpiṣoḥ || 122 || gulma-śaithilya-jananīṃ paktvā mātrāṃ prayojayet | na prabhidyeta yady evaṃ dadyād yoni-virecanam || 123 || kṣāreṇa yuktaṃ palalaṃ sudhā-kṣīreṇa vā tataḥ | tābhyāṃ vā bhāvitān dadyād yonau kaṭuka-matsyakān || 124 || varāha-matsya-pittābhyāṃ naktakān vā su-bhāvitān | kiṇvaṃ vā sa-guḍa-kṣāraṃ dadyād yonau viśuddhaye || 125 || rakta-pitta-haraṃ kṣāraṃ lehayen madhu-sarpiṣā | laśunaṃ madirāṃ tīkṣṇāṃ matsyāṃś cāsyai prayojayet || 126 || vastiṃ sa-kṣīra-go-mūtraṃ sa-kṣāraṃ dāśamūlikam | a-vartamāne rudhire hitaṃ gulma-prabhedanam || 127 || 14.127av vastiṃ sa-kṣaudra-go-mutraṃ yamakābhyakta-dehāyāḥ pravṛtte samupekṣaṇam | rasaudanas tathāhāraḥ pānaṃ ca taruṇī surā || 128 || rudhire 'ti-pravṛtte tu rakta-pitta-harāḥ kriyāḥ | kāryā vāta-rug-ārtāyāḥ sarvā vāta-harāḥ punaḥ || 129 || ānāhādāv udāvarta-balāsa-ghnyo yathā-yatham || 129ū̆ab || Cikitsāsthāna doṣāti-mātropacayāt sroto-mārga-nirodhanāt | saṃbhavaty udaraṃ tasmān nityam enaṃ virecayet || 1 || 15.1bv sroto-mārga-vighātanāt pāyayet tailam airaṇḍaṃ sa-mūtraṃ sa-payo 'pi vā | māsaṃ dvau vātha-vā gavyaṃ mūtraṃ māhiṣam eva vā || 2 || 15.2cv māsaṃ dvau vā tathā gavyaṃ pibed go-kṣīra-bhuk syād vā karabhī-kṣīra-vartanaḥ | dāhānāhāti-tṛṇ-mūrchā-parītas tu viśeṣataḥ || 3 || rūkṣāṇāṃ bahu-vātānāṃ doṣa-saṃśuddhi-kāṅkṣiṇām | snehanīyāni sarpīṃṣi jaṭhara-ghnāni yojayet || 4 || ṣaṭ-palaṃ daśa-mūlāmbu-mastu-dvy-āḍhaka-sādhitam | nāgara-tri-palaṃ prasthaṃ ghṛta-tailāt tathāḍhakam || 5 || 15.5cv nāgaraṃ tri-palaṃ prasthaṃ mastunaḥ sādhayitvaitat pibet sarvodarāpaham | kapha-māruta-saṃbhūte gulme ca paramaṃ hitam || 6 || catur-guṇe jale mūtre dvi-guṇe citrakāt pale | kalke siddhaṃ ghṛta-prasthaṃ sa-kṣāraṃ jaṭharī pibet || 7 || yava-kola-kulatthānāṃ pañca-mūlasya cāmbhasā | surā-sauvīrakābhyāṃ ca siddhaṃ vā pāyayed ghṛtam || 8 || ebhiḥ snigdhāya saṃjāte bale śānte ca mārute | sraste doṣāśaye dadyāt kalpa-dṛṣṭaṃ virecanam || 9 || paṭola-mūlaṃ tri-phalāṃ niśāṃ vellaṃ ca kārṣikam | kampilla-nīlinī-kumbha-bhāgān dvi-tri-catur-guṇān || 10 || pibet saṃcūrṇya mūtreṇa peyā-pūrvaṃ tato rasaiḥ | virikto jāṅgalair adyāt tataḥ ṣaḍ-divasaṃ payaḥ || 11 || śṛtaṃ pibed vyoṣa-yutaṃ pītam evaṃ punaḥ punaḥ | hanti sarvodarāṇy etac cūrṇaṃ jātodakāny api || 12 || gavākṣīṃ śaṅkhinīṃ dantīṃ tilvakasya tvacaṃ vacām | pibet karkandhu-mṛdvīkā-kolāmbho-mūtra-sīdhubhiḥ || 13 || yavānī hapuṣā dhānyaṃ śatapuṣpopakuñcikā | kāravī pippalī-mūlam ajagandhā śaṭhī vacā || 14 || citrako 'jājikaṃ vyoṣaṃ svarṇakṣīrī phala-trayam | dvau kṣārau pauṣkaraṃ mūlaṃ kuṣṭhaṃ lavaṇa-pañcakam || 15 || viḍaṅgaṃ ca samāṃśāni dantyā bhāga-trayaṃ tathā | trivṛd-viśāle dvi-guṇe sātalā ca catur-guṇā || 16 || eṣa nārāyaṇo nāma cūrṇo roga-gaṇāpahaḥ | nainaṃ prāpyābhivardhante rogā viṣṇum ivāsurāḥ || 17 || 15.17cv nainaṃ prāpyātivartante takreṇodaribhiḥ peyo gulmibhir badarāmbunā | ānāha-vāte surayā vāta-roge prasannayā || 18 || dadhi-maṇḍena viṭ-saṅge dāḍimāmbhobhir arśasaiḥ | parikarte sa-vṛkṣāmlair uṣṇāmbubhir a-jīrṇake || 19 || bhagandare pāṇḍu-roge kāse śvāse gala-grahe | hṛd-roge grahaṇī-doṣe kuṣṭhe mande 'nale jvare || 20 || daṃṣṭrā-viṣe mūla-viṣe sa-gare kṛtrime doṣe | yathārhaṃ snigdha-koṣṭhena peyam etad virecanam || 21 || hapuṣāṃ kāñcanakṣīrīṃ tri-phalāṃ nīlinī-phalam | trāyantīṃ rohiṇīṃ tiktāṃ sātalāṃ trivṛtāṃ vacām || 22 || saindhavaṃ kāla-lavaṇaṃ pippalīṃ ceti cūrṇayet | dāḍima-tri-phalā-māṃsa-rasa-mūtra-sukhodakaiḥ || 23 || peyo 'yaṃ sarva-gulmeṣu plīhni sarvodareṣu ca | śvitre kuṣṭheṣv a-jarake sadane viṣame 'nale || 24 || śophārśaḥ-pāṇḍu-rogeṣu kāmalāyāṃ halīmake | vāta-pitta-kaphāṃś cāśu virekeṇa prasādhayet || 25 || nīlinīṃ niculaṃ vyoṣaṃ kṣārau lavaṇa-pañcakam | citrakaṃ ca pibec cūrṇaṃ sarpiṣodara-gulma-nut || 26 || pūrva-vac ca pibed dugdhaṃ kṣāmaḥ śuddho 'ntarāntarā | kārabhaṃ gavyam ājaṃ vā dadyād ātyayike gade || 27 || snehān eva virekārthe dur-balebhyo viśeṣataḥ | harītakī-sūkṣma-rajaḥ-prastha-yuktaṃ ghṛtāḍhakam || 28 || 15.28av sneham eva virekārthe agnau vilāpya mathitaṃ khajena yava-pallake | nidhāpayet tato māsād uddhṛtaṃ gālitaṃ pacet || 29 || harītakīnāṃ kvāthena dadhnā cāmlena saṃyutam | udaraṃ garaṃ aṣṭhīlām ānāhaṃ gulma-vidradhī || 30 || hanty etat kuṣṭham unmādam apasmāraṃ ca pānataḥ | snuk-kṣīra-yuktād go-kṣīrāc chṛta-śītāt khajāhatāt || 31 || yaj jātam ājyaṃ snuk-kṣīra-siddhaṃ tac ca tathā-guṇam | kṣīra-droṇaṃ sudhā-kṣīra-prasthārdha-sahitaṃ dadhi || 32 || 15.32dv -prasthārdhena yutaṃ dadhi jātaṃ mathitvā tat-sarpis trivṛt-siddhaṃ ca tad-guṇam | tathā siddhaṃ ghṛta-prasthaṃ payasy aṣṭa-guṇe pibet || 33 || 15.33dv payasy aṣṭa-guṇe pacet snuk-kṣīra-pala-kalkena trivṛtā-ṣaṭ-palena ca | eṣāṃ cānu pibet peyāṃ rasaṃ svādu payo 'tha-vā || 34 || ghṛte jīrṇe viriktaś ca koṣṇaṃ nāgara-sādhitam | pibed ambu tataḥ peyāṃ tato yūṣaṃ kulattha-jam || 35 || pibed rūkṣas try-ahaṃ tv evaṃ bhūyo vā pratibhojitaḥ | punaḥ punaḥ pibet sarpir ānupūrvyānayaiva ca || 36 || ghṛtāny etāni siddhāni vidadhyāt kuśalo bhiṣak | gulmānāṃ gara-doṣāṇām udarāṇāṃ ca śāntaye || 37 || pīlu-kalkopasiddhaṃ vā ghṛtam ānāha-bhedanam | tailvakaṃ nīlinī-sarpiḥ snehaṃ vā miśrakaṃ pibet || 38 || hṛta-doṣaḥ kramād aśnan laghu-śāly-odana-prati | upayuñjīta jaṭharī doṣa-śoṣa-nivṛttaye || 39 || harītakī-sahasraṃ vā go-mūtreṇa payo-'nupaḥ | sahasraṃ pippalīnāṃ vā snuk-kṣīreṇa su-bhāvitam || 40 || pippalī-vardhamānaṃ vā kṣīrāśī vā śilā-jatu | tad-vad vā gugguluṃ kṣīraṃ tulyārdraka-rasaṃ tathā || 41 || 15.41av pippalīṃ vardhamānaṃ vā citrakāmaradārubhyāṃ kalkaṃ kṣīreṇa vā pibet | māsaṃ yuktas tathā hasti-pippalī-viśva-bheṣajam || 42 || viḍaṅgaṃ citrako dantī cavyaṃ vyoṣaṃ ca taiḥ payaḥ | kalkaiḥ kola-samaiḥ pītvā pravṛddham udaraṃ jayet || 43 || bhojyaṃ bhuñjīta vā māsaṃ snuhī-kṣīra-ghṛtānvitam | utkārikāṃ vā snuk-kṣīra-pīta-pathyā-kaṇā-kṛtām || 44 || pārśva-śūlam upastambhaṃ hṛd-grahaṃ ca samīraṇaḥ | yadi kuryāt tatas tailaṃ bilva-kṣārānvitam pibet || 45 || pakvaṃ vā ṭuṇṭuka-balā-palāśa-tila-nāla-jaiḥ | kṣāraiḥ kadaly-apāmārga-tarkārī-jaiḥ prṭhak-kṛtaiḥ || 46 || kaphe vātena pitte vā tābhyāṃ vāpy āvṛte 'nile | balinaḥ svauṣadha-yutaṃ tailam eraṇḍa-jaṃ hitam || 47 || devadāru-palāśārka-hasti-pippali-śigrukaiḥ | sāśvakarṇaiḥ sa-go-mūtraiḥ pradihyād udaraṃ bahiḥ || 48 || vṛścikālī-vacā-śuṇṭhī-pañca-mūla-punarnavāt | varṣābhū-dhānya-kuṣṭhāc ca kvāthair mūtraiś ca secayet || 49 || virikta-mlānam udaraṃ sveditaṃ śālvaṇādibhiḥ | vāsasā veṣṭayed evaṃ vāyur nādhmāpayet punaḥ || 50 || 15.50bv sveditaṃ śālvalādibhiḥ su-viriktasya yasya syād ādhmānaṃ punar eva tam | su-snigdhair amla-lavaṇair nirūhaiḥ samupācaret || 51 || sopastambho 'pi vā vāyur ādhmāpayati yaṃ naram | tīkṣṇāḥ sa-kṣāra-go-mūtrāḥ śasyante tasya vastayaḥ || 52 || iti sāmānyataḥ proktāḥ siddhā jaṭhariṇāṃ kriyāḥ | vātodare 'tha balinaṃ vidāry-ādi-śṛtaṃ ghṛtam || 53 || 15.53av iti sāmānyataḥ proktā 15.53bv siddhā jaṭhariṇāṃ kriyā pāyayeta tataḥ snigdhaṃ sveditāṅgaṃ virecayet | bahu-śas tailvakenainaṃ sarpiṣā miśrakeṇa vā || 54 || kṛte saṃsarjane kṣīraṃ balārtham avacārayet | prāg utkleśān nivartyaṃ ca bale labdhe kramāt payaḥ || 55 || 15.55cv prāg utkleśān nivarteta yūṣai rasair vā mandāmla-lavaṇair edhitānalam | sodāvartaṃ punaḥ snigdha-svinnam āsthāpayet tataḥ || 56 || tīkṣṇādho-bhāga-yuktena daśa-mūlika-vastinā | tilorubūka-tailena vāta-ghnāmla-śṛtena ca || 57 || 15.57bv daśa-mūlena vastinā sphuraṇākṣepa-saṃdhy-asthi-pārśva-pṛṣṭha-trikārtiṣu | rūkṣaṃ baddha-śakṛd-vātaṃ dīptāgnim anuvāsayet || 58 || a-virecyasya śamanā vasti-kṣīra-ghṛtādayaḥ | balinaṃ svādu-siddhena paitte saṃsnehya sarpiṣā || 59 || śyāmā-tribhaṇḍī-tri-phalā-vipakvena virecayet | sitā-madhu-ghṛtāḍhyena nirūho 'sya tato hitaḥ || 60 || nyagrodhādi-kaṣāyeṇa sneha-vastiś ca tac-chṛtaḥ | dur-balaṃ tv anuvāsyādau śodhayet kṣīra-vastibhiḥ || 61 || jāte cāgni-bale snigdhaṃ bhūyo bhūyo virecayet | kṣīreṇa sa-trivṛt-kalkenorubūka-śṛtena vā || 62 || 15.62av jāte tv agni-bale snigdhaṃ 15.62dv ṃnorubūka-śṛtena tam sātalā-trāyamāṇābhyāṃ śṛtenāragvadhena vā | sa-kaphe vā sa-mūtreṇa sa-tiktājyena sānile || 63 || 15.63av saptalā-trāyamāṇābhyāṃ payasānya-tamenaiṣāṃ vidāry-ādi-śṛtena vā | bhuñjīta jaṭharaṃ cāsya pāyasenopanāhayet || 64 || punaḥ kṣīraṃ punar vastiṃ punar eva virecanam | krameṇa dhruvam ātiṣṭhan yattaḥ pittodaraṃ jayet || 65 || 15.65dv yataḥ pittodaraṃ jayet vatsakādi-vipakvena kaphe saṃsnehya sarpiṣā | svinnaṃ snuk-kṣīra-siddhena bala-vantaṃ virecitam || 66 || saṃsarjayet kaṭu-kṣāra-yuktair annaiḥ kaphāpahaiḥ | mūtra-try-ūṣaṇa-tailāḍhyo nirūho 'sya tato hitaḥ || 67 || muṣkakādi-kaṣāyeṇa sneha-vastiś ca tac-chṛtaḥ | bhojanaṃ vyoṣa-dugdhena kaulatthena rasena vā || 68 || staimityā-ruci-hṛl-lāse mande 'gnau madya-pāya ca | dadyād ariṣṭān kṣārāṃś ca kapha-styāna-sthirodare || 69 || 15.69av staimityā-ruci-hṛl-lāsair 15.69dv kaphe styāne sthirodare hiṅgūpakulye tri-phalāṃ devadāru niśā-dvayam | bhallātakaṃ śigru-phalaṃ kaṭukāṃ tiktakaṃ vacāṃ || 70 || śuṇṭhīṃ mādrīṃ ghanaṃ kuṣṭhaṃ saralaṃ paṭu-pañcakam | dāhayej jarjarī-kṛtya dadhi-sneha-catuṣka-vat || 71 || antar-dhūmaṃ tataḥ kṣārād biḍāla-padakaṃ pibet | madirā-dadhi-maṇḍoṣṇa-jalāriṣṭa-surāsavaiḥ || 72 || 15.72dv -jalāriṣṭa-sudhāsavaiḥ udaraṃ gulmam aṣṭhīlāṃ tūṇyau śophaṃ viṣūcikām | plīha-hṛd-roga-guda-jān udāvartaṃ ca nāśayet || 73 || jayed ariṣṭa-go-mūtra-cūrṇāyas-kṛti-pānataḥ | sa-kṣāra-taila-pānaiś ca dur-balasya kaphodaram || 74 || upanāhyaṃ sa-siddhārtha-kiṇvair bījaiś ca mūlakāt | kalkitair udaraṃ svedam abhīkṣṇaṃ cātra yojayet || 75 || 15.75cv kalkitair udara-svedam saṃnipātodare kuryān nāti-kṣīṇa-balānale | doṣodrekānurodhena pratyākhyāya kriyām imām || 76 || dantī-dravantī-phala-jaṃ tailaṃ pāne ca śasyate | kriyā-nivṛtte jaṭhare tri-doṣe tu viśeṣataḥ || 77 || dadyād āpṛcchya taj-jñātīn pātuṃ madyena kalkitam | mūlaṃ kākādanī-guñjā-karavīraka-saṃbhavam || 78 || pāna-bhojana-saṃyuktaṃ dadyād vā sthāvaraṃ viṣam | yasmin vā kupitaḥ sarpo vimuñcati phale viṣam || 79 || tenāsya doṣa-saṃghātaḥ sthiro līno vi-mārga-gaḥ | bahiḥ pravartate bhinno viṣeṇāśu pramāthinā || 80 || tathā vrajaty a-gada-tāṃ śarīrāntaram eva vā | hṛta-doṣaṃ tu śītāmbu-snātaṃ taṃ pāyayet payaḥ || 81 || peyāṃ vā trivṛtaḥ śākaṃ māṇḍūkyā vāstukasya vā | kāla-śākaṃ yavākhyaṃ vā khādet sva-rasa-sādhitam || 82 || nir-amla-lavaṇa-snehaṃ svinnā-svinnam an-anna-bhuk | māsam ekaṃ tataś caiva tṛṣitaḥ sva-rasaṃ pibet || 83 || 15.83cv māsam ekaṃ tataś caivaṃ evaṃ vinirhṛte śākair doṣe māsāt paraṃ tataḥ | dur-balāya prayuñjīta prāṇa-bhṛt kārabhaṃ payaḥ || 84 || plīhodare yathā-doṣaṃ snigdhasya sveditasya ca | sirāṃ bhukta-vato dadhnā vāma-bāhau vimokṣayet || 85 || labdhe bale ca bhūyo 'pi sneha-pītaṃ viśodhitam | samudra-śukti-jaṃ kṣāraṃ payasā pāyayet tathā || 86 || amla-srutaṃ viḍa-kaṇā-cūrṇāḍhyaṃ naktamāla-jam | śaubhāñjanasya vā kvāthaṃ saindhavāgni-kaṇānvitam || 87 || hiṅgv-ādi-cūrṇaṃ kṣārājyaṃ yuñjīta ca yathā-balam | pippalī-nāgaraṃ dantī-samāṃśaṃ dvi-guṇābhayam || 88 || 15.88dv -samāṃśaṃ dvi-guṇābhayā viḍārdhāṃśa-yutaṃ cūrṇam idam uṣṇāmbunā pibet | viḍaṅgaṃ citrakaṃ saktūn sa-ghṛtān saindhavaṃ vacām || 89 || dagdhvā kapāle payasā gulma-plīhāpahaṃ pibet | tailonmiśrair badaraka-pattraiḥ saṃmarditaiḥ samupanaddhaḥ || 90 || musalena pīḍito 'nu ca yāti plīhā payo-bhujo nāśam | rohītaka-latāḥ kḷptāḥ khaṇḍa-śaḥ sābhayā jale || 91 || mūtre vāsunuyāt tac ca sapta-rātra-sthitaṃ pibet | kāmalā-plīha-gulmārśaḥ-kṛmi-mehodarāpaham || 92 || 15.92av mūtre vāsunuyāt tat tu rohītaka-tvacaḥ kṛtvā palānāṃ pañca-viṃśatim | kola-dvi-prastha-saṃyuktaṃ kaṣāyam upakalpayet || 93 || pālikaiḥ pañca-kolais tu taiḥ samastaiś ca tulyayā | rohītaka-tvacā piṣṭair ghṛta-prasthaṃ vipācayet || 94 || plīhābhivṛddhiṃ śamayaty etad āśu prayojitam | kadalyās tila-nālānāṃ kṣāreṇa kṣurakasya ca || 95 || 15.95av plīhābhivṛddhiṃ śamayed 15.95ac plīhāti-vṛddhiṃ śamayaty 15.95dv kṣāreṇekṣurakasya ca tailaṃ pakvaṃ jayet pānāt plīhānaṃ kapha-vāta-jam | a-śāntau gulma-vidhinā yojayed agni-karma ca || 96 || a-prāpta-picchā-salile plīhni vāta-kapholbaṇe | paittike jīvanīyāni sarpīṃṣi kṣīra-vastayaḥ || 97 || raktāvasekaḥ saṃśuddhiḥ kṣīra-pānaṃ ca śasyate | yakṛti plīha-vat karma dakṣiṇe tu bhuje sirām || 98 || svinnāya baddhodariṇe mūtra-tīkṣṇauṣadhānvitam | sa-taila-lavaṇaṃ dadyān nirūhaṃ sānuvāsanam || 99 || parisraṃsīni cānnāni tīkṣṇaṃ cāsmai virecanam | udāvarta-haraṃ karma kāryaṃ yac cānilāpaham || 100 || chidrodaram ṛte svedāc chleṣmodara-vad ācaret | jātaṃ jātaṃ jalaṃ srāvyam evaṃ tad yāpayed bhiṣak || 101 || apāṃ doṣa-harāṇy ādau yojayed udakodare | mūtra-yuktāni tīkṣṇāni vividha-kṣāra-vanti ca || 102 || dīpanīyaiḥ kapha-ghnaiś ca tam āhārair upācaret | kṣāraṃ chāga-karīṣāṇāṃ srutaṃ mūtre 'gninā pacet || 103 || ghanī-bhavati tasmiṃś ca karṣāṃśaṃ cūrṇitaṃ kṣipet | pippalī pippalī-mūlaṃ śuṇṭhī lavaṇa-pañcakam || 104 || nikumbha-kumbha-tri-phalā-svarṇakṣīrī-viṣāṇikāḥ | svarjikā-kṣāra-ṣaḍgranthā-sātalā-yava-śūka-jam || 105 || kolābhā guṭikāḥ kṛtvā tataḥ sauvīrakāplutāḥ | pibed a-jarake śophe pravṛddhe codakodare || 106 || 15.106dv pravṛddhe ca dakodare ity auṣadhair a-praśame triṣu baddhodarādiṣu | prayuñjīta bhiṣak śastram ārta-bandhu-nṛpārthitaḥ || 107 || snigdha-svinna-tanor nābher adho baddha-kṣatāntrayoḥ | pāṭayed udaraṃ muktvā vāmataś catur-aṅgulāt || 108 || catur-aṅgula-mānaṃ tu niṣkāsyāntrāṇi tena ca | nirīkṣyāpanayed vāla-mala-lepopalādikam || 109 || chidre tu śalyam uddhṛtya viśodhyāntra-parisravam | markoṭair daṃśayec chidraṃ teṣu lagneṣu cāharet || 110 || 15.110bv viśodhyāntraṃ parisravam kāyaṃ mūrdhno 'nu cāntrāṇi yathā-sthānaṃ niveśayet | aktāni madhu-sarpirbhyām atha sīvyed bahir vraṇam || 111 || 15.111bv yathā-sthānaṃ viveśayet tataḥ kṛṣṇa-mṛdālipya badhnīyād yaṣṭi-miśrayā | nivāta-sthaḥ payo-vṛttiḥ sneha-droṇyāṃ vaset tataḥ || 112 || sa-jale jaṭhare tailair abhyaktasyānilāpahaiḥ | svinnasyoṣṇāmbunā-kakṣam udare paṭṭa-veṣṭite || 113 || 15.113dv udare pariveṣṭite baddha-cchidrodita-sthāne vidhyed aṅgula-mātrakam | nidhāya tasmin nāḍīṃ ca srāvayed ardham ambhasaḥ || 114 || athāsya nāḍīm ākṛṣya tailena lavaṇena ca | vraṇam abhyajya baddhvā ca veṣṭayed vāsasodaram || 115 || tṛtīye 'hni caturthe vā yāvad ā-ṣo-ḍaśaṃ dinam | tasya viśramya viśramya srāvayed alpa-śo jalam || 116 || 15.116bv yāvad vā-dina-ṣo-ḍaśa viveṣṭayed gāḍha-taraṃ jaṭharaṃ vāsasā ślatham | niḥsrute laṅghitaḥ peyām a-sneha-lavaṇāṃ pibet || 117 || 15.117bv jaṭharaṃ ca ślathā-ślatham syāt kṣīra-vṛttiḥ ṣaṇ-māsāṃś trīn peyāṃ payasā pibet | trīṃś cānyān payasaivādyāt phalāmlena rasena vā || 118 || alpa-śo '-sneha-lavaṇaṃ jīrṇaṃ śyāmāka-kodravam | prayato vatsareṇaivaṃ vijayeta jalodaram || 119 || varjyeṣu yantrito diṣṭe nāty-a-diṣṭe jitendriyaḥ | sarvam evodaraṃ prāyo doṣa-saṃghāta-jaṃ yataḥ || 120 || ato vātādi-śamanī kriyā sarva-tra śasyate | vahnir manda-tvam āyāti doṣaiḥ kukṣau prapūrite || 121 || 15.121bv kriyā sarvā praśasyate tasmād bhojyāni bhojyāni dīpanāni laghūni ca | sa-pañca-mūlāny alpāmla-paṭu-sneha-kaṭūni ca || 122 || bhāvitānāṃ gavāṃ mūtre ṣaṣṭikānāṃ ca taṇḍulaiḥ | yavāgūṃ payasā siddhāṃ pra-kāmaṃ bhojayen naram || 123 || pibed ikṣu-rasaṃ cānu jaṭharāṇāṃ nivṛttaye | svaṃ svaṃ sthānaṃ vrajanty eṣāṃ vāta-pitta-kaphās tathā || 124 || aty-arthoṣṇāmla-lavaṇaṃ rūkṣaṃ grāhi himaṃ guru | guḍaṃ taila-kṛtaṃ śākaṃ vāri pānāvagāhayoḥ || 125 || 15.125av aty-arthoṣṇāmbu-lavaṇaṃ āyāsādhva-divā-svapna-yānāni ca parityajet | nāty-accha-sāndra-madhuraṃ takraṃ pāne praśasyate || 126 || sa-kaṇā-lavaṇaṃ vāte pitte soṣaṇa-śarkaram | yavānī-saindhavājājī-madhu-vyoṣaiḥ kaphodare || 127 || try-ūṣaṇa-kṣāra-lavaṇaiḥ saṃyutaṃ nicayodare | madhu-taila-vacā-śuṇṭhī-śatāhvā-kuṣṭha-saindhavaiḥ || 128 || 15.128cv madhu-taila-varā-śuṇṭhī- 15.128cv madhu-taila-vasā-śuṇṭhī- plīhni baddhe tu hapuṣā-yavānī-paṭv-ajājibhiḥ | sa-kṛṣṇā-mākṣikaṃ chidre vyoṣa-vat salilodare || 129 || gauravā-rocakānāha-manda-vahny-atisāriṇām | takraṃ vāta-kaphārtānām amṛta-tvāya kalpate || 130 || prayogāṇāṃ ca sarveṣām anu kṣīraṃ prayojayet | sthairya-kṛt sarva-dhātūnāṃ balyaṃ doṣānubandha-hṛt || 131 || bheṣajāpacitāṅgānāṃ kṣīram evāmṛtāyate || 131ū̆ab || Cikitsāsthāna pāṇḍv-āmayī pibet sarpir ādau kalyāṇakāhvayam | pañca-gavyaṃ mahā-tiktaṃ śṛtaṃ vāragvadhādinā || 1 || 16.1av pāṇḍu-rogī pibet sarpir dāḍimāt kuḍavo dhānyāt kuḍavārdhaṃ palaṃ palam | citrakāc chṛṅgaverāc ca pippaly-ardha-palaṃ ca taiḥ || 2 || kalkitair viṃśati-palaṃ ghṛtasya salilāḍhake | siddhaṃ hṛt-pāṇḍu-gulmārśaḥ-plīha-vāta-kaphārti-nut || 3 || dīpanaṃ śvāsa-kāsa-ghnaṃ mūḍha-vātānulomanam | duḥkha-prasavinīnāṃ ca vandhyānāṃ ca praśasyate || 4 || snehitaṃ vāmayet tīkṣṇaiḥ punaḥ snigdhaṃ ca śodhayet | payasā mūtra-yuktena bahu-śaḥ kevalena vā || 5 || dantī-phala-rase koṣṇe kāśmaryāñjalim āsutam | drākṣāñjaliṃ vā mṛditaṃ tat pibet pāṇḍu-roga-jit || 6 || 16.6av dantī-pala-rase koṣṇe mūtreṇa piṣṭāṃ pathyāṃ vā tat-siddhaṃ vā phala-trayam | svarṇakṣīrī-trivṛc-chyāmā-bhadradāru-mahauṣadham || 7 || go-mūtrāñjalinā piṣṭaṃ śṛtaṃ tenaiva vā pibet | sādhitaṃ kṣīram ebhir vā pibed doṣānulomanam || 8 || mūtre sthitaṃ vā saptāhaṃ payasāyo-rajaḥ pibet | jīrṇe kṣīreṇa bhuñjīta rasena madhureṇa vā || 9 || śuddhaś cobhayato lihyāt pathyāṃ madhu-ghṛta-drutām | viśālā-kaṭukā-mustā-kuṣṭha-dāru-kaliṅgakāḥ || 10 || 16.10bv pathyā madhu-ghṛta-drutāḥ 16.10cv viśālāṃ kaṭukāṃ mustāṃ 16.10dv kuṣṭhaṃ dāru-kaliṅgakāḥ karṣāṃśā dvi-picur mūrvā karṣārdhāṃśā ghuṇapriyā | pītvā tac cūrṇam ambhobhiḥ sukhair lihyāt tato madhu || 11 || pāṇḍu-rogaṃ jvaraṃ dāhaṃ kāsaṃ śvāsam a-rocakam | gulmānāhāma-vātāṃś ca rakta-pittaṃ ca taj jayet || 12 || vāsā-guḍūcī-tri-phalā-kaṭvī-bhūnimba-nimba-jaḥ | kvāthaḥ kṣaudra-yuto hanti pāṇḍu-pittāsra-kāmalāḥ || 13 || vyoṣāgni-vella-tri-phalā-mustais tulyam ayo-rajaḥ | cūrṇitaṃ takra-madhv-ājya-koṣṇāmbhobhiḥ prayojitam || 14 || kāmalā-pāṇḍu-hṛd-roga-kuṣṭhārśo-meha-nāśanam | guḍa-nāgara-maṇḍūra-tilāṃśān mānataḥ samān || 15 || pippalī-dvi-guṇān dadyād guṭikāṃ pāṇḍu-rogiṇe | tāpyaṃ dārvyās tvacaṃ cavyaṃ granthikaṃ devadāru ca || 16 || vyoṣādi-navakaṃ caitac cūrṇayed dvi-guṇaṃ tataḥ | maṇḍūraṃ cāñjana-nibhaṃ sarvato 'ṣṭa-guṇe 'tha tat || 17 || 16.17av vyoṣādi-navakaṃ ceti pṛthag vipakve go-mūtre vaṭakī-karaṇa-kṣame | prakṣipya vaṭakān kuryāt tān khādet takra-bhojanaḥ || 18 || ete maṇḍūra-vaṭakāḥ prāṇa-dāḥ pāṇḍu-rogiṇām | kuṣṭhāny a-jarakaṃ śopham ūru-stambham a-rocakam || 19 || arśāṃsi kāmalāṃ mehān plīhānaṃ śamayanti ca | tāpyādri-jatu-raupyāyo-malāḥ pañca-palāḥ pṛthak || 20 || citraka-tri-phalā-vyoṣa-viḍaṅgaiḥ pālikaiḥ saha | śarkarāṣṭa-palonmiśrāś cūrṇitā madhunā drutāḥ || 21 || 16.21dv cūrṇitā madhunā yutāḥ 16.21dv cūrṇitāḥ sa-madhu-drutāḥ pāṇḍu-rogaṃ viṣaṃ kāsaṃ yakṣmāṇaṃ viṣamaṃ jvaram | kuṣṭhāny a-jarakaṃ mehaṃ śophaṃ śvāsam a-rocakam || 22 || viśeṣād dhanty apasmāraṃ kāmalāṃ guda-jāni ca | kauṭaja-tri-phalā-nimba-paṭola-ghana-nāgaraiḥ || 23 || bhāvitāni daśāhāni rasair dvi-tri-guṇāni vā | śilā-jatu-palāny aṣṭau tāvatī sita-śarkarā || 24 || tvakkṣīrī-pippalī-dhātrī-karkaṭākhyāḥ palonmitāḥ | nidigdhyāḥ phala-mūlābhyāṃ palaṃ yuktyā tri-jātakam || 25 || 16.25cv nidigdhā-phala-mūlābhyāṃ madhu-tri-pala-saṃyuktān kuryād akṣa-samān guḍān | dāḍimāmbu-payaḥ-pakṣi-rasa-toya-surāsavān || 26 || 16.26av madhu-tri-pala-saṃyuktaṃ tān bhakṣayitvānupiben nir-anno bhukta eva vā | pāṇḍu-kuṣṭha-jvara-plīha-tamakārśo-bhagandaram || 27 || hṛn-mūtra-pūti-śukrāgni-doṣa-śoṣa-garodaram | kāsāsṛg-dara-pittāsṛk-śopha-gulma-galāmayān || 28 || meha-vardhma-bhramān hanyuḥ sarva-doṣa-harāḥ śivāḥ | drākṣā-prasthaṃ kaṇā-prasthaṃ śarkarārdha-tulāṃ tathā || 29 || dvi-palaṃ madhukaṃ śuṇṭhīṃ tvakkṣīrīṃ ca vicūrṇitam | dhātrī-phala-rasa-droṇe tat kṣiptvā leha-vat pacet || 30 || śītān madhu-prastha-yutād lihyāt pāṇi-talaṃ tataḥ | halīmakaṃ pāṇḍu-rogaṃ kāmalāṃ ca niyacchati || 31 || kanīyaḥ-pañca-mūlāmbu śasyate pāna-bhojane | pāṇḍūnāṃ kāmalārtānāṃ mṛdvīkāmalakād rasaḥ || 32 || iti sāmānyataḥ proktaṃ pāṇḍu-roge bhiṣag-jitam | vikalpya yojyaṃ viduṣā pṛthag doṣa-balaṃ prati || 33 || 16.33bv pāṇḍu-roga-bhiṣag-jitam sneha-prāyaṃ pavana-je tikta-śītaṃ tu paittike | ślaiṣmike kaṭu-rūkṣoṣṇaṃ vimiśraṃ sāṃnipātike || 34 || 16.34cv ślaiṣmike kaṭu-tīkṣṇoṣṇaṃ 16.34dv vimiśraṃ saṃnipāta-je mṛdaṃ niryāpayet kāyāt tīkṣṇaiḥ saṃśodhanaiḥ puraḥ | balādhānāni sarpīṃṣi śuddhe koṣṭhe tu yojayet || 35 || 16.35av mṛdaṃ nirvāpayet kāyāt 16.35dv śuddhe koṣṭhe niyojayet vyoṣa-bilva-dvi-rajanī-tri-phalā-dvi-punarnavam | mustāny ayo-rajaḥ pāṭhā viḍaṅgaṃ devadāru ca || 36 || vṛścikālī ca bhārgī ca sa-kṣīrais taiḥ śṛtaṃ ghṛtam | sarvān praśamayaty āśu vikārān mṛttikā-kṛtān || 37 || tad-vat kesara-yaṣṭy-āhva-pippalī-kṣīra-śādvalaiḥ | mṛd-dveṣaṇāya tal-laulye vitared bhāvitāṃ mṛdam || 38 || vellāgni-nimba-prasavaiḥ pāṭhayā mūrvayātha-vā | mṛd-bheda-bhinna-doṣānugamād yojyaṃ ca bheṣajam || 39 || kāmalāyāṃ tu pitta-ghnaṃ pāṇḍu-rogā-virodhi yat | pathyā-śata-rase pathyā-vṛntārdha-śata-kalkitaḥ || 40 || prasthaḥ siddho ghṛtād gulma-kāmalā-pāṇḍu-roga-nut | āragvadhaṃ rasenekṣor vidāry-āmalakasya vā || 41 || sa-try-ūṣaṇaṃ bilva-mātraṃ pāyayet kāmalāpaham | piben nikumbha-kalkaṃ vā dvi-guḍaṃ śīta-vāriṇā || 42 || 16.42dv dvi-guṇaṃ śīta-vāriṇā kumbhasya cūrṇaṃ sa-kṣaudraṃ traiphalena rasena vā | tri-phalāyā guḍūcyā vā dārvyā nimbasya vā rasam || 43 || prātaḥ prātar madhu-yutaṃ kāmalārtāya yojayet | niśā-gairika-dhātrībhiḥ kāmalāpaham añjanam || 44 || 16.44cv śilā-gairika-dhātrībhiḥ tila-piṣṭa-nibhaṃ yas tu kāmalā-vān sṛjen malam | kapha-ruddha-pathaṃ tasya pittaṃ kapha-harair jayet || 45 || rūkṣa-śīta-guru-svādu-vyāyāma-bala-nigrahaiḥ | kapha-saṃmūrchito vāyur yadā pittaṃ bahiḥ kṣipet || 46 || hāridra-netra-mūtra-tvak śveta-varcās tadā naraḥ | bhavet sāṭopa-viṣṭambho guruṇā hṛdayena ca || 47 || daurbalyālpāgni-pārśvārti-hidhmā-śvāsā-ruci-jvaraiḥ | krameṇālpe 'nuṣajyeta pitte śākhā-samāśrite || 48 || rasais taṃ rūkṣa-kaṭv-amlaiḥ śikhi-tittiri-dakṣa-jaiḥ | śuṣka-mūlaka-jair yūṣaiḥ kulatthotthaiś ca bhojayet || 49 || bhṛśāmla-tīkṣṇa-kaṭuka-lavaṇoṣṇaṃ ca śasyate | sa-bījapūraka-rasaṃ lihyād vyoṣaṃ tathāśayam || 50 || svaṃ pittam eti tenāsya śakṛd apy anurajyate | vāyuś ca yāti praśamaṃ sahāṭopādy-upadravaiḥ || 51 || nivṛttopadravasyāsya kāryaḥ kāmaliko vidhiḥ | go-mūtreṇa pibet kumbha-kāmalāyāṃ śilā-jatu || 52 || māsaṃ mākṣika-dhātuṃ vā kiṭṭaṃ vātha hiraṇya-jam | guḍūcī-sva-rasa-kṣīra-sādhitena halīmakī || 53 || mahiṣī-haviṣā snigdhaḥ pibed dhātrī-rasena tu | trivṛtāṃ tad-virikto 'dyāt svādu pittānilāpaham || 54 || drākṣā-lehaṃ ca pūrvoktaṃ sarpīṃṣi madhurāṇi ca | yāpanān kṣīra-vastīṃś ca śīlayet sānuvāsanān || 55 || mārdvīkāriṣṭa-yogāṃś ca pibed yuktyāgni-vṛddhaye | kāsikaṃ cābhayā-lehaṃ pippalīṃ madhukaṃ balām || 56 || 16.56cv kāsikaṃ vābhayā-lehaṃ payasā ca prayuñjīta yathā-doṣaṃ yathā-balam | pāṇḍu-rogeṣu kuśalaḥ śophoktaṃ ca kriyā-kramam || 57 || ayas-tila-try-ūṣaṇa-kola-bhāgaiḥ sarvaiḥ samaṃ mākṣika-dhātu-cūrṇam | tair modakaḥ kṣaudra-yuto 'nu-takraḥ pāṇḍv-āmaye dūra-gate 'pi śastaḥ || 57+1 || Cikitsāsthāna sarva-tra sarvāṅga-sare doṣa-je śvayathau purā | sāme viśoṣito bhuktvā laghu koṣṇāmbhasā pibet || 1 || nāgarātiviṣā-dāru-viḍaṅgendrayavoṣaṇam | atha-vā vijayā-śuṇṭhī-devadāru-punarnavam || 2 || navāyasaṃ vā doṣāḍhyaḥ śuddhyai mūtra-harītakīḥ | varā-kvāthena kaṭukā-kumbhāyas-try-ūṣaṇāni ca || 3 || 17.3bv śuddhyai mūtra-harītakīm atha-vā gugguluṃ tad-vaj jatu vā śaila-saṃbhavam | mandāgniḥ śīlayed āma-guru-bhinna-vibandha-viṭ || 4 || takraṃ sauvarcala-vyoṣa-kṣaudra-yuktaṃ guḍābhayām | takrānu-pānām atha-vā tad-vad vā guḍa-nāgaram || 5 || ārdrakaṃ vā sama-guḍaṃ prakuñcārdha-vivardhitam | paraṃ pañca-palaṃ māsaṃ yūṣa-kṣīra-rasāśanaḥ || 6 || gulmodarārśaḥ-śvayathu-pramehāñ chvāsa-pratiśyālasakā-vipākān | sa-kāmalā-śoṣa-mano-vikārān kāsaṃ kaphaṃ caiva jayet prayogaḥ || 7 || ghṛtam ārdraka-nāgarasya kalka-sva-rasābhyāṃ payasā ca sādhayitvā | śvayathu-kṣavathūdarāgni-sādair abhibhūto 'pi piban bhavaty a-rogaḥ || 8 || rasas tathaivārdraka-nāgarasya peyo 'tha jīrṇe payasānnam adyāt | śilāhvayaṃ vā tri-phalā-rasena hanyāt tri-doṣaṃ śvayathuṃ prasahya || 8+1 || punarnavā-nimba-paṭola-śuṇṭhī- tiktāmṛtā-dārvy-abhayā-kaṣāyaḥ | sarvāṅga-śophodara-kāsa-śūla-śvāsānvitaṃ pāṇḍu-gadaṃ ca hanti || 8+2 || nir-āmo baddha-śamalaḥ pibec chvayathu-pīḍitaḥ | tri-kaṭu-trivṛtā-dantī-citrakaiḥ sādhitaṃ payaḥ || 9 || mūtraṃ gor vā mahiṣyā vā sa-kṣīraṃ kṣīra-bhojanaḥ | saptāhaṃ māsaṃ atha-vā syād uṣṭra-kṣīra-vartanaḥ || 10 || 17.10dv syād uṣṭrī-kṣīra-vartanaḥ yavānakaṃ yava-kṣāraṃ yavānīṃ pañca-kolakam | maricaṃ dāḍimaṃ pāṭhāṃ dhānakām amla-vetasam || 11 || bāla-bilvaṃ ca karṣāṃśaṃ sādhayet salilāḍhake | tena pakvo ghṛta-prasthaḥ śophārśo-gulma-meha-hā || 12 || dadhnaś citraka-garbhād vā ghṛtaṃ tat-takra-saṃyutam | pakvaṃ sa-citrakaṃ tad-vad guṇair yuñjyāc ca kāla-vit || 13 || dhānvantaraṃ mahā-tiktaṃ kalyāṇam abhayā-ghṛtam | daśa-mūla-kaṣāyasya kaṃse pathyā-śataṃ pacet || 14 || dattvā guḍa-tulāṃ tasmin lehe dadyād vicūrṇitam | tri-jātakaṃ tri-kaṭukaṃ kiñ-cic ca yava-śūka-jam || 15 || prasthārdhaṃ ca hime kṣaudrāt tan nihanty upayojitam || 16ab || pravṛddha-śopha-jvara-meha-gulma-kārśyāma-vātāmlaka-rakta-pittam || 16cd || vaivarṇya-mūtrānila-śukra-doṣa-śvāsā-ruci-plīha-garodaraṃ ca || 16ef || purāṇa-yava-śāly-annaṃ daśa-mūlāmbu-sādhitam || 17ab || alpam alpa-paṭu-snehaṃ bhojanaṃ śvayathor hitam | kṣāra-vyoṣānvitair maudgaiḥ kaulatthaiḥ sa-kaṇai rasaiḥ || 18 || 17.18bv bhojanaṃ śvayathau hitam tathā jāṅgala-jaiḥ kūrma-godhā-śalyaka-jair api | an-amlaṃ mathitaṃ pāne madyāny auṣadha-vanti ca || 19 || ajājī-śaṭhī-jivantī-kāravī-pauṣkarāgnikaiḥ | bilva-madhya-yava-kṣāra-vṛkṣāmlair badaronmitaiḥ || 20 || kṛtā peyājya-tailābhyāṃ yukti-bhṛṣṭā paraṃ hitā | śophātīsāra-hṛd-roga-gulmārśo-'lpāgni-mehinām || 21 || guṇais tad-vac ca pāṭhāyāḥ pañca-kolena sādhitā | śaileya-kuṣṭha-sthauṇeya-reṇukāguru-padmakaiḥ || 22 || śrīveṣṭaka-nakha-spṛkkā-devadāru-priyaṅgubhiḥ | māṃsī-māgadhikā-vanya-dhānya-dhyāmaka-vālakaiḥ || 23 || catur-jātaka-tālīśa-mustā-gandha-palāśakaiḥ | kuryād abhyañjanaṃ tailaṃ lepaṃ snānāya tūdakam || 24 || snānaṃ vā nimba-varṣābhū-naktamālārka-vāriṇā | ekāṅga-śophe varṣābhū-karavīraka-kiṃśukaiḥ || 25 || viśālā-tri-phalā-lodhra-nalikā-devadārubhiḥ | hiṃsrā-kośātakī-mādrī-tālaparṇī-jayantibhiḥ || 26 || sthūla-kākādanī-śāla-nākulī-vṛṣaparṇibhiḥ | vṛddhyarddhi-hastikarṇaiś ca sukhoṣṇair lepanaṃ hitam || 27 || athānilotthe śvayathau māsārdhaṃ trivṛtaṃ pibet | tailam eraṇḍa-jaṃ vāta-viḍ-vibandhe tad eva tu || 28 || prāg-bhaktaṃ payasā yuktaṃ rasair vā kārayet tathā | svedābhyaṅgān samīra-ghnān lepam ekāṅga-ge punaḥ || 29 || mātuluṅgāgnimanthena śuṇṭhī-hiṃsrāmarāhvayaiḥ | paitte tiktaṃ pibet sarpir nyagrodhādyena vā śṛtam || 30 || kṣīraṃ tṛḍ-dāha-moheṣu lepābhyaṅgāś ca śītalāḥ | paṭola-mūla-trāyantī-yaṣṭy-āhva-kaṭukābhayāḥ || 31 || 17.31cv paṭola-mūrvā-trāyantī- dāru dārvī himaṃ dantī viśālā niculaṃ kaṇā | taiḥ kvāthaḥ sa-ghṛtaḥ pīto hanty antas-tāpa-tṛḍ-bhramān || 32 || 17.32cv tat-kvāthaḥ sa-ghṛtaḥ pīto sa-saṃnipāta-vīsarpa-śopha-dāha-viṣa-jvarān | āragvadhādinā siddhaṃ tailaṃ śleṣmodbhave pibet || 33 || 17.33bv -śopha-dāha-mada-jvarān sroto-vibandhe mande 'gnāv a-rucau stimitāśayaḥ | kṣāra-cūrṇāsavāriṣṭa-mūtra-takrāṇi śīlayet || 34 || kṛṣṇā-purāṇa-piṇyāka-śigru-tvak-sikatātasīḥ | praleponmardane yuñjyāt sukhoṣṇā mūtra-kalkitāḥ || 35 || snānaṃ mūtrāmbhasī siddhe kuṣṭha-tarkāri-citrakaiḥ | kulattha-nāgarābhyāṃ vā caṇḍāguru vilepane || 36 || kālājaśṛṅgī-sarala-bastagandhā-hayāhvayāḥ | ekaiṣīkā ca lepaḥ syāc chvayathāv eka-gātra-ge || 37 || yaṣṭī-dugdha-tilair lepo nava-nītena saṃyutaḥ | śopham āruṣkaraṃ hanti vṛntaiḥ śāla-dalasya vā || 37+1 || yathā-doṣaṃ yathāsannaṃ śuddhiṃ raktāvasecanam | kurvīta miśra-doṣe tu doṣodreka-balāt kriyām || 38 || ajāji-pāṭhā-ghana-pañca-kola-vyāghrī-rajanyaḥ sukha-toya-pītāḥ | śophaṃ tri-doṣaṃ cira-jaṃ pravṛddhaṃ nighnanti bhūnimba-mahauṣadhe ca || 39 || amṛtā-dvitayaṃ śivātikā surakāṣṭhaṃ sa-puraṃ sa-go-jalam | śvayathūdara-kuṣṭha-pāṇḍu-tā-kṛmi-mehordhva-kaphānilāpaham || 40 || iti nijam adhikṛtya pathyam uktaṃ kṣata-janite kṣata-jaṃ viśodhanīyam | sruti-hima-ghṛta-lepa-seka-rekair viṣa-janite viṣa-jic ca śopha iṣṭam || 41 || grāmyāb-jānūpaṃ piśitam a-balaṃ śuṣka-śākaṃ tilānnaṃ || 42a || gauḍaṃ piṣṭānnaṃ dadhi sa-lavaṇaṃ vijjalaṃ madyam amlam || 42b || 17.42bv gauḍaṃ piṣṭānnaṃ dadhi sa-lavaṇaṃ nir-jalaṃ madyam amlam dhānā vallūraṃ samaśanam atho gurv a-sātmyaṃ vidāhi || 42c || svapnaṃ cā-rātrau śvayathu-gada-vān varjayen maithunaṃ ca || 42d || Cikitsāsthāna ādāv eva visarpeṣu hitaṃ laṅghana-rūkṣaṇam | raktāvaseko vamanaṃ virekaḥ snehanaṃ na tu || 1 || pracchardanaṃ visarpa-ghnaṃ sa-yaṣṭīndrayavaṃ phalam | paṭola-pippalī-nimba-pallavair vā samanvitam || 2 || rasena yuktaṃ trāyantyā drākṣāyās traiphalena vā | virecanaṃ trivṛc-cūrṇaṃ payasā sarpiṣātha-vā || 3 || yojyaṃ koṣṭha-gate doṣe viśeṣeṇa viśodhanam | a-viśodhyasya doṣe 'lpe śamanaṃ candanotpalam || 4 || musta-nimba-paṭolaṃ vā paṭolādikam eva vā | śārivāmalakośīra-mustaṃ vā kvathitaṃ jale || 5 || durālabhāṃ parpaṭakaṃ guḍūcīṃ viśva-bheṣajam | pākyaṃ śīta-kaṣāyaṃ vā tṛṣṇā-visarpa-vān pibet || 6 || dārvī-paṭola-kaṭukā-masūra-tri-phalās tathā | sa-nimba-yaṣṭī-trāyantīḥ kvathitā ghṛta-mūrchitāḥ || 7 || amṛta-vṛṣa-paṭolaṃ mustakaṃ saptaparṇaṃ || 7+1a || khadiram asita-vetraṃ nimba-pattraṃ haridre || 7+1b || vividha-viṣa-visarpān kuṣṭha-visphoṭa-kaṇḍūr || 7+1c || apanayati masūrīṃ śīta-pittaṃ jvaraṃ ca || 7+1d || śākhā-duṣṭe tu rudhire raktam evādito haret | tvaṅ-māṃsa-snāyu-saṃkledo rakta-kledād dhi jāyate || 8 || nir-āme śleṣmaṇi kṣīṇe vāta-pittottare hitam | ghṛtaṃ tiktaṃ mahā-tiktaṃ śṛtaṃ vā trāyamāṇayā || 9 || nirhṛte 'sre viśuddhe 'ntar-doṣe tvaṅ-māṃsa-saṃdhi-ge | bahiḥ-kriyāḥ pradehādyāḥ sadyo visarpa-śāntaye || 10 || śatāhvā-musta-vārāhī-vaṃśārtagala-dhānyakam | surāhvā kṛṣṇagandhā ca kuṣṭhaṃ cālepanaṃ cale || 11 || 18.11dv kuṣṭhaṃ vālepanaṃ cale nyagrodhādi-gaṇaḥ pitte tathā padmotpalādikam | nyagrodha-pādās taruṇāḥ kadalī-garbha-saṃyutāḥ || 12 || bisa-granthiś ca lepaḥ syāc chata-dhauta-ghṛtāplutaḥ | padminī-kardamaḥ śītaḥ piṣṭaṃ mauktikam eva vā || 13 || śaṅkhaḥ pravālaṃ śuktir vā gairikaṃ vā ghṛtānvitam | tri-phalā-padmakośīra-samaṅgā-karavīrakam || 14 || 18.14dv -samaṅgā-karavīra-jam nala-mūlāny anantā ca lepaḥ śleṣma-visarpa-hā | dhava-saptāhva-khadira-devadāru-kuraṇṭakam || 15 || sa-mustāragvadhaṃ lepo vargo vā varuṇādikaḥ | āragvadhasya pattrāṇi tvacaḥ śleṣmātakodbhavāḥ || 16 || indrāṇi-śākaṃ kākāhvā śirīṣa-kusumāni ca | seka-vraṇābhyaṅga-havir-lepa-cūrṇān yathā-yatham || 17 || 18.17av indrāṇi-śāka-kākāhvā- 18.17bv -śirīṣa-kusumāni ca etair evauṣadhaiḥ kuryād vāyau lepā ghṛtādhikāḥ | kapha-sthāna-gate sāme pitta-sthāna-gate 'tha-vā || 18 || a-śītoṣṇā hitā rūkṣā rakta-pitte ghṛtānvitāḥ | aty-artha-śītās tanavas tanu-vastrāntarā-sthitāḥ || 19 || 18.19dv tanu-vastrāntara-sthitāḥ yojyāḥ kṣaṇe kṣaṇe 'nye 'nye manda-vīryās ta eva ca | saṃsṛṣṭa-doṣe saṃsṛṣṭam etat karma praśasyate || 20 || śata-dhauta-ghṛtenāgniṃ pradihyāt kevalena vā | secayed ghṛta-maṇḍena śītena madhukāmbunā || 21 || sitāmbhasāmbho-da-jalaiḥ kṣīreṇekṣu-rasena vā | pāna-lepana-sekeṣu mahā-tiktaṃ paraṃ hitam || 22 || 18.22av sitāmbhasāmbho-ja-jalaiḥ granthy-ākhye rakta-pitta-ghnaṃ kṛtvā samyag yathoditam | kaphānila-ghnaṃ karmeṣṭaṃ piṇḍa-svedopanāhanam || 23 || granthi-visarpa-śūle tu tailenoṣṇena secayet | daśa-mūla-vipakvena tad-van mūtrair jalena vā || 24 || sukhoṣṇayā pradihyād vā piṣṭayā kṛṣṇagandhayā | naktamāla-tvacā śuṣka-mūlakaiḥ kalinātha-vā || 25 || dantī citraka-mūla-tvak saudhārka-payasī guḍaḥ | bhallātakāsthi kāsīsaṃ lepo bhindyāc chilām api || 26 || 18.26bv snuhy-arka-payasī guḍaḥ bahir-mārgāśritaṃ granthiṃ kiṃ punaḥ kapha-saṃbhavam | dīrgha-kāla-sthitaṃ granthim ebhir bhindyāc ca bheṣajaiḥ || 27 || mūlakānāṃ kulatthānāṃ yūṣaiḥ sa-kṣāra-dāḍimaiḥ | godhūmānnair yavānnair vā sa-sīdhu-madhu-śārkaraiḥ || 28 || 18.28cv godhūmānnair yavānnaiś ca 18.28dv sa-sīdhu-madhu-śarkaraiḥ sa-kṣaudrair vāruṇī-maṇḍair mātuluṅga-rasānvitaiḥ | tri-phalāyāḥ prayogaiś ca pippalyāḥ kṣaudra-saṃyutaiḥ || 29 || 18.29dv pippalī-kṣaudra-saṃyutaiḥ devadāru-guḍūcyoś ca prayogair girijasya ca | musta-bhallāta-saktūnāṃ prayogair mākṣikasya ca || 30 || dhūmair virekaiḥ śirasaḥ pūrvoktair gulma-bhedanaiḥ | taptāyo-hema-lavaṇa-pāṣāṇādi-prapīḍanaiḥ || 31 || ābhiḥ kriyābhiḥ siddhābhir vividhābhir bale sthitaḥ | granthiḥ pāṣāṇa-kaṭhino yadi naivopaśāmyati || 32 || athāsya dāhaḥ kṣāreṇa śarair hemnāpi vā hitaḥ | pākibhiḥ pācayitvā vā pāṭayitvā tam uddharet || 33 || 18.33cv pākibhiḥ pācayitvā ca mokṣayed bahu-śaś cāsya raktam utkleśam āgatam | punaś cāpahṛte rakte vāta-śleṣma-jid auṣadham || 34 || praklinne dāha-pākābhyāṃ bāhyāntar vraṇa-vat kriyā | dārvī-viḍaṅga-kampillaiḥ siddhaṃ tailaṃ vraṇe hitam || 35 || dūrvā-sva-rasa-siddhaṃ tu kapha-pittottare ghṛtam | ekataḥ sarva-karmāṇi rakta-mokṣaṇam ekataḥ || 36 || visarpo na hy a-saṃsṛṣṭaḥ sa 'sra-pittena jāyate | raktam evāśrayaś cāsya bahu-śo 'sraṃ hared ataḥ || 37 || na ghṛtaṃ bahu-doṣāya deyaṃ yan na virecanam | tena doṣo hy upastabdhas tvag-rakta-piśitaṃ pacet || 38 || Cikitsāsthāna kuṣṭhinaṃ sneha-pānena pūrvaṃ sarvam upācaret | tatra vātottare tailaṃ ghṛtaṃ vā sādhitaṃ hitam || 1 || daśa-mūlāmṛtairaṇḍa-śārṅgaṣṭā-meṣaśṛṅgibhiḥ | paṭola-nimba-kaṭukā-dārvī-pāṭhā-durālabhāḥ || 2 || parpaṭaṃ trāyamāṇāṃ ca palāṃśaṃ pācayed apām | dvy-āḍhake 'ṣṭāṃśa-śeṣeṇa tena karṣonmitais tathā || 3 || trāyantī-musta-bhūnimba-kaliṅga-kaṇa-candanaiḥ | sarpiṣo dvā-daśa-palaṃ pacet tat tiktakaṃ jayet || 4 || pitta-kuṣṭha-parīsarpa-piṭikā-dāha-tṛḍ-bhramān | kaṇḍū-pāṇḍv-āmayān gaṇḍān duṣṭa-nāḍī-vraṇāpacīḥ || 5 || visphoṭa-vidradhī-gulma-śophonmāda-madān api | hṛd-roga-timira-vyaṅga-grahaṇī-śvitra-kāmalāḥ || 6 || bhagandaram apasmāram udaraṃ pradaraṃ garam | arśo-'sra-pittam anyāṃś ca su-kṛcchrān pitta-jān gadān || 7 || sa-pracchadaḥ parpaṭakaḥ śamyākaḥ kaṭukā vacā | tri-phalā padmakaṃ pāṭhā rajanyau śārive kaṇe || 8 || nimba-candana-yaṣṭy-āhva-viśālendrayavāmṛtāḥ | kirātatiktakaṃ sevyaṃ vṛṣo mūrvā śatāvarī || 9 || paṭolātiviṣā-mustā-trāyantī-dhanvayāsakam | tair jale 'ṣṭa-guṇe sarpir dvi-guṇāmalakī-rase || 10 || siddhaṃ tiktān mahā-tiktaṃ guṇair abhyadhikaṃ matam | kaphottare ghṛtaṃ siddhaṃ nimba-saptāhva-citrakaiḥ || 11 || kuṣṭhoṣaṇa-vacā-śāla-priyāla-caturaṅgulaiḥ | sarveṣu cāruṣkara-jaṃ taubaraṃ sārṣapaṃ pibet || 12 || snehaṃ ghṛtaṃ vā kṛmijit-pathyā-bhallātakaiḥ śṛtam | āragvadhasya mūlena śata-kṛtvaḥ śṛtaṃ ghṛtam || 13 || 19.13bv -pathyā-bhallātaka-śṛtam 19.13dv sapta-kṛtvaḥ śṛtaṃ ghṛtam piban kuṣṭhaṃ jayaty āśu bhajan sa-khadiraṃ jalam | ebhir eva yathā-svaṃ ca snehair abhyañjanaṃ hitam || 14 || 19.14av pibet kuṣṭhaṃ jayaty āśu snigdhasya śodhanaṃ yojyaṃ visarpe yad udāhṛtam | lalāṭa-hasta-pādeṣu sirāś cāsya vimokṣayet || 15 || pracchānam alpake kuṣṭhe śṛṅgādyāś ca yathā-yatham | snehair āpyāyayec cainaṃ kuṣṭha-ghnair antarāntarā || 16 || mukta-rakta-viriktasya rikta-koṣṭhasya kuṣṭhinaḥ | prabhañjanas tathā hy asya na syād deha-prabhañjanaḥ || 17 || vāsāmṛtā-nimba-varā-paṭola-vyāghrī-karañjodaka-kalka-pakvam | sarpir visarpa-jvara-kāmalāsra-kuṣṭhāpahaṃ vajrakam āmananti || 18 || tri-phalā-tri-kaṭu-dvi-kaṇṭakārī-kaṭukā-kumbha-nikumbha-rājavṛkṣaiḥ | sa-vacātiviṣāgnikaiḥ sa-pāṭhaiḥ picu-bhāgair nava-vajra-dugdha-muṣṭyā || 19 || piṣṭaiḥ siddhaṃ sarpiṣaḥ prastham ebhiḥ krūre koṣṭhe snehanaṃ recanaṃ ca | kuṣṭha-śvitra-plīha-vardhmāśma-gulmān hanyāt kṛcchrāṃs tan mahā-vajrakākhyam || 20 || danty-āḍhakam apāṃ droṇe paktvā tena ghṛtaṃ pacet | dhāmārgava-pale pītaṃ tad ūrdhvādho viśuddhi-kṛt || 21 || āvartakī-tulāṃ droṇe paced aṣṭāṃśa-śeṣitam | tan-mūlais tatra niryūhe ghṛta-prasthaṃ vipācayet || 22 || pītvā tad eka-divasāntaritaṃ su-jīrṇe bhuñjīta kodravam a-saṃskṛta-kāñjikena | kuṣṭhaṃ kilāsam apacīṃ ca vijetum icchan icchan prajāṃ ca vipulāṃ grahaṇaṃ smṛtiṃ ca || 23 || 19.23bv bhuñjīta kodrava-su-saṃskṛta-kāñjikena yater lelītaka-vasā kṣaudra-jātī-rasānvitā | kuṣṭha-ghnī sama-sarpir vā sa-gāyatry-asanodakā || 24 || śālayo yava-godhūmāḥ koradūṣāḥ priyaṅgavaḥ | mudgā masūrās tubarī tikta-śākāni jāṅgalam || 25 || varā-paṭola-khadira-nimbāruṣkara-yojitam | madyāny auṣadha-garbhāṇi mathitaṃ cendurāji-mat || 26 || anna-pānaṃ hitaṃ kuṣṭhe na tv amla-lavaṇoṣaṇam | dadhi-dugdha-guḍānūpa-tila-māṣāṃs tyajet-tarām || 27 || paṭola-mūla-tri-phalā-viśālāḥ pṛthak-tri-bhāgāpacita-tri-śāṇāḥ | syus trāyamāṇā kaṭu-rohiṇī ca bhāgārdhike nāgara-pāda-yukte || 28 || etat palaṃ jarjaritaṃ vipakvaṃ jale pibed doṣa-viśodhanāya | jīrṇe rasair dhanva-mṛga-dvi-jānāṃ purāṇa-śāly-odanam ādadīta || 29 || kuṣṭhaṃ kilāsaṃ grahaṇī-pradoṣam arśāṃsi kṛcchrāṇi halīmakaṃ ca | ṣaḍ-rātra-yogena nihanti caitad hṛd-vasti-śūlaṃ viṣama-jvaraṃ ca || 30 || 19.30cv ṣaḍ-rātra-yogena nihanti caiṣa viḍaṅga-sārāmalakābhayānāṃ pala-trayaṃ trīṇi palāni kumbhāt | guḍasya ca dvā-daśa māsam eṣa jitātmanāṃ hanty upayujymānaḥ || 31 || kuṣṭha-śvitra-śvāsa-kāsodarārśo-meha-plīha-granthi-rug-jantu-gulmān | siddhaṃ yogaṃ prāha yakṣo mumukṣor bhikṣoḥ prāṇān māṇibhadraḥ kilemam || 32 || bhūnimba-nimba-tri-phalā-padmakātiviṣā-kaṇāḥ | mūrvā-paṭolī-dvi-niśā-pāṭhā-tiktendravāruṇīḥ || 33 || sa-kaliṅga-vacās tulyā dvi-guṇāś ca yathottaram | lihyād dantī-trivṛd-brāhmīs cūrṇitā madhu-sarpiṣā || 34 || kuṣṭha-meha-prasuptīnāṃ paramaṃ syāt tad auṣadham | varā-viḍaṅga-kṛṣṇā vā lihyāt tailājya-mākṣikaiḥ || 35 || 19.35av kuṣṭha-meha-prataptānāṃ kākodumbarikā-vella-nimbābda-vyoṣa-kalka-vān | hanti vṛkṣaka-niryūhaḥ pānāt sarvāṃs tvag-āmayān || 36 || 19.36dv pānāt sarva-tvag-āmayān kuṭajāgni-nimba-nṛpataru-khadirāsana-saptaparṇa-niryūhe | siddhā madhu-ghṛta-yuktāḥ kuṣṭha-ghnīr bhakṣayed abhayāḥ || 37 || dārvī-khadira-nimbānāṃ tvak-kvāthaḥ kuṣṭha-sūdanaḥ || 37ū̆ab || niśottamā-nimba-paṭola-mūla-tiktā-vacā-lohitayaṣṭikābhiḥ | kṛtaḥ kaṣāyaḥ kapha-pitta-kuṣṭhaṃ su-sevito dharma ivocchinatti || 38 || ebhir eva ca śṛtaṃ ghṛtam ukhyaṃ bheṣajair jayati māruta-kuṣṭham | kalpayet khadira-nimba-guḍūcī-devadāru-rajanīḥ pṛthag evam || 39 || pāṭhā-dārvī-vahni-ghuṇeṣṭā-kaṭukābhir || 40a || mūtraṃ yuktaṃ śakrayavaiś coṣṇa-jalaṃ vā || 40b || kuṣṭhī pītvā māsam a-ruk syād guda-kīlī || 40c || mehī śophī pāṇḍura-jīrṇī kṛmi-māṃś ca || 40d || lākṣā-dantī-madhurasa-varā-dvīpi-pāṭhā-viḍaṅga- || 41a || 19.41av lākṣā-dantī-madhurasa-varā-dvīpi-pāṭhā-viḍaṅgaṃ -pratyakpuṣpī-tri-kaṭu-rajanī-saptaparṇāṭarūṣam || 41b || 19.41bv pratyakpuṣpī-tri-kaṭu-rajanī-saptaparṇāṭarūṣam raktā nimbaṃ surataru kṛtaṃ pañca-mūlyau ca cūrṇaṃ || 41c || pītvā māsaṃ jayati hita-bhug gavya-mūtreṇa kuṣṭham || 41d || niśā-kaṇā-nāgara-vella-taubaraṃ sa-vahni-tāpyaṃ krama-śo vivardhitam | gavāmbu-pītaṃ vaṭakī-kṛtaṃ tathā nihanti kuṣṭhāni sa-dāruṇāny api || 42 || tri-kaṭūttamā-tilāruṣkarājya-mākṣika-sitopalā-vihitā | guṭikā rasāyanaṃ kuṣṭha-jic ca vṛṣyā ca sapta-samā || 43 || 19.43cv guṭikā rasāyanaṃ syāt 19.43cc ṃṭha-hṛc ca vṛṣyā ca sapta-samā 19.43dv kuṣṭha-jic ca vṛṣyā ca sapta-samā candraśakalāgni-rajanī-viḍaṅga-tubarāsthy-aruṣkara-tri-phalābhiḥ | vaṭakā guḍāṃśa-kḷptāḥ samasta-kuṣṭhāni nāśayanty abhyastāḥ || 44 || viḍaṅga-bhallātaka-vākucīnāṃ sa-dvīpi-vārāhi-harītakīnām | sa-lāṅgalī-kṛṣṇa-tilopakulyā guḍena piṇḍī vinihanti kuṣṭham || 45 || śaśāṅkalekhā sa-viḍaṅga-sārā sa-pippalīkā sa-hutāśa-mūlā | sāyo-malā sāmalakā sa-tailā kuṣṭhāni kṛcchrāṇi nihanti līḍhā || 46 || 19.46av śaśāṅkalekhā sa-viḍaṅga-mūlā pathyā-tila-guḍaiḥ piṇḍī kuṣṭhaṃ sāruṣkarair jayet | guḍāruṣkara-jantughna-somarājī-kṛtātha-vā || 47 || viḍaṅgādri-jatu-kṣaudra-sarpiṣ-mat khādiraṃ rajaḥ | kiṭibha-śvitra-dadrū-ghnaṃ khāden mita-hitāśanaḥ || 48 || sitā-taila-kṛmighnāni dhātry-ayo-mala-pippalīḥ | lihānaḥ sarva-kuṣṭhāni jayaty ati-gurūṇy api || 49 || mustaṃ vyoṣaṃ tri-phalā mañjiṣṭhā dāru pañca-mūle dve | saptacchada-nimba-tvak sa-viśālā citrako mūrvā || 50 || cūrṇaṃ tarpaṇa-bhāgair navabhiḥ saṃyojitaṃ sa-madhv-aṃśam | nityaṃ kuṣṭha-nibarhaṇam etat prāyogikaṃ khādan || 51 || śvayathuṃ sa-pāṇḍu-rogaṃ śvitraṃ grahaṇī-pradoṣam arśāṃsi | vardhma-bhagandara-piṭikā-kaṇḍū-koṭhāpacīr hanti || 52 || rasāyana-prayogeṇa tubarāsthīni śīlayet | bhallātakaṃ vākucikāṃ vahni-mūlaṃ śilāhvayam || 53 || iti doṣe vijite 'ntas-tvak-sthe śamanaṃ bahiḥ pralepādi hitam | tīkṣṇālepotkliṣṭaṃ kuṣṭhaṃ hi vivṛddhim eti maline dehe || 54 || sthira-kaṭhina-maṇḍalānāṃ kuṣṭhānāṃ poṭalair hitaḥ svedaḥ | svinnotsannaṃ kuṣṭhaṃ śastrair likhitaṃ pralepanair limpet || 55 || yeṣu na śastraṃ kramate sparśendriya-nāśaneṣu kuṣṭheṣu | teṣu nipātyaḥ kṣāro raktaṃ doṣaṃ ca visrāvya || 56 || lepo 'ti-kaṭhina-paruṣe supte kuṣṭhe sthire purāṇe ca | pītā-gadasya kāryo viṣaiḥ sa-mantro '-gadaiś cānu || 57 || 19.57dv viṣaiḥ sa-mantrā-gadaiś cānu stabdhāni supta-suptāny a-svedana-kaṇḍulāni kuṣṭhāni | ghṛṣṭāni śuṣka-go-maya-phenaka-śastraiḥ pradehyāni || 58 || mustā tri-phalā madanaṃ karañja āragvadhaḥ kaliṅga-yavāḥ | saptāhva-kuṣṭha-phalinī-dārvyaḥ siddhārthakaṃ snānam || 59 || eṣa kaṣāyo vamanaṃ virecanaṃ varṇakas tathodgharṣaḥ | tvag-doṣa-kuṣṭha-śopha-prabādhanaḥ pāṇḍu-roga-ghnaḥ || 60 || karavīra-nimba-kuṭajāc chamyākāc citrakāc ca mūlānām | mūtre darvī-lepī kvātho lepena kuṣṭha-ghnaḥ || 61 || śveta-karavīra-mūlaṃ kuṭaja-karañjāt phalaṃ tvaco dārvyāḥ | sumanaḥ-pravāla-yukto lepaḥ kuṣṭhāpahaḥ siddhaḥ || 62 || śairīṣī tvak puṣpaṃ kārpāsyā rājavṛkṣa-pattrāṇi | piṣṭā ca kākamācī catur-vidhaḥ kuṣṭha-hā lepaḥ || 63 || vyoṣa-sarṣapa-niśā-gṛha-dhūmair yāva-śūka-paṭu-citraka-kuṣṭhaiḥ | kola-mātra-guṭikārdha-viṣāṃśā śvitra-kuṣṭha-haraṇo vara-lepaḥ || 64 || nimbaṃ haridre surasaṃ paṭolaṃ kuṣṭhāśvagandhe suradāru śigruḥ | sa-sarṣapaṃ tumburu-dhānya-vanyaṃ caṇḍā ca cūrṇāni samāni kuryāt || 65 || tais takra-piṣṭaiḥ prathamaṃ śarīraṃ tailāktam udvartayituṃ yateta | tathāsya kaṇḍūḥ piṭikāḥ sa-koṭhāḥ kuṣṭhāni śophāś ca śamaṃ vrajanti || 66 || 19.66cv tenāsya kaṇḍūḥ piṭikāḥ sa-koṭhāḥ mustāmṛtāsaṅga-kaṭaṅkaṭerī-kāsīsa-kampillaka-kuṣṭha-lodhrāḥ | gandhopalaḥ sarja-raso viḍaṅgaṃ manaḥśilāle karavīraka-tvak || 67 || tailākta-gātrasya kṛtāni cūrṇāny etāni dadyād avacūrṇanārtham | dadrūḥ sa-kaṇḍūḥ kiṭibhāni pāmā vicarcikā ceti tathā na santi || 68 || snug-gaṇḍe sarṣapāt kalkaḥ kukūlānala-pācitaḥ | lepād vicarcikāṃ hanti rāga-vega iva trapām || 69 || manaḥśilāle maricāni tailam ārkaṃ payaḥ kuṣṭha-haraḥ pradehaḥ | tathā karañja-prapunāṭa-bījaṃ kuṣṭhānvitaṃ go-salilena piṣṭam || 70 || guggulu-marica-viḍaṅgaiḥ sarṣapa-kāsīsa-sarja-rasa-mustaiḥ | śrīveṣṭa-kālagandhair manaḥśilā-kuṣṭha-kampillaiḥ || 71 || ubhaya-haridrā-sahitaiś cākrika-tailena miśritair ebhiḥ | dina-kara-karābhitaptaiḥ kuṣṭhaṃ ghṛṣṭaṃ ca naṣṭaṃ ca || 72 || maricaṃ tamāla-pattraṃ kuṣṭhaṃ sa-manaḥśilaṃ sa-kāsīsam | tailena yuktam uṣitaṃ saptāhaṃ bhājane tāmre || 73 || tenāliptaṃ sidhmaṃ saptāhād gharma-sevino 'paiti | māsān navaṃ kilāsaṃ snānena vinā viśuddhasya || 74 || mayūraka-kṣāra-jale sapta-kṛtvaḥ parisrute | siddhaṃ jyotiṣmatī-tailam abhyaṅgāt sidhma-nāśanam || 75 || vāyasajaṅghā-mūlaṃ vamanī-pattrāṇi mūlakād bījam | takreṇa bhauma-vāre lepaḥ sidhmāpahaḥ siddhaḥ || 76 || jīvantī mañjiṣṭhā dārvī kampillakaṃ payas tuttham | eṣa ghṛta-taila-pākaḥ siddhaḥ siddhe ca sarja-rasaḥ || 77 || deyaḥ sa-madhūcchiṣṭo vipādikā tena naśyati hy aktā | carmaika-kuṣṭha-kiṭibhaṃ kuṣṭhaṃ śāmyaty alasakaṃ ca || 78 || mūlaṃ saptāhvāt tvak śirīṣāśvamārād arkān mālatyāś citrakāsphota-nimbāt | bījaṃ kārañjaṃ sārṣapaṃ prāpunāṭam śreṣṭhā jantughnaṃ try-ūṣaṇaṃ dve haridre || 79 || tailaṃ tailaṃ sādhitaṃ taiḥ sa-mūtrais tvag-doṣāṇāṃ duṣṭa-nāḍī-vraṇānām | abhyaṅgena śleṣma-vātodbhavānāṃ nāśāyālaṃ vajrakaṃ vajra-tulyam || 80 || eraṇḍa-tārkṣya-ghana-nīpa-kadamba-bhārgī- || 81a || -kampilla-vella-phalinī-suravāruṇībhiḥ || 81b || nirguṇḍy-aruṣkara-surāhva-suvarṇadugdhā- || 81c || -śrīveṣṭa-guggulu-śilā-paṭu-tāla-viśvaiḥ || 81d || tulya-snug-arka-dugdhaṃ siddhaṃ tailaṃ smṛtaṃ mahā-vajram | atiśayita-vajraka-guṇaṃ śvitrārśo-granthi-mālā-ghnam || 82 || kuṣṭhāśvamāra-bhṛṅgārka-mūtra-snuk-kṣīra-saindhavaiḥ | tailaṃ siddhaṃ viṣāpaham abhyaṅgāt kuṣṭha-jit param || 83 || siddhaṃ sikthaka-sindūra-pura-tutthaka-tārkṣya-jaiḥ | kacchūṃ vicarcikāṃ cāśu kaṭu-tailaṃ nibarhati || 84 || 19.84bv -pura-tutthaka-tārkṣyakaiḥ 19.84cv pāmāṃ vicarcikāṃ cāśu 19.84dv kaṭu-tailaṃ niyacchati lākṣā vyoṣaṃ prāpunāṭaṃ ca bījaṃ sa-śrīveṣṭaṃ kuṣṭha-siddhārthakāś ca | takronmiśraḥ syād dharidrā ca lepo dadrūṣūkto mūlakotthaṃ ca bījam || 85 || citraka-śobhāñjanakau guḍūcy-apāmārga-devadārūṇi | khadiro dhavaś ca lepaḥ śyāmā dantī dravantī ca || 86 || lākṣā-rasāñjanailāḥ punarnavā ceti kuṣṭhināṃ lepāḥ | dadhi-maṇḍa-yutāḥ pādaiḥ ṣaṭ proktā māruta-kapha-ghnāḥ || 87 || jala-vāpya-loha-kesara-pattra-plava-candana-mṛṇālāni | bhāgottarāṇi siddhaṃ pralepanaṃ pitta-kapha-kuṣṭhe || 88 || tikta-ghṛtair dhauta-ghṛtair abhyaṅgo dahyamāna-kuṣṭheṣu | tailaiś candana-madhuka-prapauṇḍarīkotpala-yutaiś ca || 89 || klede prapatati cāṅge dāhe visphoṭake ca carma-dale | śītāḥ pradeha-sekā vyadhana-virekau ghṛtaṃ tiktam || 90 || khadira-vṛṣa-nimba-kuṭajāḥ śreṣṭhā-kṛmijit-paṭola-madhuparṇyaḥ | antar bahiḥ prayuktāḥ kṛmi-kuṣṭha-nudaḥ sa-go-mutrāḥ || 91 || pralepodvartana-snāna-pāna-bhojana-karmaṇi | śīlitaṃ khādiraṃ vāri sarva-tvag-doṣa-nāśanam || 91+1 || vātottareṣu sarpir vamanaṃ śleṣmottareṣu kuṣṭheṣu | pittottareṣu mokṣo raktasya virecanaṃ cāgre || 92 || 19.92dv raktasya virecanaṃ cāgryam ye lepāḥ kuṣṭhānāṃ yujyante nirhṛtāsra-doṣāṇām | saṃśodhitāśayānāṃ sadyaḥ siddhir bhavati teṣām || 93 || doṣe hṛte 'panīte rakte bāhyāntare kṛte śamane | snehe ca kāla-yukte na kuṣṭham ativartate sādhyam || 94 || bahu-doṣaḥ saṃśodhyaḥ kuṣṭhī bahu-śo 'nurakṣatā prāṇān | doṣe hy ati-mātra-hṛte vāyur hanyād a-balam āśu || 95 || pakṣāt pakṣāc chardanāny abhyupeyān māsān māsāc chodhanāny apy adhas-tāt | śuddhir mūrdhni syāt tri-rātrāt tri-rātrāt ṣaṣṭhe ṣaṣṭhe māsy asṛṅ-mokṣaṇaṃ ca || 96 || 19.96dv ṣaṣṭhe ṣaṣṭhe māsy asṛṅ-mokṣaṇāni yo dur-vānto dur-virikto 'tha-vā syāt || 97a || kuṣṭhī doṣair uddhatair vyāpyate 'sau || 97b || niḥ-saṃdehaṃ yāty a-sādhya-tvam evaṃ || 97c || tasmāt kṛtsnān nirhared asya doṣān || 97d || vrata-dama-yama-sevā-tyāga-śīlābhiyogo || 98a || dvi-ja-sura-guru-pūjā sarva-sat-tveṣu maitrī || 98b || śiva-śiva-suta-tārā-bhās-karārādhanāni || 98c || 19.98cv jina-jina-suta-tārā-bhās-karārādhanāni prakaṭita-mala-pāpaṃ kuṣṭham unmūlayanti || 98d || Cikitsāsthāna kuṣṭhād api bībhatsaṃ yac chīghra-taraṃ ca yāty a-sādhya-tvam | śvitram atas tac-chāntyai yateta dīpte yathā bhavane || 1 || saṃśodhanaṃ viśeṣāt prayojayet pūrvam eva dehasya | śvitre sraṃsanam agryaṃ malayū-rasa iṣyate sa-guḍaḥ || 2 || taṃ pītvābhyakta-tanur yathā-balaṃ sūrya-pāda-saṃtāpam | seveta virikta-tanur try-ahaṃ pipāsuḥ pibet peyām || 3 || śvitre 'ṅge ye sphoṭā jāyante kaṇṭakena tān bhindyāt | sphoṭeṣu niḥsruteṣu prātaḥ prātaḥ pibet tri-dinam || 4 || 20.4dv prātaḥ prātaḥ pibet pakṣam malayūm asanaṃ priyaṅguṃ śatapuṣpāṃ cāmbhasā samutkvāthya | pālāśaṃ vā kṣāraṃ yathā-balaṃ phāṇitopetam || 5 || phalgv-akṣa-vṛkṣa-valkala-niryūheṇendurājikā-kalkam | pītvoṣṇa-sthitasya jāte sphoṭe takreṇa bhojanaṃ nir-lavaṇam || 6 || gavyaṃ mūtraṃ citraka-vyoṣa-yuktaṃ sarpiḥ-kumbhe sthāpitaṃ kṣaudra-miśram | pakṣād ūrdhvaṃ śvitriṇā peyam etat kāryaṃ cāsmai kuṣṭha-diṣṭaṃ vidhānam || 7 || 20.7cv pakṣād ūrdhvaṃ śvitribhiḥ peyam etat mārkavam atha-vā svāded bhṛṣṭaṃ tailena loha-pātra-stham | bījaka-śṛtaṃ ca dugdhaṃ tad anu pibec chvitra-nāśāya || 8 || pūtīkārka-vyādhighāta-snuhīnāṃ mūtre piṣṭāḥ pallavā jāti-jāś ca | ghnanty ālepāc chvitra-dur-nāma-dadrū-pāmā-koṭhān duṣṭa-nāḍī-vraṇāṃś ca || 9 || dvaipaṃ dagdhaṃ carma mātaṅga-jaṃ vā śvitre lepas taila-yukto variṣṭhaḥ | pūtiḥ kīṭo rājavṛkṣodbhavena kṣāreṇāktaḥ śvitram eko 'pi hanti || 10 || 20.10dv kṣāreṇāktaḥ śvitram eko nihanti rātrau go-mūtre vāsitān jarjarāṅgān ahni cchāyāyāṃ śoṣayet sphoṭa-hetūn | evaṃ vārāṃs trīṃs tais tataḥ ślakṣṇa-piṣṭaiḥ snuhyāḥ kṣīreṇa śvitra-nāśāya lepaḥ || 11 || akṣa-taila-drutā lepaḥ kṛṣṇa-sarpodbhavā maṣī | śikhi-pittaṃ tathā dagdhaṃ hrīveraṃ vā tad-āplutam || 12 || 20.12av akṣa-taila-kṛto lepaḥ 20.12av akṣa-taila-druto lepaḥ kuḍavo 'valguja-bījād dharitāla-catur-bhāga-saṃmiśraḥ | mūtreṇa gavāṃ piṣṭaḥ sa-varṇa-karaṇaṃ paraṃ śvitre || 13 || kṣāre su-dagdhe gaja-liṇḍa-je ca gajasya mūtreṇa parisrute ca | droṇa-pramāṇe daśa-bhāga-yuktaṃ dattvā paced bījam avalgujānām || 14 || 20.14av kṣāre su-dagdhe gaja-liṇḍa-je vā 20.14bv gajasya mūtre ca parisrute ca śvitraṃ jayec cikkaṇa-tāṃ gatena tena pralimpan bahu-śaḥ praghṛṣṭaṃ | kuṣṭhaṃ maṣaṃ vā tila-kālakaṃ vā yad vā vraṇe syād adhi-māṃsa-jātam || 15 || bhallātakaṃ dvīpi-sudhārka-mūlaṃ guñjā-phalaṃ try-ūṣaṇa-śaṅkha-cūrṇam | tutthaṃ sa-kuṣṭhaṃ lavaṇāni pañca kṣāra-dvayaṃ lāṅgalikāṃ ca paktvā || 16 || 20.16av bhallātaka-dvīpi-sudhārka-mūla- 20.16bv -guñjā-phala-try-ūṣaṇa-śaṅkha-cūrṇam snug-arka-dugdhe ghanam āyasa-sthaṃ śalākayā tad vidadhīta lepam | kuṣṭhe kilāse tila-kālakeṣu maṣeṣu dur-nāmasu carma-kīle || 17 || śuddhyā śoṇita-mokṣair virūkṣaṇair bhakṣaṇaiś ca saktūnām | śvitraṃ kasya-cid eva praśāmyati kṣīṇa-pāpasya || 18 || snigdha-svinne guḍa-kṣīra-matsyādyaiḥ kṛmiṇodare | utkleśita-kṛmi-kaphe śarvarīṃ tāṃ sukhoṣite || 19 || surasādi-gaṇaṃ mūtre kvāthayitvārdha-vāriṇi | taṃ kaṣāyaṃ kaṇā-gāla-kṛmijit-kalka-yojitam || 20 || sa-taila-svarjikā-kṣāraṃ yuñjyād vastiṃ tato 'hani | tasminn eva nirūḍhaṃ taṃ pāyayeta virecanam || 21 || trivṛt-kalkaṃ phala-kaṇā-kaṣāyāloḍitaṃ tataḥ | ūrdhvādhaḥ-śodhite kuryāt pañca-kola-yutaṃ kramam || 22 || kaṭu-tikta-kaṣāyāṇāṃ kaṣāyaiḥ pariṣecanam | kāle viḍaṅga-tailena tatas tam anuvāsayet || 23 || 20.23bv kaṣāyaiḥ pariṣecayet śiro-roga-niṣedhoktam ācaren mūrdha-geṣv anu | udrikta-tikta-kaṭukam alpa-snehaṃ ca bhojanam || 24 || 20.24dv alpa-snehaṃ ca bhojayet viḍaṅga-kṛṣṇā-marica-pippalī-mūla-śigrubhiḥ | pibet sa-svarjikā-kṣārair yavāgūṃ takra-sādhitām || 25 || 20.25av viḍaṅga-kṛṣṇā-madhuka- 20.25cv pibet sa-svarjikā-kṣārāṃ rasaṃ śirīṣa-kiṇihī-pāribhadraka-kembukāt | palāśa-bīja-pattūra-pūtikād vā pṛthak pibet || 26 || sa-kṣaudraṃ surasādīn vā lihyāt kṣaudra-yutān pṛthak | śata-kṛtvo 'śva-viṭ-cūrṇaṃ viḍaṅga-kvātha-bhāvitam || 27 || kṛmi-mān madhunā lihyād bhāvitaṃ vā varā-rasaiḥ | śiro-gateṣu kṛmiṣu cūrṇaṃ pradhamanaṃ ca tat || 28 || ākhukarṇī-kisalayaiḥ su-piṣṭaiḥ piṣṭa-miśritaiḥ | paktvā pūpalikāṃ khāded dhānyāmlaṃ ca pibed anu || 29 || 20.29av ākhuparṇī-kisalayaiḥ sa-pañca-kola-lavaṇam a-sāndraṃ takram eva vā | nīpa-mārkava-nirguṇḍī-pallaveṣv apy ayaṃ vidhiḥ || 30 || 20.30cv nimbāpāmārga-nirguṇḍī- viḍaṅga-cūrṇa-miśrair vā piṣṭair bhakṣyān prakalpayet | viḍaṅga-taṇḍulair yuktam ardhāṃśair ātape sthitam || 31 || 20.31dv ardhāṃśair ātapa-sthitam dinam āruṣkaraṃ tailaṃ pāne vastau ca yojayet | surāhva-sarala-snehaṃ pṛthag evaṃ ca kalpayet || 32 || purīṣa-jeṣu su-tarāṃ dadyād vasti-virecane | śiro-virekaṃ vamanaṃ śamanaṃ kapha-janmasu || 33 || rakta-jānāṃ pratīkāraṃ kuryāt kuṣṭha-cikitsitāt | indra-lupta-vidhiś cātra vidheyo roma-bhojiṣu || 34 || kṣīrāṇi māṃsāni ghṛtaṃ guḍaṃ ca dadhīni śākāni ca parṇa-vanti | samāsato 'mlān madhurān rasāṃś ca kṛmīñ jihāsuḥ parivarjayeta || 35 || Cikitsāsthāna kevalaṃ nir-upastambham ādau snehair upācaret | vāyuṃ sarpir-vasā-majja-taila-pānair naraṃ tataḥ || 1 || sneha-klāntaṃ samāśvāsya payobhiḥ snehayet punaḥ | yūṣair grāmyaudakānūpa-rasair vā sneha-saṃyutaiḥ || 2 || pāyasaiḥ kṛśaraiḥ sāmla-lavaṇaiḥ sānuvāsanaiḥ | nāvanais tarpaṇaiś cānnaiḥ su-snigdhaiḥ svedayet tataḥ || 3 || sv-abhyaktaṃ sneha-saṃyuktaiḥ śaṅkarādyaiḥ punaḥ punaḥ | snehāktaṃ svinnam aṅgaṃ tu vakraṃ stabdhaṃ sa-vedanam || 4 || 21.4cv snehākta-svinnam aṅgaṃ tu yatheṣṭam ānāmayituṃ sukham eva hi śakyate | śuṣkāṇy api hi kāṣṭhāni sneha-svedopapādanaiḥ || 5 || 21.5dv sneha-svedopanāhanaiḥ śakyaṃ karmaṇya-tāṃ netuṃ kim u gātrāṇi jīvatām | harṣa-toda-rug-āyāma-śopha-stambha-grahādayaḥ || 6 || svinnasyāśu praśāmyanti mārdavaṃ copajāyate | snehaś ca dhātūn saṃśuṣkān puṣṇāty āśūpayojitaḥ || 7 || 21.7dv puṣṇāty āśu prayojitaḥ balam agni-balaṃ puṣṭiṃ prāṇāṃś cāsyābhivardhayet | a-sakṛt taṃ punaḥ snehaiḥ svedaiś ca pratipādayet || 8 || 21.8bv prāṇaṃ cāsyābhivardhayet tathā sneha-mṛdau koṣṭhe na tiṣṭhanty anilāmayāḥ | yady etena sa-doṣa-tvāt karmaṇā na praśāmyati || 9 || mṛdubhiḥ sneha-saṃyuktair bheṣajais taṃ viśodhayet | ghṛtaṃ tilvaka-siddhaṃ vā sātalā-siddham eva vā || 10 || payasairaṇḍa-tailaṃ vā pibed doṣa-haraṃ śivam | snigdhāmla-lavaṇoṣṇādyair āhārair hi malaś citaḥ || 11 || sroto baddhvānilaṃ rundhyāt tasmāt tam anulomayet | dur-balo yo '-virecyaḥ syāt taṃ nirūhair upācaret || 12 || 21.12av sroto ruddhvānilaṃ rundhyāt dīpanaiḥ pācanīyair vā bhojyair vā tad-yutair naram | saṃśuddhasyotthite cāgnau sneha-svedau punar hitau || 13 || āmāśaya-gate vāyau vamita-pratibhojite | sukhāmbunā ṣaḍ-dharaṇaṃ vacādiṃ vā prayojayet || 14 || 21.14cv sukhāmbunā ṣaṭ-caraṇaṃ saṃdhukṣite 'gnau parato vidhiḥ kevala-vātikaḥ | matsyān nābhi-pradeśa-sthe siddhān bilva-śalāṭubhiḥ || 15 || vasti-karma tv adho nābheḥ śasyate cāvapīḍakaḥ | koṣṭha-ge kṣāra-cūrṇādyā hitāḥ pācana-dīpanāḥ || 16 || hṛt-sthe payaḥ sthirā-siddhaṃ śiro-vastiḥ śiro-gate | snaihikaṃ nāvanaṃ dhūmaḥ śrotrādīnāṃ ca tarpaṇam || 17 || svedābhyaṅga-nivātāni hṛdyaṃ cānnaṃ tvag-āśrite | śītāḥ pradehā rakta-sthe vireko rakta-mokṣaṇam || 18 || 21.18av svedābhyaṅgāni śastāni vireko māṃsa-medaḥ-sthe nirūhaḥ śamanāni ca | bāhyābhyantarataḥ snehair asthi-majja-gataṃ jayet || 19 || praharṣo 'nnaṃ ca śukra-sthe bala-śukra-karaṃ hitam | vibaddha-mārgaṃ dṛṣṭvā tu śukraṃ dadyād virecanam || 20 || 21.20bv balyaṃ śukra-karaṃ hitam viriktaṃ pratibhuktaṃ ca pūrvoktāṃ kārayet kriyām | garbhe śuṣke tu vātena bālānāṃ ca viśuṣyatām || 21 || 21.21av virikta-pratibhuktasya sitā-kāśmarya-madhukaiḥ siddham utthāpane payaḥ | snāva-saṃdhi-sirā-prāpte sneha-dāhopanāhanam || 22 || tailaṃ saṃkucite 'bhyaṅgo māṣa-saindhava-sādhitam | āgāra-dhūma-lavaṇa-tailair lepaḥ srute 'sṛji || 23 || supte 'ṅge veṣṭa-yukte tu kartavyam upanāhanam | athāpatānakenārtam a-srastākṣam a-vepanam || 24 || a-stabdha-meḍhram a-svedaṃ bahir-āyāma-varjitam | a-khaṭvāghātinaṃ cainaṃ tvaritaṃ samupācaret || 25 || tatra prāg eva su-snigdha-svinnāṅge tīkṣṇa-nāvanam | sroto-viśuddhaye yuñjyād accha-pānaṃ tato ghṛtam || 26 || vidāry-ādi-gaṇa-kvātha-dadhi-kṣīra-rasaiḥ śṛtam | nāti-mātraṃ tathā vāyur vyāpnoti sahasaiva vā || 27 || kulattha-yava-kolāni bhadradārv-ādikaṃ gaṇam | niḥkvāthyānūpa-māṃsaṃ ca tenāmlaiḥ payasāpi ca || 28 || svādu-skandha-pratīvāpaṃ mahā-snehaṃ vipācayet | sekābhyaṅgāvagāhānna-pāna-nasyānuvāsanaiḥ || 29 || sa hanti vātaṃ te te ca sneha-svedāḥ su-yojitāḥ | vegāntareṣu mūrdhānam a-sakṛc cāsya recayet || 30 || avapīḍaiḥ pradhamanais tīkṣṇaiḥ śleṣma-nibarhaṇaiḥ | śvasanāsu vimuktāsu tathā saṃjñāṃ sa vindati || 31 || sauvarcalābhayā-vyoṣa-siddhaṃ sarpiś cale 'dhike || 31ū̆ab || palāṣṭakaṃ tilvakato varāyāḥ prasthaṃ palāṃśaṃ guru-pañca-mūlam | sairaṇḍa-siṃhī-trivṛtaṃ ghaṭe 'pāṃ paktvā pacet pāda-śṛtena tena || 32 || dadhnaḥ pātre yāva-śūkāt tri-bilvaiḥ sarpiḥ-prasthaṃ hanti tat sevyamānam | duṣṭān vātān eka-sarvāṅga-saṃsthān yoni-vyāpad-gulma-vardhmodaraṃ ca || 33 || 21.33av dadhnaḥ pātre yāva-śūka-tri-bilvaiḥ vidhis tilvaka-vaj jñeyo ramyakāśokayor api || 34ab || 21.34bv śamyākāśokayor api cikitsitam idaṃ kuryāc chuddha-vātāpatānake | saṃsṛṣṭa-doṣe saṃsṛṣṭaṃ cūrṇayitvā kaphānvite || 35 || tumburūṇy abhayā hiṅgu pauṣkaraṃ lavaṇa-trayam | yava-kvāthāmbunā peyaṃ hṛt-pārśvārty-apatantrake || 36 || hiṅgu sauvarcalaṃ śuṇṭhī dāḍimaṃ sāmla-vetasam | pibed vā śleṣma-pavana-hṛd-rogoktaṃ ca śasyate || 37 || āyāmayor ardita-vad bāhyābhyantarayoḥ kriyā | taila-droṇyāṃ ca śayanam āntaro 'tra su-dus-taraḥ || 38 || vi-varṇa-danta-vadanaḥ srastāṅgo naṣṭa-cetanaḥ | prasvidyaṃś ca dhanuḥ-ṣkambhī daśa-rātraṃ na jīvati || 39 || 21.39cv prasvidyaṃś ca dhanuḥ-stambhī vegeṣv ato anya-thā jīven mandeṣu vinato jaḍaḥ | khañjaḥ kuṇiḥ pakṣa-hataḥ paṅgulo vikalo 'tha-vā || 40 || 21.40dv paṅgulo vikalo 'pi vā hanu-sraṃse hanū snigdha-svinnau sva-sthānam ānayet | unnāmayec ca kuśalaś cibukaṃ vivṛtte mukhe || 41 || nāmayet saṃvṛte śeṣam ekāyāma-vad ācaret | jihvā-stambhe yathāvasthaṃ kāryaṃ vāta-cikitsitam || 42 || vāg-grahe koṣṇa-toyena vetasāmlaṃ piben naraḥ | mātuluṅga-rasaṃ tad-vad dhiṅgu-sauvarcalānvitam || 42+1 || ardite nāvanaṃ mūrdhni tailaṃ śrotrākṣi-tarpaṇam | sa-śophe vamanaṃ dāha-rāga-yukte sirā-vyadhaḥ || 43 || nava-nītena saṃyuktāṃ khāden māṣeṇḍarīṃ naraḥ | dur-vāram arditaṃ hanti saptāhān nātra saṃśayaḥ || 43+1 || snehanaṃ sneha-saṃyuktaṃ pakṣāghāte virecanam | ava-bāhau hitaṃ nasyaṃ snehaś cottara-bhaktikaḥ || 44 || māṣa-balā-śuka-śimbī-kaṭtṛṇa-rāsnāśvagandhorubūkāṇām | kvātho nasya-nipīto rāmaṭha-lavaṇānvitaḥ koṣṇaḥ || 44.1+1 || apanayati pakṣa-vātaṃ manyā-stambhaṃ sa-karṇa-nāda-rujam | dur-jayam ardita-vātaṃ saptāhāj jayati cāvaśyam || 44.1+2 || guḍamañjaryā khapuraṃ vṛṣabhī-mūlaṃ ca śiśira-jala-piṣṭam | nāvana-vidhau prayojitam ava-bāhuka-gala-rujārti-haram || 44+1 || daśa-mūla-balā-māṣa-kvāthaṃ tailājya-miśritam | sāyaṃ bhuktvā piben nasyaṃ viśvācyām ava-bāhuke || 44+2 || ūru-stambhe tu na sneho na ca saṃśodhanaṃ hitam | śleṣmāma-medo-bāhulyād yuktyā tat-kṣapaṇāny ataḥ || 45 || 21.45av ūru-stambhe na ca sneho kuryād rūkṣopacāraś ca yava-śyāmāka-kodravāḥ | śākair a-lavaṇaiḥ śastāḥ kiñ-cit-tailair jalaiḥ śṛtaiḥ || 46 || jāṅgalair a-ghṛtair māṃsair madhv-ambho-'riṣṭa-pāyinaḥ | vatsakādir haridrādir vacādir vā sa-saindhavaḥ || 47 || āḍhya-vāte sukhāmbhobhiḥ peyaḥ ṣaḍ-dharaṇo 'tha-vā | lihyāt kṣaudreṇa vā śreṣṭhā-cavya-tiktā-kaṇā-ghanāt || 48 || 21.48av āma-vāte sukhāmbhobhiḥ 21.48bv peyaḥ ṣaṭ-caraṇo 'tha-vā 21.48dv -cavya-tiktā-kaṇā-ghanān citrakendrayavāḥ pāṭhā kaṭukātiviṣā niśā | vāta-vyādhi-praśamano yogaḥ ṣaḍ-dharaṇāhvayaḥ || 48.1+1 || kalkaṃ sa-madhu vā cavya-pathyāgni-suradāru-jam | mūtrair vā śīlayet pathyāṃ gugguluṃ girisaṃbhavam || 49 || vyoṣāgni-musta-tri-phalā-viḍaṅgair gugguluṃ samam | khādan sarvāñ jayed vyādhīn medaḥ-śleṣmāma-vāta-jān || 50 || śāmyaty evaṃ kaphākrāntaḥ sa-medaskaḥ prabhañjanaḥ | kṣāra-mūtrānvitān svedān sekān udvartanāni ca || 51 || kuryād dihyāc ca mūtrāḍhyaiḥ karañja-phala-sarṣapaiḥ | mūlair vāpy arka-tarkārī-nimba-jaiḥ sa-surāhvayaiḥ || 52 || sa-kṣaudra-sarṣapā-pakva-loṣṭa-valmīka-mṛttikaiḥ | kapha-kṣayārthaṃ vyāyāme sahye cainaṃ pravartayet || 53 || sthalāny ullaṅghayen nārīḥ śaktitaḥ pariśīlayet | sthira-toyaṃ saraḥ kṣemaṃ prati-sroto nadīṃ taret || 54 || śleṣma-medaḥ-kṣaye cātra snehādīn avacārayet | sthāna-dūṣyādi cālocya kāryā śeṣeṣv api kriyā || 55 || 21.55cv sthānaṃ dūṣyādi cālocya bṛhan-nimba-taror mūlaṃ vāriṇā paripeṣitam | saṃpītaṃ nāśayet kṣipram a-sādhyām api gṛdhrasīm || 55.1+1 || tūṇī-pratūṇyor lavanaṃ sa-ghṛtaṃ kṣāra-hiṅgu vā | raktāvasecanaṃ kuryād abhīkṣṇaṃ vāta-kaṇṭake || 55.1+2 || pibed eraṇḍa-tailaṃ vā dahet sūcībhir eva vā | sājyaiḥ saktubhir abhyaktau na cā-kṣīra-samanvitaiḥ || 55.1+3 || śālmalī-tvag-viliptau vā pādau saṃtāpam udgataḥ || 55.1+4ab || sahacaraṃ suradāru sa-nāgaraṃ kvathitam ambhasi taila-vimiśritam | pavana-pīḍita-deha-gatiḥ piban druta-vilambita-go bhavatīcchayā || 56 || rāsnā-mahauṣadha-dvīpi-pippalī-śaṭhi-pauṣkaram | piṣṭvā vipācayet sarpir vāta-roga-haraṃ param || 57 || nimbāmṛtā-vṛṣa-paṭola-nidigdhikānāṃ bhāgān pṛthak daśa palān vipaced ghaṭe 'pām | aṣṭāṃśa-śeṣita-rasena punaś ca tena prasthaṃ ghṛtasya vipacet picu-bhāga-kalkaiḥ || 58 || 21.58av nimbāmṛtā-vṛṣa-paṭola-karañjakānāṃ pāṭhā-viḍaṅga-suradāru-gajopakulyā-dvi-kṣāra-nāgara-niśā-miśi-cavya-kuṣṭhaiḥ | tejovatī-marica-vatsaka-dīpyakāgni-rohiṇy-aruṣkara-vacā-kaṇa-mūla-yuktaiḥ || 59 || mañjiṣṭhayātiviṣayā viṣayā yavānyā saṃśuddha-guggulu-palair api pañca-saṃkhyaiḥ | tat sevitaṃ vidhamati prabalaṃ samīraṃ saṃdhy-asthi-majja-gatam apy atha kuṣṭham īdṛk || 60 || 21.60cv tat sevitaṃ pradhamati prabalaṃ samīraṃ nāḍī-vraṇārbuda-bhagandara-gaṇḍa-mālā-jatrūrdhva-sarva-gada-gulma-gudottha-mehān | yakṣmā-ruci-śvasana-pīnasa-kāsa-śopha-hṛt-pāṇḍu-roga-mada-vidradhi-vāta-raktam || 61 || 21.61dv -hṛt-pārśva-roga-mada-vidradhi-vāta-raktam rāsnāṭarūṣa-suradārv-amṛtā-śatāvary-eraṇḍa-puṣkara-dhamāsaka-śuṇṭhi-pathyāḥ | nighnanti vāta-ja-rujaṃ khalu sa-śvadaṃṣṭrāḥ śaileya-śaṭhy-ativiṣāḥ kvathitāḥ prayuktā || 61+1 || balā-bilva-śṛte kṣīre ghṛta-maṇḍaṃ vipācayet | tasya śuktiḥ prakuñco vā nasyaṃ vāte śiro-gate || 62 || tad-vat siddhā vasā nakra-matsya-kūrma-culūka-jā | viśeṣeṇa prayoktavyā kevale mātariśvani || 63 || jīrṇaṃ piṇyākaṃ pañca-mūlaṃ pṛthak ca kvāthyaṃ kvāthābhyām ekatas tailam ābhyām | kṣīrād aṣṭāṃśaṃ pācayet tena pānād vātā naśyeyuḥ śleṣma-yuktā viśeṣāt || 64 || prasāriṇī-tulā-kvāthe taila-prasthaṃ payaḥ-samam | dvi-medā-miśi-mañjiṣṭhā-kuṣṭha-rāsnā-ku-candanaiḥ || 65 || jīvakarṣabha-kākolī-yugalāmaradārubhiḥ | kalkitair vipacet sarva-mārutāmaya-nāśanam || 66 || sa-mūla-śākhasya sahācarasya tulāṃ sametāṃ daśa-mūlataś ca | palāni pañcāśad abhīrutaś ca pādāvaśeṣaṃ vipaced vahe 'pām || 67 || tatra sevya-nakha-kuṣṭha-himailā-spṛk-priyaṅgu-nalikāmbu-śilā-jaiḥ | lohitā-nalada-loha-surāhvaiḥ kopanā-miśi-turuṣka-nataiś ca || 68 || tulya-kṣīraṃ pālikais taila-pātraṃ siddhaṃ kṛcchrāñ chīlitaṃ hanti vātān | kampākṣepa-stambha-śoṣādi-yuktān gulmonmādau pīnasaṃ yoni-rogān || 69 || 21.69av tulyaṃ kṣīraṃ pālikais taila-pātraṃ sahacara-tulāyās tu rase tailāḍhakaṃ pacet | mūla-kalkād daśa-palaṃ payo dattvā catur-guṇam || 70 || atha-vā nata-ṣaḍgranthā-sthirā-kuṣṭha-surāhvayāt | sailā-nalada-śaileya-śatāhvā-rakta-candanāt || 71 || 21.71bv -sthirā-kuṣṭha-surāhvayān 21.71dv -śatāhvā-rakta-candanān siddhe 'smiñ charkarā-cūrṇād aṣṭā-daśa-palaṃ kṣipet | bheḍasya saṃmataṃ tailaṃ tat kṛcchrān anilāmayān || 72 || vāta-kuṇḍalikonmāda-gulma-vardhmādikāñ jayet | balā-śataṃ chinnaruhā-pādaṃ rāsnāṣṭa-bhāgikam || 73 || jalāḍhaka-śate paktvā śata-bhāga-sthite rase | dadhi-mastv-ikṣu-niryāsa-śuktais tailāḍhakaṃ samaiḥ || 74 || pacet sāja-payo-'rdhāṃśaṃ kalkair ebhiḥ palonmitaiḥ | śaṭhī-saraladārv-elā-mañjiṣṭhāguru-candanaiḥ || 75 || padmakātibalā-mustā-śūrpaparṇī-hareṇubhiḥ | yaṣṭy-āhva-surasa-vyāghranakharṣabhaka-jīvakaiḥ || 76 || palāśa-rasa-kastūrī-nalikā-jāti-kośakaiḥ | spṛkkā-kuṅkuma-śaileya-jātī-kaṭuphalāmbubhiḥ || 77 || 21.77dv -jātikā-kaṭphalāmbubhiḥ tvak-kunduruka-karpūra-turuṣka-śrīnivāsakaiḥ | lavaṅga-nakha-kaṅkola-kuṣṭha-māṃsī-priyaṅgubhiḥ || 78 || sthauṇeya-tagara-dhyāma-vacā-madanaka-plavaiḥ | sa-nāgakesaraiḥ siddhe dadyāc cātrāvatārite || 79 || 21.79bv -vacā-madana-pallavaiḥ pattra-kalkaṃ tataḥ pūtaṃ vidhinā tat prayojitam | kāsaṃ śvāsaṃ jvaraṃ chardiṃ mūrchāṃ gulma-kṣata-kṣayān || 80 || plīha-śoṣāv apasmāram a-lakṣmīṃ ca praṇāśayet | balā-tailam idaṃ śreṣṭhaṃ vāta-vyādhi-vināśanam || 81 || pāne nasye 'nvāsane 'bhyañjane ca snehāḥ kāle samyag ete prayuktāḥ | duṣṭān vātān āśu śāntiṃ nayeyur vandhyā nārīḥ putra-bhājaś ca kuryuḥ || 82 || 21.82dv vandhyā nārīḥ putra-bhājaḥ prakuryuḥ sneha-svedair drutaḥ śleṣmā yadā pakvāśaye sthitaḥ | pittaṃ vā darśayed rūpaṃ vastibhis taṃ vinirjayet || 83 || 21.83bv yadā pakvāśayaṃ sthitaḥ Cikitsāsthāna vāta-śoṇitino raktaṃ snigdhasya bahu-śo haret | alpālpaṃ pālayan vāyuṃ yathā-doṣaṃ yathā-balam || 1 || rug-rāga-toda-dāheṣu jalaukobhir vinirharet | śṛṅga-tumbaiś cimicimā-kaṇḍū-rug-dūyanānvitam || 2 || pracchānena sirābhir vā deśād deśāntaraṃ vrajat | aṅga-glānau tu na srāvyaṃ rūkṣe vātottare ca yat || 3 || 22.3cv aṅga-mlānau tu na srāvyaṃ 22.3dv rūkṣaṃ vātottaraṃ ca yat gambhīraṃ śvayathuṃ stambhaṃ kampaṃ snāyu-sirāmayān | glānim anyāṃś ca vātotthān kuryād vāyur asṛk-kṣayāt || 4 || virecyaḥ snehayitvā tu sneha-yuktair virecanaiḥ | vātottare vāta-rakte purāṇaṃ pāyayed ghṛtam || 5 || śrāvaṇī-kṣīra-kākolī-kṣīriṇī-jīvakaiḥ samaiḥ | siddhaṃ sarṣabhakaiḥ sarpiḥ sa-kṣīraṃ vāta-rakta-nut || 6 || drākṣā-madhūka-vāribhyāṃ siddhaṃ vā sa-sitopalam | ghṛtaṃ pibet tathā kṣīraṃ guḍūcī-sva-rase śṛtam || 7 || tailaṃ payaḥ śarkarāṃ ca pāyayed vā su-mūrchitam | balā-śatāvarī-rāsnā-daśa-mūlaiḥ sa-pīlubhiḥ || 8 || śyāmairaṇḍa-sthirābhiś ca vātārti-ghnaṃ śṛtaṃ payaḥ | dhāroṣṇaṃ mūtra-yuktaṃ vā kṣīraṃ doṣānulomanam || 9 || paitte paktvā varī-tiktā-paṭola-tri-phalāmṛtāḥ | pibed ghṛtaṃ vā kṣīraṃ vā svādu-tiktaka-sādhitam || 10 || kṣīreṇairaṇḍa-tailaṃ ca prayogeṇa piben naraḥ | bahu-doṣo virekārthaṃ jīrṇe kṣīraudanāśanaḥ || 11 || kaṣāyam abhayānāṃ vā pāyayed ghṛta-bharjitam | kṣīrānu-pānaṃ trivṛtā-cūrṇaṃ drākṣā-rasena vā || 12 || nirhared vā malaṃ tasya sa-ghṛtaiḥ kṣīra-vastibhiḥ | na hi vasti-samaṃ kiñ-cid vāta-rakta-cikitsitam || 13 || viśeṣāt pāyu-pārśvoru-parvāsthi-jaṭharārtiṣu | mustā-dhātrī-haridrāṇāṃ pibet kvāthaṃ kapholbaṇe || 14 || 22.14cv musta-drākṣā-haridrāṇāṃ sa-kṣaudraṃ tri-phalāyā vā guḍūcīṃ vā yathā tathā | yathārha-sneha-pītaṃ ca vāmitaṃ mṛdu rūkṣayet || 15 || 22.15bv guḍūcīṃ vā yathā-balam 22.15bv guḍūcīṃ vā yathā-yatham tri-phalā-vyoṣa-pattrailā-tvakkṣīrī-citrakaṃ vacām | viḍaṅgaṃ pippalī-mūlaṃ romaśāṃ vṛṣakaṃ tvacam || 16 || 22.16dv romaśaṃ vṛṣakaṃ tvacam ṛddhiṃ lāṅgalikīṃ cavyaṃ sama-bhāgāni peṣayet | kalye liptvāyasīṃ pātrīṃ madhyāhne bhakṣayed idam || 17 || vātāsre sarva-doṣe 'pi paraṃ śūlānvite hitam | kokilākṣaka-niryūhaḥ pītas tac chāka-bhojinā || 18 || 22.18dv pītas tac chāka-bhakṣiṇā kṛpābhyāsa iva krodhaṃ vāta-raktaṃ niyacchati | pañca-mūlasya dhātryā vā rasair lelītakīṃ vasām || 19 || khuḍaṃ su-rūḍham apy aṅge brahma-cārī piban jayet | ity ābhyantaram uddiṣṭaṃ karma bāhyam ataḥ param || 20 || tri-phalāṣṭa-palaṃ kvāthya pāda-śeṣaṃ jalāḍhake | ṣo-ḍaśaiva palāny atra prakṣipec chuddha-gugguloḥ || 20.1+1 || tatas tasmin ghanī-bhūte kalkī-kṛtya dvi-kārṣikāḥ | pathyā-viḍaṅga-kaṭukā guḍūcī pala-saṃmitā || 20.1+2 || karṣāṃśe trivṛtā dantī khāded iṣṭānu-pānataḥ | vividham api vāta-raktaṃ sruta-śuṣka-sphuṭitam api hanti || 20.1+3 || vraṇa-kāsa-kuṣṭha-gulma-śvayathūdara-pāṇḍu-meham arśāṃsi | abhibhūya jarā-doṣaṃ karoti kaiśorakaṃ kāyam || 20.1+4 || āranālāḍhake tailaṃ pāda-sarja-rasaṃ śṛtam | prabhūte khajitaṃ toye jvara-dāhārti-nut param || 21 || sa-madhūcchiṣṭa-mañjiṣṭhaṃ sa-sarja-rasa-śārivam | piṇḍa-tailaṃ tad abhyaṅgād vāta-rakta-rujāpaham || 22 || daśa-mūla-śṛtaṃ kṣīraṃ sadyaḥ śūla-nivāraṇam | pariṣeko 'nila-prāye tad-vat koṣṇena sarpiṣā || 23 || snehair madhura-siddhair vā caturbhiḥ pariṣecayet | stambhākṣepaka-śūlārtaṃ koṣṇair dāhe tu śītalaiḥ || 24 || tad-vad gavyāvika-cchāgaiḥ kṣīrais taila-vimiśritaiḥ | niḥkvāthair jīvanīyānāṃ pañca-mūlasya vā laghoḥ || 25 || drākṣekṣu-rasa-madyāni dadhi-mastv-amla-kāñjikam | sekārthaṃ taṇḍula-kṣaudra-śarkarāmbhaś ca śasyate || 26 || priyāḥ priyaṃ-vadāḥ nāryāś candanārdra-kara-stanāḥ | sparśa-śītāḥ sukha-sparśā ghnanti dāhaṃ rujaṃ klamam || 27 || sa-rāge sa-ruje dāhe raktaṃ hṛtvā pralepayet | prapauṇḍarīka-mañjiṣṭhā-dārvī-madhuka-candanaiḥ || 28 || sitopalairakā-saktu-masūrośīra-padmakaiḥ | lepo rug-dāha-vīsarpa-rāga-śopha-nibarhaṇaḥ || 29 || 22.29av sa-sitopala-kāsekṣu- 22.29bv -masūrairaka-saktubhiḥ vāta-ghnaiḥ sādhitaḥ snigdhaḥ kṛśaro mudga-pāyasaḥ | tila-sarṣapa-piṇḍaiś ca śūla-ghnam upanāhanam || 30 || 22.30cv tila-sarṣapa-piṇḍaś ca audaka-prasahānūpa-vesavārāḥ su-saṃskṛtāḥ | jīvanīyauṣadhaiḥ sneha-yuktāḥ syur upanāhane || 31 || 22.31cv jīvanīyauṣadha-sneha- stambha-toda-rug-āyāma-śophāṅga-graha-nāśanāḥ | jīvanīyauṣadhaiḥ siddhā sa-payaskā vasāpi vā || 32 || ghṛtaṃ sahacarān mūlaṃ jīvantī chāgalaṃ payaḥ | lepaḥ piṣṭās tilās tad-vad bhṛṣṭāḥ payasi nirvṛtāḥ || 33 || kṣīra-piṣṭa-kṣumāṃ lepam eraṇḍasya phalāni vā | kuryāc chūla-nivṛtty-arthaṃ śatāhvāṃ vānile 'dhike || 34 || 22.34av kṣīra-piṣṭām umāṃ lepam mūtra-kṣāra-surā-pakvaṃ ghṛtam abhyañjane hitam | siddhaṃ sa-madhu śuktaṃ vā sekābhyaṅge kaphottare || 35 || 22.35av musta-kṣāra-sitā-pakvaṃ 22.35dv sekābhyaṅgaḥ kaphottare gṛha-dhūmo vacā kuṣṭhaṃ śatāhvā rajanī-dvayam | pralepaḥ śūla-nud vāta-rakte vāta-kaphottare || 36 || madhu-śigror hitaṃ tad-vad bījaṃ dhānyāmla-saṃyutam | muhūrta-liptam amlaiś ca siñced vāta-kaphottare || 37 || uttānaṃ lepanābhyaṅga-pariṣekāvagāhanaiḥ | virekāsthāpana-sneha-pānair gambhīram ācaret || 38 || vāta-śleṣmottare koṣṇā lepādyās tatra śītalaiḥ | vidāha-śopha-ruk-kaṇḍū-vivṛddhiḥ stambhanād bhavet || 39 || pitta-raktottare vāta-rakte lepādayo himāḥ | uṣṇaiḥ ploṣoṣa-rug-rāga-svedāvadaraṇodbhavaḥ || 40 || madhuyaṣṭyāḥ pala-śataṃ kaṣāye pāda-śeṣite | tailāḍhakaṃ sama-kṣīraṃ pacet kalkaiḥ palonmitaiḥ || 41 || sthirā-tāmalakī-dūrvā-payasyābhīru-candanaiḥ | loha-haṃsapadī-māṃsī-dvi-medā-madhuparṇibhiḥ || 42 || kākolī-kṣīra-kākolī-śatapuṣparddhi-padmakaiḥ | jīvakarṣabha-jīvantī-tvak-pattra-nakha-vālakaiḥ || 43 || prapauṇḍarīka-mañjiṣṭhā-śārivaindrī-vitunnakaiḥ | catuṣ-prayogaṃ vātāsṛk-pitta-dāha-jvarārti-nut || 44 || 22.44cv catuṣ-prayogāt tad dhanti 22.44dv tailaṃ māruta-śoṇitam sopadravaṃ sāṅga-śūlaṃ sarva-gātrānugaṃ tathā | vātāsṛk-pitta-dāhārti-jvara-ghnaṃ bala-varṇa-kṛt || 44+1 || balā-kaṣāya-kalkābhyāṃ tailaṃ kṣīra-samaṃ pacet | sahasra-śata-pākaṃ tad vātāsṛg-vāta-roga-nut || 45 || rasāyanaṃ mukhya-tamam indriyāṇāṃ prasādanam | jīvanaṃ bṛṃhaṇaṃ svaryaṃ śukrāsṛg-doṣa-nāśanam || 46 || kupite mārga-saṃrodhān medaso vā kaphasya vā | ati-vṛddhyānile śastaṃ nādau snehana-bṛṃhaṇam || 47 || kṛtvā tatrāḍhya-vātoktaṃ vāta-śoṇitikaṃ tataḥ | bheṣajaṃ snehanaṃ kuryād yac ca rakta-prasādanam || 48 || prāṇādi-kope yuga-pad yathoddiṣṭaṃ yathāmayam | yathāsannaṃ ca bhaiṣajyaṃ vikalpyaṃ syād yathā-balam || 49 || nīte nir-āma-tāṃ sāme sveda-laṅghana-pācanaiḥ | rūkṣaiś cālepa-sekādyaiḥ kuryāt kevala-vāta-nut || 50 || śoṣākṣepaṇa-saṃkoca-stambha-svapana-kampanam | hanu-sraṃso 'rditaṃ khāñjyaṃ pāṅgulyaṃ khuḍa-vāta-tā || 51 || saṃdhi-cyutiḥ pakṣa-vadho medo-majjāsthi-gā gadāḥ | ete sthānasya gāmbhīryāt sidhyeyur yatnato navāḥ || 52 || tasmāj jayen navān etān balino nir-upadravān | vāyau pittāvṛte śītām uṣṇāṃ ca bahu-śaḥ kriyām || 53 || vyatyāsād yojayet sarpir jīvanīyaṃ ca pāyayet | dhanva-māṃsaṃ yavāḥ śālir virekaḥ kṣīra-vān mṛduḥ || 54 || sa-kṣīrā vastayaḥ kṣīraṃ pañca-mūla-balā-śṛtam | kāle 'nuvāsanaṃ tailair madhurauṣadha-sādhitaiḥ || 55 || 22.55cv kāle 'nuvāsanaṃ tailaṃ 22.55dv madhurauṣadha-sādhitam yaṣṭīmadhu-balā-taila-ghṛta-kṣīraiś ca secanam | pañca-mūla-kaṣāyeṇa vāriṇā śītalena vā || 56 || 22.56dv vāriṇā śītalena ca kaphāvṛte yavānnāni jāṅgalā mṛga-pakṣiṇaḥ | svedās tīkṣṇā nirūhāś ca vamanaṃ sa-virecanam || 57 || purāṇa-sarpis tailaṃ ca tila-sarṣapa-jaṃ hitam | saṃsṛṣṭe kapha-pittābhyāṃ pittam ādau vinirjayet || 58 || kārayed rakta-saṃsṛṣṭe vāta-śoṇitikīṃ kriyām | svedābhyaṅga-rasāḥ kṣīraṃ sneho māṃsāvṛte hitam || 59 || 22.59dv sneho māṃsāvṛte hitaḥ prameha-medo-vāta-ghnam āḍhya-vāte bhiṣag-jitam | mahā-sneho 'sthi-majja-sthe pūrvoktaṃ retasāvṛte || 60 || annāvṛte pācanīyaṃ vamanaṃ dīpanaṃ laghu | mūtrāvṛte mūtralāni svedāś cottara-vastayaḥ || 61 || 22.61dv svedā uttara-vastayaḥ eraṇḍa-tailaṃ varcaḥ-sthe vasti-snehāś ca bhedinaḥ | kapha-pittā-viruddhaṃ yad yac ca vātānulomanam || 62 || sarva-sthānāvṛte 'py āśu tat kāryaṃ mātariśvani | an-abhiṣyandi ca snigdhaṃ srotasāṃ śuddhi-kāraṇam || 63 || 22.63av sarva-sthānāvṛte cāśu 22.63av sarva-sthānāvṛte tv āśu yāpanā vastayaḥ prāyo madhurāḥ sānuvāsanāḥ | prasamīkṣya balādhikyaṃ mṛdu kāryaṃ virecanam || 64 || 22.64dv mṛdu kāya-virecanam rasāyanānāṃ sarveṣām upayogaḥ praśasyate | śilāhvasya viśeṣeṇa payasā śuddha-gugguloḥ || 65 || leho vā bhārgavas tad-vad ekā-daśa-sitāśitaḥ | apāne tv āvṛte sarvaṃ dīpanaṃ grāhi bheṣajam || 66 || 22.66bv ekā-daśa-sitāsitaḥ vātānulomanaṃ kāryaṃ mūtrāśaya-viśodhanam | iti saṃkṣepataḥ proktam āvṛtānāṃ cikitsitam || 67 || prāṇādīnāṃ bhiṣak kuryād vitarkya svayam eva tat | udānaṃ yojayed ūrdhvam apānaṃ cānulomayet || 68 || samānaṃ śamayed vidvāṃs tri-dhā vyānaṃ tu yojayet | prāṇo rakṣyaś caturbhyo 'pi tat-sthitau deha-saṃsthitiḥ || 69 || 22.69bv tri-dhā vyānaṃ ca yojayet svaṃ svaṃ sthānaṃ nayed evaṃ vṛtān vātān vi-mārga-gān | sarvaṃ cāvaraṇam pitta-rakta-saṃsarga-varjitam || 70 || rasāyana-vidhānena laśuno hanti śīlitaḥ | pittāvṛte pitta-haraṃ marutaś cānulomanam || 71 || raktāvṛte 'pi tad-vac ca khuḍoktaṃ yac ca bheṣajam | rakta-pittānila-haraṃ vividhaṃ ca rasāyanam || 72 || yathā-nidānaṃ nirdiṣṭam iti samyak cikitsitam | āyur-veda-phalaṃ sthānam etat sadyo 'rti-nāśanāt || 73 || 22.73dv etat sadyo 'rti-nāśanam cikitsitaṃ hitaṃ pathyaṃ prāyaścittaṃ bhiṣag-jitam | bheṣajaṃ śamanaṃ śastaṃ paryāyaiḥ smṛtam auṣadham || 74 || Kalpasthāna vamane madanaṃ śreṣṭhaṃ trivṛn-mūlaṃ virecane | nityam anyasya tu vyādhi-viśeṣeṇa viśiṣṭa-tā || 1 || phalāni nāti-pāṇḍūni na cāti-haritāny api | ādāyāhni praśatarkṣe madhye grīṣma-vasantayoḥ || 2 || 1.2av phalāni tāni pāṇḍūni 1.2bv na cāti-haritāni ca 1.2bv na cāti-haritāny atha pramṛjya kuśa-muttolyāṃ kṣiptvā baddhvā pralepayet | go-mayenānu muttolīṃ dhānya-madhye nidhāpayet || 3 || 1.3av pramṛjya kuśa-pūtolyāṃ 1.3cv go-mayenānu pūtolīṃ mṛdu-bhūtāni madhv-iṣṭa-gandhāni kuśa-veṣṭanāt | niṣkṛṣṭāni gate 'ṣṭāhe śoṣayet tāny athātape || 4 || 1.4av mṛdu-bhūtāni madyeṣṭa- 1.4cv niṣkṛṣṭāni gatāṣṭāhe 1.4cv niṣkṛṣya nirgate 'ṣṭāhe 1.4cv niṣkṛṣya vigate 'ṣṭāhe teṣāṃ tataḥ su-śuṣkāṇām uddhṛtya phala-pippalīḥ | dadhi-madhv-ājya-palalair mṛditvā śoṣayet punaḥ || 5 || 1.5cv dadhi-madhv-āmbu-palalair tataḥ su-guptaṃ saṃsthāpya kārya-kāle prayojayet | athādāya tato mātrāṃ jarjarī-kṛtya vāsayet || 6 || śarvarīṃ madhuyaṣṭyā vā kovidārasya vā jale | karbudārasya bimbyā vā nīpasya vidulasya vā || 7 || 1.7cv jīmūtakasya bimbyā vā śaṇapuṣpyāḥ sadāpuṣpyāḥ pratyakpuṣpy-udake 'tha-vā | tataḥ pibet kaṣāyaṃ taṃ prātar mṛdita-gālitam || 8 || 1.8bv pratyakpuṣpodake 'tha-vā 1.8bv pratyakpuṣpodakena vā sūtroditena vidhinā sādhu tena tathā vamet | śleṣma-jvara-pratiśyāya-gulmāntar-vidradhīṣu ca || 9 || 1.9bv sādhu tena yathā vamet 1.9bv sādhu tena tato vamet pracchardayed viśeṣeṇa yāvat pittasya darśanam | phala-pippalī-cūrṇaṃ vā kvāthena svena bhāvitam || 10 || tri-bhāga-tri-phalā-cūrṇaṃ kovidārādi-vāriṇā | pibej jvarā-ruci-ṣṭheva-granthy-apacy-arbudodarī || 11 || 1.11cv pibej jvara-gara-ṣṭhīva- 1.11cv pibej jvara-gara-ṣṭheva- 1.11cv pibej jvara-gara-sveda- 1.11cv pibej jvarā-ruci-ṣṭhīva- 1.11cv pibej jvarā-ruciṣv evaṃ 1.11dv granthy-apacy-arbudodarī pitte kapha-sthāna-gate jīmūtādi-jalena tat | hṛd-dāhe 'dho-'sra-pitte ca kṣīraṃ tat-pippalī-śṛtam || 12 || kṣaireyīṃ vā kapha-cchardi-praseka-tamakeṣu tu | dadhy-uttaraṃ vā dadhi vā tac-chṛta-kṣīra-saṃbhavam || 13 || 1.13bv -praseka-tamakeṣu ca phalādi-kvātha-kalkābhyāṃ siddhaṃ tat-siddha-dugdha-jam | sarpiḥ kaphābhibhūte 'gnau śuṣyad-dehe ca vāmanam || 14 || 1.14dv śuṣka-dehe ca vāmanam 1.14dv śuṣyad-dehe tu vāmanam sva-rasaṃ phala-majjño vā bhallātaka-vidhi-śṛtam | ā-darvī-lepanāt siddhaṃ līḍhvā pracchardayet sukham || 15 || taṃ lehaṃ bhakṣya-bhojyeṣu tat-kaṣāyāṃś ca yojayet | vatsakādi-pratīvāpaḥ kaṣāyaḥ phala-majja-jaḥ || 16 || nimbārkānya-tara-kvātha-samāyukto niyacchati | baddha-mūlān api vyādhīn sarvān saṃtarpaṇodbhavān || 17 || 1.17dv śleṣma-saṃtarpaṇodbhavān rāṭha-puṣpa-phala-ślakṣṇa-cūrṇair mālyaṃ su-rūkṣitam | vamen maṇḍa-rasādīnāṃ tṛpto jighran sukhaṃ sukhī || 18 || 1.18bv -cūrṇair mālyaṃ virūkṣitam 1.18bv -cūrṇair mālyaṃ su-rūṣitam 1.18bv -cūrṇair mālāṃ su-rūṣitām 1.18cv vamen naro rasādīnāṃ evam eva phalā-bhāve kalpyaṃ puṣpaṃ śalāṭu vā | jīmūtādyāś ca phala-vaj jīmūtaṃ tu viśeṣataḥ || 19 || 1.19av evam eva phalā-lābhe prayoktavyaṃ jvara-śvāsa-kāsa-hidhmādi-rogiṇām | payaḥ puṣpe 'sya nirvṛtte phale peyā payas-kṛtā || 20 || romaśe kṣīra-saṃtānaṃ dadhy-uttaram a-romaśe | śṛte payasi dadhy-amlaṃ jātaṃ harita-pāṇḍuke || 21 || 1.21dv jāte harita-pāṇḍuke 1.21dv jāte harita-pāṇḍure 1.21dv jātaṃ harita-pāṇḍure āsutya vāruṇī-maṇḍaṃ piben mṛdita-gālitam | kaphād a-rocake kāse pāṇḍu-tve rāja-yakṣmaṇi || 22 || iyaṃ ca kalpanā kāryā tumbī-kośātakīṣv api | paryāgatānāṃ śuṣkāṇāṃ phalānāṃ veṇi-janmanām || 23 || 1.23dv phalānāṃ veṇu-janmanām 1.23dv phalānāṃ coṇi-janmanām cūrṇasya payasā śuktiṃ vāta-pittārditaḥ pibet | dve vā trīṇy api vāpothya kvāthe tiktottamasya vā || 24 || 1.24cv dve vā trīṇy atha-vāpothya āragvadhādi-navakād āsutyānya-tamasya vā | vimṛdya pūtaṃ taṃ kvāthaṃ pitta-śleṣma-jvarī pibet || 25 || 1.25cv vimṛjya pūtaṃ taṃ kvāthaṃ jīmūta-kalkaṃ cūrṇaṃ vā pibec chītena vāriṇā | jvare paitte kavoṣṇena kapha-vātāt kaphād api || 26 || 1.26av jīmūta-cūrṇaṃ kalkaṃ vā kāsa-śvāsa-viṣa-cchardi-jvarārte kapha-karśite | ikṣvākur vamane śastaḥ pratāmyati ca mānave || 27 || 1.27bv -jvarārte kapha-karṣite 1.27cv ikṣvākur vamane śreṣṭhaḥ phala-puṣpa-vihīnasya pravālais tasya sādhitam | pitta-śleṣma-jvare kṣīraṃ pittodrikte prayojayet || 28 || 1.28bv pravālais tena sādhitam 1.28dv pittodreke prayojayet hṛta-madhye phale jīrṇe sthitaṃ kṣīraṃ yadā dadhi | syāt tadā kapha-je kāse śvāse vamyaṃ ca pāyayet || 29 || 1.29av hṛta-madhye phale pakve 1.29dv śvāse vamyāṃ ca pāyayet mastunā vā phalān madhyaṃ pāṇḍu-kuṣṭha-viṣārditaḥ | tena takraṃ vipakvaṃ vā pibet sa-madhu-saindhavam || 30 || 1.30bv pāṇduḥ kuṣṭhī viṣārditaḥ bhāvayitvāja-dugdhena bījaṃ tenaiva vā pibet | viṣa-gulmodara-granthi-gaṇḍeṣu ślīpadeṣu ca || 31 || saktubhir vā piben manthaṃ tumbī-sva-rasa-bhāvitaiḥ | kaphodbhave jvare kāse gala-rogeṣv a-rocake || 32 || gulme jvare prasakte ca kalkaṃ māṃsa-rasaiḥ pibet | naraḥ sādhu vamaty evaṃ na ca daurbalyam aśnute || 33 || 1.33av gulme jvare praseke ca tumbyāḥ phala-rasaiḥ śuṣkaiḥ sa-puṣpair avacūrṇitam | chardayen mālyam āghrāya gandha-saṃpat-sukhocitaḥ || 34 || 1.34av tumbyāḥ phala-rasaiḥ śuṣkaṃ 1.34dv gandhaṃ samyak sukhocitaḥ 1.34dv gandha-saṃpat-sukhocitam 1.34dv gandhaṃ samyak sukhocitam kāsa-gulmodara-gare vāte śleṣmāśaya-sthite | kaphe ca kaṇṭha-vaktra-sthe kapha-saṃcaya-jeṣu ca || 35 || 1.35dv kapha-saṃcaya-jeṣu tu dhāmārgavo gadeṣv iṣṭaḥ sthireṣu ca mahatsu ca | jīvakarṣabhakau vīrā kapikacchūḥ śatāvarī || 36 || kākolī śrāvaṇī medā mahāmedā madhūlikā | tad-rajobhiḥ pṛthag lehā dhāmārgava-rajo-'nvitāḥ || 37 || kāse hṛdaya-dāhe ca śastā madhu-sitā-drutāḥ | te sukhāmbho-'nu-pānāḥ syuḥ pittoṣma-sahite kaphe || 38 || 1.38bv śastā madhu-sitā-yutāḥ 1.38bv śastā madhu-sitānvitāḥ dhānya-tumburu-yūṣeṇa kalkas tasya viṣāpahaḥ | bimbyāḥ punarnavāyā vā kāsamardasya vā rase || 39 || 1.39cv bimbyāḥ punarnavāyāś ca ekaṃ dhāmārgavaṃ dve vā mānase mṛditaṃ pibet | tac-chṛta-kṣīra-jaṃ sarpiḥ sādhitaṃ vā phalādibhiḥ || 40 || kṣveḍo 'ti-kaṭu-tīkṣṇoṣṇaḥ pragāḍheṣu praśasyate | kuṣṭha-pāṇḍv-āmaya-plīha-śopha-gulma-garādiṣu || 41 || 1.41bv pragāḍheṣu ca śasyate pṛthak phalādi-ṣaṭkasya kvāthe māṃsam anūpa-jam | kośātakyā samaṃ siddhaṃ tad-rasaṃ lavaṇaṃ pibet || 42 || 1.42cv kośātakyāḥ samaṃ siddhaṃ phalādi-pippalī-tulyaṃ siddhaṃ kṣveḍa-rase 'tha-vā | kṣveḍa-kvāthaṃ pibet siddhaṃ miśram ikṣu-rasena vā || 43 || 1.43bv siddhaṃ kṣveḍa-rasena vā 1.43cv kṣveḍa-kvāthe pibet siddhaṃ kauṭajaṃ su-kumāreṣu pitta-rakta-kaphodaye | jvare visarpe hṛd-roge khuḍe kuṣṭhe ca pūjitam || 44 || 1.44av kuṭajaṃ su-kumāreṣu sarṣapāṇāṃ madhūkānāṃ toyena lavaṇasya vā | pāyayet kauṭajaṃ bījaṃ yuktaṃ kṛśarayātha-vā || 45 || saptāhaṃ vārka-dugdhāktaṃ tac-cūrṇaṃ pāyayet pṛthak | phala-jīmūtakekṣvāku-jīvantī-jīvakodakaiḥ || 46 || 1.46av saptāhaṃ cārka-dughāktaṃ vamanauṣadha-mukhyānām iti kalpa-dig īritā | bījenānena mati-mān anyāny api ca kalpayet || 47 || 1.47cv vidhinānena mati-mān 1.47dv anyān api ca kalpayet 1.47dv anyān api ca yojayet Kalpasthāna kaṣāya-madhurā rūkṣā vipāke kaṭukā trivṛt | kapha-pitta-praśamanī raukṣyāc cānila-kopanī || 1 || 2.1av kaṣāyā madhurā rūkṣā 2.1dv raukṣyāt sānila-kopanī 2.1dv raukṣyād anila-kopanī sedānīm auṣadhair yuktā vāta-pitta-kaphāpahaiḥ | kalpa-vaiśeṣyam āsādya jāyate sarva-roga-jit || 2 || dvi-dhā khyātaṃ ca tan-mūlaṃ śyāmaṃ śyāmāruṇaṃ trivṛt | trivṛd-ākhyaṃ vara-taraṃ nir-apāyaṃ sukhaṃ tayoḥ || 3 || su-kumāre śiśau vṛddhe mṛdu-koṣṭhe ca tad dhitam | mūrchā-saṃmoha-hṛt-kaṇṭha-kaṣaṇa-kṣaṇana-pradam || 4 || 2.4dv -karṣaṇa-kṣaṇana-pradam śyāmaṃ tīkṣṇāśu-kāri-tvād atas tad api śasyate | krūre koṣṭhe bahau doṣe kleśa-kṣamiṇi cāture || 5 || 2.5cv krūre koṣṭhe bahu-doṣe 2.5cv krūre koṣṭhe mahā-doṣe gambhīrānugataṃ ślakṣṇam a-tiryag-visṛtaṃ ca yat | gṛhītvā visṛjet kāṣṭhaṃ tvacaṃ śuṣkāṃ nidhāpayet || 6 || 2.6bv a-tiryag-vistṛtaṃ ca yat atha kāle tataś cūrṇaṃ kiñ-cin nāgara-saindhavam | vātāmaye pibed amlaiḥ paitte sājya-sitā-madhu || 7 || 2.7av atha kāle ca tac-cūrṇaṃ 2.7av atha kāle tu tac-cūrṇaṃ 2.7av atha kāle trivṛc-cūrṇaṃ 2.7av atha kālena tac-cūrṇaṃ 2.7cv vātāmayī pibed amlaiḥ 2.7dv pitte sājya-sitā-madhu kṣīra-drākṣekṣu-kāśmarya-svādu-skandha-varā-rasaiḥ | kaphāmaye pīlu-rasa-mūtra-madyāmla-kāñjikaiḥ || 8 || pañca-kolādi-cūrṇaiś ca yuktyā yuktaṃ kaphāpahaiḥ | trivṛt-kalka-kaṣāyābhyāṃ sādhitaḥ sa-sito himaḥ || 9 || 2.9cv trivṛt-kalka-kaṣāyeṇa 2.9dv yuktaṃ yuñjyāt kaphāpahaiḥ madhu-tri-jāta-saṃyukto leho hṛdyaṃ virecanam | ajagandhā tavakṣīrī vidārī śarkarā trivṛt || 10 || 2.10cv ajagandhā tukākṣīrī cūrṇitaṃ madhu-sarpirbhyāṃ līḍhvā sādhu viricyate | saṃnipāta-jvara-stambha-pipāsā-dāha-pīḍitaḥ || 11 || 2.11av tac-cūrṇaṃ madhu-sarpirbhyāṃ limped antas trivṛtayā dvi-dhā kṛtvekṣu-gaṇḍikām | ekī-kṛtya ca tat svinnaṃ puṭa-pākena bhakṣayet || 12 || 2.12bv dvi-dhā kṛtvekṣu-gaṇḍikāḥ 2.12bv dvi-dhā kṛtvekṣu-kaṇḍikām 2.12bv dvi-dhā kṛtvekṣu-kāṇḍikām 2.12cv ekī-kṛtaṃ ca tat svinnaṃ 2.12cv ekī-kṛtya ca su-svinnaṃ 2.12cv ekī-kṛtya tu tat svinnaṃ bhṛṅgailābhyāṃ samā nīlī tais trivṛtaiś ca śarkarā | cūrṇaṃ phala-rasa-kṣaudra-saktubhis tarpaṇaṃ pibet || 13 || 2.13av tvag-elābhyāṃ samā nīlī vāta-pitta-kaphottheṣu rogeṣv alpānaleṣu ca | nareṣu su-kumāreṣu nir-apāyaṃ virecanam || 14 || viḍaṅga-taṇḍula-varā-yāva-śūka-kaṇās trivṛt | sarvato 'rdhena tal līḍhaṃ madhv-ājyena guḍena vā || 15 || gulmaṃ plīhodaraṃ kāsaṃ halīmakam a-rocakam | kapha-vāta-kṛtāṃś cānyān parimārṣṭi gadān bahūn || 16 || viḍaṅga-pippalī-mūla-tri-phalā-dhānya-citrakān | marīcendrayavājājī-pippalī-hasti-pippalīḥ || 17 || 2.17bv -tri-phalā-dhānya-citrakam 2.17dv -pippalī-hasti-pippali dīpyakaṃ pañca-lavaṇaṃ cūrṇitaṃ kārṣikaṃ pṛthak | tila-taila-trivṛc-cūrṇa-bhāgau cāṣṭa-palonmitau || 18 || 2.18dv -bhāgāv aṣṭa-palonmitau dhātrī-phala-rasa-prasthāṃs trīn guḍārdha-tulānvitān | paktvā mṛdv-agninā khādet tato mātrām a-yantraṇaḥ || 19 || 2.19bv trīn guḍārdha-tulonmitān 2.19dv tato mātrām a-yantritaḥ mandāgni-tvaṃ jvaraṃ mūrchāṃ mūtra-kṛcchram a-rocakam || 19+1ab || kuṣṭhārśaḥ-kāmalā-gulma-mehodara-bhagandarān | grahaṇī-pāṇḍu-rogāṃś ca hanti puṃ-savanaś ca saḥ || 20 || guḍaḥ kalyāṇako nāma sarveṣv ṛtuṣu yaugikaḥ | vyoṣa-tri-jātakāmbhoda-kṛmighnāmalakais trivṛt || 21 || sarvaiḥ samā sama-sitā kṣaudreṇa guṭikāḥ kṛtāḥ | mūtra-kṛcchra-jvara-cchardi-kāsa-śoṣa-bhrama-kṣaye || 22 || 2.22av sarvaiḥ samānā sa-sitā 2.22bv kṣaudreṇa guṭikī-kṛtā bhakṣayet prātar utthāya śītaṃ cānu pibej jalam || 22.1+1ab || tāpe pāṇḍv-āmaye 'lpe 'gnau śastāḥ sarva-viṣeṣu ca | a-vipattir ayaṃ yogaḥ praśastaḥ pitta-rogiṇām || 23 || trivṛtā kauṭajaṃ bījaṃ pippalī viśva-bheṣajam | kṣaudra-drākṣā-rasopetaṃ varṣā-kāle virecanam || 24 || trivṛd-durālabhā-musta-śarkarodīcya-candanam | drākṣāmbunā sa-yaṣṭy-āhva-sātalaṃ jala-dātyaye || 25 || 2.25cv drākṣāmbunā sa-yaṣṭy-āhvaṃ 2.25dv -śītalaṃ jala-dātyaye 2.25dv śītalaṃ jala-dātyaye trivṛtāṃ citrakaṃ pāṭhām ajājīṃ saralaṃ vacām | svarṇakṣīrīṃ ca hemante cūrṇam uṣṇāmbunā pibet || 26 || trivṛtā śarkarā-tulyā grīṣma-kāle virecanam | trivṛt-trāyanti-hapuṣā-sātalā-kaṭu-rohiṇīḥ || 27 || svarṇakṣīrīṃ ca saṃcūrṇya go-mūtre bhāvayet try-aham | eṣa sarvartuko yogaḥ snigdhānāṃ mala-doṣa-hṛt || 28 || śyāmā-trivṛd-durālabhā-hasti-pippalī-vatsakam | nīlinī-kaṭukā-mustā-śreṣṭhā-yuktaṃ su-cūrṇitam || 29 || rasājyoṣṇāmbubhiḥ śastaṃ rūkṣāṇām api sarva-dā | jvara-hṛd-roga-vātāsṛg-udāvartādi-rogiṣu || 30 || saindhavaṃ pippalī-mūlam abhayā dvi-guṇottaram | cūrṇam uṣṇāmbunā peyaṃ svasthe sukha-virecanam || 30.1+1 || 2.30.1+1cv cūrṇam uṣṇāmbunā pītaṃ rājavṛkṣo 'dhikaṃ pathyo mṛdur madhura-śītalaḥ | bāle vṛddhe kṣate kṣīṇe su-kumāre ca mānave || 31 || yojyo mṛdv-an-apāyi-tvād viśeṣāc caturaṅgulaḥ | phala-kāle pariṇataṃ phalaṃ tasya samāharet || 32 || teṣāṃ guṇa-vatāṃ bhāraṃ sikatāsu vinikṣipet | sapta-rātrāt samuddhṛtya śoṣayed ātape tataḥ || 33 || 2.33dv śoṣayec cātape tataḥ 2.33dv śoṣayed ātape punaḥ tato majjānam uddhṛtya śucau pātre nidhāpayet | drākṣā-rasena taṃ dadyād dāhodāvarta-pīḍite || 34 || catur-varṣe sukhaṃ bāle yāvad dvā-daśa-vārṣike | caturaṅgula-majjño vā kaṣāyaṃ pāyayed dhimam || 35 || dadhi-maṇḍa-surā-maṇḍa-dhātrī-phala-rasaiḥ pṛthak | sauvīrakeṇa vā yuktaṃ kalkena traivṛtena vā || 36 || dantī-kaṣāye tan-majjño guḍaṃ jīrṇaṃ ca nikṣipet | tam ariṣṭaṃ sthitaṃ māsaṃ pāyayet pakṣam eva vā || 37 || tvacaṃ tilvaka-mūlasya tyaktvābhyantara-valkalam | viśoṣya cūrṇayitvā ca dvau bhāgau gālayet tataḥ || 38 || lodhrasyaiva kaṣāyeṇa tṛtīyaṃ tena bhāvayet | kaṣāye daśa-mūlasya taṃ bhāgaṃ bhāvitaṃ punaḥ || 39 || 2.39av lodhrasya tu kaṣāyeṇa śuṣkaṃ cūrṇaṃ punaḥ kṛtvā tataḥ pāṇi-talaṃ pibet | mastu-mūtra-surā-maṇḍa-kola-dhātrī-phalāmbubhiḥ || 40 || 2.40av śuṣka-cūrṇaṃ tataḥ kuryāt 2.40av śuṣka-cūrṇaṃ punaḥ kṛtvā 2.40av śuṣkaṃ cūrṇaṃ tataḥ kṛtvā tilvakasya kaṣāyeṇa kalkena ca sa-śarkaraḥ | sa-ghṛtaḥ sādhito lehaḥ sa ca śreṣṭhaṃ virecanam || 41 || 2.41dv sa ca śreṣṭho virecanam sudhā bhinatti doṣāṇāṃ mahāntam api saṃcayam | āśv eva kaṣṭa-vibhraṃśān naiva tāṃ kalpayed ataḥ || 42 || 2.42cv āśv eva kaṣṭa-vibhraṃśāṃ 2.42cv āśv eva koṣṭha-vibhraṃśān 2.42dv naiva tāṃ kalpayet tataḥ mṛdau koṣṭhe '-bale bāle sthavire dīrgha-rogiṇi | kalpyā gulmodara-gara-tvag-roga-madhu-mehiṣu || 43 || pāṇḍau dūṣī-viṣe śophe doṣa-vibhrānta-cetasi | sā śreṣṭhā kaṇṭakais tīkṣṇair bahubhiś ca samācitā || 44 || dvi-varṣāṃ vā tri-varṣāṃ vā śiśirānte viśeṣataḥ | tāṃ pāṭayitvā śastreṇa kṣīram uddhārayet tataḥ || 45 || bilvādīnāṃ bṛhatyor vā kvāthena samam eka-śaḥ | miśrayitvā sudhā-kṣīraṃ tato 'ṅgāreṣu śoṣayet || 46 || pibet kṛtvā tu guṭikāṃ mastu-mūtra-surādibhiḥ | trivṛtādīn nava varāṃ svarṇakṣīrīṃ sa-sātalām || 47 || saptāhaṃ snuk-payaḥ-pītān rasenājyena vā pibet | tad-vad vyoṣottamā-kumbha-nikumbhāgnīn guḍāmbunā || 48 || 2.48dv -nikumbhādīn guḍāmbunā nāti-śuṣkaṃ phalaṃ grāhyaṃ śaṅkhinyā nis-tuṣī-kṛtam | saptalāyās tathā mūlaṃ te tu tīkṣṇa-vikāṣiṇī || 49 || śleṣmāmayodara-gara-śvayathv-ādiṣu kalpayet | akṣa-mātraṃ tayoḥ piṇḍaṃ madirā-lavaṇānvitam || 50 || hṛd-roge vāta-kapha-je tad-vad gulme 'pi yojayet | danti-danta-sthiraṃ sthūlaṃ mūlaṃ dantī-dravanti-jam || 51 || 2.51bv tad-vad gulme prayojay et ā-tāmra-śyāva-tīkṣṇoṣṇam āśu-kāri vikāśi ca | guru prakopi vātasya pitta-śleṣma-vilāyanam || 52 || 2.52bv āśu-kāri vikāṣi ca tat kṣaudra-pippalī-liptaṃ svedyaṃ mṛd-darbha-veṣṭitam | śoṣyaṃ mandātape 'gny-arkau hato hy asya vikāśi-tām || 53 || 2.53av tat kṣaudra-pippalī-miśraṃ 2.53av tat kṣaudra-pippalī-yuktaṃ 2.53dv hato hy asya vikāṣi-tām tat piben mastu-madirā-takra-pīlu-rasāsavaiḥ | abhiṣyaṇṇa-tanur gulmī pramehī jaṭharī garī || 54 || 2.54cv abhiṣyanda-tanur gulmī 2.54cv abhiṣyandi-tanur gulmī go-mṛgāja-rasaiḥ pāṇḍuḥ kṛmi-koṣṭhī bhagandarī | siddhaṃ tat kvātha-kalkābhyāṃ daśa-mūla-rasena ca || 55 || visarpa-vidradhy-alajī-kakṣā-dāhān jayed ghṛtam | tailaṃ tu gulma-mehārśo-vibandha-kapha-mārutān || 56 || mahā-snehaḥ śakṛc-chukra-vāta-saṅgānila-vyathāḥ | virecane mukhya-tamā navaite trivṛtādayaḥ || 57 || 2.57av mahā-snehaś ca viṭ-śukra- harītakīm api trivṛd-vidhānenopakalpayet | guḍasyāṣṭa-pale pathyā viṃśatiḥ syāt palaṃ palam || 58 || dantī-citrakayoḥ karṣau pippalī-trivṛtor daśa | prakalpya modakān ekaṃ daśame daśame 'hani || 59 || uṣṇāmbho 'nupibet khādet tān sarvān vidhināmunā | ete niṣ-parihārāḥ syuḥ sarva-vyādhi-nibarhaṇāḥ || 60 || 2.60av uṣṇāmbho 'nupiban khādet viśeṣād grahaṇī-pāṇḍu-kaṇḍū-koṭhārśasāṃ hitāḥ | alpasyāpi mahārtha-tvaṃ prabhūtasyālpa-karma-tām || 61 || 2.61bv -kaṇḍū-koṣṭhāṛśasāṃ hitāḥ 2.61bv -kaṇḍū-kuṣṭhāṛśasāṃ hitāḥ kuryāt saṃśleṣa-viśleṣa-kāla-saṃskāra-yuktibhiḥ || 61ū̆ab || 2.61ū̆bv -kāla-saṃskāra-yuktitaḥ tvak-kesarāmrātaka-dāḍimailā-sitopalā-mākṣika-mātuluṅgaiḥ | madyena tais taiś ca mano-'nukūlair yuktāni deyāni virecanāni || 62 || 2.62cv madyaiś ca tais taiś ca mano-'nukūlair Kalpasthāna vamanaṃ mṛdu-koṣṭhena kṣud-vatālpa-kaphena vā | ati-tīkṣṇa-hima-stokam a-jīrṇe dur-balena vā || 1 || pītaṃ prayāty adhas tasminn iṣṭa-hānir malodayaḥ | vāmayet taṃ punaḥ snigdhaṃ smaran pūrvam atikramam || 2 || 3.2dv smaran pūrvam anu-kramam a-jīrṇinaḥ śleṣma-vato vrajaty ūrdhvaṃ virecanam | ati-tīkṣṇoṣṇa-lavaṇam a-hṛdyam ati-bhūri vā || 3 || tatra pūrvoditā vyāpat siddhiś ca na tathāpi cet | āśaye tiṣṭhati tatas tṛtīyaṃ nāvacārayet || 4 || anya-tra sātmyād dhṛdyād vā bheṣajān nir-apāyataḥ | a-snigdha-svinna-dehasya purāṇaṃ rūkṣam auṣadham || 5 || 3.5av anya-tra sātmyād dhṛdyād ca 3.5cv a-snigdhā-svinna-dehasya doṣān utkleśya nirhartum a-śaktaṃ janayed gadān | vibhraṃśaṃ śvayathuṃ hidhmāṃ tamaso darśanaṃ tṛṣam || 6 || 3.6cv cid-bhraṃśaṃ śvayathuṃ hidhmāṃ piṇḍikodveṣṭanaṃ kaṇḍūm ūrvoḥ sādaṃ vi-varṇa-tām | snigdha-svinnasya vāty-alpaṃ dīptāgner jīrṇam auṣadham || 7 || 3.7cv snigdha-svinnasya cāty-alpaṃ śītair vā stabdham āme vā samutkleśyāharan malān | tān eva janayed rogān a-yogaḥ sarva eva saḥ || 8 || 3.8av śītair vā stabdham āmair vā 3.8bv samutkleśyāharen malān 3.8bv samutkleśya haren malān taṃ taila-lavaṇābhyaktaṃ svinnaṃ prastara-saṃkaraiḥ | nirūḍhaḥ jāṅgala-rasair bhojayitvānuvāsayet || 9 || 3.9bv svinnaṃ saṃstara-saṃkaraiḥ 3.9bv svinnaṃ saṃstara-śaṅkaraiḥ phala-māgadhikā-dāru-siddha-tailena mātrayā | snigdhaṃ vāta-haraiḥ snehaiḥ punas tīkṣṇena śodhayet || 10 || bahu-doṣasya rūkṣasya mandāgner alpam auṣadham | sodāvartasya cotkleśya doṣān mārgān nirudhya taiḥ || 11 || 3.11dv doṣān mārgaṃ nirudhya taiḥ bhṛśam ādhmāpayen nābhiṃ pṛṣṭha-pārśva-śiro-rujam | śvāsaṃ viṇ-mūtra-vātānāṃ saṅgaṃ kuryāc ca dāruṇam || 12 || 3.12av bhṛśam ādhmāpayen nābhi- 3.12bv -pṛṣṭha-pārśva-śiro-rujam abhyaṅga-sveda-varty-ādi sa-nirūhānuvāsanam | udāvarta-haram sarvaṃ karmādhmātasya śasyate || 13 || pañca-mūla-yava-kṣāra-vacā-bhūtika-saindhavaiḥ | yavāgūḥ su-kṛtā śūla-vibandhānāha-nāśanī || 14 || 3.14av pañca-kola-yava-kṣāra- pippalī-dāḍima-kṣāra-hiṅgu-śuṇṭhy-amla-vetasān | sa-saindhavān piben madyaiḥ sarpiṣoṣṇodakena vā || 15 || pravāhikā-parisrāva-vedanā-parikartane | pītauṣadhasya vegānāṃ nigrahān mārutādayaḥ || 16 || 3.16av pravāhikā-parisrāve 3.16bv vedanā-parikartane kupitā hṛdayaṃ gatvā ghoraṃ kurvanti hṛd-graham | hidhmā-pārśva-rujā-kāsa-dainya-lālākṣi-vibhramaiḥ || 17 || jihvāṃ khādati niḥ-saṃjño dantān kaṭakaṭāyayan | na gacched vibhramaṃ tatra vāmayed āśu taṃ bhiṣak || 18 || 3.18bv dantān kaṭakaṭāyate madhuraiḥ pitta-mūrchārtaṃ kaṭubhiḥ kapha-mūrchitam | pācanīyais tataś cāsya doṣa-śeṣaṃ vipācayet || 19 || 3.19cv pācanīyais tataś cāśu 3.19dv doṣa-śeṣaṃ ca pācayet kāyāgniṃ ca balaṃ cāsya krameṇābhipravardhayet | pavanenāti-vamato hṛdayaṃ yasya pīḍyate || 20 || 3.20bv krameṇābhipravartayet tasmai snigdhāmla-lavaṇān dadyāt pitta-kaphe 'nya-thā | pītauṣadhasya vegānāṃ nigraheṇa kaphena vā || 21 || 3.21av tasmai snigdhāmla-lavaṇaṃ ruddho 'ti vā viśuddhasya gṛhṇāty aṅgāni mārutaḥ | stambha-vepathu-nistoda-sādodveṣṭārti-bhedanaiḥ || 22 || 3.22av ruddho vāti viśuddhasya 3.22dv -sādodveṣṭādhibhedanaiḥ tatra vāta-haraṃ sarvaṃ sneha-svedādi śasyate | bahu-tīkṣṇaṃ kṣudhārtasya mṛdu-koṣṭhasya bheṣajam || 23 || hṛtvāśu viṭ-pitta-kaphān dhātūn āsrāvayed dravān | tatrāti-yoge madhuraiḥ śeṣam auṣadham ullikhet || 24 || 3.24bv dhātūn prasrāvayed dravān yojyo 'ti-vamane reko vireke vamanaṃ mṛdu | pariṣekāvagāhādyaiḥ su-śītaiḥ stambhayec ca tam || 25 || 3.25av yojyo 'ti reko vamite añjanaṃ candanośīram ajāsṛk-śarkarodakam | lāja-cūrṇaiḥ piben mantham ati-yoga-haraṃ param || 26 || 3.26av añjanaṃ candanośīra- 3.26bv -majjāsṛk-śarkarodakam vamanasyāti-yoge tu śītāmbu-pariṣecitaḥ | pibet phala-rasair manthaṃ sa-ghṛta-kṣaudra-śarkaram || 27 || sodgārāyāṃ bhṛśaṃ chardyāṃ mūrvāyā dhānya-mustayoḥ | sa-madhūkāñjanaṃ cūrṇaṃ lehayen madhu-saṃyutam || 28 || 3.28bv mūrchāyāṃ dhānya-mustayoḥ vamato 'ntaḥ praviṣṭāyāṃ jihvāyāṃ kavaḍa-grahāḥ | snigdhāmla-lavaṇā hṛdyā yūṣa-māṃsa-rasā hitāḥ || 29 || 3.29cv snigdhāmla-lavaṇā hṛdyāś 3.29dv chāga-māṃsa-rasā hitāḥ phalāny amlāni khādeyus tasya cānye 'grato narāḥ | niḥsṛtāṃ tu tila-drākṣā-kalka-liptāṃ praveśayet || 30 || 3.30bv tasya cānye 'grato janāḥ 3.30bv tasya caivāgrato narāḥ 3.30dv -kalka-liptāṃ prayojayet vāg-grahānila-rogeṣu ghṛta-māṃsopasādhitām | yavāgūṃ tanukāṃ dadyāt sneha-svedau ca kāla-vit || 31 || ati-yogāc ca bhaiṣajyaṃ jīvaṃ harati śoṇitam | taj jīvādānam ity uktam ādatte jīvitaṃ yataḥ || 32 || 3.32dv ādhatte jīvanaṃ nṛṇām śune kākāya vā dadyāt tenānnam asṛjā saha | bhukte '-bhukte vadej jīvaṃ pittaṃ vā bheṣajeritam || 33 || 3.33cv bhuktā-bhuktaṃ vadej jīvaṃ 3.33cv bhukte tasmin vadej jīvam 3.33cv bhuktvā-bhukte vadej jīvaṃ 3.33dv a-bhukte pittam ādiśet śuklaṃ vā bhāvitaṃ vastram āvānaṃ koṣṇa-vāriṇā | prakṣālitaṃ vi-varṇaṃ syāt pitte śuddhaṃ tu śoṇite || 34 || 3.34dv pittaṃ śuddhaṃ tu śoṇitaṃ tṛṣṇā-mūrchā-madārtasya kuryād ā-maraṇāt kriyām | rakta-pittātisāra-ghnīṃ tasyāśu prāṇa-rakṣaṇīm || 35 || 3.35bv kuryād ā-maraṇa-kriyām 3.35dv tasyāpi prāṇa-rakṣaṇīm mṛga-go-mahiṣājānāṃ sadyaskaṃ jīvatām asṛk | pibej jīvābhisaṃdhānaṃ jīvaṃ tad dhy āśu gacchati || 36 || 3.36dv jīvaṃ tad dhy āśu yacchati tad eva darbha-mṛditaṃ raktaṃ vastau niṣecayet | śyāmā-kāśmarya-madhuka-dūrvośīraiḥ śṛtaṃ payaḥ || 37 || ghṛta-maṇḍāñjana-yutaṃ vastiṃ vā yojayed dhimam | picchā-vastiṃ su-śītaṃ vā ghṛta-maṇḍānuvāsanam || 38 || gudaṃ bhraṣṭaṃ kaṣāyaiś ca stambhayitvā praveśayet | vi-saṃjñaṃ śrāvayet sāma-veṇu-gītādi-nisvanam || 39 || 3.39bv stambhayitvā prayojayet Kalpasthāna balāṃ guḍūcīṃ tri-phalāṃ sa-rāsnāṃ dvi-pañca-mūlaṃ ca palonmitāni | aṣṭau phalāny ardha-tulāṃ ca māṃsāc chāgāt paced apsu caturtha-śeṣam || 1 || pūto yavānī-phala-bilva-kuṣṭha-vacā-śatāhvā-ghana-pippalīnām | kalkair guḍa-kṣaudra-ghṛtaiḥ sa-tailair yuktaḥ sukhoṣṇo lavaṇānvitaś ca || 2 || 4.2av pūtaṃ yavānī-phala-bilva-kuṣṭha- vastiḥ paraṃ sarva-gada-pramāthī svasthe hito jīvana-bṛṃhaṇaś ca | vastau ca yasmin paṭhito na kalkaḥ sarva-tra dadyād amum eva tatra || 3 || 4.3cv vastau ca yasmin kathito na kalkaḥ dvi-pañca-mūlasya raso 'mla-yuktaḥ sa-cchāga-māṃsasya sa-pūrva-peṣyaḥ | tri-sneha-yuktaḥ pravaro nirūhaḥ sarvānila-vyādhi-haraḥ pradiṣṭaḥ || 4 || 4.4bv sa-cchāga-māṃsasya sa-pūrva-kalkaḥ balā-paṭolī-laghu-pañca-mūla-trāyantikairaṇḍa-yavāt su-siddhāt | prastho rasāc chāga-rasārdha-yuktaḥ sādhyaḥ punaḥ prastha-samaḥ sa yāvat || 5 || priyaṅgu-kṛṣṇā-ghana-kalka-yuktaḥ sa-taila-sarpir-madhu-saindhavaś ca | syād dīpano māṃsa-bala-pradaś ca cakṣur-balaṃ copadadhāti sadyaḥ || 6 || eraṇḍa-mūlāt tri-palaṃ palāśāt tathā palāṃśaṃ laghu-pañca-mūlam | rāsnā-balā-chinnaruhāśvagandhā-punarnavāragvadha-devadāru || 7 || 4.7bv tathā palāṃśaṃ laghu-pañca-mūlāt phalāni cāṣṭau salilāḍhakābhyāṃ vipācayed aṣṭama-śeṣite 'smin | vacā-śatāhvā-hapuṣā-priyaṅgu-yaṣṭī-kaṇā-vatsaka-bīja-mustam || 8 || dadyāt su-piṣṭaṃ saha-tārkṣya-śailam akṣa-pramāṇaṃ lavaṇāṃśa-yuktam | sa-mākṣikas taila-yutaḥ sa-mūtro vastir jayel lekhana-dīpano 'sau || 9 || 4.9dv vastir jayed dīpana-pācano 'sau jaṅghoru-pāda-trika-pṛṣṭha-koṣṭha-hṛd-guhya-śūlaṃ guru-tāṃ vibandham | gulmāśma-vardhma-grahaṇī-gudotthāṃs tās tāṃś ca rogān kapha-vāta-jātān || 10 || 4.10cv gulmāśma-vardhma-grahaṇī-vikārāṃs 4.10dv tāṃs tāṃś ca rogān kapha-vāta-jāṃś ca yaṣṭy-āhva-lodhrābhaya-candanaiś ca śṛtaṃ payo 'gryaṃ kamalotpalaiś ca | sa-śarkarā-kṣaudra-ghṛtaṃ su-śītaṃ pittāmayān hanti sa-jīvanīyam || 11 || 4.11cv sa-śarkaraṃ kṣaudra-yutaṃ su-śītaṃ 4.11dv pittāmayaṃ hanti sa-jīvanīyam rāsnāṃ vṛṣaṃ lohitikām anantāṃ balāṃ kanīyas-tṛṇa-pañca-mūlyau | gopāṅganā-candana-padmakarddhi-yaṣṭy-āhva-lodhrāṇi palārdhakāni || 12 || 4.12cv gopāṅganā-candana-padmakāhva- niḥkvāthya toyena rasena tena śṛtaṃ payo 'rdhāḍhakam ambu-hīnam | jīvanti-medarddhi-varī-vidārī-vīrā-dvi-kākoli-kaserukābhiḥ || 13 || sitopalā-jīvaka-padma-reṇu-prapauṇḍarīkotpala-puṇḍarīkaiḥ | lodhrātmaguptā-madhuyaṣṭikābhir nāgāhva-muñjātaka-candanaiś ca || 14 || 4.14cv lohātmaguptā-madhuyaṣṭikābhir piṣṭair ghṛta-kṣaudra-yutair nirūhaṃ sa-saindhavaṃ śītalam eva dadyāt | pratyāgate dhanva-rasena śālīn kṣīreṇa vādyāt pariṣikta-gātraḥ || 15 || dāhātisāra-pradarāsra-pitta-hṛt-pāṇḍu-rogān viṣama-jvaraṃ ca | sa-gulma-mūtra-graha-kāmalādīn sarvāmayān pitta-kṛtān nihanti || 16 || 4.16av dāhātisāra-pradarāmla-pitta- 4.16bv -hṛt-pāṇḍu-rogān viṣama-jvarāṃś ca 4.16bv -hṛt-pāṇḍu-rogān viṣamān jvarāṃś ca kośātakāragvadha-devadāru-mūrvā-śvadaṃṣṭrā-kuṭajārka-pāṭhāḥ | paktvā kulatthān bṛhatīṃ ca toye rasasya tasya prasṛtā daśa syuḥ || 17 || tān sarṣapailā-madanaiḥ sa-kuṣṭhair akṣa-pramāṇaiḥ prasṛtaiś ca yuktān | kṣaudrasya tailasya phalāhvayasya kṣārasya tailasya ca sārṣapasya || 18 || 4.18dv kṣārasya tailasya ca sarṣapasya dadyān nirūhaṃ kapha-rogitāya mandāgnaye cāśana-vidviṣe ca | vakṣye mṛdūn sneha-kṛto nirūhān sukhocitānāṃ prasṛtaiḥ pṛthak tu || 19 || athemān su-kumārāṇāṃ nirūhān snehanān mṛdūn | karmaṇā viplutānāṃ ca vakṣyāmi prasṛtaiḥ pṛthak || 20 || 4.20cv karmaṇā viplutānāṃ tu kṣīrād dvau prasṛtau kāryau madhu-taila-ghṛtāt trayaḥ | khajena mathito vastir vāta-ghno bala-varṇa-kṛt || 21 || ekaikaḥ prasṛtas taila-prasannā-kṣaudra-sarpiṣām | bilvādi-mūla-kvāthād dvau kaulatthād dvau sa vāta-jit || 22 || 4.22av ekaikaḥ prasṛtis taila- paṭola-nimba-bhūtīka-rāsnā-saptacchadāmbhasaḥ | prasṛtaḥ pṛthag ājyāc ca vastiḥ sarṣapa-kalka-vān || 23 || 4.23av paṭola-nimba-pūtīka- 4.23bv -rāsnā-saptacchadāmbhasām 4.23cv prasṛtāḥ pṛthag ājyāc ca sa pañca-tikto 'bhiṣyanda-kṛmi-kuṣṭha-prameha-hā | catvāras taila-go-mūtra-dadhi-maṇḍāmla-kāñjikāt || 24 || 4.24bv -kṛmi-kuṣṭha-pramoha-hā 4.24bv -kṛmi-kuṣṭha-prameha-jit prasṛtāḥ sarṣapaiḥ piṣṭair viṭ-saṅgānāha-bhedanaḥ | payasyekṣu-sthirā-rāsnā-vidārī-kṣaudra-sarpiṣām || 25 || 4.25bv viṭ-saṅgānāha-bhedanāḥ 4.25bv viṭ-saṅgānāha-bhedinaḥ 4.25dv -vidārī-kṣaudra-sarpiṣaḥ ekaikaḥ prasṛto vastiḥ kṛṣṇā-kalko vṛṣa-tva-kṛt | siddha-vastīn ato vakṣye sarva-dā yān prayojayet || 26 || nir-vyāpado bahu-phalān bala-puṣṭi-karān sukhān | madhu-taile same karṣaḥ saindhavād dvi-picur miśiḥ || 27 || eraṇḍa-mūla-kvāthena nirūho mādhutailikaḥ | rasāyanaṃ pramehārśaḥ-kṛmi-gulmāntra-vṛddhi-nut || 28 || 4.28bv nirūho madhu-tailikaḥ 4.28dv -kṛmi-gulmāntra-vṛddhi-hṛt sa-yaṣṭīmadhukaś caiṣa cakṣuṣyo rakta-pitta-jit | yāpano ghana-kalkena madhu-taila-rasājya-vān || 29 || pāyu-jānūru-vṛṣaṇa-vasti-mehana-śūla-jit | prasṛtāṃśair ghṛta-kṣaudra-vasā-tailaiḥ prakalpayet || 30 || 4.30av pāyu-jaṅghoru-vṛṣaṇa- yāpanaṃ saindhavārdhākṣa-hapuṣārdha-palānvitam | eraṇḍa-mūla-niḥkvātho madhu-tailaṃ sa-saindhavam || 31 || 4.31dv madhu-tailaṃ sa-saindhavaḥ eṣa yukta-ratho vastiḥ sa-vacā-pillalī-phalaḥ | sa kvātho madhu-ṣaḍgranthā-śatāhvā-hiṅgu-saindhavam || 32 || 4.32cv tat-kvātho madhu-ṣaḍgranthā- 4.32dv -śatāhvā-hiṅgu-saindhavaḥ suradāru ca rāsnā ca vastir doṣa-haraḥ śivaḥ | pañca-mūlasya niḥkvāthas tailaṃ māgadhikā madhu || 33 || 4.33av suradāru vacā rāsnā 4.33bv vastir doṣa-haraś ca saḥ 4.33bv vastir doṣa-haraḥ paraḥ sa-saindhavaḥ sa-madhukaḥ siddha-vastir iti smṛtaḥ | dvi-pañca-mūla-tri-phalā-phala-bilvāni pācayet || 34 || go-mūtre tena piṣṭaiś ca pāṭhā-vatsaka-toyadaiḥ | sa-phalaiḥ kṣaudra-tailābhyāṃ kṣāreṇa lavaṇena ca || 35 || 4.35dv kṣāreṇa lavaṇena vā yukto vastiḥ kapha-vyādhi-pāṇḍu-roga-viṣūciṣu | śukrānila-vibandheṣu vasty-āṭope ca pūjitaḥ || 36 || 4.36dv vasty-āṭopeṣu pūjitaḥ mustā-pāṭhāmṛtairaṇḍa-balā-rāsnā-punarnavāḥ | mañjiṣṭhāragvadhośīra-trāyamāṇākṣa-rohiṇīḥ || 37 || 4.37bv -balā-rāsnā-punarnavam 4.37dv -trāyamāṇākṣa-rohiṇi kanīyaḥ pañca-mūlaṃ ca pālikaṃ madanāṣṭakam | jalāḍhake pacet tac ca pāda-śeṣaṃ parisrutam || 38 || kṣīra-dvi-prastha-saṃyuktaṃ kṣīra-śeṣaṃ punaḥ pacet | sa-pāda-jāṅgala-rasaḥ sa-sarpir-madhu-saindhavaḥ || 39 || piṣṭair yaṣṭī-miśi-śyāmā-kaliṅgaka-rasāñjanaiḥ | vastiḥ sukhoṣṇo māṃsāgni-bala-śukra-vivardhanaḥ || 40 || vātāsṛṅ-moha-mehārśo-gulma-viṇ-mūtra-saṃgrahān | viṣama-jvara-vīsarpa-vardhmādhmāna-pravāhikāḥ || 41 || 4.41av vāta-rakta-pramehārśo- 4.41av vātāsṛṅ-meha-medo-'rśo- 4.41bv -gulma-viṇ-mūtra-saṃgraham vaṅkṣaṇoru-kaṭī-kukṣi-manyā-śrotra-śiro-rujaḥ | hanyād asṛg-daronmāda-śopha-kāsāśma-kuṇḍalān || 42 || cakṣuṣyaḥ putra-do rājā yāpanānāṃ rasāyanam | mṛgāṇāṃ laghu-vadrāṇāṃ daśa-mūlasya cāmbhasā || 43 || 4.43bv yāpanānāṃ rasāyanaḥ 4.43cv mṛgāṇāṃ laghu-babhrūṇāṃ 4.43cv mṛgāṇāṃ laghu-barhāṇāṃ 4.43cv mṛgāṇāṃ laghu-vaḍrāṇāṃ 4.43cv mṛgāṇāṃ laghu-vabhrāṇāṃ 4.43cv mṛgāṇāṃ laghu-babhrāṇāṃ 4.43cv mṛgāṇāṃ laghu-vargāṇāṃ hapuṣā-miśi-gāṅgeyī-kalkair vāta-haraḥ param | nirūho 'ty-artha-vṛṣyaś ca mahā-sneha-samanvitaḥ || 44 || 4.44bv -kalkair vāta-haraiḥ param 4.44bv -kalko vāta-haraḥ param mayūraṃ pakṣa-pittāntra-pāda-viṭ-tuṇḍa-varjitam | laghunā pañca-mūlena pālikena samanvitam || 45 || paktvā kṣīra-jale kṣīra-śeṣaṃ sa-ghṛta-mākṣikam | tad vidārī-kaṇā-yaṣṭī-śatāhvā-phala-kalka-vat || 46 || 4.46dv -śatāhvā-phala-kalka-vān vastir īṣat-paṭu-yutaḥ paramaṃ bala-śukra-kṛt | kalpaneyaṃ pṛthak kāryā tittiri-prabhṛtiṣv api || 47 || 4.47bv paramaṃ bala-varṇa-kṛt viṣkireṣu samasteṣu pratuda-prasaheṣu ca | jala-cāriṣu tad-vac ca matsyeṣu kṣīra-varjitā || 48 || godhā-nakula-mārjāra-śalyakondura-jaṃ palam | pṛthag daśa-palaṃ kṣīre pañca-mūlaṃ ca sādhayet || 49 || tat payaḥ phala-vaidehī-kalka-dvi-lavaṇānvitam | sa-sitā-taila-madhv-ājyo vastir yojyo rasāyanam || 50 || 4.50cv sa-sitā-taila-madhv-ājyaṃ 4.50cv sa-sitā-taila-madhv-ājyaṃ vyāyāma-mathitoraska-kṣīṇendriya-balaujasām | vibaddha-śukra-viṇ-mūtra-khuḍa-vāta-vikāriṇām || 51 || 4.51cv vibandha-śukra-viṇ-mūtra- gaja-vāji-ratha-kṣobha-bhagna-jarjaritātmanām | punar-nava-tvaṃ kurute vājī-karaṇam uttamam || 52 || 4.52dv vājī-karaṇa-sat-tamam siddhena payasā bhojyam ātmaguptoccaṭekṣuraiḥ | snehāṃś cā-yantraṇān siddhān siddha-dravyaiḥ prakalpayet || 53 || 4.53cv snehāṃś cāḍhya-guṇān siddhān doṣa-ghnāḥ sa-parīhārā vakṣyante sneha-vastayaḥ | daśa-mūlaṃ balāṃ rāsnām aśvagandhāṃ punarnavām || 54 || 4.54av doṣa-ghnā niṣ-parīhārā guḍūcyairaṇḍa-bhūtīka-bhārgī-vṛṣaka-rohiṣam | śatāvarīṃ sahacaraṃ kākanāsāṃ palāṃśakam || 55 || 4.55av guḍūcyairaṇḍa-pūtīka- 4.55dv kākanāsāṃ palāṃśikam 4.55dv kākanāsāṃ palāṃśikām yava-māṣātasī-kola-kulatthān prasṛtonmitān | vahe vipācya toyasya droṇa-śeṣeṇa tena ca || 56 || pacet tailāḍhakaṃ peṣyair jīvanīyaiḥ palonmitaiḥ | anuvāsanam ity etat sarva-vāta-vikāra-nut || 57 || 4.57av pacet tailāḍḥakaṃ kalkair 4.57dv sarva-vāta-vikāra-jit ānūpānāṃ vasā tad-vaj jīvanīyopasādhitā | śatāhvā-ciribilvāmlais tailaṃ siddhaṃ samīraṇe || 58 || 4.58cv śatāhvā-yava-bilvāmlais 4.58dv tailaṃ tad-vat samīraṇe saindhavenāgni-varṇena taptaṃ cānila-jid ghṛtam | jīvantīṃ madanaṃ medāṃ śrāvaṇīṃ madhukaṃ balām || 59 || śatāhvarṣabhakau kṛṣṇāṃ kākanāsāṃ śatāvarīm | svaguptāṃ kṣīra-kākolīṃ karkaṭākhyāṃ śaṭhīṃ vacām || 60 || piṣṭvā taila-ghṛtaṃ kṣīre sādhayet tac-catur-guṇe | bṛṃhaṇaṃ vāta-pitta-ghnaṃ bala-śukrāgni-vardhanam || 61 || 4.61av piṣṭvā tailaṃ ghṛtaṃ kṣīre 4.61bv sādhayet ca catur-guṇe rajaḥ-śukrāmaya-haraṃ putrīyaṃ cānuvāsanam | saindhavaṃ madanaṃ kuṣṭhaṃ śatāhvā niculo vacā || 62 || 4.62av rajaḥ-śukrānila-haraṃ 4.62bv putrīyam anuvāsanam hrīveraṃ madhukaṃ bhārgī devadāru sa-kaṭphalam | nāgaraṃ puṣkaraṃ medā cavikā citrakaḥ śaṭhī || 63 || 4.63av hrīveraṃ padmakaṃ bhārgī viḍaṅgātiviṣe śyāmā hareṇur nīlinī sthirā | bilvājamoda-capalā dantī rāsnā ca taiḥ samaiḥ || 64 || 4.64av viḍaṅgātiviṣā-śyāmā 4.64cv bilvājamodā-capalā 4.64cv bilvājamode capalā sādhyam eraṇḍa-tailaṃ vā tailaṃ vā kapha-roga-nut | vardhmodāvarta-gulmārśaḥ-plīha-mehāḍhya-mārutān || 65 || 4.65av sādhyam eraṇḍa-jaṃ tailaṃ 4.65bv kapha-vāta-ja-roga-nut ānāham aśmarīṃ cāśu hanyāt tad anuvāsanam | sādhitaṃ pañca-mūlena tailaṃ bilvādinātha-vā || 66 || kapha-ghnaṃ kalpayet tailaṃ dravyair vā kapha-ghātibhiḥ | phalair aṣṭa-guṇaiś cāmlaiḥ siddham anvāsanaṃ kaphe || 67 || 4.67cv phalair aṣṭa-guṇe cāmle mṛdu-vasti-jaḍī-bhūte tīkṣṇo 'nyo vastir iṣyate | tīkṣṇair vikarṣite snigdho madhuraḥ śiśiro mṛduḥ || 68 || 4.68av mṛdu-vastau jaḍī-bhūte tīkṣṇa-tvaṃ mūtra-pīlv-agni-lavaṇa-kṣāra-sarṣapaiḥ | prāpta-kālaṃ vidhātavyaṃ kṣīrājyādyais tu mārdavam || 69 || 4.69av tīkṣṇa-tvaṃ mūtra-bilvāgni- 4.69dv kṣīrājyādyaiś ca mārdavam 4.69dv kṣīrādyaiś caiva mārdavam 4.69dv ghṛta-kṣīrais tu mārdavam bala-kāla-roga-doṣa-prakṛtīḥ pravibhajya yojito vastiḥ | svaiḥ svair auṣadha-vargaiḥ svān svān rogān nivartayati || 70 || 4.70bv -prakṛtīḥ pravivīkṣya yojito vastiḥ 4.70dv svān svān doṣān nivartayati uṣṇārtānāṃ śītāñ chītārtānāṃ tathā sukhoṣṇāṃś ca | tad-yogyauṣadha-yuktān vastīn saṃtarkya yuñjīta || 71 || vastīn na bṛṃhaṇīyān dadyād vyādhiṣu viśodhanīyeṣu | medasvino viśodhyā ye ca narāḥ kuṣṭha-mehārtāḥ || 72 || 4.72bv dadyād vyādhiṣu ca śodhanīyeṣu na kṣīṇa-kṣata-dur-bala-mūrchita-kṛśa-śuṣka-śuddha-dehānām | dadyād viśodhanīyān doṣa-nibaddhāyuṣo ye ca || 73 || Kalpasthāna a-snigdha-svinna-dehasya guru-koṣṭhasya yojitaḥ | śīto 'lpa-sneha-lavaṇa-dravya-mātro ghano 'pi vā || 1 || 5.1dv -drava-mātro ghano 'pi vā vastiḥ saṃkṣobhya taṃ doṣaṃ dur-bala-tvād a-nirharan | karoty a-yogaṃ tena syād vāta-mūtra-śakṛd-grahaḥ || 2 || 5.2av vastiḥ saṃstabhya taṃ doṣaṃ nābhi-vasti-rujā dāho hṛl-lepaḥ śvayathur gude | kaṇḍūr gaṇḍāni vaivarṇyam a-ratir vahni-mārdavam || 3 || 5.3av nābhi-vasti-rujānāho 5.3cv kaṇḍūr gaṇḍāti-vaivarṇyam 5.3cv kaṇḍūr gaṇḍākṣi-vaivarṇyam kvātha-dvayaṃ prāg-vihitaṃ madhya-doṣe 'tisāriṇi | uṣṇasya tasmād ekasya tatra pānaṃ praśasyate || 4 || 5.4dv tatra pānaṃ vidhīyate phala-vartyas tathā svedāḥ kālaṃ jñātvā virecanam | bilva-mūla-trivṛd-dāru-yava-kola-kulattha-vān || 5 || surādi-mūtra-vān vastiḥ sa-prāk-peṣyas tam ānayet | yukto 'lpa-vīryo doṣāḍhye rūkṣe krūrāśaye 'tha-vā || 6 || 5.6av surādi-māṃs tatra vastiḥ vastir doṣāvṛto ruddha-mārgo rundhyāt samīraṇam | sa vi-mārgo 'nilaḥ kuryād ādhmānaṃ marma-pīḍanam || 7 || vidāhaṃ guda-koṣṭhasya muṣka-vaṅkṣaṇa-vedanām | ruṇaddhi hṛdayaṃ śūlair itaś cetaś ca dhāvati || 8 || sv-abhyakta-svinna-gātrasya tatra vartiṃ prayojayet | bilvādiś ca nirūhaḥ syāt pīlu-sarṣapa-mūtra-vān || 9 || 5.9av abhyakta-svinna-gātrasya 5.9av sv-abhyakta-svinna-gātrāya 5.9av sv-abhyakta-svinna-dehasya saralāmaradārubhyāṃ sādhitaṃ cānuvāsanam | kurvato vega-saṃrodhaṃ pīḍito vāti-mātrayā || 10 || 5.10bv sādhitaṃ vānuvāsanam 5.10dv pīḍitaś cāti-mātrayā a-snigdha-lavaṇoṣṇo vā vastir alpo 'lpa-bheṣajaḥ | mṛdur vā mārutenordhvaṃ vikṣipto mukha-nāsikāt || 11 || nireti mūrchā-hṛl-lāsa-tṛḍ-dāhādīn pravartayan | mūrchā-vikāraṃ dṛṣṭvāsya siñcec chītāmbunā mukham || 12 || 5.12bv -tṛḍ-dāhādīn prakalpayet 5.12bv -tṛḍ-dāhādīn pravartayet vyajed ā-klama-nāśāc ca prāṇāyāmaṃ ca kārayet | pṛṣṭha-pārśvodaraṃ mṛjyāt karair uṣṇair adho-mukham || 13 || 5.13av vījet klama-vināśāc ca 5.13av vījed ā-klama-nāśāc ca 5.13av vījyed ā-klama-nāśāc ca 5.13cv pṛṣṭha-pārśvodaraṃ mṛdyāt keśeṣūtkṣipya dhunvīta bhīṣayed vyāla-daṃṣṭribhiḥ | śastrolkā-rāja-puruṣair vastir eti tathā hy adhaḥ || 14 || 5.14bv bhāyayed vyāla-daṃṣṭribhiḥv 5.14bv bhāpayed vyāla-daṃṣṭribhiḥ pāṇi-vastrair galāpīḍaṃ kuryān na mriyate tathā | prāṇodāna-nirodhād dhi su-prasiddha-tarāyanaḥ || 15 || apānaḥ pavano vastiṃ tam āśv evāpakarṣati | kuṣṭha-kramuka-kalkaṃ ca pāyayetāmla-saṃyutam || 16 || 5.16bv tathāśv evāpakarṣati 5.16cv kuṣṭha-kramuka-kalkaṃ vā 5.16dv pāyayed amla-saṃyutam auṣṇyāt taikṣṇyāt sara-tvāc ca vastiṃ so 'syānulomayet | go-mūtreṇa trivṛt-pathyā-kalkaṃ vādho-'nulomanam || 17 || 5.17dv -kalkaṃ cādho-'nulomanam pakvāśaya-sthite svinne nirūho dāśamūlikaḥ | yava-kola-kulatthaiś ca vidheyo mūtra-sādhitaiḥ || 18 || 5.18dv vidheyo mūtra-sādhitaḥ vastir go-mūtra-siddhair vā sāmṛtā-vaṃśa-pallavaiḥ | pūti-karañja-tvak-pattra-śaṭhī-devāhva-rohiṣaiḥ || 19 || sa-taila-guḍa-sindhūttho virekauṣadha-kalka-vān | bilvādi-pañca-mūlena siddho vastir uraḥ-sthite || 20 || śiraḥ-sthe nāvanaṃ dhūmaḥ pracchādyaṃ sarṣapaiḥ śiraḥ | vastir aty-uṣṇa-tīkṣṇāmla-ghano 'ti-sveditasya vā || 21 || alpe doṣe mṛdau koṣṭhe prayukto vā punaḥ punaḥ | ati-yoga-tvam āpanno bhavet kukṣi-rujā-karaḥ || 22 || virecanāti-yogena sa tulyākṛti-sādhanaḥ | vastiḥ kṣārāmla-tīkṣṇoṣṇa-lavaṇaḥ paittikasya vā || 23 || 5.23dv -lavaṇaḥ paittikasya ca gudaṃ dahan likhan kṣiṇvan karoty asya parisravam | sa vidagdhaṃ sravaty asraṃ varṇaiḥ pittaṃ ca bhūribhiḥ || 24 || 5.24bv karoty asra-parisravam bahu-śaś cāti-vegena mohaṃ gacchati so '-sakṛt | rakta-pittātisāra-ghnī kriyā tatra praśasyate || 25 || 5.25av bahu-śaś cāti-yogena 5.25bv mohaṃ gacchati cā-sakṛt 5.25bv mohaṃ gacchati vā-sakṛt dāhādiṣu trivṛt-kalkaṃ mṛdvīkā-vāriṇā pibet | tad dhi pitta-śakṛd-vātān hṛtvā dāhādikāñ jayet || 26 || 5.26dv hatvā dāhādikāñ jayet viśuddhaś ca pibec chītāṃ yavāgūṃ śarkarā-yutām | yuñjyād vāti-viriktasya kṣīṇa-viṭkasya bhojanam || 27 || 5.27bv yavāgūṃ śarkarānvitām māṣa-yūṣeṇa kulmāṣān pānaṃ dadhy atha-vā surām | siddhir vasty-āpadām evaṃ sneha-vastes tu vakṣyate || 28 || 5.28dv sneha-vastiṣu vakṣyate 5.28dv sneha-kalpas tu vakṣyate śīto 'lpo vādhike vāte pitte 'ty-uṣṇaḥ kaphe mṛduḥ | ati-bhukte gurur varcaḥ-saṃcaye 'lpa-balas tathā || 29 || dattas tair āvṛtaḥ sneho nāyāty abhibhavād api | stambhoru-sadanādhmāna-jvara-śūlāṅga-mardanaiḥ || 30 || 5.30bv nāyāty abhibhavād adhaḥ pārśva-rug-veṣṭanair vidyād vāyunā sneham āvṛtam | snigdhāmla-lavaṇoṣṇais taṃ rāsnā-pītadru-tailikaiḥ || 31 || sauvīraka-surā-kola-kulattha-yava-sādhitaiḥ | nirūhair nirharet samyak sa-mūtraiḥ pāñcamūlikaiḥ || 32 || 5.32av sauvīraka-surāṅkolla- 5.32dv sa-mūtraiḥ pāñcamaulikaiḥ tābhyām eva ca tailābhyāṃ sāyaṃ bhukte 'nuvāsayet | tṛḍ-dāha-rāga-saṃmoha-vaivarṇya-tamaka-jvaraiḥ || 33 || 5.33av tābhyām eva tu tailābhyāṃ 5.33av tailābhyām eva tābhyāṃ vā vidyāt pittāvṛtaṃ svādu-tiktais taṃ vastibhir haret | tandrā-śīta-jvarālasya-prasekā-ruci-gauravaiḥ || 34 || 5.34bv -tiktais taṃ ca vinirharet saṃmūrchā-glānibhir vidyāc chleṣmaṇā sneham āvṛtam | kaṣāya-tikta-kaṭukaiḥ surā-mūtropasādhitaiḥ || 35 || 5.35av sa-mūrchā-glānibhir vidyāc 5.35dv surā-mūtraiḥ prasādhitaiḥ 5.35dv surā-go-mūtra-sādhitaiḥ phala-taila-yutaiḥ sāmlair vastibhis taṃ vinirharet | chardi-mūrchā-ruci-glāni-śūla-nidrāṅga-mardanaiḥ || 36 || 5.36dv -śūla-tandrāṅga-mardanaiḥ āma-liṅgaiḥ sa-dāhais taṃ vidyād aty-aśanāvṛtam | kaṭūnāṃ lavaṇānāṃ ca kvāthaiś cūrṇaiś ca pācanam || 37 || 5.37bv vidyād āmāvṛtaṃ tu tam mṛdur virekaḥ sarvaṃ ca tatrāma-vihitaṃ hitam | viṇ-mūtrānila-saṅgārti-guru-tvādhmāna-hṛd-grahaiḥ || 38 || snehaṃ viḍ-āvṛtaṃ jñātvā sneha-svedaiḥ sa-vartibhiḥ | śyāmā-bilvādi-siddhaiś ca nirūhaiḥ sānuvāsanaiḥ || 39 || nirhared vidhinā samyag udāvarta-hareṇa ca | a-bhukte śūna-pāyau vā peyā-mātrāśitasya vā || 40 || 5.40bv udāvarta-hareṇa vā 5.40dv peyā-mātrāśitasya ca gude praṇihitaḥ sneho vegād dhāvaty an-āvṛtaḥ | ūrdhvaṃ kāyaṃ tataḥ kaṇṭhād ūrdhvebhyaḥ khebhya ety api || 41 || 5.41cv ūrdhva-kāyaṃ tataḥ kaṇṭhād mūtra-śyāmā-trivṛt-siddho yava-kola-kulattha-vān | tat-siddha-tailo deyaḥ syān nirūhaḥ sānuvāsanaḥ || 42 || kaṇṭhād āgacchataḥ stambha-kaṇṭha-graha-virecanaiḥ | chardi-ghnībhiḥ kriyābhiś ca tasya kuryān nibarhaṇam || 43 || nā-pakvaṃ praṇayet snehaṃ gudaṃ sa hy upalimpati | tataḥ kuryāt sa-ruṅ-moha-kaṇḍū-śophān kriyātra ca || 44 || 5.44av nā-pakvaṃ snehayet snehaṃ 5.44cv tataḥ kuryāt sa-tṛṇ-moha- 5.44cv sa kuryāt sakthi-ruṅ-moha- tīkṣṇo vastis tathā tailam arka-pattra-rase śṛtam | an-ucchvāsya tu baddhe vā datte niḥśeṣa eva vā || 45 || 5.45cv an-ucchvāsya nu baddhe vā 5.45cv an-ucchvāsyānubaddhe vā 5.45dv datte niḥśeṣa eva ca praviśya kṣubhito vāyuḥ śūla-toda-karo bhavet | tatrābhyaṅgo gude svedo vāta-ghnāny aśanāni ca || 46 || 5.46dv vāta-ghnāny aśanāny atha drutaṃ praṇīte niṣkṛṣṭe sahasotkṣipta eva vā | syāt kaṭī-guda-jaṅghoru-vasti-stambhārti-bhedanam || 47 || bhojanaṃ tatra vāta-ghnaṃ svedābhyaṅgāḥ sa-vastayaḥ | pīḍyamāne 'ntarā mukte gude pratihato 'nilaḥ || 48 || uraḥ-śiro-rujaṃ sādam ūrvoś ca janayed balī | vastiḥ syāt tatra bilvādi-phala-śyāmādi-mūtra-vān || 49 || 5.49cv vastiḥ syāt tatra bilvādiḥ 5.49dv phala-śyāmādi-mūtra-vān ati-prapīḍitaḥ koṣṭhe tiṣṭhaty āyāti vā galam | tatra vastir virekaś ca gala-pīḍādi karma ca || 50 || 5.50bv tiṣṭhann āyāti vā galam vamanādyair viśuddhaṃ ca kṣāma-deha-balānalam | yathāṇḍaṃ taruṇaṃ pūrṇaṃ taila-pātraṃ yathā tathā || 51 || 5.51av karmabhir vamanādyaiś ca 5.51av vamanādyair viśuddhaṃ tu bhiṣak prayatnato rakṣet sarvasmād apacārataḥ | dadyān madhura-hṛdyāni tato 'mla-lavaṇau rasau || 52 || 5.52bv sarvasmād apavādataḥ svādu-tiktau tato bhūyaḥ kaṣāya-kaṭukau tataḥ | anyo-'nya-praty-anīkānāṃ rasānāṃ snigdha-rūkṣayoḥ || 53 || vyatyāsād upayogena kramāt taṃ prakṛtiṃ nayet | sarvaṃ-sahaḥ sthira-balo vijñeyaḥ prakṛtiṃ gataḥ || 54 || Kalpasthāna dhanve sādhāraṇe deśe same san-mṛttike śucau | śmaśāna-caityāyatana-śvabhra-valmīka-varjite || 1 || 6.1av dhanva-sādhāraṇe deśe 6.1cv śmaśāna-caityādyatana- mṛdau pradakṣiṇa-jale kuśa-rohiṣa-saṃstṛte | a-phāla-kṛṣṭe 'n-ākrānte pādapair bala-vat-taraiḥ || 2 || 6.2bv kuśa-rohiṣa-saṃskṛte śasyate bheṣajaṃ jātaṃ yuktaṃ varṇa-rasādibhiḥ | jantv-a-jagdhaṃ davā-dagdham a-vidagdhaṃ ca vaikṛtaiḥ || 3 || 6.3cv jantv-a-juṣṭaṃ davā-dagdham 6.3dv a-vijagdhaṃ ca vaikṛtaiḥ bhūtaiś chāyātapāmbv-ādyair yathā-kālaṃ ca sevitam | avagāḍha-mahā-mūlam udīcīṃ diśam āśritam || 4 || 6.4dv udīcīṃ diśam āsthitam mahendra-rāma-kṛṣṇānāṃ brāhmaṇānāṃ gavām api | tapasā tejasā vāpi praśāmyadhvaṃ śivāya vai || 4+(1) || 6.4+(1)cv tapasāṃ tejasāṃ vāpi 6.4+(1)dv praśāmyadhvaṃ śamāya vai mantreṇānena mati-mān sarvam apy auṣadhaṃ nayet || 4+(2)ab || atha kalyāṇa-caritaḥ śrāddhaḥ śucir upoṣitaḥ | gṛhṇīyād auṣadhaṃ su-sthaṃ sthitaṃ kāle ca kalpayet || 5 || sa-kṣīraṃ tad a-saṃpattāv an-atikrānta-vatsaram | ṛte guḍa-ghṛta-kṣaudra-dhānya-kṛṣṇā-viḍaṅgataḥ || 6 || 6.6cv ṛte ghṛta-guḍa-kṣaudra- payo bāṣkayaṇaṃ grāhyaṃ viṇ-mūtraṃ tac ca nī-rujām | vayo-bala-vatāṃ dhātu-piccha-śṛṅga-khurādikam || 7 || 6.7bv viṇ-mūtraṃ tac ca nī-ruji 6.7bv viṇ-mūtraṃ tac ca nī-rujam 6.7dv -puccha-śṛṅga-khurādikam 6.7dv -pitta-śṛṅga-khurādikam kaṣāya-yonayaḥ pañca rasā lavaṇa-varjitāḥ | rasaḥ kalkaḥ śṛtaḥ śītaḥ phāṇṭaś ceti prakalpanā || 8 || 6.8dv phāṇṭaś ceti prakalpanāḥ pañca-dhaiva kaṣāyāṇāṃ pūrvaṃ pūrvaṃ balādhikā | sadyaḥ-samuddhṛtāt kṣuṇṇād yaḥ sravet paṭa-pīḍitāt || 9 || 6.9av pañca caiva kaṣāyāṇāṃ 6.9bv pūrvaṃ pūrvaṃ balādhikāḥ 6.9bv pūrvaṃ pūrvaṃ balāvahāḥ 6.9cv sadyaḥ-samuddhṛta-kṣuṇṇād 6.9dv yaḥ sravet paṭa-pīḍanāt sva-rasaḥ sa samuddiṣṭaḥ kalkaḥ piṣṭo dravāplutaḥ | cūrṇo '-plutaḥ śṛtaḥ kvāthaḥ śīto rātriṃ drave sthitaḥ || 10 || 6.10dv śīto rātrau drave sthitaḥ sadyo-'bhiṣuta-pūtas tu phāṇṭas tan-māna-kalpane | yuñjyād vyādhy-ādi-balatas tathā ca vacanaṃ muneḥ || 11 || 6.11av sadyo-'bhikṣuṇṇa-pūtas tu mātrāyā na vyavasthāsti vyādhiṃ koṣṭhaṃ balaṃ vayaḥ | ālocya deśa-kālau ca yojyā tad-vac ca kalpanā || 12 || 6.12av mātrāyā nāsty avasthānaṃ 6.12bv doṣam agniṃ balaṃ vayaḥ madhyaṃ tu mānaṃ nirdiṣṭaṃ sva-rasasya catuḥ-palam | peṣyasya karṣam āloḍyaṃ tad dravasya pala-traye || 13 || 6.13av madhya-mānaṃ vinirdiṣṭaṃ kvāthaṃ dravya-pale kuryāt prasthārdhaṃ pāda-śeṣitam | śītaṃ pale palaiḥ ṣaḍbhiś caturbhis tu tato 'param || 14 || 6.14dv caturbhiś ca tato 'param 6.14dv caturbhis tu tataḥ param sneha-pāke tv a-mānoktau catur-guṇa-vivardhitam | kalka-sneha-dravaṃ yojyam adhīte śaunakaḥ punaḥ || 15 || snehe sidhyati śuddhāmbu-niḥkvātha-sva-rasaiḥ kramāt | kalkasya yojayed aṃśaṃ caturthaṃ ṣaṣṭham aṣṭamam || 16 || pṛthak sneha-samaṃ dadyāt pañca-prabhṛti tu dravam | nāṅgulī-grāhi-tā kalke na snehe 'gnau sa-śabda-tā || 17 || 6.17av dravaṃ tu pañca-prabhṛti 6.17bv pṛthak sneha-samaṃ kṣipet śuṣka-dravyaṃ yadā na syāt tadā sadyaḥ-samuddhṛtam | dvi-guṇaṃ tat prayoktavyaṃ kuḍavādi dravaṃ tathā || 17.1+1 || varṇādi-saṃpac ca yadā tadainaṃ śīghram āharet | ghṛtasya phenopaśamas tailasya tu tad-udbhavaḥ || 18 || 6.18dc tailasya ca tad-udbhavaḥ lehasya tantu-mat-tāpsu majjanaṃ saraṇaṃ na ca | pākas tu tri-vidho mandaś cikkaṇaḥ khara-cikkaṇaḥ || 19 || 6.19bv majjanaṃ śaraṇaṃ na ca mandaḥ kalka-same kiṭṭe cikkaṇo madanopame | kiñ-cit sīdati kṛṣṇe ca vartya-māne ca paścimaḥ || 20 || 6.20dv varti-māne ca paścimaḥ 6.20dv vartamāne ca paścimaḥ 6.20dv vartamāne tu paścimaḥ dagdho 'ta ūrdhvaṃ niṣkāryaḥ syād āmas tv agni-sāda-kṛt | mṛdur nasye kharo 'bhyaṅge pāne vastau ca cikkaṇaḥ || 21 || śāṇaṃ pāṇi-talaṃ muṣṭiṃ kuḍavaṃ prastham āḍhakam | droṇaṃ vahaṃ ca krama-śo vijānīyāc catur-guṇam || 22 || dvi-guṇaṃ yojayed ārdraṃ kuḍavādi tathā dravam | peṣaṇāloḍane vāri sneha-pāke ca nir-drave || 23 || kalpayet sadṛśān bhāgān pramāṇaṃ yatra noditam | kalkī-kuryāc ca bhaiṣajyam a-nirūpita-kalpanam || 24 || aṅgān-uktau tu mūlaṃ syād a-prasiddhau tad eva tu | dvau śāṇau vaṭakaḥ kolaṃ badaraṃ draṅkṣaṇaś ca tau || 25 || 6.25av a-nirdiṣṭā-prasiddheṣu 6.25bv mūlaṃ grāhyaṃ tvag-ādiṣu 6.25cv dvau śāṇau vaṭakaḥ kolo ṣaḍ vaṃśyas tu marīciḥ syāt ṣaṇ marīcyas tu sarṣapaḥ | taṇḍulaḥ sarṣapās tv aṣṭau dhānya-māṣas tu tau yavaḥ || 25.1+(1) || 6.25.1+(1)dv dhānya-māṣaś ca tau yavaḥ tāv aṇḍikā caturbhis tair māṣakaḥ śāṇakas tathā || 25.1+(2)ab || 6.25.1+(2)av tāvanto gaditā māṣāḥ 6.25.1+(2)av tais turyair guñjakā māṣas 6.25.1+(2)bv śāṇo 'yaṃ munibhiḥ smṛtaḥ 6.25.1+(2)bv turyābhiḥ śāṇakaḥ smṛtaḥ akṣaṃ picuḥ pāṇi-talaṃ suvarṇaṃ kavaḍa-grahaḥ | karṣo biḍāla-padakaṃ tindukaḥ pāṇi-mānikā || 26 || 6.26bv suvarṇaṃ kavaḍa-graham 6.26dv tindukaṃ pāṇi-mānikā śabdānya-tvam a-bhinne 'rthe śuktir aṣṭamikā picū | palaṃ prakuñco bilvaṃ ca muṣṭir āmraṃ caturthikā || 27 || 6.27av śabdān evam a-bhinne 'rthe 6.27av śabdā hy amī a-bhinne 'rthe dve pale prasṛtas tau dvāv añjalis tau tu mānikā | āḍhakaṃ bhājanaṃ kaṃso droṇaḥ kumbho ghaṭo 'rmaṇam || 28 || 6.28av dve pale prasṛtis tau dvāv tulā pala-śataṃ tāni viṃśatir bhāra ucyate | himavad-vindhya-śailābhyāṃ prāyo vyāptā vasundharā || 29 || 6.29av tulā pala-śataṃ tāsāṃ saumyaṃ pathyaṃ ca tatrādyam āgneyaṃ vaindhyam auṣadham || 29ū̆ab || 6.29ū̆av saumyaṃ tatrādyam āgneyaṃ 6.29ū̆bv vaindhyam auṣadham īritam Uttarasthāna jāta-mātraṃ viśodhyolbād bālaṃ saindhava-sarpiṣā | prasūti-kleśitaṃ cānu balā-tailena secayet || 1 || aśmanor vādanaṃ cāsya karṇa-mūle samācaret | athāsya dakṣiṇe karṇe mantram uccārayed imam || 2 || aṅgād aṅgāt saṃbhavasi hṛdayād abhijāyase | ātmā vai putra-nāmāsi saṃjīva śaradāṃ śatam || 3 || 1.3dv saṃjīva śaradaḥ śatam śatāyuḥ śata-varṣo 'si dīrgham āyur avāpnuhi | nakṣatrāṇi diśo rātrir ahaś ca tvābhirakṣatu || 4 || 1.4dv ahaś catvāri rakṣatu svasthī-bhūtasya nābhiṃ ca sūtreṇa catur-aṅgulāt | baddhvordhvaṃ vardhayitvā ca grīvāyām avasañjayet || 5 || 1.5cv baddhvordhvaṃ vardhayitvā tu 1.5dv grīvāyām avasajjayet nābhiṃ ca kuṣṭha-tailena secayet snāpayed anu | kṣīri-vṛkṣa-kaṣāyeṇa sarva-gandhodakena vā || 6 || 1.6av nābhiṃ tu kuṣṭha-tailena 1.6bv secayet snapayed anu koṣṇena tapta-rajata-tapanīya-nimajjanaiḥ | tato dakṣiṇa-tarjanyā tālūnnamyāvaguṇṭhayet || 7 || śirasi sneha-picunā prāśyaṃ cāsya prayojayet | hareṇu-mātraṃ medhāyur-balārtham abhimantritam || 8 || 1.8bv prāśaṃ cāsya prayojayet aindrī-brāhmī-vacā-śaṅkhapuṣpī-kalkaṃ ghṛtaṃ madhu | cāmīkara-vacā-brāhmī-tāpya-pathyā rajī-kṛtāḥ || 9 || 1.9dv -kuṣṭha-pathyā rajī-kṛtāḥ lihyān madhu-ghṛtopetā hema-dhātrī-rajo 'tha-vā | garbhāmbhaḥ saindhava-vatā sarpiṣā vāmayet tataḥ || 10 || 1.10cv garbhāmbhaḥ saindhava-vacā- 1.10dv -sarpiṣā vāmayet tataḥ prājāpatyena vidhinā jāta-karmāṇi kārayet | sirāṇāṃ hṛdaya-sthānāṃ vivṛta-tvāt prasūtitaḥ || 11 || tṛtīye 'hni caturthe vā strīṇāṃ stanyaṃ pravartate | prathame divase tasmāt tri-kālaṃ madhu-sarpiṣī || 12 || anantā-miśrite mantra-pāvite prāśayec chiśum | dvitīye lakṣmaṇā-siddhaṃ tṛtīye ca ghṛtaṃ tataḥ || 13 || prāṅ-niṣiddha-stanasyāsya tat-pāṇi-tala-saṃmitam | stanyānu-pānaṃ dvau kālau nava-nītaṃ prayojayet || 14 || mātur eva pibet stanyaṃ tad dhy alaṃ deha-vṛddhaye | stanya-dhātryāv ubhe kārye tad-a-saṃpadi vatsale || 15 || 1.15bv tat paraṃ deha-vṛddhaye a-vyaṅge brahma-cāriṇyau varṇa-prakṛtitaḥ same | nī-ruje madhya-vayasau jīvad-vatse na lolupe || 16 || hitāhāra-vihāreṇa yatnād upacarec ca te | śuk-krodha-laṅghanāyāsāḥ stanya-nāśasya hetavaḥ || 17 || stanyasya sīdhu-varjyāni madyāny ānūpa-jā rasāḥ | kṣīraṃ kṣīriṇya oṣadhyaḥ śokādeś ca viparyayaḥ || 18 || 1.18cv kṣīraṃ kṣīriṇy auṣadhayaḥ viruddhāhāra-bhuktāyāḥ kṣudhitāyā vi-cetasaḥ | praduṣṭa-dhātor garbhiṇyāḥ stanyaṃ roga-karaṃ śiśoḥ || 19 || 1.19av viruddhāhāra-ceṣṭāyāḥ stanyā-bhāve payaś chāgaṃ gavyaṃ vā tad-guṇaṃ pibet | hrasvena pañca-mūlena sthirābhyāṃ vā sitā-yutam || 20 || 1.20cv mūlaiḥ siddhaṃ bṛhaty-ādyaiḥ ṣaṣṭhīṃ niśāṃ viśeṣeṇa kṛta-rakṣā-bali-kriyāḥ | jāgṛyur bāndhavās tasya dadhataḥ paramāṃ mudam || 21 || daśame divase pūrṇe vidhibhiḥ sva-kulocitaiḥ | kārayet sūtikotthānaṃ nāma bālasya cārcitam || 22 || 1.22bv vidhi-vat sva-kulocitaiḥ bibhrato 'ṅgair manohvāla-rocanāguru-candanam | nakṣatra-devatā-yuktaṃ bāndhavaṃ vā samākṣaram || 23 || tataḥ prakṛti-bhedokta-rūpair āyuḥ-parīkṣaṇam | prāg-udak-śirasaḥ kuryād bālasya jñāna-vān bhiṣak || 24 || śuci-dhautopadhānāni nir-valīni mṛdūni ca | śayyāstaraṇa-vāsāṃsi rakṣo-ghnair dhūpitāni ca || 25 || kāko viśastaḥ śastaś ca dhūpane trivṛtānvitaḥ | jīvat-khaḍgādi-śṛṅgotthān sadā bālaḥ śubhān maṇīn || 26 || 1.26av kaṅko viśastaḥ śastaś ca 1.26cv jīvat-khaḍgādi-śṛṅga-sthān dhārayed auṣadhīḥ śreṣṭhāḥ brāhmy-aindrī-jīvakādikāḥ | hastābhyāṃ grīvayā mūrdhnā viśeṣāt satataṃ vacām || 27 || 1.27av dhārayec cauṣadhīḥ śreṣṭhā 1.27av dhārayed auṣadhīś ceṣṭā āyur-medhā-smṛti-svāsthya-karīṃ rakṣo-'bhirakṣiṇīm | ṣaṭ-saptāṣṭama-māseṣu nī-rujasya śubhe 'hani || 28 || 1.28cv ṣaṭ-saptāṣṭasu māseṣu karṇau himāgame vidhyed dhātry-aṅka-sthasya sāntvayan | prāg dakṣiṇaṃ kumārasya bhiṣag vāmaṃ tu yoṣitaḥ || 29 || dakṣiṇena dadhat sūcīṃ pālīm anyena pāṇinā | madhyataḥ karṇa-pīṭhasya kiñ-cid gaṇḍāśrayaṃ prati || 30 || jarāyu-mātra-pracchanne ravi-raśmy-avabhāsite | ghṛtasya niś-calaṃ samyag alaktaka-rasāṅkite || 31 || vidhyed daiva-kṛte cchidre sakṛd evarju lāghavāt | nordhvaṃ na pārśvato nādhaḥ sirās tatra hi saṃśritāḥ || 32 || kālikā-marmarī-raktās tad-vyadhād rāga-rug-jvarāḥ | sa-śopha-dāha-saṃrambha-manyā-stambhāpatānakāḥ || 33 || 1.33bv tad-bādhād rāga-rug-jvarāḥ teṣāṃ yathāmayaṃ kuryād vibhajyāśu cikitsitam | sthāne vyadhān na rudhiraṃ na rug-rāgādi-saṃbhavaḥ || 34 || 1.34cv sthāna-vyadhān na rudhiraṃ snehāktaṃ sūcy-anusyūtaṃ sūtraṃ cānu nidhāpayet | āma-tailena siñcec ca bahalāṃ tad-vad ārayā || 35 || vidhyet pālīṃ hita-bhujaḥ saṃcāryātha sthavīyasī | vartis try-ahāt tato rūḍhaṃ vardhayeta śanaiḥ śanaiḥ || 36 || 1.36bv saṃcāryānyā sthavīyasī 1.36cv vartis try-ahāt tato rūḍhāṃ athainaṃ jāta-daśanaṃ krameṇāpanayet stanāt | pūrvoktaṃ yojayet kṣīram annaṃ ca laghu bṛṃhaṇam || 37 || 1.37av jāta-dantaṃ śiśuṃ śīte 1.37bv krama-śo 'panayet stanāt priyāla-majja-madhuka-madhu-lāja-sitopalaiḥ | apa-stanasya saṃyojyaḥ prīṇano modakaḥ śiśoḥ || 38 || dīpano bāla-bilvailā-śarkarā-lāja-saktubhiḥ | saṃgrāhī dhātakī-puṣpa-śarkarā-lāja-tarpaṇaiḥ || 39 || rogāṃś cāsya jayet saumyair bheṣajair a-viṣādakaiḥ | anya-trātyayikād vyādher virekaṃ su-tarāṃ tyajet || 40 || 1.40bv bheṣajair a-viṣādikaiḥ 1.40bv bheṣajair a-vipādikaiḥ 1.40bv bheṣajair a-vipādakaiḥ trāsayen nā-vidheyaṃ taṃ trastaṃ gṛhṇanti hi grahāḥ | vastra-vātāt para-sparśāt pālayel laṅghanāc ca tam || 41 || 1.41av trāsayen nā-vidheyaṃ ca 1.41cv vastra-pātāt khara-sparśāt 1.41cv vastra-pātāt para-sparśāt 1.41dv pālayel laṅghitāc ca tam brāhmī-siddhārthaka-vacā-śārivā-kuṣṭha-saindhavaiḥ | sa-kaṇaiḥ sādhitaṃ pītaṃ vāṅ-medhā-smṛti-kṛd ghṛtam || 42 || āyuṣyaṃ pāpma-rakṣo-ghnaṃ bhūtonmāda-nibarhaṇam | vacendulekhā-maṇḍūkī-śaṅkhapuṣpī-śatāvarīḥ || 43 || 1.43cv vacendulekhā maṇḍūkī 1.43dv śaṅkhapuṣpī śatāvarī brahmasomāmṛtā-brāhmīḥ kalkī-kṛtya palāṃśikāḥ | aṣṭāṅgaṃ vipacet sarpiḥ prasthaṃ kṣīra-catur-guṇam || 44 || 1.44av brahmasomāṃrtā brāhmī 1.44bv kalkī-kṛtya palāṃśikaiḥ 1.44dv prasthaṃ kṣīraṃ catur-guṇam tat pītaṃ dhanyam āyuṣyaṃ vāṅ-medhā-smṛti-buddhi-kṛt | ajā-kṣīrābhayā-vyoṣa-pāṭhogrā-śigru-saindhavaiḥ || 45 || 1.45bv vāṅ-medhā-smṛti-kṛt param 1.45bv vāṅ-medhā-smṛti-vahni-kṛt 1.45dv -pāṭhogrā-śakra-saindhavaiḥ siddhaṃ sārasvataṃ sarpir vāṅ-medhā-smṛti-vahni-kṛt | vacāmṛtā-śaṭhī-pathyā-śaṅkhinī-vella-nāgaraiḥ || 46 || 1.46bv vāṅ-medhā-smṛti-buddhi-kṛt 1.46cv vacāmṛtā-varī-pathyā- apāmārgeṇa ca ghṛtaṃ sādhitaṃ pūrva-vad guṇaiḥ | hema śveta-vacā kuṣṭham arkapuṣpī sa-kāñcanā || 47 || 1.47cv hema śveta-vacā kuṣṭhaṃ 1.47dv śaṅkhapuṣpī sa-kāñcanā 1.47dv śaṅkhapuṣpī sa-rocanā hema matsyākṣakaḥ śaṅkhaḥ kaiḍaryaḥ kanakaṃ vacā | catvāra ete pādoktāḥ prāśā madhu-ghṛta-plutāḥ || 48 || 1.48av hema matsyākṣakaḥ phañjī 1.48bv kaiḍaryaṃ kanakaṃ vacā 1.48dv prāśyā madhu-ghṛta-plutāḥ varṣaṃ līḍhā vapur-medhā-bala-varṇa-karāḥ śubhāḥ | vacā-yaṣṭy-āhva-sindhūttha-pathyā-nāgara-dīpyakaiḥ || 49 || śudhyate vāg ghavir-līḍhaiḥ sa-kuṣṭha-kaṇa-jīrakaiḥ || 49ū̆ab || 1.49ū̆av śudhyate vāg ghṛtālīḍhaiḥ Uttarasthāna tri-vidhaḥ kathito bālaḥ kṣīrānnobhaya-vartanaḥ | svāsthyaṃ tābhyām a-duṣṭābhyāṃ duṣṭābhyāṃ roga-saṃbhavaḥ || 1 || yad adbhir eka-tāṃ yāti na ca doṣair adhiṣṭhitam | tad viśuddhaṃ payo vātād duṣṭaṃ tu plavate 'mbhasi || 2 || 2.2dv duṣṭaṃ tu plavate jale kaṣāyaṃ phenilaṃ rūkṣaṃ varco-mūtra-vibandha-kṛt | pittād uṣṇāmla-kaṭukaṃ pīta-rājy apsu dāha-kṛt || 3 || kaphāt sa-lavaṇaṃ sāndraṃ jale majjati picchilam | saṃsṛṣṭa-liṅgaṃ saṃsargāt tri-liṅgaṃ sāṃnipātikam || 4 || yathā-sva-liṅgāṃs tad vyādhīn janayaty upayojitam | śiśos tīkṣṇam abhīkṣṇaṃ ca rodanāl lakṣayed rujam || 5 || 2.5cv śiśos tīkṣṇam a-tīkṣṇaṃ ca sa yaṃ spṛśed bhṛśaṃ deśaṃ yatra ca sparśanā-kṣamaḥ | tatra vidyād rujaṃ mūrdhni rujaṃ cākṣi-nimīlanāt || 6 || 2.6av svayaṃ spṛśed bhṛśaṃ deśaṃ 2.6bv yatra ca sparśanā-kṣamam hṛdi jihvauṣṭha-daśana-śvāsa-muṣṭi-nipīḍanaiḥ | koṣṭhe vibandha-vamathu-stana-daṃśāntra-kūjanaiḥ || 7 || 2.7bv -śvāsa-muṣṭi-nipīḍitaiḥ 2.7dv -stanya-dveṣāntra-kūjanaiḥ ādhmāna-pṛṣṭha-namana-jaṭharonnamanair api | vastau guhye ca viṇ-mūtra-saṅgottrāsa-dig-īkṣaṇaiḥ || 8 || atha dhātryāḥ kriyāṃ kuryād yathā-doṣaṃ yathāmayam | tatra vātātmake stanye daśa-mūlaṃ try-ahaṃ pibet || 9 || atha-vāgni-vacā-pāṭhā-kaṭukā-kuṣṭha-dīpyakam | sa-bhārgī-dāru-sarala-vṛścikālī-kaṇoṣaṇam || 10 || tataḥ pibed anya-tamaṃ vāta-vyādhi-haraṃ ghṛtam | anu cāccha-surām evaṃ snigdhāṃ mṛdu virecayet || 11 || 2.11bv vāta-vyādhi-hitaṃ ghṛtam vasti-karma tataḥ kuryāt svedādīṃś cānilāpahān | rāsnājamodā-sarala-devadāru-rajo-'nvitam || 12 || bālo lihyād ghṛtaṃ tair vā vipakvaṃ sa-sitopalam | pitta-duṣṭe 'mṛtābhīru-paṭolī-nimba-candanam || 13 || dhātrī kumāraś ca pibet kvāthayitvā sa-śārivam | atha-vā tri-phalā-musta-bhūnimba-kaṭu-rohiṇīḥ || 14 || śārivādiṃ paṭolādiṃ padmakādiṃ tathā gaṇam | ghṛtāny ebhiś ca siddhāni pitta-ghnaṃ ca virecanam || 15 || śītāṃś cābhyaṅga-lepādīn yuñjyāc chleṣmātmake punaḥ | yaṣṭy-āhva-saindhava-yutaṃ kumāraṃ pāyayed ghṛtam || 16 || sindhūttha-pippalī-mad vā piṣṭaiḥ kṣaudra-yutair atha | rāṭha-puṣpaiḥ stanau limpec chiśoś ca daśana-cchadau || 17 || 2.17av sindhūttha-pippalī-madya- 2.17av sindhūttha-pippalī-mustā- 2.17av sindhūttha-pippalī-mūrvā- 2.17bv -piṣṭaiḥ kṣaudra-yutair atha sukham evaṃ vamed bālaḥ tīkṣṇair dhātrīṃ tu vāmayet | athācarita-saṃsargī mustādiṃ kvathitaṃ pibet || 18 || tad-vat tagara-pṛthvīkā-suradāru-kaliṅgakān | atha-vātiviṣā-musta-ṣaḍgranthā-pañca-kolakam || 19 || 2.19bv -suradāru-kaliṅgakam 2.19dv -ṣaḍgranthā-pañca-kolakān stanye tri-doṣa-maline dur-gandhy āmaṃ jalopamam | vibaddham acchaṃ vicchinnaṃ phenilaṃ copaveśyate || 20 || śakṛn nānā-vyathā-varṇaṃ mūtraṃ pītaṃ sitaṃ ghanam | jvarā-rocaka-tṛṭ-chardi-śuṣkodgāra-vijṛmbhikāḥ || 21 || aṅga-bhaṅgo 'ṅga-vikṣepaḥ kūjanaṃ vepathur bhramaḥ | ghrāṇākṣi-mukha-pākādyā jāyante 'nye 'pi taṃ gadam || 22 || 2.22bv kvaṇanaṃ vepathur bhramaḥ kṣīrālasakam ity āhur atyayaṃ cāti-dāruṇam | tatrāśu dhātrīṃ bālaṃ ca vamanenopapādayet || 23 || vihitāyāṃ ca saṃsargyāṃ vacādiṃ yojayed gaṇam | niśādiṃ vātha-vā mādrī-pāṭhā-tiktā-ghanāmayān || 24 || pāṭhā-śuṇṭhy-amṛtā-tikta-tiktā-devāhva-śārivāḥ | sa-musta-mūrvendrayavāḥ stanya-doṣa-harāḥ param || 25 || anubandhe yathā-vyādhi pratikurvīta kāla-vit | dantodbhedaś ca rogāṇāṃ sarveṣām api kāraṇam || 26 || viśeṣāj jvara-viḍ-bheda-kāsa-cchardi-śiro-rujām | abhiṣyandasya pothakyā visarpasya ca jāyate || 27 || pṛṣṭha-bhaṅge biḍālānāṃ barhiṇāṃ ca śikhodbhave | dantodbhede ca bālānāṃ na hi kiñ-cin na dūyate || 28 || 2.28cv dantodbhave ca bālānāṃ yathā-doṣaṃ yathā-rogaṃ yathodrekaṃ yathā-bhayam | vibhajya deśa-kālādīṃs tatra yojyaṃ bhiṣag-jitam || 29 || 2.29bv yathodrekaṃ yathā-balam 2.29bv yathodrekaṃ yathā-vayaḥ 2.29bv yathodrekaṃ yathāśayam ta eva doṣā dūṣyāś ca jvarādyā vyādhayaś ca yat | atas tad eva bhaiṣajyaṃ mātrā tv asya kanīyasī || 30 || 2.30bv jvarādyā vyādhayaś ca te saukumāryālpa-kāya-tvāt sarvānnān-upasevanāt | snigdhā eva sadā bālā ghṛta-kṣīra-niṣevaṇāt || 31 || 2.31bv sarvānnān-upasevanaiḥ sadyas tān vamanaṃ tasmāt pāyayen mati-mān mṛdu | stanyasya tṛptaṃ vamayet kṣīra-kṣīrānna-sevinam || 32 || pīta-vantaṃ tanuṃ peyām annādaṃ ghṛta-saṃyutām | vastiṃ sādhye virekeṇa marśena pratimarśanam || 33 || yuñjyād virecanādīṃs tu dhātryā eva yathoditān | mūrvā-vyoṣa-varā-kola-jambū-tvag-dāru-sarṣapāḥ || 34 || 2.34av yuñjyād virecanādīṃś ca 2.34cv mūrvā-vyoṣa-vacā-kola- 2.34cv mūrvā-vyoṣa-varāṅkolla- sa-pāṭhā madhunā līḍhāḥ stanya-doṣa-harāḥ param | danta-pālīṃ sa-madhunā cūrṇena pratisārayet || 35 || 2.35bv stanya-doṣa-nibarhaṇāḥ pippalyā dhātakī-puṣpa-dhātrī-phala-kṛtena vā | lāva-tittiri-vallūra-rajaḥ puṣpa-rasa-drutam || 36 || 2.36bv -dhātrī-phala-rasena vā 2.36dv -rajaḥ puṣpa-rasa-plutam 2.36dv -rajaḥ puṣpa-rasāplutam drutaṃ karoti bālānāṃ danta-kesara-van mukham | vacā-dvi-bṛhatī-pāṭhā-kaṭukātiviṣā-ghanaiḥ || 37 || madhuraiś ca ghṛtaṃ siddhaṃ siddhaṃ daśana-janmani | rajanī-dāru-sarala-śreyasī-bṛhatī-dvayam || 38 || 2.38cv rajanī-dāru-saralāḥ 2.38dv śreyasī-bṛhatī-dvayam pṛśniparṇī śatāhvā ca līḍhaṃ mākṣika-sarpiṣā | grahaṇī-dīpanaṃ śreṣṭhaṃ mārutasyānulomanam || 39 || atīsāra-jvara-śvāsa-kāmalā-pāṇḍu-kāsa-nut | bālasya sarva-rogeṣu pūjitaṃ bala-varṇa-dam || 40 || 2.40bv -kāmalā-pāṇḍu-roga-nut samaṅgā-dhātakī-lodhra-kuṭannaṭa-balā-dvayaiḥ | mahā-sahā-kṣudra-sahā-mudga-bilva-śalāṭubhiḥ || 41 || 2.41bv -kuṭannaṭa-balāhvayaiḥ 2.41bv -kuṭannaṭa-vaṭāhvayaiḥ sa-kārpāsī-phalais toye sādhitaiḥ sādhitaṃ ghṛtam | kṣīra-mastu-yutaṃ hanti śīghraṃ dantodbhavodbhavān || 42 || vividhān āmayān etad vṛddha-kāśyapa-nirmitam | dantodbhaveṣu rogeṣu na bālam atiyantrayet || 43 || 2.43cv dantodbhedottha-rogeṣu svayam apy upaśāmyanti jāta-dantasya yad-gadāḥ | aty-ahaḥ-svapna-śītāmbu-ślaiṣmika-stanya-sevinaḥ || 44 || 2.44dv -ślaiṣmika-stanya-pāyinaḥ śiśoḥ kaphena ruddheṣu srotaḥsu rasa-vāhiṣu | a-rocakaḥ pratiśyāyo jvaraḥ kāsaś ca jāyate || 45 || kumāraḥ śuṣyati tataḥ snigdha-śukla-mukhekṣaṇaḥ | saindhava-vyoṣa-śārṅgaṣṭā-pāṭhā-giri-kadambakān || 46 || 2.46dv -pāṭhā-giri-kadambakam śuṣyato madhu-sarpirbhyām a-rucy-ādiṣu yojayet | aśoka-rohiṇī-yuktaṃ pañca-kolaṃ ca cūrṇitam || 47 || badarī-dhātakī-dhātrī-cūrṇaṃ vā sarpiṣā drutam | sthirā-vacā-dvi-bṛhatī-kākolī-pippalī-nataiḥ || 48 || 2.48bv -cūrṇaṃ vā sarpiṣāplutam niculotpala-varṣābhū-bhārgī-mustaiś ca kārṣikaiḥ | siddhaṃ prasthārdham ājyasya srotasāṃ śodhanaṃ param || 49 || siṃhy-aśvagandhā-surasā-kaṇā-garbhaṃ ca tad-guṇam | yaṣṭy-āhva-pippalī-lodhra-padmakotpala-candanaiḥ || 50 || tālīśa-śārivābhyāṃ ca sādhitaṃ śoṣa-jid ghṛtam | śṛṅgī-madhūlikā-bhārgī-pippalī-devadārubhiḥ || 51 || aśvagandhā-dvi-kākolī-rāsnarṣabhaka-jīvakaiḥ | śūrpaparṇī-viḍaṅgaiś ca kalkitaiḥ sādhitaṃ ghṛtam || 52 || śaśottamāṅga-niryūhe śuṣyataḥ puṣṭi-kṛt param | vacā-vayaḥsthā-tagara-kāyasthā-corakaiḥ śṛtam || 53 || basta-mūtra-surābhyāṃ ca tailam abhyañjane hitam | lākṣā-rasa-samaṃ taila-prasthaṃ mastu catur-guṇam || 54 || 2.54bv tailān mastu catur-guṇam 2.54cv lākṣā-rasa-samaṃ tailaṃ 2.54dv prasthaṃ mastu catur-guṇam aśvagandhā-niśā-dāru-kauntī-kuṣṭhābda-candanaiḥ | sa-mūrvā-rohiṇī-rāsnā-śatāhvā-madhukaiḥ samaiḥ || 55 || siddhaṃ lākṣādikaṃ nāma tailam abhyañjanād idam | balyaṃ jvara-kṣayonmāda-śvāsāpasmāra-vāta-nut || 56 || yakṣa-rākṣasa-bhūta-ghnaṃ garbhiṇīnāṃ ca śasyate | madhunātiviṣā-śṛṅgī-pippalīr lehayec chiśum || 57 || ekāṃ vātiviṣāṃ kāsa-jvara-cchardir-upadrutam | pītaṃ pītaṃ vamati yaḥ stanyaṃ taṃ madhu-sarpiṣā || 58 || 2.58bv -jvara-cchardibhir arditam 2.58cv pītaṃ pītaṃ ca vamati 2.58dv yaḥ stanyaṃ madhu-sarpiṣā dvi-vārtākī-phala-rasaṃ pañca-kolaṃ ca lehayet | pippalī-pañca-lavaṇaṃ kṛmijit-pāribhadrakam || 59 || 2.59cv pippalī-pañca-lavaṇa- 2.59dv -kṛmijit-pāribhadrakam 2.59dv viḍaṅgaṃ pāribhadrakam tad-val lihyāt tathā vyoṣaṃ maṣīṃ vā roma-carmaṇām | lābhataḥ śalyaka-śvāvid-godharkṣa-śikhi-janmanām || 60 || khadirārjuna-tālīśa-kuṣṭha-candana-je rase | sa-kṣīraṃ sādhitaṃ sarpir vamathuṃ viniyacchati || 61 || hanu-mūla-gato vāyur danta-deśāsthi-go-caraḥ | yadā śiśoḥ prakupito nottiṣṭhanti tadā dvi-jāḥ || 61+(1) || 2.61+(1)av hanu-mūlāśrito vāyur 2.61+(1)bv danta-deśān viśoṣayet 2.61+(1)bv danta-deśān viśodhayet rūkṣāśino vātikasya cālayaty anilaḥ sirāḥ | hanv-āśrayāḥ prasuptasya dantaiḥ śabdaṃ karoty ataḥ || 61+(2) || sa-danto jāyate yas tu dantāḥ prāg yasya cottarāḥ | kurvīta tasminn utpāte śāntiṃ taṃ ca dvi-jātaye || 62 || 2.62dv śāntikaṃ ca dvi-jātaye dadyāt sa-dakṣiṇaṃ bālaṃ naigameṣaṃ ca pūjayet | tālu-māṃse kaphaḥ kruddhaḥ kurute tālu-kaṇṭakam || 63 || 2.63bv sainikeśaṃ ca pūjayet tena tālu-pradeśasya nimna-tā mūrdhni jāyate | tālu-pātaḥ stana-dveṣaḥ kṛcchrāt pānaṃ śakṛd-dravam || 64 || tṛḍ-āsya-kaṇḍv-akṣi-rujā grīvā-dur-dhara-tā vamiḥ | tatrotkṣipya yava-kṣāra-kṣaudrābhyāṃ pratisārayet || 65 || tālu tad-vat kaṇā-śuṇṭhī-go-śakṛd-rasa-saindhavaiḥ | śṛṅgavera-niśā-bhṛṅgaṃ kalkitaṃ vaṭa-pallavaiḥ || 66 || baddhvā go-śakṛtā liptam kukūle svedayet tataḥ | rasena limpet tālv-āsyaṃ netre ca pariṣecayet || 67 || harītakī-vacā-kuṣṭha-kalkaṃ mākṣika-saṃyutam | pītvā kumāraḥ stanyena mucyate tālu-kaṇṭakāt || 68 || malopalepāt svedād vā gude rakta-kaphodbhavaḥ | tāmro vraṇo 'ntaḥ kaṇḍū-mān jāyate bhūry-upadravaḥ || 69 || ke-cit taṃ mātṛkā-doṣaṃ vadanty anye 'hi-pūtanam | pṛṣṭhārur guda-kuṭṭaṃ ca ke-cic ca tam a-nāmikam || 70 || 2.70av ke-cic ca tam a-nāmakam 2.70bv vadanty anye 'pi pūtanam 2.70bv vadanty anye tu pūtanam 2.70bc vadanty anye hi pūtanam 2.70cv pṛṣṭhārur guda-kaṇḍūṃ ca 2.70cv pṛṣṭhārur guda-kiṭṭaṃ ca 2.70cv pṛṣṭhārur guda-kuṣṭhaṃ ca tatra dhātryāḥ payaḥ śodhyaṃ pitta-śleṣma-harauṣadhaiḥ | śṛta-śītaṃ ca śītāmbu-yuktam antara-pānakam || 71 || 2.71cv sita-śītaṃ ca śītāmbu- sa-kṣaudra-tārkṣya-śailena vraṇaṃ tena ca lepayet | tri-phalā-badarī-plakṣa-tvak-kvātha-pariṣecitam || 72 || kāsīsa-rocanā-tuttha-manohvāla-rasāñjanaiḥ | lepayed amla-piṣṭair vā cūrṇitair vāvacūrṇayet || 73 || su-ślakṣṇair atha-vā yaṣṭī-śaṅkha-sauvīrakāñjanaiḥ | śārivā-śaṅkhanābhibhyām asanasya tvacātha-vā || 74 || rāga-kaṇḍūtkaṭe kuryād rakta-srāvaṃ jalaukasā | sarvaṃ ca pitta-vraṇa-jic chasyate guda-kuṭṭake || 75 || 2.75dv chasyate guda-kiṭṭake pāṭhā-vella-dvi-rajanī-musta-bhārgī-punarnavaiḥ | sa-bilva-try-ūṣaṇaiḥ sarpiḥ vṛścikālī-yutaiḥ śṛtam || 76 || lihāno mātrayā rogair mucyate mṛttikodbhavaiḥ || 77ab || vyādher yady asya bhaiṣajyaṃ stanas tena pralepitaḥ || 77cd || sthito muhūrtaṃ dhauto 'nu pītas taṃ taṃ jayed gadam || 77ef || 2.77fv pītas tat taṃ jayed gadam Uttarasthāna purā guhasya rakṣārthaṃ nirmitāḥ śūla-pāṇinā | manuṣya-vigrahāḥ pañca sapta strī-vigrahā grahāḥ || 1 || skando viśākho meṣākhyaḥ śva-grahaḥ pitṛ-saṃjñitaḥ | śakuniḥ pūtanā śīta-pūtanā-dṛṣṭi-pūtanā || 2 || 3.2av skando viśākho meṣāsyaḥ mukha-maṇḍitikā tad-vad revatī śuṣka-revatī | teṣāṃ grahīṣyatāṃ rūpaṃ pratataṃ rodanaṃ jvaraḥ || 3 || 3.3av mukha-maṇḍanikā tad-vad 3.3av mukha-maṇḍinikā tad-vad sāmānyaṃ rūpam uttrāsa-jṛmbhā-bhrū-kṣepa-dīna-tāḥ | phena-srāvordhva-dṛṣṭy-oṣṭha-danta-daṃśa-prajāgarāḥ || 4 || 3.4bv -jṛmbhā-bhrūtkṣepa-dīna-tāḥ rodanaṃ kūjanaṃ stanya-vidveṣaḥ svara-vaikṛtam | nakhair a-kasmāt paritaḥ sva-dhātry-aṅga-vilekhanam || 5 || tatraika-nayana-srāvī śiro vikṣipate muhuḥ | hataika-pakṣaḥ stabdhāṅgaḥ sa-svedo nata-kandharaḥ || 6 || 3.6bv śiro vikṣepate muhuḥ 3.6bv śiro vikṣipyate muhuḥ danta-khādī stana-dveṣī trasyan roditi vi-svaram | vakra-vaktro vaman lālāṃ bhṛśam ūrdhvaṃ nirīkṣate || 7 || 3.7bv trasan roditi vi-svaram 3.7cv vakra-vaktro vamel lālāṃ vasāsṛg-gandhir udvigno baddha-muṣṭi-śakṛc chiśuḥ | calitaikākṣi-gaṇḍa-bhrūḥ saṃraktobhaya-locanaḥ || 8 || skandārtas tena vaikalyaṃ maraṇaṃ vā bhaved dhruvam | saṃjñā-nāśo muhuḥ keśa-luñcanaṃ kandharā-natiḥ || 9 || 3.9bv maraṇaṃ vā bhaved drutam 3.9cv saṃjñā-nāśo bhavet keśa- vinamya jṛmbhamāṇasya śakṛn-mūtra-pravartanam | phenodvamanam ūrdhvekṣā hasta-bhrū-pāda-nartanam || 10 || stana-sva-jihvā-saṃdaṃśa-saṃrambha-jvara-jāgarāḥ | pūya-śoṇita-gandhaś ca skandāpasmāra-lakṣaṇam || 11 || ādhmānaṃ pāṇi-pādasya spandanaṃ phena-nirvamaḥ | tṛṇ-muṣṭi-bandhātīsāra-svara-dainya-vi-varṇa-tāḥ || 12 || 3.12av ādhmānaṃ pāṇi-pādāsya- 3.12bv -spandanaṃ phena-nirvamaḥ 3.12bv spandanaṃ phena-nirgamaḥ 3.12bv spandanaṃ hananaṃ bhramaḥ kūjanaṃ stananaṃ chardiḥ kāsa-hidhmā-prajāgarāḥ | oṣṭha-daṃśāṅga-saṃkoca-stambha-bastābha-gandha-tāḥ || 13 || 3.13av kūjanaṃ śvasanaṃ chardiḥ 3.13av kūjanaṃ stambhanaṃ chardiḥ 3.13av kūjanaṃ svananaṃ chardiḥ ūrdhvaṃ nirīkṣya hasanaṃ madhye vinamanaṃ jvaraḥ | mūrchaika-netra-śophaś ca naigameṣa-grahākṛtiḥ || 14 || kampo hṛṣita-roma-tvaṃ svedaś cakṣur-nimīlanam | bahir-āyāmanaṃ jihvā-daṃśo 'ntaḥ-kaṇṭha-kūjanam || 15 || 3.15av kampo harṣita-roma-tvaṃ dhāvanaṃ viṭ-sa-gandha-tvaṃ krośanaṃ ca śva-vac chuni | roma-harṣo muhus trāsaḥ sahasā rodanaṃ jvaraḥ || 16 || 3.16bv krośanaṃ śvāna-vac chuni 3.16cv roma-harṣo muhuḥ śvāsaḥ kāsātīsāra-vamathu-jṛmbhā-tṛṭ-śava-gandha-tāḥ | aṅgeṣv ākṣepa-vikṣepa-śoṣa-stambha-vi-varṇa-tāḥ || 17 || muṣṭi-bandhaḥ srutiś cākṣṇor bālasya syuḥ pitṛ-grahe | srastāṅga-tvam atīsāro jihvā-tālu-gale vraṇāḥ || 18 || sphoṭāḥ sa-dāha-ruk-pākāḥ saṃdhiṣu syuḥ punaḥ punaḥ | niśy ahni pravilīyante pāko vaktre gude 'pi vā || 19 || bhayaṃ śakuni-gandha-tvaṃ jvaraś ca śakuni-grahe | pūtanāyāṃ vamiḥ kampas tandrā rātrau prajāgaraḥ || 20 || hidhmādhmānaṃ śakṛd-bhedaḥ pipāsā mūtra-nigrahaḥ | srasta-hṛṣṭāṅga-roma-tvaṃ kāka-vat pūti-gandhi-tā || 21 || śīta-pūtanayā kampo rodanaṃ tiryag-īkṣaṇam | tṛṣṇāntra-kūjo 'tīsāro vasā-vad visra-gandha-tā || 22 || pārśvasyaikasya śīta-tvam uṣṇa-tvam aparasya ca | andha-pūtanayā chardir jvaraḥ kāso 'lpa-nidra-tā || 23 || 3.23dv jvaraḥ kāso 'lpa-vahni-tā varcaso bheda-vaivarṇya-daurgandhyāny aṅga-śoṣaṇam | dṛṣṭeḥ sādāti-ruk-kaṇḍū-pothakī-janma-śūna-tāḥ || 24 || 3.24cv dṛṣṭi-prasādo ruk-kaṇḍū- 3.24cv dṛṣṭi-sādo 'kṣi-ruk-kaṇḍū- 3.24cv dṛṣṭi-sādo 'ti-ruk kaṇḍūḥ 3.24cv dṛṣṭi-sādo 'ti-ruk-kaṇḍū- 3.24cv dṛṣṭeḥ sādo 'kṣi-ruk-kaṇḍū- 3.24dv pothakī-janma śūna-tā 3.24dv -pothakī-janma śūna-tā 3.24dv -pothakī-janma śūnya-tā hidhmodvega-stana-dveṣa-vaivarṇya-svara-tīkṣṇa-tāḥ | vepathur matsya-gandha-tvam atha-vā sāmla-gandha-tā || 25 || 3.25bv -vaivarṇyaṃ svara-tīkṣṇa-tā 3.25cv vamathur matsya-gandha-tvam mukha-maṇḍitayā pāṇi-pādāsya-ramaṇīya-tā | sirābhir asitābhābhir ācitodara-tā jvaraḥ || 26 || 3.26av mukha-maṇḍikayā pāṇi- 3.26bv -pādasya ramaṇīya-tā a-rocako 'ṅga-glapanaṃ go-mūtra-sama-gandha-tā | revatyāṃ śyāva-nīla-tvaṃ karṇa-nāsākṣi-mardanam || 27 || 3.27cv revatyā śyāva-nīla-tvaṃ kāsa-hidhmākṣi-vikṣepa-vakra-vaktra-tva-rakta-tāḥ | basta-gandho jvaraḥ śoṣaḥ purīṣaṃ haritaṃ dravam || 28 || jāyate śuṣka-revatyāṃ kramāt sarvāṅga-saṃkṣayaḥ | keśa-śāto 'nna-vidveṣaḥ svara-dainyaṃ vi-varṇa-tā || 29 || 3.29av jāyate śuṣka-revatyā nānā-varṇa-purīṣa-tvam udare granthayaḥ sirāḥ || 29+1ab || rodanaṃ gṛdhra-gandha-tvaṃ dīrgha-kālānuvartanam | udare granthayo vṛttā yasya nānā-vidhaṃ śakṛt || 30 || jihvāyā nimna-tā madhye śyāvaṃ tālu ca taṃ tyajet | bhuñjāno 'nnaṃ bahu-vidhaṃ yo bālaḥ parihīyate || 31 || 3.31av jihvāyāṃ nimna-tā madhye tṛṣṇā-gṛhītaḥ kṣāmākṣo hanti taṃ śuṣka-revatī | hiṃsā-raty-arcanākāṅkṣā graha-grahaṇa-kāraṇam || 32 || tatra hiṃsātmake bālo mahān vā sruta-nāsikaḥ | kṣata-jihvaḥ kvaṇed bāḍham a-sukhī sāśru-locanaḥ || 33 || 3.33cv kṣata-jihvaḥ kvaṇan bāḍham 3.33cv kṣata-jihvaḥ kvaṇed gāḍham 3.33cv kṣata-jihvo vamed bāḍham 3.33dv a-sukhī sāsra-locanaḥ dur-varṇo hīna-vacanaḥ pūti-gandhiś ca jāyate | kṣāmo mūtra-purīṣaṃ svaṃ mṛdnāti na jugupsate || 34 || 3.34bv pūti-gandhis tu jāyate 3.34dv gṛhṇāti na jugupsate hastau codyamya saṃrabdho hanty ātmānaṃ tathā param | tad-vac ca śastra-kāṣṭhādyair agniṃ vā dīptam āviśet || 35 || 3.35av hastau codyamya saṃkruddho apsu majjet patet kūpe kuryād anyac ca tad-vidham | tṛḍ-dāha-mohān pūyasya cchardanaṃ ca pravartayet || 36 || 3.36cv tṛḍ-dāha-mohāḥ pūyasya raktaṃ ca sarva-mārgebhyo riṣṭotpattiṃ ca taṃ tyajet | rahaḥ-strī-rati-saṃlāpa-gandha-srag-bhūṣaṇa-priyaḥ || 37 || 3.37bv riṣṭotpattiś ca taṃ tyajet hṛṣṭaḥ śāntaś ca duḥ-sādhyo rati-kāmena pīḍitaḥ | dīnaḥ parimṛśan vaktraṃ śuṣkauṣṭha-gala-tālukaḥ || 38 || 3.38cv dīnaḥ parimṛśed vaktraṃ śaṅkitaṃ vīkṣate rauti dhyāyaty āyāti dīna-tām | annam annābhilāṣe 'pi dattaṃ nāti bubhukṣate || 39 || gṛhītaṃ bali-kāmena taṃ vidyāt sukha-sādhanam | hantu-kāmaṃ jayed dhomaiḥ siddha-mantra-pravartitaiḥ || 40 || 3.40av gṛhītaṃ maha-kāmena itarau tu yathā-kāmaṃ rati-baly-ādi-dānataḥ | atha sādhya-grahaṃ bālaṃ vivikte śaraṇe sthitam || 41 || trir ahnaḥ sikta-saṃmṛṣṭe sadā saṃnihitānale | vikīrṇa-bhūti-kusuma-pattra-bījānna-sarṣape || 42 || 3.42av trir ahnaṃ sikta-saṃmṛṣṭe 3.42av trir ahnaḥ sikta-saṃsṛṣṭe 3.42av trir ahni sikta-saṃmṛṣṭe 3.42av trir ahni sikta-saṃsṛṣṭe 3.42cv vikīrṇa-bhūri-kusuma- rakṣo-ghna-taila-jvalita-pradīpa-hata-pāpmani | vyavāya-madya-piśita-nivṛtta-paricārake || 43 || 3.43bv -pradīpe hata-pāpmani purāṇa-sarpiṣābhyaktaṃ pariṣiktaṃ sukhāmbunā | sādhitena balā-nimba-vaijayantī-nṛpadrumaiḥ || 44 || pāribhadraka-kaṭvaṅga-jambū-varuṇa-kaṭtṛṇaiḥ | kapotavaṅkāpāmārga-pāṭalā-madhu-śigrubhiḥ || 45 || 3.45dv -pāṭalī-madhuśigrubhiḥ 3.45dv -mālatī-madhuśigrubhiḥ kākajaṅghā-mahāśvetā-kapittha-kṣīri-pādapaiḥ | sa-kadamba-karañjaiś ca dhūpaṃ snātasya cācaret || 46 || 3.46bv -kapittha-kṣīra-pādapaiḥ dvīpi-vyāghrāhi-siṃharkṣa-carmabhir ghṛta-miśritaiḥ | pūti-daśāṅga-siddhārtha-vacā-bhallāta-dīpyakaiḥ || 47 || 3.47cv pūti-daśāṅgī-siddhārtha- sa-kuṣṭhaiḥ sa-ghṛtair dhūpaḥ sarva-graha-vimokṣaṇaḥ | sarṣapā nimba-pattrāṇi mūlam aśvakhurā vacā || 48 || 3.48av sa-kuṣṭhaiḥ sādhito dhūpaḥ 3.48dv mūtram aśvakhurā vacā 3.48dv mūlam aśvakhuraṃ vacā bhūrja-pattraṃ ghṛtaṃ dhūpaḥ sarva-graha-nivāraṇaḥ | anantāmrāsthi-tagaraṃ maricaṃ madhuro gaṇaḥ || 49 || 3.49bv sarva-graha-nibarhaṇaḥ 3.49cv anantāmrāsthi-tagara- 3.49dv -maricaṃ madhuro gaṇaḥ śṛgālavinnā mustā ca kalkitais tair ghṛtaṃ pacet | daśa-mūla-rasa-kṣīra-yuktaṃ tad graha-jit param || 50 || rāsnā-dvy-aṃśumatī-vṛddha-pañca-mūla-balā-ghanāt | kvāthe sarpiḥ pacet piṣṭaiḥ śārivā-vyoṣa-citrakaiḥ || 51 || 3.51av rāsnā-dvy-aṃśumatī-pattra- 3.51av rāsnā-dvy-aṃśumatī-lodhra- 3.51bv -pañca-mūla-vacā-ghanāt pāṭhā-viḍaṅga-madhuka-payasyā-hiṅgu-dārubhiḥ | sa-granthikaiḥ sendrayavaiḥ śiśos tat satataṃ hitam || 52 || 3.52dv śiśos tu satataṃ hitam sarva-roga-graha-haraṃ dīpanaṃ bala-varṇa-dam | śārivā-surabhi-brāhmī-śaṅkhinī-kuṣṭha-sarṣapaiḥ || 53 || 3.53bv dīpanaṃ bala-vardhanam 3.53dv -śaṅkhinī-kṛṣṇa-sarṣapaiḥ vacāśvagandhā-surasa-yuktaiḥ sarpir vipācayet | tan nāśayed grahān sarvān pānenābhyañjanena ca || 54 || 3.54av vacāśvagandhā-surasā- go-śṛṅga-carma-vālāhi-nirmokaṃ vṛṣa-daṃśa-viṭ | nimba-pattrājya-kaṭukā-madanaṃ bṛhatī-dvayam || 55 || 3.55av go-śṛṅga-carma-vālāsthi- 3.55av go-śṛṅga-roma-vālāhi- kārpāsāsthi-yava-cchāga-roma-devāhva-sarṣapam | mayūra-pattra-śrīvāsaṃ tuṣa-keśaṃ sa-rāmaṭham || 56 || 3.56av kārpāsāsthi-yava-vacā- 3.56av kārpāsāsthi-vacā-bilva- 3.56av kārpāsāsthi-vacā-lodhra- 3.56av mayūra-piccha-śrīvāsa- 3.56av mayūra-piccha-śrīvāsaṃ 3.56bv -lodhra-devāhva-sarṣapam 3.56bv -devāhvaṃ yava-sarṣapam 3.56cv mayūra-pattra-śrīvāsa- 3.56dv -nara-keśaṃ sa-rāmaṭham mṛd-bhāṇḍe basta-mūtreṇa bhāvitaṃ ślakṣṇa-cūrṇitam | dhūpanaṃ ca hitaṃ sarva-bhūteṣu viṣama-jvare || 57 || 3.57cv dhūpanārthaṃ hitaṃ sarva- ghṛtāni bhūta-vidyāyāṃ vakṣyante yāni tāni ca | yuñjyāt tathā baliṃ homaṃ snapanaṃ mantra-tantra-vit || 58 || pūti-karañja-tvak-pattraṃ kṣīribhyo barbarād api | tumbī-viśālāraluka-śamī-bilva-kapitthataḥ || 59 || 3.59av pūti-karañja-tvak-pattra- 3.59av pūti-karañjāt tvak-pattraṃ 3.59bv -kṣīribhyo vedarād api 3.59bv -mūlebhyo barbarād api 3.59bv -mūlebhyo vardharād api 3.59dv -śamī-bilva-kapitthakam utkvāthya toyaṃ tad rātrau bālānāṃ snapanaṃ śivam | anubandhān yathā-kṛcchraṃ grahāpāye 'py upadravān || 60 || 3.60dv graha-vyāpady upadravān bālāmaya-niṣedhokta-bheṣajaiḥ samupācaret || 60ū̆ab || 3.60ū̆bv -bhaiṣajyaiḥ samupācaret Uttarasthāna lakṣayej jñāna-vijñāna-vāk-ceṣṭā-bala-pauruṣam | puruṣe '-pauruṣaṃ yatra tatra bhūta-grahaṃ vadet || 1 || bhūtasya rūpa-prakṛti-bhāṣā-gaty-ādi-ceṣṭitaiḥ | yasyānukāraṃ kurute tenāviṣṭaṃ tam ādiśet || 2 || so 'ṣṭā-daśa-vidho deva-dānavādi-vibhedataḥ | hetus tad-anuṣaktau tu sadyaḥ pūrva-kṛto 'tha-vā || 3 || 4.3dv sadyaḥ pūrvaṃ kṛto 'tha-vā prajñāparādhaḥ su-tarāṃ tena kāmādi-janmanā | lupta-dharma-vratācāraḥ pūjyān apy ativartate || 4 || 4.4dv pūjyānām ativartanaiḥ taṃ tathā bhinna-maryādaṃ pāpam ātmopaghātinam | devādayo 'py anughnanti grahāś chidra-prahāriṇaḥ || 5 || chidraṃ pāpa-kriyārambhaḥ pāko 'n-iṣṭasya karmaṇaḥ | ekasya śūnye 'vasthānaṃ śmaśānādiṣu vā niśi || 6 || dig-vāsas-tvaṃ guror nindā rater a-vidhi-sevanam | a-śucer devatārcādi para-sūtaka-saṃkaraḥ || 7 || 4.7cv a-śucer devatārāddhiḥ 4.7dv para-sūtaka-saṃkarāt homa-mantra-balījyānāṃ vi-guṇaṃ parikarma ca | samāsād dina-caryādi-proktācāra-vyatikramaḥ || 8 || 4.8dv -proktānāṃ ca viparyayaḥ gṛhṇanti śukla-pratipat-trayo-daśyoḥ surā naram | śukla-trayo-daśī-kṛṣṇa-dvā-daśyor dānavā grahāḥ || 9 || 4.9dv -dvā-daśyor dānava-grahāḥ gandharvās tu catur-daśyāṃ dvā-daśyāṃ coragāḥ punaḥ | pañcamyāṃ śukla-saptamy-ekā-daśyos tu dhaneśvarāḥ || 10 || 4.10cv pañcamyāṃ śukla-saptamyām 4.10dv ekā-daśyāṃ dhaneśvarāḥ śuklāṣṭa-pañcamī-paurṇamāsīṣu brahma-rākṣasāḥ | kṛṣṇe rakṣaḥ-piśācādyā nava-dvā-daśa-parvasu || 11 || 4.11av śuklāṣṭa-pañcamī-pūrṇa- 4.11bv -māsīṣu brahma-rākṣasāḥ daśāmāvāsyayor aṣṭa-navamyoḥ pitaro 'pare | guru-vṛddhādayaḥ prāyaḥ kālaṃ saṃdhyāsu lakṣayet || 12 || 4.12av darśāmāvāsyayor aṣṭa- 4.12av daśāmāvāsyayoḥ ṣaṣṭhī- phulla-padmopama-mukhaṃ saumya-dṛṣṭim a-kopanam | alpa-vāk-sveda-viṇ-mūtraṃ bhojanān-abhilāṣiṇam || 13 || 4.13cv sv-alpa-vāk-sveda-viṇ-mūtraṃ deva-dvi-jāti-paramaṃ śuciṃ saṃskṛta-vādinam | mīlayantaṃ cirān netre surabhiṃ vara-dāyinam || 14 || śukla-mālyāmbara-saric-chailocca-bhavana-priyam | a-nidram a-pradhṛṣyaṃ ca vidyād deva-vaśī-kṛtam || 15 || 4.15av śukla-mālyāmbara-dharaṃ 4.15bv śailocca-bhavana-priyam jihma-dṛṣṭiṃ dur-ātmānaṃ guru-deva-dvi-ja-dviṣam | nir-bhayaṃ māninaṃ śūraṃ krodhanaṃ vyavasāyinam || 16 || 4.16cv nir-bhayaṃ māninaṃ krūraṃ rudraḥ skando viśākho 'ham indro 'ham iti vādinam | surā-māṃsa-ruciṃ vidyād daitya-graha-gṛhītakam || 17 || 4.17av rudraḥ skandaḥ piśāco 'ham 4.17cv madya-māṃsa-ruciṃ vidyād 4.17dv daitya-graha-vaśī-kṛtam sv-ācāraṃ surabhiṃ hṛṣṭaṃ gīta-nartana-kāriṇam | snānodyāna-ruciṃ rakta-vastra-mālyānulepanam || 18 || 4.18av sv-ācāra-surabhi-śiṣṭa- 4.18av sve-caraṃ surabhiṃ hṛṣṭaṃ 4.18bv -gīta-nartana-kāriṇam 4.18cv snānodyāna-rataṃ rakta- śṛṅgāra-līlābhirataṃ gandharvādhyuṣitaṃ vadet | raktākṣaṃ krodhanaṃ stabdha-dṛṣṭiṃ vakra-gatiṃ calam || 19 || 4.19av śṛṅgāra-mālyābhirataṃ 4.19av śṛṅgāra-līlābhihitaṃ śvasantam a-niśaṃ jihvā-lolinaṃ sṛkkiṇī-liham | priya-dugdha-guḍa-snānam adho-vadana-śāyinam || 20 || uragādhiṣṭhitaṃ vidyāt trasyantaṃ cātapa-trataḥ | vipluta-trasta-raktākṣaṃ śubha-gandhaṃ su-tejasam || 21 || priya-nṛtya-kathā-gīta-snāna-mālyānulepanam | matsya-māṃsa-ruciṃ hṛṣṭaṃ tuṣṭaṃ balinam a-vyatham || 22 || 4.22av priya-narta-kathā-gīta- 4.22cv matsya-māṃsa-ruciṃ hṛṣṭa- 4.22dv -tuṣṭaṃ balinam a-vyatham 4.22dv tuṣṭaṃ balinam a-vyayam calitāgra-karaṃ kasmai kiṃ dadāmīti vādinam | rahasya-bhāṣiṇaṃ vaidya-dvi-jāti-paribhāvinam || 23 || 4.23dv -dvi-jāti-parivādinam alpa-roṣaṃ druta-gatiṃ vidyād yakṣa-gṛhītakam | hāsya-nṛtya-priyaṃ raudra-ceṣṭaṃ chidra-prahāriṇam || 24 || 4.24av alpa-roṣaṃ hṛta-gatiṃ 4.24cv hāsya-nṛtta-priyaṃ raudra- 4.24cv hāsya-nṛtya-karaṃ raudra- ākrośinaṃ śīghra-gatiṃ deva-dvi-ja-bhiṣag-dviṣam | ātmānaṃ kāṣṭha-śastrādyair ghnantaṃ bhoḥ-śabda-vādinam || 25 || 4.25dv ghnantaṃ go-śabda-vādinam śāstra-veda-paṭhaṃ vidyād gṛhītaṃ brahma-rākṣasaiḥ | sa-krodha-dṛṣṭiṃ bhrū-kuṭīm udvahantaṃ sa-saṃbhramaṃ || 26 || 4.26bv gṛhītaṃ brahma-rākṣasā praharantaṃ pradhāvantaṃ śabdantaṃ bhairavānanam | annād vināpi balinaṃ naṣṭa-nidraṃ niśā-caram || 27 || 4.27bv rudantaṃ bhairavānanam nir-lajjam a-śuciṃ śūraṃ krūraṃ paruṣa-bhāṣiṇam | roṣaṇaṃ rakta-mālya-strī-rakta-madyāmiṣa-priyam || 28 || 4.28dv -megha-madyāmiṣa-priyam dṛṣṭvā ca raktaṃ māṃsaṃ vālihānaṃ daśana-cchadau | hasantam anna-kāle ca rākṣasādhiṣṭhitaṃ vadet || 29 || 4.29av dṛṣṭvā ca rakta-māṃsāni 4.29bv lihānaṃ daśana-cchadau a-svastha-cittaṃ naika-tra tiṣṭhantaṃ paridhāvinam | ucchiṣṭa-nṛtya-gandharva-hāsa-madyāmiṣa-priyam || 30 || nirbhartsanād dīna-mukhaṃ rudantam a-nimittataḥ | nakhair likhantam ātmānaṃ rūkṣa-dhvasta-vapuḥ-svaram || 31 || āvedayantam duḥkhādi saṃbaddhā-baddha-bhāṣiṇam | naṣṭa-smṛtiṃ śūnya-ratiṃ lolaṃ nagnaṃ malīmasam || 32 || 4.32av āvedayantam duḥkhāni rathyā-caila-parīdhānaṃ tṛṇa-mālā-vibhūṣaṇam | ārohantaṃ ca kāṣṭhāśvaṃ tathā saṃkara-kūṭakam || 33 || 4.33cv ārohantaṃ ca kāṣṭhāśma- 4.33dv -rāśiṃ saṃkara-kūṭakam 4.33dv tathā saṃkāra-kūṭakam bahv-āśinaṃ piśācena vijānīyād adhiṣṭhitam | pretākṛti-kriyā-gandhaṃ bhītam āhāra-vidviṣam || 34 || 4.34dv bhīrum āhāra-vidviṣam tṛṇa-cchidaṃ ca pretena gṛhītaṃ naram ādiśet | bahu-pralāpaṃ kṛṣṇāsyaṃ pravilambita-yāyinam || 35 || śūna-pralamba-vṛṣaṇaṃ kūṣmāṇḍādhiṣṭhitaṃ vadet | gṛhītvā kāṣṭha-loṣṭādi bhramantaṃ cīra-vāsasam || 36 || 4.36cv gṛhītvā kāṣṭha-lohādi nagnaṃ dhāvantam uttrasta-dṛṣṭiṃ tṛṇa-vibhūṣaṇam | śmaśāna-śūnyāyatana-rathyaika-druma-sevinam || 37 || tilānna-madya-māṃseṣu satataṃ sakta-locanaṃ | niṣādādhiṣṭhitaṃ vidyād vadantaṃ paruṣāṇi ca || 38 || 4.38bv saṃsaktaṃ rakta-locanam 4.38bv satataṃ rakta-locanam 4.38bv sa-raktaṃ rakta-locanam 4.38cv karkoṭādhiṣṭhitaṃ vindyād yācantam udakaṃ cānnaṃ trasta-lohita-locanam | ugra-vākyaṃ ca jānīyān naram aukiraṇārditam || 39 || 4.39av dhāvantam udakaṃ nānnaṃ 4.39av yācantam udakaṃ nānnaṃ 4.39av yācantam udakānnaṃ ca 4.39bv rakta-vitrasta-locanam 4.39dv naram autkiraṇārditam 4.39dv naraṃ maukiraṇārditam 4.39dv naram uttaruṇārditam gandha-mālya-ratiṃ satya-vādinaṃ parivepinam | bahu-nidraṃ ca jānīyād vetālena vaśī-kṛtam || 40 || 4.40av gandha-mālya-rataṃ satya- 4.40av gandha-mālya-ruciṃ satya- 4.40bv -vādinaṃ parivedinam 4.40bv -vādinaṃ paridevinam 4.40dv vaitālena vaśī-kṛtam a-prasanna-dṛśaṃ dīna-vadanaṃ śuṣka-tālukam | calan-nayana-pakṣmāṇaṃ nidrāluṃ manda-pāvakam || 41 || apasavya-parīdhānaṃ tila-māṃsa-guḍa-priyam | skhalad-vācaṃ ca jānīyāt pitṛ-graha-vaśī-kṛtam || 42 || 4.42cv skhalad-vācaṃ vijānīyāt guru-vṛddharṣi-siddhābhiśāpa-cintānurūpataḥ | vyāhārāhāra-ceṣṭābhir yathā-svaṃ tad-grahaṃ vadet || 43 || 4.43av guru-vṛddharṣi-siddhānāṃ 4.43bv śāpa-cintānurūpataḥ 4.43bv ṃśāpa-cittānurūpataḥ 4.43bv śāpa-cittānurūpataḥ 4.43cv vihārāhāra-ceṣṭābhir 4.43dv yathā-svaṃ taṃ grahaṃ vadet kumāra-vṛndānugataṃ nagnam uddhata-mūrdha-jam | a-svastha-manasaṃ dairghya-kālikaṃ sa-grahaṃ tyajet || 44 || Uttarasthāna bhūtaṃ jayed a-hiṃsecchaṃ japa-homa-bali-vrataiḥ | tapaḥ-śīla-samādhāna-dāna-jñāna-dayādibhiḥ || 1 || 5.1av bhūtaṃ jayed a-hiṃsotthaṃ 5.1cv tapaḥ-śīla-samādhyāna- hiṅgu-vyoṣāla-nepālī-laśunārka-jaṭā-jaṭāḥ | ajalomī sa-golomī bhūtakeśī vacā latā || 2 || 5.2bv -laśunārka-jaṭāmayāḥ 5.2dv bhūtakeśī-vacā-latāḥ 5.2dv bhūtakeśī vacā balā kukkuṭī sarpagandhākhyā tilāḥ kāṇa-vikāṇike | vajraproktā vayaḥsthā ca śṛṅgī mohanavally api || 3 || 5.3bv tilāḥ kāla-vikāṇike 5.3bv tilāḥ kāṇa-viṣāṇike 5.3bv tathā kāṇa-vikāṇike 5.3cv vajraproktā vayaḥsthā vā sroto-jāñjana-rakṣoghnaṃ rakṣo-ghnaṃ cānyad auṣadham | kharāśva-śvāvid-uṣṭrarkṣa-godhā-nakula-śalyakāt || 4 || 5.4dv -godhā-nakula-matsyakāt dvīpi-mārjāra-go-siṃha-vyāghra-sāmudra-sat-tvataḥ | carma-pitta-dvi-ja-nakhā varge 'smin sādhayed ghṛtam || 5 || purāṇam atha-vā tailaṃ navaṃ tat pāna-nasyayoḥ | abhyaṅge ca prayoktavyam eṣāṃ cūrṇaṃ ca dhūpane || 6 || ebhiś ca guṭikāṃ yuñjyād añjane sāvapīḍane | pralepe kalkam eteṣāṃ kvāthaṃ ca pariṣecane || 7 || 5.7bv añjane sāvapīḍake prayogo 'yaṃ grahonmādān sāpasmārāñ chamaṃ nayet | gajāhvā-pippalī-mūla-vyoṣāmalaka-sarṣapān || 8 || godhā-nakula-mārjāra-jhaṣa-pitta-prapeṣitān | nāvanābhyaṅga-sekeṣu vidadhīta grahāpahān || 9 || 5.9bv -śaśa-pitta-prapeṣitān 5.9bv -ṛkṣa-pitta-prapeṣitān siddhārthaka-vacā-hiṅgu-priyaṅgu-rajanī-dvayam | mañjiṣṭhā śveta-kaṭabhī varā śvetādrikarṇikā || 10 || 5.10cv mañjiṣṭhā-śveta-kaṭabhī- 5.10dv -varā-śvetādrikarṇikāḥ nimbasya pattraṃ bījaṃ tu naktamāla-śirīṣayoḥ | surāhvaṃ try-ūṣaṇaṃ sarpir go-mūtre taiś catur-guṇe || 11 || 5.11dv go-mūtre ca catur-guṇe siddhaṃ siddhārthakaṃ nāma pāne nasye ca yojitam | grahān sarvān nihanty āśu viśeṣād āsurān grahān || 12 || kṛtyā-lakṣmī-viṣonmāda-jvarāpasmāra-pāpma ca | ebhir evauṣadhair basta-vāriṇā kalpito '-gadaḥ || 13 || 5.13bv -jvarāpasmāra-pāpma-nut pāna-nasyāñjanālepa-snānodgharṣaṇa-yojitaḥ | guṇaiḥ pūrva-vad uddiṣṭo rāja-dvāre ca siddhi-kṛt || 14 || 5.14cv sa guṇaiḥ pūrva-vad diṣṭo siddhārthaka-vyoṣa-vacāśvagandhā niśā-dvayaṃ hiṅgu-palāṇḍu-kandaḥ | bījaṃ karañjāt kusumaṃ śirīṣāt phalaṃ ca valkaṃ ca kapittha-vṛkṣāt || 15 || 5.15bv niśā-dvayaṃ hiṅgu-palāṇḍu-kandam 5.15dv phalaṃ ca kalkaś ca kapittha-vṛkṣāt 5.15dv phalaṃ ca puṣpaṃ ca kapittha-vṛkṣāt 5.15dv phalaṃ ca valkaś ca kapittha-vṛkṣāt sa-māṇimanthaṃ sa-nataṃ sa-kuṣṭhaṃ śyoṇāka-mūlaṃ kiṇihī sitā ca | bastasya mūtreṇa su-bhāvitaṃ tat pittena gavyena guḍān vidadhyāt || 16 || duṣṭa-vraṇonmāda-tamo-niśāndhān udbandhakān vāri-nimagna-dehān | digdhāhatān darpita-sarpa-daṣṭāṃs te sādhayanty añjana-nasya-lepaiḥ || 17 || 5.17av duṣṭa-vraṇonmāda-tamo-niśāndhyam 5.17bv udbaddhakān vāri-nimagna-dehān 5.17dv tān sādhayanty añjana-nasya-lepaiḥ 5.17dv te sādhayanty añjana-pāna-lepaiḥ kārpāsāsthi-mayūra-pattra-bṛhatī-nirmālya-piṇḍītaka- || 18a || 5.18av kārpāsāsthi-mayūra-piccha-bṛhatī-nirmālya-piṇḍītaka- -tvaṅ-māṃsī-vṛṣa-daṃśa-viṭ-tuṣa-vacā-keśāhi-nirmokakaiḥ || 18b || 5.18bv -tvag-vāṃśī-vṛṣa-daṃśa-viṭ-tuṣa-vacā-keśāhi-nirmocanaiḥ 5.18bv -tvag-vāṃśī-vṛṣa-daṃśa-viṇ-nakha-vacā-keśāhi-nirmocanaiḥ 5.18bv -tvaṅ-māṃsī-vṛṣa-daṃśa-viṭ-tuṣa-vacā-keśāhi-nirmocanaiḥ nāgendra-dvi-ja-śṛṅga-hiṅgu-maricais tulyaiḥ kṛtaṃ dhūpanaṃ || 18c || skandonmāda-piśāca-rākṣasa-surāveśa-jvara-ghnaṃ param || 18d || 5.18dv skandonmāda-piśāca-rākṣasa-surāveśa-graha-ghnaṃ param tri-kaṭuka-dala-kuṅkuma-granthika-kṣāra-siṃhī-niśā-dāru-siddhārtha-yugmāmbu-śakrāhv ayaiḥ || 19a || sita-laśuna-phala-trayośīra-tiktā-vacā-tuttha-yaṣṭī-balā-lohitailā-śilā-padmakaiḥ || 19b || dadhi-tagara-madhūka-sāra-priyāhvā-viṣākhyā-viṣā-tārkṣya-śailaiḥ sa-cavyāmayaiḥ kalkitaiḥ || 19c || ghṛtam a-navam a-śeṣa-mūtrāṃśa-siddhaṃ mataṃ bhūta-rāvāhvayaṃ pānatas tad graha-ghnaṃ param || 19d || nata-madhuka-karañja-lākṣā-paṭolī-samaṅgā-vacā-pāṭalī-hiṅgu-siddhārtha-siṃhī-niśā-yug -latā-rohiṇī- || 20a || 5.20av nata-madhuka-karañja-lākṣā-paṭolī-samaṅgā-vacā-pāṭalā-hiṅgu-siddhārtha-siṃhī-niśā-yug -latā-rohiṇī- -badara-kaṭu-phala-trikā-kāṇḍa-dāru-kṛmighnājagandhāmarāṅkolla-kośātakī-śigru-nimbā mbu dendrāhvayaiḥ || 20b || 5.20bv -badara-kaṭu-phala-trikā-kāṇḍa-dāru-kṛmighnājagandhā-surāṅkolla-kośātakī-śigru-nimbā mbudendrāhvayaiḥ 5.20bv -madana-kaṭu-phala-trikā-kāṇḍa-dāru-kṛmighnājagandhāmarāṅkolla-kośātakī-śigru-nimbā mbudendrāhvayaiḥ 5.20bv madana-kaṭu-phala-trikā-kāṇḍa-dāru-kṛmighnājagandhā-surāṅkolla-kośātakī-śigru-nimbā mbudendrāhvayaiḥ 5.20bv -madana-kaṭu-phala-trikā-kāṇḍa-dāru-kṛmighnājagandhāmṛtā-kola-kośātakī-śigru-nimbā mbudendrāhvayaiḥ gada-śukataru-puṣpa-bījogra-yaṣṭy-adrikarṇī-nikumbhāgni-bilvaiḥ samaiḥ kalkitair mūtra-vargeṇa siddhaṃ ghṛtaṃ || 20c || vidhi-vinihitam āśu sarvaiḥ kramair yojitaṃ hanti sarva-grahonmāda-kuṣṭha-jvarāṃs tan mahā-bhūta- rāvaṃ smṛtam || 20d || 5.20dv vidhi-van nihitam āśu sarvaiḥ kramair yojitaṃ hanti sarva-grahonmāda-kuṣṭha-jvarāṃs tan mahā-bhūta- rāvaṃ smṛtam 5.20dv cira-vinihitam āśu sarvaiḥ kramair yojitaṃ hanti sarva-grahonmāda-kuṣṭha-jvarāṃs tan mahā-bhūta-rāvaṃ smṛtam grahā gṛhṇanti ye yeṣu teṣāṃ teṣu viśeṣataḥ | dineṣu bali-homādīn prayuñjīta cikitsakaḥ || 21 || snāna-vastra-vasā-māṃsa-madya-kṣīra-guḍādi ca | rocate yad yadā yebhyas tat teṣām āharet tadā || 22 || 5.22av snānaṃ vastraṃ vasā māṃsaṃ 5.22bv madyaṃ kṣīra-guḍāni vā ratnāni gandha-mālyāni bījāni madhu-sarpiṣī | bhakṣyāś ca sarve sarveṣāṃ sāmānyo vidhir ity ayam || 23 || 5.23av raktāni gandha-mālyāni 5.23cv bhakṣāś ca sarve sarveṣāṃ surarṣi-guru-vṛddhebhyaḥ siddhebhyaś ca surālaye | diśy uttarasyāṃ tatrāpi devāyopahared balim || 24 || paścimāyāṃ yathā-kālaṃ daitya-bhūtāya catvare | gandharvāya gavāṃ mārge sa-vastrābharaṇaṃ balim || 25 || pitṛ-nāga-grahe nadyāṃ nāgebhyaḥ pūrva-dakṣiṇe | yakṣāya yakṣāyatane saritor vā samāgame || 26 || 5.26av pitṛ-nāma-grahe nadyāṃ catuṣ-pathe rākṣasāya bhīmeṣu gahaneṣu ca | rakṣasāṃ dakṣiṇasyāṃ tu pūrvasyāṃ brahma-rakṣasām || 27 || 5.27bv bhīmeṣu gahaneṣu vā śūnyālaye piśācāya paścimāṃ diśam āsthite | śuci-śuklāni mālyāni gandhāḥ kṣaireyam odanam || 28 || 5.28bv paścimāṃ diśam āśrite 5.28bv paścimāyāṃ diśi sthite dadhi cchattraṃ ca dhavalaṃ devānāṃ balir iṣyate | hiṅgu-sarṣapa-ṣaḍgranthā-vyoṣair ardha-palonmitaiḥ || 29 || catur-guṇe gavāṃ mūtre ghṛta-prasthaṃ vipācayet | tat-pāna-nāvanābhyaṅgair deva-graha-vimokṣaṇam || 30 || nasyāñjanaṃ vacā-hiṅgu-laśunaṃ basta-vāriṇā | daitye balir bahu-phalaḥ sośīra-kamalotpalaḥ || 31 || 5.31av nasyāñjane vacā-hiṅgu- nāgānāṃ sumano-lāja-guḍāpūpa-guḍaudanaiḥ | paramānna-madhu-kṣīra-kṛṣṇa-mṛn-nāgakesaraiḥ || 32 || vacā-padma-purośīra-raktotpala-dalair baliḥ | śvetapattraṃ ca lodhraṃ ca tagaraṃ nāga-sarṣapāḥ || 33 || 5.33av vacā-pāṭhā-purośīra- śītena vāriṇā piṣṭaṃ nāvanāñjanayor hitam | yakṣāṇāṃ kṣīra-dadhy-ājya-miśrakaudana-guggulu || 34 || devadārūtpalaṃ padmaṃ uśīraṃ vastra-kāñcanam | hiraṇyaṃ ca balir yojyo mūtrājya-kṣīram ekataḥ || 35 || 5.35bv uśīraṃ vastra-candanam 5.35bv uśīraṃ vastra-kambalam siddhaṃ samonmitaṃ pāna-nāvanābhyañjane hitam | harītakī haridre dve laśuno maricaṃ vacā || 36 || 5.36av siddhaṃ palonmitaṃ pāna- nimba-pattraṃ ca bastāmbu-kalkitaṃ nāvanāñjanam | brahma-rakṣo-baliḥ siddhaṃ yavānāṃ pūrṇam āḍhakam || 37 || 5.37dv yavānāṃ cūrṇam āḍhakam toyasya kumbhaḥ palalaṃ chattraṃ vastram vilepanam | gāyatrī-viṃśati-pala-kvāthe 'rdha-palikaiḥ pacet || 38 || 5.38av toya-kumbhaṃ ca palalaṃ try-ūṣaṇa-tri-phalā-hiṅgu-ṣaḍgranthā-miśi-sarṣapaiḥ | sa-nimba-pattra-laśunaiḥ kuḍavān sapta sarpiṣaḥ || 39 || go-mūtre tri-guṇe pāna-nasyābhyaṅgeṣu tad dhitam | rakṣasāṃ palalaṃ śuklaṃ kusumaṃ miśrakaudanam || 40 || 5.40av go-mūtre tri-guṇe siddhaṃ 5.40bv pānābhyaṅgeṣu tad dhitam 5.40dv kusumaṃ miśrakaudanaḥ baliḥ pakvāma-māṃsāni niṣpāvā rudhirokṣitāḥ | naktamāla-śirīṣa-tvaṅ-mūla-puṣpa-phalāni ca || 41 || 5.41dv -mūlaṃ puṣpaṃ phalāni ca 5.41dv -mūle puṣpaṃ phalāni ca tad-vac ca kṛṣṇa-pāṭalyā bilva-mūlaṃ kaṭu-trikam | hiṅgv-indrayava-siddhārtha-laśunāmalakī-phalam || 42 || nāvanāñjanayor yojyo basta-mūtra-yuto '-gadaḥ | ebhir eva ghṛtaṃ siddhaṃ gavāṃ mūtre catur-guṇe || 43 || 5.43bv basta-mūtra-hṛto '-gadaḥ 5.43bv basta-mūtra-druto '-gadaḥ rakṣo-grahān vārayate pānābhyañjana-nāvanaiḥ | piśācānāṃ baliḥ sīdhuḥ piṇyākaḥ palalaṃ dadhi || 44 || mūlakaṃ lavaṇaṃ sarpiḥ sa-bhūtaudana-yāvakam | haridrā-dvaya-mañjiṣṭhā-miśi-saindhava-nāgaram || 45 || 5.45bv prabhūtaudana-yāvakam 5.45bv prāg-bhūtaudana-yāvakam 5.45dv -miśi-saindhava-nāgaraiḥ hiṅgu-priyaṅgu-tri-kaṭu-laśuna-tri-phalā vacā | pāṭalī-śveta-kaṭabhī-śirīṣa-kusumair ghṛtam || 46 || 5.46bv -laśuna-tri-phalā-vacāḥ 5.46cv paṭolī-śveta-kaṭabhī- 5.46cv pāṭalā-śveta-kaṭabhī- go-mūtra-pādikaṃ siddhaṃ pānābhyañjanayor hitam | bastāmbu-piṣṭais tair eva yojyam añjana-nāvanam || 47 || devarṣi-pitṛ-gandharve tīkṣṇaṃ nasyādi varjayet | sarpiḥ-pānādi mṛdv asmin bhaiṣajyam avacārayet || 48 || ṛte piśācāt sarveṣu pratikūlaṃ ca nācaret | sa-vaidyam āturaṃ ghnanti kruddhās te hi mahaujasaḥ || 49 || īśvaraṃ dvā-daśa-bhujaṃ nātham āryāvalokitam | sarva-vyādhi-cikitsāṃ ca japan sarva-grahān jayet || 50 || 5.50cv sarva-vyādhi-cikitsantaṃ 5.50cv sarva-vyādhi-cikitsaṃ ca 5.50cv sarva-vyādhi-cikitsitaṃ tathonmādān apasmārān anyaṃ vā citta-viplavam | mahā-vidyāṃ ca māyūrīṃ śuciṃ taṃ śrāvayet sadā || 51 || 5.51bv anyān vā citta-vibhramān 5.51dv śucis taṃ śrāvayet sadā bhūteśaṃ pūjayet sthāṇuṃ pramathākhyāṃś ca tad-gaṇān | japan siddhāṃś ca tan-mantrān grahān sarvān apohati || 52 || yac cān-antarayoḥ kiñ-cid vakṣyate 'dhyāyayor hitam | yac coktam iha tat sarvaṃ prayuñjīta paras-param || 53 || 5.53cv yathoktam iha tat sarvaṃ Uttarasthāna unmādāḥ ṣaṭ pṛthag-doṣa-nicayādhi-viṣodbhavāḥ | unmādo nāma manaso doṣair unmārga-gair madaḥ || 1 || śārīra-mānasair duṣṭair a-hitād anna-pānataḥ | vikṛtā-sātmya-sa-malād viṣamād upayogataḥ || 2 || 6.2av śārīra-mānasair doṣair 6.2cv vikṛtā-sātmya-sa-mala- 6.2dv -viṣamād upayogataḥ viṣaṇṇasyālpa-sat-tvasya vyādhi-vega-samudgamāt | kṣīṇasya ceṣṭā-vaiṣamyāt pūjya-pūjā-vyatikramāt || 3 || 6.3bv vyādhi-vega-samudbhavāt 6.3bv vyādhi-vega-samudbhramāt ādhibhir citta-vibhraṃśād viṣeṇopaviṣeṇa ca | ebhir hi hīna-sat-tvasya hṛdi doṣāḥ pradūṣitāḥ || 4 || 6.4bv viṣeṇopaviṣeṇa vā 6.4cv ebhir vihīna-sat-tvasya dhiyo vidhāya kāluṣyaṃ hṛtvā mārgān mano-vahān | unmādaṃ kurvate tena dhī-vijñāna-smṛti-bhramāt || 5 || deho duḥkha-sukha-bhraṣṭo bhraṣṭa-sārathi-vad rathaḥ | bhramaty a-cintitārambhas tatra vātāt kṛśāṅga-tā || 6 || 6.6av dehī duḥkha-sukha-bhraṣṭo a-sthāne rodanākrośa-hasita-smita-nartanam | gīta-vāditra-vāg-aṅga-vikṣepāsphoṭanāni ca || 7 || a-sāmnā veṇu-vīṇādi-śabdānukaraṇaṃ muhuḥ | āsyāt phenāgamo 'jasram aṭanaṃ bahu-bhāṣi-tā || 8 || 6.8av abhīkṣṇaṃ veṇu-vīṇādi- 6.8av āsyena veṇu-vīṇādi- 6.8bv -śabdādi-karaṇaṃ muhuḥ 6.8dv aṭanaṃ bahu-bhāṣitam alaṅkāro 'n-alaṅkārair a-yānair gamanodyamaḥ | gṛddhir abhyavahāryeṣu tal-lābhe cāvamāna-tā || 9 || 6.9dv tal-lābhe vāvamāna-tā 6.9dv tal-lābheṣv avamāna-tā utpiṇḍitāruṇākṣi-tvaṃ jīrṇe cānne gadodbhavaḥ | pittāt saṃtarjanaṃ krodho muṣṭi-loṣṭādy-abhidravaḥ || 10 || 6.10av utpīḍitāruṇākṣi-tvaṃ śīta-cchāyodakākāṅkṣā nagna-tvaṃ pīta-varṇa-tā | a-satya-jvalana-jvālā-tārakā-dīpa-darśanam || 11 || 6.11bv netra-tvak-pīta-varṇa-tā 6.11cv a-sati jvalane jvālā- 6.11cv a-satya-jvalanolkādi- kaphād a-rocakaś chardir alpehāhāra-vākya-tā | strī-kāma-tā rahaḥ-prītir lālā-siṅghāṇaka-srutiḥ || 12 || baibhatsyaṃ śauca-vidveṣo nidrā śvayathur ānane | unmādo bala-vān rātrau bhukta-mātre ca jāyate || 13 || sarvāyatana-saṃsthāna-saṃnipāte tad-ātmakam | unmādaṃ dāruṇaṃ vidyāt taṃ bhiṣak parivarjayet || 14 || 6.14bv -saṃnipātāt tad-ātmakam dhana-kāntādi-nāśena duḥ-sahenābhiṣaṅga-vān | pāṇḍur dīno muhur muhyan hāheti paridevate || 15 || rodity a-kasmān mriyate tad-guṇān bahu manyate | śoka-kliṣṭa-manā dhyāyañ jāgarūko viceṣṭate || 16 || 6.16av rodity a-kasmāt smayate viṣeṇa śyāva-vadano naṣṭa-cchāyā-balendriyaḥ | vegāntare 'pi saṃbhrānto raktākṣas taṃ vivarjayet || 17 || 6.17bv naṣṭa-cchāyo '-balendriyaḥ athānila-ja unmāde sneha-pānaṃ prayojayet | pūrvam āvṛta-mārge tu sa-snehaṃ mṛdu śodhanam || 18 || kapha-pitta-bhave 'py ādau vamanaṃ sa-virecanam | snigdha-svinnasya vastiṃ ca śirasaḥ sa-virecanam || 19 || 6.19av kapha-pittodbhave 'py ādau 6.19cv snigdha-svinnasya vastīṃś ca 6.19dv śirasaś ca virecanam tathāsya śuddha-dehasya prasādaṃ labhate manaḥ | ittham apy anuvṛttau tu tīkṣṇaṃ nāvanam añjanam || 20 || 6.20av tathaiva śuddha-dehasya harṣaṇāśvāsanottrāsa-bhaya-tāḍana-tarjanam | abhyaṅgodvartanālepa-dhūpān pānaṃ ca sarpiṣaḥ || 21 || 6.21dv -dhūmān pānaṃ ca sarpiṣaḥ yuñjyāt tāni hi śuddhasya nayanti prakṛtiṃ manaḥ | hiṅgu-sauvarcala-vyoṣair dvi-palāṃśair ghṛtāḍhakam || 22 || siddhaṃ sa-mūtram unmāda-bhūtāpasmāra-nut param | dvau prasthau sva-rasād brāhmyā ghṛta-prasthaṃ ca sādhitam || 23 || vyoṣa-śyāmā-trivṛd-dantī-śaṅkhapuṣpī-nṛpadrumaiḥ | sa-saptalā-kṛmiharaiḥ kalkitair akṣa-saṃmitaiḥ || 24 || 6.24av vyoṣa-śyāmā-trivṛd-bimbī- 6.24cv sātalā-kṛmijit-kalkaiḥ 6.24dv sarvais tair akṣa-saṃmitaiḥ pala-vṛddhyā prayuñjīta paraṃ mātrā catuḥ-palam | unmāda-kuṣṭhāpasmāra-haraṃ vandhyā-suta-pradam || 25 || vāk-svara-smṛti-medhā-kṛd dhanyaṃ brāhmī-ghṛtaṃ smṛtam | varā-viśālā-bhadrailā-devadārv-elavālukaiḥ || 26 || 6.26cv varā-viśālākautpalā- 6.26cv varā-viśālā-pattrailā- dvi-śārivā-dvi-rajanī-dvi-sthirā-phalinī-nataiḥ | bṛhatī-kuṣṭha-mañjiṣṭhā-nāgakesara-dāḍimaiḥ || 27 || vella-tālīśa-pattrailā-mālatī-mukulotpalaiḥ | sa-dantī-padmaka-himaiḥ karṣāṃśaiḥ sarpiṣaḥ pacet || 28 || 6.28bv -mālatī-kumudotpalaiḥ 6.28cv rudantī-padmaka-himaiḥ prasthaṃ bhūta-grahonmāda-kāsāpasmāra-pāpmasu | pāṇḍu-kaṇḍū-viṣe śoṣe mohe mehe gare jvare || 29 || 6.29bv -kāsāpasmāra-pāpma-jit 6.29cv pāṇḍu-kaṇḍū-viṣe śophe a-retasy a-prajasi vā daivopahata-cetasi | a-medhasi skhalad-vāci smṛti-kāme 'lpa-pāvake || 30 || 6.30av a-retasy alpa-rajasi balyaṃ maṅgalyam āyuṣyaṃ kānti-saubhāgya-puṣṭi-dam | kalyāṇakam idaṃ sarpiḥ śreṣṭhaṃ puṃ-savaneṣu ca || 31 || ebhyo dvi-śārivādīni jale paktvaika-viṃśatim | rase tasmin pacet sarpir gṛṣṭi-kṣīra-catur-guṇam || 32 || 6.32dv gṛṣṭi-kṣīre catur-guṇe 6.32dv gṛṣṭi-kṣīraṃ catur-guṇam vīrā-dvi-medā-kākolī-kapikacchū-viṣāṇibhiḥ | śūrpaparṇī-yutair etan mahā-kalyāṇakaṃ param || 33 || 6.33av vīrarddhi-medā-kākolī- 6.33dv mahā-kalyāṇakaṃ smṛtam bṛṃhaṇaṃ saṃnipāta-ghnaṃ pūrvasmād adhikaṃ guṇaiḥ | jaṭilā pūtanā keśī cāraṭī markaṭī vacā || 34 || trāyamāṇā jayā vīrā corakaḥ kaṭu-rohiṇī | vayaḥsthā śūkarī chattrā sāticchattrā palaṅkaṣā || 35 || 6.35dv aticchattrā palaṅkaṣā mahāpuruṣadantā ca kāyasthā nākulī-dvayam | kaṭambharā vṛścikālī śāliparṇī ca tair ghṛtam || 36 || 6.36cv kaṭambharā-vṛścikālī- 6.36dv -sthirāś cāhṛtya tair ghṛtam siddhaṃ cāturthikonmāda-grahāpasmāra-nāśanam | mahā-paiśācakaṃ nāma ghṛtam etad yathāmṛtam || 37 || 6.37av siddhaṃ caturthakonmāda- 6.37av siddhaṃ cāturthakonmāda- buddhi-medhā-smṛti-karaṃ bālānāṃ cāṅga-vardhanam | brāhmīm aindrīṃ viḍaṅgāni vyoṣaṃ hiṅgu jaṭāṃ murām || 38 || 6.38av smṛti-buddhi-karaṃ caiva 6.38bv bālānām aṅga-vardhanam rāsnāṃ viṣaghnāṃ laśunaṃ viśalyāṃ surasāṃ vacām | jyotiṣmatīṃ nāgavinnām anantāṃ sa-harītakīm || 39 || 6.39av rāsnāṃ viṣaghnīṃ laśunaṃ kāṅkṣīṃ ca hasti-mūtreṇa piṣṭvā chāyā-viśoṣītā | vartir nasyāñjanālepa-dhūpair unmāda-sūdanī || 40 || 6.40av kācchīṃ ca hasti-mūtreṇa 6.40av saurāṣṭrīṃ basta-mūtreṇa 6.40dv -dhūpair unmāda-nāśinī avapīḍāś ca vividhāḥ sarṣapāḥ sneha-saṃyutāḥ | kaṭu-tailena cābhyaṅgo dhmāpayec cāsya tad rajaḥ || 41 || sa-hiṅgus tīkṣṇa-dhūmaś ca sūtra-sthānodito hitaḥ | śṛgāla-śalyakolūka-jalaukā-vṛṣa-basta-jaiḥ || 42 || 6.42av sa-hiṅgu tīkṣṇa-dhūmaś ca 6.42dv -jalūkā-vṛṣa-basta-jaiḥ 6.42dv -jalaukā-vṛka-basta-jaiḥ mūtra-pitta-śakṛd-roma-nakha-carmabhir ācaret | dhūpa-dhūmāñjanābhyaṅga-pradeha-pariṣecanam || 43 || dhūpayet satataṃ cainaṃ śva-go-matsyaiḥ su-pūtibhiḥ | vāta-śleṣmātmake prāyaḥ paittike tu praśasyate || 44 || tiktakaṃ jīvanīyaṃ ca sarpiḥ snehaś ca miśrakaḥ | śītāni cānna-pānāni madhurāṇi laghūni ca || 45 || vidhyet sirāṃ yathoktāṃ vā tṛptaṃ medyāmiṣasya vā | nivāte śāyayed evaṃ mucyate mati-vibhramāt || 46 || 6.46av vidhyet sirāṃ yathoktāṃ ca prakṣipyā-salile kūpe śoṣayed vā bubhukṣayā | āśvāsayet suhṛt taṃ vā vākyair dharmārtha-saṃhitaiḥ || 47 || 6.47cv āśvāsayet suhṛdbhis taṃ brūyād iṣṭa-vināśaṃ vā darśayed adbhutāni vā | baddhaṃ sarṣapa-tailāktaṃ nyased vottānam ātape || 48 || 6.48av brūyād iṣṭasya nāśaṃ vā 6.48dv nyastaṃ cottānam ātape kapikacchvātha-vā taptair loha-taila-jalaiḥ spṛśet | kaśābhis tāḍayitvā vā baddhaṃ śvabhre viniḥkṣipet || 49 || 6.49dv baddhvā śvabhre viniḥkṣipet atha-vā vīta-śastrāśma-jane saṃtamase gṛhe | sarpeṇoddhṛta-daṃṣṭreṇa dāntaiḥ siṃhair gajaiś ca tam || 50 || trāsayec chastra-hastair vā kirātārāti-taskaraiḥ || 50+(1)ab || 6.50+(1)bv taskaraiḥ śatrubhis tathā atha-vā rāja-puruṣā bahir nītvā su-saṃyatam | bhāpayeyur vadhenainaṃ tarjayanto nṛpājñayā || 51 || deha-duḥkha-bhayebhyo hi paraṃ prāṇa-bhayaṃ matam | tena yāti śamaṃ tasya sarvato viplutaṃ manaḥ || 52 || 6.52dv sarvato 'pasṛtaṃ manaḥ siddhā kriyā prayojyeyaṃ deśa-kālādy-apekṣayā | iṣṭa-dravya-vināśāt tu mano yasyopahanyate || 53 || 6.53av siddhāḥ kriyā prayoktavyā tasya tat-sadṛśa-prāpti-sāntvāśvāsaiḥ śamaṃ nayet | kāma-śoka-bhaya-krodha-harṣerṣyā-lobha-saṃbhavān || 54 || 6.54av tasya tat-sadṛśa-prāptiḥ 6.54bv -sāntvāśvāsaiḥ prasādayet 6.54bv -priyāśvāsaiḥ pradarśayet 6.54bv sāntvāśvāsaiḥ śamaṃ nayet paras-para-prati-dvandvair ebhir eva śamaṃ nayet | bhūtānubandham īkṣeta prokta-liṅgādhikākṛtim || 55 || 6.55cv bhūtānubaddham īkṣeta yady unmāde tataḥ kuryād bhūta-nirdiṣṭam auṣadham | baliṃ ca dadyāt palalaṃ yāvakaṃ saktu-piṇḍikām || 56 || 6.56av yady unmāde ca tat kuryād snigdhaṃ madhuram āhāraṃ taṇḍulān rudhirokṣitān | pakvāmakāni māṃsāni surāṃ maireyam āsavam || 57 || 6.57cv pakvāmāhvāni māṃsāni 6.57dv surā-maireyam āsavam atimuktasya puṣpāṇi jātyāḥ sahacarasya ca | catuṣ-pathe gavāṃ tīrthe nadīnāṃ saṃgameṣu ca || 58 || nivṛttāmiṣa-madyo yo hitāśī prayataḥ śuciḥ | nijāgantubhir unmādaiḥ sat-tva-vān na sa yujyate || 59 || 6.59av nivṛttāmiṣa-madyo 'pi prasāda indriyārthānāṃ buddhy-ātma-manasāṃ tathā | dhātūnāṃ prakṛti-stha-tvaṃ vigatonmāda-lakṣaṇam || 60 || 6.60av indriyāṇāṃ prasanna-tvaṃ 6.60dv gatonmādasya lakṣaṇam Uttarasthāna smṛty-apāyo hy apasmāraḥ sa dhī-sat-tvābhisaṃplavāt | jāyate 'bhihate citte cintā-śoka-bhayādibhiḥ || 1 || 7.1bv sa dhī-sat-tvādi-saṃplavāt unmāda-vat prakupitaiś citta-deha-gatair malaiḥ | hate sat-tve hṛdi vyāpte saṃjñā-vāhiṣu kheṣu ca || 2 || tamo viśan mūḍha-matir bībhatsāḥ kurute kriyāḥ | dantān khādan vaman phenaṃ hastau pādau ca vikṣipan || 3 || 7.3dv hastau pādau ca kampayan paśyann a-santi rūpāṇi praskhalan patati kṣitau | vijihmākṣi-bhruvo doṣa-vege 'tīte vibudhyate || 4 || kālāntareṇa sa punaś caivam eva viceṣṭate | apasmāraś catur-bhedo vātādyair nicayena ca || 5 || rūpam utpatsyamāne 'smin hṛt-kampaḥ śūnya-tā bhramaḥ | tamaso darśanaṃ dhyānaṃ bhrū-vyudāso 'kṣi-vaikṛtam || 6 || 7.6av rūpam utpadyamāne 'smin a-śabda-śravaṇaṃ svedo lālā-siṅghāṇaka-srutiḥ | a-vipāko '-rucir mūrchā kukṣy-āṭopo bala-kṣayaḥ || 7 || nidrā-nāśo 'ṅga-mardas tṛṭ svapne gānaṃ sa-nartanam | pānaṃ tailasya madyasya tayor eva ca mehanam || 8 || tatra vātāt sphurat-sakthiḥ prapataṃś ca muhur muhuḥ | apasmarati saṃjñāṃ ca labhate vi-svaraṃ rudan || 9 || 7.9bv pratataṃ ca muhur muhuḥ utpiṇḍitākṣaḥ śvasiti phenaṃ vamati kampate | āvidhyati śiro dantān daśaty ādhmāta-kandharaḥ || 10 || parito vikṣipaty aṅgaṃ viṣamaṃ vinatāṅguliḥ | rūkṣa-śyāvāruṇākṣi-tvaṅ-nakhāsyaḥ kṛṣṇam īkṣate || 11 || capalaṃ paruṣaṃ rūpaṃ vi-rūpaṃ vikṛtānanam | apasmarati pittena muhuḥ saṃjñāṃ ca vindati || 12 || 7.12av capalaṃ paramaṃ rūpaṃ 7.12av capalaṃ paruṣaṃ rūkṣaṃ pīta-phenākṣi-vaktra-tvag āsphālayati medinīm | bhairavādīpta-ruṣita-rūpa-darśī tṛṣānvitaḥ || 13 || kaphāc cireṇa grahaṇaṃ cireṇaiva vibodhanam | ceṣṭālpā bhūyasī lālā śukla-netra-nakhāsya-tā || 14 || śuklābha-rūpa-darśi-tvaṃ sarva-liṅgaṃ tu varjayet | athāvṛtānāṃ dhī-citta-hṛt-khānāṃ prāk-prabodhanam || 15 || tīkṣṇaiḥ kuryād apasmāre karmabhir vamanādibhiḥ | vātikaṃ vasti-bhūyiṣṭhaiḥ paittaṃ prāyo virecanaiḥ || 16 || ślaiṣmikaṃ vamana-prāyair apasmāram upācaret | sarvataḥ su-viśuddhasya samyag āśvāsitasya ca || 17 || apasmāra-vimokṣārthaṃ yogān saṃśamanāñ chṛṇu | go-maya-sva-rasa-kṣīra-dadhi-mūtraiḥ śṛtaṃ haviḥ || 18 || apasmāra-jvaronmāda-kāmalānta-karaṃ pibet | dvi-pañca-mūla-tri-phalā-dvi-niśā-kuṭaja-tvacaḥ || 19 || 7.19cv dvi-pañca-mūlī-tri-phalā- saptaparṇam apāmārgaṃ nīlinīṃ kaṭu-rohiṇīm | śamyāka-puṣkara-jaṭā-phalgu-mūla-durālabhāḥ || 20 || 7.20cv śyoṇāka-puṣkara-jaṭā- dvi-palāḥ salila-droṇe paktvā pādāvaśeṣite | bhārgī-pāṭhāḍhakī-kumbha-nikumbha-vyoṣa-rohiṣaiḥ || 21 || 7.21av dvi-palāni jala-droṇe mūrvā-bhūtika-bhūnimba-śreyasī-śārivā-dvayaiḥ | madayanty-agni-niculair akṣāṃśaiḥ sarpiṣaḥ pacet || 22 || 7.22av mūrvā-pūtika-bhūnimba- prasthaṃ tad-vad dravaiḥ pūrvaiḥ pañca-gavyam idaṃ mahat | jvarāpasmāra-jaṭhara-bhagandara-haraṃ param || 23 || śophārśaḥ-kāmalā-pāṇḍu-gulma-kāsa-grahāpaham | brāhmī-rasa-vacā-kuṣṭha-śaṅkhapuṣpī-śṛtaṃ ghṛtam || 24 || 7.24bv -gulma-kāsa-bhramāpaham purāṇaṃ medhyam unmādā-lakṣmy-apasmāra-pāpma-jit | taila-prasthaṃ ghṛta-prasthaṃ jīvanīyaiḥ palonmitaiḥ || 25 || kṣīra-droṇe pacet siddham apasmāra-vimokṣaṇam | kaṃse kṣīrekṣu-rasayoḥ kāśmarye 'ṣṭa-guṇe rase || 26 || kārṣikair jīvanīyaiś ca sarpiḥ-prasthaṃ vipācayet | vāta-pittodbhavaṃ kṣipram apasmāraṃ nihanti tat || 27 || tad-vat kāśa-vidārīkṣu-kuśa-kvātha-śṛtaṃ payaḥ | kūṣmāṇḍa-sva-rase sarpir aṣṭā-daśa-guṇe śṛtam || 28 || 7.28bv -kuśa-kvāthe śṛtaṃ payaḥ 7.28bv -kuśa-kvāthaiḥ śṛtaṃ payaḥ yaṣṭī-kalkam apasmāra-haraṃ dhī-vāk-svara-pradam | kapilānāṃ gavāṃ pittaṃ nāvane paramaṃ hitam || 29 || 7.29av yaṣṭī-kalkaṃ apasmāraṃ 7.29bv nāvanaṃ paramaṃ hitam 7.29bv hared dhī-vāk-svara-pradam śva-śṛgāla-biḍālānāṃ siṃhādīnāṃ ca pūjitam | godhā-nakula-nāgānāṃ pṛṣatarkṣa-gavām api || 30 || 7.30dv vṛṣabharkṣa-gavām api 7.30dv vṛka-carka-gavām api pitteṣu sādhitaṃ tailaṃ nasye 'bhyaṅge ca śasyate | tri-phalā-vyoṣa-pītadru-yava-kṣāra-phaṇijjakaiḥ || 31 || 7.31av pitteṣu sādhayet tailaṃ 7.31bv nasyābhyaṅgeṣu śasyate śry-āhvāpāmārga-kārañja-bījais tailaṃ vipācitam | basta-mūtre hitaṃ nasyaṃ cūrṇaṃ vā dhmāpayed bhiṣak || 32 || 7.32av śyāmāpāmārga-kārañja- 7.32bv -bījais tailaṃ prasādhitam 7.32bv -bījais tailaṃ vipācayet nakulolūka-mārjāra-gṛdhra-kīṭāhi-kāka-jaiḥ | tuṇḍaiḥ pakṣaiḥ purīṣaiś ca dhūpam asya prayojayet || 33 || 7.33dv dhūmam asya prayojayet 7.33dv dhūpam asmai prayojayet śīlayet taila-laśunaṃ payasā vā śatāvarīm | brāhmī-rasaṃ kuṣṭha-rasaṃ vacāṃ vā madhu-saṃyutām || 34 || samaṃ kruddhair apasmāro doṣaiḥ śārīra-mānasaiḥ | yaj jāyate yataś caiṣa mahā-marma-samāśrayaḥ || 35 || tasmād rasāyanair enaṃ duś-cikitsyam upācaret | tad-ārtaṃ cāgni-toyāder viṣamāt pālayet sadā || 36 || 7.36av tasmād rasāyanenainaṃ 7.36cv tad-ārtaṃ cāgni-toyādi- 7.36dv -viṣamāt pālayet sadā muktaṃ mano-vikāreṇa tvam itthaṃ kṛta-vān iti | na brūyād viṣayair iṣṭaiḥ kliṣṭaṃ ceto 'sya bṛṃhayet || 37 || Uttarasthāna sarva-roga-nidānoktair a-hitaiḥ kupitā malāḥ | a-cakṣuṣyair viśeṣeṇa prāyaḥ pittānusāriṇaḥ || 1 || sirābhir ūrdhvaṃ prasṛtā netrāvayavam āśritāḥ | vartma saṃdhiṃ sitaṃ kṛṣṇaṃ dṛṣṭiṃ vā sarvam akṣi vā || 2 || rogān kuryuś calas tatra prāpya vartmāśrayāḥ sirāḥ | suptotthitasya kurute vartma-stambhaṃ sa-vedanam || 3 || pāṃsu-pūrṇābha-netra-tvaṃ kṛcchronmīlanam aśru ca | vimardanāt syāc ca śamaḥ kṛcchronmūlaṃ vadanti tat || 4 || cālayan vartmanī vāyur nimeṣonmeṣaṇaṃ muhuḥ | karoty a-ruṅ nimeṣo 'sau vartma yat tu nimīlyate || 5 || vimukta-saṃdhi niś-ceṣṭaṃ hīnaṃ vāta-hataṃ hi tat | kṛṣṇāḥ pittena bahvyo 'ntar-vartma kumbhīka-bīja-vat || 6 || 8.6cv pittena vartmano 'ntar-jā 8.6dv bahvyaḥ kumbhīka-bīja-vat ādhmāyante punar bhinnāḥ piṭikāḥ kumbhi-saṃjñitāḥ | sa-dāha-kleda-nistodaṃ raktābhaṃ sparśanā-kṣamam || 7 || 8.7bv piṭikāḥ kumbhi-saṃjñakāḥ pittena jāyate vartma pittotkliṣṭam uśanti tat | karoti kaṇḍūṃ dāhaṃ ca pittaṃ pakṣṃāntam āsthitam || 8 || 8.8dv pittaṃ pakṣṃāntam āśritam pakṣmaṇāṃ śātanaṃ cānu pakṣma-śātaṃ vadanti tam | pothakyaḥ piṭikāḥ śvetāḥ sarṣapābhā ghanāḥ kaphāt || 9 || 8.9av pakṣmaṇāṃ śatanaṃ cānu 8.9av pakṣmaṇāṃ sadanaṃ cānu śophopadeha-ruk-kaṇḍū-picchilāśru-samanvitāḥ | kaphotkliṣṭaṃ bhaved vartma stambha-kledopadeha-vat || 10 || granthiḥ pāṇḍura-ruk-pākaḥ kaṇḍū-mān kaṭhinaḥ kaphāt | kola-mātraḥ sa lagaṇaḥ kiñ-cid alpas tato 'tha-vā || 11 || 8.11dv kiñ-cid alpas tato 'pi vā raktā raktena piṭikā tat-tulya-piṭikācitā | utsaṅgākhyā tathotkliṣṭaṃ rājī-mat sparśanā-kṣamam || 12 || 8.12av raktā raktena piṭikās 8.12bv tat-tulya-piṭikācitāḥ 8.12cv utsaṅgākhyās tathotkliṣṭaṃ arśo 'dhi-māṃsaṃ vartmāntaḥ stabdhaṃ snigdhaṃ sa-dāha-ruk | raktaṃ raktena tat-srāvi cchinnaṃ chinnaṃ ca vardhate || 13 || madhye vā vartmano 'nte vā kaṇḍūṣā-rug-vatī sthirā | mudga-mātrāsṛjā tāmrā piṭikāñjana-nāmikā || 14 || doṣair vartma bahiḥ śūnaṃ yad antaḥ sūkṣma-khācitam | sa-srāvam antar-udakaṃ bisābhaṃ bisa-vartma tat || 15 || yad vartmotkliṣṭam utkliṣṭam a-kasmān mlāna-tām iyāt | rakta-doṣa-trayotkleśād bhavaty utkliṣṭa-vartma tat || 16 || 8.16dv vadanty utkliṣṭa-vartma tat śyāva-vartma malaiḥ sāsraiḥ śyāvaṃ ruk-kleda-śopha-vat | śliṣṭākhyaṃ vartmanī śliṣṭe kaṇḍū-śvayathu-rāgiṇī || 17 || vartmano 'ntaḥ kharā rūkṣāḥ piṭikāḥ sikatopamāḥ | sikatā-vartma kṛṣṇaṃ tu kardamaṃ kardamopamam || 18 || bahalaṃ bahalair māṃsaiḥ sa-varṇaiś cīyate samaiḥ | kukūṇakaḥ śiśor eva dantotpatti-nimitta-jaḥ || 19 || syāt tena śiśur ucchūna-tāmrākṣo vīkṣaṇā-kṣamaḥ | sa-vartma-śūla-paicchilyaḥ karṇa-nāsākṣi-mardanaḥ || 20 || 8.20bv -tāmrākṣo vīkṣaṇe '-kṣamaḥ pakṣmoparodhe saṃkoco vartmanāṃ jāyate tathā | khara-tāntar-mukha-tvaṃ ca romṇām anyāni vā punaḥ || 21 || 8.21bv vartmano jāyate tathā kaṇṭakair iva tīkṣṇāgrair ghṛṣṭaṃ tair akṣi śūyate | uṣyate cānilādi-dviḍ alpāhaḥ śāntir uddhṛtaiḥ || 22 || 8.22bv ghṛṣṭaṃ tair akṣi sūyate 8.22cv uṣyate vānilādi-dviḍ 8.22cv uṣyate cānilādyaiś ca 8.22dv alpāhaṃ śāntir uddhṛtaiḥ kanīnake bahir-vartma kaṭhino granthir unnataḥ | tāmraḥ pakvo 'sra-pūya-srud alajy ādhmāyate muhuḥ || 23 || vartmāntar māṃsa-piṇḍābhaḥ śvayathur grathito '-rujaḥ | sāsraiḥ syād arbudo doṣair viṣamo bāhyataś calaḥ || 24 || catur-viṃśatir ity ete vyādhayo vartma-saṃśrayāḥ | ādyo 'tra bheṣajaiḥ sādhyo dvau tato 'rśaś ca varyajet || 25 || pakṣmoparodho yāpyaḥ syāc cheṣāñ chastreṇa sādhayet | kuṭṭayet pakṣma-sadanaṃ chindyāt teṣv api cārbudam || 26 || 8.26cv kuṭṭayet pakṣma-śadanaṃ bhindyāl lagaṇa-kumbhīkā-bisotsaṅgāñjanālajīḥ | pothakī-śyāva-sikatā-śliṣṭotkliṣṭa-catuṣṭayam || 27 || sa-kardamaṃ sa-bahalaṃ vilikhet sa-kukūṇakam || 27ū̆ab || Uttarasthāna kṛcchronmīle purāṇājyaṃ drākṣā-kalkāmbu-sādhitam | sa-sitaṃ yojayet snigdhaṃ nasya-dhūmāñjanādi ca || 1 || kumbhīkā-vartma-likhitaṃ saindhava-pratisāritam | yaṣṭī-dhātrī-paṭolīnāṃ kvāthena pariṣecayet || 2 || nivāte 'dhiṣṭhitasyāptaiḥ śuddhasyottāna-śāyinaḥ | bahiḥ koṣṇāmbu-taptena sveditaṃ vartma vāsasā || 3 || nirbhujya vastrāntaritaṃ vāmāṅguṣṭhāṅgulī-ghṛtam | na sraṃsate calati vā vartmaivaṃ sarvatas tataḥ || 4 || 9.4cv na sraṃsate na calati maṇḍalāgreṇa tat tiryak kṛtvā śastra-padāṅkitam | likhet tenaiva pattrair vā śāka-śephālikādi-jaiḥ || 5 || 9.5dv śāka-śephālikādikaiḥ 9.5dv śāka-śephālikādibhiḥ phenena toya-rāśer vā picunā pramṛjann asṛk | sthite rakte su-likhitaṃ sa-kṣaudraiḥ pratisārayet || 6 || yathā-svam uktair anu ca prakṣālyoṣṇena vāriṇā | ghṛtena siktam abhyaktaṃ badhnīyān madhu-sarpiṣā || 7 || 9.7cv ghṛtenāsiktam abhyaktaṃ ūrdhvādhaḥ karṇayor dattvā piṇḍīṃ ca yava-saktubhiḥ | dvitīye 'hani muktasya pariṣekaṃ yathā-yatham || 8 || kuryāc caturthe nasyādīn muñced evāhni pañcame | samaṃ nakha-nibhaṃ śopha-kaṇḍū-gharṣādya-pīḍitam || 9 || vidyāt su-likhitaṃ vartma likhed bhūyo viparyaye | ruk-pakṣma-vartma-sadana-sraṃsanāny ati-lekhanāt || 10 || sneha-svedādikas tasminn iṣṭo vāta-haraḥ kramaḥ | abhyajya nava-nītena śveta-lodhraṃ pralepayet || 11 || eraṇḍa-mūla-kalkena puṭa-pāke pacet tataḥ | svinnaṃ prakṣālitaṃ śuṣkaṃ cūrṇitaṃ poṭalī-kṛtam || 12 || striyāḥ kṣīre chagalyā vā mṛditaṃ netra-secanam | śāli-taṇḍula-kalkena liptaṃ tad-vat pariṣkṛtam || 13 || 9.13av striyāḥ kṣīre chāgale vā kuryān netre 'ti-likhite mṛditaṃ dadhi-mastunā | kevalenāpi vā sekaṃ mastunā jāṅgalāśinaḥ || 14 || piṭikā vrīhi-vaktreṇa bhittvā tu kaṭhinonnatāḥ | niṣpīḍayed anu vidhiḥ pariśeṣas tu pūrva-vat || 15 || 9.15av piṭikāṃ vrīhi-vaktreṇa 9.15bv bhittvā tu kaṭhinonnatām lekhane bhedane cāyaṃ kramaḥ sarva-tra vartmani | pittāsrotkliṣṭayoḥ svādu-skandha-siddhena sarpiṣā || 16 || sirā-vimokṣaḥ snigdhasya trivṛc chreṣṭhaṃ virecanam | likhite sruta-rakte ca vartmani kṣālanaṃ hitam || 17 || 9.17bv trivṛc chreṣṭhā virecane 9.17cv likhite niḥsṛte rakte yaṣṭī-kaṣāyaḥ sekas tu kṣīraṃ candana-sādhitam | pakṣmaṇāṃ sadane sūcyā roma-kūpān vikuṭṭayet || 18 || 9.18av yaṣṭī-kvāthena sekas tu grāhayed vā jalaukobhiḥ payasekṣu-rasena vā | vamanaṃ nāvanaṃ sarpiḥ śṛtaṃ madhura-śītalaiḥ || 19 || saṃcūrṇya puṣpa-kāsīsaṃ bhāvayet surasā-rasaiḥ | tāmre daśāhaṃ paramaṃ pakṣma-śāte tad añjanam || 20 || pothakīr likhitāḥ śuṇṭhī-saindhava-pratisāritāḥ | uṣṇāmbu-kṣālitāḥ siñcet khadirāḍhaki-śigrubhiḥ || 21 || 9.21av pothakīṃ likhitaṃ śuṇṭhī- 9.21bv -saindhava-pratisāritām 9.21cv uṣṇāmbu-kṣālitāṃ siñcet ap-siddhair dvi-niṣā-śreṣṭhā-madhukair vā sa-mākṣikaiḥ | kaphotkliṣṭe vilikhite sa-kṣaudraiḥ pratisāraṇam || 22 || sūkṣmaiḥ saindhava-kāsīsa-manohvā-kaṇa-tārkṣya-jaiḥ | vamanāñjana-nasyādi sarvaṃ ca kapha-jid dhitam || 23 || kartavyaṃ lagaṇe 'py etad a-śāntāv agninā dahet | kukūṇe khadira-śreṣṭhā-nimba-pattra-śṛtaṃ ghṛtam || 24 || 9.24dv -nimba-pattraiḥ śṛtaṃ ghṛtam svinnāṃ bhittvā viniṣpīḍya bhiṣag añjana-nāmikām | śilailā-saindhava-nataiḥ sa-kṣaudraiḥ pratisārayet || 24.1+(1) || 9.24.1+(1)av svinnāṃ bhittvā viniṣpīḍyotṃ 9.24.1+(1)bv ṃsaṅgāṃ cāñjana-nāmikām pītvā dhātrī vamet kṛṣṇā-yaṣṭī-sarṣapa-saindhavaiḥ | abhayā-pippalī-drākṣā-kvāthenaināṃ virecayet || 25 || mustā-dvi-rajanī-kṛṣṇā-kalkenālepayet stanau | dhūpayet sarṣapaiḥ sājyaiḥ śuddhāṃ kvāthaṃ ca pāyayet || 26 || paṭola-musta-mṛdvīkā-guḍūcī-tri-phalodbhavam | śiśos tu likhitaṃ vartma srutāsṛg vāmbu-janmabhiḥ || 27 || dhātry-aśmantaka-jambūttha-pattra-kvāthena secayet | prāyaḥ kṣīra-ghṛtāśi-tvād bālānāṃ śleṣma-jā gadāḥ || 28 || tasmād vamanam evāgre sarva-vyādhiṣu pūjitam | sindhūttha-kṛṣṇāpāmārga-bījājya-stanya-mākṣikam || 29 || cūrṇo vacāyāḥ sa-kṣaudro madanaṃ madhukānvitam | kṣīraṃ kṣīrānnam annaṃ ca bhajataḥ kramataḥ śiśoḥ || 30 || 9.30dv bhajataḥ krama-śaḥ śiśoḥ vamanaṃ sarva-rogeṣu viśeṣeṇa kukūṇake | saptalā-rasa-siddhājyaṃ yojyaṃ cobhaya-śodhanam || 31 || dvi-niśā-lodhra-yaṣṭy-āhva-rohiṇī-nimba-pallavaiḥ | kukūṇake hitā vartiḥ piṣṭais tāmra-rajo-'nvitaiḥ || 32 || kṣīra-kṣaudra-ghṛtopetaṃ dagdhaṃ vā loha-jaṃ rajaḥ | elā-laśuna-kataka-śaṅkhoṣaṇa-phaṇijjakaiḥ || 33 || 9.33bv dagdhaṃ vā lodhra-jaṃ rajaḥ vartiḥ kukūṇa-pothakyoḥ surā-piṣṭaiḥ sa-kaṭphalaiḥ | pakṣma-rodhe pravṛddheṣu śuddha-dehasya romasu || 34 || utsṛjya dvau bhruvo 'dhas-tād bhāgau bhāgaṃ ca pakṣmataḥ | yava-mātraṃ yavākāraṃ tiryak chittvārdra-vāsasā || 35 || apaneyam asṛk tasminn alpī-bhavati śoṇite | sīvyet kuṭilayā sūcyā mudga-mātrāntaraiḥ padaiḥ || 36 || baddhvā lalāṭe paṭṭaṃ ca tatra sīvana-sūtrakam | nāti-gāḍha-ślathaṃ sūcyā nikṣiped atha yojayet || 37 || madhu-sarpiḥ-kavalikāṃ na cāsmin bandham ācaret | nyagrodhādi-kaṣāyaiś ca sa-kṣīraiḥ secayed ruji || 38 || pañcame divase sūtram apanīyāvacūrṇayet | gairikeṇa vraṇaṃ yuñjyāt tīkṣṇaṃ nasyāñjanādi ca || 39 || 9.39dv tīkṣṇa-nasyāñjanādi ca 9.39dv tīkṣṇa-nasyāñjanāni ca 9.39dv tīkṣṇaṃ nasyāñjanāni ca dahed a-śāntau nirbhujya vartma-doṣāśrayāṃ valīm | saṃdaṃśenādhikaṃ pakṣma hṛtvā tasyāśrayaṃ dahet || 40 || sūcy-agreṇāgni-varṇena dāho bāhyālajeḥ punaḥ | bhinnasya kṣāra-vahnibhyāṃ su-cchinnasyārbudasya ca || 41 || Uttarasthāna vāyuḥ kruddhaḥ sirāḥ prāpya jalābhaṃ jala-vāhinīḥ | aśru srāvayate vartma-śukla-saṃdheḥ kanīnakāt || 1 || 10.1dv -śukla-saṃdhi-kanīnikāt tena netraṃ sa-rug-rāga-śophaṃ syāt sa jalāsravaḥ | kaphāt kaphāsrave śvetaṃ picchilaṃ bahalaṃ sravet || 2 || 10.2cv kaphāt kapha-śrave śvetaṃ 10.2cv kaphāt kapha-srave śvetaṃ kaphena śophas tīkṣṇāgraḥ kṣāra-budbudakopamaḥ | pṛthu-mūla-balaḥ snigdhaḥ sa-varṇo mṛdu-picchilaḥ || 3 || 10.3dv sa-varṇa-mṛdu-picchilaḥ mahān a-pākaḥ kaṇḍū-mān upanāhaḥ sa nī-rujaḥ | raktād raktāsrāve tāmraṃ bahūṣṇaṃ cāśru saṃsravet || 4 || 10.4cv raktād rakta-srave tāmraṃ 10.4cv raktād raktaṃ sravet tāmraṃ 10.4dv bahūṣṇaṃ vāśru saṃsravet vartma-saṃdhy-āśrayā śukle piṭikā dāha-śūlinī | tāmrā mudgopamā bhinnā raktaṃ sravati parvaṇī || 5 || pūyāsrave malāḥ sāsrā vartma-saṃdheḥ kanīnakāt | srāvayanti muhuḥ pūyaṃ sāsraṃ tvaṅ-māṃsa-pākataḥ || 6 || 10.6bv vartma-saṃdhi-kanīnakāt 10.6dv sāsra-tvaṅ-māṃsa-pākataḥ 10.6dv sāśru-tvaṅ-māṃsa-pākataḥ pūyālaso vraṇaḥ sūkṣmaḥ śopha-saṃrambha-pūrvakaḥ | kanīna-saṃdhāv ādhmāyī pūyāsrāvī sa-vedanaḥ || 7 || kanīnasyāntar alajī śopho ruk-toda-dāha-vān | apāṅge vā kanīne vā kaṇḍūṣā-pakṣma-poṭa-vān || 8 || pūyāsrāvī kṛmi-granthir granthiḥ kṛmi-yuto 'rti-mān | upanāha-kṛmi-granthi-pūyālasaka-parvaṇīḥ || 9 || śastreṇa sādhayet pañca sālajīn āsravāṃs tyajet | pittaṃ kuryāt site bindūn asita-śyāva-pītakān || 10 || malāktādarśa-tulyaṃ vā sarvaṃ śuklaṃ sa-dāha-ruk | rogo 'yaṃ śuktikā-saṃjñaḥ sa-śakṛd-bheda-tṛḍ-jvaraḥ || 11 || 10.11bv sarvaṃ śuklam a-dāha-ruk kaphāc chukle samaṃ śvetaṃ cira-vṛddhy-adhi-māṃsakam | śuklārma śophas tv a-rujaḥ sa-varṇo bahalo '-mṛduḥ || 12 || guruḥ snigdho 'mbu-bindv-ābho balāsa-grathitaṃ smṛtaṃ | bindubhiḥ piṣṭa-dhavalair utsannaiḥ piṣṭakaṃ vadet || 13 || 10.13dv balāsa-granthi sa smṛtaḥ rakta-rājī-tataṃ śuklam uṣyate yat sa-vedanam | a-śophāśrūpadehaṃ ca sirotpātaḥ sa śoṇitāt || 14 || 10.14cv sa-śothāśrūpadehaṃ ca upekṣitah sirotpāto rājīs tā eva vardhayan | kuryāt sāsraṃ sirā-harṣaṃ tenākṣy-udvīkṣaṇā-kṣamam || 15 || 10.15cv kuryāt sāśruṃ sirā-harṣaṃ 10.15dv tenākṣaṃ vīkṣaṇā-kṣamam sirā-jāle sirā-jālaṃ bṛhad raktaṃ ghanonnatam | śoṇitārma samaṃ ślakṣṇaṃ padmābham adhi-māṃsakam || 16 || nī-ruk ślakṣṇo 'rjunaṃ binduḥ śaśa-lohita-lohitaḥ | mṛdv-āśu-vṛddhy-a-ruṅ-māṃsaṃ prastāri śyāva-lohitam || 17 || prastāry-arma malaiḥ sāsraiḥ snāvārma snāva-saṃnibham | śuṣkāsṛk-piṇḍa-vac chyāvaṃ yan māṃsaṃ bahalaṃ pṛthu || 18 || adhi-māṃsārma tad dāha-gharṣa-vatyaḥ sirāvṛtāḥ | kṛṣṇāsannāḥ sirā-saṃjñāḥ piṭikāḥ sarṣapopamāḥ || 19 || 10.19av adhi-māṃsārma rug-dāha- śukti-harṣa-sirotpāta-piṣṭaka-grathitārjunam | sādhayed auṣadhaiḥ ṣaṭkaṃ śeṣaṃ śastreṇa saptakam || 20 || 10.20av śukti-harṣa-sirotpātān 10.20bv piṣṭaka-grathitārjunam navotthaṃ tad api dravyair armoktaṃ yac ca pañca-dhā | tac chedyam asita-prāptaṃ māṃsa-snāva-sirāvṛtam || 21 || 10.21bv armoktaṃ yat tu pañca-dhā carmoddāla-vad ucchrāyi dṛṣṭi-prāptaṃ ca varjayet | pittaṃ kṛṣṇe 'tha-vā dṛṣṭau śukraṃ todāśru-rāga-vat || 22 || 10.22bv dṛṣṭi-prāptaṃ tu varjayet 10.22dv śukraṃ todāsra-rāga-vat chittvā tvacaṃ janayati tena syāt kṛṣṇa-maṇḍalam | pakva-jambū-nibhaṃ kiñ-cin nimnaṃ ca kṣata-śukrakam || 23 || tat kṛcchra-sādhyaṃ yāpyaṃ tu dvitīya-paṭala-vyadhāt | tatra todādi-bāhulyaṃ sūcī-viddhābha-kṛṣṇa-tā || 24 || tṛtīya-paṭala-cchedād a-sādhyaṃ nicitaṃ vraṇaiḥ | śaṅkha-śuklaṃ kaphāt sādhyaṃ nāti-ruk śuddha-śukrakam || 25 || ā-tāmra-picchilāsra-srud ā-tāmra-piṭikāti-ruk | ajā-viṭ-sadṛśocchrāya-kārṣṇyā varjyāsṛjājakā || 26 || 10.26av ā-tāmra-picchilāśruḥ syād 10.26av ā-tāmra-picchilāsṛk syād 10.26cv ajā-viṭ-sadṛśocchrāyā 10.26dv kṛṣṇā varjyāsṛjājakā sirā-śukraṃ malaiḥ sāsrais taj-juṣṭaṃ kṛṣṇa-maṇḍalam | sa-toda-dāha-tāmrābhiḥ sirābhir avatanyate || 27 || a-nimittoṣṇa-śītāccha-ghanāsra-sruc ca tat tyajet | doṣaiḥ sāsraiḥ sakṛt kṛṣṇaṃ nīyate śukla-rūpa-tām || 28 || 10.28bv -ghanāśru syāc ca tat tyajet 10.28bv -ghanāśru-srāvi tat tyajet 10.28bc -ghanāśru-sruc ca tat tyajet 10.28cv doṣaiḥ sāsraiḥ sa-dṛk kṛṣṇaṃ dhavalābhropaliptābhaṃ niṣpāvārdha-dalākṛti | ati-tīvra-rujā-rāga-dāha-śvayathu-pīḍitam || 29 || pākātyayena tac chukraṃ varjayet tīvra-vedanam | yasya vā liṅga-nāśo 'ntaḥ śyāvaṃ yad vā sa-lohitam || 30 || aty-utsedhāvagāḍhaṃ vā sāśru nāḍī-vraṇāvṛtam | purāṇaṃ viṣamaṃ madhye vicchinnaṃ yac ca śukrakam || 31 || 10.31bv sāsra-nāḍī-vraṇāvṛtam pañcety uktā gadāḥ kṛṣṇe sādhyā-sādhya-vibhāgataḥ || 31ū̆ab || Uttarasthāna upanāhaṃ bhiṣak svinnaṃ bhinnaṃ vrīhi-mukhena ca | lekhayen maṇḍalāgreṇa tataś ca pratisārayet || 1 || 11.1bv bhinnaṃ vrīhi-mukhena tu pippalī-kṣaudra-sindhūtthair badhnīyāt pūrva-vat tataḥ | paṭola-pattrāmalaka-kvāthenāścyotayec ca tam || 2 || parvaṇī baḍiśenāttā bāhya-saṃdhi-tri-bhāgataḥ | vṛddhi-pattreṇa vardhyārdhe syād aśru-gatir anya-thā || 3 || 11.3av parvaṇī baḍiśenāntar- 11.3bv -bāhya-saṃdhi-tri-bhāgataḥ 11.3dv syād asra-gatir anya-thā 11.3dv syād asra-srutir anya-thā cikitsā cārma-vat kṣaudra-saindhava-pratisāritā | pūyālase sirāṃ vidhyet tatas tam upanāhayet || 4 || 11.4dv tatas tad upanāhayet kurvīta cākṣi-pākoktaṃ sarvaṃ karma yathā-vidhi | saindhavārdraka-kāsīsa-loha-tāmraiḥ su-cūrṇitaiḥ || 5 || cūrṇāñjanaṃ prayuñjīta sa-kṣaudrair vā rasa-kriyām | kṛmi-granthiṃ karīṣeṇa svinnaṃ bhittvā vilikhya ca || 6 || tri-phalā-kṣaudra-kāsīsa-saindhavaiḥ pratisārayet | pittābhiṣyanda-vac chuktiṃ balāsāhvaya-piṣṭake || 7 || 11.7dv balāsāhvaya-piṣṭakau kaphābhiṣyanda-van muktvā sirā-vyadham upācaret | bījapūra-rasāktaṃ ca vyoṣa-kaṭphalam añjanam || 8 || jātī-mukula-sindhūttha-devadāru-mahauṣadhaiḥ | piṣṭaiḥ prasannayā vartiḥ śopha-kaṇḍū-ghnam añjanam || 9 || 11.9dv śopha-kaṇḍū-ghnam auṣadham rakta-syanda-vad utpāta-harṣa-jālārjuna-kriyā | sirotpāte viśeṣeṇa ghṛta-mākṣikam añjanam || 10 || sirā-harṣe tu madhunā ślakṣṇa-ghṛṣṭaṃ rasāñjanam | arjune śarkarā-mastu-kṣaudrair āścyotanaṃ hitam || 11 || sphaṭikaḥ kuṅkumaṃ śaṅkho madhukaṃ madhunāñjanam | madhunā cāñjanaṃ śaṅkhaḥ pheno vā sitayā saha || 12 || 11.12av sphaṭikaṃ kuṅkumaṃ śaṅkhaṃ 11.12bv kāsīsaṃ madhunāñjanam armoktaṃ pañca-dhā tatra tanu dhūmāvilaṃ ca yat | raktaṃ dadhi-nibhaṃ yac ca śukra-vat tasya bheṣajam || 13 || uttānasyetarat svinnaṃ sa-sindhūtthena cāñjitam | rasena bījapūrasya nimīlyākṣi vimardayet || 14 || itthaṃ saṃroṣitākṣasya pracale 'rmādhi-māṃsake | ghṛtasya niś-calaṃ mūrdhni vartmanoś ca viśeṣataḥ || 15 || 11.15bv prabale 'rmādhi-māṃsake apāṅgam īkṣamāṇasya vṛddhe 'rmaṇi kanīnakāt | valī syād yatra tatrārma baḍiśenāvalambitam || 16 || nāty-āyataṃ mucuṇḍyā vā sūcyā sūtreṇa vā tataḥ | samantān maṇḍalāgreṇa mocayed atha mokṣitam || 17 || 11.17av nāty-āyataṃ samutpāṭya kanīnakam upānīya catur-bhāgāvaśeṣitam | chindyāt kanīnakaṃ rakṣed vāhinīś cāśru-vāhinīḥ || 18 || 11.18cv chindyāt kanīnakaṃ rakṣan 11.18cv chindyāt kanīnakaṃ rakṣye kanīnaka-vyadhād aśru nāḍī cākṣṇi pravartate | vṛddhe 'rmaṇi tathāpāṅgāt paśyato 'sya kanīnakam || 19 || 11.19av kanīnaka-vadhād aśru 11.19av kanīnaka-vadhād āśu 11.19av kanīnaka-vyadhād a-sru- 11.19bv -nāḍī cākṣṇi pravartate samyak-chinnaṃ madhu-vyoṣa-saindhava-pratisāritam | uṣṇena sarpiṣā siktam abhyaktaṃ madhu-sarpiṣā || 20 || badhnīyāt secayen muktvā tṛtīyādi-dineṣu ca | karañja-bīja-siddhena kṣīreṇa kvathitais tathā || 21 || sa-kṣaudrair dvi-niśā-lodhra-paṭolī-yaṣṭi-kiṃśukaiḥ | kuraṇṭa-mukulopetair muñced evāhni saptame || 22 || 11.22cv koraṇṭa-mukulopetair samyak-chinne bhavet svāsthyaṃ hīnāti-ccheda-jān gadān | sekāñjana-prabhṛtibhir jayel lekhana-bṛṃhaṇaiḥ || 23 || sitā-manaḥśilaileya-lavaṇottama-nāgaram | ardha-karṣonmitaṃ tārkṣyaṃ palārdhaṃ ca madhu-drutam || 24 || 11.24dv palārdhaṃ ca madhu-plutam añjanaṃ śleṣma-timira-pilla-śukrārma-śoṣa-jit | tri-phalaika-tama-dravya-tvacaṃ pānīya-kalkitām || 25 || 11.25bv -pilla-śukrārma-kāca-jit śarāva-pihitāṃ dagdhvā kapāle cūrṇayet tataḥ | pṛthak-śeṣauṣadha-rasaiḥ pṛthag eva ca bhāvitā || 26 || sā maṣī śoṣitā peṣyā bhūyo dvi-lavaṇānvitā | trīṇy etāny añjanāny āha lekhanāni paraṃ nimiḥ || 27 || sirā-jāle sirā yās tu kaṭhinā lekhanauṣadhaiḥ | na sidhyanty arma-vat tāsāṃ piṭikānāṃ ca sādhanam || 28 || doṣānurodhāc chukreṣu snigdha-rūkṣā varā ghṛtam | tiktam ūrdhvam asṛk-srāvo reka-sekādi ceṣyate || 29 || 11.29av doṣānubandhāc chukreṣu 11.29bv snigdhā rūkṣā varā ghṛtam 11.29bv snigdha-rūkṣa-varā ghṛtam 11.29cv tiktam ūrdhvam asṛk-srāva- 11.29dv -reka-sekādi ceṣyate tris trivṛd-vāriṇā pakvaṃ kṣata-śukre ghṛtaṃ pibet | sirayānu hared raktaṃ jalaukobhiś ca locanāt || 30 || siddhenotpala-kākolī-drākṣā-yaṣṭī-vidāribhiḥ | sa-sitenāja-payasā secanaṃ salilena vā || 31 || rāgāśru-vedanā-śāntau paraṃ lekhanam añjanam | vartayo jāti-mukula-lākṣā-gairika-candanaiḥ || 32 || prasādayanti pittāsraṃ ghnanti ca kṣata-śukrakam | dantair danti-varāhoṣṭra-gavāśvāja-kharodbhavaiḥ || 33 || 11.33av prasādayanti pittāsṛk 11.33dv -go-rāsabha-samudbhavaiḥ sa-śaṅkha-mauktikāmbho-dhi-phenair marica-pādikaiḥ | kṣata-śukram api vyāpi danta-vartir nivartayet || 34 || tamāla-pattraṃ go-danta-śaṅkha-pheno 'sthi gārdabham | tāmraṃ ca vartir mūtreṇa sarva-śukraka-nāśinī || 35 || 11.35cv tāmraṃ ca basta-mūtreṇa ratnāni dantāḥ śṛṅgāṇi dhātavas try-ūṣaṇaṃ truṭī | karañja-bījaṃ laśuno vraṇa-sādi ca bheṣajam || 36 || sa-vraṇā-vraṇa-gambhīra-tvak-stha-śukra-ghnam añjanam | nimnam unnamayet sneha-pāna-nasya-rasāñjanaiḥ || 37 || sa-rujaṃ nī-rujaṃ tṛpti-puṭa-pākena śukrakam | śuddha-śukre niśā-yaṣṭī-śārivā-śābarāmbhasā || 38 || 11.38dv -śārivā-sādhitāmbhasā secanaṃ lodhra-poṭalyā koṣṇāmbho-magnayātha-vā | bṛhatī-mūla-yaṣṭy-āhva-tāmra-saindhava-nāgaraiḥ || 39 || dhātrī-phalāmbunā piṣṭair lepitaṃ tāmra-bhājanam | yavājyāmalakī-pattrair bahu-śo dhūpayet tataḥ || 40 || tatra kurvīta guṭikās tā jala-kṣaudra-peṣitāḥ | mahā-nīlā iti khyātāḥ śuddha-śukra-harāḥ param || 41 || sthire śukre ghane cāsya bahu-śo 'pahared asṛk | śiraḥ-kāya-virekāṃś ca puṭa-pākāṃś ca bhūri-śaḥ || 42 || kuryān marica-vaidehī-śirīṣa-phala-saindhavaiḥ | harṣaṇaṃ tri-phalā-kvātha-pītena lavaṇena vā || 43 || 11.43cv gharṣaṇaṃ tri-phalā-kvātha- 11.43cv sarṣapa-tri-phalā-kvātha- kuryād añjana-yogau vā ślokārdha-gaditāv imau | śaṅkha-kolāsthi-kataka-drākṣā-madhuka-mākṣikaiḥ || 44 || surā-dantārṇava-malaiḥ śirīṣa-kusumānvitaiḥ | dhātrī-phaṇijjaka-rase kṣāro lāṅgalikodbhavaḥ || 45 || 11.45av khara-dantārṇava-malaiḥ 11.45dv kṣāro lāṅgalikā-bhavaḥ 11.45dv kṣāro lāṅgalikī-bhavaḥ uṣitaḥ śoṣitaś cūrṇaḥ śukra-harṣaṇam añjanam | mudgā vā nis-tuṣāḥ piṣṭāḥ śaṅkha-kṣaudra-samāyutāḥ || 46 || 11.46bv śukra-gharṣaṇam añjanam sāro madhūkān madhu-mān majjā vākṣāt sa-mākṣikā | go-kharāśvoṣṭra-daśanāḥ śaṅkhaḥ phenaḥ samudra-jaḥ || 47 || 11.47av sāro madhūkāt sa-madhur 11.47av sāro madhūkān madhunā vartir arjuna-toyena hṛṣṭa-śukraka-nāśinī | utsannaṃ vā sa-śalyaṃ vā śūkraṃ vālādibhir likhet || 48 || 11.48bv piṣṭā śukraka-nāśinī 11.48bv duṣṭa-śukraka-nāśinī sirā-śukre tv a-dṛṣṭi-ghne cikitsā vraṇa-śukra-vat | puṇḍra-yaṣṭy-āhva-kākolī-siṃhī-loha-niśāñjanam || 49 || kalkitaṃ chāga-dugdhena sa-ghṛtair dhūpitaṃ yavaiḥ | dhātrī-pattraiś ca paryāyād vartir atrāñjanaṃ param || 50 || 11.50dv vartir atrāñjanaṃ hitam 11.50dv vartir netrāñjanaṃ param a-śāntāv arma-vac chastram ajakākhye ca yojayet | ajakāyām a-sādhyāyāṃ śukre 'nya-tra ca tad-vidhe || 51 || vedanopaśamaṃ sneha-pānāsṛk-srāvaṇādibhiḥ | kuryād bībhatsa-tāṃ jetuṃ śukrasyotsedha-sādhanam || 52 || 11.52dv śukla-tvotsedha-sādhanam nārikelāsthi-bhallāta-tāla-vaṃśa-karīra-jam | bhasmādbhiḥ srāvayet tābhir bhāvayet karabhāsthi-jam || 53 || cūrṇaṃ śukreṣv a-sādhyeṣu tad vaivarṇya-ghnam añjanam | sādhyeṣu sādhanāyālam idam eva ca śīlitam || 54 || ajakāṃ pārśvato viddhvā sūcyā visrāvya codakam | samaṃ prapīḍyāṅguṣṭhena vasārdreṇānu pūrayet || 55 || vraṇaṃ go-māṃsa-cūrṇena baddhaṃ baddhaṃ vimucya ca | sapta-rātrād vraṇe rūḍhe kṛṣṇa-bhāge same sthire || 56 || snehāñjanaṃ ca kartavyaṃ nasyaṃ ca kṣīra-sarpiṣā | tathāpi punar-ādhmāne bheda-cchedādikāṃ kriyām || 57 || 11.57cv tathāpi punar-ādhmāte yuktyā kuryād yathā nāti-cchedena syāt nimajjanam || 57ū̆ab || 11.57ū̆av yuktyā yuñjyād yathā nāti- nityaṃ ca śukreṣu śṛtaṃ yathā-svaṃ pāne ca marśe ca ghṛtaṃ vidadhyāt | na hīyate labdha-balā tathāntas tīkṣṇāñjanair dṛk satataṃ prayuktaiḥ || 58 || 11.58dv tīkṣṇāñjanair dṛk pratataṃ prayuktaiḥ Uttarasthāna sirānusāriṇi male prathamaṃ paṭalaṃ śrite | a-vyaktam īkṣate rūpaṃ vyaktam apy a-nimittataḥ || 1 || 12.1bv prathamaṃ paṭalaṃ gate 12.1cv a-vyaktam īkṣyate rūpaṃ prāpte dvitīyaṃ paṭalaṃ a-bhūtam api paśyati | bhūtaṃ tu yatnād āsannaṃ dūre sūkṣmaṃ ca nekṣate || 2 || 12.2dv dūraṃ sūkṣmaṃ ca nekṣate dūrāntika-sthaṃ rūpaṃ ca viparyāsena manyate | doṣe maṇḍala-saṃsthāne maṇḍalānīva paśyati || 3 || dvi-dhaikaṃ dṛṣṭi-madhya-sthe bahu-dhā bahu-dhā-sthite | dṛṣṭer abhyantara-gate hrasva-vṛddha-viparyayam || 4 || 12.4dv hrasva-dīrgha-viparyayam 12.4dv hrasvaṃ bahu viparyayam nāntika-stham adhaḥ-saṃsthe dūra-gaṃ nopari sthite | pārśve paśyen na pārśva-sthe timirākhyo 'yam āmayaḥ || 5 || prāpnoti kāca-tāṃ doṣe tṛtīya-paṭalāśrite | tenordhvam īkṣate nādhas tanu-cailāvṛtopamam || 6 || 12.6cv tenordhvam īkṣyate nādhas yathā-varṇaṃ ca rajyeta dṛṣṭir hīyeta ca kramāt | tathāpy upekṣamāṇasya caturthaṃ paṭalaṃ gataḥ || 7 || 12.7av yathā-doṣaṃ ca rajyeta liṅga-nāśaṃ malaḥ kurvaṃś chādayed dṛṣṭi-maṇḍalam | tatra vātena timire vyāviddham iva paśyati || 8 || calāvilāruṇābhāsaṃ prasannaṃ cekṣate muhuḥ | jālāni keśān maśakān raśmīṃś copekṣite 'tra ca || 9 || 12.9av dhūmāvilāruṇābhāsaṃ 12.9bv prasannaṃ vīkṣate muhuḥ 12.9dv raśmīṃś copekṣite 'tra tu kācī-bhūte dṛg aruṇā paśyaty āsyam a-nāsikam | candra-dīpādy-aneka-tvaṃ vakram ṛjv api manyate || 10 || vṛddhaḥ kāco dṛśaṃ kuryād rajo-dhūmāvṛtām iva | spaṣṭāruṇābhāṃ vistīrṇāṃ sūkṣmāṃ vā hata-darśanām || 11 || 12.11cv sphuṭāruṇābhāṃ vistīrṇāṃ sa liṅga-nāśo vāte tu saṃkocayati dṛk-sirāḥ | dṛṅ-maṇḍalaṃ viśaty antar gambhīrā dṛg asau smṛtā || 12 || pitta-je timire vidyut-khadyota-dyota-dīpitam | śikhi-tittiri-pattrābhaṃ prāyo nīlaṃ ca paśyati || 13 || 12.13bv -khadyotodyota-dīpitam 12.13cv śikhi-tittiri-picchābhaṃ kāce dṛg kāca-nīlābhā tādṛg eva ca paśyati | arkendu-pariveṣāgni-marīcīndra-dhanūṃṣi ca || 14 || 12.14av kāce dṛg kāṃsya-nīlābhā bhṛṅga-nīlā nir-ālokā dṛk snigdhā liṅga-nāśataḥ | dṛṣṭiḥ pittena hrasvākhyā sā hrasvā hrasva-darśinī || 15 || bhavet pitta-vidagdhākhyā pītā pītābha-darśanā | kaphena timire prāyaḥ snigdhaṃ śvetaṃ ca paśyati || 16 || 12.16bv pītā pītābha-darśinī śaṅkhendu-kunda-kusumaiḥ kumudair iva cācitam | kāce tu niṣ-prabhendv-arka-pradīpādyair ivācitam || 17 || 12.17bv kumudair iva vācitam sitābhā sā ca dṛṣṭiḥ syāl liṅga-nāśe tu lakṣyate | mūrtaḥ kapho dṛṣṭi-gataḥ snigdho darśana-nāśanaḥ || 18 || bindur jalasyeva calaḥ padminī-puṭa-saṃsthitaḥ | uṣṇe saṃkocam āyāti cchāyāyāṃ parisarpati || 19 || 12.19bv padminī-puṭa-saṃśritaḥ 12.19bv padminī-pattra-saṃśritaḥ śaṅkha-kundendu-kumuda-sphaṭikopama-śuklimā | raktena timire raktaṃ tamo-bhūtaṃ ca paśyati || 20 || kācena raktā kṛṣṇā vā dṛṣṭis tādṛk ca paśyati | liṅga-nāśe 'pi tādṛg dṛṅ niṣ-prabhā hata-darśanā || 21 || saṃsarga-saṃnipāteṣu vidyāt saṃkīrṇa-lakṣaṇān | timirādīn a-kasmāc ca taiḥ syād vyaktākulekṣaṇaḥ || 22 || 12.22dv taiḥ syād vakrākulekṣaṇaḥ 12.22dv taiḥ syād vyaktākulekṣaṇam timire śeṣayor dṛṣṭau citro rāgaḥ prajāyate | dyotyate nakulasyeva yasya dṛṅ nicitā malaiḥ || 23 || nakulāndhaḥ sa tatrāhni citraṃ paśyati no niśi | arke 'sta-mastaka-nyasta-gabhastau stambham āgatāḥ || 24 || sthagayanti dṛśaṃ doṣā doṣāndhaḥ sa gado 'paraḥ | divā-kara-kara-spṛṣṭā bhraṣṭā dṛṣṭi-pathān malāḥ || 25 || vilīna-līnā yacchanti vyaktam atrāhni darśanam | uṣṇa-taptasya sahasā śīta-vāri-nimajjanāt || 26 || tri-doṣa-rakta-saṃpṛkto yāty ūṣmordhvaṃ tato 'kṣiṇi | dāhoṣe malinaṃ śuklam ahany āvila-darśanam || 27 || rātrāv āndhyaṃ ca jāyeta vidagdhoṣṇena sā smṛtā | bhṛśam amlāśanād doṣaiḥ sāsrair yā dṛṣṭir ācitā || 28 || sa-kleda-kaṇḍū-kaluṣā vidagdhāmlena sā smṛtā | śoka-jvara-śiro-roga-saṃtaptasyānilādayaḥ || 29 || 12.29bv vidagdhāmlena sā matā dhūmāvilāṃ dhūma-dṛśaṃ dṛśaṃ kuryuḥ sa dhūmaraḥ | sahasaivālpa-sat-tvasya paśyato rūpam adbhutam || 30 || 12.30av dhūmāvilāṃ dhūma-dṛśāṃ 12.30bv dṛśaṃ kuryuḥ sa dhūsaraḥ 12.30bv dṛśaṃ kuryuḥ sa dhūmakaḥ bhāsvaraṃ bhās-karādiṃ vā vātādyā nayanāśritāḥ | kurvanti tejaḥ saṃśoṣya dṛṣṭiṃ muṣita-darśanām || 31 || 12.31av bhāsuraṃ bhās-karādiṃ vā vaiḍūrya-varṇāṃ stimitāṃ prakṛti-sthām ivā-vyathām | aupasargika ity eṣa liṅga-nāśo 'tra varjayet || 32 || vinā kaphāl liṅga-nāśān gambhīrāṃ hrasva-jām api | ṣaṭ kācā nakulāndhaś ca yāpyāḥ śeṣāṃs tu sādhayet || 33 || 12.33cv ṣaṭ kācā nakulāndhyaś ca dvā-daśeti gadā dṛṣṭau nirdiṣṭāḥ sapta-viṃśatiḥ || 33ū̆ab || Uttarasthāna timiraṃ kāca-tāṃ yāti kāco 'py āndhyam upekṣayā | netra-rogeṣv ato ghoraṃ timiraṃ sādhayed drutam || 1 || tulāṃ paceta jīvantyā droṇe 'pāṃ pāda-śeṣite | tat-kvāthe dvi-guṇa-kṣīraṃ ghṛta-prasthaṃ vipācayet || 2 || 13.2cv tat-kvāthe dvi-guṇaṃ kṣīraṃ prapauṇḍarīka-kākolī-pippalī-lodhra-saindhavaiḥ | śatāhvā-madhuka-drākṣā-sitā-dāru-phala-trayaiḥ || 3 || kārṣikair niśi tat pītaṃ timirāpaharaṃ param | drākṣā-candana-mañjiṣṭhā-kākolī-dvaya-jīvakaiḥ || 4 || 13.4bv timirāṇāṃ haraṃ param sitā-śatāvarī-medā-puṇḍrāhva-madhukotpalaiḥ | pacej jīrṇa-ghṛta-prasthaṃ sama-kṣīraṃ picūnmitaiḥ || 5 || 13.5cv pacej jīrṇaṃ ghṛta-prasthaṃ hanti tat kāca-timira-rakta-rājī-śiro-rujaḥ | paṭola-nimba-kaṭukā-dārvī-sevya-varā-vṛṣam || 6 || sa-dhanvayāsa-trāyantī-parpaṭaṃ pālikaṃ pṛthak | prastham āmalakānāṃ ca kvāthayen nalvaṇe 'mbhasi || 7 || tad-āḍhake 'rdha-palikaiḥ piṣṭaiḥ prasthaṃ ghṛtāt pacet | musta-bhūnimba-yaṣṭy-āhva-kuṭajodīcya-candanaiḥ || 8 || 13.8av tad-āḍhake 'rdha-palikair 13.8bv ghṛta-prasthaṃ vipācayet sa-pippalīkais tat sarpir ghrāṇa-karṇāsya-roga-jit | vidradhi-jvara-duṣṭārur-visarpāpaci-kuṣṭha-nut || 9 || 13.9av sa-vyoṣa-cavyais tat sarpir 13.9bv ghrāṇa-karṇākṣi-roga-jit 13.9cv vidradhi-jvara-duṣṭāsra- viśeṣāc chukra-timira-naktāndhyoṣṇāmla-dāha-hṛt | tri-phalāṣṭa-palaṃ kvāthyaṃ pāda-śeṣaṃ jalāḍhake || 10 || 13.10bv -naktāndhyoṣṇāmla-dāha-nut 13.10dv pāda-śeṣe jalāḍhake tena tulya-payaskena tri-phalā-pala-kalka-vān | ardha-prastho ghṛtāt siddhaḥ sitayā mākṣikeṇa vā || 11 || yuktaṃ pibet tat timirī tad-yuktaṃ vā varā-rasam | yaṣṭīmadhu-dvi-kākolī-vyāghrī-kṛṣṇāmṛtotpalaiḥ || 12 || pālikaiḥ sa-sitā-drākṣair ghṛta-prasthaṃ pacet samaiḥ | ajā-kṣīra-varā-vasā-mārkava-sva-rasaiḥ pṛthak || 13 || mahā-traiphalam ity etat paraṃ dṛṣṭi-vikāra-jit | traiphalenātha haviṣā lihānas tri-phalāṃ niśi || 14 || 13.14bv paraṃ dṛṣṭi-vikāra-nut yaṣṭīmadhuka-saṃyuktāṃ madhunā ca pariplutām | māsam ekaṃ hitāhāraḥ pibann āmalakodakam || 15 || sauparṇaṃ labhate cakṣur ity āha bhaga-vān nimiḥ | tāpyāyo-hema-yaṣṭy-āhva-sitā-jīrṇājya-mākṣikaiḥ || 16 || saṃyojitā yathā-kāmaṃ timira-ghnī varā varā | sa-ghṛtaṃ vā varā-kvāthaṃ śīlayet timirāmayī || 17 || apūpa-sūpa-saktūn vā tri-phalā-cūrṇa-saṃyutān | pāyasaṃ vā varā-yuktaṃ śītaṃ sa-madhu-śarkaram || 18 || 13.18av apūpa-takra-saktūn vā prātar bhaktasya vā pūrvam adyāt pathyāṃ pṛthak pṛthak | mṛdvīkā-śarkarā-kṣaudraiḥ satataṃ timirāturaḥ || 19 || 13.19av prātar bhuktasya vā pūrvam sroto-jāṃśāṃś catuḥ-ṣaṣṭiṃ tāmrāyo-rūpya-kāñcanaiḥ | yuktān praty-ekam ekāṃśair andha-mūṣodara-sthitān || 20 || dhmāpayitvā samāvṛttaṃ tatas tac ca niṣecayet | rasa-skandha-kaṣāyeṣu sapta-kṛtvaḥ pṛthak pṛthak || 21 || vaiḍūrya-muktā-śaṅkhānāṃ tribhir bhāgair yutaṃ tataḥ | cūrṇāñjanaṃ prayuñjīta tat sarva-timirāpaham || 22 || 13.22dv tat sarvaṃ timirāpaham māṃsī-tri-jātakāyaḥ-kuṅkuma-nīlotpalābhayā-tutthaiḥ | sita-kāca-śaṅkha-phenaka-maricāñjana-pippalī-madhukaiḥ || 23 || candre 'śvinī-sa-nāthe su-cūrṇitair añjayed yugalaṃ akṣṇoḥ | timirārma-rakta-rājī-kaṇḍū-kācādi-śamam icchan || 24 || marica-vara-lavaṇa-bhāgau bhāgau dvau kaṇa-samudra-phenābhyām | sauvīra-bhāga-navakaṃ citrāyāṃ cūrṇitaṃ kaphāmaya-jit || 25 || 13.25dv citrā-saṃcūrṇitaṃ kaphāmaya-jit manohvā-tuttha-kastūrī-māṃsī-malaya-rocanāḥ | daśa-karpūra-saṃyuktam aśīti-guṇam añjanam || 25+(1) || 13.25+(1)cv dara-karpūra-saṃyuktam piṣṭaṃ citrāśvinī-puṣye ṣaḍ-vidhe timire hitam | prasādanaṃ ca dṛṣṭeḥ syāc cakṣuṣeṇāvabhāṣitam || 25+(2) || drākṣā-mṛṇālī-sva-rase kṣīra-madya-vasāsu ca | pṛthak divyāpsu sroto-jaṃ sapta-kṛtvo niṣecayet || 26 || tac cūrṇitaṃ sthitaṃ śaṅkhe dṛk-prasādanam añjanam | śastaṃ sarvākṣi-rogeṣu videha-pati-nirmitam || 27 || 13.27av tac cūrṇitaṃ ghṛtaṃ śaṅkhe nirdagdhaṃ bādarāṅgārais tutthaṃ cetthaṃ niṣecitam | kramād ajā-payaḥ-sarpiḥ-kṣaudre tasmāt pala-dvayam || 28 || 13.28bv tutthaṃ caivaṃ niṣecitam 13.28cv kramāc chāga-payaḥ-sarpiḥ- kārṣikais tāpya-marica-sroto-ja-kaṭukā-nataiḥ | paṭu-lodhra-śilā-pathyā-kaṇailāñjana-phenakaiḥ || 29 || yuktaṃ palena yaṣṭyāś ca mūṣāntar-dhmāta-cūrṇitam | hanti kācārma-naktāndhya-rakta-rājīḥ su-śīlitaḥ || 30 || cūrṇo viśeṣāt timiraṃ bhās-karo bhās-karo yathā | triṃśad-bhāgā bhujaṅgasya gandha-pāṣāṇa-pañcakam || 31 || śulba-tālakayor dvau dvau vaṅgasyaiko 'ñjanāt trayam | andha-mūṣī-kṛtaṃ dhmātaṃ pakvaṃ vi-malam añjanam || 32 || 13.32av śulba-tārakayor dvau dvau 13.32cv andha-mūṣā-gataṃ dhmātaṃ timirānta-karaṃ loke dvitīya iva bhās-karaḥ || 33ab || 13.33av timirāpaharaṃ loke go-mūtre chagaṇa-rase 'mla-kāñjike ca strī-stanye || 33c || 13.33cv go-mūtre chagala-rase 'mla-kāñjike ca haviṣi viṣe ca mākṣike ca || 33d || yat tutthaṃ jvalitam aneka-śo niṣiktaṃ || 33e || tat kuryād garuḍa-samaṃ narasya cakṣuḥ || 33f || tutthaṃ sa-kāśaṃ kanakaṃ sa-phalaṃ śaṅkha-śilā-gairikam añjanaṃ ca | naraḥ kapāla-sahi-kūṅkuḍāṇḍaṃ sapta-dvi-sapta-tri-samayo gataḥ || 33+1 || bhṛṅgodbhava-sva-rasa-bhāvitam āja-dugdhe mūtre gavām payasi ca tri-phalā-kaṣāye | drākṣā-rase ca pariśuddham iti krameṇa sauvīram añjanam idaṃ timiraṃ nihanti || 33+2 || śreṣṭhā-jalaṃ bhṛṅga-rasaṃ sa-viṣājyam ajā-payaḥ | yaṣṭī-rasaṃ ca yat sīsaṃ sapta-kṛtvaḥ pṛthak pṛthak || 34 || 13.34av śreṣṭhā-rasaṃ bhṛṅga-rasaṃ taptaṃ taptaṃ pāyitaṃ tac-chalākā netre yuktā sāñjanān-añjanā vā | taimiryārma-srāva-paicchilya-paillaṃ kaṇḍūṃ jāḍyaṃ rakta-rājīṃ ca hanti || 35 || rasendra-bhujagau tulyau tayos tulyam athāñjanam | īṣat-karpūra-saṃyuktam añjanaṃ timirāpaham || 36 || 13.36cv īṣat-karpūra-sahitam 13.36dv añjanaṃ timire varam 13.36dv añjanaṃ nayanāmṛtam yo gṛdhras taruṇa-ravi-prakāśa-gallas tasyāsyaṃ samaya-mṛtasya go-śakṛdbhiḥ | nirdagdhaṃ sama-ghṛtam añjanaṃ ca peṣyaṃ yogo 'yaṃ nayana-balaṃ karoti gārdhram || 37 || kṛṣṇa-sarpa-vadane sa-haviṣkaṃ dagdham añjana-niḥsṛta-dhūmam | cūrṇitaṃ nalada-pattra-vimiśraṃ bhinna-tāram api rakṣati cakṣuḥ || 38 || 13.38bv dagdham añjana-nirgata-dhūmam 13.38cv yojitaṃ nalada-pattra-vimiśraṃ nāgāñjanāśmāla-śilārka-vaṅgais triṃśad-dvi-pañca-dvayam a-dvikaikaiḥ | andha-mūṣī-kṛtaiś chāga-payo-niṣiktair dṛṣṭer idaṃ bhās-karam añjanaṃ syāt || 38+1 || sroto-'śma-vīraṃ ... veṣṭyājamodā-vaṭa-cchadaiḥ | ṣaṭkaṃ timira-jit kliṣṭaṃ mṛl-liptaṃ go-mayāgninā || 38+2 || tāmrāyas-kānta-gandhāhvā-tārkṣā yat su-cchalaṃ rajaḥ | lohe bhṛṅgarajo bhṛṣṭaṃ saptāhaṃ dṛṣṭi-roga-jit || 38+3 || 13.38+3bv -tārkṣyā yat su-cchalaṃ rajaḥ kṛṣṇa-sarpaṃ mṛtaṃ nyasya caturaś cāpi vṛścikān | kṣīra-kumbhe tri-saptāhaṃ kledayitvā pramanthayet || 39 || 13.39dv kledayitvānu manthayet 13.39dv kledayitvātha manthayet tatra yan nava-nītaṃ syāt puṣṇīyāt tena kukkuṭam | andhas tasya puṛīṣeṇa prekṣate dhruvam añjanāt || 40 || kṛṣṇa-sarpa-vasā śaṅkhaḥ katakāt phalam añjanam | rasa-kriyeyam a-cirād andhānāṃ darśana-pradā || 41 || maricāni daśārdha-picus tāpyāt tutthāt palaṃ picur yaṣṭyāḥ | kṣīrārdra-dagdham añjanam a-pratisārākhyam uttamaṃ timire || 42 || 13.42cv maricāni daśa dvi-palaṃ akṣa-bīja-maricāmalaka-tvak-tuttha-yaṣṭimadhukair jala-piṣṭaiḥ | chāyayaiva guṭikāḥ pariśuṣkā nāśayanti timirāṇy a-cireṇa || 43 || maricāmalaka-jalodbhava-tutthāñjana-tāpya-dhātubhiḥ krama-vṛddhaiḥ | ṣaṇ-mākṣika iti yogas timirārma-kleda-kāca-kaṇḍū-hantā || 44 || 13.44dv timirārma-kleda-kāca-kaṇḍū-hā 13.44dv timirārma-kleda-kāca-kaṇḍū-ghnaḥ ratnāni rūpyaṃ sphaṭikaṃ suvarṇaṃ sroto-'ñjanaṃ tāmram ayaḥ sa-śaṅkhaṃ | ku-candanaṃ lohita-gairikaṃ ca cūrṇāñjanaṃ sarva-dṛg-āmaya-ghnam || 45 || tila-tailam akṣa-tailaṃ bhṛṅga-sva-raso 'sanāc ca niryūhaḥ | āyasa-pātra-vipakvaṃ karoti dṛṣṭer balaṃ nasyam || 46 || 13.46dv karoti dṛṣṭer balaṃ nasyāt doṣānurodhena ca naika-śas taṃ snehāsra-visrāvaṇa-reka-nasyaiḥ | upācared añjana-mūrdha-vasti-vasti-kriyā-tarpaṇa-lepa-sekaiḥ || 47 || sāmānyaṃ sādhanam idaṃ prati-doṣam ataḥ śṛṇu || 48ab || vāta-je timire tatra daśa-mūlāmbhasā ghṛtam | kṣīre catur-guṇe śreṣṭhā-kalka-pakvaṃ pibet tataḥ || 49 || tri-phalā-pañca-mūlānāṃ kaṣāyaṃ kṣīra-saṃyutam | eraṇḍa-taila-saṃyuktaṃ yojayec ca virecanam || 50 || 13.50cv eraṇḍa-taila-saṃmiśraṃ 13.50dv yojayeta virecanam sa-mūla-jāla-jīvantī-tulāṃ droṇe 'mbhasaḥ pacet | aṣṭa-bhāga-sthite tasmiṃs taila-prasthaṃ payaḥ-same || 51 || 13.51dv taila-prasthaṃ payaḥ-samam balā-tritaya-jīvantī-varī-mūlaiḥ palonmitaiḥ | yaṣṭī-palaiś caturbhiś ca loha-pātre vipācayet || 52 || 13.52av balā-tri-jāta-jīvantī- loha eva sthitaṃ māsaṃ nāvanād ūrdhva-jatru-jān | vāta-pittāmayān hanti tad viśeṣād dṛg-āśrayān || 53 || 13.53av loha-pātra-sthitaṃ māsaṃ 13.53dv tad viśeṣād dṛg-āmayān keśāsya-kandharā-skandha-puṣṭi-lāvaṇya-kānti-dam | sitairaṇḍa-jaṭā-siṃhī-phala-dāru-vacā-nataiḥ || 54 || 13.54bv -puṣṭi-lāvaṇya-kānti-kṛt ghoṣayā bilva-mūlaiś ca tailaṃ pakvaṃ payo-'nvitam | nasyaṃ sarvordhva-jatrūttha-vāta-śleṣmāmayārti-jit || 55 || 13.55av śatāhvā-bilva-mūlaiś ca vasāñjane ca vaiyāghrī vārāhī vā praśasyate | gṛdhrāhi-kukkuṭotthā vā madhukenānvitā pṛthak || 56 || pratyañjane ca sroto-jaṃ rasa-kṣīra-ghṛte kramāt | niṣiktaṃ pūrva-vad yojyaṃ timira-ghnam an-uttamam || 57 || 13.57bv rasa-kṣīra-ghṛtaiḥ kramāt na ced evaṃ śamaṃ yāti tatas tarpaṇam ācaret | śatāhvā-kuṣṭha-nalada-kākolī-dvaya-yaṣṭibhiḥ || 58 || prapauṇḍarīka-sarala-pippalī-devadārubhiḥ | sarpir aṣṭa-guṇa-kṣīraṃ pakvaṃ tarpaṇam uttamam || 59 || medasas tad-vad aiṇeyād dugdha-siddhāt khajāhatāt | uddhṛtaṃ sādhitaṃ tejo madhukośīra-candanaiḥ || 60 || śvāvic-chalyaka-godhānāṃ dakṣa-tittiri-barhiṇām | pṛthak pṛthag anenaiva vidhinā kalpayed vasām || 61 || 13.61av śvāvic-chalyaka-godhānām 13.61av śvā-viṣkirāka-godhānām 13.61bv ṛkṣa-tittiri-barhiṇām prasādanaṃ snehanaṃ ca puṭa-pākaṃ prayojayet | vāta-pīnasa-vac cātra nirūhaṃ sānuvāsanam || 62 || 13.62dv nirūhaṃ cānuvāsanam pitta-je timire sarpir jīvanīya-phala-trayaiḥ | vipācitaṃ pāyayitvā snigdhasya vyadhayet sirām || 63 || śarkarailā-trivṛc-cūrṇair madhu-yuktair virecayet | su-śītān seka-lepādīn yuñjyān netrāsya-mūrdhasu || 64 || śārivā-padmakośīra-muktā-śābara-candanaiḥ | vartiḥ śastāñjane cūrṇas tathā pattrotpalāñjanaiḥ || 65 || 13.65cv vartiḥ śastāñjanaṃ cūrṇas 13.65dv tathā padmotpalāñjanaiḥ sa-nāgapuṣpa-karpūra-yaṣṭy-āhva-svarṇa-gairikaiḥ | sauvīrāñjana-tutthaka-śṛṅgī-dhātrī-phala-sphaṭika-karpūram || 66 || pañcāṃśaṃ pañcāṃśaṃ try-aṃśam athaikāṃśam añjanaṃ timira-ghnam | nasyaṃ cājyaṃ śṛtaṃ kṣīra-jīvanīya-sitotpalaiḥ || 67 || śleṣmodbhave 'mṛtā-kvātha-varā-kaṇa-śṛtaṃ ghṛtam | vidhyet sirāṃ pīta-vato dadyāc cānu virecanam || 68 || kvāthaṃ pūgābhayā-śuṇṭhī-kṛṣṇā-kumbha-nikumbha-jam | hrīvera-dāru-dvi-niśā-kṛṣṇā-kalkaiḥ payo-'nvitaiḥ || 69 || dvi-pañca-mūla-niryūhe tailaṃ pakvaṃ ca nāvanam | śaṅkha-priyaṅgu-nepālī-kaṭu-trika-phala-trikaiḥ || 70 || dṛg-vaimalyāya vi-malā vartiḥ syāt kokilā punaḥ | kṛṣṇa-loha-rajo-vyoṣa-saindhava-tri-phalāñjanaiḥ || 71 || 13.71bv vartiḥ syāt kaulikā punaḥ śaśa-go-khara-siṃhoṣṭra-dvi-jā lālāṭam asthi ca | śveta-go-vāla-marica-śaṅkha-candana-phenakam || 72 || piṣṭaṃ stanyājya-dugdhābhyāṃ vartis timira-śukra-jit | rakta-je pitta-vat siddhiḥ śītaiś cāsraṃ prasādayet || 73 || madhūka-sārāñjana-tāmra-tri-kaṭuka-viḍaṅga-pauṇḍarīkāṇi | sa-lavaṇa-tuttha-tri-phalā-lodhrāṇi nabho-'mbu-piṣṭāni || 73+1 || vartiś catur-daśāṅgī nayanāmaya-nāśanī śilā-stambhe | likhitā hitāya jagatas timirāpaharī viśeṣeṇa || 73+2 || eka-guṇā māgadhikā dvi-guṇā ca harītakī salila-piṣṭā | vartir iyaṃ timira-paṭala-kāca-kaṇḍv-asra-harī || 73+3 || drākṣayā nalada-lodhra-yaṣṭibhiḥ śaṅkha-tāmra-hima-padma-padmakaiḥ | sotpalaiś chagala-dugdha-vartitair asra-jaṃ timiram āśu naśyati || 74 || 13.74av drākṣayā nalada-lodhra-yaṣṭikā- 13.74bv -śaṅkha-tāmra-hima-padma-padmakaiḥ 13.74bv -śaṅkha-tāmra-hima-padma-pattrakaiḥ saṃsarga-saṃnipātotthe yathā-doṣodayaṃ kriyā | siddhaṃ madhūka-kṛmijin-maricāmaradārubhiḥ || 75 || sa-kṣīraṃ nāvanaṃ tailaṃ piṣṭair lepo mukhasya ca | nata-nīlotpalānantā-yaṣṭy-āhva-suniṣaṇṇakaiḥ || 76 || sādhitaṃ nāvane tailaṃ śiro-vastau ca śasyate | dadyād uśīra-niryūhe cūrṇitaṃ kaṇa-saindhavam || 77 || 13.77av sādhitaṃ nāvanaṃ tailaṃ tat srutaṃ sa-ghṛtaṃ bhūyaḥ pacet kṣaudraṃ ghane kṣipet | śīte cāsmin hitam idaṃ sarva-je timire 'ñjanam || 78 || 13.78av tac chṛtaṃ sa-ghṛtaṃ bhūyaḥ asthīni majja-pūrṇāni sat-tvānāṃ rātri-cāriṇām | sroto-jāñjana-yuktāni vahaty ambhasi vāsayet || 79 || 13.79cv sroto-'ñjanena yuktāni māsaṃ viṃśati-rātraṃ vā tataś coddhṛtya śoṣayet | sa-meṣaśṛṅgī-puṣpāṇi sa-yaṣṭy-āhvāni tāny anu || 80 || 13.80dv sa-yaṣṭy-āhvāni tāni tu cūrṇitāny añjanaṃ śreṣṭhaṃ timire sāṃnipātike | kāce 'py eṣā kriyā muktvā sirāṃ yantra-nipīḍitāḥ || 81 || 13.81dv sirā yantra-nipīḍitāḥ 13.81dv sirāṃ yantra-nipīḍanāt āndhyāya syur malā dadyāt srāvye tv asre jalaukasaḥ | guḍaḥ pheno 'ñjanaṃ kṛṣṇā maricaṃ kuṅkumād rajaḥ || 82 || 13.82av āndhyāya syur ato dadyāt rasa-kriyeyaṃ sa-kṣaudrā kāca-yāpanam añjanam | nakulāndhe tri-doṣotthe taimirya-vihito vidhiḥ || 83 || 13.83dv taimirya-vidhi-vat kriyāḥ rasa-kriyā ghṛta-kṣaudra-go-maya-sva-rasa-drutaiḥ | tārkṣya-gairika-tālīśair niśāndhe hitam añjanam || 84 || 13.84dv niśāndhye hitam añjanam dadhnā vighṛṣṭaṃ maricaṃ rātry-andhe 'ñjanam uttamam | karañjikotpala-svarṇa-gairikāmbho-ja-kesaraiḥ || 85 || 13.85bv rātry-andhāñjanam uttamam 13.85cv kārañjikotpala-svarṇa- piṣṭair go-maya-toyena vartir doṣāndha-nāsinī | ajā-mūtreṇa vā kauntī-kṛṣṇā-sroto-ja-saindhavaiḥ || 86 || 13.86bv vartir doṣāndhya-nāsinī kālānusārī-tri-kaṭu-tri-phalāla-manaḥśilāḥ | sa-phenāś chāga-dugdhena rātry-andhe vartayo hitāḥ || 87 || 13.87dv rātry-āndhye vartayo hitāḥ saṃniveśya yakṛn-madhye pippalīr a-dahan pacet | tāḥ śuṣkā madhunā ghṛṣṭā niśāndhe śreṣṭham añjanam || 88 || 13.88dv niśāndhye śreṣṭham añjanam 13.88dv naktāndhye śreṣṭham añjanam khādec ca plīha-yakṛtī māhiṣe taila-sarpiṣā | ghṛte siddhāni jīvantyāḥ pallavāni ca bhakṣayet || 89 || tathātimuktakairaṇḍa-śephāly-abhīru-jāni ca | bhṛṣṭaṃ ghṛtaṃ kumbhayoneḥ pattraiḥ pāne ca pūjitam || 90 || 13.90cv siddhaṃ ghṛtaṃ kumbha-yoneḥ 13.90dv pattraiḥ pāne 'ti-pūjitam dhūmarākhyāmla-pittoṣṇa-vidāhe jīrṇa-sarpiṣā | snigdhaṃ virecayec chītaiḥ śītair dihyāc ca sarvataḥ || 91 || go-śakṛd-rasa-dugdhājyair vipakvaṃ śasyate 'ñjanam | svarṇa-gairika-tālīśa-cūrṇāvāpā rasa-kriyā || 92 || medā-śābarakānantā-mañjiṣṭhā-dārvi-yaṣṭibhiḥ | kṣīrāṣṭāṃśaṃ ghṛtaṃ pakvaṃ sa-tailaṃ nāvanaṃ hitam || 93 || tarpaṇaṃ kṣīra-sarpiḥ syād a-śāmyati sirā-vyadhaḥ | cintābhighāta-bhī-śoka-raukṣyāt sotkaṭakāsanāt || 94 || 13.94dv -rūkṣāmla-kaṭukāśanāt vireka-nasya-vamana-puṭa-pākādi-vibhramāt | vidagdhāhāra-vamanāt kṣut-tṛṣṇādi-vidhāraṇāt || 95 || akṣi-rogāvasānāc ca paśyet timira-rogi-vat | yathā-svaṃ tatra yuñjīta doṣādīn vīkṣya bheṣajam || 96 || sūryoparāgānala-vidyud-ādi-vilokanenopahatekṣaṇasya | saṃtarpaṇaṃ snigdha-himādi kāryaṃ tathāñjanaṃ hema ghṛtena ghṛṣṭam || 97 || cakṣū-rakṣāyāṃ sarva-kālaṃ manuṣyair yatnaḥ kartavyo jīvite yāvad icchā | vyartho loko 'yaṃ tulya-rātrin-divānāṃ puṃsām andhānāṃ vidyamāne 'pi vitte || 98 || tri-phalā rudhira-srutir viśuddhir manaso nirvṛtir añjanaṃ sa-nasyam | śakunāśana-tā sa-pāda-pūjā ghṛta-pānaṃ ca sadaiva netra-rakṣā || 99 || 13.99bv manaso nirvṛtir añjanaṃ ca nasyam 13.99cv śayanāsana-tā sa-pāda-pūjā 13.99cv śayanāsana-toṣa-pāda-pūjā a-hitād aśanāt sadā nivṛttir bhṛśa-bhās-vac-cala-sūkṣma-vīkṣaṇāc ca | muninā niminopadiṣṭam etat paramaṃ rakṣaṇam īkṣaṇasya puṃsām || 100 || Uttarasthāna vidhyet su-jātaṃ niṣ-prekṣyaṃ liṅga-nāśaṃ kaphodbhavam | āvartaky-ādibhiḥ ṣaḍbhir vivarjitam upadravaiḥ || 1 || so '-saṃjāto hi viṣamo dadhi-mastu-nibhas tanuḥ | śalākayāvakṛṣṭo 'pi punar ūrdhvaṃ prapadyate || 2 || 14.2dv punar ūrdhvaṃ pravartate karoti vedanāṃ tīvrāṃ dṛṣṭiṃ ca sthagayet punaḥ | śleṣmalaiḥ pūryate cāśu so 'nyaiḥ sopadravaś cirāt || 3 || 14.3dv so 'nyaiḥ sopadravaiś cirāt ślaiṣmiko liṅga-nāśo hi sita-tvāc chleṣmaṇaḥ sitaḥ | tasyānya-doṣābhibhavād bhavaty ā-nīla-tā gadaḥ || 4 || 14.4dv bhavaty ā-nīla-tā gade 14.4dv bhavaty ā-nīlikā gade tatrāvarta-calā dṛṣṭir āvartaky aruṇāsitā | śarkarārka-payo-leśa-niciteva ghanāti ca || 5 || 14.5bv āvartaky aruṇā sitā rājī-matī dṛṅ nicitā śāli-śūkābha-rājibhiḥ | viṣama-cchinna-dagdhābhā sa-ruk chinnāṃśukā smṛtā || 6 || dṛṣṭiḥ kāṃsya-sama-cchāyā candrakī candrakākṛtiḥ | chattrābhā naika-varṇā ca chattrakī nāma nīlikā || 7 || na vidhyed a-sirārhāṇāṃ na tṛṭ-pīnasa-kāsinām | nā-jīrṇi-bhīru-vamita-śiraḥ-karṇākṣi-śūlinām || 8 || 14.8bv na dṛk-pīnasa-kāsinām atha sādhāraṇe kāle śuddha-saṃbhojitātmanaḥ | deśe prakāśe pūrvāhṇe bhiṣag jānūcca-pīṭha-gaḥ || 9 || yantritasyopaviṣṭasya svinnākṣasya mukhānilaiḥ | aṅguṣṭha-mṛdite netre dṛṣṭau dṛṣṭvotplutaṃ malam || 10 || svāṃ nāsāṃ prekṣamāṇasya niṣ-kampaṃ mūrdhni dhārite | kṛṣṇād ardhāṅgulaṃ muktvā tathārdhārdham apāṅgataḥ || 11 || 14.11av sva-nāsāṃ prekṣamāṇasya 14.11dv tad ardhārdham apāṅgataḥ tarjanī-madhyamāṅguṣṭhaiḥ śalākāṃ niś-calaṃ dhṛtām | daiva-cchidraṃ nayet pārśvād ūrdhvam āmanthayan iva || 12 || savyaṃ dakṣiṇa-hastena netraṃ savyena cetarat | vidhyet su-viddhe śabdaḥ syād a-ruk cāmbu-lava-srutiḥ || 13 || sāntvayann āturaṃ cānu netraṃ stanyena secayet | śalākāyās tato 'greṇa nirlikhen netra-maṇḍalam || 14 || 14.14dv nirlikhed dṛṣṭi-maṇḍalam a-bādhamānaḥ śanakair nāsāṃ prati nudaṃs tataḥ | ucchiṅghanāc cāpahared dṛṣṭi-maṇḍala-gaṃ kapham || 15 || 14.15cv ucchiṅkhanāc cāpahared sthire doṣe cale vāti svedayed akṣi bāhyataḥ | atha dṛṣṭeṣu rūpeṣu śalākām āharec chanaiḥ || 16 || 14.16av sthire doṣe cale vāpi ghṛtāplutaṃ picuṃ dattvā baddhākṣaṃ śāyayet tataḥ | viddhād anyena pārśvena tam uttānaṃ dvayor vyadhe || 17 || 14.17cv vyadhād anyena pārśvena nivāte śayane 'bhyakta-śiraḥ-pādaṃ hite ratam | kṣavathuṃ kāsam udgāraṃ ṣṭhīvanaṃ pānam ambhasaḥ || 18 || 14.18bv -śiro-gātraṃ hite ratam adho-mukha-sthitiṃ snānaṃ danta-dhāvana-bhakṣaṇam | saptāhaṃ nācaret sneha-pīta-vac cātra yantraṇā || 19 || śaktito laṅghayet seko ruji koṣṇena sarpiṣā | sa-vyoṣāmalakaṃ vāṭyam aśnīyāt sa-ghṛtaṃ dravam || 20 || vilepīṃ vā try-ahāc cāsya kvāthair muktvākṣi secayet | vāta-ghnaiḥ saptame tv ahni sarva-thaivākṣi mocayet || 21 || yantraṇām anurudhyeta dṛṣṭer ā-sthairya-lābhataḥ | rūpāṇi sūkṣma-dīptāni sahasā nāvalokayet || 22 || śopha-rāga-rujādīnām adhimanthasya codbhavaḥ | a-hitair vedha-doṣāc ca yathā-svaṃ tān upācaret || 23 || 14.23cv a-hitair vedhya-doṣāc ca 14.23dv yathā-svaṃ tān upakramet kalkitāḥ sa-ghṛtā dūrvā-yava-gairika-śārivāḥ | mukhālepe prayoktavyā rujā-rāgopaśāntaye || 24 || sa-sarṣapās tilās tad-van mātuluṅga-rasāplutāḥ | payasyā-śārivā-pattra-mañjiṣṭhā-madhuyaṣṭibhiḥ || 25 || ajā-kṣīra-yutair lepaḥ sukhoṣṇaḥ śarma-kṛt param | lodhra-saindhava-mṛdvīkā-madhukaiś chāgalaṃ payaḥ || 26 || 14.26av ajā-kṣīrānvitair lepaḥ śṛtam āścyotanaṃ yojyaṃ rujā-rāga-vināśanam | madhukotpala-kuṣṭhair vā drākṣā-lākṣā-sitānvitaiḥ || 27 || 14.27cv madhukotpala-kuṣṭhailā- 14.27dv drākṣā-lākṣā-rasānvitaiḥ 14.27dv -drākṣā-lākṣā-sitānvitaiḥ 14.27dv -drākṣā-lākṣā-rasānvitaiḥ vāta-ghna-siddhe payasi śṛtaṃ sarpiś catur-guṇe | padmakādi-pratīvāpaṃ sarva-karmasu śasyate || 28 || sirāṃ tathān-upaśame snigdha-svinnasya mokṣayet | manthoktāṃ ca kriyāṃ kuryād vedhe rūḍhe 'ñjanaṃ mṛdu || 29 || 14.29dv vyadhe rūḍhe 'ñjanaṃ mṛdu āḍhakī-mūla-marica-haritāla-rasāñjanaiḥ | viddhe 'kṣṇi sa-guḍā vartir yojyā divyāmbu-peṣitā || 30 || jātī-śirīṣa-dhava-meṣaviṣāṇi-puṣpa-vaiḍūrya-mauktika-phalaṃ payasā su-piṣṭam | ājena tāmram amunā pratanu pradigdhaṃ saptāhataḥ punar idaṃ payasaiva piṣṭam || 31 || 14.31av jātī-śirīṣa-dhava-meṣaviṣāṇa-puṣpa- piṇḍāñjanaṃ hitam an-ātapa-śuṣkam akṣṇi viddhe prasāda-jananaṃ bala-kṛc ca dṛṣṭeḥ | sroto-ja-vidruma-śilāmbu-dhi-phena-tīkṣṇair asyaiva tulyam uditaṃ guṇa-kalpanābhiḥ || 32 || 14.32cv sroto-ja-vidruma-śilārṇava-phena-tīkṣṇair Uttarasthāna vātena netre 'bhiṣyaṇṇe nāsānāho 'lpa-śopha-tā | śaṅkhākṣi-bhrū-lalāṭasya toda-sphuraṇa-bhedanam || 1 || 15.1av vātena netre 'bhiṣyande 15.1cv śaṅkhākṣi-bhrū-lalāṭāsya- 15.1dv -toda-sphuraṇa-bhedanam śuṣkālpā dūṣikā śītam acchaṃ cāśru calā rujaḥ | nimeṣonmeṣaṇaṃ kṛcchrāj jantūnām iva sarpaṇam || 2 || 15.2bv accham aśru calā rujaḥ akṣy ādhmātam ivābhāti sūkṣmaiḥ śalyair ivācitam | snigdhoṣṇaiś copaśamanaṃ so 'bhiṣyanda upekṣitaḥ || 3 || 15.3cv snigdhoṣṇecchopaśamanaṃ adhimantho bhavet tatra karṇayor nadanaṃ bhramaḥ | araṇyeva ca mathyante lalāṭākṣi-bhruvādayaḥ || 4 || hatādhimanthaḥ so 'pi syāt pramādāt tena vedanāḥ | aneka-rūpā jāyante vraṇo dṛṣṭau ca dṛṣṭi-hā || 5 || manyākṣi-śaṅkhato vāyur anyato vā pravartayan | vyathāṃ tīvrām a-paicchilya-rāga-śophaṃ vilocanam || 6 || 15.6bv anyato vā pravartayet saṃkocayati pary-aśru so 'nyato-vāta-saṃjñitaḥ | tad-vaj jihmaṃ bhaven netram ūnaṃ vā vāta-paryaye || 7 || 15.7cv tad-vaj jihmaṃ bhaven netraṃ 15.7cv tad-van netraṃ bhavej jihmam 15.7dv śūnaṃ vā vāta-paryaye dāho dhūmāyanaṃ śophaḥ śyāva-tā vartmano bahiḥ | antaḥ-kledo 'śru pītoṣṇaṃ rāgaḥ pītābha-darśanam || 8 || kṣārokṣita-kṣatākṣi-tvaṃ pittābhiṣyanda-lakṣaṇam | jvalad-aṅgāra-kīrṇābhaṃ yakṛt-piṇḍa-sama-prabham || 9 || adhimanthe bhaven netraṃ syande tu kapha-saṃbhave | jāḍyaṃ śopho mahān kaṇḍūr nidrānnān-abhinandanam || 10 || sāndra-snigdha-bahu-śveta-picchā-vad-dūṣikāśru-tā | adhimanthe nataṃ kṛṣṇam unnataṃ śukla-maṇḍalam || 11 || 15.11bv -picchā-vad-dūṣikāsra-tā praseko nāsikādhmānaṃ pāṃsu-pūrṇam ivekṣaṇam | raktāśru-rājī-dūṣīkā-rakta-maṇḍala-darśanam || 12 || 15.12cv raktāsra-rājī-dūṣīkā- 15.12dv -śukla-maṇḍala-darśanam rakta-syandena nayanaṃ sa-pitta-syanda-lakṣaṇam | manthe 'kṣi tāmra-pary-antam utpāṭana-samāna-ruk || 13 || rāgeṇa bandhūka-nibhaṃ tāmyati sparśanā-kṣamam | asṛṅ-nimagnāriṣṭābhaṃ kṛṣṇam agny-ābha-darśanam || 14 || adhimanthā yathā-svaṃ ca sarve syandādhika-vyathāḥ | śaṅkha-danta-kapoleṣu kapāle cāti-ruk-karāḥ || 15 || vāta-pittāturaṃ gharṣa-toda-bhedopadeha-vat | rūkṣa-dāruṇa-vartmākṣi kṛcchronmīla-nimīlanam || 16 || 15.16av vāta-pittottaraṃ gharṣa- vikūṇana-viśuṣka-tva-śītecchā-śūla-pāka-vat | uktaḥ śuṣkādi-pāko yaṃ sa-śophaḥ syāt tribhir malaiḥ || 17 || 15.17av vikūṇanaṃ viśuṣkaṃ ca 15.17av vikūṇena viśuṣka-tvaṃ 15.17bv śītecchā-śūla-pāka-vat sa-raktais tatra śopho 'ti-rug-dāha-ṣṭhīvanādi-mān | pakvodumbara-saṃkāśaṃ jāyate śukla-maṇḍalam || 18 || aśrūṣṇa-śīta-viśada-picchilāccha-ghanaṃ muhuḥ | alpa-śophe 'lpa-śophas tu pāko 'nyair lakṣaṇais tathā || 19 || 15.19cv alpa-śopho 'lpa-śophas tu akṣi-pākātyaye śophaḥ saṃrambhaḥ kaluṣāśru-tā | kaphopadigdham asitaṃ sitaṃ prakleda-rāga-vat || 20 || 15.20cv kaphena digdham asitaṃ dāho darśana-saṃrodho vedanāś cān-avasthitāḥ | anna-sāro 'mla-tāṃ nītaḥ pitta-raktolbaṇair malaiḥ || 21 || sirābhir netram ārūḍhaḥ karoti śyāva-lohitam | sa-śopha-dāha-pākāśru bhṛśaṃ cāvila-darśanam || 22 || amloṣito 'yam ity uktā gadāḥ ṣo-ḍaśa sarva-gāḥ | hatādhimantham eteṣu sākṣi-pākātyayaṃ tyajet || 23 || 15.23cv hatādhimanthaṃ caiteṣu vātodbhūtaḥ pañca-rātreṇa dṛṣṭiṃ saptāhena śleṣma-jāto 'dhimanthaḥ | raktotpanno hanti tad-vat tri-rātrān mithyācārāt paittikaḥ sadya eva || 24 || 15.24bv saptāhena śleṣma-jaś cādhimanthaḥ Uttarasthāna prāg-rūpa eva syandeṣu tīkṣṇaṃ gaṇḍūṣa-nāvanam | kārayed upavāsaṃ ca kopād anya-tra vāta-jāt || 1 || dāhopadeha-rāgāśru-śopha-śāntyai biḍālakam | kuryāt sarva-tra pattrailā-marica-svarṇa-gairikaiḥ || 2 || sa-rasāñjana-yaṣṭy-āhva-nata-candana-saindhavaiḥ | saindhavaṃ nāgaraṃ tārkṣyaṃ bhṛṣṭaṃ maṇḍena sarpiṣaḥ || 3 || 16.3dv ghṛṣṭaṃ maṇḍena sarpiṣaḥ badarī-pattra-yaṣṭy-āhva-pathyāmalaka-tutthakam | antar-dhūmaṃ dahet sadyaḥ kope tac-cūrṇaṃ vāta-je || 3.1+1 || vāta-je ghṛta-bhṛṣṭaṃ vā yojyaṃ śabara-deśa-jam | māṃsī-padmaka-kālīya-yaṣṭy-āhvaiḥ pitta-raktayoḥ || 4 || 16.4bv yojyaṃ śābara-deśa-jam 16.4cv māṃsī-padmaka-kākolī- manohvā-phalinī-kṣaudraiḥ kaphe sarvais tu sarva-je || 5ab || sita-marica-bhāgam ekaṃ catur-manohvaṃ dvir aṣṭa-śābarakam || 5cd || saṃcūrṇya vastra-baddhaṃ prakupita-mātre 'vaguṇṭhanaṃ netre || 5ef || 16.5ev saṃcūrṇyam ati-prabaddhaṃ 16.5fv prakupita-mātre 'vaguṇṭhanam idaṃ netre dhātu-śuṇṭhy-abhayā-tārkṣyaṃ bahir-lepo 'kṣi-roga-hā || 5.1(1)+1ab || 16.5.1(1)+1av dhātu-śuṇṭhy-abhayā-tārkṣya- 16.5.1(1)+1bv -bahir-lepo 'kṣi-roga-hā harītakī-saindhava-tārkṣya-śīlaiḥ sa-gairikaiḥ sva-sva-kara-pramṛṣṭaiḥ | bahiḥ-pralepaṃ nayanasya kuryāt sarvākṣi-roga-praśamārtham etat || 5.1(2)+1 || āraṇyāś chagaṇa-rase paṭāvabaddhāḥ su-svinnā nakha-vi-tuṣī-kṛtāḥ kulatthāḥ | tac-cūrṇaṃ sakṛd avacūrṇanān niśīthe netrāṇāṃ vidhamati sadya eva kopam || 6 || 16.6av āraṇyāś chagaṇa-rase paṭāvanaddhāḥ ghoṣābhayā-tutthaka-yaṣṭi-lodhrair mūtī su-sūkṣmaiḥ ślatha-vastra-baddhaiḥ | tāmra-stha-dhānyāmla-nimagna-mūrtir artiṃ jayaty akṣiṇi naika-rūpām || 7 || 16.7av ghoṣābhayā-tutthaka-yaṣṭi-lodhraiḥ 16.7av vyoṣābhayā-tutthaka-yaṣṭi-lodhrair 16.7bv guṇḍī su-sūkṣmaiḥ ślatha-vastra-baddhaiḥ 16.7bv piṣṭaiḥ su-sūkṣmaiḥ ślatha-vastra-baddhaiḥ 16.7cv tāmrāccha-dhānyāmla-nimagna-mūrtir ṣo-ḍaśabhiḥ salila-palaiḥ palaṃ tathaikaṃ kaṭaṅkaṭeryāḥ siddham | seko 'ṣṭa-bhāga-śiṣṭaḥ kṣaudra-yutaḥ sarva-doṣa-kupite netre || 8 || 16.8dv kṣaudra-yutaḥ sarva-doṣa-prakupite netre vāta-pitta-kapha-saṃnipāta-jāṃ netrayor bahu-vidhām api vyathām | śīghram eva jayati prayojitaḥ śigru-pallava-rasaḥ sa-mākṣikaḥ || 9 || taruṇam urubūka-pattraṃ mūlaṃ ca vibhidya siddham āje kṣīre | vātābhiṣyanda-rujaṃ sadyo vinihanti saktu-piṇḍikā coṣṇā || 10 || 16.10bv mūlaṃ ca vicūrṇya siddham āje kṣīre āścyotanaṃ māruta-je kvātho bilvādibhir hitaḥ | koṣṇaḥ sahairaṇḍa-jaṭā-bṛhatī-madhu-śigrubhiḥ || 11 || hrīvera-vakra-śārṅgaṣṭodumbara-tvakṣu sādhitam | sāmbhasā payasājena śūlāścyotanam uttamam || 12 || 16.12bv ṃdumbara-tvak-prasādhitam 16.12bv ṃdumbara-plakṣa-sādhitam lodhrāmalaka-rasāñja[na]-bimbitikā-pattra-tubarikā-tutthaiḥ | āścyotanam idam akṣṇoḥ prasahya sadyaḥ prakopa-haram || 12+1 || mañjiṣṭhā-rajanī-lākṣā-drākṣarddhi-madhukotpalaiḥ | kvāthaḥ sa-śarkaraḥ śītaḥ secanaṃ rakta-pitta-jit || 13 || 16.13bv -drākṣā-dvi-madhukotpalaiḥ kaseru-yaṣṭy-āhva-rajas tāntave śithilaṃ sthitam | apsu divyāsu nihitaṃ hitaṃ syande 'sra-pitta-je || 14 || 16.14bv tāntave śithile sthitam puṇḍra-yaṣṭī-niśā-mūtī plutā stanye sa-śarkare | chāga-dugdhe 'tha-vā dāha-rug-rāgāśru-nivartanī || 15 || śveta-lodhraṃ sa-madhukaṃ ghṛta-bhṛṣṭaṃ su-cūrṇitam | vastra-sthaṃ stanya-mṛditaṃ pitta-raktābhighāta-jit || 16 || nāgara-tri-phalā-nimba-vāsā-lodhra-rasaḥ kaphe | koṣṇam āścyotanaṃ miśrair bheṣajaiḥ sāṃnipātike || 17 || 16.17bv -vāsā-lodhra-rasāḥ kaphe 16.17bv -vāsā-lodhra-rasaṃ kaphe sarpiḥ purāṇaṃ pavane pitte śarkarayānvitam | vyoṣa-siddhaṃ kaphe pītvā yava-kṣārāvacūrṇitam || 18 || 16.18bv pitte śarkarayā yutam srāvayed rudhiraṃ bhūyas tataḥ snigdhaṃ virecayet | ānūpa-vesavāreṇa śiro-vadana-lepanam || 19 || uṣṇena śūle dāhe tu payaḥ-sarpir-yutair himaiḥ | timira-pratiṣedhaṃ ca vīkṣya yuñjyād yathā-yatham || 20 || ayam eva vidhiḥ sarvo manthādiṣv api śasyate | a-śāntau sarva-thā manthe bhruvor upari dāhayet || 21 || rūpyaṃ rūkṣeṇa go-dadhnā limpen nīla-tvam āgate | śuṣke tu mastunā vartir vātākṣy-āmaya-nāśinī || 22 || 16.22bv liptaṃ nīla-tvam āgate 16.22bv lipte nīla-tvam āgate sumanaḥ-korakāḥ śaṅkhas tri-phalā madhukaṃ balā | pitta-raktāpahā vartiḥ piṣṭā divyena vāriṇā || 23 || 16.23av sumanaḥ-kṣārakāḥ śaṅkhas saindhavaṃ tri-phalā vyoṣaṃ śaṅkhanābhiḥ samudra-jaḥ | phena aileyakaṃ sarjo vartiḥ śleṣmākṣi-roga-nut || 24 || prapauṇḍarīkaṃ yaṣṭy-āhvaṃ dārvī cāṣṭa-palaṃ pacet | jala-droṇe rase pūte punaḥ pakve ghane kṣipet || 25 || puṣpāñjanād daśa-palaṃ karṣaṃ ca maricāt tataḥ | kṛtaś cūrṇo 'tha-vā vartiḥ sarvābhiṣyanda-saṃbhavān || 26 || hanti rāga-rujā-gharṣān sadyo dṛṣṭiṃ prasādayet | ayaṃ pāśupato yogo rahasyaṃ bhiṣajāṃ param || 27 || śuṣkākṣi-pāke haviṣaḥ pānam akṣṇoś ca tarpaṇam | ghṛtena jīvanīyena nasyaṃ tailena vāṇunā || 28 || 16.28dv nasyaṃ tailena cāṇunā pariṣeko hitaś cātra payaḥ koṣṇaṃ sa-saindhavam | sarpir-yuktaṃ stanya-piṣṭam añjanaṃ ca mahauṣadham || 29 || 16.29cv sarpir-yuktaṃ stanya-ghṛṣṭam vasā vānūpa-sat-tvotthā kiñ-cit-saindhava-nāgarā | ghṛtāktān darpaṇe ghṛṣṭān keśān mallaka-saṃpuṭe || 30 || 16.30av vasā cānūpa-sat-tvotthā dagdhvājya-piṣṭā loha-sthā sā maṣī śreṣṭham añjanam | sa-śophe vālpa-śophe ca snigdhasya vyadhayet sirām || 31 || 16.31cv sa-śophe cālpa-śophe ca rekaḥ snigdhe punar drākṣā-pathyā-kvātha-trivṛd-ghṛtaiḥ | śveta-lodhraṃ ghṛte bhṛṣṭaṃ cūrṇitaṃ tāntava-sthitam || 32 || 16.32cv śveta-lodhraṃ ghṛta-bhṛṣṭaṃ uṣṇāmbunā vimṛditaṃ sekaḥ śūla-haraḥ param | dārvī-prapauṇḍarīkasya kvātho vāścyotane hitaḥ || 33 || 16.33cv dārvyāḥ prapauṇḍarīkasya yaṣṭī-himotpala-kṣīraiḥ kuryān mūrdhasya lepanam || 33+1ab || saṃdhāvāṃś ca prayuñjīta gharṣa-rāgāśru-rug-gharān || 33ū̆ab || tāmraṃ lohe mūtra-ghṛṣṭaṃ prayuktaṃ netre sarpir-dhūpitaṃ vedanā-ghnam | tāmre ghṛṣṭo gavya-dadhnaḥ saro vā yuktaḥ kṛṣṇā-saindhavābhyāṃ variṣṭhaḥ || 34 || śaṅkhaṃ tāmre stanya-ghṛṣṭaṃ ghṛtāktaiḥ śamyāḥ pattrair dhūpitaṃ tad yavaiś ca | netre yuktaṃ hanti saṃdhāva-saṃjñaṃ kṣipraṃ gharṣaṃ vedanāṃ cāti-tīvrām || 35 || udumbara-phalaṃ lohe ghṛṣṭaṃ stanyena dhūpitam || 36ab || sājyaiḥ śamī-cchadair dāha-śūla-rāgāśru-harṣa-jit | śigru-pallava-niryāsaḥ su-ghṛṣṭas tāmra-saṃpuṭe || 37 || 16.37cv śigru-pallava-niryāso 16.37dv ghṛṣṭas tāmrasya saṃpuṭe dvi-niśā-tri-phalā-mustaiḥ pramadā-dugdha-peṣitaiḥ | sekaḥ sa-śarkarā-kṣaudrair abhighāta-rujāpahaḥ || 37.1+1 || 16.37.1+1bv pramadā-dugdha-kalkitaiḥ niṣiktaṃ tutthakaṃ vārān go-jale pañca-viṃśatim | stanye vā chāga-dugdhe vā sadyaḥ-kope tad añjanam || 37.1+2 || ghṛtena dhūpito hanti śopha-gharṣāśru-vedanāḥ | tilāmbhasā mṛt-kapālaṃ kāṃsye ghṛṣṭaṃ su-dhūpitam || 38 || nimba-pattrair ghṛtābhyaktair gharṣa-śūlāśru-rāga-jit | saṃdhāvenāñjite netre vigatauṣadha-vedane || 39 || stanyenāścyotanaṃ kāryaṃ triḥ paraṃ nāñjayec ca taiḥ | tālīśa-pattra-capalā-nata-loha-rajo-'ñjanaiḥ || 40 || 16.40dv -nata-loha-rasāñjanaiḥ jātī-mukula-kāsīsa-saindhavair mūtra-peṣitaiḥ | tāmram ālipya saptāhaṃ dhārayet peṣayet tataḥ || 41 || mūtreṇaivānu guṭikāḥ kāryāś chāyā-viśoṣitāḥ | tāḥ stanya-ghṛṣṭā gharṣāśru-śopha-kaṇḍū-vināśanāḥ || 42 || 16.42av mūtreṇa cānu guṭikāḥ 16.42bv kuryāc chāyā-viśoṣitāḥ vyāghrī-tvaṅ-madhukaṃ tāmra-rajo 'jā-kṣīra-kalkitam | śamy-āmalaka-pattrājya-dhūpitaṃ śopha-ruk-praṇut || 43 || 16.43bv -rajo 'jā-kṣīra-peṣitam amloṣite prayuñjīta pittābhiṣyanda-sādhanam | utkliṣṭāḥ kapha-pittāsra-nicayotthāḥ kukūṇakaḥ || 44 || pakṣmoparodhaṃ śuṣkākṣi-pākaḥ pūyālaso bisaḥ | pothaky-amloṣito 'lpākhyaḥ syanda-manthā vinānilāt || 45 || ete 'ṣṭā-daśa pillākhyā dīrgha-kālānubandhinaḥ | cikitsā pṛthag eteṣāṃ svaṃ svam uktātha vakṣyate || 46 || 16.46dv svaṃ svam uktātha kathyate pillī-bhūteṣu sāmānyād atha pillākhya-rogiṇaḥ | snigdhasya chardita-vataḥ sirā-vyadha-hṛtāsṛjaḥ || 47 || 16.47bv atha pillākṣi-rogiṇaḥ viriktasya ca vartmānu nirlikhed ā-viśuddhitaḥ | tutthakasya palaṃ śveta-maricāni ca viṃśatiḥ || 48 || 16.48av viriktasya tu vartmānu 16.48bv vilikhed ā-viśuddhitaḥ triṃśatā kāñjika-palaiḥ piṣṭvā tāmre nidhāpayet | pillān a-pillān kurute bahu-varṣotthitān api || 49 || tat sekenopadehāśru-kaṇḍū-śophāṃś ca nāśayet | karañja-bījaṃ surasaṃ sumanaḥ-korakāṇi ca || 50 || 16.50dv sumanaḥ-kṣārakāṇi ca saṃkṣudya sādhayet kvāthe pūte tatra rasa-kriyā | añjanaṃ pilla-bhaiṣajyaṃ pakṣmaṇāṃ ca prarohaṇam || 51 || rasāñjanaṃ sarja-raso rīti-puṣpaṃ manaḥśilā | samudra-pheno lavaṇaṃ gairikaṃ maricāni ca || 52 || 16.52bv jātī-puṣpaṃ manaḥśilā 16.52cv samudra-phenaṃ lavaṇaṃ añjanaṃ madhunā piṣṭaṃ kleda-kaṇḍū-ghnam uttamam | abhayā-rasa-piṣṭaṃ vā tagaraṃ pilla-nāśanam || 53 || bhāvitaṃ basta-mūtreṇa sa-snehaṃ devadāru ca | saindhava-tri-phalā-kṛṣṇā-kaṭukā-śaṅkhanābhayaḥ || 54 || 16.54bv sa-snehaṃ devadāru vā sa-tāmra-rajaso vartiḥ pilla-śukraka-nāśinī | puṣpa-kāsīsa-cūrṇo vā surasā-rasa-bhāvitaḥ || 55 || tāmre daśāhaṃ tat paillya-pakṣma-śāta-jid añjanam || 55ū̆ab || alaṃ ca sauvīrakam añjanaṃ ca tābhyāṃ samaṃ tāmra-rajaḥ su-sūkṣmam | pilleṣu romāṇi niṣevito 'sau cūrṇaḥ karoty eka-śalākayāpi || 56 || 16.56bv tābhyāṃ samaṃ tāmra-rajaś ca sūkṣmam 16.56cv pilleṣu romāṇi niṣevito 'yaṃ lākṣā-nirguṇḍī-bhṛṅga-dārvī-rasena śreṣṭhaṃ kārpāsaṃ bhāvitaṃ sapta-kṛtvaḥ | dīpaḥ prajvālyaḥ sarpiṣā tat-samutthā śreṣṭhā pillānāṃ ropaṇārthe maṣī sā || 57 || 16.57dv śreṣṭhā pillānāṃ ropaṇārthaṃ maṣī sā vartmāvalekhaṃ bahu-śas tad-vac choṇita-mokṣaṇam || 58ab || punaḥ punar virekaṃ ca nityam āścyotanāñjanam | nāvanaṃ dhūma-pānaṃ ca pilla-rogāturo bhajet || 59 || pūyālase tv a-śānte 'nte dāhaḥ sūkṣma-śalākayā | catur-ṇavatir ity akṣṇo hetu-lakṣaṇa-sādhanaiḥ || 60 || 16.60av pūyālase tv a-śānte tu 16.60cv catur-ṇavatir ity akṣṇor paras-param a-saṃkīrṇāḥ kārtsnyena gaditā gadāḥ | sarva-dā ca niṣeveta svastho 'pi nayana-priyaḥ || 61 || purāṇa-yava-godhūma-śāli-ṣaṣṭika-kodravān | mudgādīn kapha-pitta-ghnān bhūri-sarpiḥ-pariplutān || 62 || śākaṃ caivaṃ-vidhaṃ māṃsaṃ jāṅgalaṃ dāḍimaṃ sitām | saindhavaṃ tri-phalāṃ drākṣāṃ vāri pāne ca nābhasam || 63 || ātapa-traṃ pada-trāṇaṃ vidhi-vad doṣa-śodhanam | varjayed vega-saṃrodham a-jīrṇādhyaśanāni ca || 64 || 16.64dv a-jīrṇādhyaśanādi ca krodha-śoka-divā-svapna-rātri-jāgaraṇātapān | vidāhi viṣṭambha-karaṃ yac cehāhāra-bheṣajam || 65 || 16.65bv -niśā-jāgaraṇāni ca 16.65cv vidāha-viṣṭambha-karaṃ 16.65dv yad yad āhāra-bheṣajam 16.65dv vihārāhāra-bheṣajam dve pāda-madhye pṛthu-saṃniveśe sire gate te bahu-dhā ca netre | tā mrakṣaṇodvartana-lepanādīn pāda-prayuktān nayane nayanti || 66 || 16.66av dve pāda-madhye pṛthu-saṃniviṣṭe 16.66dv pāda-prayuktān nayanaṃ nayanti malauṣṇya-saṃghaṭṭana-pīḍanādyais tā dūṣayante nayanāni duṣṭāḥ | bhajet sadā dṛṣṭi-hitāni tasmād upānad-abhyañjana-dhāvanāni || 67 || 16.67av taloṣṇa-saṃghaṭṭana-pīḍanādyais 16.67av mṛl-loṣṭa-saṃghaṭṭana-pīḍanādyais Uttarasthāna pratiśyāya-jala-krīḍā-karṇa-kaṇḍūyanair marut | mithyā-yogena śabdasya kupito 'nyaiś ca kopanaiḥ || 1 || prāpya śrotra-sirāḥ kuryāc chūlaṃ srotasi vega-vat | ardhāvabhedakaṃ stambhaṃ śiśirān-abhinandanam || 2 || cirāc ca pākaṃ pakvaṃ tu lasīkām alpa-śaḥ sravet | śrotraṃ śūnyam a-kasmāc ca syāt saṃcāra-vicāra-vat || 3 || śūlaṃ pittāt sa-dāhoṣā-śītecchā-śvayathu-jvaram | āśu-pākaṃ prapakvaṃ ca sa-pīta-lasikā-sruti || 4 || 17.4bv -śītecchā-śvayathur jvaraḥ sā lasīkā spṛśed yad yat tat tat pākam upaiti ca | kaphāc chiro-hanu-grīvā-gauravaṃ manda-tā rujaḥ || 5 || kaṇḍūḥ śvayathur uṣṇecchā pākāc chveta-ghana-srutiḥ | karoti śravaṇe śūlam abhighātādi-dūṣitam || 6 || 17.6bv pākāc chveta-ghanā srutiḥ raktaṃ pitta-samānārti kiñ-cid vādhika-lakṣaṇam | śūlaṃ samuditair doṣaiḥ sa-śopha-jvara-tīvra-ruk || 7 || paryāyād uṣṇa-śītecchāṃ jāyate śruti-jāḍya-vat | pakvaṃ sitāsitā-rakta-ghana-pūya-pravāhi ca || 8 || śabda-vāhi-sirā-saṃsthe śṛṇoti pavane muhuḥ | nādān a-kasmād vividhān karṇa-nādaṃ vadanti tam || 9 || śleṣmaṇānugato vāyur nādo vā samupekṣitaḥ | uccaiḥ kṛcchrāc chrutiṃ kuryād badhira-tvaṃ krameṇa ca || 10 || 17.10dv badhira-tvaṃ krameṇa vā vātena śoṣitaḥ śleṣmā śroto limpet tato bhavet | rug-gauravaṃ pidhānaṃ ca sa pratīnāha-saṃjñitaḥ || 11 || kaṇḍū-śophau kaphāc chrotre sthirau tat-saṃjñayā smṛtau | kapho vidagdhaḥ pittena sa-rujaṃ nī-rujaṃ tv api || 12 || 17.12bv sthirau tat-saṃjñitau smṛtau 17.12dv sa-rujaṃ nī-rujaṃ tv atha ghana-pūti-bahu-kledaṃ kurute pūti-karṇakam | vātādi-dūṣitaṃ śrotraṃ māṃsāsṛk-kleda-jā rujam || 13 || 17.13dv māṃsāsṛk-kleda-jāṃ rujam khādanto jantavaḥ kuryus tīvrāṃ sa kṛmi-karṇakaḥ | śrotra-kaṇḍūyanāj jāte kṣate syāt pūrva-lakṣaṇaḥ || 14 || 17.14cv śrotaḥ-kaṇḍūyanāj jāte vidradhiḥ pūrva-vac cānyaḥ śopho 'rśo 'rbudam īritam | teṣu ruk pūti-karṇa-tvaṃ badhira-tvaṃ ca bādhate || 15 || 17.15bv ṣo-ḍhārśo 'rbudam īritam 17.15dv badhira-tvaṃ ca jāyate garbhe 'nilāt saṃkucitā śaṣkulī kuci-karṇakaḥ | eko nī-rug aneko vā garbhe māṃsāṅkuraḥ sthiraḥ || 16 || 17.16bv śaṣkulī kuñci-karṇakaḥ 17.16bv śaṣkulī kūci-karṇakaḥ 17.16dv garbhe māṃsāṅkuraḥ sthitaḥ pippalī pippalī-mānaḥ saṃnipātād vidārikā | sa-varṇaḥ sa-rujaḥ stabdhaḥ śvayathuḥ sa upekṣitaḥ || 17 || kaṭu-taila-nibhaṃ pakvaḥ sravet kṛcchreṇa rohati | saṃkocayati rūḍhā ca sā dhruvaṃ karṇa-śaṣkulīm || 18 || 17.18bv sravan kṛcchreṇa rohati sirā-sthaḥ kurute vāyuḥ pālī-śoṣaṃ tad-āhvayam | kṛśā dṛḍhā ca tantrī-vat pālī vātena tantrikā || 19 || su-kumāre cirotsargāt sahasaiva pravardhite | karṇe śophaḥ sa-ruk pālyām aruṇaḥ paripoṭa-vān || 20 || paripoṭaḥ sa pavanād utpātaḥ pitta-śoṇitāt | gurv-ābharaṇa-bhārādyaiḥ śyāvo rug-dāha-pāka-vān || 21 || śvayathuḥ sphoṭa-piṭikā-rāgoṣā-kleda-saṃyutaḥ | pālyāṃ śopho 'nila-kaphāt sarvato nir-vyathaḥ sthiraḥ || 22 || stabdhaḥ sa-varṇaḥ kaṇḍū-mān unmantho galliraś ca saḥ | dur-viddhe vardhite karṇe sa-kaṇḍū-dāha-pāka-ruk || 23 || 17.23bv unmantho gallikaś ca saḥ śvayathuḥ saṃnipātotthaḥ sa nāmnā duḥkha-vardhanaḥ | kaphāsṛk-kṛmi-jāḥ sūkṣmāḥ sa-kaṇḍū-kleda-vedanāḥ || 24 || lihyuḥ pālīm upekṣitāḥ lehyākhyāḥ piṭikās tā hi | pippalī sarva-jaṃ śūlaṃ vidārī kuci-karṇakaḥ || 25 || 17.25av lihyākhyāḥ piṭikās tā hi 17.25dv vidārī kūci-karṇakaḥ eṣām a-sādhyā yāpyaikā tantrikānyāṃs tu sādhayet | pañca-viṃśatir ity uktāḥ karṇa-rogā vibhāgataḥ || 26 || Uttarasthāna karṇa-śūle pavana-je pibed rātrau rasāśitaḥ | vāta-ghna-sādhitaṃ sarpiḥ karṇaṃ svinnaṃ ca pūrayet || 1 || pattrāṇāṃ pṛthag aśvattha-bilvārkairaṇḍa-janmanām | taila-sindhūttha-digdhānāṃ svinnānāṃ puṭa-pākataḥ || 2 || rasaiḥ kavoṣṇais tad-vac ca mūlakasyāralor api | gaṇe vāta-hare 'mleṣu mūtreṣu ca vipācitaḥ || 3 || mahā-sneho drutaṃ hanti su-tīvrām api vedanām | mahataḥ pañca-mūlasya kāṣṭhāt kṣaumeṇa veṣṭitāt || 4 || taila-siktāt pradīptāgrāt snehaḥ sadyo rujāpahaḥ | yojyaś caivaṃ bhadrakāṣṭhāt kuṣṭhāt kāṣṭhāc ca sāralāt || 5 || 18.5bv snehaḥ sadyo rujā-haraḥ vāta-vyādhi-pratiśyāya-vihitaṃ hitam atra ca | varjayec chirasā snānaṃ śītāmbhaḥ-pānam ahny api || 6 || 18.6cv varjayec chirasaḥ snānaṃ pitta-śūle sitā-yukta-ghṛta-snigdhaṃ virecayet | drākṣā-yaṣṭī-śṛtaṃ stanyaṃ śasyate karṇa-pūraṇam || 7 || yaṣṭy-anantā-himośīra-kākolī-lodhra-jīvakaiḥ | mṛṇāla-bisa-mañjiṣṭhā-śārivābhiś ca sādhayet || 8 || yaṣṭīmadhu-rasa-prastha-kṣīra-dvi-prastha-saṃyutam | tailasya kuḍavaṃ nasya-pūraṇābhyañjanair idam || 9 || nihanti śūla-dāhoṣāḥ kevalaṃ kṣaudram eva vā | yaṣṭy-ādibhiś ca sa-ghṛtaiḥ karṇau dihyāt samantataḥ || 10 || vāmayet pippalī-siddha-sarpiḥ-snigdhaṃ kaphodbhave | dhūma-nāvana-gaṇḍūṣa-svedān kuryāt kaphāpahān || 11 || laśunārdraka-śigrūṇāṃ muraṅgyā mūlakasya ca | kadalyāḥ sva-rasaḥ śreṣṭhaḥ kad-uṣṇaḥ karṇa-pūraṇe || 12 || 18.12bv suraṅgyā mūlakasya ca 18.12bv bhṛṅgasya mūlakasya ca arkāṅkurān amla-piṣṭāṃs tailāktāō̃ lavaṇānvitān | saṃnidhāya snuhī-kāṇḍe korite tac-chadāvṛtān || 13 || 18.13dv korite tac chadāvṛte svedayet puṭa-pākena sa rasaḥ śūla-jit param | rasena bījapūrasya kapitthasya ca pūrayet || 14 || śuktena pūrayitvā vā phenenānv avacūrṇayet | ajāvi-mūtra-vaṃśa-tvak-siddhaṃ tailaṃ ca pūraṇam || 15 || 18.15dv -siddha-tailena pūrayet siddhaṃ vā sārṣapaṃ tailaṃ hiṅgu-tumburu-nāgaraiḥ | rakta-je pitta-vat kāryaṃ sirāṃ cāśu vimokṣayet || 16 || pakve pūya-vahe karṇe dhūma-gaṇḍūṣa-nāvanam | yuñjyān nāḍī-vidhānaṃ ca duṣṭa-vraṇa-haraṃ ca yat || 17 || srotaḥ pramṛjya digdhaṃ tu dvau kālau picu-vartibhiḥ | pureṇa dhūpayitvā tu mākṣikeṇa prapūrayet || 18 || surasādi-gaṇa-kvātha-phāṇitāktāṃ ca yojayet | picu-vartiṃ su-sūkṣmaiś ca tac-cūrṇair avacūrṇayet || 19 || 18.19bv -phāṇitāktāṃ ca śīlayet 18.19bv -phāṇitāktāṃ prayojayet 18.19bv -phāṇitāktāṃ niyojayet śūla-kleda-guru-tvānāṃ vidhir eṣa nivartakaḥ | priyaṅgu-madhukāmbaṣṭhā-dhātaky-utpala-parṇibhiḥ || 20 || mañjiṣṭhā-lodhra-lākṣābhiḥ kapitthasya rasena ca | pacet tailaṃ tad āsrāvaṃ nigṛhṇāty āśu pūraṇāt || 21 || nāda-bādhiryayoḥ kuryād vāta-śūloktam auṣadham | śleṣmānubandhe śleṣmāṇam prāg jayed vamanādibhiḥ || 22 || eraṇḍa-śigru-varuṇa-mūlakāt pattra-je rase | catur-guṇe pacet tailaṃ kṣīre cāṣṭa-guṇonmite || 23 || 18.23av eraṇḍa-śigru-taruṇa- yaṣṭy-āhvā-kṣīra-kākolī-kalka-yuktaṃ nihanti tat | nāda-bādhirya-śūlāni nāvanābhyaṅga-pūraṇaiḥ || 24 || 18.24bv -kalka-yuktaṃ hinasti tat pakvaṃ prativiṣā-hiṅgu-miśi-tvak-svarjikoṣaṇaiḥ | sa-śuktaiḥ pūraṇāt tailaṃ ruk-srāvā-śruti-nāda-nut || 25 || 18.25dv ruk-srāva-śruti-nāda-nut karṇa-nāde hitaṃ tailaṃ sarṣapotthaṃ ca pūraṇe | śuṣka-mūlaka-khaṇḍānāṃ kṣāro hiṅgu mahauṣadham || 26 || śatapuṣpā-vacā-kuṣṭha-dāru-śigru-rasāñjanam | sauvarcala-yava-kṣāra-svarjikaudbhida-saindhavam || 27 || bhūrja-granthi-viḍaṃ mustā madhu-śuktaṃ catur-guṇam | mātuluṅga-rasas tad-vat kadalī-sva-rasaś ca taiḥ || 28 || pakvaṃ tailaṃ jayaty āśu su-kṛcchrān api pūraṇāt | kaṇḍūṃ kledaṃ ca bādhirya-pūti-karṇa-tva-ruk-kṛmīn || 29 || 18.29cv kaṇḍū-kṣveḍana-bādhirya- 18.29cv kaṇḍū-jvalana-bādhirya- kṣāra-tailam idaṃ śreṣṭhaṃ mukha-dantāmayeṣu ca | atha suptāv iva syātāṃ karṇau raktaṃ haret tataḥ || 30 || 18.30dv karṇau raktaṃ haret tayoḥ sa-śopha-kledayor manda-śruter vamanam ācaret | bādhiryaṃ varjayed bāla-vṛddhayoś cira-jaṃ ca yat || 31 || pratīnāhe parikledya sneha-svedair viśodhayet | karṇa-śodhanakenānu karṇaṃ tailasya pūrayet || 32 || 18.32dv karṇaṃ tailena pūrayet sa-śukta-saindhava-madhor mātuluṅga-rasasya vā | śodhanād rūkṣa-totpattau ghṛta-maṇḍasya pūraṇam || 33 || 18.33av sa-śukta-saindhavenāśu 18.33bv mātuluṅga-rasena vā 18.33dv ghṛta-maṇḍena pūraṇam kramo 'yaṃ mala-pūrṇe 'pi karṇe kaṇḍvāṃ kaphāpaham | nasyādi tad-vac chophe 'pi kaṭūṣṇaiś cātra lepanam || 34 || 18.34dv kaṭūṣṇaiś cānu lepanam karṇa-srāvoditaṃ kuryāt pūti-kṛmiṇa-karṇayoḥ | pūraṇaṃ kaṭu-tailena viśeṣāt kṛmi-karṇake || 35 || 18.35bv pūti-kṛmila-karṇayoḥ 18.35bv pūti-kṛmika-karṇayoḥ vami-pūrvā hitā karṇa-vidradhau vidradhi-kriyā | pittottha-karṇa-śūloktaṃ kartavyaṃ kṣata-vidradhau || 36 || 18.36av vamiḥ pūrvaṃ hitā karṇa- arśo-'rbudeṣu nāsā-vad āmā karṇa-vidārikā | karṇa-vidradhi-vat sādhyā yathā-doṣodayena ca || 37 || pālī-śoṣe 'nila-śrotra-śūla-van nasya-lepanam | svedaṃ ca kuryāt svinnāṃ ca pālīm udvartayet tilaiḥ || 38 || priyāla-bīja-yaṣṭy-āhva-hayagandhā-yavānvitaiḥ | tataḥ puṣṭi-karaiḥ snehair abhyaṅgaṃ nityam ācaret || 39 || śatāvarī-vājigandhā-payasyairaṇḍa-jīvakaiḥ | tailaṃ vipakvaṃ sa-kṣīraṃ pālīnāṃ puṣṭi-kṛt param || 40 || kalkena jīvanīyena tailaṃ payasi pācitam | ānūpa-māṃsa-kvāthe ca pālī-poṣaṇa-vardhanam || 41 || 18.41cv ānūpa-māṃsa-kvāthena pālīṃ chittvāti-saṃkṣīṇāṃ śeṣāṃ saṃdhāya poṣayet | yāpyaivaṃ tantrikākhyāpi paripoṭe 'py ayaṃ vidhiḥ || 42 || utpāte śītalair lepo jalauko-hṛta-śoṇite | jambv-āmra-pallava-balā-yaṣṭī-lodhra-tilotpalaiḥ || 43 || sa-dhānyāmlaiḥ sa-mañjiṣṭhaiḥ sa-kadambaiḥ sa-śārivaiḥ | siddham abhyañjane tailaṃ visarpokta-ghṛtāni ca || 44 || 18.44cv siddham abhyañjanaṃ tailaṃ unmanthe 'bhyañjanaṃ tailaṃ godhā-karka-vasānvitam | tālapattry-aśvagandhārka-vākucī-phala-saindhavaiḥ || 45 || 18.45bv godhā-karki-vasānvitam 18.45dv -vākucī-tila-saindhavaiḥ surasā-lāṅgalībhyāṃ ca siddhaṃ tīkṣṇaṃ ca nāvanam | dur-viddhe 'śmanta-jambv-āmra-pattra-kvāthena secitām || 46 || 18.46bv siddhaṃ tīkṣṇaṃ tu nāvanam tailena pālīṃ sv-abhyaktāṃ su-ślakṣṇair avacūrṇayet | cūrṇair madhuka-mañjiṣṭhā-prapuṇḍrāhva-niśodbhavaiḥ || 47 || 18.47dv -prapauṇḍrāhva-niśodbhavaiḥ 18.47dv -pauṇḍarīka-niśodbhavaiḥ lākṣā-viḍaṅga-siddhaṃ ca tailam abhyañjane hitam | svinnāṃ go-maya-jaiḥ piṇḍair bahu-śaḥ parilehikām || 48 || viḍaṅga-sārair ālimped urabhrī-mūtra-kalkitaiḥ | kauṭajeṅguda-kārañja-bīja-śamyāka-valkalaiḥ || 49 || atha-vābhyañjanaṃ tair vā kaṭu-tailaṃ vipācayet | sa-nimba-pattra-marica-madanair lehikā-vraṇe || 50 || chinnaṃ tu karṇaṃ śuddhasya bandham ālocya yaugikam | śuddhāsraṃ lāgayel lagne sadyaś-chinne viśodhanam || 51 || 18.51dv samyak-chinne viśodhanam atha grathitvā keśāntaṃ kṛtvā chedana-lekhanam | niveśya saṃdhiṃ suṣamaṃ na nimnaṃ na samunnatam || 52 || abhyajya madhu-sarpirbhyāṃ picu-plotāvaguṇṭhitam | sūtreṇā-gāḍha-śithilaṃ baddhvā cūrṇair avākiret || 53 || śoṇita-sthāpanair vraṇyam ācāraṃ cādiśet tataḥ | saptāhād āma-tailāktaṃ śanair apanayet picum || 54 || 18.54av śoṇitāsthāpanair vraṇyam su-rūḍhaṃ jāta-romāṇaṃ śliṣṭa-saṃdhiṃ samaṃ sthiram | su-varṣmāṇam a-rogaṃ ca śanaiḥ karṇaṃ vivardhayet || 55 || 18.55cv su-varṣmāṇaṃ su-romaṃ ca jala-śūkaḥ svayaṅguptā rajanyau bṛhatī-phalam | aśvagandhā-balā-hasti-pippalī-gaura-sarṣapāḥ || 56 || mūlaṃ kośātakāśvaghna-rūpikā-saptaparṇa-jam | chucchundarī kāla-mṛtā gṛhaṃ madhu-karī-kṛtam || 57 || jatūkā jala-janmā ca tathā śabarakandakam | ebhiḥ kalkaiḥ kharaṃ pakvaṃ sa-tailaṃ māhiṣaṃ ghṛtam || 58 || 18.58bv tathā śabarakandakaḥ hasty-aśva-mūtreṇa param abhyaṅgāt karṇa-vardhanam | atha kuryād vayaḥ-sthasya cchinnāṃ śuddhasya nāsikām || 59 || chindyān nāsā-samaṃ pattraṃ tat-tulyaṃ ca kapolataḥ | tvaṅ-māṃsaṃ nāsikāsanne rakṣaṃs tat tanu-tāṃ nayet || 60 || sīvyed gaṇḍaṃ tataḥ sūcyā sevinyā picu-yuktayā | nāsā-cchede 'tha likhite parivartyopari tvacam || 61 || 18.61cv nāsā-cchede su-likhite kapola-vadhraṃ saṃdadhyāt sīvyen nāsāṃ ca yatnataḥ | nāḍībhyām utkṣiped antaḥ sukhocchvāsa-pravṛttaye || 62 || 18.62av kapola-bandhaṃ saṃdadhyāt 18.62av kapola-vadhrīṃ saṃdadhyāt āma-tailena siktvānu pattaṅga-madhukāñjanaiḥ | śoṇita-sthāpanaiś cānyaiḥ su-ślakṣṇair avacūrṇayet || 63 || 18.63bv pataṅga-madhukāñjanaiḥ 18.63cv śoṇitāsthāpanaiś cānyaiḥ tato madhu-ghṛtābhyaktaṃ baddhvācārikam ādiśet | jñātvāvasthāntaraṃ kuryāt sadyo-vraṇa-vidhiṃ tataḥ || 64 || 18.64bv baddhvācāram athādiśet chindyād rūḍhe 'dhikaṃ māṃsaṃ nāsopāntāc ca carma tat | sīvyet tataś ca su-ślakṣṇaṃ hīnaṃ saṃvardhayet punaḥ || 65 || 18.65bv nāsopāntāc ca carma-vat niveśite yathā-nyāsaṃ sadyaś-chinne 'py ayaṃ vidhiḥ | nāḍī-yogād vinauṣṭhasya nāsā-saṃdhāna-vad vidhiḥ || 66 || 18.66bv sadyaś-chede 'py ayaṃ vidhiḥ Uttarasthāna avaśyāyānila-rajo-bhāṣyāti-svapna-jāgaraiḥ | nīcāty-uccopadhānena pītenānyena vāriṇā || 1 || aty-ambu-pāna-ramaṇa-cchardi-bāṣpa-grahādibhiḥ | kruddhā vātolbaṇā doṣā nāsāyāṃ styāna-tāṃ gatāḥ || 2 || 19.2cv kṣubdhā vātolbaṇā doṣā 19.2cv vṛddhā vātolbaṇā doṣā janayanti pratiśyāyaṃ vardhamānaṃ kṣaya-pradam | tatra vātāt pratiśyāye mukha-śoṣo bhṛśaṃ kṣavaḥ || 3 || ghrāṇoparodha-nistoda-danta-śaṅkha-śiro-vyathāḥ | kīṭikā iva sarpantīr manyate parito bhruvau || 4 || 19.4cv kīṭakā iva sarpanti svara-sādaś cirāt pākaḥ śiśirāccha-kapha-srutiḥ | pittāt tṛṣṇā-jvara-ghrāṇa-piṭikā-saṃbhava-bhramāḥ || 5 || 19.5cv pittāt tṛṣṇā-jvaro ghrāṇe 19.5dv piṭikā-saṃbhava-bhramāḥ nāsāgra-pāko rūkṣoṣṇa-tāmra-pīta-kapha-srutiḥ | kaphāt kāso '-ruciḥ śvāso vamathur gātra-gauravam || 6 || mādhuryaṃ vadane kaṇḍūḥ snigdha-śukla-kapha-srutiḥ | sarva-jo lakṣaṇaiḥ sarvair a-kasmād vṛddhi-śānti-mān || 7 || 19.7bv snigdha-śukla-ghana-srutiḥ 19.7bv snigdha-śukla-ghanā srutiḥ duṣṭaṃ nāsā-sirāḥ prāpya pratiśyāyaṃ karoty asṛk | urasaḥ supta-tā tāmra-netra-tvaṃ śvāsa-pūti-tā || 8 || kaṇḍūḥ śrotrākṣi-nāsāsu pittoktaṃ cātra lakṣaṇam | sarva eva pratiśyāyā duṣṭa-tāṃ yānty upekṣitāḥ || 9 || 19.9bv pittotthaṃ cātra lakṣaṇam yathoktopadravādhikyāt sa sarvendriya-tāpanaḥ | sāgni-sāda-jvara-śvāsa-kāsoraḥ-pārśva-vedanaḥ || 10 || kupyaty a-kasmād bahu-śo mukha-daurgandhya-śopha-kṛt | nāsikā-kleda-saṃśoṣa-śuddhi-rodha-karo muhuḥ || 11 || 19.11bv mukha-daurgandhya-śoṣa-kṛt pūyopamāsitā-rakta-grathita-śleṣma-saṃsrutiḥ | mūrchanti cātra kṛmayo dīrgha-snigdha-sitāṇavaḥ || 12 || 19.12av pūyopamāsitā raktā 19.12bv -grathitā śleṣma-saṃsrutiḥ 19.12bv grathita-śleṣma-saṃsrutiḥ pakva-liṅgāni teṣv aṅga-lāghavaṃ kṣavathoḥ śamaḥ | śleṣmā sa-cikkaṇaḥ pīto '-jñānaṃ ca rasa-gandhayoḥ || 13 || 19.13dv jñānaṃ ca rasa-gandhayoḥ tīkṣṇāghrāṇopayogārka-raśmi-sūtra-tṛṇādibhiḥ | vāta-kopibhir anyair vā nāsikā-taruṇāsthani || 14 || 19.14av tīkṣṇa-ghrāṇopayogārka- vighaṭṭite 'nilaḥ kruddho ruddhaḥ śṛṅgāṭakaṃ vrajet | nivṛttaḥ kurute 'ty-arthaṃ kṣavathuṃ sa bhṛśa-kṣavaḥ || 15 || 19.15bv ruddhaḥ śṛṅgāṭakaṃ vrajan 19.15dv kṣavathuṃ sa bhṛśaṅ-kṣavaḥ śoṣayan nāsikā-srotaḥ kaphaṃ ca kurute 'nilaḥ | śūka-pūrṇābha-nāsā-tvaṃ kṛcchrād ucchvasanaṃ tataḥ || 16 || 19.16av śoṣayen nāsikā-srotaḥ 19.16cv śūka-pūrṇābha-kaṇṭha-tvaṃ 19.16cv śūka-pūrṇābha-nāsa-tvaṃ smṛto 'sau nāsikā-śoṣo nāsānāhe tu jāyate | naddha-tvam iva nāsāyāḥ śleṣma-ruddhena vāyunā || 17 || niḥśvāsocchvāsa-saṃrodhāt srotasī saṃvṛte iva | pacen nāsā-puṭe pittaṃ tvaṅ-māṃsaṃ dāha-śūla-vat || 18 || sa ghrāṇa-pākaḥ srāvas tu tat-saṃjñaḥ śleṣma-saṃbhavaḥ | accho jalopamo 'jasraṃ viśeṣān niśi jāyate || 19 || kaphaḥ pravṛddho nāsāyāṃ ruddhvā srotāṃsy a-pīnasam | kuryāt sa-ghurghura-śvāsaṃ pīnasādhika-vedanam || 20 || 19.20bv ruddhaḥ srotaḥsu pīnasam aver iva sravaty asya praklinnā tena nāsikā | ajasraṃ picchilaṃ pītaṃ pakvaṃ siṅghāṇakaṃ ghanam || 21 || raktena nāsā dagdheva bāhyāntaḥ-sparśanā-sahā | bhaved dhūmopamocchvāsā sā dīptir dahatīva ca || 22 || tālu-mūle malair duṣṭair māruto mukha-nāsikāt | śleṣmā ca pūtir nirgacchet pūti-nāsaṃ vadanti tam || 23 || nicayād abhighātād vā pūyāsṛṅ nāsikā sravet | tat pūya-raktam ākhyātaṃ śiro-dāha-rujā-karam || 24 || pitta-śleṣmāvaruddho 'ntar nāsāyāṃ śoṣayen marut | kaphaṃ sa śuṣkaḥ puṭa-tāṃ prāpnoti puṭakaṃ tu tat || 25 || 19.25cv kaphaṃ sa śuṣka-puṭa-tāṃ arśo-'rbudāni vibhajed doṣa-liṅgair yathā-yatham | sarveṣu kṛcchrocchvasanaṃ pīnasaḥ pratataṃ kṣutiḥ || 26 || 19.26dv pīnasaḥ pratataṃ kṣavaḥ 19.26dv pīnasaḥ satataṃ kṣutiḥ sānunāsika-vādi-tvaṃ pūti-nāsaḥ śiro-vyathā | aṣṭā-daśānām ity eṣāṃ yāpayed duṣṭa-pīnasam || 27 || 19.27bv pūti-nāsā śiro-vyathā 19.27bv pūtir nāsā śiro-vyathā 19.27cv aṣṭā-daśānām eteṣāṃ 19.27dv yāpayed duṣṭa-pīnasān 19.27dv varjayed duṣṭa-pīnasam Uttarasthāna sarveṣu pīnaseṣv ādau nivātāgāra-go bhajet | snehana-sveda-vamana-dhūma-gaṇḍūṣa-dhāraṇam || 1 || 20.1bv nivātāgāra-go bhavet vāso gurūṣṇaṃ śirasaḥ su-ghanaṃ pariveṣṭanam | laghv-amla-lavaṇaṃ snigdham uṣṇaṃ bhojanam a-dravam || 2 || 20.2cv laghv-amla-lavaṇa-snigdham 20.2cv laghv amlaṃ lavaṇaṃ snigdham dhanva-māṃsa-guḍa-kṣīra-caṇaka-tri-kaṭūtkaṭam | yava-godhūma-bhūyiṣṭhaṃ dadhi-dāḍima-sārikam || 3 || 20.3dv dadhi-dāḍima-sādhitam bāla-mūlaka-jo yūṣaḥ kulatthotthaś ca pūjitaḥ | kavoṣṇaṃ daśa-mūlāmbu jīrṇāṃ vā vāruṇīṃ pibet || 4 || jighrec coraka-tarkārī-vacājājy-upakuñcikāḥ | vyoṣa-tālīśa-cavikā-tintiḍīkāmla-vetasam || 5 || manaḥśilā-viḍaṅgāla-vacā-tri-kaṭu-hiṅgubhiḥ | cūrṇī-kṛtya samāghrātaḥ pratiśyāyo vinaśyati || 5.1+1 || tad-vad doraka-vally-elā-lavā-tārkṣya-dvi-jīrakaiḥ || 5.1+2ab || sāgny-ajāji dvi-palikaṃ tvag-elā-pattra-pādikam | jīrṇād guḍāt tulārdhena pakvena vaṭakī-kṛtam || 6 || pīnasa-śvāsa-kāsa-ghnaṃ ruci-svara-karaṃ param | śatāhvā-tvag-balā mūlaṃ śyoṇākairaṇḍa-bilva-jam || 7 || sāragvadhaṃ pibed dhūmaṃ vasājya-madanānvitam | atha-vā sa-ghṛtān saktūn kṛtvā mallaka-saṃpuṭe || 8 || tyajet snānaṃ śucaṃ krodhaṃ bhṛśaṃ śayyāṃ himaṃ jalam | pibed vāta-pratiśyāye sarpir vāta-ghna-sādhitam || 9 || paṭu-pañcaka-siddhaṃ vā vidāry-ādi-gaṇena vā | sveda-nasyādikāṃ kuryāt cikitsām arditoditām || 10 || pitta-raktotthayoḥ peyaṃ sarpir madhurakaiḥ śṛtam | pariṣekān pradehāṃś ca śītaiḥ kurvīta śītalān || 11 || dhava-tvak-tri-phalā-śyāmā-śrīparṇī-yaṣṭi-tilvakaiḥ | kṣīre daśa-guṇe tailaṃ nāvanaṃ sa-niśaiḥ pacet || 12 || 20.12bv -śrīparṇī-yaṣṭi-bilvakaiḥ kapha-je laṅghanaṃ lepaḥ śiraso gaura-sarṣapaiḥ | sa-kṣāraṃ vā ghṛtam pītvā vamet piṣṭais tu nāvanam || 13 || 20.13cv sa-kṣāraṃ ca ghṛtaṃ pītvā 20.13cv sa-kṣāraṃ tu ghṛtaṃ pītvā bastāmbunā paṭu-vyoṣa-vella-vatsaka-jīrakaiḥ | kaṭu-tīkṣṇair ghṛtair nasyaiḥ kavaḍaiḥ sarva-jaṃ jayet || 14 || yakṣma-kṛmi-kramaṃ kurvan yāpayed duṣṭa-pīnasam | vyoṣorubūka-kṛmijid-dāru-mādrī-gadeṅgudam || 15 || 20.15av yakṣma-kṛmi-kramaṃ kuryāt 20.15dv -dāru-mādry-ambudeṅgudam vārtāka-bījaṃ trivṛtā siddhārthaḥ pūti-matsyakaḥ | agnimanthasya puṣpāṇi pīlu-śigru-phalāni ca || 16 || aśva-viḍ-rasa-mūtrābhyāṃ hasti-mūtreṇa caikataḥ | kṣauma-garbhāṃ kṛtāṃ vartiṃ dhūmaṃ ghrāṇāsyataḥ pibet || 17 || kṣavathau puṭakākhye ca tīkṣṇaiḥ pradhamanaṃ hitam | śuṇṭhī-kuṣṭha-kaṇā-vella-drākṣā-kalka-kaṣāya-vat || 18 || sādhitaṃ tailam ājyaṃ vā nasyaṃ kṣava-puṭa-praṇut | nāsā-śoṣe balā-tailaṃ pānādau bhojanaṃ rasaiḥ || 19 || snigdho dhūmas tathā svedo nāsānāhe 'py ayaṃ vidhiḥ | pāke dīptau ca pitta-ghnaṃ tīkṣṇaṃ nasyādi saṃsrutau || 20 || 20.20dv tīkṣṇaṃ nasyādi śasyate kapha-pīnasa-vat pūti-nāsā-pīnasayoḥ kriyā | lākṣā-karañja-marica-vella-hiṅgu-kaṇā-guḍaiḥ || 21 || avi-mūtra-drutair nasyaṃ kārayed vamane kṛte | śigru-siṃhī-nikumbhānāṃ bījaiḥ sa-vyoṣa-saindhavaiḥ || 22 || sa-vella-surasais tailaṃ nāvanaṃ paramaṃ hitam | pūya-rakte nave kuryād rakta-pīnasa-vat kramam || 23 || 20.23dv rakta-pīnasa-vat kriyām ati-pravṛddhe nāḍī-vad dagdheṣv arśo-'rbudeṣu ca | nikumbha-kumbha-sindhūttha-manohvāla-kaṇāgnikaiḥ || 24 || 20.24bv dagdheṣv arśo-'rbudeṣu tu kalkitair ghṛta-madhv-aktāṃ ghrāṇe vartiṃ praveśayet | śigrv-ādi-nāvanaṃ cātra pūti-nāsoditaṃ bhajet || 25 || 20.25av kalkitair ghṛta-madhv-āktāṃ Uttarasthāna mātsya-māhiṣa-vārāha-piśitāmaka-mūlakam | māṣa-sūpa-dadhi-kṣīra-śuktekṣu-rasa-phāṇitam || 1 || 21.1av matsya-māhiṣa-vārāha- avāk-śayyāṃ ca bhajato dviṣato danta-dhāvanam | dhūma-cchardana-gaṇḍūṣān ucitaṃ ca sirā-vyadham || 2 || kruddhāḥ śleṣmolbaṇā doṣāḥ kurvanty antar mukhaṃ gadān | tatra khaṇḍauṣṭha ity ukto vātenauṣṭho dvi-dhā kṛtaḥ || 3 || 21.3bv kurvanty antar-mukhe gadān oṣṭha-kope tu pavanāt stabdhāv oṣṭhau mahā-rujau | dālyete paripāṭyete paruṣāsita-karkaśau || 4 || pittāt tīkṣṇa-sahau pītau sarṣapākṛtibhiś citau | piṭikābhir bahu-kledāv āśu-pākau kaphāt punaḥ || 5 || 21.5cv piṭikābhir mahā-kledāv śītā-sahau gurū śūnau sa-varṇa-piṭikācitau | saṃnipātād anekābhau dur-gandhāsrāva-picchilau || 6 || 21.6dv dur-gandha-srāva-picchilau 21.6dv dur-gandhāv ati-picchilau a-kasmān mlāna-saṃśūna-rujau viṣama-pākinau | raktopasṛṣṭau rudhiraṃ sravataḥ śoṇita-prabhau || 7 || kharjūra-sadṛśaṃ cātra kṣīṇe rakte 'rbudaṃ bhavet | māṃsa-piṇḍopamau māṃsāt syātāṃ mūrchat-kṛmī kramāt || 8 || tailābha-śvayathu-kledau sa-kaṇḍvau medasā mṛdū | kṣata-jāv avadīryete pāṭyete cā-sakṛt punaḥ || 9 || 21.9bv sa-kaṇḍū medasā mṛdū 21.9dv pāṭyete vā-sakṛt punaḥ grathitau ca punaḥ syātāṃ kaṇḍūlau daśana-cchadau | jala-budbuda-vad vāta-kaphād oṣṭhe jalārbudam || 10 || gaṇḍālajī sthiraḥ śopho gaṇḍe dāha-jvarānvitaḥ | vātād uṣṇa-sahā dantāḥ śīta-sparśe 'dhika-vyathāḥ || 11 || dālyanta iva śūlena śītākhyo dālanaś ca saḥ | danta-harṣe pravātāmla-śīta-bhakṣā-kṣamā dvi-jāḥ || 12 || 21.12dv -śīta-bhakṣyā-sahā dvi-jāḥ bhavanty amlāśaneneva sa-rujāś calitā iva | danta-bhede dvi-jās toda-bheda-ruk-sphuṭanānvitāḥ || 13 || 21.13bv sa-rujaś calitā iva 21.13dv -bheda-ruk-vedanānvitāḥ cālaś caladbhir daśanair bhakṣaṇād adhika-vyathaiḥ | karālas tu karālānāṃ daśanānāṃ samudgamaḥ || 14 || 21.14dv daśanānāṃ samudbhavaḥ 21.14dv daśanānāṃ samudbhave danto 'dhiko 'dhi-dantākhyaḥ sa coktaḥ khalu vardhanaḥ | jāyamāne 'ti-rug dante jāte tatra tu śāmyati || 15 || 21.15cv jāyate jāyamāne 'ti 21.15dv rug jāte tatra śāmyati a-dhāvanān malo dante kapho vā vāta-śoṣitaḥ | pūti-gandhiḥ sthirī-bhūtaḥ śarkarā sāpy upekṣitā || 16 || 21.16cv pūti-gandhaḥ sthirī-bhūtaḥ 21.16dv śarkarā so 'py upekṣitaḥ śātayaty aṇu-śo dantāt kapālāni kapālikā | śyāvaḥ śyāva-tvam āyāto rakta-pittānilair dvi-jaḥ || 17 || 21.17av śātayaty aṇu-śo danta- 21.17bv -kapālāni kapālikā 21.17cv śyāvaḥ śyāva-tvam āyātā 21.17dv rakta-pittānilair dvi-jāḥ sa-mūlaṃ dantam āśritya doṣair ulbaṇa-mārutaiḥ | śoṣite majjñi suṣire dante 'nna-mala-pūrite || 18 || pūti-tvāt kṛmayaḥ sūkṣmā jāyante jāyate tataḥ | a-hetu-tīvrārti-śamaḥ sa-saṃrambho 'sitaś calaḥ || 19 || pralūnaḥ pūya-rakta-srut sa coktaḥ kṛmi-dantakaḥ | śleṣma-raktena pūtīni vahanty asram a-hetukam || 20 || 21.20av prabhūta-pūya-rakta-srut śīryante danta-māṃsāni mṛdu-klinnāsitāni ca | śītādo 'sāv upa-kuśaḥ pākaḥ pittāsṛg-udbhavaḥ || 21 || danta-māṃsāni dahyante raktāny utsedha-vanty ataḥ | kaṇḍū-manti sravanty asram ādhmāyante 'sṛji sthite || 22 || calā manda-rujo dantāḥ pūti vaktraṃ ca jāyate | dantayos triṣu vā śopho badarāsthi-nibho ghanaḥ || 23 || kaphāsrāt tīvra-ruk śīghraṃ pacyate danta-puppuṭaḥ | danta-māṃse malaiḥ sāsrair bāhyāntaḥ śvayathur guruḥ || 24 || sa-rug-dāhaḥ sraved bhinnaḥ pūyāsraṃ danta-vidradhiḥ | śvayathur danta-mūleṣu rujā-vān pitta-rakta-jaḥ || 25 || 21.25bv pūyāsre danta-vidradhiḥ lālā-srāvī sa suṣiro danta-māṃsa-praśātanaḥ | sa saṃnipātāj jvara-vān sa-pūya-rudhira-srutiḥ || 26 || 21.26cv sa saṃnipāta-jvara-vān mahā-suṣira ity ukto viśīrṇa-dvi-ja-bandhanaḥ | dantānte kīla-vac chopho hanu-karṇa-rujā-karaḥ || 27 || 21.27bv viśīrṇa-rada-bandhanaḥ pratihanty abhyavahṛtim śleṣmaṇā so 'dhi-māṃsakaḥ | ghṛṣṭeṣu danta-māṃseṣu saṃrambho jāyate mahān || 28 || yasmiṃś calanti dantāś ca sa vidarbho 'bhighāta-jaḥ | danta-māṃsāśritān rogān yaḥ sādhyān apy upekṣate || 29 || 21.29bv sa vaidarbho 'bhighāta-jaḥ antas tasyāsravan doṣaḥ sūkṣmāṃ saṃjanayed gatim | pūyaṃ muhuḥ sā sravati tvaṅ-māṃsāsthi-prabhedinī || 30 || tāḥ punaḥ pañca vijñeyā lakṣaṇaiḥ svair yathoditaiḥ | śāka-pattra-kharā suptā sphuṭitā vāta-dūṣitā || 31 || jihvā pittāt sa-dāhoṣā raktair māṃsāṅkuraiś citā | śālmalī-kaṇṭakābhais tu kaphena bahalā guruḥ || 32 || 21.32dv kaphena bahulā guruḥ kapha-pittād adhaḥ śopho jihvā-stambha-kṛd unnataḥ | matsya-gandhir bhavet pakvaḥ so 'laso māṃsa-śātanaḥ || 33 || prabandhane 'dho jihvāyāḥ śopho jihvāgra-saṃnibhaḥ | sāṅkuraḥ kapha-pittāsrair lāloṣā-stambha-vān kharaḥ || 34 || 21.34av pralambano 'dho jihvāyāḥ adhi-jihvaḥ sa-ruk-kaṇḍur vākyāhāra-vighāta-kṛt | tādṛg evopa-jihvas tu jihvāyā upari sthitaḥ || 35 || tālu-māṃse 'nilād duṣṭe piṭikāḥ sa-rujaḥ kharāḥ | bahvyo ghanāḥ srāva-yutās tās tālu-piṭikāḥ smṛtāḥ || 36 || 21.36bv piṭikāḥ sa-rujāḥ kharāḥ 21.36cv bahvyo ghanāḥ srāva-yuktās tālu-mūle kaphāt sāsrān matsya-vasti-nibho mṛduḥ | pralambaḥ picchilaḥ śopho nāsayāhāram īrayan || 37 || kaṇṭhoparodha-tṛṭ-kāsa-vami-kṛt gala-śuṇḍikā | tālu-madhye ni-ruṅ māṃsaṃ saṃhataṃ tālu-saṃhatiḥ || 38 || padmākṛtis tālu-madhye raktāc chvayathur arbudam | kacchapaḥ kacchapākāraś cira-vṛddhiḥ kaphād a-ruk || 39 || kolābhaḥ śleṣma-medobhyāṃ puppuṭo nī-rujaḥ sthiraḥ | pittena pākaḥ pākākhyaḥ pūyāsrāvī mahā-rujaḥ || 40 || vāta-pitta-jvarāyāsais tālu-śoṣas tad-āhvayaḥ | jihvā-prabandha-jāḥ kaṇṭhe dāruṇā mārga-rodhinaḥ || 41 || māṃsāṅkurāḥ śīghra-cayā rohiṇī śīghra-kāriṇī | kaṇṭhāsya-śoṣa-kṛd vātāt sā hanu-śrotra-ruk-karī || 42 || 21.42bv rohiṇī sāśu-kāriṇī pittāj jvaroṣā-tṛṇ-moha-kaṇṭha-dhūmāyanānvitā | kṣipra-jā kṣipra-pākāti-rāgiṇī sparśanā-sahā || 43 || kaphena picchilā pāṇḍur asṛjā sphoṭakācitā | taptāṅgāra-nibhā karṇa-ruk-karī pitta-jākṛtiḥ || 44 || gambhīra-pākā nicayāt sarva-liṅga-samanvitā | doṣaiḥ kapholbaṇaiḥ śophaḥ kola-vad grathitonnataḥ || 45 || śūka-kaṇṭaka-vat kaṇṭhe śālūko mārga-rodhanaḥ | vṛndo vṛttonnato dāha-jvara-kṛd gala-pārśva-gaḥ || 46 || hanu-saṃdhy-āśritaḥ kaṇṭhe kārpāsī-phala-saṃnibhaḥ | picchilo manda-ruk śophaḥ kaṭhinas tuṇḍikerikā || 47 || 21.47bv karpāsī-phala-saṃnibhaḥ bāhyāntaḥ śvayathur ghoro gala-mārgārgalopamaḥ | galaugho mūrdha-guru-tā-tandrā-lālā-jvara-pradaḥ || 48 || valayaṃ nāti-ruk śophas tad-vad evāyatonnataḥ | māṃsa-kīlo gale doṣair eko 'neko 'tha-vā 'lpa-ruk || 49 || kṛcchrocchvāsābhyavahṛtiḥ pṛthu-mūlo gilāyukaḥ | bhūri-māṃsāṅkura-vṛtā tīvra-tṛḍ-jvara-mūrdha-ruk || 50 || 21.50bv pṛthu-mūlo galāyukaḥ śata-ghnī nicitā vartiḥ śata-ghnīvāti-ruk-karī | vyāpta-sarva-galaḥ śīghra-janma-pāko mahā-rujaḥ || 51 || 21.51av śata-ghnī-nicitevāntaḥ 21.51bv śata-ghnī cāti-ruk-karī pūti-pūya-nibha-srāvī śvayathur gala-vidradhiḥ | jihvāvasāne kaṇṭhādāv a-pākaṃ śvayathuṃ malāḥ || 52 || janayanti sthiraṃ raktaṃ nī-rujaṃ tad galārbudam || 53ab || 21.53bv nī-rujaṃ taṃ galārbudam pavana-śleṣma-medobhir gala-gaṇḍo bhaved bahiḥ || 53cd || vardhamānaḥ sa kālena muṣka-val lambate 'ti-ruk || 53ef || 21.53fv muṣka-val lambate ni-ruk kṛṣṇo 'ruṇo vā todāḍhyaḥ sa vātāt kṛṣṇa-rāji-mān | vṛddhas tālu-gale śoṣaṃ kuryāc ca vi-rasāsya-tām || 54 || sthiraḥ sa-varṇaḥ kaṇḍū-mān śīta-sparśo guruḥ kaphāt | vṛddhas tālu-gale lepaṃ kuryāc ca madhurāsya-tām || 55 || 21.55cv vṛddhas tālu-gale śophaṃ medasaḥ śleṣma-vad dhāni-vṛddhyoḥ so 'nuvidhīyate | dehaṃ vṛddhaś ca kurute gale śabdaṃ svare 'lpa-tām || 56 || śleṣma-ruddhānila-gatiḥ śuṣka-kaṇṭho hata-svaraḥ | tāmyan prasaktaṃ śvasiti yena sa svara-hānilāt || 57 || karoti vadanasyāntar vraṇān sarva-saro 'nilaḥ | saṃcāriṇo 'ruṇān rūkṣān oṣṭhau tāmrau cala-tvacau || 58 || jihvā śītā-sahā gurvī sphuṭitā kaṇṭakācitā | vivṛṇoti ca kṛcchreṇa mukhaṃ pāko mukhasya saḥ || 59 || 21.59dv mukhaṃ pāko mukhasya ca adhaḥ pratihato vāyur arśo-gulma-kaphādibhiḥ | yāty ūrdhvaṃ vaktra-daurgandhyaṃ kurvann ūrdhva-gudas tu saḥ || 60 || 21.60dv kurvann ūrdhva-gadas tu saḥ mukhasya pitta-je pāke dāhoṣe tikta-vaktra-tā | kṣārokṣita-kṣata-samā vraṇās tad-vac ca rakta-je || 61 || kapha-je madhurāsya-tvaṃ kaṇḍū-mat-picchilā vraṇāḥ | antaḥ-kapolam āśritya śyāva-pāṇḍu kapho 'rbudam || 62 || 21.62dv śyāvaṃ pāṇḍu kapho 'rbudam kuryāt tad ghaṭṭitaṃ chinnaṃ mṛditaṃ ca vivardhate | mukha-pāko bhavet sāsraiḥ sarvaiḥ sarvākṛtir malaiḥ || 63 || 21.63av kuryāt tat pāṭitaṃ chinnaṃ 21.63av kuryāt tad vyadhitaṃ chinnaṃ pūty-āsya-tā ca tair eva danta-kāṣṭhādi-vidviṣaḥ | oṣṭhe gaṇḍe dvi-je mūle jihvāyāṃ tāluke gale || 64 || vaktre sarva-tra cety uktāḥ pañca-saptatir āmayāḥ | ekā-daśaiko daśa ca trayo-daśa tathā ca ṣaṭ || 65 || aṣṭāv aṣṭā-daśāṣṭau ca kramāt teṣv an-upakramāḥ | karālo māṃsa-raktauṣṭhāv arbudāni jalād vinā || 66 || 21.66bv kramād eṣv an-upakramāḥ kacchapas tālu-piṭikā galaughaḥ suṣiro mahān | svara-ghnordhva-guda-śyāva-śata-ghnī-valayālasāḥ || 67 || 21.67cv svara-ghnordhva-gada-śyāva- nāḍy-oṣṭha-kopau nicayād raktāt sarvaiś ca rohiṇī | daśane sphuṭite danta-bhedaḥ pakvopa-jihvikā || 68 || gala-gaṇḍaḥ svara-bhraṃśī kṛcchrocchvāso 'ti-vatsaraḥ | yāpyas tu harṣo bhedaś ca śeṣāñ chastrauṣadhair jayet || 69 || 21.69av gala-gaṇḍaḥ svara-bhraṃśaḥ Uttarasthāna khaṇḍauṣṭhasya vilikhyāntau syūtvā vraṇa-vad ācaret | yaṣṭī-jyotiṣmatī-lodhra-śrāvaṇī-śārivotpalaiḥ || 1 || paṭolyā kākamācyā ca tailam abhyañjanaṃ pacet | nasyaṃ ca tailaṃ vāta-ghna-madhura-skandha-sādhitam || 2 || mahā-snehena vātauṣṭhe siddhenāktaḥ picur hitaḥ | deva-dhūpa-madhūcchiṣṭa-guggulv-amaradārubhiḥ || 3 || yaṣṭy-āhva-cūrṇa-yuktena tenaiva pratisāraṇam | nāḍy-oṣṭhaṃ svedayed dugdha-siddhair eraṇḍa-pallavaiḥ || 4 || 22.4av yaṣṭy-āhva-cūrṇa-yuktais tu 22.4bv tair eva pratisāraṇam khaṇḍauṣṭha-vihitaṃ nasyaṃ tasya mūrdhni ca tarpaṇam | pittābhighāta-jāv oṣṭhau jalaukobhir upācaret || 5 || lodhra-sarja-rasa-kṣaudra-madhukaiḥ pratisāraṇam | guḍūcī-yaṣṭi-pattaṅga-siddham abhyañjane ghṛtam || 6 || pitta-vidradhi-vac cātra kriyā śoṇita-je 'pi ca | idam eva nave kāryaṃ karmauṣṭhe tu kaphāture || 7 || 22.7cv idam eva bhavet kāryaṃ 22.7dv karmauṣṭhe tu kaphottare pāṭhā-kṣāra-madhu-vyoṣair hṛtāsre pratisāraṇam | dhūma-nāvana-gaṇḍūṣāḥ prayojyāś ca kapha-cchidaḥ || 8 || svinnaṃ bhinnaṃ vi-medaskaṃ dahen medo-jam agninā | priyaṅgu-lodhra-tri-phalā-mākṣikaiḥ pratisārayet || 9 || sa-kṣaudrā gharṣaṇaṃ tīkṣṇā bhinna-śuddhe jalārbude | avagāḍhe 'ti-vṛddhe vā kṣāro 'gnir vā pratikriyā || 10 || 22.10av sa-kṣaudrair gharṣaṇaṃ tīkṣṇair 22.10dv kṣāro vahniḥ pratikriyā āmādy-avasthāsv alajīṃ gaṇḍe śopha-vad ācaret | svinnasya śīta-dantasya pālīṃ vilikhitāṃ dahet || 11 || tailena pratisāryā ca sa-kṣaudra-ghana-saindhavaiḥ | dāḍima-tvag-varā-tārkṣya-kāntā-jambv-asthi-nāgaraiḥ || 12 || kavaḍaḥ kṣīriṇāṃ kvāthair aṇu-tailaṃ ca nāvanam | danta-harṣe tathā bhede sarvā vāta-harā kriyā || 13 || 22.13cv danta-bhede tathā harṣe 22.13dv sarvā vāta-harāḥ kriyāḥ tila-yaṣṭīmadhu-śṛtaṃ kṣīraṃ gaṇḍūṣa-dhāraṇam | sa-snehaṃ daśa-mūlāmbu gaṇḍūṣaḥ pracalad-dvi-je || 14 || 22.14cv sa-sneha-daśa-mūlāmbu- 22.14dv -gaṇḍūṣāḥ pracale dvi-je tuttha-lodhra-kaṇā-śreṣṭhā-pattaṅga-paṭu-gharṣaṇam | snigdhāḥ śīlyā yathāvasthaṃ nasyānna-kavaḍādayaḥ || 15 || 22.15dv gaṇḍūṣa-kavaḍādayaḥ adhi-dantakam āliptaṃ yadā kṣāreṇa jarjaram | kṛmi-dantam ivotpāṭya tad-vac copacaret tadā || 16 || an-avasthita-rakte ca dagdhe vraṇa iva kriyā | a-hiṃsan danta-mūlāni dantebhyaḥ śarkarāṃ haret || 17 || kṣāra-cūrṇair madhu-yutais tataś ca pratisārayet | kapālikāyām apy evaṃ harṣoktaṃ ca samācaret || 18 || jayed visrāvaṇaiḥ svinnam a-calaṃ kṛmi-dantakam | snigdhaiś cālepa-gaṇḍūṣa-nasyāhāraiś calāpahaiḥ || 19 || 22.19bv a-balaṃ kṛmi-dantakam guḍena pūrṇaṃ suṣiraṃ madhūcchiṣṭena vā dahet | saptacchadārka-kṣīrābhyāṃ pūraṇaṃ kṛmi-śūla-jit || 20 || hiṅgu-kaṭphala-kāsīsa-svarjikā-kuṣṭha-vella-jam | rajo rujaṃ jayaty āśu vastra-sthaṃ daśane ghṛtam || 21 || 22.21dv vastra-sthaṃ daśanair ghṛtam alaktakaṃ vā sindhūtthaṃ vella-dhūmaṃ sa-hiṅgu vā | dhānyāmla-siddhaṃ śevālaṃ koṣṇaṃ vā daśana-sthitam || 21+1 || 22.21+1bv veśma-dhūmaṃ sa-hiṅgu vā varāhakarṇī-mūlaṃ vā śarapuṅkhā-jaṭātha-vā | vartir vāvalguja-phalair bījapūra-jaṭānvitaiḥ || 21+2 || gaṇḍūṣaṃ grāhayet tailam ebhir eva ca sādhitam | kvāthair vā yuktam eraṇḍa-dvi-vyāghrī-bhūkadamba-jaiḥ || 22 || 22.22av gaṇḍūṣaṃ dhārayet tailam 22.22dv -vyāghrī-bhūrja-kadambakaiḥ kriyā-yogair bahu-vidhair ity a-śānta-rujaṃ bhṛśam | dṛḍham apy uddhared dantaṃ pūrvaṃ mūlād vimokṣitam || 23 || saṃdaṃśakena laghunā danta-nirghātanena vā | tailaṃ sa-yaṣṭy-āhva-rajo gaṇḍūṣo madhu vā tataḥ || 24 || 22.24dv gaṇḍūṣo madhunā tataḥ tato vidāri-yaṣṭy-āhva-śṛṅgāṭaka-kaserubhiḥ | tailaṃ daśa-guṇa-kṣīraṃ siddhaṃ yuñjīta nāvanam || 25 || kṛśa-dur-bala-vṛddhānāṃ vātārtānāṃ ca noddharet | noddharec cottaraṃ dantaṃ bahūpadrava-kṛd dhi saḥ || 26 || eṣām apy uddhṛtau snigdha-svādu-śīta-kramo hitaḥ | visrāvitāsre śītāde sa-kṣaudraiḥ pratisāraṇam || 27 || 22.27av eṣām apy uddhṛtaiḥ snigdha- mustārjuna-tvak-tri-phalā-phalinī-tārkṣya-nāgaraiḥ | tat-kvāthaḥ kavaḍo nasyaṃ tailaṃ madhura-sādhitam || 28 || danta-māṃsāny upa-kuśe svinnāny uṣṇāmbu-dhāraṇaiḥ | maṇḍalāgreṇa śākādi-pattrair vā bahu-śo likhet || 29 || tataś ca pratisāryāṇi ghṛta-maṇḍa-madhu-drutaiḥ | lākṣā-priyaṅgu-pattaṅga-lavaṇottama-gairikaiḥ || 30 || 22.30bv ghṛta-maṇḍa-madhu-plutaiḥ sa-kuṣṭha-śuṇṭhī-marica-yaṣṭīmadhu-rasāñjanaiḥ | sukhoṣṇo ghṛta-maṇḍo 'nu tailaṃ vā kavaḍa-grahaḥ || 31 || 22.31dv tailaṃ vā kavaḍa-grahe ghṛtaṃ ca madhuraiḥ siddhaṃ hitaṃ kavaḍa-nasyayoḥ | danta-puppuṭake svinna-cchinna-bhinna-vilekhite || 32 || 22.32av ghṛtaṃ vā madhuraiḥ siddhaṃ yaṣṭy-āhva-svarjikā-śuṇṭhī-saindhavaiḥ pratisāraṇam | vidradhau kaṭu-tīkṣṇoṣṇa-rūkṣaiḥ kavaḍa-lepanam || 33 || gharṣaṇaṃ kaṭukā-kuṣṭha-vṛścikālī-yavodbhavaiḥ | rakṣet pākaṃ himaiḥ pakvaḥ pāṭyo dāhyo 'vagāḍhakaḥ || 34 || suṣire chinna-likhite sa-kṣaudraiḥ pratisāraṇam | lodhra-musta-miśi-śreṣṭhā-tārkṣya-pattaṅga-kiṃśukaiḥ || 35 || 22.35av sauṣire chinna-likhite sa-kaṭphalaiḥ kaṣāyaiś ca teṣāṃ gaṇḍūṣa iṣyate | yaṣṭī-lodhrotpalānantā-śārivāguru-candanaiḥ || 36 || 22.36av sa-kaṭphalaiḥ kaṣāyaś ca sa-gairika-sitā-puṇḍraiḥ siddhaṃ tailaṃ ca nāvanam | chittvādhi-māṃsakaṃ cūrṇaiḥ sa-kṣaudraiḥ pratisārayet || 37 || vacā-tejovatī-pāṭhā-svarjikā-yava-śūka-jaiḥ | paṭola-nimba-tri-phalā-kaṣāyaḥ kavaḍo hitaḥ || 38 || 22.38bv -svarjikā-yāva-śūka-jaiḥ vidarbhe danta-mūlāni maṇḍalāgreṇa śodhayet | kṣāraṃ yuñjyāt tato nasyaṃ gaṇḍūṣādi ca śītalam || 39 || saṃśodhyobhayataḥ kāyaṃ śiraś copacaret tataḥ | nāḍīṃ dantānugāṃ dantaṃ samuddhṛtyāgninā dahet || 40 || kubjāṃ naika-gatiṃ pūrṇāṃ guḍena madanena vā | dhāvanaṃ jāti-madana-khadira-svādukaṇṭakaiḥ || 41 || 22.41av nyubjāṃ naika-gatiṃ pūrṇāṃ 22.41bv guḍena madhunātha-vā kṣīri-vṛkṣāmbu-gaṇḍūṣo nasyaṃ tailaṃ ca tat-kṛtam | kuryād vātauṣṭha-kopoktaṃ kaṇṭakeṣv anilātmasu || 42 || jihvāyāṃ pitta-jāteṣu ghṛṣṭeṣu rudhire srute | pratisāraṇa-gaṇḍūṣa-nāvanaṃ madhurair hitam || 43 || tīkṣṇaiḥ kaphottheṣv evaṃ ca sarṣapa-try-ūṣaṇādibhiḥ | nave jihvālase 'py evaṃ taṃ tu śastreṇa na spṛśet || 44 || 22.44av tīkṣṇaiḥ kaphottheṣv apy evaṃ 22.44av tīkṣṇaiḥ kaphottheṣv evaṃ tu unnamya jihvām ākṛṣṭāṃ baḍiśenādhi-jihvikām | chedayen maṇḍalāgreṇa tīkṣṇoṣṇair gharṣaṇādi ca || 45 || upa-jihvāṃ parisrāvya yava-kṣāreṇa gharṣayet | kapha-ghnaiḥ śuṇḍikā sādhyā nasya-gaṇḍūṣa-gharṣaṇaiḥ || 46 || ervāru-bīja-pratimaṃ vṛddhāyām a-sirā-tatam | agraṃ niviṣṭaṃ jihvāyā baḍīśādy-avalambitam || 47 || 22.47cv agraṃ niviṣṭaṃ jihvāyāṃ 22.47cv agre niviṣṭaṃ jihvāyā chedayen maṇḍalāgreṇa nāty-agre na ca mūlataḥ | chede 'ty asṛk-kṣayān mṛtyur hīne vyādhir vivardhate || 48 || 22.48bv nāty-agre nāti-mūlataḥ maricātiviṣā-pāṭhā-vacā-kuṣṭha-kuṭannaṭaiḥ | chinnāyāṃ sa-paṭu-kṣaudrair gharṣaṇaṃ kavaḍaḥ punaḥ || 49 || kaṭukātiviṣā-pāṭhā-nimba-rāsnā-vacāmbubhiḥ | saṃghāte puppuṭe kūrme vilikhyaivaṃ samācaret || 50 || a-pakve tālu-pāke tu kāsīsa-kṣaudra-tārkṣya-jaiḥ | gharṣaṇaṃ kavaḍaḥ śīta-kaṣāya-madhurauṣadhaiḥ || 51 || 22.51cv gharṣaṇaṃ kavaḍaḥ śītaḥ 22.51dv kaṣāya-madhurauṣadhaiḥ pakve 'ṣṭā-pada-vad bhinne tīkṣṇoṣṇaiḥ pratisāraṇam | vṛṣa-nimba-paṭolādyais tiktaiḥ kavaḍa-dhāraṇam || 52 || tālu-śoṣe tv a-tṛṣṇasya sarpir uttara-bhaktikam | kaṇā-śuṇṭhī-śṛtaṃ pānam amlair gaṇḍūṣa-dhāraṇam || 53 || 22.53av tālu-śoṣe tṛṣārtasya dhanva-māṃsa-rasāḥ snigdhāḥ kṣīra-sarpiś ca nāvanam | kaṇṭha-rogeṣv asṛṅ-mokṣas tīkṣṇair nasyādi karma ca || 54 || kvāthaḥ pānaṃ ca dārvī-tvaṅ-nimba-tārkṣya-kaliṅga-jaḥ | harītakī-kaṣāyo vā peyo mākṣika-saṃyutaḥ || 55 || śreṣṭhā-vyoṣa-yava-kṣāra-dārvī-dvīpi-rasāñjanaiḥ | sa-pāṭhā-tejinī-nimbaiḥ śukta-go-mūtra-sādhitaiḥ || 56 || kavaḍo guṭikā vātra kalpitā pratisāraṇam | niculaṃ kaṭabhī mustaṃ devadāru mahauṣadham || 57 || 22.57av kavaḍo guṭikā cātra 22.57cv niculaṃ kaṭabhī mustā vacā dantī ca mūrvā ca lepaḥ koṣṇo 'rti-śopha-hā | athāntar-bāhyataḥ svinnāṃ vāta-rohiṇikāṃ likhet || 58 || aṅgulī-śastrakeṇāśu paṭu-yukta-nakhena vā | pañca-mūlāmbu kavaḍas tailaṃ gaṇḍūṣa-nāvanam || 59 || visrāvya pitta-saṃbhūtāṃ sitā-kṣaudra-priyaṅgubhiḥ | gharṣet sa-lodhra-pattaṅgaiḥ kavaḍaḥ kvathitaiś ca taiḥ || 60 || drākṣā-parūṣaka-kvātho hitaś ca kavaḍa-grahe | upācared evam eva pratyākhyāyāsra-saṃbhavām || 61 || sāgāra-dhūmaiḥ kaṭukaiḥ kapha-jāṃ pratisārayet | nasya-gaṇḍūṣayos tailaṃ sādhitaṃ ca praśasyate || 62 || apāmārga-phala-śvetā-dantī-jantughna-saindhavaiḥ | tad-vac ca vṛnda-śālūka-tuṇḍikerī-gilāyuṣu || 63 || 22.63dv -tuṇḍikerī-galāyuṣu vidradhau srāvite śreṣṭhā-rocanā-tārkṣya-gairikaiḥ | sa-lodhra-paṭu-pattaṅga-kaṇair gaṇḍūṣa-gharṣaṇe || 64 || 22.64dv -kaṇair gaṇḍūṣa-dhāraṇam 22.64dv -kaṇair gaṇḍūṣa-gharṣaṇam gala-gaṇḍaḥ pavana-jaḥ svinno niḥsruta-śoṇitaḥ | tilair bījaiś ca laṭvomā-priyāla-śaṇa-saṃbhavaiḥ || 65 || 22.65bv svinno visruta-śoṇitaḥ upanāhyo vraṇe rūḍhe pralepyaś ca punaḥ punaḥ | śigru-tilvaka-tarkārī-gaja-kṛṣṇā-punarnavaiḥ || 66 || kālāmṛtārka-mūlaiś ca puṣpaiś ca karahāṭa-jaiḥ | ekaiṣīkānvitaiḥ piṣṭaiḥ surayā kāñjikena vā || 67 || 22.67av tāla-mūlārka-mūlaiś ca 22.67bv puṣpaiś ca karaghāṭa-jaiḥ guḍūcī-nimba-kuṭaja-haṃsapadī-balā-dvayaiḥ | sādhitaṃ pāyayet tailaṃ sa-kṛṣṇā-devadārubhiḥ || 68 || kartavyaṃ kapha-je 'py etat sveda-vimlāpane tv ati | lepo 'jagandhātiviṣā-viśalyāḥ sa-viṣāṇikāḥ || 69 || guñjālābu-śukāhvāś ca palāśa-kṣāra-kalkitāḥ | mūtra-srutaṃ haṭha-kṣāraṃ paktvā kodrava-bhuk pibet || 70 || 22.70cv mūtra-śṛtaṃ yava-kṣāraṃ 22.70cv mūtra-srutaṃ yava-kṣāraṃ 22.70cv sūtra-srutaṃ yava-kṣāraṃ sādhitaṃ vatsakādyair vā tailaṃ sa-paṭu-pañcakaiḥ | kapha-ghnān dhūma-vamana-nāvanādīṃś ca śīlayet || 71 || 22.71cv kapha-ghnān dhūma-gaṇḍūṣān 22.71dv vamanādīṃś ca śīlayet medo-bhave sirāṃ vidhyet kapha-ghnaṃ ca vidhiṃ bhajet | asanādi-rajaś cainaṃ prātar mūtreṇa pāyayet || 72 || a-śāntau pācayitvā ca sarvān vraṇa-vad ācaret | mukha-pākeṣu sa-kṣaudrā prayojyā mukha-dhāvanāḥ || 73 || 22.73av a-śāntau pāṭayitvā ca 22.73dv prayojyā mukha-pāvanāḥ kvathitās tri-phalā-pāṭhā-mṛdvīkā-jāti-pallavāḥ | niṣṭhevyā bhakṣayitvā vā kuṭherādir gaṇo 'tha-vā || 74 || 22.74cv nighṛṣṭavyā bhakṣayitvā mukha-pāke 'nilāt kṛṣṇā-paṭv-elāḥ pratisāraṇam | tailaṃ vāta-haraiḥ siddhaṃ hitaṃ kavaḍa-nasyayoḥ || 75 || pittāsre pitta-rakta-ghnaḥ kapha-ghnaś ca kaphe vidhiḥ | likhec chākādi-pattraiś ca piṭikāḥ kaṭhināḥ sthirāḥ || 76 || 22.76av pittāsre rakta-pitta-ghnaḥ yathā-doṣodayaṃ kuryāt saṃnipāte cikitsitam | nave 'rbude tv a-saṃvṛddhe chedite pratisāraṇam || 77 || svarjikā-nāgara-kṣaudraiḥ kvātho gaṇḍūṣa iṣyate | guḍūcī-nimba-kalkottho madhu-taila-samanvitaḥ || 78 || yavānna-bhuk tīkṣṇa-taila-nasyābhyaṅgāṃs tathācaret | vamite pūti-vadane dhūmas tīkṣṇaḥ sa-nāvanaḥ || 79 || samaṅgā-dhātakī-lodhra-phalinī-padmakair jalam | dhāvanaṃ vadanasyāntaś cūrṇitair avacūrṇitam || 80 || 22.80dv cūrṇitair avacūrṇanam śītādopa-kuśoktaṃ ca nāvanādi ca śīlayet || 81ab || phala-traya-dvīpi-kirātatikta-yaṣṭy-āhva-siddhārtha-kaṭu-trikāṇi || 81cd || mustā-haridrā-dvaya-yāva-śūka-vṛkṣāmlakāmlāgrima-vetasāś ca || 81ef || aśvattha-jambv-āmra-dhanañjaya-tvak tvak cāhimārāt khadirasya sāraḥ | kvāthena teṣāṃ ghana-tāṃ gatena tac-cūrṇa-yuktā guṭikā vidheyāḥ || 82 || tā dhāritā ghnanti mukhena nityaṃ kaṇṭhauṣṭha-tālv-ādi-gadān su-kṛcchrān | viśeṣato rohiṇikāsya-śoṣa-gandhān videhādhipati-praṇītāḥ || 83 || khadira-tulām ambu-ghaṭe paktvā toyena tena piṣṭaiś ca | candana-joṅgaka-kuṅkuma-paripelava-vālakośīraiḥ || 84 || surataru-lodhra-drākṣā-mañjiṣṭhā-coca-padmaka-viḍaṅgaiḥ | spṛkkā-nata-nakha-kaṭphala-sūkṣmailā-dhyāmakaiḥ sa-pattaṅgaiḥ || 85 || taila-prasthaṃ vipacet karṣāṃśaiḥ pāna-nasya-gaṇḍūṣais tat | hatvāsye sarva-gadān janayati gārdhrīṃ dṛśaṃ śrutiṃ ca vārāhīm || 86 || 22.86bv karṣāṃśaiḥ pāna-nasya-gaṇḍūṣaiḥ 22.86cv hanty āsye sarva-gadān udvartitaṃ ca prapunāṭa-lodhra-dārvībhir abhyaktam anena vaktram | nir-vyaṅga-nīlī-mukha-dūṣikādi saṃjāyate candra-samāna-kānti || 87 || 22.87cv nir-vyaṅga-nīlī-mukha-dūṣikaṃ ca pala-śataṃ bāṇāt toya-ghaṭe paktvā rase 'smiṃś ca palārdhikaiḥ | khadira-jambū-yaṣṭyānantāmrair ahimāra-nīlotpalānvitaiḥ || 88 || 22.88cv khadira-jambū-yaṣṭyānantā-lodhrair taila-prasthaṃ pācayec chlakṣṇa-piṣṭair ebhir dravyair dhāritaṃ tan mukhena | rogān sarvān hanti vaktre viśeṣāt sthairyaṃ dhatte danta-paṅkteś calāyāḥ || 89 || 22.89av taila-prasthaṃ pācayet sūkṣma-piṣṭair 22.89bv ebhir dravyair dhāritaṃ tat sukhena khadira-sārād dve tule paced valkāt tulāṃ cārimedasaḥ | ghaṭa-catuṣke pāda-śeṣe 'smin pūte punaḥ kvathanād ghane || 90 || 22.90av khadira-sārād dve tule vipaced 22.90bv valka-tulāṃ cārimedasaḥ 22.90bv valkala-tulāṃ cārimedasaḥ 22.90bv valkala-tulāṃ cārimedataḥ 22.90dv 'smin pūte punaḥ kvāthanād ghane 22.90dv 'smin pūte punaḥ kvāthayed ghane ākṣikaṃ kṣipet su-sūkṣmaṃ rajaḥ sevyāmbu-pattaṅga-gairikam | candana-dvaya-lodhra-puṇḍrāhva-yaṣṭy-āhva-lākṣāñjana-dvayam || 91 || 22.91av ākṣikaṃ kṣipet su-sūkṣma-rajaḥ 22.91av ākṣikaṃ ca kṣipet sūkṣma-rajaḥ 22.91av kārṣikaṃ kṣipet su-sūkṣma-rajaḥ 22.91cv candana-dvaya-śyāmā-puṇḍrāhva- dhātakī-kaṭphala-dvi-niśā-tri-phalā-catur-jāta-joṅgakam | musta-mañjiṣṭhā-nyagrodha-praroha-māṃsī-yavāsakam || 92 || 22.92dv ṃdha-praroha-vacā-māṃsī-yavāsakam padmakailā-samaṅgāś ca śīte tasmiṃs tathā pālikāṃ pṛthak | jātīpattrikāṃ sa-jāti-phalāṃ saha-lavaṅga-kaṇkollakām || 93 || 22.93av padmakaileya-samaṅgāś ca 22.93bv śīte tathā pālikāṃ pṛthak 22.93dv saha-nakha-lavaṅga-kaṅkollakām sphaṭika-śubhra-surabhi-karpūra-kuḍavaṃ ca tatrāvapet tataḥ | kārayed guṭikāḥ sadā caitā dhāryā mukhe tad-gadāpahāḥ || 94 || 22.94cv kārayed guṭikāś caitā 22.94cv kāryāś caitā guṭikā kvāthyauṣadha-vyatyaya-yojanena tailaṃ pacet kalpanayānayaiva | sarvāsya-rogoddhṛtaye tad āhur danta-sthira-tve tv idam eva mukhyam || 95 || 22.95av kvāthauṣadha-vyatyaya-yojanena 22.95cv sarvāsya-roga-praśamārtham uktaṃ 22.95cv sarvāsya-roge vyayanaṃ tad āhur khadireṇaitā guṭikās tailam idaṃ cārimedasā prathitam | anuśīlayan prati-dinaṃ svastho 'pi dṛḍha-dvi-jo bhavati || 96 || 22.96dv vṛddho 'pi dṛḍha-dvi-jo bhavati kṣudrā-guḍūcī-sumanaḥ-pravāla-dārvī-yavāsa-tri-phalā-kaṣāyaḥ | kṣaudreṇa yuktaḥ kavaḍa-graho 'yaṃ sarvāmayān vaktra-gatān nihanti || 97 || 22.97av drākṣā-guḍūcī-sumanaḥ-pravāla- pāṭhā-dārvī-tvak-kuṣṭha-mustā-samaṅgā-tiktā-pītāṅgī-lodhra-tejovatīnām | cūrṇaḥ sa-kṣaudro danta-māṃsārti-kaṇḍū-pāka-srāvāṇāṃ nāśano gharṣaṇena || 98 || gṛha-dhūma-tārkṣya-pāṭhā-vyoṣa-kṣārāgny-ayo-varā-tejo-hvaiḥ | mukha-danta-gala-vikāre sa-kṣaudraḥ kālako vidhāryaś cūrṇaḥ || 99 || 22.99dv sa-kṣaudraḥ kāliko vidhāryaś cūrṇaḥ dārvī-tvak-sindhūdbhava-manaḥśilā-yāva-śūka-haritālaiḥ | dhāryaḥ pītaka-cūrṇo dantāsya-galāmaye sa-madhv-ājyaḥ || 100 || dvi-kṣāra-dhūmaka-varā-pañca-paṭu-vyoṣa-vella-giri-tārkṣyaiḥ | go-mūtreṇa vipakvā galāmaya-ghnī rasa-kriyā eṣā || 101 || 22.101av dvi-kṣāra-gṛha-dhūmaka-varā- 22.101cv go-mūtreṇa piban kvāthaṃ go-mūtra-kvathana-vilīna-vigrahāṇāṃ pathyānāṃ jala-miśi-kuṣṭha-bhāvitānām | attāraṃ naram aṇavo 'pi vaktra-rogāḥ śrotāraṃ nṛpam iva na spṛśanty an-arthāḥ || 102 || saptacchadośīra-paṭola-musta-harītakī-tiktaka-rohiṇībhiḥ | yaṣṭy-āhva-rājadruma-candanaiś ca kvāthaṃ pibet pāka-haraṃ mukhasya || 103 || paṭola-śuṇṭhī-tri-phalā-viśālā-trāyanti-tiktā-dvi-niśāmṛtānām | pītaḥ kaṣāyo madhunā nihanti mukhe sthitaś cāsya-gadān a-śeṣān || 104 || 22.104dv mukhotthitāṃś cāśu gadān a-śeṣān sva-rasaḥ kvathito dārvyā ghanī-bhūtaḥ sa-gairikaḥ | āsya-sthaḥ sa-madhur vaktra-pāka-nāḍī-vraṇāpahaḥ || 105 || paṭola-nimba-yaṣṭy-āhva-vāsā-jāty-arimedasām | khadirasya varāyāś ca pṛthag evaṃ prakalpanā || 106 || khadirāyo-varā-pārtha-madayanty-ahimārakaiḥ | gaṇḍūṣo 'mbu-śṛtair dhāryo dur-bala-dvi-ja-śāntaye || 107 || mukha-danta-mūla-gala-jāḥ prāyo rogāḥ kaphāsra-bhūyiṣṭhāḥ | tasmāt teṣām a-sakṛd rudhiraṃ visrāvayed duṣṭam || 108 || kāya-śirasor vireko vamanaṃ kavaḍa-grahāś ca kaṭu-tiktāḥ | prāyaḥ śastaṃ teṣāṃ kapha-rakta-haraṃ tathā karma || 109 || yava-tṛṇa-dhānyaṃ bhaktaṃ vidalaiḥ kṣāroṣitair apa-snehāḥ | yūṣā bhakṣyāś ca hitā yac cānyac chleṣma-nāśāya || 110 || 22.110av yava-tṛṇa-dhānyaṃ bhuktaṃ 22.110bv vidalaiḥ kṣāroṣitair apa-sneham prāṇānila-patha-saṃsthāḥ śvasitam api nirundhate pramāda-vataḥ | kaṇṭhāmayāś cikitsitam ato drutaṃ teṣu kurvīta || 111 || Uttarasthāna dhūmātapa-tuṣārāmbu-krīḍāti-svapna-jāgaraiḥ | utsvedādhi-puro-vāta-bāṣpa-nigraha-rodanaiḥ || 1 || 23.1cv unmādādhi-puro-vāta- aty-ambu-madya-pānena kṛmibhir vega-dhāraṇaiḥ | upadhāna-mṛjābhyaṅga-dveṣādhaḥ-pratatekṣaṇaiḥ || 2 || a-sātmya-gandha-duṣṭāma-bhāṣyādyaiś ca śiro-gatāḥ | janayanty āmayān doṣās tatra māruta-kopataḥ || 3 || 23.3av a-sātmya-gandha-duṣṭāmbu- nistudyete bhṛśaṃ śaṅkhau ghāṭā saṃbhidyate tathā | bhruvor madhyaṃ lalāṭaṃ ca patatīvāti-vedanam || 4 || 23.4cv bhruvor madhye lalāṭaṃ ca bādhyete svanataḥ śrotre niṣkṛṣyete ivākṣiṇī | ghūrṇatīva śiraḥ sarvaṃ saṃdhibhya iva mucyate || 5 || sphuraty ati sirā-jālaṃ kandharā-hanu-saṃgrahaḥ | prakāśā-saha-tā ghrāṇa-srāvo '-kasmād vyathā-śamau || 6 || mārdavaṃ mardana-sneha-sveda-bandhaiś ca jāyate | śiras-tāpo 'yam ardhe tu mūrdhnaḥ so 'rdhāvabhedakaḥ || 7 || pakṣāt kupyati māsād vā svayam eva ca śāmyati | ati-vṛddhas tu nayanaṃ śravaṇaṃ vā vināśayet || 8 || śiro-'bhitāpe pittotthe śiro-dhūmāyanaṃ jvaraḥ | svedo 'kṣi-dahanaṃ mūrchā niśi śītaiś ca mārdavam || 9 || a-ruciḥ kapha-je mūrdhno guru-stimita-śīta-tā | sirā-niṣpanda-tālasyaṃ ruṅ mandāhny adhikā niśi || 10 || tandrā śūnākṣi-kūṭa-tvaṃ karṇa-kaṇḍūyanaṃ vamiḥ | raktāt pittādhika-rujaḥ sarvaiḥ syāt sarva-lakṣaṇaḥ || 11 || saṃkīrṇair bhojanair mūrdhni kledite rudhirāmiṣe | kopite saṃnipāte ca jāyante mūrdhni jantavaḥ || 12 || śirasas te pibanto 'sraṃ ghorāḥ kurvanti vedanāḥ | citta-vibhraṃśa-jananīr jvaraḥ kāso bala-kṣayaḥ || 13 || raukṣya-śopha-vyadha-ccheda-dāha-sphuraṇa-pūti-tāḥ | kapāle tālu-śirasoḥ kaṇḍūḥ śoṣaḥ pramīlakaḥ || 14 || 23.14av raukṣya-śophe vyadha-ccheda- 23.14bv -dāha-sphuṭana-pūti-tāḥ 23.14dv kaṇḍūḥ śophaḥ pramīlakaḥ 23.14dv kaṇḍūḥ śopho '-pramīlakaḥ tāmrāccha-siṅghāṇaka-tā karṇa-nādaś ca jantu-je | vātolbaṇāḥ śiraḥ-kampaṃ tat-saṃjñaṃ kurvate malāḥ || 15 || pitta-pradhānair vātādyaiḥ śaṅkhe śophaḥ sa-śoṇitaiḥ | tīvra-dāha-rujā-rāga-pralāpa-jvara-tṛḍ-bhramāḥ || 16 || tiktāsyaḥ pīta-vadanaḥ kṣipra-kārī sa śaṅkhakaḥ | tri-rātrāj jīvitaṃ hanti sidhyaty apy āśu sādhitaḥ || 17 || 23.17dv sidhyaty āśu su-sādhitaḥ pittānubaddhaḥ śaṅkhākṣi-bhrū-lalāṭeṣu mārutaḥ | rujaṃ sa-spandanāṃ kuryād anu-sūryodayodayām || 18 || 23.18av pittānubandhaḥ śaṅkhākṣi- ā-madhyāhnaṃ vivardhiṣṇuḥ kṣud-vataḥ sā viśeṣataḥ | a-vyavasthita-śītoṣṇa-sukhā śāmyaty ataḥ param || 19 || sūryāvartaḥ sa ity uktā daśa rogāḥ śiro-gatāḥ | śirasy eva ca vakṣyante kapāle vyādhayo nava || 20 || kapāle pavane duṣṭe garbha-sthasyāpi jāyate | sa-varṇo nī-rujaḥ śophas taṃ vidyād upa-śīrṣakam || 21 || yathā-doṣodayaṃ brūyāt piṭikārbuda-vidradhīn | kapāle kleda-bahulāḥ pittāsṛk-śleṣma-jantubhiḥ || 22 || kaṅgu-siddhārthaka-nibhāḥ piṭikāḥ syur arūṃṣikāḥ | kaṇḍū-keśa-cyuti-svāpa-raukṣya-kṛt sphuṭanaṃ tvacaḥ || 23 || 23.23dv -rūkṣa-kṛt sphuṭanaṃ tvacaḥ su-sūkṣmaṃ kapha-vātābhyāṃ vidyād dāruṇakaṃ tu tat | roma-kūpānugaṃ pittaṃ vātena saha mūrchitam || 24 || 23.24bv vidyād dāruṇakaṃ ca tat pracyāvayati romāṇi tataḥ śleṣmā sa-śoṇitaḥ | roma-kūpān ruṇaddhy asya tenānyeṣām a-saṃbhavaḥ || 25 || tad indra-luptaṃ rujyāṃ ca prāhuś cāceti cāpare | khalater api janmaivaṃ śātanaṃ tatra tu kramāt || 26 || 23.26av tad indra-luptaṃ tajjāṃ ca 23.26av tad indra-luptaṃ tajhjhāṃ ca 23.26av tad indra-luptaṃ tahnāś ca 23.26av tad indra-luptaṃ rūḍhyāṃ ca 23.26dv śatanaṃ tatra tu kramāt 23.26dv śadanaṃ tatra tu kramāt 23.26dv sadanaṃ tatra tu kramāt sā vātād agni-dagdhābhā pittāt svinna-sirāvṛtā | kaphād ghana-tvag varṇāṃś ca yathā-svaṃ nirdiśet tvaci || 27 || 23.27bv pittāt snigdha-sirāvṛtā 23.27bv pittāt snigdhā sirāvṛtā 23.27bv pittāt pīta-sirāvṛtā doṣaiḥ sarvākṛtiḥ sarvair a-sādhyā sā nakha-prabhā | dagdhāgnineva nī-romā sa-dāhā yā ca jāyate || 28 || 23.28dv sa-dāhoṣā ca jāyate śoka-śrama-krodha-kṛtaḥ śarīroṣmā śiro-gataḥ | keśān sa-doṣaḥ pacati palitaṃ saṃbhavaty ataḥ || 29 || tad vātāt sphuṭitaṃ śyāvaṃ kharaṃ rūkṣaṃ jala-prabham | pittāt sa-dāhaṃ pītābhaṃ kaphāt snigdhaṃ vivṛddhi-mat || 30 || sthūlaṃ su-śuklaṃ sarvais tu vidyād vyāmiśra-lakṣaṇam | śiro-rujodbhavaṃ cānyad vi-varṇaṃ sparśanā-saham || 31 || 23.31av sthūlaṃ sa-śuklaṃ sarvais tu a-sādhyā saṃnipātena khalatiḥ palitāni ca | śarīra-pariṇāmotthāny apekṣante rasāyanam || 32 || Uttarasthāna śiro-'bhitāpe 'nila-je vāta-vyādhi-vidhiṃ caret | ghṛtam akta-śirā rātrau pibed uṣṇa-payo-'nupaḥ || 1 || 24.1cv ghṛtam akta-śiro rātrau 24.1cv ghṛtābhyakta-śiro rātrau 24.1dv pibet sarpiḥ payo-'nupaḥ māṣān kulatthān mudgān vā tad-vat khāded ghṛtānvitān | tailaṃ tilānāṃ kalkaṃ vā kṣīreṇa saha pāyayet || 2 || piṇḍopanāha-svedāś ca māṃsa-dhānya-kṛtā hitāḥ | vāta-ghna-daśa-mūlādi-siddha-kṣīreṇa secanam || 3 || snigdhaṃ nasyaṃ tathā dhūmaḥ śiraḥ-śravaṇa-tarpaṇam | varaṇādau gaṇe kṣuṇṇe kṣīram ardhodakaṃ pacet || 4 || 24.4cv varuṇādau gaṇe kṣuṇṇe kṣīrāvaśiṣṭaṃ tac chītaṃ mathitvā sāram āharet | tato madhurakaiḥ siddhaṃ nasyaṃ tat pūjitaṃ haviḥ || 5 || varge 'tra pakvaṃ kṣīre ca peyaṃ sarpiḥ sa-śarkaram | kārpāsa-majjā tvaṅ mustā sumanaḥ-korakāṇi ca || 6 || 24.6av tasmin vipakvaṃ kṣīre ca 24.6cv kārpāsa-majjā tvaṅ mustaṃ 24.6dv sumanaḥ-kṣārakāṇi ca nasyam uṣṇāmbu-piṣṭāni sarva-mūrdha-rujāpaham | śarkarā-kuṅkuma-śṛtaṃ ghṛtaṃ pittāsṛg-anvaye || 7 || pralepaiḥ sa-ghṛtaiḥ kuṣṭha-kuṭilotpala-candanaiḥ | vātodreka-bhayād raktaṃ na cāsminn avasecayet || 8 || ity a-śāntau cale dāhaḥ kaphe ceṣṭo yathoditaḥ | ardhāvabhedake 'py eṣā tathā doṣānvayāt kriyā || 9 || 24.9bv kaphe coṣṇaṃ yathoditam 24.9dv yathā-doṣānvayā kriyā 24.9dv yathā-doṣānvaye kriyā śirīṣa-bījāpāmārga-mūlaṃ nasyaṃ viḍānvitam | sthirā-raso vā lepe tu prapunnāṭo 'mla-kalkitaḥ || 10 || 24.10cv sthirā-raso vā lepo 'tra sūryāvarte 'pi tasmiṃs tu sirayāpahared asṛk | śiro-'bhitāpe pittotthe snigdhasya vyadhayet sirām || 11 || 24.11av sūryāvarte tu tasmiṃs tu śītāḥ śiro-mukhālepa-seka-śodhana-vastayaḥ | jīvanīya-śṛte kṣīra-sarpiṣī pāna-nasyayoḥ || 12 || kartavyaṃ rakta-je 'py etat pratyākhyāya ca śaṅkhake | śleṣmābhitāpe jīrṇājya-snehitaiḥ kaṭukair vamet || 13 || sveda-pralepa-nasyādyā rūkṣa-tīkṣṇoṣṇa-bheṣajaiḥ | śasyante copavāso 'tra nicaye miśram ācaret || 14 || 24.14cv śasyate copavāso 'tra kṛmi-je śoṇitaṃ nasyaṃ tena mūrchanti jantavaḥ | mattāḥ śoṇita-gandhena niryānti ghrāṇa-vaktrayoḥ || 15 || 24.15dv niryānti ghrāṇa-vaktrataḥ su-tīkṣṇa-nasya-dhūmābhyāṃ kuryān nirharaṇaṃ tataḥ | viḍaṅga-svarjikā-dantī-hiṅgu-go-mūtra-sādhitam || 16 || kaṭu-nimbeṅgudī-pīlu-tailaṃ nasyaṃ pṛthak pṛthak | ajā-mūtra-drutaṃ nasyaṃ kṛmijit kṛmi-jit param || 17 || 24.17cv ajā-mūtra-drutaṃ nasye pūti-matsya-yutaiḥ kuryād dhūmaṃ nāvana-bheṣajaiḥ | kṛmibhiḥ pīta-rakta-tvād raktam atra na nirhared || 18 || pūti-matsyaḥ kṛmīn hatvā dur-gandha-tvāt tu vāta-je || 18.1+1ab || vātābhitāpa-vihitaḥ kampe dāhād vinā kramaḥ | nave janmottaraṃ jāte yojayed upa-śīrṣake || 19 || vāta-vyādhi-kriyāṃ pakve karma vidradhi-coditam | āma-pakve yathā-yogyaṃ vidradhi-piṭikārbude || 20 || arūṃṣikā jalaukobhir hṛtāsrā nimba-vāriṇā | siktā prabhūta-lavaṇair limped aśva-śakṛd-rasaiḥ || 21 || paṭola-nimba-pattrair vā sa-haridraiḥ su-kalkitaiḥ | go-mūtra-jīrṇa-piṇyāka-kṛkavāku-malair api || 22 || kapāla-bhṛṣṭaṃ kuṣṭhaṃ vā cūrṇitaṃ taila-saṃyutam | rūṃṣikālepanaṃ kaṇḍū-kleda-dāhārti-nāśanam || 23 || mālatī-citrakāśvaghna-naktamāla-prasādhitam | cācārūṃṣikayos tailam abhyaṅgaḥ kṣura-ghṛṣṭayoḥ || 24 || 24.24dv abhyaṅge kṣura-ghṛṣṭayoḥ 24.24dv abhyaṅgaḥ kṣura-mṛṣṭayoḥ a-śāntau śirasaḥ śuddhyai yateta vamanādibhiḥ | vidhyet sirāṃ dāruṇake lālāṭyāṃ śīlayen mṛjām || 25 || nāvanaṃ mūrdha-vastiṃ ca lepayec ca sa-mākṣikaiḥ | priyāla-bīja-madhuka-kuṣṭha-māṣaiḥ sa-sarṣapaiḥ || 26 || 24.26av nāvanaṃ mūrdhni vastiṃ ca lākṣā-śamyāka-pattraiḍagaja-dhātrī-phalais tathā | koradūṣa-tṛṇa-kṣāra-vāri-prakṣālanaṃ hitam || 27 || 24.27dv -vāri prakṣālane hitam indra-lupte yathāsannaṃ sirāṃ viddhvā pralepayet | pracchāya gāḍhaṃ kāsīsa-manohvā-tutthakoṣaṇaiḥ || 28 || 24.28bv sirāṃ viddhvā pralepanam vanyāmaratarubhyāṃ vā guñjā-mūla-phalais tathā | tathā lāṅgalikā-mūlaiḥ karavīra-rasena vā || 29 || 24.29av kuṭannaṭa-marubhyāṃ vā 24.29av dhānyāmaratarubhyāṃ vā sa-kṣaudra-kṣudra-vārtāka-sva-rasena rasena vā | dhattūrakasya pattrāṇāṃ bhallātaka-rasena vā || 30 || 24.30av sa-kṣaudra-kṣudra-bṛhatī- 24.30dv bhallātaka-phalena vā atha-vā mākṣika-havis-tila-puṣpa-trikaṇṭakaiḥ | tailāktā hasti-dantasya maṣī cācauṣadhaṃ param || 31 || 24.31dv maṣī vāpy auṣadhaṃ param 24.31dv maṣī vā cauṣadhaṃ param śukla-romodgame tad-van maṣī meṣa-viṣāṇa-jā | varjayed vāriṇā sekaṃ yāvad roma-samudbhavaḥ || 32 || 24.32dv yāvad roma-samudgamaḥ 24.32dv yāvad roma-punar-bhavaḥ khalatau palite valyāṃ harid-romni ca śodhitam | nasya-vaktra-śiro-'bhyaṅga-pradehaiḥ samupācaret || 33 || siddhaṃ tailaṃ bṛhaty-ādyair jīvanīyaiś ca nāvanam | māsaṃ vā nimba-jaṃ tailaṃ kṣīra-bhuṅ nāvayed yatiḥ || 34 || nīlī-śirīṣa-koraṇṭa-bhṛṅga-sva-rasa-bhāvitam | śelv-akṣa-tila-rāmāṇāṃ bījaṃ kākāṇḍakī-samam || 35 || piṣṭvāja-payasā lohāl liptād arkāṃśu-tāpitāt | tailaṃ srutaṃ kṣīra-bhujo nāvanāt palitānta-kṛt || 36 || 24.36av piṣṭvāja-payasā loha- 24.36bv -liptād arkāṃśu-tāpitāt kṣīrāt sāhacarād bhṛṅgarajasaḥ saurasād rasāt | prasthais tailasya kuḍavaḥ siddho yaṣṭī-palānvitaḥ || 37 || 24.37av kṣīrāt sahacarād bhṛṅgaṃ 24.37av kṣīrāt sāhacarād bhṛṅga- 24.37bv ṃrājataḥ saurasād rasāt 24.37bv -rasataḥ saurasād rasāt nasyaṃ śailāsane bhāṇḍe śṛṅge meṣasya vā sthitaḥ | kṣīreṇa ślakṣṇa-piṣṭau vā dugdhikā-karavīrakau || 38 || 24.38av nasyaṃ śilā-maye bhāṇḍe 24.38av nasyaṃ śailodbhave bhāṇḍe utpāṭya palitaṃ deyāv āśaye palitāpahau | kṣīraṃ priyālaṃ yaṣṭy-āhvaṃ jīvanīyo gaṇas tilāḥ || 39 || kṛṣṇāḥ pralepo vaktrasya harid-roma-valī-hitaḥ | tilāḥ sāmalakāḥ padma-kiñjalko madhukaṃ madhu || 40 || 24.40bv hari-lopa-valī-hitaḥ bṛṃhayed rañjayec caitat keśān mūrdha-pralepanāt | māṃsī kuṣṭhaṃ tilāḥ kṛṣṇāḥ śārivā nīlam utpalam || 41 || 24.41av bṛṃhayec ca rajec caitat 24.41bv keśān mūrdhnaḥ pralepanāt kṣaudraṃ ca kṣīra-piṣṭāni keśa-saṃvardhanam param | ayo-rajo bhṛṅgarajas tri-phalā kṛṣṇa-mṛttikā || 42 || sthitam ikṣu-rase māsaṃ sa-mūlaṃ palitaṃ rajet | māṣa-kodrava-dhānyāmlair yavāgūṃs tri-dinoṣitā || 43 || 24.43cv yava-kodrava-dhānyāmlair loha-śuklotkaṭā piṣṭā balākām api rañjayet | prapauṇḍarīka-madhuka-pippalī-candanotpalaiḥ || 44 || 24.44av loha-kuṣṭhotkaṭā piṣṭā 24.44av loha-śuktotkaṭā piṣṭā 24.44av lohe śuktotkaṭā piṣṭā 24.44av lauhe śuklotkaṭā piṣṭā bhṛṅgarajas-tri-phalotpala-sāri-loha-purīṣa-samanvita-kāri | tailam idaṃ paca dāruṇa-hāri luñcita-keśa-ghana-sthira-kāri || 44.1+1 || 24.44.1+1bv -loha-purīṣa-samanvita-dhāri siddhaṃ dhātrī-rase tailaṃ nasyenābhyañjanena ca | sarvān mūrdha-gadān hanti palitāni ca śīlitam || 45 || madhūka-yaṣṭī-kṛmijid-viśva-bhṛṅgaiḥ śṛtaṃ haviḥ | ṣaḍ-bindu-dānāt tan nasyaṃ sarva-mūrdha-gadāpaham || 45+1 || 24.45+1cv ṣaḍ-bindu-nāma tan nasyaṃ 24.45+1cv ṣaḍ-bindu-nāmnā tan nasyaṃ varī-jīvanti-niryāsa-payobhir yamakaṃ pacet | jīvanīyaiś ca tan nasyaṃ sarva-jatrūrdhva-roga-jit || 46 || 24.46av varī-jīvanti-niryāsaiḥ 24.46bv -payobhir yad ghṛtaṃ pacet 24.46bv sa-payobhir ghṛtaṃ pacet mayūraṃ pakṣa-pittāntra-pāda-viṭ-tuṇḍa-varjitam | daśa-mūla-balā-rāsnā-madhukais tri-palair yutam || 47 || 24.47bv -śakṛt-pāt-tuṇḍa-varjitam 24.47dv -madhukais tri-palaiḥ saham jale paktvā ghṛta-prasthaṃ tasmin kṣīra-samaṃ pacet | kalkitair madhura-dravyaiḥ sarva-jatrūrdhva-roga-jit || 48 || tad abhyāsī-kṛtaṃ pāna-vasty-abhyañjana-nāvanaiḥ | etenaiva kaṣāyeṇa ghṛta-prasthaṃ vipācayet || 49 || catur-guṇena payasā kalkair ebhiś ca kārṣikaiḥ | jīvantī-tri-phalā-medā-mṛdvīkarddhi-parūṣakaiḥ || 50 || samaṅgā-cavikā-bhārgī-kāśmarī-karkaṭāhvayaiḥ | ātmaguptā-mahāmedā-tāla-kharjūra-mastakaiḥ || 51 || 24.51dv -tāla-kharjūra-mustakaiḥ mṛṇāla-bisa-kharjūra-yaṣṭīmadhuka-jīvakaiḥ | śatāvarī-vidārīkṣu-bṛhatī-śārivā-yugaiḥ || 52 || 24.52dv -bṛhatī-śrāvaṇī-yugaiḥ mūrvā-śvadaṃṣṭrarṣabhaka-śṛṅgāṭaka-kaserukaiḥ | rāsnā-sthirā-tāmalakī-sūkṣmailā-śaṭhi-pauṣkaraiḥ || 53 || 24.53av dūrvā-śvadaṃṣṭraṣabhaka- punarnavā-tavakṣīrī-kākolī-dhanvayāsakaiḥ | madhūkākṣoṭa-vātāma-muñjātābhiṣukair api || 54 || 24.54cv madhukākṣoṭa-vātāma- mahā-māyūram ity etan māyūrād adhikaṃ guṇaiḥ | dhātv-indriya-svara-bhraṃśa-śvāsa-kāsārditāpaham || 55 || yony-asṛk-śukra-doṣeṣu śastaṃ vandhyā-suta-pradam | ākhubhiḥ kukkuṭair haṃsaiḥ śaśaiś ceti prakalpayet || 56 || 24.56cv ākhubhiḥ karkaṭair haṃsaiḥ jatrūrdhva-jānāṃ vyādhīnām eka-triṃśac-chata-dvayam | paras-param a-saṃkīrṇaṃ vistareṇa prakāśitam || 57 || 24.57bv eka-triṃśaṃ śata-dvayam ūrdhva-mūlam adhaḥ-śākham ṛṣayaḥ puruṣaṃ viduḥ | mūla-prahāriṇas tasmād rogāñ chīghra-taraṃ jayet || 58 || sarvendriyāṇi yenāsmin prāṇā yena ca saṃśritāḥ | tena tasyottamāṅgasya rakṣāyām ādṛto bhavet || 59 || nīlotpalaṃ sotpala-kuṣṭha-yuktaṃ sa-pippalīkaṃ madhukaṃ śatāhvam | sa-śṛṅgaveraṃ śirasaḥ pralepaḥ sadyaḥ śiro-roga-vināśanāya || 59+1 || Uttarasthāna vraṇo dvi-dhā nijāgantu-duṣṭa-śuddha-vibhedataḥ | nijo doṣaiḥ śarīrotthair āgantur bāhya-hetu-jaḥ || 1 || 25.1dv āgantur bāhya-hetubhiḥ doṣair adhiṣṭhito duṣṭaḥ śuddhas tair an-adhiṣṭhitaḥ | saṃvṛta-tvaṃ vivṛta-tā kāṭhinyaṃ mṛdu-tāti vā || 2 || 25.2dv kāṭhinyaṃ mṛdu-tāpi vā 25.2dv kāṭhinyaṃ mṛdu-tāpi ca aty-utsannāvasanna-tvam aty-auṣṇyam ati-śīta-tā | rakta-tvaṃ pāṇḍu-tā kārṣṇyaṃ pūti-pūya-parisrutiḥ || 3 || pūti-māṃsa-sirā-snāyu-cchanna-totsaṅgi-tāti-ruk | saṃrambha-dāha-śvayathu-kaṇḍv-ādibhir upadrutaḥ || 4 || dīrgha-kālānubandhaś ca vidyād duṣṭa-vraṇākṛtim | sa pañca-daśa-dhā doṣaiḥ sa-raktais tatra mārutāt || 5 || 25.5cv sa pañca-dhā pṛthag doṣaiḥ śyāvaḥ kṛṣṇo 'ruṇo bhasma-kapotāsthi-nibho 'pi vā | mastu-māṃsa-pulākāmbu-tulya-tanv-alpa-saṃsrutiḥ || 6 || 25.6bv -kapotāsthi-nibho 'tha-vā nir-māṃsas toda-bhedāḍhyo rūkṣaś caṭacaṭāyate | pittena kṣipra-jaḥ pīto nīlaḥ kapila-piṅgalaḥ || 7 || 25.7cv pittād vahni-prabhaḥ pīto mūtra-kiṃśuka-bhasmāmbu-tailābhoṣṇa-bahu-srutiḥ | kṣārokṣita-kṣata-sama-vyatho rāgoṣma-pāka-vān || 8 || kaphena pāṇḍuḥ kaṇḍū-mān bahu-śveta-ghana-srutiḥ | sthūlauṣṭhaḥ kaṭhinaḥ snāyu-sirā-jāla-tato 'lpa-ruk || 9 || pravāla-rakto raktena sa-raktaṃ pūyam udgiret | vāji-sthāna-samo gandhe yukto liṅgaiś ca paittikaiḥ || 10 || 25.10bv sa-raktaṃ pūyam īrayet 25.10cv vāji-sthāna-samo gandhair 25.10cv vāji-sthāna-samo gandho dvābhyāṃ tribhiś ca sarvaiś ca vidyāl lakṣaṇa-saṃkarāt | jihvā-prabho mṛduḥ ślakṣṇaḥ śyāvauṣṭha-piṭikaḥ samaḥ || 11 || 25.11dv śyāvauṣṭho '-piṭikaḥ samaḥ kiñ-cid-unnata-madhyo vā vraṇaḥ śuddho 'n-upadravaḥ | tvag-āmiṣa-sirā-snāyu-saṃdhy-asthīni vraṇāśayāḥ || 12 || koṣṭho marma ca tāny aṣṭau duḥ-sādhyāny uttarottaram | su-sādhyaḥ sat-tva-māṃsāgni-vayo-bala-vati vraṇaḥ || 13 || 25.13dv -vayo-bala-vatāṃ vraṇaḥ vṛtto dīrghas tri-puṭakaś catur-aśrākṛtiś ca yaḥ | tathā sphik-pāyu-meḍhrauṣṭha-pṛṣṭhāntar-vaktra-gaṇḍa-gaḥ || 14 || 25.14dv -pṛṣṭhāntar-vaktra-gaṇḍa-jaḥ 25.14dv -pṛṣṭhāntar-vaktra-gaṇḍayoḥ kṛcchra-sādhyo 'kṣi-daśana-nāsikāpāṅga-nābhiṣu | sevanī-jaṭhara-śrotra-pārśva-kakṣā-staneṣu ca || 15 || phena-pūyānila-vahaḥ śalya-vān ūrdhva-nirvamī | bhagandaro 'ntar-vadanas tathā kaṭy-asthi-saṃśritaḥ || 16 || kuṣṭhināṃ viṣa-juṣṭānāṃ śoṣiṇāṃ madhu-mehināṃ | vraṇāḥ kṛcchreṇa sidhyanti yeṣāṃ ca syur vraṇe vraṇāḥ || 17 || 25.17dv yeṣāṃ cāpi vraṇe vraṇāḥ naiva sidhyanti vīsarpa-jvarātīsāra-kāsinām | pipāsūnām a-nidrāṇāṃ śvāsinām a-vipākinām || 18 || 25.18cv pipāsūnāṃ sa-nidrāṇāṃ bhinne śiraḥ-kapāle vā mastuluṅgasya darśane | snāyu-kledāt sirā-chedād gāmbhīryāt kṛmi-bhakṣaṇāt || 19 || asthi-bhedāt sa-śalya-tvāt sa-viṣa-tvād a-tarkitāt | mithyā-bandhād ati-snehād raukṣyād romādi-ghaṭṭanāt || 20 || kṣobhād a-śuddha-koṣṭha-tvāt sauhityād ati-karśanāt | madya-pānād divā-svapnād vyavāyād rātri-jāgarāt || 21 || 25.21cv madya-pānād divā-svāpād vraṇo mithyopacārāc ca naiva sādhyo 'pi sidhyati | kapota-varṇa-pratimā yasyāntaḥ kleda-varjitāḥ || 22 || 25.22bv naiva sādhyo 'pi rohati sthirāś cipiṭikā-vanto rohatīti tam ādiśet | athātra śophāvasthāyāṃ yathāsannaṃ viśodhanam || 23 || 25.23av sthirāś ca piṭikā-vanto yojyaṃ śopho hi śuddhānāṃ vraṇaś cāśu praśāmyati | kuryāc chītopacāraṃ ca śophāvasthasya saṃtatam || 24 || 25.24cv kuryāc chītopacāraṃ tu doṣāgnir agni-vat tena prayāti sahasā śamam | śophe vraṇe ca kaṭhine vi-varṇe vedanānvite || 25 || viṣa-yukte viśeṣeṇa jala-jādyair hared asṛk | duṣṭāsre 'pagate sadyaḥ śopha-rāga-rujāṃ śamaḥ || 26 || 25.26bv jalaukādyair hared asṛk hṛte hṛte ca rudhire su-śītaiḥ sparśa-vīryayoḥ | su-ślakṣṇais tad-ahaḥ-piṣṭaiḥ kṣīrekṣu-sva-rasa-dravaiḥ || 27 || 25.27dv kṣīrekṣu-sva-rasa-drutaiḥ śata-dhauta-ghṛtopetair muhur anyair a-śoṣibhiḥ | pratilomaṃ hito lepaḥ sekābhyaṅgāś ca tat-kṛtāḥ || 28 || nyagrodhodumbarāśvattha-plakṣa-vetasa-valkalaiḥ | pradeho bhūri-sarpirbhiḥ śopha-nirvāpaṇaḥ param || 29 || 25.29cv pradeho bhūri-sarpiś ca vātolbaṇānāṃ stabdhānāṃ kaṭhinānāṃ mahā-rujām | srutāsṛjāṃ ca śophānāṃ vraṇānām api cedṛśām || 30 || ānūpa-vesavārādyaiḥ svedaḥ somās tilāḥ punaḥ | bhṛṣṭā nirvāpitāḥ kṣīre tat-piṣṭā dāha-rug-harāḥ || 31 || sthirān manda-rujaḥ śophān snehair vāta-kaphāpahaiḥ | abhyajya svedayitvā ca veṇu-nāḍyā śanaiḥ śanaiḥ || 32 || vimlāpanārthaṃ mṛdnīyāt talenāṅguṣṭhakena vā | yava-godhūma-mudgaiś ca siddha-piṣṭaiḥ pralepayet || 33 || 25.33dv siddhaiḥ piṣṭaiḥ pralepayet 25.33dv siddhaṃ piṣṭaṃ pralepayet 25.33dv dugdha-piṣṭaiḥ pralepayet vilīyate sa cen naivaṃ tatas tam upanāhayet | a-vidagdhas tathā śāntiṃ vidagdhaḥ pākam aśnute || 34 || sa-kola-tila-vallomā dadhy-amlā saktu-piṇḍikā | sa-kiṇva-kuṣṭha-lavaṇā koṣṇā śastopanāhane || 35 || 25.35av sa-kola-tila-vallūra- 25.35bv -dadhy-amlā saktu-piṇḍikā su-pakve piṇḍite śophe pīḍanair upapīḍite | dāraṇaṃ dāraṇārhasya su-kumārasya ceṣyate || 36 || guggulv-atasi-go-danta-svarṇakṣīrī-kapota-viṭ | kṣārauṣadhāni kṣārāś ca pakva-śopha-vidāraṇam || 37 || 25.37cv kṣārauṣadhāni kṣāraś ca pūya-garbhān aṇu-dvārān sotsaṅgān marma-gān api | niḥ-snehaiḥ pīḍana-dravyaiḥ samantāt pratipīḍayet || 38 || śuṣyantaṃ samupekṣeta pralepaṃ pīḍanaṃ prati | na mukhe cainam ālimpet tathā doṣaḥ prasicyate || 39 || kalāya-yava-godhūma-māṣa-mudga-hareṇavaḥ | dravyāṇāṃ picchilānāṃ ca tvaṅ-mūlāni prapīḍanam || 40 || 25.40cv dravyāṇāṃ picchilānāṃ tu 25.40cv dravyāṇāṃ picchilānāṃ vā saptasu kṣālanādyeṣu surasāragvadhādikau | bhṛśaṃ duṣṭe vraṇe yojyau meha-kuṣṭha-vraṇeṣu ca || 41 || atha-vā kṣālanaṃ kvāthaḥ paṭolī-nimba-pattra-jaḥ | a-viśuddhe viśuddhe tu nyagrodhādi-tvag-udbhavaḥ || 42 || 25.42av atha-vā kṣālane kvāthaḥ paṭolī-tila-yaṣṭy-āhva-trivṛd-dantī-niśā-dvayam | nimba-pattrāṇi cālepaḥ sa-paṭur vraṇa-śodhanaḥ || 43 || 25.43dv sa-paṭur vraṇa-śodhanam vraṇān viśodhayed vartyā sūkṣmāsyān saṃdhi-marma-gān | kṛtayā trivṛtā-dantī-lāṅgalī-madhu-saindhavaiḥ || 44 || vātābhibhūtān sāsrāvān dhūpayed ugra-vedanān | yavājya-bhūrja-madana-śrīveṣṭaka-surāhvayaiḥ || 45 || nirvāpayed bhṛśaṃ śītaiḥ pitta-rakta-viṣolbaṇān | śuṣkālpa-māṃse gambhīre vraṇa utsādanaṃ hitam || 46 || nyagrodha-padmakādibhyām aśvagandhā-balā-tilaiḥ | adyān māṃsāda-māṃsāni vidhinopahitāni ca || 47 || 25.47dv vihitopahitāni ca 25.47dv vidhānopahitāni ca māṃsaṃ māṃsāda-māṃsena vardhate śuddha-cetasaḥ | utsanna-mṛdu-māṃsānāṃ vraṇānām avasādanam || 48 || 25.48bv vardhate śuddha-tejasaḥ jātī-mukula-kāsīsa-manohvāla-purāgnikaiḥ | utsanna-māṃsān kaṭhinān kaṇḍū-yuktāṃś cirotthitān || 49 || vraṇān su-duḥkha-śodhyāṃś ca śodhayet kṣāra-karmaṇā | sravanto 'śmarī-jā mūtraṃ ye cānye rakta-vāhinaḥ || 50 || 25.50av vraṇān su-duḥkha-sādhyāṃś ca 25.50bv yojayet kṣāra-karmaṇā 25.50dv ye cānye kṣata-vāhinaḥ chinnāś ca saṃdhayo yeṣāṃ yathoktair ye ca śodhanaiḥ | śodhyamānā na śudhyanti śodhyāḥ syus te 'gni-karmaṇā || 51 || 25.51bv yathoktair ye ca sādhanaiḥ 25.51cv sādhyamānā na sidhyanti 25.51dv sādhyāḥ syus te 'gni-karmaṇā 25.51dv sādhyās te cāgni-karmaṇā śuddhānāṃ ropaṇaṃ yojyam utsādāya yad īritam | aśvagandhā ruhā lodhraṃ kaṭphalaṃ madhuyaṣṭikā || 52 || 25.52av śuddhānāṃ ropaṇe yojyam samaṅgā dhātakī-puṣpaṃ paramaṃ vraṇa-ropaṇam | apeta-pūti-māṃsānāṃ māṃsa-sthānām a-rohatām || 53 || kalkaṃ saṃrohaṇaṃ kuryāt tilānāṃ madhukānvitam | snigdhoṣṇa-tikta-madhura-kaṣāya-tvaiḥ sa sarva-jit || 54 || 25.54av kalkaṃ saṃrohaṇe kuryāt 25.54av kalkaḥ saṃrohaṇaṃ kuryāt 25.54bv tilānāṃ madhukānvitaḥ 25.54dv -kaṣāyair eṣa sarva-jit sa kṣaudra-nimba-pattrābhyāṃ yuktaḥ saṃśodhanaṃ param | pūrvābhyāṃ sarpiṣā cāsau yuktaḥ syād āśu ropaṇaḥ || 55 || 25.55bv yuktaḥ saṃśodhanaḥ param 25.55dv yuktaḥ syād api ropaṇaḥ tila-vad yava-kalkaṃ tu ke-cid icchanti tad-vidaḥ | sāsra-pitta-viṣāgantu-gambhīrān soṣmaṇo vraṇān || 56 || kṣīra-ropaṇa-bhaiṣajya-śṛtenājyena ropayet | ropaṇauṣadha-siddhena tailena kapha-vāta-jān || 57 || kācchī-lodhrābhayā-sarja-sindūrāñjana-tutthakam | cūrṇitaṃ taila-madanair yuktaṃ ropaṇam uttamam || 58 || 25.58av kākṣī-lodhrābhayā-sarja- 25.58av kāṅkṣī-lodhrābhayā-sarja- samānāṃ sthira-māṃsānāṃ tvak-sthānāṃ cūrṇa iṣyate | kakubhodumbarāśvattha-jambū-kaṭphala-lodhra-jaiḥ || 59 || 25.59bv tvak-sthānāṃ cūrṇam iṣyate tvak-cūrṇaiś cūrṇitā vraṇāḥ tvak-cūrṇaiś cūrṇitā vraṇāḥ | lākṣā-manohvā-mañjiṣṭhā-haritāla-niśā-dvayaiḥ || 60 || 25.60av tvacam āśu nigṛhṇāti 25.60bv tvak-cūrṇaiś cūrṇito vraṇaḥ pralepaḥ sa-ghṛta-kṣaudras tvag-viśuddhi-karaḥ param | kālīyaka-latāmrāsthi-hema-kālā-rasottamaiḥ || 61 || 25.61av pralepaḥ sa-ghṛta-kṣaudrais lepaḥ sa-go-maya-rasaḥ sa-varṇa-karaṇaḥ param | dagdho vāraṇa-danto 'ntar-dhūmaṃ tailaṃ rasāñjanam || 62 || 25.62bv sa-varṇa-karaṇo bhavet 25.62dv -dhūmas tailaṃ rasāñjanam roma-saṃjanano lepas tad-vat taila-pariplutā | catuṣ-pān-nakha-romāsthi-tvak-śṛṅga-khura-jā maṣī || 63 || vraṇinaḥ śastra-karmoktaṃ pathyā-pathyānnam ādiśet | dve pañca-mūle vargaś ca vāta-ghno vātike hitaḥ || 64 || 25.64av vraṇināṃ śastra-karmoktaṃ 25.64bv yat pathyā-pathyam ādiśet nyagrodha-padmakādyau tu tad-vat pitta-pradūṣite | āragvadhādiḥ śleṣma-ghnaḥ kaphe miśrās tu miśra-je || 65 || 25.65dv kaphe miśras tu miśra-je 25.65dv kaphe miśrās tu miśrake ebhiḥ prakṣālanaṃ lepo ghṛtaṃ tailaṃ rasa-kriyā | cūrṇo vartiś ca saṃyojya vraṇe sapta yathā-yatham || 66 || 25.66av ebhiḥ prakṣālanālepa- 25.66bv -ghṛta-taila-rasa-kriyāḥ jātī-nimba-paṭola-pattra-kaṭukā-dārvī-niśā-śārivā- || 67a || -mañjiṣṭhābhaya-siktha-tuttha-madhukair naktāhva-bījānvitaiḥ || 67b || 25.67bv -mañjiṣṭhābhaya-siktha-tuttha-madhukair naktāhva-bījais tathā sarpiḥ sādhyam anena sūkṣma-vadanā marmāśritāḥ kledino || 67c || 25.67cv sarpiḥ sādhyam anena sūkṣma-vadanā marmāśritāḥ srāviṇo 25.67cv sarpiḥ siddham anena sūkṣma-vadanā marmāśritāḥ kledino gambhīrāḥ sa-rujo vraṇāḥ sa-gatayaḥ śudhyanti rohanti ca || 67d || 25.67dv gambhīrāḥ sa-rujo vraṇāḥ sa-gatikāḥ śudhyanti rohanti ca sādhitaṃ sva-rase tailaṃ kākamācyāś catur-guṇe | gati-bhājām api hitaṃ vraṇānāṃ ropaṇaṃ param || 67+1 || 25.67+1cv gati-bhājām api varaṃ Uttarasthāna sadyo-vraṇā ye sahasā saṃbhavanty abhighātataḥ | an-antair api tair aṅgam ucyate juṣṭam aṣṭa-dhā || 1 || ghṛṣṭāvakṛtta-vicchinna-pravilambita-pātitam | viddhaṃ bhinnaṃ vidalitaṃ tatra ghṛṣṭaṃ lasīkayā || 2 || 26.2bv -pravilambi-nipātitam rakta-leśena vā yuktaṃ sa-ploṣaṃ chedanāt sravet | avagāḍhaṃ tataḥ kṛttaṃ vicchinnaṃ syāt tato 'pi ca || 3 || pravilambi sa-śeṣe 'sthni patitaṃ pātitaṃ tanoḥ | sūkṣmāsya-śalya-viddhaṃ tu viddhaṃ koṣṭha-vivarjitam || 4 || 26.4av pravilambi sa-śeṣāsthi bhinnam anyad vidalitaṃ majja-rakta-pariplutam | prahāra-pīḍanotpeṣāt sahāsthnā pṛthu-tāṃ gatam || 5 || 26.5cv prahāra-pīḍanotpātaiḥ 26.5cv prahāra-pīḍanāt teṣāṃ sadyaḥ sadyo-vraṇaṃ siñced atha yaṣṭy-āhva-sarpiṣā | tīvra-vyathaṃ kavoṣṇena balā-tailena vā punaḥ || 6 || kṣatoṣmaṇo nigrahārthaṃ tat-kālaṃ visṛtasya ca | kaṣāya-śīta-madhura-snigdhā lepādayo hitāḥ || 7 || sadyo-vraṇeṣv āyateṣu saṃdhānārthaṃ viśeṣataḥ | madhu-sarpiś ca yuñjīta pitta-ghnīś ca himāḥ kriyāḥ || 8 || 26.8cv madhu-sarpiḥ prayuñjīta sa-saṃrambheṣu kartavyam ūrdhvaṃ cādhaś ca śodhanam | upavāso hitaṃ bhuktaṃ pratataṃ rakta-mokṣaṇam || 9 || 26.9cv upavāso hitas tatra ghṛṣṭe vidalite caiṣa su-tarām iṣyate vidhiḥ | tayor hy alpaṃ sravaty asraṃ pākas tenāśu jāyate || 10 || aty-artham asraṃ sravati prāya-śo 'nya-tra vikṣate | tato rakta-kṣayād vāyau kupite 'ti-rujā-kare || 11 || 26.11av aty-artham asraṃ vamati 26.11bv prāya-śo 'nya-tra ca kṣate sneha-pāna-parīṣeka-sveda-lepopanāhanam | sneha-vastiṃ ca kurvīta vāta-ghnauṣadha-sādhitam || 12 || 26.12dv snehair vastiṃ ca kurvīta 26.12dv vāta-ghnauṣadha-sādhitaiḥ iti sāptāhikaḥ proktaḥ sadyo-vraṇa-hito vidhiḥ | saptāhād gata-vege tu pūrvoktaṃ vidhim ācaret || 13 || 26.13av iti saptāhikaḥ proktaḥ prāyaḥ sāmānya-karmedaṃ vakṣyate tu pṛthak pṛthak | ghṛṣṭe rujaṃ nigṛhyāśu vraṇe cūrṇāni yojayet || 14 || kalkādīny avakṛtte tu vicchinna-pravilambinoḥ | sīvanaṃ vidhinoktena bandhanaṃ cānu pīḍanam || 15 || 26.15dv bandhanaṃ cāśu pīḍanam a-sādhyaṃ sphuṭitaṃ netram a-dīrṇaṃ lambate tu yat | saṃniveśya yathā-sthānam a-vyāviddha-siraṃ bhiṣak || 16 || 26.16bv udīrṇaṃ lambate tu yat 26.16cv saṃniveśya yathā-sthānaṃ 26.16dv sūcyā vidhyet sirāṃ bhiṣak pīḍayet pāṇinā padma-palāśāntaritena tat | tato 'sya secane nasye tarpaṇe ca hitaṃ haviḥ || 17 || 26.17dv tarpaṇe kathitaṃ haviḥ vipakvam ājaṃ yaṣṭy-āhva-jīvakarṣabhakotpalaiḥ | sa-payaskaiḥ paraṃ tad dhi sarva-netrābhighāta-jit || 18 || gala-pīḍāvasanne 'kṣṇi vamanotkāsana-kṣavāḥ | prāṇāyāmo 'tha-vā kāryaḥ kriyā ca kṣata-netra-vat || 19 || 26.19av gala-pīḍo 'vasanne 'kṣṇi 26.19bv vamanotkleśana-kṣavāḥ karṇe sthānāc cyute syūte śrotas tailena pūrayet | kṛkāṭikāyāṃ chinnāyāṃ nirgacchaty api mārute || 20 || 26.20av karṇe sthāna-cyute syūte 26.20bv srotas tailena pūrayet samaṃ niveśya badhnīyāt syūtvā śīghraṃ nir-antaram | ājena sarpiṣā cātra pariṣekaḥ praśasyate || 21 || 26.21av samāṃ niveśya badhnīyāt 26.21cv ājena sarpiṣā tatra uttāno 'nnāni bhuñjīta śayīta ca su-yantritaḥ | ghātaṃ śākhāsu tiryak-sthaṃ gātre samyaṅ-niveśite || 22 || syūtvā vellita-bandhena badhnīyād ghana-vāsasā | carmaṇā goṣ-phaṇā-bandhaḥ kāryaś cā-saṃgate vraṇe || 23 || 26.23dv kāryaś cāṃsa-gate vraṇe 26.23dv kāryaś cāṃśa-gate vraṇe pādau vilambi-muṣkasya prokṣya netre ca vāriṇā | praveśya vṛṣaṇau sīvyet sevanyā tunna-saṃjñayā || 24 || 26.24dv sevanyā picu-yuktayā 26.24dv sīvanyā picu-yuktayā kāryaś ca goṣ-phaṇā-bandhaḥ kaṭyām āveśya paṭṭakam | sneha-sekaṃ na kurvīta tatra klidyati hi vraṇaḥ || 25 || 26.25dv tatra klidyanti hi vraṇāḥ 26.25dv tena klidyanti hi vraṇāḥ kālānusāry-agurv-elā-jātī-candana-parpaṭaiḥ | śilā-dārvy-amṛtā-tutthaiḥ siddhaṃ tailaṃ ca ropaṇam || 26 || 26.26bv -jātī-candana-padmakaiḥ chinnāṃ niḥśeṣataḥ śākhāṃ dagdhvā tailena yuktitaḥ | badhnīyāt kośa-bandhena tato vraṇa-vad ācaret || 27 || 26.27bv dagdhvā tailena yuktibhiḥ kāryā śalyāhṛte viddhe bhaṅgād vidalite kriyā | śiraso 'pahṛte śalye vāla-vartiṃ praveśayet || 28 || mastuluṅga-sruteḥ kruddho hanyād enaṃ calo 'nya-thā | vraṇe rohati caikaikaṃ śanair apanayet kacam || 29 || 26.29av mastuluṅga-srute kruddho mastuluṅga-srutau khāden mastiṣkān anya-jīva-jān | śalye hṛte 'ṅgād anyasmāt sneha-vartiṃ nidhāpayet || 30 || dūrāvagāḍhāḥ sūkṣmāsyā ye vraṇāḥ sruta-śoṇitāḥ | secayec cakra-tailena sūkṣma-netrārpitena tān || 31 || bhinne koṣṭhe 'sṛjā pūrṇe mūrchā-hṛt-pārśva-vedanāḥ | jvaro dāhas tṛḍ ādhmānaṃ bhaktasyān-abhinandanam || 32 || saṅgo viṇ-mūtra-marutāṃ śvāsaḥ svedo 'kṣi-rakta-tā | loha-gandhi-tvam āsyasya syād gātre ca vi-gandha-tā || 33 || āmāśaya-sthe rudhire rudhiraṃ chardayaty api | ādhmānenāti-mātreṇa śūlena ca viśasyate || 34 || 26.34dv śūlena ca vinaśyati 26.34dv śūlena ca viśiṣyate pakvāśaya-sthe rudhire sa-śūlaṃ gauravaṃ bhavet | nābher adhas-tāc chīta-tvaṃ khebhyo raktasya cāgamaḥ || 35 || a-bhinno 'py āśayaḥ sūkṣmaiḥ srotobhir abhipūryate | asṛjā syandamānena pārśve mūtreṇa vasti-vat || 36 || tatrāntar-lohitaṃ śīta-pādocchvāsa-karānanam | raktākṣaṃ pāṇdu-vadanam ānaddhaṃ ca vivarjayet || 37 || āmāśaya-sthe vamanaṃ hitaṃ pakvāśayāśrite | virecanaṃ nirūhaṃ ca niḥ-snehoṣṇair viśodhanaiḥ || 38 || 26.38bv hitaṃ pakvāśayāśraye 26.38bv hitaṃ pakvāśaya-sthite 26.38dv niḥ-snehoṣṇair viśodhanam yava-kola-kulatthānāṃ rasaiḥ sneha-vivarjitaiḥ | bhuñjītānnaṃ yavāgūṃ vā pibet saindhava-saṃyutām || 39 || 26.39dv pibet saindhava-saṃyutam ati-niḥsruta-raktas tu bhinna-koṣṭhaḥ pibed asṛk | kliṣṭa-cchinnāntra-bhedena koṣṭha-bhedo dvi-dhā smṛtaḥ || 40 || 26.40av ati-niḥsṛta-raktas tu 26.40cv klinna-bhinnāntra-bhedena 26.40cv śliṣṭa-cchinnāntra-bhedena mūrchādayo 'lpāḥ prathame dvitīye tv ati-bādhakāḥ | kliṣṭāntraḥ saṃśayī dehī chinnāntro naiva jīvati || 41 || 26.41cv klinnāntraḥ saṃśayī dehī 26.41cv kliṣṭāntraḥ saṃśaye dehī 26.41cv śliṣṭāntraḥ saṃśayī dehī 26.41dv bhinnāntro naiva jīvati yathā-svaṃ mārgam āpannā yasya viṇ-mūtra-mārutāḥ | vy-upadravaḥ sa bhinne 'pi koṣṭhe jīvaty a-saṃśayam || 42 || a-bhinnam antraṃ niṣkrāntaṃ praveśyaṃ na tv ato 'nya-thā | utpaṅgila-śiro-grastaṃ tad apy eke vadanti tu || 43 || 26.43cv urogala-śiro-grastaṃ 26.43cv uroṅgila-śiro-grastaṃ 26.43cv pupuṅgala-śiro-grastaṃ 26.43cv vayaṅgila-śiro-grastaṃ prakṣālya payasā digdhaṃ tṛṇa-śoṇita-pāṃsubhiḥ | praveśayet kḷpta-nakho ghṛtenāktaṃ śanaiḥ śanaiḥ || 44 || kṣīreṇārdrī-kṛtaṃ śuṣkaṃ bhūri-sarpiḥ-pariplutam | aṅgulyā pramṛśet kaṇṭhaṃ jalenodvejayed api || 45 || tathāntrāṇi viśanty antas tat-kālaṃ pīḍayanti ca | vraṇa-saukṣmyād bahu-tvād vā koṣṭham antram an-āviśat || 46 || 26.46bv tat-kālaṃ pīḍayeta ca tat-pramāṇena jaṭharaṃ pāṭayitvā praveśayet | yathā-sthānaṃ sthite samyak antre sīvyed anu vraṇam || 47 || 26.47cv yathā-sthāna-sthite samyag sthānād apetam ādatte jīvitaṃ kupitaṃ ca tat | veṣṭayitvānu paṭṭena ghṛtena pariṣecayet || 48 || 26.48bv jīvitaṃ kupitaṃ ca yat cūrṇair yathoktaiḥ saṃdhānaṃ kṛtvā kṣaudra-ghṛta-plutaiḥ | tataḥ kavalikāṃ dattvā veṣṭayed anu-pūrva-śaḥ || 48.1+1 || pāyayeta tataḥ koṣṇaṃ citrā-taila-yutaṃ payaḥ | mṛdu-kriyārthaṃ śakṛto vāyoś cādhaḥ-pravṛttaye || 49 || 26.49av pāyayet taṃ tataḥ koṣṇaṃ 26.49bv citra-taila-yutaṃ payaḥ anuvarteta varṣaṃ ca yathoktaṃ vraṇa-yantraṇām | udarān medaso vartiṃ nirgatāṃ bhasmanā mṛdā || 50 || 26.50bv yathoktaṃ vraṇa-yantraṇam avakīrya kaṣāyair vā ślakṣṇair mūlais tataḥ samam | dṛḍhaṃ baddhvā ca sūtreṇa vardhayet kuśalo bhiṣak || 51 || 26.51bv ślakṣṇair mūle tataḥ samam 26.51bv ślakṣṇaiś cūrṇais tataḥ samam tīkṣṇenāgni-prataptena śastreṇa sakṛd eva tu | syād anya-thā rug āṭopo mṛtyur vā chidyamānayā || 52 || sa-kṣaudre ca vraṇe baddhe su-jīrṇe 'nne ghṛtaṃ pibet | kṣīraṃ vā śarkarā-citrā-lākṣā-gokṣurakaiḥ śṛtam || 53 || 26.53av sa-kṣaudre tu vraṇe baddhe 26.53bv su-jīrṇānno ghṛtaṃ pibet rug-dāha-jit sa-yaṣṭy-āhvaiḥ paraṃ pūrvodito vidhiḥ | medo-granthy-uditaṃ tatra tailam abhyañjane hitam || 54 || 26.54cv medo-granthy-uditaṃ cātra tālīśaṃ padmakaṃ māṃsī hareṇv-aguru-candanam | haridre padma-bījāni sośīraṃ madhukaṃ ca taiḥ || 55 || pakvaṃ sadyo-vraṇeṣūktaṃ tailaṃ ropaṇam uttamam | gūḍha-prahārābhihate patite viṣamoccakaiḥ || 56 || 26.56cv mūḍha-prahārābhihate kāryaṃ vātāsra-jit tṛpti-mardanābhyañjanādikam | viśliṣṭa-dehaṃ mathitaṃ kṣīṇaṃ marmāhataṃ hatam || 57 || 26.57av kuryād vātāsṛg-uktaṃ hi 26.57bv -mardanābhyaṅga-śodhanam 26.57bv mardanābhyaṅga-śodhanam 26.57dv kṣīṇaṃ marmāhatāhatam 26.57dv kṣīṇaṃ marmāhataṃ ca tam vāsayet taila-pūrṇāyāṃ droṇyāṃ māṃsa-rasāśinam || 57ū̆ab || Uttarasthāna pāta-ghātādibhir dve-dhā bhaṅgo 'sthnāṃ saṃdhy-a-saṃdhitaḥ | prasāraṇākuñcanayor a-śaktiḥ saṃdhi-mukta-tā || 1 || 27.1bv bhaṅgo 'sthnaḥ saṃdhy-a-saṃdhi-gaḥ 27.1bv bhaṅgo 'sthnaḥ saṃdhy-a-saṃdhitaḥ itarasmin bhṛśaṃ śophaḥ sarvāvasthāsv ati-vyathā | a-śaktiś ceṣṭite 'lpe 'pi pīḍyamāne sa-śabda-tā || 2 || 27.2bv sarvāvasthāsv ati-vyathaḥ samāsād iti bhaṅgasya lakṣaṇaṃ bahu-dhā tu tat | bhidyate bhaṅga-bhedena tasya sarvasya sādhanam || 3 || yathā syād upayogāya tathā tad upadekṣyate | prājyāṇu-dāri yat tv asthi sparśe śabdaṃ karoti yat || 4 || 27.4cv prājyāṇu-dāri yac cāsthi yatrāsthi-leśaḥ praviśen madhyam asthno vidāritaḥ | bhagnaṃ yac cābhighātena kiñ-cid evāvaśeṣitam || 5 || 27.5cv bhagnaṃ yad abhighātena 27.5cv bhagnaṃ yad vābhighātena unnamyamānaṃ kṣata-vad yac ca majjani majjati | tad duḥ-sādhyaṃ kṛśā-śakta-vātalālpāśinām api || 6 || bhinnaṃ kapālaṃ yat kaṭyāṃ saṃdhi-muktaṃ cyutaṃ ca yat | jaghanaṃ prati piṣṭaṃ ca bhagnaṃ yat tad vivarjayet || 7 || 27.7av bhinnaṃ kapālaṃ yat kaṭyāḥ a-saṃśliṣṭa-kapālaṃ ca lalāṭaṃ cūrṇitaṃ tathā | yac ca bhagnaṃ bhavec chaṅkha-śiraḥ-pṛṣṭha-stanāntare || 8 || samyag-yamitam apy asthi dur-nyāsād dur-nibandhanāt | saṃkṣobhād api yad gacched vi-kriyāṃ tad vivarjayet || 9 || 27.9dv vi-kriyāṃ tac ca varjayet ādito yac ca dur-jātam asthi saṃdhir athāpi vā | taruṇāsthīni bhujyante bhajyante nalakāni tu || 10 || 27.10cv taruṇāsthīni namyante 27.10dv bhajyante nalakāni ca kapālāni vibhidyante sphuṭanty anyāni bhūyasā | athāvanatam unnamyam unnataṃ cāvapīḍayet || 11 || 27.11av kapālāsthīni bhidyante āñched atikṣiptam adho-gataṃ copari vartayet | āñchanotpīḍanonnāma-carma-saṃkṣepa-bandhanaiḥ || 12 || 27.12av āñched a-vikṣiptam adho- saṃdhīñ charīra-gān sarvāṃś calān apy a-calān api | ity etaiḥ sthāpanopāyaiḥ samyak saṃsthāpya niś-calam || 13 || 27.13dv samyak saṃsthāpya niś-calān paṭṭaiḥ prabhūta-sarpirbhiḥ veṣṭayitvā sukhais tataḥ | kadambodumbarāśvattha-sarjārjuna-palāśa-jaiḥ || 14 || vaṃśodbhavair vā pṛthubhis tanubhiḥ su-niveśitaiḥ | su-ślakṣṇaiḥ sa-pratistambhair valkalaiḥ śakalair api || 15 || 27.15cv su-ślakṣṇaiḥ sa-pratistambhair kuśāhvayaiḥ samaṃ bandhaṃ paṭṭasyopari yojayet | śithilena hi bandhena saṃdhi-sthairyaṃ na jāyate || 16 || 27.16dv saṃdheḥ sthairyaṃ na jāyate gāḍhenāti rujā-dāha-pāka-śvayathu-saṃbhavaḥ | try-ahāt try-ahād ṛtau gharme saptāhān mokṣayed dhime || 17 || 27.17av gāḍhenāpi rujā-dāha- sādhāraṇe tu pañcāhād bhaṅga-doṣa-vaśena vā | nyagrodhādi-kaṣāyeṇa tataḥ śītena secayet || 18 || 27.18bv bhagna-doṣa-vaśena vā 27.18bv bhaṅge doṣa-vaśena vā taṃ pañca-mūla-pakvena payasā tu sa-vedanam | sukhoṣṇaṃ vāvacāryaṃ syāc cakra-tailaṃ vijānatā || 19 || 27.19av pañca-mūla-vipakvena 27.19cc sukhoṣṇam avacāryaṃ syāc vibhajya deśaṃ kālaṃ ca vāta-ghnauṣadha-saṃyutam | pratataṃ seka-lepāṃś ca vidadhyād bhṛśa-śītalān || 20 || 27.20av vibhajya deśa-kālau ca 27.20bv vāta-ghnauṣadha-sādhitam gṛṣṭi-kṣīraṃ sa-sarpiṣkaṃ madhurauṣadha-sādhitam | prātaḥ prātaḥ pibed bhagnaḥ śītalaṃ lākṣayā yutam || 21 || sa-vraṇasya tu bhagnasya vraṇo madhu-ghṛtottaraiḥ | kaṣāyaiḥ pratisāryo 'tha śeṣo bhaṅgoditaḥ kramaḥ || 22 || 27.22cv kaṣāyaiḥ pratisāryo vā lambāni vraṇa-māṃsāni pralipya madhu-sarpiṣā | saṃdadhīta vraṇān vaidyo bandhanaiś copapādayet || 23 || tān samān su-sthitāñ jñātvā phalinī-lodhra-kaṭphalaiḥ | samaṅgā-dhātakī-yuktaiś cūrṇitair avacūrṇayet || 24 || dhātakī-lodhra-cūrṇair vā rohanty āśu tathā vraṇāḥ | iti bhaṅga upakrāntaḥ sthira-dhātor ṛtau hime || 25 || māṃsalasyālpa-doṣasya su-sādhyo dāruṇo 'nya-thā | pūrva-madhyānta-vayasām eka-dvi-tri-guṇaiḥ kramāt || 26 || 27.26bv su-sādho dāruṇo 'nya-thā māsaiḥ sthairyaṃ bhavet saṃdher yathoktaṃ bhajatāṃ vidhim | kaṭī-jaṅghoru-bhagnānāṃ kapāṭa-śayanaṃ hitam || 27 || 27.27bv yathoktaṃ bhajato vidhim yantraṇārthaṃ tathā kīlāḥ pañca kāryā nibandhanāḥ | jaṅghorvoḥ pārśvayor dvau dvau tala ekaś ca kīlakaḥ || 28 || śroṇyāṃ vā pṛṣṭha-vaṃśe vā vakṣasy akṣakayos tathā | vimokṣe bhagna-saṃdhīnāṃ vidhim evaṃ samācaret || 29 || 27.29bv vakṣasy aṃśakayos tathā 27.29bv vaktrasyākṣakayos tathā 27.29dv vidhim enaṃ samācaret saṃdhīṃś cira-vimuktāṃs tu snigdha-svinnān mṛdū-kṛtān | uktair vidhānair buddhyā ca yathā-svaṃ sthānam ānayet || 30 || 27.30av saṃdhīṃś cira-vimuktāṃś ca 27.30cv uktair vidhānair yuktyā ca 27.30cv uktair vidhānair yuktyā vā a-saṃdhi-bhagne rūḍhe tu viṣamolbaṇa-sādhite | āpothya bhaṅgaṃ yamayet tato bhagna-vad ācaret || 31 || 27.31av a-saṃdhi-bhagne rūḍhe ca 27.31bv viṣamolbaṇa-sādhanaiḥ bhagnaṃ naiti yathā pākaṃ prayateta tathā bhiṣak | pakva-māṃsa-sirā-snāyuḥ saṃdhiḥ śleṣaṃ na gacchati || 32 || 27.32av bhaṅgo naiti yathā pākaṃ vāta-vyādhi-vinirdiṣṭān snehān bhagnasya yojayet | catuṣ-prayogān balyāṃś ca vasti-karma ca śīlayet || 33 || śāly-ājya-rasa-dugdhādyaiḥ pauṣṭikair a-vidāhibhiḥ | mātrayopacared bhagnaṃ saṃdhi-saṃśleṣa-kāribhiḥ || 34 || glānir na śasyate tasya saṃdhi-viśleṣa-kṛd dhi sā || 35ab || lavaṇaṃ kaṭukaṃ kṣāram amlaṃ maithunam ātapam || 35cd || vyāyāmaṃ ca na seveta bhagno rūkṣaṃ ca bhojanam || 35ef || kṛṣṇāṃs tilān vi-rajaso dṛḍha-vastra-baddhān sapta kṣapā vahati vāriṇi vāsayet | saṃśoṣayed anu-dinaṃ pravisārya caitān kṣīre tathaiva madhuka-kvathite ca toye || 36 || 27.36cv saṃśoṣayed anu-dinaṃ pratisārya caitān 27.36cv saṃśoṣayed anu-dinaṃ pravibhāvya caitān punar api pīta-payaskāṃs tān pūrva-vad eva śoṣitān bāḍham | vigata-tuṣān a-rajaskān saṃcūrṇya su-cūrṇitair yuñjyāt || 37 || 27.37dv saṃcūrṇya vicūrṇitair yuñjyāt nalada-vālaka-lohitayaṣṭikā-nakha-miśi-plava-kuṣṭha-balā-trayaiḥ | aguru-kuṅkuma-candana-śārivā-sarala-sarja-rasāmaradārubhiḥ || 38 || padmakādi-gaṇopetais tila-piṣṭaṃ tataś ca tat | samasta-gandha-bhaiṣajya-siddha-dugdhena pīḍayet || 39 || 27.39bv tila-piṣṭaṃ tataś ca tam śaileya-rāsnāṃśumatī-kaseru-kālānusārī-nata-pattra-lodhraiḥ | sa-kṣīraśuklaiḥ sa-payaḥ sa-dūrvais tailaṃ pacet tan naladādibhiś ca || 40 || 27.40cv tvak-kṣīra-yuktaiḥ payasā sa-dūrvais 27.40cv sa-kṣīra-yuktais payasā sa-dūrvais 27.40cv sa-kṣīra-yuktais sa-payaḥ sa-dūrvais gandha-tailam idam uttamam asthi-sthairya-kṛj jayati cāśu vikārān | vāta-pitta-janitān ati-vīryān vyāpino 'pi vividhair upayogaiḥ || 41 || 27.41cv vāta-pitta-janitān ati-vīryaṃ 27.41cv vāta-pitta-janitān ati-vīrya- 27.41dv -vyāpino 'pi vividhair upayogaiḥ Uttarasthāna hasty-aśva-pṛṣṭha-gamana-kaṭhinotkaṭakāsanaiḥ | arśo-nidānābhihitair aparaiś ca niṣevitaiḥ || 1 || 28.1bv -kaṭhinotkaṭukāsanaiḥ an-iṣṭā-dṛṣṭa-pākena sadyo vā sādhu-garhaṇaiḥ | prāyeṇa piṭikā-pūrvo yo 'ṅgule dvy-aṅgule 'pi vā || 2 || 28.2av an-iṣṭa-diṣṭa-pākena pāyor vraṇo 'ntar bāhyo vā duṣṭāsṛṅ-māṃsa-go bhavet | vasti-mūtrāśayābhyāsa-gata-tvāt syandanātmakaḥ || 3 || 28.3av pāyau vraṇo 'ntar bāhyo vā bhagandaraḥ sa sarvāṃś ca dārayaty a-kriyā-vataḥ | bhaga-vasti-gudāṃs teṣu dīryamāṇeṣu bhūribhiḥ || 4 || 28.4av bhagandaraḥ sa sarvaś ca 28.4av bhagandaraḥ sa sarvasya vāta-mūtra-śakṛc-chukraṃ khaiḥ sūkṣmair vamati kramāt | doṣaiḥ pṛthag yutaiḥ sarvair āgantuḥ so 'ṣṭamaḥ smṛtaḥ || 5 || 28.5dv āgantuś cāṣṭamaḥ smṛtaḥ a-pakvaṃ piṭikāṃ āhuḥ pāka-prāptaṃ bhagandaram | gūḍha-mūlāṃ sa-saṃrambhāṃ rug-āḍhyāṃ rūḍha-kopinīm || 6 || bhagandara-karīṃ vidyāt piṭikāṃ na tv ato 'nya-thā | tatra śyāvāruṇā toda-bheda-sphuraṇa-ruk-karī || 7 || piṭikā mārutāt pittād uṣṭra-grīvā-vad ucchritā | rāgiṇī tanur ūṣmāḍhyā jvara-dhūmāyanānvitā || 8 || 28.8cv rāgiṇī tanu-sūkṣmā ca sthirā snigdhā mahā-mūlā pāṇḍuḥ kaṇḍū-matī kaphāt | śyāvā tāmrā sa-dāhoṣā ghora-rug vāta-pitta-jā || 9 || 28.9cv śyāva-tāmrā sa-dāhoṣā pāṇḍurā kiñ-cid-ā-śyāvā kṛcchra-pākā kaphānilāt | pādāṅguṣṭha-samā sarvair doṣair nānā-vidha-vyathā || 10 || śūlā-rocaka-tṛḍ-dāha-jvara-cchardir-upadrutā | vraṇa-tāṃ yānti tāḥ pakvāḥ pramādāt tatra vāta-jā || 11 || cīyate 'ṇu-mukhaiś chidraiḥ śata-ponaka-vat kramāt | acchaṃ sravadbhir āsrāvam ajasraṃ phena-saṃyutam || 12 || 28.12av dīryate 'ṇu-mukhaiś chidraiḥ 28.12bv śata-ponaka-vaktra-vat śata-ponaka-saṃjño 'yam uṣṭra-grīvas tu pitta-jaḥ | bahu-picchā-parisrāvī parisrāvī kaphodbhavaḥ || 13 || vāta-pittāj parikṣepī parikṣipya gudaṃ gatiḥ | jāyate paritas tatra prākāraṃ parikheva ca || 14 || 28.14dv prākāra-parikheva ca ṛjur vāta-kaphād ṛjvyā gudo gatyātra dīryate | kapha-pitte tu pūrvotthaṃ dur-nāmāśritya kupyataḥ || 15 || 28.15bv gudo gatyā tu dīryate 28.15bv gudo gatyā nu dīryate 28.15cv kapha-pitte tu pūrvoktaṃ arśo-mūle tataḥ śophaḥ kaṇḍū-dāhādi-mān bhavet | sa śīghraṃ pakva-bhinno 'sya kledayan mūlam arśasaḥ || 16 || sravaty ajasraṃ gatibhir ayam arśo-bhagandaraḥ | sarva-jaḥ śambukāvartaḥ śambūkāvarta-saṃnibhaḥ || 17 || gatayo dārayanty asmin rug-vegair dāruṇair gudam | asthi-leśo 'bhyavahṛto māṃsa-gṛddhyā yadā gudam || 18 || kṣiṇoti tiryaṅ nirgacchann un-mārgaṃ kṣatato gatiḥ | syāt tataḥ pūya-dīrṇāyāṃ māṃsa-kothena tatra ca || 19 || 28.19av kṣaṇoti tiryaṅ nirgacchan 28.19cv syāt tadā pūya-dīrṇāyāṃ jāyante kṛmayas tasya khādantaḥ parito gudam | vidārayanti na cirād un-mārgī kṣata-jaś ca saḥ || 20 || 28.20av jāyante kṛmayas tebhyaḥ 28.20dv un-mārgī kṣata-jas tu saḥ teṣu rug-dāha-kaṇḍv-ādīn vidyād vraṇa-niṣedhataḥ | ṣaṭ kṛcchra-sādhanās teṣāṃ nicaya-kṣata-jau tyajet || 21 || 28.21bv vidyād vraṇa-vibhaktitaḥ pravāhiṇīṃ valīṃ prāptaṃ sevanīṃ vā samāśritam | athāsya piṭikām eva tathā yatnād upācaret || 22 || śuddhy-asṛk-sruti-sekādyair yathā pākaṃ na gacchati | pāke punar upasnigdhaṃ sveditaṃ cāvagāhataḥ || 23 || yantrayitvārśasam iva paśyet samyag bhagandaram | arvācīnaṃ parācīnam antar-mukha-bahir-mukham || 24 || 28.24cv avācīnaṃ parācīnam athāntar-mukham eṣitvā samyak śastreṇa pāṭayet | bahir-mukhaṃ ca niḥśeṣaṃ tataḥ kṣāreṇa sādhayet || 25 || agninā vā bhiṣak sādhu kṣāreṇaivoṣṭra-kandharam | nāḍīr ekāntarāḥ kṛtvā pāṭayec chata-ponakam || 26 || 28.26cv nāḍīm ekāntaraṃ kṛtvā 28.26dv pāṭayec chata-ponake tāsu rūḍhāsu śeṣāś ca mṛtyur dīrṇe gude 'nya-thā | parikṣepiṇi cāpy evaṃ nāḍy-uktaiḥ kṣāra-sūtrakaiḥ || 27 || arśo-bhagandare pūrvam arśāṃsi pratisādhayet | tyaktvopacaryaḥ kṣata-jaḥ śalyaṃ śalya-vatas tataḥ || 28 || 28.28bv arśāṃsi pratisārayet āharec ca tathā dadyāt kṛmi-ghnaṃ lepa-bhojanam | piṇḍa-nāḍy-ādayaḥ svedāḥ su-snigdhā ruji pūjitāḥ || 29 || 28.29av āhareta tathā dadyāt 28.29av āharet tat tathā dadyāt 28.29av āharet tu tathā dadyāt sarva-tra ca bahu-cchidre chedān ālocya yojayet | go-tīrtha-sarvato-bhadra-dala-lāṅgala-lāṅgalān || 30 || 28.30av sarva-trāpi bahu-cchidre pārśvaṃ gatena śastreṇa cchedo go-tīrthako mataḥ | sarvataḥ sarvato-bhadraḥ pārśva-cchedo 'rdha-lāṅgalaḥ || 31 || 28.31av pārśva-gatena śastreṇa 28.31av pārśvāgatena śastreṇa pārśva-dvaye lāṅgalakaḥ samastāṃś cāgninā dahet | āsrāva-mārgān niḥśeṣaṃ naivaṃ vikurute punaḥ || 32 || 28.32cv āsrāva-mārgān niḥśeṣān yateta koṣṭha-śuddhau ca bhiṣak tasyāntarāntarā | lepo vraṇe biḍālāsthi tri-phalā-rasa-kalkitam || 33 || 28.33av yateta koṣṭha-śuddhyai ca 28.33av yateta koṣṭha-saṃśuddhau 28.33dv tri-phalā-rasa-kalkitaḥ jyotiṣmatī-malayu-lāṅgali-śelu-pāṭhā-kumbhāgni-sarja-karavīra-vacā-sudhārkaiḥ | abhyañjanāya vipaceta bhagandarāṇāṃ tailaṃ vadanti paramaṃ hitam etad eṣām || 34 || 28.34bv -kumbhāgni-sarji-karavīra-vacā-sudhārkaiḥ 28.34dv tailaṃ vadanti paramaṃ hitam etad eva madhuka-lodhra-kaṇā-truṭi-reṇukā-dvi-rajanī-phalinī-paṭu-śārivāḥ | kamala-kesara-padmaka-dhātakī-madana-sarja-rasāmaya-rodikāḥ || 35 || 28.35dv -madana-sarja-rasāmaya-lodhrakāḥ sa-bījapūra-cchadanair ebhis tailaṃ vipācitam | bhagandarāpacī-kuṣṭha-madhu-meha-vraṇāpaham || 36 || madhu-taila-yutā viḍaṅga-sāra-tri-phalā-māgadhikā-kaṇāś ca līḍhāḥ | kṛmi-kuṣṭha-bhagandara-prameha-kṣata-nāḍī-vraṇa-ropaṇā bhavanti || 37 || 28.37bv -tri-phalā-māgadhikoṣaṇāś ca līḍhāḥ 28.37dv -kṣata-nāḍī-vraṇa-rohaṇā bhavanti amṛtā-truṭi-vella-vatsakaṃ kali-pathyāmalakāni gugguluḥ | krama-vṛddham idaṃ madhu-drutaṃ piṭikā-sthaulya-bhagandarāñ jayet || 38 || 28.38cv krama-vṛddham idaṃ madhu-plutaṃ māgadhikāgni-kaliṅga-viḍaṅgair bilva-ghṛtaiḥ sa-varā-pala-ṣaṭkaiḥ | guggulunā sadṛśena sametaiḥ kṣaudra-yutaiḥ sakalāmaya-nāśaḥ || 39 || 28.39av māgadhikāgni-kaliṅga-viḍaṅgais 28.39bv tulya-ghṛtaiḥ sa-varā-pala-ṣaṭkaiḥ guggulu-pañca-palaṃ palikāṃśā māgadhikā tri-phalā ca pṛthak syāt | tvak-truṭi-karṣa-yutaṃ madhu-līḍhaṃ kuṣṭha-bhagandara-gulma-gati-ghnam || 40 || śṛṅgavera-rajo-yuktaṃ tad eva ca su-bhāvitam | kvāthena daśa-mūlasya viśeṣād vāta-roga-jit || 41 || uttamā-khadira-sāra-jaṃ rajaḥ śīlayann asana-vāri-bhāvitam | hanti tulya-mahiṣākṣa-mākṣikaṃ kuṣṭha-meha-piṭikā-bhagandarān || 42 || 28.42bv śīlayed anala-vāri-bhāvitam 28.42bv śīlayed asana-vāri-bhāvitam 28.42cv hanti tulya-mahiṣākhya-mākṣikaṃ bhagandareṣv eṣa viśeṣa uktaḥ śeṣāṇi tu vyañjana-sādhanāni | vraṇādhikārāt pariśīlanāc ca samyag viditvaupayikaṃ vidadhyāt || 43 || 28.43dv samyag viditvauṣadhikaṃ vidadhyāt aśva-pṛṣṭha-gamanaṃ cala-rodhaṃ madya-maithunam a-jīrṇam a-sātmyam | sāhasāni vividhāni ca rūḍhe vatsaraṃ parihared adhikaṃ vā || 44 || 28.44dv vatsaraṃ parihared adhikaṃ ca Uttarasthāna kapha-pradhānāḥ kurvanti medo-māṃsāsra-gā malāḥ | vṛttonnataṃ yaṃ śvayathuṃ sa granthir grathanāt smṛtaḥ || 1 || 29.1dv sa granthir granthanāt smṛtaḥ doṣāsra-māṃsa-medo-'sthi-sirā-vraṇa-bhavā nava | te tatra vātād āyāma-toda-bhedānvito 'sitaḥ || 2 || sthānāt sthānāntara-gatir a-kasmād dhāni-vṛddhi-mān | mṛdur vastir ivānaddho vibhinno 'cchaṃ sravaty asṛk || 3 || pittāt sa-dāhaḥ pītābho rakto vā pacyate drutam | bhinno 'sram uṣṇaṃ sravati śleṣmaṇā nī-rujo ghanaḥ || 4 || śītaḥ sa-varṇaḥ kaṇḍū-mān pakvaḥ pūyaṃ sraved ghanam | doṣair duṣṭe 'sṛji granthir bhaven mūrchatsu jantuṣu || 5 || sirā-māṃsaṃ ca saṃśritya sa-svāpaḥ pitta-lakṣaṇaḥ | māṃsalair dūṣitaṃ māṃsam āhārair granthim āvahet || 6 || snigdhaṃ mahāntaṃ kaṭhinaṃ sirā-naddhaṃ kaphākṛtim | pravṛddhaṃ medurair medo nītaṃ māṃse 'tha-vā tvaci || 7 || vāyunā kurute granthiṃ bhṛśaṃ snigdhaṃ mṛduṃ calam | śleṣma-tulyākṛtiṃ deha-kṣaya-vṛddhi-kṣayodayam || 8 || sa vibhinno ghanaṃ medas tāmrāsita-sitaṃ sravet | asthi-bhaṅgābhighātābhyām unnatāvanataṃ tu yat || 9 || 29.9av sa vibhinno ghanaṃ medaḥ 29.9bv pūyaṃ tāmrāsitaṃ sravet 29.9cv asthi-bhagnābhighātābhyām so 'sthi-granthiḥ padātes tu sahasāmbho-'vagāhanāt | vyāyāmād vā pratāntasya sirā-jālaṃ sa-śoṇitam || 10 || vāyuḥ saṃpīḍya saṃkocya vakrī-kṛtya viśoṣya ca | niḥ-sphuraṃ nī-rujaṃ granthiṃ kurute sa sirāhvayaḥ || 11 || 29.11av vāyuḥ prapīḍya saṃkocya a-rūḍhe rūḍha-mātre vā vraṇe sarva-rasāśinaḥ | sārdre vā bandha-rahite gātre 'śmābhihate 'tha-vā || 12 || vāto 'sram a-srutaṃ duṣṭaṃ saṃśoṣya grathitaṃ vraṇam | kuryāt sa-dāhaḥ kaṇḍū-mān vraṇa-granthir ayaṃ smṛtaḥ || 13 || 29.13av vāyuḥ prakupitaḥ kṣipraṃ 29.13bv prāpya marmāśritaṃ vraṇam sādhyā doṣāsra-medo-jā na tu sthūla-kharāś calāḥ | marma-kaṇṭhodara-sthāś ca mahat tu granthito 'rbudam || 14 || 29.14bv na tu sthūlāḥ kharāś calāḥ 29.14dv mahāṃs tu granthito 'rbudam tal-lakṣaṇaṃ ca medo-'ntaiḥ ṣo-ḍhā doṣādibhis tu tat | prāyo medaḥ-kaphāḍhya-tvāt sthira-tvāc ca na pacyate || 15 || sirā-sthaṃ śoṇitaṃ doṣaḥ saṃkocyāntaḥ prapīḍya ca | pācayeta tad ānaddhaṃ sāsrāvaṃ māṃsa-piṇḍitam || 16 || 29.16bv saṃkocyānu prapīḍya ca 29.16bv saṃkocyānu prapīḍya vā 29.16bv saṃkocyāntaḥ prapīḍya vā 29.16dv sa-srāvaṃ māṃsa-piṇḍa-tām māṃsāṅkuraiś citaṃ yāti vṛddhiṃ cāśu sravet tataḥ | ajasraṃ duṣṭa-rudhiraṃ bhūri tac choṇitārbudam || 17 || 29.17bv vṛddhaṃ cāśu sravet tataḥ teṣv asṛṅ-māṃsa-je varjye catvāry anyāni sādhayet | prasthitā vaṅkṣaṇorv-ādim adhaḥ-kāyaṃ kapholbaṇāḥ || 18 || doṣā māṃsāsra-gāḥ pādau kālenāśritya kurvate | śanaiḥ śanair ghanaṃ śophaṃ ślīpadaṃ tat pracakṣate || 19 || 29.19dv ślīpadaṃ tat pracakṣyate paripoṭa-yutaṃ kṛṣṇam a-nimitta-rujaṃ kharam | rūkṣaṃ ca vātāt pittāt tu pītaṃ dāha-jvarānvitam || 20 || 29.20cv rūkṣaṃ ca vātāt pittāc ca 29.20cv rūkṣaṃ ca ślīpadaṃ vātāt 29.20dv pittād dāha-jvarānvitam kaphād guru snigdham a-ruk citaṃ māṃsāṅkurair bṛhat | tat tyajed vatsarātītaṃ su-mahat su-parisruti || 21 || 29.21bv citaṃ māṃsāṅkurair mahat pāṇi-nāsauṣṭha-karṇeṣu vadanty eke tu pāda-vat | ślīpadaṃ jāyate tac ca deśe 'nūpe bhṛśaṃ bhṛśam || 22 || 29.22bv vadanty anye tu pāda-vat meda-sthāḥ kaṇṭha-manyākṣa-kakṣā-vaṅkṣaṇa-gā malāḥ | sa-varṇān kaṭhinān snigdhān vārtākāmalakākṛtīn || 23 || 29.23av meda-sthāḥ kaṇṭha-manyākṣi- avagāḍhān bahūn gaṇḍāṃś cira-pākāṃś ca kurvate | pacyante 'lpa-rujas te 'nye sravanty anye 'ti-kaṇḍurāḥ || 24 || 29.24cv pacyante 'lpa-rujas tv anye 29.24dv sravanty anye 'ti-kaṇḍulāḥ naśyanty anye bhavanty anye dīrgha-kālānubandhinaḥ | gaṇḍa-mālāpacī ceyaṃ dūrveva kṣaya-vṛddhi-bhāk || 25 || tāṃ tyajet sa-jvara-cchardi-pārśva-ruk-kāsa-pīnasām | a-bhedāt pakva-śophasya vraṇe cā-pathya-sevinaḥ || 26 || 29.26bv -pārśva-ruk-śvāsa-pīnasām 29.26dv vraṇe vā-pathya-sevinaḥ anupraviśya māṃsādīn dūraṃ pūyo 'bhidhāvati | gatiḥ sā dūra-gamanān nāḍī nāḍīva saṃsruteḥ || 27 || nāḍy ekān-ṛjur anyeṣāṃ saivāneka-gatir gatiḥ | sā doṣaiḥ pṛthag eka-sthaiḥ śalya-hetuś ca pañcamī || 28 || 29.28cv doṣaiḥ pṛthak samastaiś ca vātāt sa-ruk sūkṣma-mukhī vi-varṇā phenilodvamā | sravaty abhyadhikaṃ rātrau pittāt tṛḍ-jvara-dāha-kṛt || 29 || pītoṣṇa-pūti-pūya-srud divā cāti niṣiñcati | ghana-picchila-saṃsrāvā kaṇḍūlā kaṭhinā kaphāt || 30 || 29.30av pītoṣṇa-pūti-pūyaṃ tu 29.30av pītoṣṇa-pūti-pūyāśru 29.30av pītoṣṇa-pūti-pūyāsrur niśi cābhyadhika-kledā sarvaiḥ sarvākṛtiṃ tyajet || 31ab || 29.31bv sarvaiḥ sarvākṛtis tyajet antaḥ-sthitaṃ śalyam an-āhṛtaṃ tu karoti nāḍīṃ vahate ca sāsya || 31cd || 29.31dv karoti nāḍīṃ vahate ca sāsyāt phenānuviddhaṃ tanum alpam uṣṇaṃ sāsraṃ ca pūyaṃ sa-rujaṃ ca nityam || 31ef || 29.31ev phenānuviddhaṃ tanum accham uṣṇaṃ Uttarasthāna granthiṣv āmeṣu kartavyā yathā-svaṃ śopha-vat kriyā | bṛhatī-citraka-vyāghrī-kaṇā-siddhena sarpiṣā || 1 || snehayec chuddhi-kāmaṃ ca tīkṣṇaiḥ śuddhasya lepanam | saṃsvedya bahu-śo granthiṃ vimṛdnīyāt punaḥ punaḥ || 2 || eṣa vāte viśeṣeṇa kramaḥ pittāsra-je punaḥ | jalaukaso himaṃ sarvaṃ kapha-je vātiko vidhiḥ || 3 || tathāpy a-pakvaṃ chittvainaṃ sthite rakte 'gninā dahet | sādhv a-śeṣaṃ sa-śeṣo hi punar āpyāyate dhruvam || 4 || 30.4dv punar ānahyate drutam māṃsa-vraṇodbhavau granthī yāpayed evam eva ca | kāryaṃ medo-bhave 'py etat taptaiḥ phalādibhiś ca tam || 5 || 30.5bv pāṭayed evam eva ca pramṛdyāt tila-digdhena cchannaṃ dvi-guṇa-vāsasā | śastreṇa pāṭayitvā vā dahen medasi sūddhṛte || 6 || 30.6av pramṛjyāt tila-digdhena 30.6dv dahen medasi tūddhṛte sirā-granthau nave peyaṃ tailaṃ sāhacaraṃ tathā | upanāho 'nila-harair vasti-karma sirā-vyadhaḥ || 7 || arbude granthi-vat kuryāt yathā-svaṃ su-tarāṃ hitam | ślīpade 'nila-je vidhyet snigdha-svinnopanāhite || 8 || ajā-śakṛc-chigru-mūla-lākṣā-surasa-kāñjikaiḥ || 8.1+(1)ab || 30.8.1+(1)bv -lākṣā-rasa-sa-kāñjikaiḥ 30.8.1+(1)bv -lavaṇa-kṣāra-kāñjikaiḥ upodakā-pattra-piṇḍyā chadair ācchāditaṃ ghanam | niveśya paṭṭaṃ badhnīyāc chāmyaty evaṃ navārbudam || 8.1+(2) || 30.8.1+(2)av upodakārka-piṇyāka- 30.8.1+(2)bv -cchadair ācchāditaṃ ghanam jīrṇe cārka-cchada-sudhā-sāmudra-guḍa-kāñjikaiḥ | pracchāne piṇḍikā baddhā granthy-arbuda-vilāyanī || 8.1+(3) || 30.8.1+(3)av jīrṇārdrārka-cchada-sudhā- 30.8.1+(3)bv -sāmudraṃ tulyakāmbubhiḥ 30.8.1+(3)cv pracchanne piṭikāṃ baddhvā 30.8.1+(3)cv pracchānair piṇḍikāṃ baddhvā 30.8.1+(3)dv granthy-arbuda-vilāyanam sirām upari gulphasya dvy-aṅgule pāyayec ca tam | māsam eraṇḍa-jaṃ tailaṃ go-mūtreṇa samanvitam || 9 || jīrṇe jīrṇānnam aśnīyāc chuṇṭhī-śṛta-payo-'nvitam | traivṛtaṃ vā pibed evam a-śāntāv agninā dahet || 10 || gulphasyādhaḥ sirā-mokṣaḥ paitte sarvaṃ ca pitta-jit | sirām aṅguṣṭhake viddhvā kapha-je śīlayed yavān || 11 || sa-kṣaudrāṇi kaṣāyāṇi vardhamānās tathābhayāḥ | limpet sarṣapa-vārtākī-mūlābhyāṃ dhanvayātha-vā || 12 || 30.12dv -mūlābhyāṃ dhānyayātha-vā ūrdhvādhaḥ-śodhanaṃ peyam apacyāṃ sādhitaṃ ghṛtam | dantī-dravantī-trivṛtā-jālinī-devadālibhiḥ || 13 || śīlayet kapha-medo-ghnaṃ dhūma-gaṇḍūṣa-nāvanam | sirayāpahared raktaṃ piben mūtreṇa tārkṣya-jam || 14 || palam ardha-palaṃ vāpi karṣaṃ vāpy uṣṇa-vāriṇā | kāñcanāra-tvacaṃ pītvā gaṇḍa-mālāṃ vyapohati || 14+(1) || 30.14+(1)bv karṣaṃ voṣṇena vāriṇā granthīn a-pakvān ālimpen nākulī-paṭu-nāgaraiḥ | svinnān lavaṇa-poṭalyā kaṭhinān anu mardayet || 15 || śamī-mūlaka-śigrūṇāṃ bījaiḥ sa-yava-sarṣapaiḥ | lepaḥ piṣṭo ṇmla-takreṇa granthi-gaṇḍa-vilāyanaḥ || 16 || 30.16av śamī-mūlaka-śigrūttha- 30.16av śamī-mūlaka-śigrūmā- 30.16bv -bījaḥ sa-yava-sarṣapaiḥ 30.16bv -bījaiḥ sa-yava-sarṣapaiḥ kṣuṇṇāni nimba-pattrāṇi kḷptair bhallātakaiḥ saha | śarāva-saṃpuṭe dagdhvā sārdhaṃ siddhārthakaiḥ samaiḥ || 16+(1) || 30.16+(1)av jīrṇāni nimba-pattrāṇi 30.16+(1)bv klinnair bhallātakaiḥ saha 30.16+(1)bv kṣiprair bhallātakaiḥ saha etac chāgāmbunā piṣṭaṃ gaṇḍa-mālā-pralepanam || 16+(2)ab || 30.16+(2)bv gaṇḍa-mālā-vilepanam pākon-mukhān srutāsrasya pitta-śleṣma-harair jayet | a-pakvān evo voddhṛtya kṣārāgnibhyām upācaret || 17 || kākādanī-lāṅgalikā-nahikottuṇḍikī-phalaiḥ | jīmūta-bīja-karkoṭī-viśālā-kṛtavedhanaiḥ || 18 || 30.18bv -nalikottuṇḍikī-phalaiḥ 30.18bv -nalikottuṇḍakī-phalaiḥ 30.18bv -nahikottaiṇḍukī-phalaiḥ pāṭhānvitaiḥ palārdhāṃśair viṣa-karṣa-yutaiḥ pacet | prasthaṃ karañja-tailasya nirguṇḍī-sva-rasāḍhake || 19 || 30.19av pathyānvitaiḥ palārdhāṃśair anena mālā gaṇḍānāṃ cira-jā pūya-vāhinī | sidhyaty a-sādhya-kalpāpi pānābhyañjana-nāvanaiḥ || 20 || tailaṃ lāṅgalikī-kanda-kalka-pādaṃ catur-guṇe | nirguṇḍī-sva-rase pakvaṃ nasyādyair apacī-praṇut || 21 || 30.21bv -kalka-pāde catur-guṇe bhadraśrī-dāru-marica-dvi-haridrā-trivṛd-ghanaiḥ | manaḥśilāla-nalada-viśālā-karavīrakaiḥ || 22 || 30.22ac bhadra-śrīdāru-marica- 30.22cv manaḥśilāla-madana- go-mūtra-piṣṭaiḥ palikair viṣasyārdha-palena ca | brāhmī-rasārka-ja-kṣīra-go-śakṛd-rasa-saṃyutam || 23 || prasthaṃ sarṣapa-tailasya siddham āśu vyapohati | pānādyaiḥ śīlitaṃ kuṣṭha-duṣṭa-nāḍī-vraṇāpacīḥ || 24 || 30.24cv pānādyaiḥ śīlitaṃ kuṣṭhaṃ 30.24dv duṣṭa-nāḍī-vraṇāpacīḥ vacā-harītakī-lākṣā-kaṭu-rohiṇi-candanaiḥ | tailaṃ prasādhitaṃ pītaṃ sa-mūlām apacīṃ jayet || 25 || śarapuṅkhodbhavaṃ mūlaṃ piṣṭaṃ taṇḍula-vāriṇā | nasyāl lepāc ca duṣṭārur-apacī-viṣa-jantu-jit || 26 || mūlair uttamakāraṇyāḥ pīluparṇyāḥ sahācarāt | sa-lodhrābhaya-yaṣṭy-āhva-śatāhvā-dvīpi-dārubhiḥ || 27 || 30.27av mūlair uttamavāruṇyāḥ 30.27av mūlair uttaravāruṇyāḥ 30.27av mūlair uttaravāriṇyāḥ tailaṃ kṣīra-samaṃ siddhaṃ nasye 'bhyaṅge ca pūjitam | go-'vy-ajāśva-khurā dagdhāḥ kaṭu-tailena lepanam || 28 || 30.28cv go-gajāśva-khurā dagdhāḥ aiṅgudena tu kṛṣṇāhir vāyaso vā svayaṃ mṛtaḥ | ity a-śāntau gadasyānya-pārśva-jaṅghā-samāśritam || 29 || 30.29cv ity a-śāntau gade cānya- 30.29dv -pārśve jaṅghā-samāśritam vaster ūrdhvam adhas-tād vā medo hṛtvāgninā dahet | sthitasyordhvaṃ padaṃ mitvā tan-mānena ca pārṣṇitaḥ || 30 || tata ūrdhvaṃ hared granthīn ity āha bhaga-vān nimiḥ || 31ab || pārṣṇiṃ prati dvā-daśa cāṅgulāni muktvendra-vastiṃ ca gadānya-pārśve || 31cd || vidārya matsyāṇḍa-nibhāni madhyāj jālāni karṣed iti suśrutoktiḥ || 31ef || ā-gulpha-karṇāt su-mitasya jantos tasyāṣṭa-bhāgaṃ khuḍakād vibhajya | ghrāṇārjave 'dhaḥ sura-rāja-vaster bhittvākṣa-mātraṃ tv apare vadanti || 32 || 30.32cv ghoṇārjave 'dhaḥ sura-rāja-vaster 30.32dv bhittvākṣa-mātrām apare vadanti upanāhyānilān nāḍīṃ pāṭitāṃ sādhu lepayet | pratyakpuṣpī-phala-yutais tailaiḥ piṣṭaiḥ sa-saindhavaiḥ || 33 || paittīṃ tu tila-mañjiṣṭhā-nāgadantī-niśā-dvayaiḥ | ślaiṣmikīṃ tila-saurāṣṭrī-nikumbhāriṣṭa-saindhavaiḥ || 34 || śalya-jāṃ tila-madhv-ājyair lepayec chinna-śodhitām | a-śastra-kṛtyām eṣiṇyā bhittvānte samyag-eṣitām || 35 || kṣāra-pītena sūtreṇa bahu-śo dārayed gatim | vraṇeṣu duṣṭa-sūkṣmāsya-gambhīrādiṣu sādhanam || 36 || 30.36bv bahu-śo pūrayed gatim yā vartyo yāni tailāni tan nāḍīṣv api śasyate | piṣṭaṃ cañcu-phalaṃ lepān nāḍī-vraṇa-haraṃ param || 37 || ghoṇṭā-phala-tvak lavaṇaṃ sa-lākṣaṃ būkasya pattraṃ vanitā-payaś ca | snug-arka-dugdhānvita eṣa kalko vartī-kṛto hanty a-cireṇa nāḍīm || 38 || 30.38bv cukrasya pattraṃ vanitā-payaś ca 30.38bv vṛṣasya pattraṃ vanitā-payaś ca sāmudra-sauvarcala-sindhu-janma-su-pakva-ghoṇṭā-phala-veśma-dhūmāḥ | āmrāta-gāyatri-ja-pallavāś ca kaṭaṅkaṭeryāv atha cetakī ca || 39 || 30.39dv kaṭaṅkaṭeryāv atha ketakī ca 30.39dv kaṭaṅkaṭeryāv atha dīnikā ca kalke 'bhyaṅge cūrṇe vartyāṃ caiteṣu śīlyamāneṣu | a-gatir iva naśyati gatiś capalā capaleṣu bhūtir iva || 40 || 30.40bv vartyāṃ caiteṣu sevyamāneṣu Uttarasthāna snigdhā sa-varṇā grathitā nī-rujā mudga-saṃnibhā | piṭikā kapha-vātābhyāṃ bālānām ajagallikā || 1 || 31.1av snigdhāḥ sa-varṇā grathitā 31.1cv piṭikāḥ kapha-vātābhyāṃ 31.1dv nī-rujā mudga-saṃmitā 31.1dv nī-rujā mudga-saṃnibhāḥ yava-prakhyā yava-prakhyā tābhyāṃ māṃsāśritā ghanā | a-vaktrā cālajī vṛttā stoka-pūyā ghanonnatā || 2 || 31.2av yava-prakhyā yavākārā 31.2cv a-vaktrāś cālajī-vṛttāḥ 31.2dv stoka-pūyā ghanonnatāḥ granthayaḥ pañca vā ṣaḍ vā kacchapī kacchaponnatāḥ | karṇasyordhvaṃ samantād vā piṭikā kaṭhinogra-ruk || 3 || 31.3bv kacchapī kacchaponnatā śālūkābhā panasikā śophas tv alpa-rujaḥ sthiraḥ | hanu-saṃdhi-samudbhūtas tābhyāṃ pāṣāṇa-gardabhaḥ || 4 || śālmalī-kaṇṭakākārāḥ piṭikāḥ sa-rujo ghanāḥ | medo-garbhā mukhe yūnāṃ tābhyāṃ ca mukha-dūṣikāḥ || 5 || 31.5dv tābhyāṃ ca mukha-dūṣakāḥ te padma-kaṇṭakā jñeyā yaiḥ padmam iva kaṇṭakaiḥ | cīyate nī-rujaiḥ śvetaiḥ śarīraṃ kapha-vāta-jaiḥ || 6 || pittena piṭikā vṛttā pakvodumbara-saṃnibhā | mahā-dāha-jvara-karī vivṛtā vivṛtānanā || 7 || gātreṣv antaś ca vaktrasya dāha-jvara-rujānvitāḥ | masūra-mātrās tad-varṇās tat-saṃjñāḥ piṭikā ghanāḥ || 8 || tataḥ kaṣṭa-tarāḥ sphoṭā visphoṭākhyā mahā-rujāḥ | yā padma-karṇikākārā piṭikā piṭikācitā || 9 || sā viddhā vāta-pittābhyāṃ tābhyām eva ca gardabhī | maṇḍalā vipulotsannā sa-rāga-piṭikācitā || 10 || kakṣeti kakṣāsanneṣu prāyo deśeṣu sānilāt | pittād bhavanti piṭikāḥ sūkṣmā lājopamā ghanāḥ || 11 || 31.11dv sūkṣmā jālopamā ghanāḥ tādṛśī mahatī tv ekā gandha-nāmeti kīrtitā | gharma-sveda-parīte 'ṅge piṭikāḥ sa-rujo ghanāḥ || 12 || rājīkā-varṇa-saṃsthāna-pramāṇā rājikāhvayāḥ | doṣaiḥ pittolbaṇair mandair visarpati visarpa-vat || 13 || śopho '-pākas tanus tāmro jvara-kṛj jāla-gardabhaḥ | malaiḥ pittolbaṇaiḥ sphoṭā jvariṇo māṃsa-dāraṇāḥ || 14 || 31.14dv jvariṇo māṃsa-dāruṇāḥ 31.14dv jvariṇo māṃsa-dāriṇaḥ kakṣā-bhāgeṣu jāyante ye 'gny-ābhāḥ sāgni-rohiṇī | pañcāhāt sapta-rātrād vā pakṣād vā hanti jīvitam || 15 || tri-liṅgā piṭikā vṛttā jatrūrdhvam irivellikā | vidārī-kanda-kaṭhinā vidārī kakṣa-vaṅkṣaṇe || 16 || medo-'nila-kaphair granthiḥ snāyu-māṃsa-sirāśrayaiḥ | bhinno vasājya-madhv-ābhaṃ sravet tatrolbaṇo 'nilaḥ || 17 || māṃsaṃ viśoṣya grathitāṃ śarkarāṃ upapādayet | dur-gandhaṃ rudhiraṃ klinnaṃ nānā-varṇaṃ tato malāḥ || 18 || 31.18cv dur-gandhi rudhiraṃ klinnaṃ tāṃ srāvayanti nicitāṃ vidyāt tac charkarārbudam | pāṇi-pāda-tale saṃdhau jatrūrdhvaṃ vopacīyate || 19 || 31.19av tāṃ srāvayanti nicitā 31.19dv jatrūrdhvaṃ copacīyate valmīka-vac chanair granthis tad-vad bahv-aṇubhir mukhaiḥ | rug-dāha-kaṇḍū-kledāḍhyair valmīko 'sau samasta-jaḥ || 20 || 31.20cv rug-dāha-kaṇḍū-kledāḍhyo śarkaronmathite pāde kṣate vā kaṇṭakādibhiḥ | granthiḥ kīla-vad utsanno jāyate kadaraṃ tu tat || 21 || vega-saṃdhāraṇād vāyur apāno 'pāna-saṃśrayam | aṇū-karoti bāhyāntar-mārgam asya tataḥ śakṛt || 22 || 31.22bv apāno 'pāna-saṃśrayaḥ kṛcchrān nirgacchati vyādhir ayaṃ ruddha-gudo mataḥ | kuryāt pittānilaṃ pākaṃ nakha-māṃse sa-rug-jvaram || 23 || cipyam a-kṣata-rogaṃ ca vidyād upa-nakhaṃ ca tam | kṛṣṇo 'bhighātād rūkṣaś ca kharaś ca ku-nakho nakhaḥ || 24 || 31.24bv vidyād upa-nakhaṃ ca tat duṣṭa-kardama-saṃsparśāt kaṇḍū-kledānvitāntarāḥ | aṅgulyo 'lasam ity āhus tilābhāṃs tila-kālakān || 25 || kṛṣṇān a-vedanāṃs tvak-sthān māṣāṃs tān eva connatān | maṣebhyas tūnnata-tarāṃś carma-kīlān sitāsitān || 26 || tathā-vidho jatu-maṇiḥ saha-jo lohitas tu saḥ | kṛṣṇaṃ sitaṃ vā saha-jaṃ maṇḍalaṃ lāñchanaṃ samam || 27 || 31.27bv sa-rujo lohitas tu saḥ śoka-krodhādi-kupitād vāta-pittān mukhe tanu | śyāmalaṃ maṇḍalaṃ vyaṅgaṃ vaktrād anya-tra nīlikā || 28 || paruṣaṃ paruṣa-sparśaṃ vyaṅgaṃ śyāvaṃ ca mārutāt | pittāt tāmrāntam ā-nīlaṃ śvetāntaṃ kaṇḍu-mat kaphāt || 29 || 31.29cv pittāt tāmraṃ tathā nīlaṃ 31.29dv śvetābhaṃ kaṇḍu-mat kaphāt raktād raktāntam ā-tāmraṃ sauṣaṃ cimicimāyate | vāyunodīritaḥ śleṣmā tvacaṃ prāpya viśuṣyati || 30 || 31.30bv mukhaṃ cimicimāyate tatas tvag jāyate pāṇduḥ krameṇa ca vi-cetanā | alpa-kaṇḍūr a-vikledā sā prasuptiḥ prasuptitaḥ || 31 || 31.31cv alpa-kaṇḍūr apa-kledā a-samyag-vamanodīrṇa-pitta-śleṣmānna-nigrahaiḥ | maṇḍalāny ati-kaṇḍūni rāga-vanti bahūni ca || 32 || utkoṭhaḥ so 'nubaddhas tu koṭha ity abhidhīyate | proktāḥ ṣaṭ-triṃśad ity ete kṣudra-rogā vibhāga-śaḥ || 33 || 31.33av utkoṭhaḥ so 'nubandhas tu yān a-vijñāya muhyeta cikitsāyāṃ cikitsakaḥ || 33+(1)ab || Uttarasthāna visrāvayej jalaukobhir a-pakvām ajagallikām | svedayitvā yava-prakhyāṃ vilayāya pralepayet || 1 || dāru-kuṣṭha-manohvālair ity ā-pāṣāṇa-gardabhāt | vidhis tāṃś cācaret pakvān vraṇa-vat sājagallikān || 2 || lodhra-kustumburu-vacāḥ pralepo mukha-dūṣike | vaṭa-pallava-yuktā vā nārikelottha-śuktayaḥ || 3 || 32.3av lodhra-kustumburu-vacā- 32.3bv -pralepo mukha-dūṣike a-śāntau vamanaṃ nasyaṃ lalāṭe ca sirā-vyadhaḥ | nimbāmbu-vānto nimbāmbu-sādhitaṃ padma-kaṇṭake || 4 || pibet kṣaudrānvitaṃ sarpir nimbāragvadha-lepanam || 5ab || 32.5bv nimbāragvadha-lepanaḥ vivṛtādīṃs tu jālāntāṃś cikitset serivellikān || 5cd || 32.5dv cikitsed irivellikām pitta-visarpa-vat tad-vat pratyākhyāyāgni-rohiṇīm || 5ef || vilaṅghanaṃ rakta-vimokṣaṇaṃ ca virūkṣaṇaṃ kāya-viśodhanaṃ ca | dhātrī-prayogāñ chiśira-pradehān kuryāt sadā jālaka-gardabhasya || 6 || 32.6bv virūkṣaṇaṃ kāya-virecanaṃ ca 32.6cv dhātrī-pradehāñ chiśira-prayogān vidārikāṃ hṛte rakte śleṣma-granthi-vad ācaret | medo-'rbuda-kriyāṃ kuryāt su-tarāṃ śarkarārbude || 7 || pravṛddhaṃ su-bahu-cchidraṃ sa-śophaṃ marmaṇi sthitam | valmīkaṃ hasta-pāde ca varjayed itarat punaḥ || 8 || 32.8dv varjayed itaraṃ punaḥ śuddhasyāsre hṛte limpet sa-paṭv-ārevatāmṛtaiḥ | śyāmā-kulatthikā-mūla-dantī-palala-saktubhiḥ || 9 || 32.9bv sa-paṭv-āragvadhāmṛtaiḥ pakve tu duṣṭa-māṃsāni gatīḥ sarvāś ca śodhayet | śastreṇa samyag anu ca kṣāreṇa jvalanena vā || 10 || śastreṇotkṛtya niḥ-śeṣaṃ snehena kadaraṃ dahet | niruddha-maṇi-vat kāryaṃ ruddha-pāyoś cikitsitam || 11 || 32.11av śastreṇoddhṛtya niḥ-śeṣaṃ cipyaṃ śuddhyā jitoṣmāṇaṃ sādhayec chastra-karmaṇā | duṣṭaṃ ku-nakham apy evaṃ caraṇāv alase punaḥ || 12 || dhānyāmla-siktau kāsīsa-paṭolī-rocanā-tilaiḥ | sa-nimba-pattrair ālimped dahet tu tila-kālakān || 13 || maṣāṃś ca sūrya-kāntena kṣāreṇa yadi vāgninā | tad-vad utkṛtya śastreṇa carma-kīla-jatū-maṇī || 14 || lāñchanādi-traye kuryād yathāsannaṃ sirā-vyadham | lepayet kṣīra-piṣṭaiś ca kṣīri-vṛkṣa-tvag-aṅkuraiḥ || 15 || 32.15av nyacchādi-tritaye kuryād vyaṅgeṣu cārjuna-tvag vā mañjiṣṭhā vā sa-mākṣikā | lepaḥ sa-nava-nītā vā śvetāśva-khura-jā maṣī || 16 || 32.16av vyaṅgeṣu vārjuna-tvag vā rakta-candana-mañjiṣṭhā-kuṣṭha-lodhra-priyaṅgavaḥ | vaṭāṅkurā masūrāś ca vyaṅga-ghnā mukha-kānti-dāḥ || 17 || dve jīrake kṛṣṇa-tilāḥ sarṣapāḥ payasā saha | piṣṭāḥ kurvanti vaktrendum apāsta-vyaṅga-lāñchanam || 18 || kṣīra-piṣṭā ghṛta-kṣaudra-yuktā vā bhṛṣṭa-nis-tuṣāḥ | masūrāḥ kṣīra-piṣṭā vā tīkṣṇāḥ śālmali-kaṇṭakāḥ || 19 || sa-guḍaḥ kola-majjā vā śaśāsṛk-kṣaudra-kalkitaḥ | saptāhaṃ mātuluṅga-sthaṃ kuṣṭhaṃ vā madhunānvitam || 20 || 32.20dv kuṣṭhaṃ vā madhukānvitam piṣṭā vā chāga-payasā sa-kṣaudrā mausalī jaṭā | gor asthi musalī-mūla-yuktaṃ vā sājya-mākṣikam || 21 || jambv-āmra-pallavā mastu haridre dve navo guḍaḥ | lepaḥ sa-varṇa-kṛt piṣṭaṃ sva-rasena ca tindukam || 22 || utpalam utpala-kuṣṭhaṃ priyaṅgu-kālīyakaṃ badara-majjā | idam udvartanam āsyaṃ karoti śatapattra-saṃkāśam || 23 || 32.23av utpala-pattraṃ tagaraṃ 32.23dv karoti śatapattrakākāram ebhir evauṣadhaiḥ piṣṭair mukhābhyaṅgāya sādhayet | yathā-doṣartukān snehān madhuka-kvātha-saṃyutaiḥ || 24 || yavān sarja-rasaṃ lodhram uśīraṃ madanaṃ madhu | ghṛtaṃ guḍaṃ ca go-mūtre paced ā-darvi-lepanāt || 25 || 32.25bv uśīraṃ candanaṃ madhu tad abhyaṅgān nihanty āśu nīlikā-vyaṅga-dūṣikān | mukhaṃ karoti padmābhaṃ pādau padma-dalopamau || 26 || 32.26bv nīlikā-vyaṅga-dūṣakān kuṅkumośīra-kālīya-lākṣā-yaṣṭy-āhva-candanam | nyagrodha-pādāṃs taruṇān padmakaṃ padma-kesaram || 27 || sa-nīlotpala-mañjiṣṭhaṃ pālikaṃ salilāḍhake | paktvā pādāvaśeṣeṇa tena piṣṭaiś ca kārṣikaiḥ || 28 || lākṣā-pattaṅga-mañjiṣṭhā-yaṣṭīmadhuka-kuṅkumaiḥ | ajā-kṣīraṃ dvi-guṇitaṃ tailasya kuḍavaṃ pacet || 29 || 32.29cv ajā-kṣīra-dvi-guṇitaṃ nīlikā-palita-vyaṅga-valī-tilaka-dūṣikān | hanti tan nasyam abhyastaṃ mukhopacaya-varṇa-kṛt || 30 || mañjiṣṭhā śabarodbhavas tubarikā lākṣā haridrā-dvayaṃ || 31a || nepālī haritāla-kuṅkuma-gadā go-rocanā gairikam || 31b || 32.31bv nepālī haritāla-kuṅkuma-gadaṃ go-rocanā gairikam pattraṃ pāṇḍu vaṭasya candana-yugaṃ kālīyakaṃ pāradaṃ || 31c || pattaṅgaṃ kanaka-tvacaṃ kamala-jaṃ bījaṃ tathā kesaram || 31d || sikthaṃ tutthaṃ padmakādyo vasājyaṃ majjā kṣīraṃ kṣīri-vṛkṣāmbu cāgnau | siddhaṃ siddhaṃ vyaṅga-nīly-ādi-nāśe vaktre chāyām aindavīṃ cāśu dhatte || 32 || mārkava-sva-rasa-kṣīra-toyānīṣṭāni nāvane | prasuptau vāta-kuṣṭhoktaṃ kuryād dāhaṃ ca vahninā || 33 || 32.33bv -toya-piṣṭāni nāvane utkoṭhe kapha-pittoktaṃ koṭhe sarvaṃ ca kauṣṭhikam || 33ū̆ab || Uttarasthāna strī-vyavāya-nivṛttasya sahasā bhajato 'tha-vā | doṣādhyuṣita-saṃkīrṇa-malināṇu-rajaḥ-pathām || 1 || 33.1av strīṃ vyavāya-nivṛttasya anya-yonim an-icchantīm a-gamyāṃ nava-sūtikām | dūṣitaṃ spṛśatas toyaṃ ratānteṣv api naiva vā || 2 || vivardhayiṣayā tīkṣṇān pralepādīn prayacchataḥ | muṣṭi-danta-nakhotpīḍā-viṣa-vac-chūka-pātanaiḥ || 3 || 33.3dv -viṣa-val-lūka-pātanaiḥ vega-nigraha-dīrghāti-khara-sparśa-vighaṭṭanaiḥ | doṣā duṣṭā gatā guhyaṃ trayo-viṃśatim āmayān || 4 || 33.4bv -khara-sparśādi-ghaṭṭanaiḥ 33.4bv -khara-śaṣpādi-ghaṭṭanaiḥ janayanty upadaṃśādīn upadaṃśo 'tra pañca-dhā | pṛthag doṣaiḥ sa-rudhiraiḥ samastaiś cātra mārutāt || 5 || 33.5av janayanty avadaṃśādīn 33.5bv avadaṃśo 'tra pañca-dhā meḍhre śopho rujaś citrāḥ stambhas tvak-paripoṭanam | pakvodumbara-saṃkāśaḥ pittena śvayathur jvaraḥ || 6 || 33.6av meḍhra-śopho rujaś citrāḥ śleṣmaṇā kaṭhinaḥ snigdhaḥ kaṇḍū-māñ chītalo guruḥ | śoṇitenāsita-sphoṭa-saṃbhavo 'sra-srutir jvaraḥ || 7 || sarva-je sarva-liṅga-tvaṃ śvayathur muṣkayor api | tīvrā rug āśu-pacanaṃ daraṇaṃ kṛmi-saṃbhavaḥ || 8 || 33.8dv dāraṇaṃ kṛmi-saṃbhavaḥ yāpyo raktodbhavas teṣāṃ mṛtyave saṃnipāta-jaḥ | jāyante kupitair doṣair guhyāsṛk-piśitāśrayaiḥ || 9 || antar bahir vā meḍhrasya kaṇḍūlā māṃsa-kīlakāḥ | picchilāsra-sravā yonau tad-vac ca cchattra-saṃnibhāḥ || 10 || te 'rśāṃsy upekṣayā ghnanti meḍhra-puṃs-tvaṃ bhagārtavaṃ | guhyasya bahir antar vā piṭikāḥ kapha-rakta-jāḥ || 11 || 33.11bv meḍhra-puṃs-tva-bhagārtavaṃ 33.11bv meḍhraṃ puṃso bhagārtavaṃ sarṣapā-māna-saṃsthānā ghanāḥ sarṣapikāḥ smṛtāḥ | piṭikā bahavo dīrghā dīryante madhyataś ca yāḥ || 12 || so 'vamanthaḥ kaphāsṛgbhyāṃ vedanā-roma-harṣa-vān | kumbhīkā rakta-pittotthā jāmbavāsthi-nibhāśu-jā || 13 || 33.13dv jāmbavāsthi-nibhā-śubhā alajīṃ meha-vad vidyād uttamāṃ pitta-rakta-jām | piṭikāṃ māṣa-mudgābhāṃ piṭikā piṭikācitā || 14 || 33.14bv uttamāṃ rakta-pitta-jām karṇikā puṣkarasyeva jñeyā puṣkariketi sā | pāṇibhyāṃ bhṛśa-saṃvyūḍhe saṃvyūḍha-piṭikā bhavet || 15 || mṛditaṃ mṛditaṃ vastra-saṃrabdhaṃ vāta-kopataḥ | viṣamā kaṭhinā bhugnā vāyunāṣṭhīlikā smṛtā || 16 || 33.16av mṛditaṃ mṛditaṃ yat tu 33.16av mṛditaṃ mṛditaṃ vastu 33.16bv saṃrabdhaṃ vāta-kopataḥ vimardanādi-duṣṭena vāyunā carma meḍhra-jam | nivartate sa-rug-dāhaṃ kva-cit pākaṃ ca gacchati || 17 || 33.17dv kva-cit pākaṃ na gacchati piṇḍitaṃ granthitaṃ carma tat pralambam adho maṇeḥ | nivṛtta-saṃjñaṃ sa-kaphaṃ kaṇḍū-kāṭhinya-vat tu tat || 18 || 33.18av piṇḍitaṃ granthitaṃ tac ca 33.18bv vipralambam adho maṇeḥ 33.18bv pravilambam adho maṇeḥ dur-ūḍhaṃ sphuṭitaṃ carma nirdiṣṭam avapāṭikā | vātena dūṣitaṃ carma maṇau saktaṃ ruṇaddhi cet || 19 || 33.19av duḥ-sahaṃ sphuṭitaṃ carma 33.19bv maṇau saktaṃ ruṇaddhi tat sroto mūtraṃ tato 'bhyeti manda-dhāram a-vedanam | maṇer vikāśa-rodhaś ca sa niruddha-maṇir gadaḥ || 20 || liṅgaṃ śūkair ivāpūrṇaṃ grathitākhyaṃ kaphodbhavam | śūka-dūṣita-raktotthā sparśa-hānis tad-āhvayā || 21 || chidrair aṇu-mukhair yat tu mehanaṃ sarvataś citam | vāta-śoṇita-kopena taṃ vidyāc chata-ponakam || 22 || pittāsṛgbhyāṃ tvacaḥ pākas tvak-pāko jvara-dāha-vān | māṃs-pākaḥ sarva-jaḥ sarva-vedano māṃsa-śātanaḥ || 23 || sa-rāgair asitaiḥ sphoṭaiḥ piṭikābhiś ca pīḍitam | mehanaṃ vedanā cogrā taṃ vidyād asṛg-arbudam || 24 || māṃsārbudaṃ prāg uditaṃ vidradhiś ca tri-doṣa-jaḥ | kṛṣṇāni bhūtvā māṃsāni viśīryante samantataḥ || 25 || pakvāni saṃnipātena tān vidyāt tila-kālakān | māṃsottham arbudaṃ pākaṃ vidradhiṃ tila-kālakān || 26 || caturo varjayed eṣāṃ śeṣāñ chīghram upācaret | viṃśatir vyāpado yoner jāyante duṣṭa-bhojanāt || 27 || viṣama-sthāṅga-śayana-bhṛśa-maithuna-sevanaiḥ | duṣṭārtavād apadravair bīja-doṣeṇa daivataḥ || 28 || 33.28cv duṣṭārtavād upadravair yonau kruddho 'nilaḥ kuryād ruk-todāyāma-supta-tāḥ | pipīlikā-sṛptim iva stambhaṃ karkaśa-tāṃ svanam || 29 || 33.29cv pipīlikā-gatim iva phenilāruṇa-kṛṣṇālpa-tanu-rūkṣārtava-srutim | sraṃsaṃ vaṅkṣaṇa-pārśvādau vyathāṃ gulmaṃ krameṇa ca || 30 || 33.30cv ūru-vaṅkṣaṇa-pārśvādau 33.30cv bhṛśaṃ vaṅkṣaṇa-pārśvādau tāṃs tāṃś ca svān gadān vyāpad vātikī nāma sā smṛtā | saivāti-caraṇā śopha-saṃyuktāti-vyavāyataḥ || 31 || 33.31av tāṃs tāṃś ca sva-gadān vyāpad 33.31av tāṃs tān svāṃs svān gadān vyāpad maithunād ati-bālāyāḥ pṛṣṭha-jaṅghoru-vaṅkṣaṇam | rujan saṃdūṣayed yoniṃ vāyuḥ prāk-caraṇeti sā || 32 || vegodāvartanād yoniṃ prapīḍayati mārutaḥ | sā phenilaṃ rajaḥ kṛcchrād udāvṛttaṃ vimuñcati || 33 || 33.33av vegenāvartanād yoniṃ 33.33dv udāvartaṃ vimuñcati 33.33dv udāvartya vimuñcati iyaṃ vyāpad udāvṛttā jāta-ghnī tu yadānilaḥ | jātaṃ jātaṃ sutaṃ hanti raukṣyād duṣṭārtavodbhavam || 34 || 33.34av iyaṃ vyāpad udāvartā aty-āśitāyā viṣamaṃ sthitāyāḥ su-rate marut | annenotpīḍito yoneḥ sthitaḥ srotasi vakrayet || 35 || sāsthi-māṃsaṃ mukhaṃ tīvra-rujam antar-mukhīti sā | vātalāhāra-sevinyāṃ jananyāṃ kupito 'nilaḥ || 36 || 33.36bv -rujaṃ vakra-mukhīti sā striyo yonim aṇu-dvārāṃ kuryāt sūcī-mukhīti sā | vega-rodhād ṛtau vāyur duṣṭo viṇ-mūtra-saṃgraham || 37 || karoti yoneḥ śoṣaṃ ca śuṣkākhyā sāti-vedanā | ṣaḍ-ahāt sapta-rātrād vā śukraṃ garbhāśayān marut || 38 || vamet sa-ruṅ nī-rujo vā yasyāḥ sā vāminī matā | yonau vātopataptāyāṃ strī-garbhe bīja-doṣataḥ || 39 || 33.39av vamet sa-ruṅ nī-rujo vā hy 33.39bv yasyāṃ sā vāminī matā 33.39bv asyāṃ sā vāminī matā nṛ-dveṣiṇy a-stanī ca syāt ṣaṇḍha-saṃjñān-upakramā | duṣṭo viṣṭabhya yony-āsyaṃ garbha-koṣṭhaṃ ca mārutaḥ || 40 || kurute vivṛtāṃ srastāṃ vātikīm iva duḥkhitām | utsanna-māṃsāṃ tām āhur mahā-yoniṃ mahā-rujām || 41 || yathā-svair dūṣaṇair duṣṭaṃ pittaṃ yonim upāśritam | karoti dāha-pākoṣā-pūti-gandhi-jvarānvitām || 42 || 33.42dv -pūti-gandha-jvarānvitām 33.42dv -pūti-gandhāṃ jvarānvitām bhṛśoṣṇa-bhūri-kuṇapa-nīla-pītāsitārtavām | sā vyāpat paittikī rakta-yony-ākhyāsṛg-ati-sruteḥ || 43 || kapho 'bhiṣyandibhiḥ kruddhaḥ kuryād yonim a-vedanām | śītalāṃ kaṇḍulāṃ pāṇḍu-picchilāṃ tad-vidha-srutim || 44 || sā vyāpac chlaiṣmikī vāta-pittābhyāṃ kṣīyate rajaḥ | sa-dāha-kārśya-vaivarṇyaṃ yasyāḥ sā lohita-kṣayā || 45 || 33.45dv yasyāṃ sā lohita-kṣayā pittalāyā nṛ-saṃvāse kṣavathūdgāra-dhāraṇāt | pitta-yuktena marutā yonir bhavati dūṣitā || 46 || śūnā sparśā-sahā sārtir nīla-pītāsra-vāhinī | vasti-kukṣi-guru-tvātīsārā-rocaka-kāriṇī || 47 || śroṇi-vaṅkṣaṇa-ruk-toda-jvara-kṛt sā pariplutā | vāta-śleṣmāmaya-vyāptā śveta-picchila-vāhinī || 48 || upaplutā smṛtā yonir viplutākhyā tv a-dhāvanāt | saṃjāta-jantuḥ kaṇḍūlā kaṇḍvā cāti-rati-priyā || 49 || a-kāla-vāhanād vāyuḥ śleṣma-rakta-vimūrchitaḥ | karṇikāṃ janayed yonau rajo-mārga-nirodhinīm || 50 || sā karṇinī tribhir doṣair yoni-garbhāśayāśritaiḥ | yathā-svopadrava-karair vyāpat sā sāṃnipātikī || 51 || iti yoni-gadā nārī yaiḥ śukraṃ na pratīcchati | tato garbhaṃ na gṛhṇāti rogāṃś cāpnoti dāruṇān || 52 || asṛg-darārśo-gulmādīn ābādhāṃś cānilādibhiḥ || 52ū̆ab || 33.52ū̆bv ābādhāś cānilādibhiḥ Uttarasthāna meḍhra-madhye sirāṃ vidhyed upadaṃśe navotthite | śītāṃ kuryāt kriyāṃ śuddhiṃ virekeṇa viśeṣataḥ || 1 || 34.1bv avadaṃśe navotthite tila-kalka-ghṛta-kṣaudrair lepaḥ pakve tu pāṭite | jambv-āmra-sumano-nīpa-śveta-kāmbojikāṅkurān || 2 || śallakī-badarī-bilva-palāśa-tiniśodbhavāḥ | tvacaḥ kṣīri-drumāṇāṃ ca tri-phalāṃ ca pacej jale || 3 || sa kvāthaḥ kṣālanaṃ tena pakvaṃ tailaṃ ca ropaṇam | tuttha-gairika-lodhrailā-manohvāla-rasāñjanaiḥ || 4 || 34.4av sa kvāthaḥ kṣālane tena hareṇu-puṣpa-kāsīsa-saurāṣṭrī-lavaṇottamaiḥ | lepaḥ kṣaudra-drutaiḥ sūkṣmair upadaṃśa-vraṇāpahaḥ || 5 || 34.5dv avadaṃśa-vraṇāpahaḥ kapāle tri-phalā dagdhā sa-ghṛtā ropaṇaṃ param | sāmānyaṃ sādhanam idaṃ prati-doṣaṃ tu śopha-vat || 6 || na ca yāti yathā pākaṃ prayateta tathā bhṛśam | pakvaiḥ snāyu-sirā-māṃsaiḥ prāyo naśyati hi dhvajaḥ || 7 || arśasāṃ chinna-dagdhānāṃ kriyā kāryopadaṃśa-vat | sarṣapā likhitāḥ sūkṣmaiḥ kaṣāyair avacūrṇayet || 8 || 34.8bv kriyā kāryāvadaṃśa-vat 34.8cv sarṣapāṃ likhitāṃ sūkṣmaiḥ tair evābhyañjanaṃ tailaṃ sādhayed vraṇa-ropaṇam | kriyeyam avamanthe 'pi raktaṃ srāvyaṃ tathobhayoḥ || 9 || kumbhīkāyāṃ hared raktaṃ pakvāyāṃ śodhite vraṇe | tinduka-tri-phalā-lodhrair lepas tailaṃ ca ropaṇam || 10 || alajyāṃ sruta-raktāyām ayam eva kriyā-kramaḥ | uttamākhyāṃ tu piṭikāṃ saṃchidya baḍiśoddhṛtām || 11 || kalkaiś cūrṇaiḥ kaṣāyāṇāṃ kṣaudra-yuktair upācaret | kramaḥ pitta-visarpoktaḥ puṣkara-vyūḍhayor hitaḥ || 12 || tvak-pāke sparśa-hānyāṃ ca secayed mṛditaṃ punaḥ | balā-tailena koṣṇena madhuraiś copanāhayet || 13 || 34.13av tvak-pāke sparśa-hānyau vā aṣṭhīlikāṃ hṛte rakte śleṣma-granthi-vad ācaret | nivṛttaṃ sarpiṣābhyajya svedayitvopanāhayet || 14 || tri-rātraṃ pañca-rātraṃ vā su-snigdhaiḥ śālvaṇādibhiḥ | svedayitvā tato bhūyaḥ snigdhaṃ carma samānayet || 15 || 34.15dv snigdhaṃ carma samāharet maṇiṃ prapīḍya śanakaiḥ praviṣṭe copanāhanam | maṇau punaḥ punaḥ snigdhaṃ bhojanaṃ cātra śasyate || 16 || ayam eva prayojyaḥ syād avapāṭyām api kramaḥ | nāḍīm ubhayato-dvārāṃ niruddhe jatunā sṛtām || 17 || 34.17dv niruddhe jatunā śṛtām 34.17dv niruddhe jatunā kṛtām snehāktāṃ srotasi nyasya siñcet snehaiś calāpahaiḥ | try-ahāt try-ahāt sthūla-tarāṃ nyasya nāḍīṃ vivardhayet || 18 || sroto-dvāram a-siddhau tu vidvān śastreṇa pāṭayet | sevanīṃ varjayan yuñjyāt sadyaḥ-kṣata-vidhiṃ tataḥ || 19 || 34.19av sroto-dvāram a-siddhau vā granthitaṃ sveditaṃ nāḍyā snigdhoṣṇair upanāhayet | limpet kaṣāyaiḥ sa-kṣaudrair likhitvā śata-ponakam || 20 || rakta-vidradhi-vat kāryā cikitsā śoṇitārbude | vraṇopacāraṃ sarveṣu yathāvasthaṃ prayojayet || 21 || yoni-vyāpatsu bhūyiṣṭhaṃ śasyate karma vāta-jit | snehana-sveda-vasty-ādi vāta-jāsu viśeṣataḥ || 22 || na hi vātād ṛte yonir vanitānāṃ praduṣyati | ato jitvā tam anyasya kuryād doṣasya bheṣajam || 23 || 34.23cv ato '-jitvā tam anyac ca 34.23cv ato '-jitvā tam anyasya 34.23dv na kuryād doṣa-bheṣajam pāyayeta balā-tailaṃ miśrakaṃ su-kumārakam | snigdha-svinnāṃ tathā yoniṃ duḥ-sthitāṃ sthāpayet samām || 24 || 34.24av pāyayec ca balā-tailaṃ 34.24av pāyayet tāṃ balā-tailaṃ 34.24av pāyayed vā balā-tailaṃ pāṇinā namayej jihmāṃ saṃvṛtāṃ vyadhayet punaḥ | praveśayen niḥsṛtāṃ ca vivṛtāṃ parivartayet || 25 || 34.25av pāṇinā nāmayej jihmāṃ 34.25av pāṇinonnamayej jihmāṃ 34.25bv saṃvṛtāṃ vyāsayet punaḥ sthānāpavṛttā yonir hi śalya-bhūtā striyo matā | karmabhir vamanādyaiś ca mṛdubhir yojayet striyam || 26 || 34.26av sthānāpavartā yonir hi sarvataḥ su-viśuddhāyāḥ śeṣaṃ karma vidhīyate | vasty-abhyaṅga-parīṣeka-pralepa-picu-dhāraṇam || 27 || 34.27av sarvatas tu viśuddhāyāḥ kāśmarya-tri-phalā-drākṣā-kāsamarda-niśā-dvayaiḥ | guḍūcī-sairyakābhīru-śukanāsā-punarnavaiḥ || 28 || 34.28cv guḍūcī-gairikābhīru- parūṣakaiś ca vipacet prastham akṣa-samair ghṛtāt | yoni-vāta-vikāra-ghnaṃ tat pītaṃ garbha-daṃ param || 29 || 34.29av parūṣakaiś ca vipaced 34.29bv prastham akṣa-samair ghṛtam 34.29bv akṣaiḥ prastha-samaṃ ghṛtam vacopakuñcikājājī-kṛṣṇā-vṛṣaka-saindhavam | ajamodā-yava-kṣāra-śarkarā-citrakānvitam || 30 || piṣṭvā prasannayāloḍya khādet tad ghṛta-bharjitam | yoni-pārśvārti-hṛd-roga-gulmārśo-vinivṛttaye || 31 || 34.31dv -gulmārśo-'rti-nivṛttaye vṛṣakaṃ mātuluṅgasya mūlāni madayantikām | piben madyaiḥ sa-lavaṇais tathā kṛṣṇopakuñcike || 32 || 34.32av vṛṣasya mātuluṅgasya 34.32dv tathā kṛṣṇopakuñcikā rāsnā-śvadaṃṣṭrā-vṛṣakaiḥ śṛtaṃ śūla-haraṃ payaḥ | guḍūcī-tri-phalā-dantī-kvāthaiś ca pariṣecanam || 33 || nata-vārtākinī-kuṣṭha-saindhavāmaradārubhiḥ | tailāt prasādhitād dhāryaḥ picur yonau rujāpahaḥ || 34 || pittalānāṃ tu yonīnāṃ sekābhyaṅga-picu-kriyāḥ | śītāḥ pitta-jitaḥ kāryāḥ snehanārthaṃ ghṛtāni ca || 35 || 34.35av pittalānāṃ ca yonīnāṃ śatāvarī-mūla-tulā-catuṣkāt kṣuṇṇa-pīḍitāt | rasena kṣīra-tulyena pācayeta ghṛtāḍhakam || 36 || jīvanīyaiḥ śatāvaryā mṛdvīkābhiḥ parūṣakaiḥ | piṣṭaiḥ priyālaiś cākṣāṃśair dvi-balā-madhukānvitaiḥ || 37 || 34.37dv madhukarddhi-balānvitaiḥ siddha-śīte tu madhunaḥ pippalyāś ca palāṣṭakam | śarkarāyā daśa-palaṃ kṣipel lihyāt picuṃ tataḥ || 38 || yony-asṛk-śukra-doṣa-ghnaṃ vṛṣyaṃ puṃ-savanaṃ param | kṣataṃ kṣayam asṛk-pittaṃ kāsaṃ śvāsaṃ halīmakam || 39 || 34.39cv kṣata-kṣayam asṛk-pittaṃ kāmalāṃ vāta-rudhiraṃ visarpaṃ hṛc-chiro-graham | apasmārārditāyāma-madonmādāṃś ca nāśayet || 40 || 34.40cv apasmārārditāyāmān 34.40dv madonmādāṃś ca nāśayet evam eva payaḥ-sarpir jīvanīyopasādhitam | garbha-daṃ pitta-jānāṃ ca rogāṇāṃ paramaṃ hitam || 41 || balā-droṇa-dvaya-kvāthe ghṛta-tailāḍhakaṃ pacet | kṣīre catur-guṇe kṛṣṇā-kākanāsā-sitānvitaiḥ || 42 || jīvantī-kṣīra-kākolī-sthirā-vīrarddhi-jīvakaiḥ | payasyā-śrāvaṇī-mudga-pīlu-māṣākhya-parṇibhiḥ || 43 || 34.43bv -sthirā-vīrarddhi-jīrakaiḥ 34.43bv -sthirā-vīrā-dvi-jīvakaiḥ 34.43dv -pīlu-māṣākhukarṇibhiḥ vāta-pittāmayān hatvā pānād garbhaṃ dadhāti tat | rakta-yonyām asṛg-varṇair anubandham avekṣya ca || 44 || 34.44bv pānād garbhaṃ dadāti tat yathā-doṣodayaṃ yuñjyād rakta-sthāpanam auṣadham | pāṭhāṃ jambv-āmrayor asthi śilodbhedaṃ rasāñjanam || 45 || mañjiṣṭhāguru-kaṭphala-musta-priyaṅgu-miśi-kuṣṭhaiḥ | kaṭvaṅga-kuṭaja-śābara-kakubha-tvaṅ-madhuka-padmaka-madhūkaiḥ || 45.1+1 || 34.45.1+1av mañjiṣṭhā-madhu-kaṭphala- kuṅkuma-bilvātiviṣā-mākṣīka-rasāñjanaiḥ sa-kiñjalkaiḥ | piṣṭair ghṛtaṃ vipakvaṃ dvi-guṇāja-kṣīra-saṃyuktam || 45.1+2 || strīṇām apatya-jananaṃ yoni-rujā-doṣa-jit sadā yuñjyāt | uttara-vastiṣu sarpir yojyaṃ kalyāṇakaṃ nāma || 45.1+3 || ambaṣṭhāṃ śālmalī-picchāṃ samaṅgāṃ vatsaka-tvacam | bāhlīka-bilvātiviṣā-lodhra-toyada-gairikam || 46 || 34.46bv samaṅgāṃ vatsaka-tvacām śuṇṭhī-madhūka-mācīka-rakta-candana-kaṭphalam | kaṭvaṅga-vatsakānantā-dhātakī-madhukārjunam || 47 || 34.47av śuṇṭhī-madhuka-mācīka- 34.47av śuṇṭhī-madhuka-mādhvīka- 34.47av śuṇṭhī-madhuka-mārdvīka- 34.47av śuṇṭhī-madhuka-mārdvīkā- 34.47av śuṇṭhī-madhūka-mṛdvīkā- 34.47dv -dhātakī-madhukāñjanam puṣye gṛhītvā saṃcūrṇya sa-kṣaudraṃ taṇḍulāmbhasā | pibed arśaḥsv atīsāre raktaṃ yaś copaveśyate || 48 || 34.48bv sa-kṣaudraṃ taṇḍulāmbunā doṣā jantu-kṛtā ye ca bālānāṃ tāṃś ca nāśayet | yoni-doṣaṃ rajo-doṣaṃ śyāva-śvetāruṇāsitam || 49 || 34.49av doṣā danta-kṛtā ye ca cūrṇaṃ puṣyānugaṃ nāma hitam ātreya-pūjitam | yonyāṃ balāsa-duṣṭāyāṃ sarvaṃ rūkṣoṣṇam auṣadham || 50 || dhātaky-āmalakī-pattra-sroto-ja-madhukotpalaiḥ | jambv-āmra-sāra-kāsīsa-lodhra-kaṭphala-tindukaiḥ || 51 || saurāṣṭrikā-dāḍima-tvag-udumbara-śalāṭubhiḥ | akṣa-mātrair ajā-mūtre kṣīre ca dvi-guṇe pacet || 52 || taila-prasthaṃ tad abhyaṅga-picu-vastiṣu yojayet | tena śūnonnatā stabdhā picchilā srāviṇī tathā || 53 || 34.53cv śūnottānonnatā stabdhā viplutopaplutā yoniḥ sidhyet sa-sphoṭa-śūlinī | yavānnam abhayāriṣṭaṃ sīdhu tailaṃ ca śīlayet || 54 || 34.54bv sidhyeta sphoṭa-śūlinī pippaly-ayo-rajaḥ-pathyā-prayogāṃś ca sa-mākṣikān | kāsīsaṃ tri-phalā kāṅkṣī sāmra-jambv-asthi dhātakī || 55 || 34.55cv kāsīsaṃ tri-phalā kācchī paicchilye kṣaudra-saṃyuktaś cūrṇo vaiśadya-kārakaḥ | palāśa-dhātakī-jambū-samaṅgā-moca-sarja-jaḥ || 56 || dur-gandhe picchile klede stambhanaś cūrṇa iṣyate | āragvadhādi-vargasya kaṣāyaḥ pariṣecanam || 57 || 34.57dv kaṣāyaḥ pariṣecane stabdhānāṃ karkaśānāṃ ca kāryaṃ mārdava-kārakam | dhāraṇaṃ vesavārasya kṛśarā-pāyasasya ca || 58 || dur-gandhānāṃ kaṣāyaḥ syāt tailaṃ vā kalka eva vā | cūrṇo vā sarva-gandhānāṃ pūti-gandhāpakarṣaṇaḥ || 59 || 34.59dv pūti-gandhy-apakarṣaṇaḥ śleṣmalānāṃ kaṭu-prāyāḥ sa-mūtrā vastayo hitāḥ | pitte sa-madhuka-kṣīrā vāte tailāmla-saṃyutāḥ || 60 || saṃnipāta-samutthāyāḥ karma sādhāraṇaṃ hitam | evaṃ yoniṣu śuddhāsu garbhaṃ vindanti yoṣitaḥ || 61 || 34.61av saṃnipāta-samutthāyāṃ 34.61dv garbho bhavati yoṣitām candano natayośīra-tiktā-padmebha-kesaraiḥ | kuṭaja-tvak-phalaṃ mustaṃ jambv-āmrāsthi rasāñjanam || 61.1+1 || 34.61.1+1bv -tiktā-padmebha-kesaram padmakotpala-bilvābda-kaṭphalaiḥ sādhitā niśā | dhātaky-ativiṣā-māṃsī-pāṭhā-moca-rasodakam || 61.1+2 || madhūkaṃ madhukānantā-śārivā-dāḍima-[tva]cam | mṛl-lodhrārjuna-śaileya-samaṅgā nāgarāḥ samāḥ || 61.1+3 || cūrṇaṃ śreṣṭhāmbunā pītaṃ hanti lohita-mehinam | mūrchā-tṛṣṇā-jvarārtāya raktātīsāra-mehinām || 61.1+4 || strīṇām asṛg-daraṃ yāti garbha-saṃsthāpanaṃ param || 61.1+5ab || a-duṣṭe prākṛte bīje jīvopakramaṇe sati | pañca-karma-viśuddhasya puruṣasyāpi cendriyam || 62 || parīkṣya varṇair doṣāṇāṃ duṣṭaṃ tad-ghnair upācaret | mañjiṣṭhā-kuṣṭha-tagara-tri-phalā-śarkarā-vacāḥ || 63 || rasaṃ śirīṣa-pattrāṇāṃ kalkaṃ ca ṣaḍ-ahaḥ pibet | kṣīropanāśinā yoṣid ṛtu-snātā sutārthinī || 63.1+1 || dve niśe madhukaṃ medāṃ dīpyakaṃ kaṭu-rohiṇīm | payasyā-hiṅgu-kākolī-vājigandhā-śatāvarīḥ || 64 || 34.64av dve niśe madhukaṃ medā 34.64bv dīpyakaḥ kaṭu-rohiṇī 34.64cv payasyā hiṅgu kākolī 34.64dv vājigandhā śatāvarī piṣṭvākṣāṃśā ghṛta-prasthaṃ pacet kṣīra-catur-guṇam | yoni-śukra-pradoṣeṣu tat sarveṣu praśasyate || 65 || 34.65av piṣṭvākṣāṃśair ghṛta-prasthaṃ 34.65bv pacet kṣīraṃ catur-guṇam 34.65bv pacet kṣīre catur-guṇe 34.65dv tat sarveṣu ca śasyate āyuṣyaṃ pauṣṭikaṃ medhyaṃ dhanyaṃ puṃ-savanaṃ param | phala-sarpir iti khyātaṃ puṣpe pītaṃ phalāya yat || 66 || mriyamāṇa-prajānāṃ ca garbhiṇīnāṃ ca pūjitam | etat paraṃ ca bālānāṃ graha-ghnaṃ deha-vardhanam || 67 || Uttarasthāna mathyamāne jala-nidhāv amṛtārthaṃ surāsuraiḥ | jātaḥ prāg amṛtotpatteḥ puruṣo ghora-darśanaḥ || 1 || dīpta-tejāś catur-daṃṣṭro hari-keśo 'nalekṣaṇaḥ | jagad viṣaṇṇaṃ taṃ dṛṣṭvā tenāsau viṣa-saṃjñitaḥ || 2 || 35.2bv harit-keśo 'nalekṣaṇaḥ 35.2dv tenāsau viṣa-saṃjñakaḥ huṅ-kṛto brahmaṇā mūrtī tataḥ sthāvara-jaṅgame | so 'dhyatiṣṭhan nijaṃ rūpam ujjhitvā vañcanātmakam || 3 || 35.3av huṅ-kṛto brahmaṇā mūrtas 35.3av huṅ-kṛto brahmaṇā mūrtīs 35.3bv tataḥ sthāvara-jaṅgamam 35.3bv tataḥ sthāvara-jaṅgamam 35.3bv tataḥ sthāvara-jaṅgamāt 35.3bv tataḥ sthāvara-jaṅgamāḥ 35.3dv ujjhitvā vañcanātmakaḥ sthiram ity ulbaṇaṃ vīrye yat kandeṣu pratiṣṭhitam | kālakūṭendravatsākhya-śṛṅgī-hālāhalādikam || 4 || sarpa-lūtādi-daṃṣṭrāsu dāruṇaṃ jaṅgamaṃ viṣam | sthāvaraṃ jaṅgamaṃ ceti viṣaṃ proktam a-kṛtrimam || 5 || kṛtrimaṃ gara-saṃjñaṃ tu kriyate vividhauṣadhaiḥ | hanti yoga-vaśenāśu cirāc cira-tarāc ca tat || 6 || śopha-pāṇḍūdaronmāda-dur-nāmādīn karoti vā | tīkṣṇoṣṇa-rūkṣa-viśadaṃ vyavāyy āśu-karaṃ laghu || 7 || 35.7bv -dur-nāmādīn karoti ca vikāṣi sūkṣmam a-vyakta-rasaṃ viṣama-pāki ca | ojaso viparītaṃ tat tīkṣṇādyair anvitaṃ guṇaiḥ || 8 || 35.8av vikāśi sūkṣmam a-vyakta- 35.8av vikāsi sūkṣmam a-vyakta- 35.8bv -rasair yuktam a-pāki ca 35.8cv ojaso viparītaṃ tu vāta-pittottaraṃ nṝṇāṃ sadyo harati jīvitam | viṣaṃ hi dehaṃ saṃprāpya prāg dūṣayati śoṇitam || 9 || kapha-pittānilāṃś cānu samaṃ doṣān sahāśayān | tato hṛdayam āsthāya dehocchedāya kalpate || 10 || 35.10bv sama-doṣaṃ sahāśayān 35.10bv samaṃ doṣān sahāya-vat 35.10bv sama-doṣaṃ sahāya-vat 35.10bv sama-doṣaṃ sahāśrayam 35.10dv deha-cchedāya kalpate sthāvarasyopayuktasya vege pūrve prajāyate | jihvāyāḥ śyāva-tā stambho mūrchā trāsaḥ klamo vamiḥ || 11 || 35.11bv vegaḥ pūrvaṃ prajāyate 35.11bv vege pūrve ca jāyate dvitīye vepathuḥ svedo dāhaḥ kaṇṭhe ca vedanā | viṣaṃ cāmāśayaṃ prāptaṃ kurute hṛdi vedanām || 12 || tālu-śoṣas tṛtīye tu śūlaṃ cāmāśaye bhṛśam | dur-bale harite śūne jāyete cāsya locane || 13 || 35.13cv dur-varṇe harite śūne 35.13cv dur-varṇe harite śūnye pakvāśaya-gate toda-hidhmā-kāsāntra-kūjanam | caturthe jāyate vege śirasaś cāti-gauravam || 14 || 35.14av pakvāśaya-gate todo 35.14bv hidhmā kāsāntra-kūjanam kapha-praseko vaivarṇyaṃ parva-bhedaś ca pañcame | sarva-doṣa-prakopaś ca pakvādhāne ca vedanā || 15 || ṣaṣṭhe saṃjñā-praṇāśaś ca su-bhṛśaṃ cātisāryate | skandha-pṛṣṭha-kaṭī-bhaṅgo bhaven mṛtyuś ca saptame || 16 || prathame viṣa-vege tu vāntaṃ śītāmbu-secinam | sarpir-madhubhyāṃ saṃyuktam a-gadaṃ pāyayed drutam || 17 || 35.17av prathame viṣa-vege 'tha dvitīye pūrva-vad vāntaṃ viriktaṃ cānupāyayet | tṛtīye '-gada-pānaṃ tu hitaṃ nasyaṃ tathāñjanam || 18 || caturthe sneha-saṃyuktam a-gadaṃ pratiyojayet | pañcame madhuka-kvātha-mākṣikābhyāṃ yutaṃ hitam || 19 || ṣaṣṭhe 'tīsāra-vad siddhir avapīḍaś tu saptame | mūrdhni kāka-padaṃ kṛtvā sāsṛg vā piśitaṃ kṣipet || 20 || 35.20bv avapīḍaś ca saptame kośātaky agnikaḥ pāṭhā sūryavally-amṛtābhayāḥ | śeluḥ śirīṣaḥ kiṇihī haridre kṣaudra-sāhvayā || 21 || 35.21bv sūryavally amṛtābhayā 35.21dv haridre kṣaudra-sāhvayam punarnave tri-kaṭukaṃ bṛhatyau śārive balā | eṣāṃ yavāgūṃ niryūhe śītāṃ sa-ghṛta-mākṣikām || 22 || 35.22av punarnavā tri-kaṭukaṃ 35.22bv bṛhatyau śārive bale yuñjyād vegāntare sarva-viṣa-ghnīṃ kṛta-karmaṇaḥ | tad-van madhūka-madhuka-padma-kesara-candanaiḥ || 23 || añjanaṃ tagaraṃ kuṣṭhaṃ haritālaṃ manaḥśilā | phalinī tri-kaṭu spṛkkā nāgapuṣpaṃ sa-kesaram || 24 || hareṇur madhukaṃ māṃsī rocanā kākamālikā | śrīveṣṭakaṃ sarja-rasaḥ śatāhvā kuṅkumaṃ balā || 25 || 35.25bv rocanā kālamālikā 35.25bv rocanā kālamañjikā tamāla-pattra-tālīśa-bhūrjośīra-niśā-dvayam | kanyopavāsinī snātā śukla-vāsā madhu-drutaiḥ || 26 || 35.26av tamāla-pattraṃ tālīśaṃ 35.26bv bhūrjośīraṃ niśā-dvayam 35.26dv śukla-vāsā madhu-plutaiḥ dvi-jān abhyarcya taiḥ puṣye kalpayed a-gadottamam | vaidyaś cātra tadā mantraṃ prayatātmā paṭhed imam || 27 || 35.27av dvi-jān abhyarcya puṣyarkṣe 35.27cv vaidyaś cāśu tadā mantraṃ namaḥ puruṣa-siṃhāya namo nārāyaṇāya ca | yathāsau nābhijānāti raṇe kṛṣṇa-parājayam || 28 || 35.28dv raṇe kṛṣṇaḥ parājayam etena satya-vākyena a-gado me prasidhyatu | namo vaiḍūryamāte hulu hulu rakṣa māṃ sarva-viṣebhyaḥ || 29 || 35.29dv hulu kulu rakṣa māṃ sarva-viṣebhyaḥ gauri gāndhāri cāṇḍāli mātaṅgi svāhā piṣṭe ca dvitīyo mantraḥ || 30ab || 35.30av gauri gāndhāri caṇḍāli mātaṅgi svāhā harimāyi svāhā || 30c || 35.30cv hāritamāyi svāhā a-śeṣa-viṣa-vetāla-graha-kārmaṇa-pāpmasu | maraka-vyādhi-dur-bhikṣa-yuddhāśani-bhayeṣu ca || 31 || pāna-nasyāñjanālepa-maṇi-bandhādi-yojitaḥ | eṣa candrodayo nāma śānti-svasty-ayanaṃ param || 32 || 35.32dv śāntiḥ svasty-ayanaṃ param vāsavo vṛtram avadhīt samāliptaḥ kilāmunā || 32+(1)ab || 35.32+(1)bv samālipto 'munā kila jīrṇaṃ viṣa-ghnauṣadhibhir hataṃ vā dāvāgni-vātātapa-śoṣitaṃ vā | sva-bhāvato vā na guṇaiḥ su-yuktaṃ dūṣī-viṣākhyāṃ viṣam abhyupaiti || 33 || 35.33cv sva-bhāvato vā su-guṇair na yuktaṃ 35.33cv sva-bhāvato vā sva-guṇair na yuktaṃ 35.33dv dūṣī-viṣākhyaṃ viṣam abhyupaiti vīryālpa-bhāvād a-vibhāvyam etat kaphāvṛtaṃ varṣa-gaṇānubandhi | tenārdito bhinna-purīṣa-varṇo duṣṭāsra-rogī tṛḍ-a-rocakārtaḥ || 34 || mūrchan vaman gadgada-vāg vimuhyan bhavec ca dūṣyodara-liṅga-juṣṭaḥ | āmāśaya-sthe kapha-vāta-rogī pakvāśaya-sthe 'nila-pitta-rogī || 35 || bhaven naro dhvasta-śiro-ruhāṅgo vilūna-pakṣaḥ sa yathā vihaṅgaḥ | sthitaṃ rasādiṣv atha-vā vicitrān karoti dhātu-prabhavān vikārān || 36 || prāg-vātā-jīrṇa-śītābhra-divā-svapnā-hitāśanaiḥ | duṣṭaṃ dūṣayate dhātūn ato dūṣī-viṣaṃ smṛtam || 37 || 35.37cv duṣṭaṃ dūṣayate dhātuṃ 35.37dv tato dūṣī-viṣaṃ smṛtam dūṣī-viṣārtaṃ su-svinnam ūrdhvaṃ cādhaś ca śodhitam | dūṣī-viṣārim a-gadaṃ lehayen madhunāplutam || 38 || pippalyo dhyāmakaṃ māṃsī lodhram elā suvarcikā | kuṭannaṭaṃ nataṃ kuṣṭhaṃ yaṣṭī candana-gairikam || 39 || dūṣī-viṣārir nāmnāyaṃ na cānya-trāpi vāryate | viṣa-digdhena viddhas tu pratāmyati muhur muhuḥ || 40 || vi-varṇa-bhāvaṃ bhajate viṣādaṃ cāśu gacchati | kīṭair ivāvṛtaṃ cāsya gātraṃ cimicimāyate || 41 || śroṇi-pṛṣṭha-śiraḥ-skandha-saṃdhayaḥ syuḥ sa-vedanāḥ | kṛṣṇa-duṣṭāsra-visrāvī tṛṇ-mūrchā-jvara-dāha-vān || 42 || dṛṣṭi-kāluṣya-vamathu-śvāsa-kāsa-karaḥ kṣaṇāt | ā-rakta-pīta-pary-antaḥ śyāva-madhyo 'ti-rug vraṇaḥ || 43 || śūyate pacyate sadyo gatvā māṃsaṃ ca kṛṣṇa-tām | praklinnaṃ śīryate 'bhīkṣṇaṃ sa-picchila-parisravam || 44 || kuryād a-marma-viddhasya hṛdayāvaraṇaṃ drutam | śalyam ākṛṣya taptena lohenānu dahed vraṇam || 45 || atha-vā muṣkaka-śvetā-soma-tvak-tāmravallitaḥ | śirīṣād gṛdhranakhyāś ca kṣāreṇa pratisārayet || 46 || śukanāsā-prativiṣā-vyāghrī-mūlaiś ca lepayet | kīṭa-daṣṭa-cikitsāṃ ca kuryāt tasya yathārhataḥ || 47 || vraṇe tu pūti-piśite kriyā pitta-visarpa-vat | saubhāgyārthaṃ striyo bhartre rājñe vā-rati-coditāḥ || 48 || 35.48dv rājñe cā-rati-coditāḥ garam āhāra-saṃpṛktaṃ yacchanty āsanna-vartinaḥ | nānā-prāṇy-aṅga-śamala-viruddhauṣadhi-bhasmanām || 49 || 35.49cv nānā-prāṇy-aṅga-sa-mala- viṣāṇāṃ cālpa-vīryāṇāṃ yogo gara iti smṛtaḥ | tena pāṇduḥ kṛśo 'lpāgniḥ kāsa-śvāsa-jvarārditaḥ || 50 || 35.50av viṣāṇāṃ manda-vīryāṇāṃ vāyunā pratilomena svapna-cintā-parāyaṇaḥ | mahodara-yakṛt-plīhī dīna-vāg dur-balo 'lasaḥ || 51 || 35.51cv mehodara-yakṛt-plīhī 35.51dv hīna-vāg dur-balo 'lasaḥ śopha-vān satatādhmātaḥ śuṣka-pāda-karaḥ kṣayī | svapne gomāyu-mārjāra-nakula-vyāla-vānarān || 52 || prāyaḥ paśyati śuṣkāṃś ca vanaspati-jalāśayān | manyate kṛṣṇam ātmānaṃ gauro gauraṃ ca kālakaḥ || 53 || vi-karṇa-nāsā-nayanaṃ paśyet tad-vihatendriyaḥ | etair anyaiś ca bahubhiḥ kliṣṭo ghorair upadravaiḥ || 54 || 35.54bv paśyet tu vihatendriyaḥ garārto nāśam āpnoti kaś-cit sadyo '-cikitsitaḥ | garārto vānta-vān bhuktvā tat pathyaṃ pāna-bhojanam || 55 || śuddha-hṛc chīlayed dhema sūtra-sthāna-vidheḥ smaran | śarkarā-kṣaudra-saṃyuktaṃ cūrṇaṃ tāpya-suvarṇayoḥ || 56 || 35.56bv sūtra-sthāna-vidhiṃ smaran lehaḥ praśamayanty ugraṃ sarva-yoga-kṛtaṃ viṣam | mūrvāmṛtā-nata-kaṇā-paṭolī-cavya-citrakān || 57 || vacā-musta-viḍaṅgāni takra-koṣṇāmbu-mastubhiḥ | pibed rasena vāmlena garopahata-pāvakaḥ || 58 || 35.58cv pibed rasena cāmlena pārāvatāmiṣa-śaṭhī-puṣkarāhva-śṛtaṃ himam | gara-tṛṣṇā-rujā-kāsa-śvāsa-hidhmā-jvarāpaham || 59 || 35.59bv -puṣkarāhvaṃ śṛtaṃ himam try-ūṣaṇaṃ pañca-lavaṇaṃ mañjiṣṭhāṃ rajanī-dvayam | sūkṣmailāṃ trivṛtāṃ pattraṃ viḍaṅgānīndravāruṇīm || 59+1 || madhukaṃ ceti sa-kṣaudraṃ go-viṣāṇe nidhāpayet | tasmād uṣṇāmbunā mātrāṃ prāg-bhaktaṃ yojayet tathā || 59+2 || viṣaṃ bhuktaṃ jarāṃ yāti nir-viṣe 'pi na doṣa-kṛt | lākṣā-priyaṅgu-mañjiṣṭhāḥ sa-mṛṇāla-hareṇukāḥ || 59+3 || sa-yaṣṭy-āhvā madhu-yutā basta-pittena kalpitāḥ | nikhaned go-viṣāṇa-sthāḥ sapta-rātraṃ mahī-tale || 59+4 || tatra kṛtvā maṇiṃ hemnā baddhaṃ hastena dhārayet | saṃspṛṣṭaṃ sa-viṣaṃ tena sadyo bhavati nir-viṣam || 59+5 || viṣa-prakṛti-kālānna-doṣa-dūṣyādi-saṃgame | viṣa-saṃkaṭam uddiṣṭaṃ śatasyaiko 'tra jīvati || 60 || kṣut-tṛṣṇā-gharma-daurbalya-krodha-śoka-bhaya-śramaiḥ | a-jīrṇa-varco-drava-tā-pitta-māruta-vṛddhibhiḥ || 61 || tila-puṣpa-phalāghrāṇa-bhū-bāṣpa-ghana-garjitaiḥ | hasti-mūṣika-vāditra-niḥsvanair viṣa-saṃkaṭaiḥ || 62 || 35.62bv -bhū-bāṣpa-ghana-garjanaiḥ puro-vātotpalāmoda-madanair vardhate viṣam | varṣāsu cāmbu-yoni-tvāt saṃkledaṃ guḍa-vad gatam || 63 || 35.63cv varṣāsu vāmbu-yoni-tvāt visarpati ghanāpāye tad agastyo hinasti ca | prayāti manda-vīrya-tvaṃ viṣaṃ tasmād ghanātyaye || 64 || iti prakṛti-sātmyartu-sthāna-vega-balā-balam | ālocya nipuṇaṃ buddhyā karmān-antaram ācaret || 65 || ślaiṣmikaṃ vamanair uṣṇa-rūkṣa-tīkṣṇaiḥ pralepanaiḥ | kaṣāya-kaṭu-tiktaiś ca bhojanaiḥ śamayed viṣam || 66 || paittikaṃ sraṃsanaiḥ seka-pradehair bhṛśa-śītalaiḥ | kaṣāya-tikta-madhurair ghṛta-yuktaiś ca bhojanaiḥ || 67 || vātātmakaṃ jayet svādu-snigdhāmla-lavaṇānvitaiḥ | sa-ghṛtair bhojanair lepais tathaiva piśitāśanaiḥ || 68 || 35.68bv -snigdhāmla-lavaṇāyutaiḥ nā-ghṛtaṃ sraṃsanaṃ śastaṃ pralepo bhojyam auṣadham | sarveṣu sarvāvasthāsu viṣeṣu na ghṛtopamam || 69 || vidyate bheṣajaṃ kiñ-cid viśeṣāt prabale 'nile | a-yatnāc chleṣma-gaṃ sādhyaṃ yatnāt pittāśayāśrayam || 70 || 35.70av a-yatnāc chlaiṣmikaṃ sādhyaṃ 35.70cv a-yatnāc chleṣmakaṃ sādhyaṃ 35.70dv yatnāt pittāśayāśritam su-duḥ-sādhyam a-sādhyaṃ vā vātāśaya-gataṃ viṣam || 70ū̆ab || jatu-sarja-rasośīra-sarṣapā-pattra-vālakaiḥ | sa-vaillāruṣkara-puraiḥ kusumair arjunasya ca || 70ū̆+1 || 35.70ū̆+1cv sa-vailla-puṣkara-puraiḥ dhūpo vāsa-gṛhe hanti viṣaṃ sthāvara-jaṅgamam | na tatra kīṭāḥ sa-viṣā nondurā na sarīsṛpāḥ || 70ū̆+2 || na kṛtyāḥ kārmaṇādyāś ca dhūpo 'yaṃ yatra dahyate || 70ū̆+3ab || Uttarasthāna darvī-karā maṇḍalino rājī-mantaś ca pannagāḥ | tri-dhā samāsato bhaumā bhidyante te tv aneka-dhā || 1 || vyāsato yoni-bhedena nocyante 'n-upayoginaḥ | viśeṣād rūkṣa-kaṭukam amloṣṇaṃ svādu-śītalam || 2 || 36.2bv nocyante 'n-upayogataḥ viṣaṃ darvī-karādīnāṃ kramād vātādi-kopanam | tāruṇya-madhya-vṛddha-tve vṛṣṭi-śītātapeṣu ca || 3 || viṣolbaṇā bhavanty ete vyantarā ṛtu-saṃdhiṣu | rathāṅga-lāṅgala-cchattra-svastikāṅkuśa-dhāriṇaḥ || 4 || phaṇinaḥ śīghra-gatayaḥ sarpā darvī-karāḥ smṛtāḥ | jñeyā maṇḍalino '-bhogā maṇḍalair vividhaiś citāḥ || 5 || 36.5bv sarpā darvī-karā matāḥ prāṃśavo manda-gamanā rājī-mantas tu rājibhiḥ | snigdhā vicitra-varṇābhis tiryag ūrdhvaṃ ca citritāḥ || 6 || 36.6bv rājī-mantaś ca rājibhiḥ 36.6cv snigdhābhir bahu-varṇābhis godhā-sutas tu gaudhero viṣe darvī-karaiḥ samaḥ | catuṣ-pād vyantarān vidyād eteṣām eva saṃkarāt || 7 || 36.7av godhā-sutas tu gaudheyo vyāmiśra-lakṣaṇās te hi saṃnipāta-prakopaṇāḥ | āhārārthaṃ bhayāt pāda-sparśād ati-viṣāt krudhaḥ || 8 || pāpa-vṛtti-tayā vairād devarṣi-yama-codanāt | daśanti sarpās teṣūktaṃ viṣādhikyaṃ yathottaram || 9 || 36.9av pāpa-vṛtta-tayā vairād 36.9bv devarṣi-yama-nodanāt ādiṣṭāt kāraṇaṃ jñātvā pratikuryād yathā-yatham | vyantaraḥ pāpa-śīla-tvān mārgam āśritya tiṣṭhati || 10 || 36.10av āviṣṭāt kāraṇaṃ jñātvā 36.10dv mārgam āvṛtya tiṣṭhati yatra lālā-parikleda-mātraṃ gātre pradṛśyate | na tu daṃṣṭrā-kṛtaṃ daṃśaṃ tat tuṇḍāhatam ādiśet || 11 || 36.11bv -mātraṃ gātreṣu dṛśyate 36.11cv na tu daṃṣṭrā-kṣataṃ daṃśaṃ 36.11cv na tu daṃṣṭrā-kṣataṃ daṃśe 36.11dv taṃ tuṇḍāhataṃ ādiśet ekaṃ daṃṣṭrā-padaṃ dve vā vyālīḍhākhyam a-śoṇitam | daṃṣṭrā-pade sa-rakte dve vyāluptaṃ trīṇi tāni tu || 12 || 36.12dv vyāluptaṃ trīṇi tāni ca māṃsa-cchedād a-vicchinna-rakta-vāhīni daṣṭakam | daṃṣṭrā-padāni catvāri tad-vad daṣṭa-nipīḍitam || 13 || nir-viṣaṃ dvayam atrādyam a-sādhyaṃ paścimaṃ vadet | viṣaṃ nāheyam a-prāpya raktaṃ dūṣayate vapuḥ || 14 || raktam aṇv api tu prāptaṃ vardhate tailam ambu-vat | bhīros tu sarpa-saṃsparśād bhayena kupito 'nilaḥ || 15 || 36.15av raktam aṇv api tat prāptaṃ 36.15bv vardhate taila-bindu-vat kadā-cit kurute śophaṃ sarpāṅgābhihataṃ tu tat | dur-gāndha-kāre viddhasya kena-cid daṣṭa-śaṅkayā || 16 || 36.16cv dur-ge 'ndhakāre viddhasya viṣodvego jvaraś chardir mūrchā dāho 'pi vā bhavet | glānir moho 'tisāro vā tac chaṅkā-viṣam ucyate || 17 || 36.17av viṣa-vegāj jvaraś chardir 36.17av viṣodreko jvaraś chardir 36.17av viṣodvegāj jvaraś chardir tudyate sa-viṣo daṃśaḥ kaṇḍū-śopha-rujānvitaḥ | dahyate grathitaḥ kiñ-cid viparītas tu nir-viṣaḥ || 18 || 36.18av tudyate viṣa-jo daṃśaḥ pūrve darvī-kṛtāṃ vege duṣṭaṃ śyāvī-bhavaty asṛk | śyāva-tā tena vaktrādau sarpantīva ca kīṭakāḥ || 19 || 36.19bv duṣṭaṃ śyāvaṃ bhavaty asṛk 36.19cv śyāva-tā netra-vaktrādau dvitīye granthayo vege tṛtīye mūrdhni gauravam | dṛg-rodho daṃśa-vikledaś caturthe ṣṭhīvanaṃ vamiḥ || 20 || 36.20bv tṛtīye mūrdha-gauravam 36.20cv dṛg-bādhā daṃśa-vikledaś 36.20dv caturthe ṣṭhevanaṃ vamiḥ saṃdhi-viśleṣaṇaṃ tandrā pañcame parva-bhedanam | dāho hidhmā ca ṣaṣṭhe tu hṛt-pīḍā gātra-gauravam || 21 || 36.21cv dāho hidhmā ca ṣaṣṭhe ca mūrchā-vipāko 'tīsāraḥ prāpya śukraṃ tu saptame | skandha-pṛṣṭha-kaṭī-bhaṅgaḥ sarva-ceṣṭā-nivartanam || 22 || 36.22bv prāpya śukraṃ ca saptame atha maṇḍali-daṣṭasya duṣṭaṃ pītī-bhavaty asṛk | tena pītāṅga-tā dāho dvitīye śvayathūdbhavaḥ || 23 || 36.23bv duṣṭaṃ pītaṃ bhavaty asṛk tṛtīye daṃśa-vikledaḥ svedas tṛṣṇā ca jāyate | caturthe jvaryate dāhaḥ pañcame sarva-gātra-gaḥ || 24 || 36.24bv svedas tṛṣṇā prajāyate daṣṭasya rājilair duṣṭaṃ pāṇḍu-tāṃ yāti śoṇitam | pāṇḍu-tā tena gātrāṇāṃ dvitīye guru-tāti ca || 25 || tṛtīye daṃśa-vikledo nāsikākṣi-mukha-sravāḥ | caturthe garimā mūrdhno manyā-stambhaś ca pañcame || 26 || gātra-bhaṅgo jvaraḥ śītaḥ śeṣayoḥ pūrva-vad vadet | kuryāt pañcasu vegeṣu cikitsāṃ na tataḥ param || 27 || 36.27bv śeṣayoḥ pūrva-vad bhavet jalāplutā rati-kṣīṇā bhītā nakula-nirjitāḥ | śīta-vātātapa-vyādhi-kṣut-tṛṣṇā-śrama-pīḍitāḥ || 28 || tūrṇaṃ deśāntarāyātā vimukta-viṣa-kañcukāḥ | kuśauṣadhi-kaṇṭaka-vad ye caranti ca kānanam || 29 || deśaṃ ca divyādhyuṣitaṃ sarpās te 'lpa-viṣā matāḥ | śmaśāna-citi-caityādau pañcamī-pakṣa-saṃdhiṣu || 30 || 36.30av deśaṃ ca vidyādhyuṣitaṃ aṣṭamī-navamī-saṃdhyā-madhya-rātri-dineṣu ca | yāmyāgneya-maghāśleṣā-viśākhā-pūrva-nairṛte || 31 || nairṛtākhye muhūrte ca daṣṭaṃ marmasu ca tyajet | daṣṭa-mātraḥ sitāsyākṣaḥ śīryamāṇa-śiro-ruhaḥ || 32 || 36.32cv daṣṭa-mātras tu tāmrākṣaḥ stabdha-jihvo muhur mūrchan śītocchvāso na jīvati | hidhmā śvāso vamiḥ kāso daṣṭa-mātrasya dehinaḥ || 33 || 36.33bv śītocchvāsī na jīvati jāyante yuga-pad yasya sa hṛc-chūlī na jīvati | phenaṃ vamati niḥ-saṃjñaḥ śyāva-pāda-karānanaḥ || 34 || nāsāvasādo bhaṅgo 'ṅge viḍ-bhedaḥ ślatha-saṃdhi-tā | viṣa-pītasya daṣṭasya digdhenābhihatasya ca || 35 || 36.35av nāsāvasādo ruk vāṅge bhavanty etāni rūpāṇi saṃprāpte jīvita-kṣaye | na nasyaiś cetanā tīkṣṇair na kṣatāt kṣata-jāgamaḥ || 36 || 36.36bv prāpte jīvita-saṃkṣaye daṇḍāhatasya no rājī prayātasya yamāntikam | ato 'nya-thā tu tvarayā pradīptāgāra-vad bhiṣak || 37 || 36.37bv prayāti sa yamāntikam rakṣan kaṇṭha-gatān prāṇān viṣam āśu śamaṃ nayet | mātrā-śataṃ viṣaṃ sthitvā daṃśe daṣṭasya dehinaḥ || 38 || dehaṃ prakramate dhātūn rudhirādīn pradūṣayan | etasminn antare karma daṃśasyotkartanādikam || 39 || 36.39bv rudhirādīn pradūṣayet kuryac chīghraṃ yathā dehe viṣa-vallī na rohati | daṣṭa-mātro daśed āśu tam eva pavanāśinam || 40 || 36.40dv tam eva pavanāśanam loṣṭaṃ mahīṃ vā daśanaiś chittvā cānu sa-saṃbhramam | niṣṭhīvena samālimped daṃśaṃ karṇa-malena vā || 41 || 36.41bv chittvā cāśu sa-saṃbhramam daṃśasyopari badhnīyād ariṣṭāṃ catur-aṅgule | kṣaumādibhir veṇikayā siddhair mantraiś ca mantra-vit || 42 || ambu-vat setu-bandhena bandhena stabhyate viṣam | na vahanti sirāś cāsya viṣaṃ bandhābhipīḍitāḥ || 43 || 36.43cv na vahanti sirās tasya 36.43dv viṣaṃ bandhana-pīḍitāḥ niṣpīḍyānūddhared daṃśaṃ marma-saṃdhy-a-gataṃ tathā | na jāyate viṣād vego bīja-nāśād ivāṅkuraḥ || 44 || 36.44av niṣpīḍya coddhared daṃśaṃ 36.44cv na jāyate viṣāvego daṃśaṃ maṇḍalināṃ muktvā pittala-tvād athāparam | prataptair hema-lohādyair dahed āśūlmukena vā || 45 || karoti bhasma-sāt sadyo vahniḥ kiṃ nāma tu kṣatam | ācūṣet pūrṇa-vaktro vā mṛd-bhasmā-gada-go-mayaiḥ || 46 || 36.46bv vahniḥ kiṃ nāma na kṣaṇāt 36.46bv vahniḥ kiṃ nāma na kṣaṇam pracchāyāntar ariṣṭāyāṃ māṃsalaṃ tu viśeṣataḥ | aṅgaṃ sahaiva daṃśena lepayed a-gadair muhuḥ || 47 || candanośīra-yuktena salilena ca secayet | viṣe pravisṛte vidhyet sirāṃ sā paramā kriyā || 48 || rakte nirhriyamāṇe hi kṛtsnaṃ nirhriyate viṣam | dur-gandhaṃ sa-viṣaṃ raktam agnau caṭacaṭāyate || 49 || 36.49cv dur-gandhi sa-viṣaṃ raktam yathā-doṣaṃ viśuddhaṃ ca pūrva-val lakṣayed asṛk | sirāsv a-dṛśyamānāsu yojyāḥ śṛṅga-jalaukasaḥ || 50 || śoṇitaṃ sruta-śeṣaṃ ca pravilīnaṃ viṣoṣmaṇā | lepa-sekaiḥ su-bahu-śaḥ stambhayed bhṛśa-śītalaiḥ || 51 || a-skanne viṣa-vegād dhi mūrchāya-mada-hṛd-dravāḥ | bhavanti tān jayec chītair vījec cā-roma-harṣataḥ || 52 || 36.52dv vījayed roma-harṣataḥ skanne tu rudhire sadyo viṣa-vegaḥ praśāmyati | viṣaṃ karṣati tīkṣṇa-tvād dhṛdayaṃ tasya guptaye || 53 || pibed ghṛtaṃ ghṛta-kṣaudram a-gadaṃ vā ghṛtāplutam | hṛdayāvaraṇe cāsya śleṣmā hṛdy upacīyate || 54 || 36.54cv hṛdayāvaraṇenāsya pravṛtta-gauravotkleśa-hṛl-lāsaṃ vāmayet tataḥ | dravaiḥ kāñjika-kaulattha-taila-madyādi-varjitaiḥ || 55 || vamanair viṣa-hṛdbhiś ca naivaṃ vyāpnoti tad vapuḥ | bhujaṅga-doṣa-prakṛti-sthāna-vega-viśeṣataḥ || 56 || su-sūkṣmaṃ samyag ālocya viśiṣṭāṃ cācaret kriyām | sindhuvārita-mūlāni śvetā ca girikarṇikā || 57 || 36.57bv viśiṣṭāṃ vācaret kriyām pānaṃ darvī-karair daṣṭe nasyaṃ madhu sa-pākalam | kṛṣṇa-sarpeṇa daṣṭasya limped daṃśaṃ hṛte 'sṛji || 58 || 36.58bv nasyaṃ sa-madhu pākalam 36.58bv nasyaṃ sa-madhu vālakam 36.58bv nasyaṃ madhu sa-vālakam cāraṭī-nākulībhyāṃ vā tīkṣṇa-mūla-viṣeṇa vā | pānaṃ ca kṣaudra-mañjiṣṭhā-gṛha-dhūma-yutaṃ ghṛtam || 59 || 36.59cv pāne ca kṣaudra-mañjiṣṭhā- taṇḍulīyaka-kāśmarya-kiṇihī-girikarṇikāḥ | mātuluṅgī sitā śeluḥ pāna-nasyāñjanair hitaḥ || 60 || 36.60cv mātuluṅgaiḥ śiphā śeluḥ a-gadaḥ phaṇināṃ ghore viṣe rājī-matām api | samāḥ sugandhā-mṛdvīkā-śvetākhyā-gajadantikāḥ || 61 || 36.61cv samāḥ sugandhā mṛdvīkā 36.61dv śvetākhyā gajamṛttikā 36.61dv śvetākhyā gajavṛttikā ardhāṃśaṃ saurasaṃ pattraṃ kapitthaṃ bilva-dāḍimam | sa-kṣaudro maṇḍali-viṣe viśeṣād a-gado hitaḥ || 62 || pañca-valka-varā-yaṣṭī-nāgapuṣpailavālukam | jīvakarṣabhakau śītaṃ sitā padmakam utpalam || 63 || 36.63av pañca-valka-balā-yaṣṭī- 36.63av pañca-valka-vacā-yaṣṭī- 36.63cv jīvakarṣabhakośīraṃ sa-kṣaudro himavān nāma hanti maṇḍalināṃ viṣam | lepāc chvayathu-vīsarpa-visphoṭa-jvara-dāha-hā || 64 || kāśmaryaṃ vaṭa-śuṅgāni jīvakarṣabhakau sitā | mañjiṣṭhā madhukaṃ ceti daṣṭo maṇḍalinā pibet || 65 || 36.65av kāśmaryaṃ vaṭa-śṛṅgāni vaṃśa-tvag-bīja-kaṭukā-pāṭalī-bīja-nāgaram | śirīṣa-bījātiviṣe mūlaṃ gāvedhukaṃ vacā || 66 || 36.66bv -pāṭalā-bīja-nāgaram 36.66dv mūlaṃ gāvedhukaṃ vacām 36.66dv mūlaṃ śrīveṣṭakaṃ vacām piṣṭo go-vāriṇāṣṭāṅgo hanti gonasa-jaṃ viṣam | kaṭukātiviṣā-kuṣṭha-gṛha-dhūma-hareṇukāḥ || 67 || sa-kṣaudra-vyoṣa-tagarā ghnanti rājī-matāṃ viṣam | nikhanet kāṇḍa-citrāyā daṃśaṃ yāma-dvayaṃ bhuvi || 68 || uddhṛtya pracchitaṃ sarpir-dhānya-mṛdbhyāṃ pralepayet | pibet purāṇaṃ ca ghṛtaṃ varā-cūrṇāvacūrṇitam || 69 || 36.69av uddhṛtya prasthitaṃ sarpir- 36.69dv varā-cūrṇa-vicūrṇitam jīrṇe virikto bhuñjīta yavānnaṃ sūpa-saṃskṛtam | karavīrārka-kusuma-mūla-lāṅgalikā-kaṇāḥ || 70 || 36.70av jīrṇe virikte bhuñjīta 36.70dv -mūlaṃ lāṅgalikā kaṇā kalkayed āranālena pāṭhā-marica-saṃyutāḥ | eṣa vyantara-daṣṭānām a-gadaḥ sārvakārmikaḥ || 71 || śirīṣa-puṣpa-sva-rase saptāhvaṃ maricaṃ sitam | bhāvitaṃ sarpa-daṣṭānāṃ pāna-nasyāñjane hitam || 72 || 36.72dv pāna-nasyāñjanair hitam 36.72dv pāne nasye 'ñjane hitam dvi-palaṃ nata-kuṣṭhābhyāṃ ghṛta-kṣaudraṃ catuḥ-palam | api takṣaka-daṣṭānāṃ pānam etat sukha-pradam || 73 || 36.73bv ghṛta-kṣaudra-catuḥ-palam 36.73cv api tārkṣaka-daṣṭānāṃ atha darvī-kṛtāṃ vege pūrve visrāvya śoṇitam | a-gadaṃ madhu-sarpirbhyāṃ saṃyuktaṃ tvaritaṃ pibet || 74 || dvitīye vamanaṃ kṛtvā tad-vad evā-gadaṃ pibet | viṣāpahe prayuñjīta tṛtīye 'ñjana-nāvane || 75 || 36.75cv viṣāpahaiḥ prayuñjīta pibec caturthe pūrvoktāṃ yavāgūṃ vamane kṛte | ṣaṣṭha-pañcamayoḥ śītair digdhaṃ siktam abhīkṣṇa-śaḥ || 76 || pāyayed vamanaṃ tīkṣṇaṃ yavāgūṃ ca viṣāpahaiḥ | a-gadaṃ saptame tīkṣṇaṃ yuñjyād añjana-nasyayoḥ || 77 || kṛtvāvagāḍhaṃ śastreṇa mūrdhni kāka-padaṃ tataḥ | māṃsaṃ sa-rudhiraṃ tasya carma vā tatra nikṣipet || 78 || tṛtīye vamitaḥ peyāṃ vege maṇḍalināṃ pibet | a-tīkṣṇam a-gadaṃ ṣaṣṭhe gaṇaṃ vā padmakādikam || 79 || 36.79av tṛtīye vāmitaḥ peyāṃ ādye 'vagāḍhaṃ pracchāya vege daṣṭasya rājilaiḥ | alābunā hared raktaṃ pūrva-vac cā-gadaṃ pibet || 80 || ṣaṣṭhe 'ñjanaṃ tīkṣṇa-tamam avapīḍaṃ ca yojayet | an-ukteṣu ca vegeṣu kriyāṃ darvī-karoditām || 81 || garbhiṇī-bāla-vṛddheṣu mṛduṃ vidhyet sirāṃ na ca | tvaṅ manohvā niśe vakraṃ rasaḥ śārdūla-jo nakhaḥ || 82 || 36.82av gurviṇī-bāla-vṛddheṣu 36.82bv mṛdu vidhyet sirāṃ na ca 36.82cv tvaṅ manohvā niśe vaktraṃ tamālaḥ kesaraṃ śītaṃ pītaṃ taṇḍula-vāriṇā | hanti sarva-viṣāṇy etad vajraṃ vajram ivāsurān || 83 || 36.83cv hanti sarva-viṣāṇy etac 36.83dv chakra-vajram ivāsurān 36.83dv vajri-vajram ivāsurān bilvasya mūlaṃ surasasya puṣpaṃ phalaṃ karañjasya nataṃ surāhvam | phala-trikaṃ vyoṣa-niśā-dvayaṃ ca bastasya mūtreṇa su-sūkṣma-piṣṭam || 84 || 36.84cv phala-trayaṃ vyoṣa-niśā-dvayaṃ ca bhujaṅga-lūtondura-vṛścikādyair viṣūcikā-jīrṇa-gara-jvaraiś ca | ārtān narān bhūta-vidharṣitāṃś ca svasthī-karoty añjana-pāna-nasyaiḥ || 85 || 36.85cv ārtān narān bhūta-vimarditāṃś ca pralepādyaiś ca niḥśeṣaṃ daṃśād apy uddhared viṣam | bhūyo vegāya jāyeta śeṣaṃ dūṣī-viṣāya vā || 86 || 36.86dv śeṣaṃ dūṣī-viṣaṃ yathā 36.86dv śeṣaṃ dūṣī-viṣāya ca viṣāpāye 'nilaṃ kruddhaṃ snehādibhir upācaret | taila-madya-kulatthāmla-varjyaiḥ pavana-nāśanaiḥ || 87 || pittaṃ pitta-jvara-haraiḥ kaṣāya-sneha-vastibhiḥ | sa-mākṣikeṇa vargeṇa kapham āragvadhādinā || 88 || sitā vaigandhiko drākṣā payasyā madhukaṃ madhu | pānaṃ sa-mantra-pūtāmbu prokṣaṇaṃ sāntva-harṣaṇam || 89 || 36.89av sitā vaigandhako drākṣā sarpāṅgābhihate yuñjyāt tathā śaṅkā-viṣārdite | karketanaṃ marakataṃ vajraṃ vāraṇa-mauktikam || 90 || vaiḍūryaṃ gardabha-maṇiṃ picukaṃ viṣa-mūṣikām | himavad-giri-saṃbhūtāṃ somarājīṃ punarnavām || 91 || 36.91av vaiḍūrya-gardabha-maṇiṃ 36.91bv picukaṃ viṣa-dūṣikām tathā droṇāṃ mahā-droṇāṃ mānasīṃ sarpa-jaṃ maṇim | viṣāṇi viṣa-śānty-arthaṃ vīrya-vanti ca dhārayet || 92 || 36.92av tathā droṇaṃ mahā-droṇaṃ chattrī jharjhara-pāṇiś ca cared rātrau viśeṣataḥ | tac-chāyā-śabda-vitrastāḥ praṇaśyanti bhujaṅgamāḥ || 93 || 36.93av chattrī jarjara-pāṇiś ca 36.93av chattrī jarjhara-pāṇiś ca 36.93av chattrī jharjara-pāṇiś ca 36.93bv cared rātrau ca sarva-dā 36.93dv vidravanti bhujaṅgamāḥ vāri-guñjā-phalośīraṃ netrayor viṣa-duṣṭayoḥ | añjanaṃ vāriṇā piṣṭaṃ gāruḍaṃ garuḍopamam || 93+1 || Uttarasthāna sarpāṇām eva viṇ-mūtra-śukrāṇḍa-śava-kotha-jāḥ | doṣair vyastaiḥ samastaiś ca yuktāḥ kīṭāś catur-vidhāḥ || 1 || daṣṭasya kīṭair vāyavyair daṃśas toda-rujolbaṇaḥ | āgneyair alpa-saṃsrāvo dāha-rāga-visarpa-vān || 2 || pakva-pīlu-phala-prakhyaḥ kharjūra-sadṛśo 'tha-vā | kaphādhikair manda-rujaḥ pakvodumbara-saṃnibhaḥ || 3 || srāvāḍhyaḥ sarva-liṅgas tu vivarjyaḥ sāṃnipātikaiḥ | vegāś ca sarpa-vac chopho vardhiṣṇur visra-rakta-tā || 4 || 37.4bv vivarjyaḥ sāṃnipātikaḥ śiro-'kṣi-gauravaṃ mūrchā bhramaḥ śvāso 'ti-vedanā | sarveṣāṃ karṇikā śopho jvaraḥ kaṇḍūr a-rocakaḥ || 5 || 37.5bv bhramaḥ śvāso 'ti-vedanāḥ vṛścikasya viṣaṃ tīkṣṇam ādau dahati vahni-vat | ūrdhvam ārohati kṣipraṃ daṃśe paścāt tu tiṣṭhati || 6 || 37.6dc daṃśe paścāc ca tiṣṭhati daṃśaḥ sadyo 'ti-ruk śyāvas tudyate sphuṭatīva ca | te gavādi-śakṛt-kothād digdha-daṣṭādi-kothataḥ || 7 || sarpa-kothāc ca saṃbhūtā manda-madhya-mahā-viṣāḥ | mandāḥ pītāḥ sitāḥ śyāvā rūkṣāḥ karbura-mecakāḥ || 8 || 37.8dv rūkṣa-karbura-mecakāḥ romaśā bahu-parvāṇo lohitāḥ pāṇḍurodarāḥ | dhūmrodarās tri-parvāṇo madhyās tu kapilāruṇāḥ || 9 || piśaṅgāḥ śabarāś citrāḥ śoṇitābhā mahā-viṣāḥ | agny-ābhā dvy-eka-parvāṇo raktāsita-sitodarāḥ || 10 || tair daṣṭaḥ śūna-rasanaḥ stabdha-gātro jvarārditaḥ | khair vamañ choṇitaṃ kṛṣṇam indriyārthān a-saṃvidan || 11 || svidyan mūrchan viśuṣkāsyo vihvalo vedanāturaḥ | viśīryamāṇa-māṃsaś ca prāya-śo vijahāty asūn || 12 || ucciṭiṅgas tu vaktreṇa daśaty abhyadhika-vyathaḥ | sādhyato vṛścikāt stambhaṃ śephaso hṛṣṭa-roma-tām || 13 || 37.13av ucciṭaṅgas tu vaktreṇa 37.13cv so 'dhamo vṛścikāt stambhaṃ karoti sekam aṅgānāṃ daṃśaḥ śītāmbuneva ca | uṣṭra-dhūmaḥ sa evokto rātri-cārāc ca rātrikaḥ || 14 || 37.14bv daṃśe śītāmbuneva ca vāta-pittottarāḥ kīṭāḥ ślaiṣmikāḥ kaṇabhondurāḥ | prāyo vātolbaṇa-viṣā vṛścikāḥ soṣṭra-dhūmakāḥ || 15 || yasya yasyaiva doṣasya liṅgādhikyaṃ pratarkayet | tasya tasyauṣadhaiḥ kuryād viparīta-guṇaiḥ kriyām || 16 || 37.16bv liṅgādhikyaṃ pravartayet hṛt-pīḍordhvānila-stambhaḥ sirāyāmo 'sthi-parva-ruk | ghūrṇanodveṣṭanaṃ gātra-śyāva-tā vātike viṣe || 17 || saṃjñā-nāśoṣṇa-niśvāsau hṛd-dāhaḥ kaṭukāsya-tā | māṃsāvadaraṇaṃ śopho rakta-pītaś ca paittike || 18 || 37.18dv raktaḥ pītaś ca paittike chardy-a-rocaka-hṛl-lāsa-prasekotkleśa-pīnasaiḥ | sa-śaitya-mukha-mādhuryair vidyāc chleṣmādhikaṃ viṣam || 19 || piṇyākena vraṇālepas tailābhyaṅgaś ca vātike | svedo nāḍī-pulākādyair bṛṃhaṇaś ca vidhir hitaḥ || 20 || paittikaṃ stambhayet sekaiḥ pradehaiś cāti-śītalaiḥ | lekhana-cchedana-sveda-vamanaiḥ ślaiṣmikaṃ jayet || 21 || kīṭānāṃ tri-prakārāṇāṃ traividhyena kriyā hitā | svedālepana-sekāṃs tu koṣṇān prāyo 'vacārayet || 22 || 37.22bv traividhyena kriyā hitāḥ 37.22dv kavoṣṇān pravicārayet anya-tra mūrchitād daṃśa-pākataḥ kothato 'tha-vā | nṛ-keśāḥ sarṣapāḥ pītā guḍo jīrṇaś ca dhūpanam || 23 || viṣa-daṃśasya sarvasya kāśyapaḥ param abravīt | viṣa-ghnaṃ ca vidhiṃ sarvaṃ kuryāt saṃśodhanāni ca || 24 || 37.24bv kaśyapaḥ param abravīt sādhayet sarpa-vad daṣṭān viṣograiḥ kīṭa-vṛścikaiḥ | taṇḍulīyaka-tulyāṃśāṃ trivṛtāṃ sarpiṣā pibet || 25 || yāti kīṭa-viṣaiḥ kampaṃ na kailāsa ivānilaiḥ | kṣīri-vṛkṣa-tvag-ālepaḥ śuddhe kīṭa-viṣāpahaḥ || 26 || muktā-lepo varaḥ śopha-toda-dāha-jvara-praṇut | vacā-hiṅgu-viḍaṅgāni saindhavaṃ gaja-pippalī || 27 || pāṭhā prativiṣā vyoṣaṃ kāśyapena vinirmitam | daśāṅgam a-gadaṃ pītvā sarva-kīṭa-viṣaṃ jayet || 28 || sadyo vṛścika-jaṃ daṃśaṃ cakra-tailena secayet | vidārigandhā-siddhena kavoṣṇenetareṇa vā || 29 || lavaṇottama-yuktena sarpiṣā vā punaḥ punaḥ | siñcet koṣṇāranālena sa-kṣīra-lavaṇena vā || 30 || 37.30dv sa-kṣāra-lavaṇena vā upanāho ghṛte bhṛṣṭaḥ kalko 'jājyāḥ sa-saindhavaḥ | ādaṃśaṃ sveditaṃ cūrṇaiḥ pracchāya pratisārayet || 31 || 37.31av upanāhe ghṛta-bhṛṣṭaḥ 37.31av upanāho ghṛta-bhṛṣṭaḥ rajanī-saindhava-vyoṣa-śirīṣa-phala-puṣpa-jaiḥ | mātuluṅgāmla-go-mūtra-piṣṭaṃ ca surasāgra-jam || 32 || 37.32cv mātuluṅgaṃ tu go-mūtra- 37.32dv -piṣṭaḥ sa-surasārjakaḥ lepaḥ sukhoṣṇaś ca hitaḥ piṇyāko go-mayo 'pi vā | pāne sarpir madhu-yutaṃ kṣīraṃ vā bhūri-śarkaram || 33 || 37.33bv piṇyāko go-mayena vā pārāvata-śakṛt pathyā tagaraṃ viśva-bheṣajam | bījapūra-rasonmiśraḥ paramo vṛścikā-gadaḥ || 34 || 37.34dv paramo vṛścike '-gadaḥ 37.34dv paramo vṛściko '-gadaḥ sa-śaivaloṣṭra-daṃṣṭrā ca hanti vṛścika-jaṃ viṣam | hiṅgunā haritālena mātuluṅga-rasena ca || 35 || 37.35av sa-saindhavoṣṭra-daṃṣṭrā ca 37.35dv mātuluṅga-rasena vā lepāñjanābhyāṃ guṭikā paramaṃ vṛścikāpahā | karañjārjuna-śelūnāṃ kaṭabhyāṃ kuṭajasya ca || 36 || śirīṣasya ca puṣpāṇi mastunā daṃśa-lepanam | yo muhyati praśvasiti pralapaty ugra-vedanaḥ || 37 || tasya pathyā-niśā-kṛṣṇā-mañjiṣṭhātiviṣoṣaṇam | sālābu-vṛntaṃ vārtāka-rasa-piṣṭaṃ pralepanam || 38 || 37.38cv śalāṭu-vṛntaṃ vārtāka- sarva-tra cogrāli-viṣe pāyayed dadhi-sarpiṣī || 39ab || vidhyet sirāṃ vidadhyāc ca vamanāñjana-nāvanam || 39cd || uṣṇa-snigdhāmla-madhuraṃ bhojanaṃ cānilāpaham || 39ef || nāgaraṃ gṛha-kapota-purīṣaṃ bījapūraka-raso haritālam | saindhavaṃ ca vinihanty a-gado 'yaṃ lepato 'li-kula-jaṃ viṣam āśu || 40 || ante vṛścika-daṣṭānāṃ samudīrṇe bhṛśaṃ viṣe | viṣeṇālepayed daṃśam ucciṭiṅge 'py ayaṃ vidhiḥ || 41 || nāga-purīṣa-cchattraṃ rohiṣa-mūlaṃ ca śelu-toyena | kuryād guṭikāṃ lepād iyam ali-viṣa-nāśanī śreṣṭhā || 42 || arkasya dugdhena śirīṣa-bījaṃ trir bhāvitaṃ pippali-cūrṇa-miśram | eṣo '-gado hanti viṣāṇi kīṭa-bhujaṅga-lūtondura-vṛścikānām || 43 || śirīṣa-puṣpaṃ sa-karañja-bījaṃ kāśmīra-jaṃ kuṣṭha-manaḥśile ca | eṣo '-gado rātrika-vṛścikānāṃ saṃkrānti-kārī kathito jinena || 44 || 37.44av śirīṣa-bījaṃ sa-karañja-bījaṃ kīṭebhyo dāruṇa-tarā lūṭāḥ ṣo-ḍaśa tā jaguḥ | aṣṭā-viṃśatir ity eke tato 'py anye tu bhūyasīḥ || 45 || sahasra-raśmy-anucarā vadanty anye sahasra-śaḥ | bahūpadrava-rūpā tu lūtaikaiva viṣātmikā || 46 || rūpāṇi nāmatas tasyā dur-jñeyāny ati-saṃkarāt | nāsti sthāna-vyavasthā ca doṣato 'taḥ pracakṣate || 47 || kṛcchra-sādhyā pṛthag-doṣair a-sādhyā nicayena sā | tad-daṃśaḥ paittiko dāha-tṛṭ-sphoṭa-jvara-moha-vān || 48 || bhṛśoṣṃā rakta-pītābhaḥ kledī drākṣā-phalopamaḥ | ślaiṣmikaḥ kaṭhinaḥ pāṇḍuḥ parūṣaka-phalākṛtiḥ || 49 || 37.49av bhṛśoṣṃa-rakta-pītābhaḥ nidrāṃ śīta-jvaraṃ kāsaṃ kaṇḍūṃ ca kurute bhṛśam | vātikaḥ paruṣaḥ śyāvaḥ parva-bheda-jvara-pradaḥ || 50 || tad-vibhāgaṃ yathā-svaṃ ca doṣa-liṅgair vibhāvayet | a-sādhyāyāṃ tu hṛn-moha-śvāsa-hidhmā-śiro-grahāḥ || 51 || 37.51dv -śvāsa-hidhmā-śiro-rujāḥ śveta-pītāsitā-raktāḥ piṭikāḥ śvayathūdbhavaḥ | vepathur vamathur dāhas tṛḍ āndhyaṃ vakra-nāsa-tā || 52 || 37.52av śveta-pītāsitā-rakta- 37.52bv -piṭikā-śvayathūdbhavaḥ 37.52dv tṛḍ āndhyaṃ vakra-nāsikā śyāvauṣṭha-vaktra-danta-tvaṃ pṛṣṭha-grīvāvabhañjanam | pakva-jambū-sa-varṇaṃ ca daṃśāt sravati śoṇitam || 53 || sarvāpi sarva-jā prāyo vyapadeśas tu bhūyasā | tīkṣṇa-madhyāvara-tvena sā tri-dhā hanty upekṣitā || 54 || 37.54dv sā tri-dhā hanty upekṣayā saptāhena daśāhena pakṣeṇa ca paraṃ kramāt | lūtā-daṃśaś ca sarvo 'pi dadrū-maṇḍala-saṃnibhaḥ || 55 || 37.55cv lūtā-daṃśas tu sarvo 'pi sito 'sito 'ruṇaḥ pītaḥ śyāvo vā mṛdur unnataḥ | madhye kṛṣṇo 'tha-vā śyāvaḥ pary-ante jālakāvṛtaḥ || 56 || 37.56av sitāsito 'ruṇaḥ pītaḥ visarpa-vāṃś chopha-yutas tapyate bahu-vedanaḥ | jvarāśu-pāka-vikleda-kothāvadaraṇānvitaḥ || 57 || kledena yat spṛśaty aṅgaṃ tatrāpi kurute vraṇam | śvāsa-daṃṣṭrā-śakṛn-mūtra-śukra-lālā-nakhārtavaiḥ || 58 || aṣṭābhir udvamaty eṣā viṣaṃ vaktrād viśeṣataḥ | lūtā nābher daśaty ūrdhvam ūrdhvaṃ cādhaś ca kīṭakāḥ || 59 || 37.59av aṣṭābhir udvamanty etā 37.59bv viṣaṃ vaktrair viśeṣataḥ 37.59cv lūtā nābher daśanty ūrdhvam 37.59dv ūrdhvaṃ vādhaś ca kīṭakāḥ 37.59dv ūrdhvaṃ cādhaś ca kīṭakaḥ 37.59dv adhaś ca viṣa-kīṭakāḥ tad-dūṣitaṃ ca vastrādi dehe pṛktaṃ vikāra-kṛt | dinārdhaṃ lakṣyate naiva daṃśo lūtā-viṣodbhavaḥ || 60 || sūcī-vyadha-vad ābhāti tato 'sau prathame 'hani | a-vyakta-varṇaḥ pracalaḥ kiñ-cit-kaṇḍū-rujānvitaḥ || 61 || 37.61av sūcī-viddha-vad ābhāti dvitīye 'bhyunnato 'nteṣu piṭikair iva vācitaḥ | vyakta-varṇo nato madhye kaṇḍū-mān granthi-saṃnibhaḥ || 62 || 37.62av dvitīye 'ty-unnato 'nteṣu 37.62bv piṭikair iva cācitaḥ tṛtīye sa-jvaro roma-harṣa-kṛd rakta-maṇḍalaḥ | śarāva-rūpas todāḍhyo roma-kūpeṣu sāsravaḥ || 63 || 37.63dv roma-kūpeṣu sa-sravaḥ mahāṃś caturthe śvayathus tāpa-śvāsa-bhrama-pradaḥ | vikārān kurute tāṃs tān pañcame viṣa-kopa-jān || 64 || ṣaṣṭhe vyāpnoti marmāṇi saptame hanti jīvitam | iti tīkṣṇaṃ viṣaṃ madhyaṃ hīnaṃ ca vibhajed ataḥ || 65 || 37.65av ṣaṣṭhe prāpnoti marmāṇi eka-viṃśati-rātreṇa viṣaṃ śāmyati sarva-thā | athāśu lūtā-daṣṭasya śastreṇādaṃśam uddharet || 66 || 37.66dv daṃśaṃ śastreṇa coddharet dahec ca jāmbavauṣṭhādyair na tu pittottaraṃ dahet | karkaśaṃ bhinna-romāṇaṃ marma-saṃdhy-ādi-saṃśritam || 67 || prasṛtaṃ sarvato daṃśaṃ na cchindīta dahen na ca | lepayed dagdham a-gadair madhu-saindhava-saṃyutaiḥ || 68 || 37.68bv na cchindīta dahen na vā su-śītaiḥ secayec cānu kaṣāyaiḥ kṣīri-vṛkṣa-jaiḥ | sarvato 'pahared raktaṃ śṛṅgādyaiḥ sirayāpi vā || 69 || seka-lepās tataḥ śītā bodhi-śleṣmātakākṣakaiḥ | phalinī-dvi-niśā-kṣaudra-sarpirbhiḥ padmakāhvayaḥ || 70 || 37.70av sekālepās tataḥ śītā 37.70bv bodhi-śleṣmātakākṣikaiḥ 37.70bv bodhi-śleṣmātakākṣa-jaiḥ 37.70cv phalinī-dvi-niśā-śreṣṭhā- a-śeṣa-lūtā-kīṭānām a-gadaḥ sārvakārmikaḥ | haridrā-dvaya-pattaṅga-mañjiṣṭhā-nata-kesaraiḥ || 71 || sa-kṣaudra-sarpiḥ pūrvasmād adhikaś campakāhvayaḥ | tad-vad go-maya-niṣpīḍa-śarkarā-ghṛta-mākṣikaiḥ || 72 || 37.72cv tad-vad go-maya-niṣpīḍā- apāmārga-mano'hvāla-dārvī-dhyāmaka-gairikaiḥ | natailā-kuṣṭha-marica-yaṣṭy-āhva-ghṛta-mākṣikaiḥ || 73 || a-gado mandaro nāma tathānyo gandha-mādanaḥ | nata-lodhra-vacā-kaṭvī-pāṭhailā-pattra-kuṅkumaiḥ || 74 || mañjiṣṭhā-śleṣmātaka-rajanī-suvahā-śirīṣa-pālindyaḥ | sa-sindhuvārā viṣaṃ ghnanti sailā-candana-kanakāḥ || 74+1 || viṣa-ghnaṃ bahu-doṣeṣu prayuñjīta viśodhanam | yaṣṭy-āhva-madanāṅkolla-jālinī-sindhuvārikāḥ || 75 || 37.75av viṣa-ghnair bahu-doṣeṣu 37.75dv -jālinī-sindhuvāritān 37.75dv -jālinī-sindhuvāritam kaphe jyeṣṭhāmbunā pītvā viṣam āśu samudvamet | śirīṣa-pattra-tvaṅ-mūla-phalaṃ vāṅkolla-mūla-vat || 76 || 37.76dv -phalaṃ cāṅkolla-mūla-vat virecayec ca tri-phalā-nīlinī-trivṛtādibhiḥ | nivṛtte dāha-śophādau karṇikāṃ pātayed vraṇāt || 77 || 37.77bv -phalinī-trivṛtādibhiḥ kusumbha-puṣpaṃ go-dantaḥ svarṇakṣīrī kapota-viṭ | trivṛtā saindhavaṃ dantī karṇikā-pātanaṃ tathā || 78 || 37.78av kusumbha-puṣpa-go-danta- 37.78bv -svarṇakṣīrī-kapota-viṭ 37.78dv karṇikā-pātanaṃ param mūlam uttaravāruṇyā vaṃśa-nirlekha-saṃyutam | tad-vac ca saindhavaṃ kuṣṭhaṃ dantī kaṭuka-daugdhikam || 79 || rāja-kośātakī-mūlaṃ kiṇvo vā mathitodbhavaḥ | karṇikā-pāta-samaye bṛṃhayec ca viṣāpahaiḥ || 80 || 37.80bv kiṭṭo vā mathitodbhavaḥ 37.80bv kiṇo vā mathitodbhavaḥ 37.80dv bṛṃhayeta viṣāpahaiḥ sneha-kāryam a-śeṣaṃ ca sarpiṣaiva samācaret | viṣasya vṛddhaye tailam agner iva tṛṇolupam || 81 || 37.81cv viṣam āvardhayet tailam 37.81dv agner iva tṛṇolapam hrīvera-vaikaṅkata-gopakanyā-mustā-śamī-candana-ṭuṇṭukāni | śaivāla-nīlotpala-vakra-yaṣṭī-tvaṅ-nākulī-padmaka-rāṭha-madhyam || 82 || 37.82bv -mustā-śamī-candana-tindukāni rajanī-ghana-sarpalocanā-kaṇa-śuṇṭhī-kaṇa-mūla-citrakāḥ | varuṇāguru-bilva-pāṭalī-picumandāmaya-śelu-kesaram || 83 || 37.83cv varuṇāguru-bilva-pāṭalā- bilva-candana-natotpala-śuṇṭhī-pippalī-nicula-vetasa-kuṣṭham | śukti-śāka-vara-pāṭali-bhārgī-sindhuvāra-karaghāṭa-varāṅgam || 84 || 37.84cv śukti-śābaraka-pāṭali-bhārgī- 37.84dv -sindhuvāra-karahāṭa-varāṅgam pitta-kaphānila-lūtāḥ pānāñjana-nasya-lepa-sekena | a-gada-varā vṛtta-sthāḥ ku-gatīr iva vārayanty ete || 85 || 37.85dv ku-gatīr iva dārayanty ete 37.85dv ku-matīr iva dārayanty ete 37.85dv ku-matīr iva vārayanty ete lodhraṃ sevyaṃ padmakaṃ padma-reṇuḥ kālīyākhyaṃ candanaṃ yac ca raktam | kāntā-puṣpaṃ dugdhinīkā mṛṇālaṃ lūtāḥ sarvā ghnanti sarva-kriyābhiḥ || 86 || Uttarasthāna lālanaś capalaḥ putro hasiraś cikkiro 'jiraḥ | kaṣāya-dantaḥ kulakaḥ kokilaḥ kapilo 'sitaḥ || 1 || 38.1bv hasiraś cikriro 'janaḥ 38.1bv hasiraś cikkiro 'jaraḥ 38.1bv hasiraś cikilo 'jiraḥ aruṇaḥ śabaraḥ śvetaḥ kapotaḥ palitonduraḥ | chucchundaro rasālākhyo daśāṣṭau ceti mūṣikāḥ || 2 || 38.2bv kapotaḥ palitonduruḥ 38.2cv chucchundaro balāsākhyo 38.2cv chucchundaro rasālākṣo 38.2dv daśa cāṣṭau ca mūṣikāḥ śukraṃ patati yatraiṣāṃ śukra-digdhaiḥ spṛśanti vā | yad aṅgam aṅgais tatrāsre dūṣite pāṇḍu-tāṃ gate || 3 || granthayaḥ śvayathuḥ koṭho maṇḍalāni bhramo '-ruciḥ | śīta-jvaro 'ti-ruk sādo vepathuḥ parva-bhedanam || 4 || 38.4av granthayaḥ śvayathuḥ kotho roma-harṣaḥ srutir mūrchā dīrgha-kālānubandhanam | śleṣmānubaddha-bahv-ākhu-potaka-cchardanaṃ sa-tṛṭ || 5 || 38.5cv śleṣmānubandha-bahv-ākhu- 38.5cv śleṣmānuviddha-bahv-ākhu- 38.5dv -potaka-cchardanaṃ sakṛt vyavāyy ākhu-viṣaṃ kṛcchraṃ bhūyo bhūyaś ca kupyati | mūrchāṅga-śopha-vaivarṇya-kleda-śabdā-śruti-jvarāḥ || 6 || śiro-guru-tvaṃ lālāsṛk-chardiś cā-sādhya-lakṣaṇam | śūna-vastiṃ vi-varṇauṣṭham ākhv-ābhair granthibhiś citam || 7 || chucchundara-sa-gandhaṃ ca varjayed ākhu-dūṣitam | śunaḥ śleṣmolbaṇā doṣāḥ saṃjñāṃ saṃjñā-vahāśritāḥ || 8 || muṣṇantaḥ kurvate kṣobhaṃ dhātūnām ati-dāruṇam | lālā-vān andha-badhiraḥ sarvataḥ so 'bhidhāvati || 9 || srasta-puccha-hanu-skandhaḥ śiro-duḥkhī natānanaḥ | daṃśas tena vidaṣṭasya suptaṃ kṛṣṇaṃ kṣaraty asṛk || 10 || hṛc-chiro-rug-jvara-stambha-tṛṣṇā-mūrchodbhavo 'nu ca | anenānye 'pi boddhavyā vyālā daṃṣṭrā-prahāriṇaḥ || 11 || 38.11av hṛc-chiro-rug-jvara-stambhas 38.11av hṛc-chiro-rug jvaraḥ stambhas 38.11bv tṛṣṇā-mūrchodbhavo 'nu ca 38.11bv tṛṣṇā mūrchodbhavo 'nu ca 38.11cv vyāla-daṃṣṭrā-prahāriṇaḥ śṛgālāśvatarāśvarkṣa-dvīpi-vyāghra-vṛkādayaḥ | kaṇḍū-nistoda-vaivarṇya-supti-kleda-jvara-bhramāḥ || 12 || vidāha-rāga-ruk-pāka-śopha-granthi-vikuñcanam | daṃśāvadaraṇaṃ sphoṭāḥ karṇikā maṇḍalāni ca || 13 || sarva-tra sa-viṣe liṅgaṃ viparītaṃ tu nir-viṣe | daṣṭo yena tu tac-ceṣṭā-rutaṃ kurvan vinaśyati || 14 || paśyaṃs tam eva cā-kasmād ādarśa-salilādiṣu | yo 'dbhyas trasyed a-daṣṭo 'pi śabda-saṃsparśa-darśanaiḥ || 15 || 38.15dv śabda-sparśa-nidarśanaiḥ jala-saṃtrāsa-nāmānaṃ daṣṭaṃ tam api varjayet | ākhunā daṣṭa-mātrasya daṃśaṃ kāṇḍena dāhayet || 16 || darpaṇenātha-vā tīvra-rujā syāt karṇikānya-thā | dagdhaṃ visrāvayed daṃśaṃ pracchitaṃ ca pralepayet || 17 || 38.17cv dagdhvā visrāvayed daṃśaṃ 38.17dv pracchinnaṃ ca pralepayet śirīṣa-rajanī-vakra-kuṅkumāmṛtavallibhiḥ | agāra-dhūma-mañjiṣṭhā-rajanī-lavaṇottamaiḥ || 18 || lepo jayaty ākhu-viṣaṃ karṇikāyāś ca pātanaḥ | tato 'mlaiḥ kṣālayitvānu toyair anu ca lepayet || 19 || 38.19dv piṣṭair anu ca lepayet pālindī-śveta-kaṭabhī-bilva-mūla-guḍūcibhiḥ | anyaiś ca viṣa-śopha-ghnaiḥ sirāṃ vā mokṣayed drutam || 20 || 38.20dv sirāṃ vā mocayed drutam chardanaṃ nīlinī-kvāthaiḥ śukākhyāṅkollayor api | kośātakyāḥ śukākhyāyāḥ phalaṃ jīmūtakasya ca || 21 || 38.21cv kośavatyāḥ śukākhyāyāḥ madanasya ca saṃcūrṇya dadhnā pītvā viṣaṃ vamet | vacā-madana-jīmūta-kuṣṭhaṃ vā mūtra-peṣitam || 22 || pūrva-kalpena pātavyaṃ sarvondura-viṣāpaham | virecanaṃ trivṛn-nīlī-tri-phalā-kalka iṣyate || 23 || 38.23cv virecane trivṛn-nīlī- śiro-virecane sāraḥ śirīṣasya phalāni ca | añjanaṃ go-maya-raso vyoṣa-sūkṣma-rajo-'nvitaḥ || 24 || 38.24cv añjane go-maya-raso 38.24dv vyoṣa-sūkṣma-rajo-'nvitaḥ kapittha-go-maya-raso madhu-mān avalehanam | taṇḍulīyaka-mūlena siddhaṃ pāne hitaṃ ghṛtam || 25 || 38.25bv madhu-mān avalehane dvi-niśā-kaṭabhī-raktā-yaṣṭy-āhvair vāmṛtānvitaiḥ | āsphota-mūla-siddhaṃ vā pañca-kāpittham eva vā || 26 || sindhuvāraṃ nataṃ śigru-bilva-mūlaṃ punarnavā | vacā-śvadaṃṣṭrā-jīmūtam eṣāṃ kvāthaṃ sa-mākṣikam || 27 || 38.27av sindhuvāra-nataṃ śigru- 38.27bv -bilva-mūlaṃ punarnavam pibec chāly-odanaṃ dadhnā bhuñjāno mūṣikārditaḥ | takreṇa śarapuṅkhāyā bījaṃ saṃcūrṇya vā pibet || 28 || aṅkolla-mūla-kalko vā basta-mūtreṇa kalkitaḥ | pānālepanayor yuktaḥ sarvākhu-viṣa-nāśanaḥ || 29 || 38.29cv pāna-lepanayor yuktaḥ kapittha-madhya-tilaka-tilāṅkolla-jaṭāḥ pibet | gavāṃ mūtreṇa payasā mañjarīṃ tilakasya vā || 30 || 38.30av kapittha-madhya-tilakaṃ 38.30av kapittha-madhyaṃ tilakaṃ 38.30bv -tilāṅkolla-jaṭāṃ pibet 38.30bv tilāṅkolla-jaṭāḥ pibet 38.30dv mañjarīs tilakasya vā atha-vā sairyakān mūlaṃ sa-kṣaudraṃ taṇḍulāmbunā | kaṭukālābu-vinyastaṃ pītaṃ vāmbu niśoṣitam || 31 || 38.31dv pibed vāmbu niśoṣitam 38.31dv pibec cāmbu niśoṣitam sindhuvārasya mūlāni biḍālāsthi viṣaṃ natam | jala-piṣṭo '-gado hanti nasyādyair ākhu-jaṃ viṣam || 32 || sa-śeṣaṃ mūṣika-viṣaṃ prakupyaty abhra-darśane | yathā-yathaṃ vā kāleṣu doṣāṇāṃ vṛddhi-hetuṣu || 33 || 38.33ac sa-śeṣaṃ mūṣaka-viṣaṃ tatra sarve yathāvasthaṃ prayojyāḥ syur upakramāḥ | yathā-svaṃ ye ca nirdiṣṭās tathā dūṣī-viṣāpahāḥ || 34 || daṃśaṃ tv alarka-daṣṭasya dagdham uṣṇena sarpiṣā | pradihyād a-gadais tais taiḥ purāṇaṃ ca ghṛtaṃ pibet || 35 || arka-kṣīra-yutaṃ cāsya yojyam āśu virecanam | aṅkollottara-mūlāmbu tri-palaṃ sa-haviḥ-palam || 36 || 38.36ac arka-kṣīra-yutaṃ vāsya pibet sa-dhattūra-phalāṃ śvetāṃ vāpi punarnavām | aikadhyaṃ palalaṃ tailaṃ rūpikāyāḥ payo guḍaḥ || 37 || 38.37bv śvetāṃ cāpi punarnavām 38.37dv rūyikāyāḥ payo guḍaḥ 38.37dv rūṣikāyāḥ payo guḍaḥ bhinatti viṣam ālarkaṃ ghana-vṛndam ivānilaḥ | sa-mantraṃ sauṣadhī-ratnaṃ snapanaṃ ca prayojayet || 38 || catuṣ-pādbhir dvi-pādbhir vā nakha-danta-parikṣatam | śūyate pacyate rāga-jvara-srāva-rujānvitam || 39 || 38.39dv -jvarāsrāva-rujānvitam somavalko 'śvakarṇaś ca gojihvā haṃsapādikā | rajanyau gairikaṃ lepo nakha-danta-viṣāpahaḥ || 40 || Uttarasthāna dīrgham āyuḥ smṛtiṃ medhām ārogyaṃ taruṇaṃ vayaḥ | prabhā-varṇa-svaraudāryaṃ dehendriya-balodayam || 1 || vāk-siddhiṃ vṛṣa-tāṃ kāntim avāpnoti rasāyanāt | lābhopāyo hi śastānāṃ rasādīnāṃ rasāyanam || 2 || 39.2cv lābhopāyo hi saptānāṃ pūrve vayasi madhye vā tat prayojyaṃ jitātmanaḥ | snigdhasya sruta-raktasya viśuddhasya ca sarva-thā || 3 || a-viśuddhe śarīre hi yukto rāsāyano vidhiḥ | vājī-karo vā maline vastre raṅga ivā-phalaḥ || 4 || 39.4dv vastre rāga ivā-phalaḥ rasāyanānāṃ dvi-vidhaṃ prayogam ṛṣayo viduḥ | kuṭī-prāveśikaṃ mukhyaṃ vātātapikam anya-thā || 5 || pure prāpyopakaraṇe harmya-nir-vāta-nir-bhaye | diśy udīcyāṃ śubhe deśe tri-garbhāṃ sūkṣma-locanām || 6 || 39.6av nir-vāte nir-bhaye dharmye 39.6av nir-vāte nir-bhaye harmye 39.6bv prāpyopakaraṇe pure 39.6cv diśy aiśānyāṃ śubhe deśe dhūmātapa-rajo-vyāla-strī-mūrkhādya-vilaṅghitām | sajja-vaidyopakaraṇāṃ su-mṛṣṭāṃ kārayet kuṭīm || 7 || atha puṇye 'hni saṃpūjya pūjyāṃs tāṃ praviśec chuciḥ | tatra saṃśodhanaiḥ śuddhaḥ sukhī jāta-balaḥ punaḥ || 8 || brahma-cārī dhṛti-yutaḥ śrad-dadhāno jitendriyaḥ | dāna-śīla-dayā-satya-vrata-dharma-parāyaṇaḥ || 9 || devatānusmṛtau yukto yukta-svapna-prajāgaraḥ | priyauṣadhaḥ peśala-vāg ārabheta rasāyanam || 10 || 39.10cv priyauṣadhaḥ peśala-vāk 39.10dv prārabheta rasāyanam harītakīm āmalakaṃ saindhavaṃ nāgaraṃ vacām | haridrāṃ pippalīṃ vellaṃ guḍaṃ coṣṇāmbunā pibet || 11 || snigdha-svinno naraḥ pūrvaṃ tena sādhu viricyate | tataḥ śuddha-śarīrāya kṛta-saṃsarjanāya ca || 12 || 39.12av snigdhaḥ svinno naraḥ pūrvaṃ 39.12bv tena sādhu viśudhyati tri-rātraṃ pañca-rātraṃ vā saptāhaṃ vā ghṛtānvitam | dadyād yāvakam ā-śuddheḥ purāṇa-śakṛto 'tha-vā || 13 || itthaṃ saṃskṛta-koṣṭhasya rasāyanam upāharet | yasya yad yaugikaṃ paśyet sarvam ālocya sātmya-vit || 14 || pathyā-sahasraṃ tri-guṇa-dhātrī-phala-samanvitam | pañcānāṃ pañca-mūlānāṃ sārdhaṃ pala-śata-dvayam || 15 || jale daśa-guṇe paktvā daśa-bhāga-sthite rase | āpothya kṛtvā vy-asthīni vijayāmalakāny atha || 16 || vinīya tasmin niryūhe yojayet kuḍavāṃśakam | tvag-elā-musta-rajanī-pippaly-aguru-candanam || 17 || maṇḍūkaparṇī-kanaka-śaṅkhapuṣpī-vacā-plavam | yaṣṭy-āhvayaṃ viḍaṅgaṃ ca cūrṇitaṃ tulayādhikam || 18 || sitopalārdha-bhāraṃ ca pātrāṇi trīṇi sarpiṣaḥ | dve ca tailāt pacet sarvaṃ tad agnau leha-tāṃ gatam || 19 || avatīrṇaṃ himaṃ yuñjyād viṃśaiḥ kṣaudra-śatais tribhiḥ | tataḥ khajena mathitaṃ nidadhyād ghṛta-bhājane || 20 || yā noparundhyād āhāram ekaṃ mātrāsya sā smṛtā | ṣaṣṭikaḥ payasā cātra jīrṇe bhojanam iṣyate || 21 || 39.21bv ekā mātrāsya sā smṛtā vaikhānasā bālakhilyās tathā cānye tapo-dhanāḥ | brahmaṇā vihitaṃ dhanyam idaṃ prāśya rasāyanam || 22 || 39.22av vaikhānasā bālikhilyās tandrā-śrama-klama-valī-palitāmaya-varjitāḥ | medhā-smṛti-balopetā babhūvur a-mitāyuṣaḥ || 23 || abhayāmalaka-sahasraṃ nir-āmayaṃ pippalī-sahasra-yutam | taruṇa-palāśa-kṣāra-dravī-kṛtaṃ sthāpayed bhāṇḍe || 24 || upayukte ca kṣāre chāyā-saṃśuṣka-cūrṇitaṃ yojyam | pādāṃśena sitāyāś catur-guṇābhyāṃ madhu-ghṛtābhyām || 25 || 39.25av upayukte ca kvāthe tad ghṛta-kumbhe bhūmau nidhāya ṣaṇ-māsa-saṃstham uddhṛtya | prāhṇe prāśya yathānalam ucitāhāro bhavet satatam || 26 || 39.26bv nikhāya ṣaṇ-māsa-saṃstham uddhṛtya 39.26cv prāhṇe prāśya yathā-balam ity upayuñjyā-śeṣaṃ varṣa-śatam an-āmayo jarā-rahitaḥ | jīvati bala-puṣṭi-vapuḥ-smṛti-medhādy-anvito viśeṣeṇa || 27 || 39.27av ity upayojyā-śeṣaṃ nī-rujārdra-palāśasya cchinne śirasi tat kṣatam | antar dvi-hastaṃ gambhīraṃ pūryam āmalakair navaiḥ || 28 || 39.28bv cchinne śirasi takṣitam ā-mūlaṃ veṣṭitaṃ darbhaiḥ padminī-paṅka-lepitam | ādīpya go-mayair vanyair nir-vāte svedayet tataḥ || 29 || svinnāni tāny āmalakāni tṛptyā khāden naraḥ kṣaudra-ghṛtānvitāni | kṣīraṃ śṛtaṃ cānu pibet pra-kāmaṃ tenaiva varteta ca māsam ekam || 30 || varjyāni varjyāni ca tatra yatnāt spṛśyaṃ ca śītāmbu na pāṇināpi | ekā-daśāhe 'sya tato vyatīte patanti keśā daśanā nakhāś ca || 31 || 39.31bv spṛśen na śītāmbu ca pāṇināpi athālpakair eva dinaiḥ su-rūpaḥ strīṣv a-kṣayaḥ kuñjara-tulya-vīryaḥ | viśiṣṭa-medhā-bala-buddhi-sat-tvo bhavaty asau varṣa-sahasra-jīvī || 32 || daśa-mūla-balā-musta-jīvakarṣabhakotpalam | parṇinyau pippalī śṛṅgī medā tāmalakī truṭī || 33 || jīvantī joṅgakaṃ drākṣā pauṣkaraṃ candanaṃ śaṭhī | punarnavarddhi-kākolī-kākanāsāmṛtā-dvayam || 34 || 39.34cv punarnavā-dvi-kākolī- 39.34dv -kākanāsāmṛtāhvayāḥ vidārī vṛṣa-mūlaṃ ca tad aikadhyaṃ palonmitam | jala-droṇe pacet pañca dhātrī-phala-śatāni ca || 35 || pāda-śeṣaṃ rasaṃ tasmād vy-asthīny āmalakāni ca | gṛhītvā bharjayet taila-ghṛtād dvā-daśabhiḥ palaiḥ || 36 || 39.36av pāda-śeṣe rase tasmin matsyaṇḍikā-tulārdhena yuktaṃ tal leha-vat pacet | snehārdhaṃ madhu siddhe tu tavakṣīryāś catuḥ-palam || 37 || 39.37cv snehārdhaṃ madhunaḥ śīte pippalyā dvi-palaṃ dadyāc catur-jātaṃ kaṇārdhitam | ato 'valehayen mātrāṃ kuṭī-sthaḥ pathya-bhojanaḥ || 38 || 39.38bv catur-jātaṃ kaṇārdhikam 39.38bv catur-jātaṃ kaṇārdhakam 39.38dv kuṭī-sthaṃ pathya-bhojinam ity eṣa cyavana-prāśo yaṃ prāśya cyavano muniḥ | jarā-jarjarito 'py āsīn nārī-nayana-nandanaḥ || 39 || kāsaṃ śvāsaṃ jvaraṃ śoṣaṃ hṛd-rogaṃ vāta-śoṇitam | mūtra-śukrāśrayān doṣān vaisvaryaṃ ca vyapohati || 40 || bāla-vṛddha-kṣata-kṣīṇa-kṛśānām aṅga-vardhanaḥ || 41ab || medhāṃ smṛtiṃ kāntim an-āmaya-tvam āyuḥ-prakarṣaṃ pavanānulomyam || 41cd || strīṣu praharṣaṃ balam indriyāṇām agneś ca kuryād vidhinopayuktaḥ || 41ef || madhukena tavakṣīryā pippalyā sindhu-janmanā | pṛthag lohaiḥ suvarṇena vacayā madhu-sarpiṣā || 42 || sitayā vā samā yuktā samāyuktā rasāyanam | tri-phalā sarva-roga-ghnī medhāyuḥ-smṛti-buddhi-dā || 43 || 39.43av sitayātha samāyuktā 39.43bv raupya-yuktā rasāyanī maṇḍūkaparṇyāḥ sva-rasaṃ yathāgni kṣīreṇa yaṣṭīmadhukasya cūrṇam | rasaṃ guḍūcyās saha-mūla-puṣpyāḥ kalkaṃ prayuñjīta ca śaṅkhapuṣpyāḥ || 44 || āyuḥ-pradāny āmaya-nāśanāni balāgni-varṇa-svara-vardhanāni | medhyāni caitāni rasāyanāni medhyā viśeṣeṇa tu śaṅkhapuṣpī || 45 || 39.45dv medhyā viśeṣeṇa ca śaṅkhapuṣpī naladaṃ kaṭu-rohiṇī payasyā madhukaṃ candana-śārivogragandhāḥ | tri-phalā kaṭuka-trayaṃ haridre sa-paṭolaṃ lavaṇaṃ ca taiḥ su-piṣṭaiḥ || 46 || tri-guṇena rasena śaṅkhapuṣpyāḥ sa-payaskaṃ ghṛta-nalvaṇaṃ vipakvam | upayujya bhavej jaḍo 'pi vāṅmī śruta-dhārī pratibhāna-vān a-rogaḥ || 47 || 39.47dv śruti-dhārī pratibhāna-vān a-rogaḥ 39.47dv śruti-dhārī pratibhāna-vān a-rogī peṣyair mṛṇāla-bisa-kesara-pattra-bījaiḥ siddhaṃ sa-hema-śakalaṃ payasā ca sarpiḥ | pañcāravindam iti tat prathitaṃ pṛthivyāṃ prabhraṣṭa-pauruṣa-bala-pratibhair niṣevyam || 48 || 39.48cv pañcāravindam iti sarpir udāra-vīryaṃ yan nāla-kanda-dala-kesara-vad vipakvaṃ nīlotpalasya tad api prathitaṃ dvitīyam | sarpiś catuṣ-kuvalayaṃ sa-hiraṇya-pattraṃ medhyaṃ gavām api bhavet kim u mānuṣāṇām || 49 || brāhmī-vacā-saindhava-śaṅkhapuṣpī-matsyākṣaka-brahmasuvarcalaindryaḥ | vaidehikā ca tri-yavāḥ pṛthak syur yavau suvarṇasya tilo viṣasya || 50 || sarpiṣaś ca palam ekata etad yojayet pariṇate ca ghṛtāḍhyam | bhojanaṃ sa-madhu vatsaram evaṃ śīlayann adhika-dhī-smṛti-medhaḥ || 51 || 39.51dv śīlayann adhika-dhī-smṛti-veṣaḥ atikrānta-jarā-vyādhi-tandrālasya-śrama-klamaḥ | jīvaty abda-śataṃ pūrṇaṃ śrī-tejaḥ-kānti-dīpti-mān || 52 || 39.52dv śrī-tejaḥ-kānti-mūrti-mān viśeṣataḥ kuṣṭha-kilāsa-gulma-viṣa-jvaronmāda-garodarāṇi | atharva-mantrādi-kṛtāś ca kṛtyāḥ śāmyanty anenāti-balāś ca vātāḥ || 53 || śaran-mukhe nāgabalāṃ puṣya-yoge samuddharet | akṣa-mātraṃ tato mūlāc cūrṇitāt payasā pibet || 54 || 39.54cv akṣa-mātraṃ tato mūlaṃ 39.54dv cūrṇitaṃ payasā pibet lihyān madhu-ghṛtābhyāṃ vā kṣīra-vṛttir an-anna-bhuk | evaṃ varṣa-prayogena jīved varṣa-śataṃ balī || 55 || phalon-mukho gokṣurakaḥ sa-mūlaś chāyā-viśuṣkaḥ su-vicūrṇitāṅgaḥ | su-bhāvitaḥ svena rasena tasmān mātrāṃ parāṃ prāsṛtikīṃ pibed yaḥ || 56 || 39.56dv mātrāṃ paraṃ prāsṛtikīṃ pibed yaḥ kṣīreṇa tenaiva ca śālim aśnan jīrṇe bhavet sa dvi-tulopayogāt | śaktaḥ su-rūpaḥ su-bhagaḥ śatāyuḥ kāmī kakud-mān iva go-kula-sthaḥ || 57 || vārāhī-kandam ārdrārdraṃ kṣīreṇa kṣīra-paḥ pibet | māsaṃ nir-anno māsaṃ ca kṣīrānnādo jarāṃ jayet || 58 || tat-kanda-ślakṣṇa-cūrṇaṃ vā sva-rasena su-bhāvitam | ghṛta-kṣaudra-plutaṃ lihyāt tat-pakvaṃ vā ghṛtaṃ pibet || 59 || 39.59cv ghṛta-kṣaudra-yutaṃ lihyāt tad-vad vidāry-atibalā-balā-madhuka-vāyasīḥ | śreyasī-śreyasī-yuktā-pathyā-dhātrī-sthirāmṛtāḥ || 60 || 39.60cv jīvantī-śreyasī-yuktā- maṇḍūkī-śaṅkhakusumā-vājigandhā-śatāvarīḥ | upayuñjīta medhā-dhī-vayaḥ-sthairya-bala-pradāḥ || 61 || 39.61cv upayuñjīta dhī-medhā- 39.61cv upayuñjīta medhāvī 39.61dv vayaḥ-sthairya-bala-pradāḥ yathā-svaṃ citrakaḥ puṣpair jñeyaḥ pīta-sitāsitaiḥ | yathottaraṃ sa guṇa-vān vidhinā ca rasāyanam || 62 || chāyā-śuṣkaṃ tato mūlaṃ māsaṃ cūrṇī-kṛtaṃ lihan | sarpiṣā madhu-sarpirbhyāṃ piban vā payasā yatiḥ || 63 || ambhasā vā hitānnāśī śataṃ jīvati nī-rujaḥ | medhāvī bala-vān kānto vapuṣ-mān dīpta-pāvakaḥ || 64 || tailena līḍho māsena vātān hanti su-dus-tarān | mūtreṇa śvitra-kuṣṭhāni pītas takreṇa pāyu-jān || 65 || 39.65bv vātān hanti su-dāruṇān bhallātakāni puṣṭāni dhānya-rāśau nidhāpayet | grīṣme saṃgṛhya hemante svādu-snigdha-himair vapuḥ || 66 || 39.66dv svādu-snigdha-himaiḥ punaḥ saṃskṛtya tāny aṣṭa-guṇe salile 'ṣṭau vipācayet | aṣṭāṃśa-śiṣṭaṃ tat-kvāthaṃ sa-kṣīraṃ śītalaṃ pibet || 67 || 39.67cv aṣṭāṃśa-śiṣṭaṃ taṃ kvāthaṃ vardhayet praty-ahaṃ cānu tatraikaikam aruṣkaram | sapta-rātra-trayaṃ yāvat trīṇi trīṇi tataḥ param || 68 || ā-catvāriṃśatas tāni hrāsayed vṛddhi-vat tataḥ | sahasram upayuñjīta saptāhair iti saptabhiḥ || 69 || 39.69dv saptāhair api saptabhiḥ yantritātmā ghṛta-kṣīra-śāli-ṣaṣṭika-bhojanaḥ | tad-vat tri-guṇitaṃ kālaṃ prayogānte 'pi cācaret || 70 || 39.70dv prayogānte 'py upācaret āśiṣo labhate '-pūrvā vahner dīptiṃ viśeṣataḥ | prameha-kṛmi-kuṣṭhārśo-medo-doṣa-vivarjitaḥ || 71 || 39.71av āśiṣo labhate pūrvā piṣṭa-svedanam a-rujaiḥ pūrṇaṃ bhallātakair vijarjaritaiḥ | bhūmi-nikhāte kumbhe pratiṣṭhitaṃ kṛṣṇa-mṛl-liptam || 72 || 39.72bv pūrṇaṃ bhallātakaiḥ su-jarjaritaiḥ parivāritaṃ samantāt pacet tato go-mayāgninā mṛdunā | tat-sva-raso yaś cyavate gṛhṇīyāt taṃ dine 'nyasmin || 73 || 39.73bv pacet tad go-mayāgninā mṛdunā amum upayujya sva-rasaṃ madhv-aṣṭama-bhāgikaṃ dvi-guṇa-sarpiḥ | pūrva-vidhi-yantritātmā prāpnoti guṇān sa tān eva || 74 || 39.74av amum upayuñjyāt sva-rasaṃ puṣṭāni pākena paricyutāni bhallātakāny āḍhaka-saṃmitāni | ghṛṣṭveṣṭikā-cūrṇa-kaṇair jalena prakṣālya saṃśoṣya ca mārutena || 75 || jarjarāṇi vipacej jala-kumbhe pāda-śeṣa-ghṛta-gālita-śītam | tad-rasaṃ punar api śrapayeta kṣīra-kumbha-sahitaṃ caraṇa-sthe || 76 || 39.76bv pāda-śeṣa-ghṛta-gālita-śeṣam 39.76bv pāda-śeṣa-ghṛta-gālita-śīte 39.76bv pāda-śeṣam avatārita-śītam 39.76cv taṃ rasaṃ punar api śrapayeta 39.76dv kṣīra-kumbha-sahitaṃ caraṇa-stham sarpiḥ pakvaṃ tatra tulya-pramāṇaṃ yuñjyāt svecchaṃ śarkarayā rajobhiḥ | ekī-bhūtaṃ tat khaja-kṣobhaṇena sthāpyaṃ dhānye sapta-rātraṃ su-guptam || 77 || 39.77av sarpiḥ pakvaṃ tena tulya-pramāṇaṃ 39.77bv yuñjyāt prasthaṃ śarkarayā rajobhiḥ 39.77bv yuñjyāt svacchaṃ śarkarayā rajobhiḥ 39.77cv ekī-bhūtaṃ taṃ khaja-kṣobhaṇena tam amṛta-rasa-pākaṃ yaḥ prage prāśam aśnann anupibati yatheṣṭaṃ vāri dugdhaṃ rasaṃ vā | smṛti-mati-bala-medhā-sat-tva-sārair upetaḥ kanaka-nicaya-gauraḥ so 'śnute dīrgham āyuḥ || 78 || droṇe 'mbhaso vraṇakṛtāṃ tri-śatād vipakvāt kvāthāḍhake pala-samais tila-taila-pātram | tiktā-viṣā-dvaya-varā-girijanma-tārkṣyaiḥ siddhaṃ paraṃ nikhila-kuṣṭha-nibarhaṇāya || 79 || 39.79av droṇe 'mbhaso vraṇakṛtāṃ tri-śatāni paktvā 39.79cv tiktā-niśā-dvaya-vacā-girijanma-tārkṣyaiḥ 39.79cv tiktā-niśā-dvaya-varā-girijanma-tārkṣyaiḥ 39.79cv tiktā-viṣā-dvaya-vacā-girijanma-tārkṣyaiḥ 39.79cv tiktā-viṣā-dvaya-varā-girijāta-tārkṣyaiḥ sahāmalaka-śuktibhir dadhi-sareṇa tailena vā || 80a || guḍena payasā ghṛtena yava-saktubhir vā saha || 80b || tilena saha mākṣikeṇa palalena sūpena vā || 80c || vapuṣ-karam aruṣkaraṃ parama-medhyam āyuṣ-karam || 80d || bhallātakāni tīkṣṇāni pākīny agni-samāni ca | bhavanty amṛta-kalpāni prayuktāni yathā-vidhi || 81 || 39.81dv kalpitāni yathā-vidhi kapha-jo na sa rogo 'sti na vibandho 'sti kaś-ca-na | yaṃ na bhallātakaṃ hanyāc chīghram agni-bala-pradam || 82 || 39.82dv chīghraṃ vahni-bala-pradam vātātapa-vidhāne 'pi viśeṣeṇa vivarjayet | kulattha-dadhi-śuktāni tailābhyaṅgāgni-sevanam || 83 || vṛkṣās tubarakā nāma paścimārṇava-tīra-jāḥ | vīcī-taraṅga-vikṣobha-mārutoddhūta-pallavāḥ || 84 || tebhyaḥ phalāny ādadīta su-pakvāny ambu-dāgame | majjñaḥ phalebhyaś cādāya śoṣayitvāvacūrṇya ca || 85 || 39.85cv majjāṃ phalebhyaś cādāya 39.85cv majjāḥ phalebhyaś cādāya 39.85dv śoṣayitvā vicūrṇya ca tila-vat pīḍayed droṇyāṃ kvāthayed vā kusumbha-vat | tat-tailaṃ saṃbhṛtaṃ bhūyaḥ paced ā-salila-kṣayāt || 86 || 39.86cv tat-tailaṃ sa-ghṛtaṃ bhūyaḥ 39.86cv tat-tailaṃ saṃsṛtaṃ bhūyaḥ 39.86cv tat-tailaṃ saṃhṛtaṃ bhūyaḥ avatārya karīṣe ca pakṣa-mātraṃ nidhāpayet | snigdha-svinno hṛta-malaḥ pakṣād uddhṛtya tat tataḥ || 87 || 39.87dv pakṣād uddhṛtya yatna-vān caturtha-bhaktāntaritaḥ prātaḥ pāṇi-talaṃ pibet | mantreṇānena pūtasya tailasya divase śubhe || 88 || majja-sāra mahā-vīrya sarvān dhātūn viśodhaya | śaṅkha-cakra-gadā-pāṇis tvām ājñāpayate '-cyutaḥ || 89 || 39.89av majjā-sāra mahā-vīrya 39.89dv tvām ājñāpayate '-cyuta tenāsyordhvam adhas-tāc ca doṣā yānty a-sakṛt tataḥ | sāyam a-sneha-lavaṇāṃ yavāgūṃ śītalāṃ pibet || 90 || 39.90bv doṣā yānty a-sakṛt-sakṛt pañcāhāni pibet tailam itthaṃ varjyān vivarjayan | pakṣaṃ mudga-rasānnāśī sarva-kuṣṭhair vimucyate || 91 || 39.91bv itthaṃ varjyāni varjayet tad eva khadira-kvāthe tri-guṇe sādhu sādhitam | nihitaṃ pūrva-vat pakṣaṃ piben māsaṃ su-yantritaḥ || 92 || tenābhyakta-śarīraś ca kurvann āhāram īritam | anenāśu prayogeṇa sādhayet kuṣṭhinaṃ naram || 93 || bhinna-svaraṃ rakta-netraṃ śīrṇāṅgaṃ kṛmi-bhakṣitam || 93.1+(1)ab || 39.93.1+(1)av bhagna-svaraṃ rakta-netraṃ 39.93.1+(1)bv śīrṇāṅgaṃ kṛmibhiś citam sarpir-madhu-yutaṃ pītaṃ tad eva khadirād vinā | pakṣaṃ māṃsa-rasāhāraṃ karoti dvi-śatāyuṣam || 94 || 39.94cv pakva-māṃsa-rasāhāraṃ 39.94cv pakvaṃ māṃsa-rasāhāraṃ tad eva nasye pañcāśad divasān upayojitam | vapuṣ-mataṃ śruta-dharaṃ karoti tri-śatāyuṣam || 95 || 39.95cv vapuṣ-mataṃ śruti-dharaṃ valī-palita-nirmuktaṃ sthira-smṛti-kaca-dvi-jam || 95.1+(1)ab || pañcāṣṭau sapta daśa vā pippalīr madhu-sarpiṣā | rasāyana-guṇānveṣī samām ekāṃ prayojayet || 96 || 39.96dv māsam ekaṃ prayojayet tisras tisras tu pūrvāhṇe bhuktvāgre bhojanasya ca | pippalyaḥ kiṃśuka-kṣāra-bhāvitā ghṛta-bharjitāḥ || 97 || 39.97bv bhuktvāgre bhojanasya tu prayojyā madhu-saṃmiśrā rasāyana-guṇaiṣiṇā | krama-vṛddhyā daśāhāni daśa-paippalikaṃ dinam || 98 || 39.98cv daśa-vṛddhyā daśāhāni 39.98dv daśa-pippalikaṃ dinam vardhayet payasā sārdhaṃ tathaivāpanayet punaḥ | jīrṇauṣadhaś ca bhuñjīta ṣaṣṭikaṃ kṣīra-sarpiṣā || 99 || pippalīnāṃ sahasrasya prayogo 'yaṃ rasāyanam | piṣṭās tā balibhiḥ peyāḥ śṛtā madhya-balair naraiḥ || 100 || śītī-kṛtā hīna-balair vīkṣya doṣāmayān prati || 100+(1)ab || 39.100+(1)av śītī-kṛtā kṣīṇa-balair 39.100+(1)bv vīkṣya doṣān prayojayet tad-vac ca cchāga-dugdhena dve sahasre prayojayet | ebhiḥ prayogaiḥ pippalyaḥ kāsa-śvāsa-gala-grahān || 101 || yakṣma-meha-grahaṇy-arśaḥ-pāṇḍu-tva-viṣama-jvarān | ghnanti śophaṃ vamiṃ hidhmāṃ plīhānaṃ vāta-śoṇitam || 102 || bilvārdha-mātreṇa ca pippalīnāṃ pātraṃ pralimped ayaso niśāyām | prātaḥ pibet tat salilāñjalibhyāṃ varṣaṃ yatheṣṭāśana-pāna-ceṣṭaḥ || 103 || śuṇṭhī-viḍaṅga-tri-phalā-guḍūcī- yaṣṭī-haridrātibalā-balāś ca | mustā-surāhvāguru-citrakāś ca saugandhikaṃ paṅka-jam utpalāni || 104 || 39.104cv mustā-śatāhvāguru-citrakāś ca dhavāśvakarṇāsana-bālapattra-sārās tathā pippali-vat prayojyāḥ | lohopaliptāḥ pṛthag eva jīvet samāḥ śataṃ vyādhi-jarā-vimuktaḥ || 105 || 39.105bv -sārās tathā pippali-vat prayuñjyāḥ 39.105cv loha-pralepāt pṛthag eva jīvet 39.105cv lohopalepāt pṛthag eva jīvet kṣīrāñjalibhyāṃ ca rasāyanāni yuktāny amūny āyasa-lepanāni | kurvanti pūrvokta-guṇa-prakarṣam āyuḥ-prakarṣaṃ dvi-guṇaṃ tataś ca || 106 || asana-khadira-yūṣair bhāvitāṃ somarājīṃ madhu-ghṛta-śikhi-pathyā-loha-cūrṇair upetām | śaradam avalihānaḥ pāriṇāmān vikārāṃs tyajati mita-hitāśī tad-vad āhāra-jātān || 107 || 39.107bv madhu-ghṛta-gada-pathyā-loha-cūrṇair upetām tīvreṇa kuṣṭhena parīta-mūrtir yaḥ somarājīṃ niyamena khādet | saṃvatsaraṃ kṛṣṇa-tila-dvitīyāṃ sa somarājīṃ vapuṣātiśete || 108 || ye somarājyā vi-tuṣī-kṛtāyāś cūrṇair upetāt payasaḥ su-jātāt | uddhṛtya sāraṃ madhunā lihanti takraṃ tad evānupibanti cānte || 109 || kuṣṭhinaḥ śīryamāṇāṅgās te jātāṅguli-nāsikāḥ | bhānti vṛkṣā iva punaḥ prarūḍha-nava-pallavāḥ || 110 || 39.110av kuṣṭhinaḥ kuthyamānāṅgās śīta-vāta-hima-dagdha-tanūnāṃ stabdha-bhagna-kuṭila-vyathitāsthnām | bheṣajasya pavanopahatānāṃ vakṣyate vidhir ato laśunasya || 110+(1) || 39.110+(1)av śīta-vāta-paridagdha-tanūnāṃ 39.110+(1)bv stabdha-bhugna-kuṭila-vyathitāsthnām 39.110+(1)cv bheṣajaṃ ca pavanopahatānāṃ rāhor amṛta-cauryeṇa lūnād ye patitā galāt | amṛtasya kaṇā bhūmau te laśuna-tvam āgatāḥ || 111 || 39.111av rāhor acyuta-cakreṇa dvi-jā nāśnanti tam ato daitya-deha-samudbhavam | sākṣād amṛta-saṃbhūter grāmaṇīḥ sa rasāyanam || 112 || śīlayel laśunaṃ śīte vasante 'pi kapholbaṇaḥ | ghanodaye 'pi vātārtaḥ sadā vā grīṣma-līlayā || 113 || 39.113bv vasante ca kapholbaṇaḥ snigdha-śuddha-tanuḥ śīta-madhuropaskṛtāśayaḥ | tad-uttaṃsāvataṃsābhyāṃ carcitānucarājiraḥ || 114 || tasya kandān vasantānte himavac-chaka-deśa-jān | apanīta-tvaco rātrau timayen madirādibhiḥ || 115 || 39.115cv apanīya tvaco rātrau 39.115dv tīmayen madirādibhiḥ 39.115dv peṣayen madirādibhiḥ tat-kalka-sva-rasaṃ prātaḥ śuci-tāntava-pīḍitam | madirāyāḥ su-rūḍhāyās tri-bhāgena samanvitam || 116 || madyasyānyasya takrasya mastunaḥ kāñjikasya vā | tat-kāla eva vā yuktaṃ yuktam ālocya mātrayā || 117 || 39.117av madyasyānyasya tailasya taila-sarpir-vasā-majja-kṣīra-māṃsa-rasaiḥ pṛthak | kvāthena vā yathā-vyādhi rasaṃ kevalam eva vā || 118 || 39.118bv kṣīra-sarpir-vasā-majja- 39.118bv -dhanva-māṃsa-rasaiḥ pṛthak 39.118bv -dhanva-māṃsaiḥ pṛthak pṛthak pibed gaṇḍūṣa-mātraṃ prāk kaṇṭha-nālī-viśuddhaye | pratataṃ svedanaṃ cānu vedanāyāṃ praśasyate || 119 || 39.119cv pratataṃ svedanaṃ cātra śītāmbu-sekaḥ sahasā vami-mūrchāyayor mukhe | śeṣaṃ pibet klamāpāye sthira-tāṃ gata ojasi || 120 || vidāha-parihārāya paraṃ śītānulepanaḥ | dhārayet sāmbu-kaṇikā muktā-karpūra-mālikāḥ || 121 || 39.121cv dhārayet sāmbu-kaṇikāṃ 39.121dv muktāṃ karpūra-mālikām 39.121dv muktā-karpūra-mālikām kuḍavo 'sya parā mātrā tad-ardhaṃ kevalasya tu | palaṃ piṣṭasya tan-majjñaḥ sa-bhaktaṃ prāk ca śīlayet || 122 || jīrṇa-śāly-odanaṃ jīrṇe śaṅkha-kundendu-pāṇḍuram | bhuñjīta yūṣair payasā rasair vā dhanva-cāriṇām || 123 || madyam ekaṃ pibet tatra tṛṭ-prabandhe jalānvitam | a-madya-pas tv āranālaṃ phalāmbu parisikthakām || 124 || 39.124av madyam ekaṃ pibet tv atra 39.124bv tṛṭ-[pra]vṛddhe jalānvitam 39.124bv tṛḍ-vibandhe jalānvitam 39.124dv phalāmbu parisikthikām 39.124dv phalāmbu parisitthikām 39.124dv phalāmbu parisikthikam 39.124dv phalāmbu-pariṣecitam tat-kalkaṃ vā sama-ghṛtaṃ ghṛta-pātre khajāhatam | sthitaṃ daśāhād aśnīyāt tad-vad vā vasayā samam || 125 || 39.125dv tad-vad vā payasā samam vi-kañcuka-prājya-rasona-garbhān sa-śūlya-māṃsān vividhopadaṃśān | nimardakān vā ghṛta-śukta-yuktān pra-kāmam adyāl laghu tuccham aśnan || 126 || 39.126cv vimardakān vā ghṛta-śukta-yuktān 39.126dv pra-kāmam adyāl laghu tuttham aśnan pitta-rakta-vinirmukta-samastāvaraṇāvṛte | śuddhe vā vidyate vāyau na dravyaṃ laśunāt param || 127 || 39.127av pitta-rakta-vinirmukte 39.127bv samastāvaraṇāvṛte priyāmbu-guḍa-dugdhasya māṃsa-madyāmla-vidviṣaḥ | a-titikṣor a-jīrṇaṃ ca laśuno vyāpade dhruvam || 128 || 39.128bv māṃsa-madyādi-vidviṣaḥ 39.128cv a-tityakṣor a-jīrṇam ca 39.128cv ati-rūkṣair a-jīrṇe ca pitta-kopa-bhayād ante yuñjyān mṛdu virecanam | rasāyana-guṇān evaṃ paripūrṇān samaśnute || 129 || grīṣme 'rka-taptā girayo jatu-tulyaṃ vamanti yat | hemādi-ṣaḍ-dhātu-rasaṃ procyate tac chilā-jatu || 130 || sarvaṃ ca tikta-kaṭukaṃ nāty-uṣṇaṃ kaṭu pākataḥ | chedanaṃ ca viśeṣeṇa lauhaṃ tatra praśasyate || 131 || go-mūtra-gandhi kṛṣṇaṃ guggulv-ābhaṃ vi-śarkaraṃ mṛtsnam | snigdham an-amla-kaṣāyaṃ mṛdu guru ca śilā-jatu śreṣṭham || 132 || vyādhi-vyādhita-sātmyaṃ samanusmaran bhāvayed ayaḥ-pātre | prāk kevala-jala-dhautaṃ śuṣkaṃ kvāthais tato bhāvyam || 133 || sama-girijam aṣṭa-guṇite niḥkvāthyaṃ bhāvanauṣadhaṃ toye | tan-niryūhe 'ṣṭāṃśe pūtoṣṇe prakṣiped girijam || 134 || tat sama-rasa-tāṃ yātaṃ saṃśuṣkaṃ prakṣiped rase bhūyaḥ | svaiḥ svair evaṃ kvāthair bhāvyaṃ vārān bhavet sapta || 135 || atha snigdhasya śuddhasya ghṛtaṃ tiktaka-sādhitam | try-ahaṃ yuñjīta girijam ekaikena tathā try-aham || 136 || 39.136av atha snigdha-viśuddhasya phala-trayasya yūṣeṇa paṭolyā madhukasya ca | yogaṃ yogyaṃ tatas tasya kālāpekṣaṃ prayojayet || 137 || 39.137cv yoga-yogyaṃ tatas tasya 39.137cv yoge yojyaṃ tatas tasya 39.137dv kālāpekṣaṃ tu yojayet śilā-jam evaṃ dehasya bhavaty aty-upakārakam | guṇān samagrān kurute sahasā vyāpadaṃ na ca || 138 || eka-tri-sapta-saptāhaṃ karṣam ardha-palaṃ palam | hīna-madhyottamo yogaḥ śilā-jasya kramān mataḥ || 139 || saṃskṛtaṃ saṃskṛte dehe prayuktaṃ girijāhvayam | yuktaṃ vyastaiḥ samastair vā tāmrāyo-rūpya-hemabhiḥ || 140 || kṣīreṇāloḍitaṃ kuryāc chīghraṃ rāsāyanaṃ phalam | kulatthān kākamācīṃ ca kapotāṃś ca sadā tyajet || 141 || na so 'sti rogo bhuvi sādhya-rūpo jatv aśma-jaṃ yaṃ na jayet prasahya | tat-kāla-yogair vidhi-vat prayuktaṃ svasthasya corjāṃ vipulāṃ dadhāti || 142 || 39.142bv jatv aśma-jaṃ yaṃ na haret prasahya 39.142dv svasthasya corjāṃ vipulāṃ dadāti kuṭī-praveśaḥ kṣaṇināṃ paricchada-vatāṃ hitaḥ | ato 'nya-thā tu ye teṣāṃ saurya-mārutiko vidhiḥ || 143 || 39.143av kuṭī-praveśaḥ kṣamiṇāṃ 39.143av kuṭī-praveśaḥ kṣīṇānāṃ 39.143dv sūrya-mārutiko vidhiḥ vātātapa-sahā yogā vakṣyante 'to viśeṣataḥ | sukhopacārā bhraṃśe 'pi ye na dehasya bādhakāḥ || 144 || śītodakaṃ payaḥ kṣaudraṃ ghṛtam ekaika-śo dvi-śaḥ | tri-śaḥ samastam atha-vā prāk pītaṃ sthāpayed vayaḥ || 145 || guḍena madhunā śuṇṭhyā kṛṣṇayā lavaṇena vā | dve dve khādan sadā pathye jīved varṣa-śataṃ sukhī || 146 || harītakīṃ sarpiṣi saṃpratāpya samaśnatas tat pibato ghṛtaṃ ca | bhavec cira-sthāyi balaṃ śarīre sakṛt kṛtaṃ sādhu yathā kṛta-jñe || 147 || 39.147bv samaśnute cet pibato ghṛtaṃ ca 39.147cv bhavec cira-sthāyi-balaṃ śarīraṃ 39.147dv sakṛt kṛtaṃ sādhu yathā kṛta-jñāḥ dhātrī-rasa-kṣaudra-sitā-ghṛtāni hitāśanānāṃ lihatāṃ narāṇām | praṇāśam āyānti jarā-vikārā granthā viśālā iva dur-gṛhītāḥ || 148 || 39.148bv hitāśināṃ vai lihatāṃ narāṇām dhātrī-kṛmighnāsana-sāra-cūrṇaṃ sa-taila-sarpir-madhu-loha-reṇu | niṣevamāṇasya bhaven narasya tāruṇya-lāvaṇyam a-vipraṇaṣṭam || 149 || 39.149dv tāruṇya-lāvaṇyam ati-pratiṣṭham 39.149dv tāruṇya-lāvaṇyam api praṇaṣṭam lauhaṃ rajo vella-bhavaṃ ca sarpiḥ-kṣaudra-drutaṃ sthāpitam abda-mātram | samudgake bījaka-sāra-kḷpte lihan balī jīvati kṛṣṇa-keśaḥ || 150 || 39.150av lohaṃ rajo vella-bhavaṃ ca sarpiḥ- 39.150av lohād rajo vella-bhavaṃ ca sarpiḥ- 39.150cv samudgake bījaka-sāra-lipte 39.150cv sāmudgake bījaka-kṣāra-kḷpte viḍaṅga-bhallātaka-nāgarāṇi ye 'śnanti sarpir-madhu-saṃyutāni | jarā-nadīṃ roga-taraṅgiṇīṃ te lāvaṇya-yuktāḥ puruṣās taranti || 151 || khadirāsana-yūṣa-bhāvitāyās tri-phalāyā ghṛta-mākṣika-plutāyāḥ | niyamena narā niṣevitāro yadi jīvanty a-rujaḥ kim atra citram || 152 || 39.152bv tri-phalāyā ghṛta-mākṣikānvitāyāḥ 39.152dv yadi jīvanty a-jarāḥ kim atra citram bījakasya rasam aṅguli-hāryaṃ śarkarāṃ madhu ghṛtaṃ tri-phalāṃ ca | śīlayatsu puruṣeṣu jarat-tā sv-āgatāpi vinivartata eva || 153 || 39.153bv śarkarā-madhu-ghṛtaṃ tri-phalāṃ ca 39.153bv śarkarā-madhu-yutaṃ tri-phalāṃ ca punarnavasyārdha-palaṃ navasya piṣṭaṃ pibed yaḥ payasārdha-māsam | māsa-dvayaṃ tat-tri-guṇaṃ samāṃ vā jīrṇo 'pi bhūyaḥ sa punar-navaḥ syāt || 154 || mūrvā-bṛhaty-aṃśumatī-balānām uśīra-pāṭhāsana-śārivāṇām | kālānusāryāguru-candanānāṃ vadanti paunarnavam eva kalpam || 155 || śatāvarī-kalka-kaṣāya-siddhaṃ ye sarpir aśnanti sitā-dvitīyam | tāñ jīvitādhvānam abhiprapannān na vipralumpanti vikāra-caurāḥ || 156 || pītāśvagandhā payasārdha-māsaṃ ghṛtena tailena sukhāmbunā vā | kṛśasya puṣṭiṃ vapuṣo vidhatte bālasya sasyasya yathā su-vṛṣṭiḥ || 157 || 39.157bv ghṛtena tailena su-sūkṣma-piṣṭā 39.157dv bālasya vṛkṣasya yathāmbu-vṛṣṭiḥ dine dine kṛṣṇa-tila-prakuñcaṃ samaśnatāṃ śīta-jalānu-pānam | poṣaḥ śarīrasya bhavaty an-alpo dṛḍhī-bhavanty ā-maraṇāc ca dantāḥ || 158 || 39.158bv samaśnataḥ śīta-jalānu-pānam cūrṇaṃ śvadaṃṣṭrāmalakāmṛtānāṃ lihan sa-sarpir madhu-bhāga-miśram | vṛṣaḥ sthiraḥ śānta-vikāra-duḥkhaḥ samāḥ śataṃ jīvati kṛṣṇa-keśaḥ || 159 || 39.159bv lihan sa-sarpir madhunā prayuktam 39.159bv lihan sa-sarpir madhu-bhāga-yuktam sārdhaṃ tilair āmalakāni kṛṣṇair akṣāṇi saṃkṣudya harītakīr vā | ye 'dyur mayūrā iva te manuṣyā ramyaṃ parīṇāmam avāpnuvanti || 160 || śilā-jatu-kṣaudra-viḍaṅga-sarpir-lohābhayā-pārada-tāpya-bhakṣaḥ | āpūryate dur-bala-deha-dhātus tri-pañca-rātreṇa yathā śaśāṅkaḥ || 161 || ye māsam ekaṃ sva-rasaṃ pibanti dine dine bhṛṅgarajaḥ-samuttham | kṣīrāśinas te bala-vīrya-yuktāḥ samāḥ śataṃ jīvitam āpnuvanti || 162 || 39.162dv samā-śataṃ jīvitam āpnuvanti māsaṃ vacām apy upasevamānāḥ kṣīreṇa tailena ghṛtena vāpi | bhavanti rakṣobhir a-dhṛṣya-rūpā medhāvino nir-mala-mṛṣṭa-vākyāḥ || 163 || maṇḍūkaparṇīm api bhakṣayanto bhṛṣṭāṃ ghṛte māsam an-anna-bhakṣāḥ | jīvanti kālaṃ vipulaṃ pragalbhās tāruṇya-lāvaṇya-guṇodaya-sthāḥ || 164 || 39.164av maṇḍūkaparṇīṃ paribhakṣayanto 39.164bv bhṛṣṭāṃ ghṛte māsam an-anna-bhakṣyāḥ lāṅgalī-tri-phalā-loha-pala-pañcāśatā kṛtam | mārkava-sva-rase ṣaṣṭyā guṭikānāṃ śata-trayam || 165 || 39.165bv -pala-pañcāśataḥ kṛtāt 39.165bv -pala-pañcāśatī-kṛtam 39.165cv mārkava-sva-rase piṣṭād 39.165cv mārkava-sva-rase piṣṭvā 39.165dv guṭikānāṃ śata-trayāt chāyā-viśuṣkaṃ guṭikārdham adyāt pūrvaṃ samastām api tāṃ krameṇa | bhajed viriktaḥ krama-śaś ca maṇḍaṃ peyāṃ vilepīṃ rasakaudanaṃ ca || 166 || 39.166av chāyā-viśuṣkād guṭikārdham adyāt sarpiḥ-snigdhaṃ māsam ekaṃ yatātmā māsād ūrdhvaṃ sarva-thā svaira-vṛttiḥ | varjyaṃ yatnāt sarva-kālaṃ tv a-jīrṇaṃ varṣeṇaivaṃ yogam evopayuñjyāt || 167 || 39.167bv māsād ūrdhvaṃ sarva-śaḥ svaira-vṛttiḥ 39.167dv varṣeṇaivaṃ yogam evopayuñjya bhavati vigata-rogo yo 'py a-sādhyāmayārtaḥ prabala-puruṣa-kāraḥ śobhate yo 'pi vṛddhaḥ | upacita-pṛthu-gātra-śrotra-netrādi-yuktas taruṇa iva samānāṃ pañca jīvec chatāni || 168 || gāyatrī-śikhi-śiṃśipāsana-śivā-vellākṣakāruṣkarān || 169a || 39.169av gāyatrī-śikhi-śiṃśipāsana-śivā-vellākṣakāruṣkaraṃ piṣṭvāṣṭā-daśa-saṃguṇe 'mbhasi dhṛtān khaṇḍaiḥ sahāyo-mayaiḥ || 169b || 39.169bv piṣṭvāṣṭā-daśa-saṃguṇe 'mbhasi dhṛtān khaṇḍaiḥ sahāyo-malaiḥ 39.169bv piṣṭvāṣṭā-daśa-saṃguṇe 'mbhasi dhṛtaṃ khaṇḍaiḥ sahāyo-mayaiḥ 39.169bv piṣṭvāṣṭau daśa-ṣaḍ-guṇe 'mbhasi dhṛtaṃ khaṇḍaiḥ sahāyo-mayaiḥ pātre loha-maye try-ahaṃ ravi-karair āloḍayan pācayed || 169c || 39.169cv pātre loha-kṛte try-ahaṃ ravi-karair āloḍayan pācayed agnau cānu mṛdau sa-loha-śakalaṃ pāda-sthitaṃ tat pacet || 169d || pūtasyāṃśaḥ kṣīrato 'ṃśas tathāṃśau bhārgān niryāsād dvau varāyās trayo 'ṃśāḥ | aṃśāś catvāraś ceha haiyaṅgavīnād ekī-kṛtyaitat sādhayet kṛṣṇa-lauhe || 170 || 39.170bv bhārgī-niryāsād dvau varāyās trayo 'ṃśāḥ 39.170cv aṃśāś catvāraś caiva haiyaṅgavīnād vi-mala-khaṇḍa-sitā-madhubhiḥ pṛthag yutam a-yuktam idaṃ yadi vā ghṛtam | sva-ruci-bhojana-pāna-viceṣṭito bhavati nā pala-śaḥ pariśīlayan || 171 || 39.171av vi-malayā sitayā madhunātha-vā 39.171dv bhavati nā pala-śaḥ pariśīlayet śrī-mān nirdhūta-pāpmā vana-mahiṣa-balo vāji-vegaḥ sthirāṅgaḥ || 172a || keśair bhṛṅgāṅga-nīlair madhu-surabhi-mukho naika-yoṣin-niṣevī || 172b || 39.172bv keśair bhṛṅgāti-nīlair madhu-surabhi-mukho naika-yoṣin-niṣevī vāṅ-medhā-dhī-samṛddhaḥ su-paṭu-huta-vaho māsa-mātropayogād || 172c || 39.172cv vāṅ-medhāvī samṛddhaḥ su-paṭu-huta-vaho māsa-mātropayogād dhatte 'sau nārasiṃhaṃ vapur anala-śikhā-tapta-cāmīkarābham || 172d || attāraṃ nārasiṃhasya vyādhayo na spṛśanty api | cakrojjvala-bhujaṃ bhītā nārasiṃham ivāsurāḥ || 173 || 39.173cv cakrojjvala-bhujā bhītā bhṛṅga-pravālān amunaiva bhṛṣṭān ghṛtena yaḥ khādati yantritātmā | viśuddha-koṣṭho 'sana-sāra-siddha-dugdhānupas tat-kṛta-bhojanārthaḥ || 174 || māsopayogāt sa sukhī jīvaty abda-śata-trayam | gṛhṇāti sakṛd apy uktam a-vilupta-smṛtīndriyaḥ || 175 || 39.175bv jīvaty abda-śata-dvayam anenaiva ca kalpena yas tailam upayojayet | tān evāpnoti sa guṇān kṛṣṇa-keśaś ca jāyate || 176 || uktāni śakyāni phalānvitāni yugānurūpāṇi rasāyanāni | mahānuśaṃsāny api cāparāṇi prāpty-ādi-kaṣṭāni na kīrtitāni || 177 || 39.177cv mahānubhāvāny api cāparāṇi 39.177cv mahānuśaṃsyāny api cāparāṇi rasāyana-vidhi-bhraṃśāj jāyeran vyādhayo yadi | yathā-svam auṣadhaṃ teṣāṃ kāryaṃ muktvā rasāyanam || 178 || satya-vādinam a-krodham adhy-ātma-pravaṇendriyam | śāntaṃ sad-vṛtta-nirataṃ vidyān nitya-rasāyanam || 179 || guṇair ebhiḥ samuditaḥ sevate yo rasāyanam | sa nivṛttātmā dīrghāyuḥ para-treha ca modate || 180 || 39.180av guṇair etaiḥ samuditaiḥ 39.180cv sa nirvṛtātmā dīrghāyuḥ śāstrānusāriṇī caryā citta-jñāḥ pārśva-vartinaḥ | buddhir a-skhalitārtheṣu paripūrṇaṃ rasāyanam || 181 || Uttarasthāna vājī-karaṇam anvicchet satataṃ viṣayī pumān | tuṣṭiḥ puṣṭir apatyaṃ ca guṇa-vat tatra saṃśritam || 1 || apatya-saṃtāna-karaṃ yat sadyaḥ saṃpraharṣaṇam | vājīvāti-balo yena yāty a-pratihato 'ṅganāḥ || 2 || bhavaty ati-priyaḥ strīṇāṃ yena yenopacīyate | tad vājī-karaṇaṃ tad dhi dehasyorjas-karaṃ param || 3 || 40.3dv dehasyaujas-karaṃ param dharmyaṃ yaśasyam āyuṣyaṃ loka-dvaya-rasāyanam | anumodāmahe brahma-caryam ekānta-nirmalam || 4 || 40.4av dhanyaṃ yaśasyam āyuṣyaṃ 40.4bv loka-dvaya-sukhāvaham 40.4bv loka-dvaya-hitāvaham alpa-sat-tvasya tu kleśair bādhyamānasya rāgiṇaḥ | śarīra-kṣaya-rakṣārthaṃ vājī-karaṇam ucyate || 5 || 40.5av alpa-sat-tvasya ca kleśair 40.5av alpa-sat-tvasya cotkleśair 40.5bv bādhyamānasya rogiṇaḥ kalyasyodagra-vayaso vājī-karaṇa-sevinaḥ | sarveṣv ṛtuṣv ahar ahar vyavāyo na nivāryate || 6 || 40.6av kalpasyodagra-vayaso atha snigdha-viśuddhānāṃ nirūhān sānuvāsanān | ghṛta-taila-rasa-kṣīra-śarkarā-kṣaudra-saṃyutān || 7 || yoga-vid yojayet pūrvaṃ kṣīra-māṃsa-rasāśinām | tato vājī-karān yogān śukrāpatya-bala-pradān || 8 || 40.8dv śukrāpatya-vivardhanān a-cchāyaḥ pūti-kusumaḥ phalena rahito drumaḥ | yathaikaś caika-śākhaś ca nir-apatyas tathā naraḥ || 9 || skhalad-gamanam a-vyakta-vacanaṃ dhūli-dhūsaram | api lālāvila-mukhaṃ hṛdayāhlāda-kārakam || 10 || 40.10dv hṛdayāhlāda-kāriṇam apatyaṃ tulya-tāṃ kena darśana-sparśanādiṣu | kiṃ punar yad yaśo-dharma-māna-śrī-kula-vardhanam || 11 || 40.11av apatyaṃ tulya-tā kena 40.11cv kiṃ punar yo yaśo-dharma- 40.11dv -māna-śrī-kula-vardhanaḥ 40.11dv -māna-śrī-kula-vardhanāt śuddha-kāye yathā-śakti vṛṣya-yogān prayojayet | śarekṣu-kuśa-kāśānāṃ vidāryā vīraṇasya ca || 12 || 40.12av śuddhe kāye yathā-śakti mūlāni kaṇṭakāryāś ca jīvakarṣabhakau balām | mede dve dve ca kākolyau śūrpaparṇyau śatāvarīm || 13 || aśvagandhām atibalāṃ ātmaguptāṃ punarnavām | vīrāṃ payasyāṃ jīvantīm ṛddhiṃ rāsnāṃ trikaṇṭakam || 14 || madhukaṃ śāliparṇīṃ ca bhāgāṃs tri-palikān pṛthak | māṣāṇām āḍhakaṃ caitad dvi-droṇe sādhayed apām || 15 || rasenāḍhaka-śeṣeṇa pacet tena ghṛtāḍhakam | dattvā vidārī-dhātrīkṣu-rasānām āḍhakāḍhakam || 16 || ghṛtāc catur-guṇaṃ kṣīraṃ peṣyāṇīmāni cāvapet | vīrāṃ svaguptāṃ kākolyau yaṣṭīṃ phalgūni pippalīm || 17 || 40.17dv yaṣṭikaṃ gaja-pippalīm drākṣāṃ vidārīṃ kharjūraṃ madhukāni śatāvarīm | tat siddha-pūtaṃ cūrṇasya pṛthak prasthena yojayet || 18 || śarkarāyās tugāyāś ca pippalyāḥ kuḍavena ca | maricasya prakuñcena pṛthag ardha-palonmitaiḥ || 19 || tvag-elā-kesaraiḥ ślakṣṇaiḥ kṣaudra-dvi-kuḍavena ca | pala-mātraṃ tataḥ khādet praty-ahaṃ rasa-dugdha-bhuk || 20 || 40.20bv kṣaudrād dvi-kuḍavena ca 40.20dv praty-ahaṃ madhu-dugdha-bhuk tenārohati vājīva kuliṅga iva hṛṣyati | vidārī-pippalī-śāli-priyālekṣurakād rajaḥ || 21 || pṛthak svaguptā-mūlāc ca kuḍavāṃśaṃ tathā madhu | tulārdhaṃ śarkarā-cūrṇāt prasthārdhaṃ nava-sarpiṣaḥ || 22 || so 'kṣa-mātram ataḥ khādet yasya rāmā-śataṃ gṛhe | sātmaguptā-phalān kṣīre godhūmān sādhitān himān || 23 || 40.23bv yasya kāntā-śataṃ gṛhe māṣān vā sa-ghṛta-kṣaudrān khādan gṛṣṭi-payo-'nupaḥ | jāgarti rātriṃ sakalām a-khinnaḥ khedayan striyaḥ || 24 || bastāṇḍa-siddhe payasi bhāvitān a-sakṛt tilān | yaḥ khādet sa-sitān gacchet sa strī-śatam a-pūrva-vat || 25 || 40.25bv bhāvitān bahu-śas tilān cūrṇaṃ vidāryā bahu-śaḥ sva-rasenaiva bhāvitam | kṣaudra-sarpir-yutaṃ līḍhvā pramadā-śatam ṛcchati || 26 || 40.26dv pramadā daśa gacchati kṛṣṇā-dhātrī-phala-rajaḥ sva-rasena su-bhāvitam | śarkarā-madhu-sarpirbhir līḍhvā yo 'nu payaḥ pibet || 27 || 40.27av kṛṣṇa-dhātrī-phala-rajaḥ sa naro 'śīti-varṣo 'pi yuveva parihṛṣyati | karṣaṃ madhuka-cūrṇasya ghṛta-kṣaudra-samanvitam || 28 || 40.28dv ghṛta-kṣaudra-samāṃśakam payo-'nu-pānaṃ yo lihyān nitya-vegaḥ sa nā bhavet | kulīraśṛṅgyā yaḥ kalkam āloḍya payasā pibet || 29 || sitā-ghṛta-payo-'nnāśī sa nārīṣu vṛṣāyate | yaḥ payasyāṃ payaḥ-siddhāṃ khāden madhu-ghṛtānvitām || 30 || pibed bāṣkayaṇaṃ cānu kṣīraṃ na kṣayam eti saḥ | svayaṅguptekṣurakayor bīja-cūrṇaṃ sa-śarkaram || 31 || 40.31av pibed bāṣkayiṇaṃ cānu dhāroṣṇena naraḥ pītvā payasā rāsabhāyate | uccaṭā-cūrṇam apy evaṃ śatāvaryāś ca yojayet || 32 || candra-śubhraṃ dadhi-saraṃ sa-sitā-ṣaṣṭikaudanam | paṭe su-mārjitaṃ bhuktvā vṛddho 'pi taruṇāyate || 33 || 40.33cc paṭe su-bhāvitaṃ bhuktvā śvadaṃṣṭrekṣura-māṣātmaguptā-bīja-śatāvarīḥ | piban kṣīreṇa jīrṇo 'pi gacchati pramadā-śatam || 34 || 40.34cv pibet kṣīreṇa jīrṇo 'pi yat kiñ-cin madhuraṃ snigdhaṃ bṛṃhaṇaṃ bala-vardhanam | manaso harṣaṇaṃ yac ca tat sarvaṃ vṛṣyam ucyate || 35 || dravyair evaṃ-vidhais tasmād darpitaḥ pramadāṃ vrajet | ātma-vegena codīrṇaḥ strī-guṇaiś ca praharṣitaḥ || 36 || 40.36bv bhāvitaḥ pramadāṃ vrajet sevyāḥ sarvendriya-sukhā dharma-kalpa-drumāṅkurāḥ | viṣayātiśayāḥ pañca śarāḥ kusuma-dhanvanaḥ || 37 || 40.37dv śarāḥ kusuma-dhanvinaḥ iṣṭā hy ekaika-śo 'py arthā harṣa-prīti-karāḥ param | kiṃ punaḥ strī-śarīre ye saṃghātena pratiṣṭhitāḥ || 38 || 40.38cv kiṃ punaḥ strī-śarīreṣu nāmāpi yasyā hṛdayotsavāya yāṃ paśyatāṃ tṛptir an-āpta-pūrvā | sarvendriyākarṣaṇa-pāśa-bhūtā kāntānuvṛtti-vrata-dīkṣitā yā || 39 || 40.39bv yāṃ paśyatas tṛptir an-āpta-pūrvā kalā-vilāsāṅga-vayo-vibhūṣā śuciḥ sa-lajjā rahasi pragalbhā | priyaṃ-vadā tulya-manaḥ-śayā yā sā strī vṛṣya-tvāya paraṃ narasya || 40 || 40.40cv priyaṃ-vadā tulya-manaḥ-sva-bhāvā ācarec ca sakalāṃ rati-caryāṃ kāma-sūtra-vihitām an-a-vadyām | deśa-kāla-bala-śakty-anurodhād vaidya-tantra-samayokty-a-viruddhām || 41 || 40.41bv kāma-śāstra-vihitām an-a-vadyām abhyañjanodvartana-seka-gandha-srak-citra-vastrābharaṇa-prakārāḥ | gāndharva-kāvyādi-kathā-pravīṇāḥ sama-sva-bhāvā vaśa-gā vayasyāḥ || 42 || 40.42bv -srag-anna-vastrābharaṇa-prakārāḥ 40.42cv gandharva-kanyādi-kathā-pravīṇāḥ dīrghikā sva-bhavanānta-niviṣṭā padma-reṇu-madhu-matta-vihaṅgā | nīla-sānu-giri-kūṭa-nitambe kānanāni pura-kaṇṭha-gatāni || 43 || 40.43av dīrghikāḥ sva-bhavanānta-niviṣṭāḥ 40.43bv padma-reṇu-madhu-matta-vihaṅgāḥ 40.43cv nīla-sānu-giri-kūṭa-nitambāḥ dṛṣṭi-sukhā vividhā taru-jātiḥ śrotra-sukhaḥ kala-kokila-nādaḥ | aṅga-sukhartu-vaśena vibhūṣā citta-sukhaḥ sakalaḥ parivāraḥ || 44 || 40.44bv śrotra-sukhāḥ kala-kokila-nādāḥ 40.44cv aṅga-sukhartu viśeṣa-vibhūṣā tāmbūlam accha-madirā kāntā kāntā niśā śaśāṅkāṅkā | yad yac ca kiñ-cid iṣṭaṃ manaso vājī-karaṃ tat tat || 45 || 40.45bv kāntāḥ kāntā niśāḥ śaśāṅkāṅkāḥ 40.45dv manaso vājī-karaṃ hi tat madhu mukham iva sotpalaṃ priyāyāḥ kala-raṇanā parivādinī priyeva | kusuma-caya-mano-ramā ca śayyā kisalayinī latikeva puṣpitāgrā || 46 || 40.46bv kala-raṇanā priya-vādinī priyeva 40.46cv kusuma-caya-mano-harā ca śayyā deśe śarīre ca na kā-cid artir artheṣu nālpo 'pi mano-vidhānaḥ | vājī-karāḥ saṃnihitāś ca yogāḥ kāmasya kāmaṃ paripūrayanti || 47 || 40.47av deśe śarīre na kadā-cid artir 40.47bv artheṣu nālpo 'pi mano-'bhighātaḥ mustā parpaṭakaṃ jvare tṛṣi jalaṃ mṛd-bhṛṣṭa-loṣṭodbhavaṃ || 48a || lājāś chardiṣu vasti-jeṣu girijaṃ meheṣu dhātrī-niśe || 48b || pāṇḍau śreṣṭham ayo 'bhayānila-kaphe plīhāmaye pippalī || 48c || saṃdhāne kṛmijā viṣe śukatarur medo-'nile gugguluḥ || 48d || vṛṣo 'sra-pitte kuṭajo 'tisāre bhallātako 'rśaḥsu gareṣu hema | sthūleṣu tārkṣyaṃ kṛmiṣu kṛmighnaṃ śoṣe surā chāga-payo 'tha māṃsam || 49 || 40.49bv bhallātam arśaḥsu gareṣu hema akṣy-āmayeṣu tri-phalā guḍūcī vātāsra-roge mathitaṃ grahaṇyām | kuṣṭheṣu sevyaḥ khadirasya sāraḥ sarveṣu rogeṣu śilāhvayaṃ ca || 50 || unmādaṃ ghṛtam a-navaṃ śokaṃ madyaṃ vyapasmṛtiṃ brāhmī | nidrā-nāśaṃ kṣīraṃ jayati rasālā pratiśyāyam || 51 || 40.51bv śokaṃ madyaṃ visaṃsmṛtiṃ brāhmī māṃsaṃ kārśyaṃ laśunaḥ prabhañjanaṃ stabdha-gātra-tāṃ svedaḥ | guḍamañjaryāḥ khapuro nasyāt skandhāṃsa-bāhu-rujam || 52 || 40.52dv nasyaṃ skandhāṃsa-bāhu-rujam nava-nīta-khaṇḍa-marditam auṣṭraṃ mūtraṃ payaś ca hanty udaram | nasyaṃ mūrdha-vikārān vidradhim a-cirotthitam asra-visrāvaḥ || 53 || 40.53bv auṣṭrī-mūtraṃ payaś ca hanty udaram 40.53cv nasyaṃ cordhva-vikārān 40.53cv nasyaṃ mūrdhni vikārān nasyaṃ kavaḍo mukha-jān nasyāñjana-tarpaṇāni netra-rujaḥ | vṛddhasya kṣīra-ghṛte mūrchāṃ śītāmbu-māruta-cchāyāḥ || 54 || 40.54av nasyaṃ kavaḍaṃ mukha-gadān 40.54av nasyaṃ kevalaṃ mukha-gadān 40.54av nasyaṃ kavaḍaṃ mukha-jān sama-śuktārdraka-mātrā mande vahnau śrame surā snānam | duḥkha-saha-tve sthairye vyāyāmo gokṣurur hitaḥ kṛcchre || 55 || 40.55av sama-śuṣkārdraka-mātrā 40.55bv mande vahnau śrame surā-pānam 40.55cv duḥkha-saha-tvaṃ sthairye 40.55cv duḥkha-saha-tvaṃ sthaulye kāse nidigdhikā pārśva-śūle puṣkara-jā jaṭā | vayasaḥ sthāpane dhātrī tri-phalā guggulur vraṇe || 56 || 40.56av kāse nidigdhikā-pānaṃ 40.56bv pārśva-śūle ca pauṣkaram 40.56cv vayaḥ-saṃsthāpane dhātrī vastir vāta-vikārān paittān rekaḥ kaphodbhavān vamanam | kṣaudraṃ jayati balāsaṃ sarpiḥ pittaṃ samīraṇaṃ tailam || 57 || ity agryaṃ yat proktaṃ rogāṇām auṣadhaṃ śamāyālam | tad deśa-kāla-balato vikalpanīyaṃ yathā-yogam || 58 || ity ātreyād āgamayyārtha-sūtraṃ tat-sūktānāṃ peśalānām a-tṛptaḥ | bheḍādīnāṃ saṃmato bhakti-namraḥ papracchedaṃ saṃśayāno 'gniveśaḥ || 59 || 40.59av ity ātreyād āgamād ārtha-sūkṣmaṃ 40.59av ity ātreyād āgamayyārtha-sūkṣmaṃ 40.59bv tat-sūktīnāṃ peśalānām a-tṛptaḥ dṛśyante bhaga-van ke-cid ātma-vanto 'pi rogiṇaḥ | dravyopasthātṛ-saṃpannā vṛddha-vaidya-matānugāḥ || 60 || kṣīyamāṇāmaya-prāṇā viparītās tathā 'pare | hitā-hita-vibhāgasya phalaṃ tasmād a-niścitam || 61 || kiṃ śāsti śāstram asmin iti kalpayato 'gniveśa-mukhyasya | śiṣya-gaṇasya punarvasur ācakhyau kārtsnyatas tat-tvam || 62 || 40.62dv ācakṣe kārtsnyatas tat-tvam na cikitsā-cikitsā ca tulyā bhavitum arhati | vināpi kriyayā svāsthyaṃ gacchatāṃ ṣo-ḍaśāṃśayā || 63 || ātaṅka-paṅka-magnānāṃ hastālambo bhiṣag-jitam | jīvitaṃ mriyamāṇānāṃ sarveṣām eva nauṣadhāt || 64 || 40.64dv sarveṣām eva nauṣadham na hy upāyam apekṣante sarve rogā na cānya-thā | upāya-sādhyāḥ sidhyanti nā-hetur hetu-mān yataḥ || 65 || 40.65dv no '-hetur hetu-māṃs tataḥ yad uktaṃ sarva-saṃpatti-yuktayāpi cikitsayā | mṛtyur bhavati tan naivaṃ nopāye 'sty an-upāya-tā || 66 || 40.66dv nopāyeṣv an-upāya-tā api copāya-yuktasya dhī-mato jātu cit kriyā | na sidhyed daiva-vaiguṇyān na tv iyaṃ ṣo-ḍaśātmikā || 67 || 40.67av apy evopāya-yuktasya 40.67cv na siddhir daiva-vaiguṇyān 40.67dv na nv iyaṃ ṣo-ḍaśātmikā kasyā-siddho 'gni-toyādiḥ sveda-stambhādi-karmaṇi | na prīṇanaṃ karṣaṇaṃ vā kasya kṣīraṃ gavedhukam || 68 || 40.68cv na prīṇanaṃ karśanaṃ vā 40.68dv kasya kṣīra-gavedhukam kasya māṣātmaguptādau vṛṣya-tve nāsti niścayaḥ | viṇ-mūtra-karaṇākṣepau kasya saṃśayitau yave || 69 || 40.69av kasya māṣātmaguptādyair 40.69bv vṛṣa-tve nāsti niścayaḥ viṣaṃ kasya jarāṃ yāti mantra-tantra-vivarjitam | kaḥ prāptaḥ kalya-tāṃ pathyād ṛte rohiṇikādiṣu || 70 || 40.70cv kaḥ prāptaḥ kalpa-tāṃ pathyād api cā-kāla-maraṇaṃ sarva-siddhānta-niścitam | mahatāpi prayatnena vāryatāṃ katham anya-thā || 71 || candanādy api dāhādau rūḍham āgama-pūrvakam | śāstrād eva gataṃ siddhiṃ jvare laṅghana-bṛṃhaṇam || 72 || catuṣ-pād-guṇa-saṃpanne samyag ālocya yojite | mā kṛthā vyādhi-nirghātaṃ vicikitsāṃ cikitsite || 73 || 40.73av catuṣ-pād-guṇa-saṃpūrṇe 40.73cv mā kṛthā vyādhi-nirghāte etad dhi mṛtyu-pāśānām a-kāṇḍe chedanaṃ dṛḍham | rogottrāsita-bhītānāṃ rakṣā-sūtram a-sūtrakam || 74 || etat tad amṛtaṃ sākṣāj jagad-āyāsa-varjitam | yāti hālāhala-tvaṃ tu sadyo dur-bhājana-sthitam || 75 || 40.75av etad vedāmṛtaṃ sākṣāj 40.75bv jagaty āyāsa-varjitam 40.75cv yāti hālāhala-tvaṃ ca a-jñāta-śāstra-sad-bhāvāñ chāstra-mātra-parāyaṇān | tyajed dūrād bhiṣak-pāśān pāśān vaivasvatān iva || 76 || 40.76cv vivarjayed bhiṣak-pāśān bhiṣajāṃ sādhu-vṛttānāṃ bhadram āgama-śālinām | abhyasta-karmaṇāṃ bhadraṃ bhadraṃ bhadrābhilāṣiṇām || 77 || 40.77bv bahu-dhāgama-śālinām 40.77bv bhadram āgama-śīlinām 40.77cv abhyasta-karmaṇāṃ siddhir iti tantra-guṇair yuktaṃ tantra-doṣair vivarjitam | cikitsā-śāstram a-khilaṃ vyāpya yat paritaḥ sthitam || 78 || 40.78bv tantra-doṣa-vivarjitam 40.78dv vyāpaṭhya paritaḥ sthitam vipulā-mala-vijñāna-mahā-muni-matānugam | mahā-sāgara-gambhīra-saṃgrahārthopalakṣaṇam || 79 || 40.79av vipulā-mala-vijñānaṃ 40.79cv mahā-sāgara-gambhīraṃ 40.79cv mahā-muni-matānugam 40.79dv saṃgrahārthopalakṣaṇam 40.79dv saṃgrahārthopalakṣakam aṣṭāṅga-vaidyaka-mahodadhi-manthanena yo 'ṣṭāṅga-saṃgraha-mahāmṛta-rāśir āptaḥ | tasmād an-alpa-phalam alpa-samudyamānāṃ prīty-artham etad uditaṃ pṛthag eva tantram || 80 || 40.80bv yo 'ṣṭāṅga-saṃgraha-mahāmṛta-sāra-tulyaḥ 40.80dv prīty-artham evam uditaṃ pṛthag eva tantram idam āgama-siddha-tvāt pratyakṣa-phala-darśanāt | mantra-vat saṃprayoktavyaṃ na mīmāṃsyaṃ kathañ-ca-na || 81 || 40.81av idam āgama-śuddha-tvāt 40.81dv na mīmāṃsyaṃ kadā-ca-na dīrgha-jīvitam ārogyaṃ dharmam arthaṃ sukhaṃ yaśaḥ | pāṭhāvabodhānuṣṭhānair adhigacchaty ato dhruvam || 82 || 40.82av dīrghaṃ jīvitam ārogyaṃ etat paṭhan saṃgraha-bodha-śaktaḥ sv-abhyasta-karmā bhiṣag a-prakampyaḥ | ākampayaty anya-viśāla-tantra-kṛtābhiyogān yadi tan na citram || 83 || 40.83cv yaḥ kampayaty anya-viśāla-tantra- yadi carakam adhīte tad dhruvaṃ suśrutādi-praṇigadita-gadānāṃ nāma-mātre 'pi bāhyaḥ | atha caraka-vihīnaḥ prakriyāyām a-klinnaḥ kim iva khalu karotu vyādhitānāṃ varākaḥ || 84 || 40.84bv -praṇigadita-gadānāṃ nāma-mātreṇa bāhyaḥ 40.84bv -pratigadita-gadānāṃ nāma-mātre 'pi bāhyaḥ 40.84dv kim iha khalu karotu vyādhitānāṃ varākaḥ abhiniveśa-vaśād abhiyujyate su-bhaṇite 'pi na yo dṛḍha-mūḍhakaḥ | paṭhatu yatna-paraḥ puruṣāyuṣaṃ sa khalu vaidyakam ādyam a-nirvidaḥ || 85 || vāte pitte śleṣma-śāntau ca pathyaṃ tailaṃ sarpir mākṣikaṃ ca krameṇa | etad brahmā bhāṣatāṃ brahma-jo vā kā nir-mantre vaktṛ-bhedokti-śaktiḥ || 86 || 40.86cv etad brahmā bhāṣate brahma-jo vā abhidhātṛ-vaśāt kiṃ vā dravya-śaktir viśiṣyate | ato matsaram utsṛjya mādhyasthyam avalambyatām || 87 || 40.87av abhidhātur vaśāt kiñ-cid ṛṣi-praṇīte prītiś cen muktvā caraka-suśrutau | bheḍādyāḥ kiṃ na paṭhyante tasmād grāhyaṃ su-bhāṣitam || 88 || hṛdayam iva hṛdayam etat sarvāyur-veda-vāṅ-maya-payo-dheḥ | kṛtvā yac chubham āptaṃ śubham astu paraṃ tato jagataḥ || 89 ||